/
n
A BRIEF HISTORY
OP
THE WESLEYAK MISSIONS
ON
THE WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA:
INCLUDING
BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCHES
OF
ALL THE MISSIONARIES WHO HAVE DIED IN THAT IMPORTANT
FIELD OF LABOUR.
SOME ACCOUNT OF THE EUROPEAN SETTLEMENTS, ^^ £q^
AND OP THE SLAVE-TRADE. ^iS ¥/ ^t V '^^A*
ILLUSTRATED WITH A MAP AND .SIX ENGRAVINGS. l/y*' ' ' * « V.*
BY WILLIAM FOX, ^>> c^^
UPWARDS OP TEN YEARS MISSIONARY ON THE GAMBIA. *. . *-»
-Vm American Mi.ssionnry. just Itefore his departure for Africa, said to liis friend, "I go to that
land of death ; hut if I die, you must come and write my epitaph." It was asliod, " What
shall I write?" "AVrite," said he, "Though a thousand f.m.l, i-rt not Africa be
FORGOTTEN ! "
LONDON:
PRINTED FOR THE AUTHOR.
PUBLISHED BY AYLOTT AND JONES,
«. PATERNOSTER-ROW:
SOLD ALSO BY -TOHN MASON, 66, PATERNOSTER-ROW
MUCCCLI.
Boston University
c.s,
6V
35^0
LONDON :
?K1J>TKD BY JAMES NICHOLS,
HOXTON-SQUARE.
THE COMMITTEE, TREASURERS, AND GENERAL SECRETARIES
WESLEYAN-METHODIST MISSIONARY SOCIETY;
UNDER WHOSE AUSPICES THE AUTHOR COMMENCED HIS ARDUOUS
LABOURS ON THE RIVER GAMBIA,
BY WHOSE COUNSELS HE WAS INSTRUCTED
AND ENCOURAGED,
WHOSE APPROBATION CHEERED HIM UNDER TRIALS AND DIFFICULTIES,
AND FROM AVHOM HE HAS ALWAYS RECEIVED GRATIFYING
TOKENS OP ESTEEM AND CONFIDENCE;
THIS VOLUME
IS RESPECTFULLY INSCRIBED.
PHEFACE.
For many generations the name of Africa has produced a
kind of taUsmanic effect upon various parts of the civihzed
Avorld. It has arrested the attention and awakened the
sympathies of mankind; and brought into action some of
the lioblest energies — mental, moral, and physical — with which
human nature is endowed. The phil«athro]3ist and the phi-
losopher, the man of science and of commerce, the states-
man and the Christian, have all alike in their turn directed
their attention to " that realm of wonder,^' to that once
bright, but long since (and still) dark, continent. No part of
the globe is richer in all the three kingdoms of nature, animal,
vegetable, and mineral ; and yet, alas ! no part of the world is
more deeply degraded, demoralized, and polluted.
The very name of Africa, therefore, prepares us for revolt-
ing scenes of wrong, oppression, and cruelty ; for deeds of dan-
ger, of desolation, and of death. The following pages will exhi-
bit this unhappy country in some of its darkest features : with
its brutal rites and ceremonies, its demon- worship, and its mil-
lions of inhabitants slain in battle, and millions more the victims
to the sacrificial knife, the instrument of a sanguinary supersti-
tion, and still millions more pining away in the horrid holds of the
slave-ships ! But without referring to this awful loss of life, which
to a great extent occurs annually, what a number of valuable
lives have been sacrificed in exploring its unknown regions, in
tracing the sources of its mighty rivers, in attempting to miti-
gate some of its untold miseries, and in scattering, by means of
Christian missions, the blessings of a Saviour's love among some
of the numerous tribes skirting that long line of coast !
The present work owes its existence to a desire long felt, on the
part of the writer, to see placed upon record some brief memorial
of departed worth in connexion with the last class of European
agents who have lost their lives in the welfare of Africa. Soon
after his arrival in England in the summer of 1843, he was
requested by an intelligent gentleman to publish some account
of his missionary labours ; but he did not then entertain the pro-
position. Since that period he has been frequently solicited by
other esteemed friends to enter on this undertaking ; but he still
declined. However, having attended many missionary meetings,
b
VI PREFACE.
and having not unfrequently referred to the prejudicial effects of
the climate of Western Africa on European constitutions^ as one
of the great drawbacks to the rapid progress of Christianity ; it
often occurred to him on those occasions, that a brief history of
the Wesleyan missions, Avith a biographical sketch of those
excellent men, and " also of honourable women not a few," who
have fallen in that land of death, could not but be interesting to
the friends of missions in general, and especially to the nearest
connexions of the deceased. It is true that the death of each
missionary and missionary's wife, as they have occurred, has
been invariably announced in the "Missionary Notices," with
some suitable and appropriate remarks ; and a further record of
each departed missionary has been published in the Obituary
department of the " Minutes of Conference." But the writer
conceived, that something in a more connected form, with
further particulars, was due to that noble and self-denying
band of the devoted soldiers of the cross, who have volunta-
rily rushed into the field, to fill up the breaches made by " the
last enemy," or to aid the few standard-bearers w^ho were
still remaining, and who have cheerfully laid down their lives,
and sacrificed their all, in this hallowed cause. He was, more-
over, not without hope that a brief account of their successful
labours, their sickness and death, though following each other
(as it w ill be seen they did) in rapid succession, instead of act-
ing as a check to missionary ardour, or deterring young men
from venturing on this pestilential clime, would rather tend
to fan the flame of missionary zeal, already kindled in many
hearts, and that it would induce others to say, " Here am I ;
send me ! " The past history of these missions warrants and
encourages this expectation.
The author, having long waited for some one more competent
to undertake this task, at length resolved to make the attempt
himself; and, as soon as he had taken this resolution, he made
known his intention to the public, and solicited, from the
parents and other friends of deceased missionaries, such inter-
esting incidents connected with their conversion to God, their
call to the ministry, and other facts, as they might be able to
furnish. To this application many friends in different parts
of the kingdom soon responded ; and the substance of those
letters are embodied in the biographical sketches found in the
following pages ; and the author tenders his grateful acknow-
ledgments for those valuable communications. Some of the
memoirs are exceedingly brief when compared with others ;
but it must be remembered, that this has arisen from circum-
PREFACE. VU
stances over which the writer had no control ; for in no instance
has he extolled the virtues and zeal of one missionary at the
expense of those of others^ but has endeavoured to do justice to
all, as far as he was enabled from his personal knowledge of
them, and the materials with which he was furnished. For this
purpose he has availed hioiself of all the published documents
that were within his reach ; and, when these failed to satisfy
him, he has written scores of letters to ascertain the correctness
of some fact, or the precise date of some event, and has thus
tried to elicit further information, and to insure accuracy.
But, in sitting down to his task, it was natural to say some-
thing of Africa and the Africans. This led him, almost as
naturally, to speak of Slavery and the Slave-Trade ; and hence
the work has swollen to more than twice the bulk he originally
intended. This he regrets ; as the size of the book materially
affects the price, and he was most anxious to have brought it
within the reach of the generality of readers on missionary
subjects. He has been cheered and encouraged, however, in his
attempt to give to the public some account of Africa, and of the
Wesleyan missions in the Western part of that continent, by many
valued ministers and intelligent friends, who have written to
him, and who have urged him " not to be too brief,^' but to
give ample information on the real state of African society,
with its scenery and productions, and the progress of the mis-
sions. It was almost impossible to touch on West-African
affairs, and not refer to that monster foe, the Slave-Trade;
that enemy to the well-being of Africa, which has hitherto
laughed to scorn the Acts of the British Legislature, and the
noble attempts that have been made by the various philan-
thropic societies of the land, who have tried in vain to crush
the evil.
The author's views on this great political question will be
found in the following pages ; and he conceives that Western
Africa has claims on the whole of Christendom, which no other
part of the world can exhibit. If his appeal to all classes of
the community meets with a due response, Africa will soon
arise, and "put on her beautiful garments,^' and that great
moral wilderness " shall rejoice and blossom as the rose."
In the brief history of the missions, a considerable part of
the writer's personal narrative is interwoven with the Avliole
of that period during which he remained in Africa. This could
not well be avoided. But he hopes he has not unnecessarily
obtruded himself on the notice of the reader. Having thrice
sailed to Western Africa direct from England, and six times
b 2
Vm PREFACE.
crossed the Atlantic in connexion Tvitli the missions on the
E,iver Gambia; and having sailed up and down that magnificent
stream between thirty and forty times, and journeyed by land
further into the interior than any European now living ; and
having resided there many years ; he, as a matter of course, not
only became intimately acquainted with the state of the mis-
sions, but gained a tolerable knowledge of the physical, moral,
and social condition of the country. This knowledge he has
endeavoured to impart to others; sometimes by extracts from
his journal written down at the time, with the occasional use of
the personal pronoun ''1/' but in other cases, and as often as he
could, he has delivered himself in the third person ; and has thus
endeavoured to hide himself w hile he exhibited the real state of
the missions, Avith concomitant facts and incidents, in their
proper character and true colours.
It would have afforded the writer sincere pleasure to have
made more frequent allusion to the labours of kindred institu-
tions which are found in active operation on the Western Coast
of Africa ; particularly those of the Church Missionary Society,
that for nearly half a century has had missionaries at Sierra-
Leone, and of late years on different parts of the Coast. This,
however, Avas found to be impracticable ; and he has, therefore,
according to announcement, confined himself to the labours of
the Weslej^an missionaries : for, though other missionaries were
sent to Sierra-Leone some fcAv years before any regular Wes-
leyan missionary landed there, yet a small society of Wesleyan
Methodists was formed in that colony almost immediately after
its establishment.
For two of the illustrations contained in the Avork the writer
is indebted to a kind friend, Mr. Samuel Smith of Nottingham,
who has greatly improved the rough draughts Avhicli Avere sent
to him. All the views have been reduced to the proper size,
and drawn on stone, by that eminent artist, Mr. Walton ; who,
with his usual skill, has furnished tasteful representations of the
scenes which he was engaged to delineate.
He also embraces this opportunity of gratefully acknowledg-
ing his obligations to his numerous subscribers, who have by
their Avarm patronage encouraged him in this undertaking.
His intention w as, to have introduced copious remarks on the
principal obstructions which the heralds of the Cross, the har-
bingers of civilization, have to encounter in Western Africa,
while attempting to extend the triumphs of Christ, and to
" make manifest the sAveet savour of His knowledge in every
place/^ These obstacles may be appropriately designated as
PREFACE. IX
physical, moral, aud diabolical, — in reference to the prejudicial
effects of the climate on the constitution of European residents,
to the immoral and degraded condition of the natives, and to that
egregious evil, the Slave-Trade. These and other coUateral
topics he purposes to discuss in a pamphlet, which will be pub -
lished simultaneously with the present volume.
To his missionar}^ brethren both at home and abroad, many of
whom have most cheerfully, and some of them without solicita-
tion, contributed much valuable information, the writer returns
his best thanks ; and he will feel obliged to them, and any other
friends, for such additions and improvements as may suggest
themselves on perusal.
The work has been written amidst numerous other engage-
ments, with frequent and serious interruptions arising from
various causes, and without aiming at any thing more than
the plain statement of unadorned facts. It is now before the
reader; and if the perusal of the volume shall lead the churches
of Christ, with the nation at large, to send the Gospel to Africa
on a scale commensurate to her wants and woes, the author will
consider that his chief object is answered.
WILLIAM FOX.
Pendleton,
Manchester,
December SOth, 1850.
CONTENTS.
CHAPTER I. AFRICA AND THE AFRICANS.
Page.
Africa — Its Size — Position — Population — Demoralized Condition — Alysteri-
ous why so long neglected — Its Inhabitants supposed to he a ditferent
Species from other Parts of the human Race — Unjustly and cruelly treated
— God hath made of one Blood all Nations of Men — All possess one
common Nature and Origin — Objections to this raised on the Ground
of Diiference of Colour, Configuration, &c. — Climate assigned as the
chief Cause for Difference of Colom- — Illustrations of this — Particularly
in the Case of the Jews — Physiologists are not agreed as to the Colour of
the human Race originally — Scripture Quotations — A Supposition — Edin-
burgh Review — Josephus— The Colour of some of the African Nations
corresponds with that of the ancient Egyptians — Dr. Primatt — Colom-,
after all, only superficial — Not even Skin-deep — Though the Africiins are
black, the Skin is sleek and soft, and well adapted to the Chmate —
The physical Character of the Africans described from personal Observa-
tion— Confirmed by other Writers — Extracts from Dr. Prichard's Re-
searches into the physical History of Mankind — Africans and ourselves
of one common Origin, and a Part of the human Family — Supposed by
some to be mentally inferior to those of other Portions of the Globe —
Personal Intercourse with the native Tribes in Western Africa rei)udi-
ates this Opinion — Further Extracts from Dr. Prichard's Work, with
Professor Tidemann's Researches — Rev. Richard Watson — The above
Theory proved to be without Foundation — Another Mode of meeting the
Charge of mental Inferiority urged against the African is found in the
Power of the Gospel — That solves the whole Case — The Africans capable
of Improvement — The Negroes supposed to be under the Ban of the
Almighty — This Theory also without Foundation — If it ever was so, the
Curse has long since been repealed — Africa included in the World's
Redemption, in the Saviour's Commission to his Disciples, and in the
Prophecies referring to the universal Empire of the Son of God — Special
Allusions to Africa in the Word of God — Its Conversion predicted— It is
destined to rise, and will idtimately be saved 1
II. AFRICA, AND THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.
By whom and at what Time Africa was circumnavigated — The Discovery of
America, and the Doubling of the Cape of Good Hope — Both these
Events proved injurious to Africa — Origin of the African Slave-Trade —
Cruelty of the Spaniards towards the Aborigines of America — Las Casas'
Proposal to Cardinal Ximenes, Regent of Spain — The Emperor, Charles
v., grants a Patent — Las Casas' Account of Spanish Cruelty to the native
Indians — Heylin's and Dr. Robertson's Account of an Indian Nobleman
— The Inconsistency of sending to Africa for a Supply of Slaves —
Charles V. and Las Casas saw their En'or — The Spanish Slave-Trade
revived — The English engage in the Slave-Trade — Captain Hawkins —
Queen Elizabeth — Contradictory Accounts of the English Slave-Trade
cleared up by James Bandinel, Esq. — The English Slave-Trade continued
— Thrown open by Act of Parliament — The Trade rapidly increased —
The French actively engage in it — Great Britain, though not the First to
embark in it, was soon Foremost — As a Nation we are verily guilty — -The
Voice of our Brother's Blood crieth against us from the Ground 29
CONTENTS. XI
CHArXEIl III. THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.
Page.
The Existence of tlie Slave-Tradc to be deeply regretted — The Attention of
some eminent Men directed to its Abolition — High Tribute to Granville
Sharp — Negro Slaves coming to England — Famous Case of Somerset,
in 1772 — Thomas Clarkson and William Wilberforce — The Society of
Friends — Writers in Favour of Abolition — Godwyn — Baxter — Whiteficld
— John Wesley — Kamsay — First Petition sent to Parliament — Small
Committee of Quakers— The Inhabitants of Bridgewater petition Par-
liament— Clarkson's " Essay on the Slave-Trade" — Importance of its
Publication — Clarkson devotes his Life to the Cause — A Society organ-
ized, and Committee formed — Magnitude of the Object — The Subject
introduced into Parliament — Opposition to the Measure — The Friends of
Abolition persevere — Debates in Parliament — Memorable Session of
1807 — The Slave-Trade abolished by the British Parliament 44
IV. ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY.
AnoLiTTON of the British Slave-Trade — More stringent Measm'es adopted to
render it effectual and complete — The Slave-Trade and Slavery two dis-
tinct Things — The Attention of the Public is now directed to the latter
—Miseries of West-Indian Slavery — Anti-Slavery Society foi-mcd — Peti-
tions to Parliament for the Abolition of Slavery — Mr. T. F. Buxton
selected as the parliamentary Leader by the venerable \Yilberforce — •
liCtters of Mr. Wilberforce to Mr. Buxton — The Subject introduced into
the House of Commons by Mr. Buxton — His spirited Reply at the Close
of the Debate — Opposition in the Colonies to any Change in the System
— Persecution of Missionaries — The Rev. John Smith's Imprisonment at
Demerara — Feeling of the Nation in favom- of Emancipation — Death of
the Rev. John Smith in the Jail at Demerara — " Smith's Case" brought
l)efore the House of Commons — Touching Incident — The Proto-martyr
Stephen — Rev. W. J. Shrewsbury driven from Barl:)adoes — Mr. Buxton
brings this Case before the House — Persevering Efforts of the Anti-
Slavery Society— The Cabinet Ministers, though favourable to Abolition,
lean towards the Planters — The Nation becomes aroused in favour of
immediate and total Abolition — Petitions sent to Parliament — Opposi-
tion of the Planters and others interested in the Continuance of Slavery
— Persecutions of Missionaries — Parliamentary Session of 1833 — Great
Anti-Slavery Meeting at Exeter-Hall — Number of Petitions — One from
the Females of Britain — Presented by Mr. Buxton — The Abolition Bill
passes both Houses of Parliament — Receives the royal Assent — Memora-
ble First of August, 1834, and 183B — British SlaveiT exterminated —
Noble Effect of the Measure 68
v.- THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.
The Slave-Trade unsubdued — Great Britain no longer pai-ticipatcs in the
Traffic — Has used her diplomatic Influence with other Nations — Great
Expenditure incurred in discouraging the Slave-Trade — The Slave-Trade
not destroyed, but increased — Sir T. F. Buxton's Statement — The Con-
struction of Slave-Ships — Enormous Profits of the Slave-Trade — The
Middle Passage — Capture of the "Carolina" — Original Tonnage allowed
to Slave-Ships — The "Patacho" Slaver at Rio de Janeiro — Extracts
from the Rev. P. G. Hill's Pamphlet, entitled " Fifty Days on Board a
Slaver" — A recent Capture near Sierra-Leone — The Negroes branded
with red-hot Irons — Twenty thousand Negroes constantly on the Atlantic
— Villages depopulated by Slave-Hunters — The Distress of the Africans
at the Loss of their Relatives — The Hebrew Maid, and Jacob's Son
Joseph — An Appeal to Christian Parents 88
XU CONTENTS.
CHAPTER VI. THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.
Page.
The Method of procuring Slaves — A Definition of true Humanity — The prin-
cipal Wars in Africa originate in the Slave-Trade — Towns and Villages
burnt, aud the Inhabitants led into Captivity — The great Amount of
MortaUty involved in the Seizure — Testimony of M. Brue, French
Director at the Senegal in 1G97 — Mr. Moore at the Gambia in 1730 — ■
Bruce of Abyssinia in 1770 — Laird and Rankiu in 1832-4 — Communi-
cations from Africa by the Author in 1837-8 and 1841 — Extract from
the Narrative of Joseph Wright, a liberated African at Sierra-Leone —
Rev. R. M. jMacBrair's Statement of two liberated African Youths at
Macarthy's Island — The March down to the Coast — Major Gray's
Account of a Caravan of Slaves — The Slave-Barracoons on the Coast —
Letter from a Gentleman at the Senegal in 1818 — Captain Cook in 1837 —
Joseph Wright's Nan-ative continued — Rev. W. Allen's Description of
Whydah and Badagry, two notorious Slave-trading Ports in the Bight
of Benin — Hasty Manner in which the Slaves are put on Board — Cruel
Treatment in the Middle Passage — Insurrections on Board Slave-Ships —
The Arrival of a Cargo of Slaves in America — Disposal of the Negroes
— Letter from the Havannah in 1838 — Miserable Condition of newly-
imported Negroes — Brazilian Slavery — Disgraceful Advertisement —
Slavei-y and the Slave-Trade contrary to the Principles of Justice and
Humanity — Great Mortality incident on the Seizm-e — Maixh and Deten-
tion— The annual Loss to Africa immense — Vast Amount of Guilt and
Misery involved in the Traffic — Comparison of the Eifects of Napoleon's
destructive Career with those of the Slave-Trade — The probable Loss to
Africa up to the Close of the last Century, and from the Commencement
of the Slave-Trade to the present Period — The Miseiy consequent 101
VII. "W^ESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
The Circumnavigation of Africa — Early Discoveries of the Western Coast —
Hanno aud Eudoxus — Strange Report of the former — Since found to be
substantially correct — The Decline of maritime Discovery — Invention
of the Mariner's Compass — Discovery of the Canary Islands by the
Spaniards — The Portuguese lead the Way in maritime Enterprise — Dis-
covery of the Madeira Islands in 1418 — Cape Bojador passed in 1433
— Prince Henry's Instructions to his Navigators — His Wishes gratified
by Gonzales in 1442— Presentation of the Negroes to the Pope — His
Bull in favour of the Portuguese- — The Portuguese enter the Tropics — -
Cape-Verd — Senegal and Gambia — The Gold-Coast — -Coumiercial Pros-
pects— John II. sends an Expedition — A Portuguese Colony formed on
the Gold-Coast — John assumes the Title of " Lord of Guinea" —
Emmanuel succeeds John — The renowned Vasco de Gama — Portuguese
Forts and Slave-Factories established on different Parts of the Coast —
Oljjects of the Portuguese in exploring the Coast — Gold and Slaves the
principal Attractions — Commencement of the European Slave-Ti'ade —
Mode of taking Slaves— Gonzales and Nunez Tristan both killed in
kidnapping Slaves — Increase of the Portuguese Slave-Trade — The
Spaniards iml)ibe a Taste for Man-stealing — Portuguese engage in the
" Carrying Trade" — CathoUc Missionaries sent to the Coast in 1490 —
Well received— Wholesale Method of baptizing — Rapid Progress of
the Catholic Religion — Its early Decline — Total Extinction 129
VITI. WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
The EngUsh embark in the African Trade — John II. of Portugal remonstrates
against this to Edward IV., King of England — His Wishes for some
time complied with — English Traders visit the Coast — Success of Lok's
Voyage in 1554 — The French embark in the Trade — The Enghsh, though
much annoyed by the Portuguese, still persevere — Captain Hawkins and
CONTENTS. XIU
Page,
the Slave-Trade — The English, French, and Dutch engage in lawful
Commerce — Queen Elizaheth grants a Patent to some Exeter Merchants
to carry on the Trade of the Senegal and the Gambia — French Vessels
touch at both these Kivers — The Dutch actively engaged in the African
Trade — James I. grants a Charter to some Merchants in London, for the
Pm-pose of " Adventuring in the Golden Trade "■ — George Thompson
reaches Tenda in the Upper Gambia — Jobson sent by the Company in the
same Direction — The French found an Establishment at the Senegal —
The English, French, Dutch, Portuguese, and Spaniards, all engaged in
the Slave-Trade — The Company of Royal Adventurers of England
trading to Africa founded — Opposition to the Trade from the Dutch
— War with Holland — New Company incorporated under the Name of
" The Royal African Company of England " — The British Trade in Africa
placed upon a better Basis — Several Forts built — The African Trade
mixed up with the West Indies — The French sell their Estabhshment at
the Senegal to the French West-India Company, with an exclusive Right
to trade from Cape Blanco to the Cape of Good Hope — The Spanish
Papal Bull — The French and English commit the same Blunder — The
Slave-Trade — The Spirit of African Discovery revived in 1720 — Stibbs
sails up the Gambia, and passes the Falls of Barraconda — Brue ascends
the Senegal as far as Gallara — Conflicting Accounts of the Niger — The
English Company contracts with Spain to supply her Colonies with
Slaves — This proved to be a losing Concern — The Company cede to the
Crown all their Possessions — The European Forts and Settlements on
the Western Coast of Africa — A new Era in the Annals of Africa —
Formation of "The African Association" — Modern Travellers — The
Niger — Tribute to Mungo Park 1 39
CHAPTER IX. WESTERN AFRICA. SIERRA-LEONE.
Limits of Western Africa — Windward and Leeward Coasts — Low Land —
Various Rivers — Despotic Power of the Chiefs — Humiliating Reflections
— First Protestant Missionary — Origin of the Colony of Sierra-Leone
— Dr. Smeathman and Granville Sharp — The American Revolution —
Four hundred Blacks, with sixty Whites, sail for Sierra-Leone — Sickness
and Mortality amongst the Settlers — Granville Sharp's Liberality — The
Town destroyed by a neighbouring Chief — Mr. Falconbridge sent out
— Granville-Town — " The Sierra-Leone Company " chartered — A Re-
inforcement of Settlers from Nova-Scotia — ^Upwards of one hundred
Europeans sent out — Sickness and Death — The Colony attacked and
destroyed by the French — Reflections on this Disaster — The spirited
Conduct and Exertions of the Company — Nova-Scotian Malecontents
— The Arrival of the Maroons — An Attack on the Colony by the
Timmanees — The Assailants repulsed — Transfer of the Colony to the
Crown — The African Institution— State of the Colony in 1807 154
X. SIERRA-LEONE.
Situation of the Colony— The Principles on which it was founded — View
and Description of Sierra-Leone in 1796 — The African Institution —
Capture of Slave -Vessels — Disposal of the captiu'ed Negroes — State of
the Colony in 181G-1818 — Number of Villages erected — Major Gray's
Statements respecting the Colony in 1821-p-Continuance of the Slave-
Trade^ — Reports of the Colony in 1821-1823 — Letter from Sir Charles
Macarthy — Sierra-Leone Gazette — Great Mortality in 1823 — Lamented
Death of Sir Charles Macarthy in 1821 — Successive Governors— Mor-
tality— Commission of Inquiry into the State of Sierra-Leone — Hostility
to the Colony — The Expenditure reduced — Some Statistics in 1833 —
Population in 1838 and in 1846— The Settlers — Maroons and liberated
Africans — Miserable Condition of the latter on being landed — Dr. Fer-
XIV CONTENTS.
rase,
gnsson's " Letter on the Character of the liberated Africans " — Extract
from " Letters from Sierra-Leone, by a Lady " — Moral Means — A Tribute
to the Church Missionary Society 175
CHAPTER XI. WESLEYAN MISSIONS. SIERRA-LEONE.
Wesley AN Missions commenced by the Rev. John Wesley and Dr. Coke —
America — Origin of the Mission at SieiTa-Leone — Applications for a
Missionary — Failure of the Foulah Expedition in 1796 — Reflections — The
Appointment of two Missionaries on the proper Plan — Sierra-Leone still
without a Mission ai7 — George Warren appointed by the Conference in
1811 — His Reception in the Colony — LTsefuluess — First Death — Biogi'a-
phical Sketch — The little Flock again without a Missionary — The
Appointment of Mr. Davies in 1814 — State of the Society and Schools
— Death of Mrs. Davies — Sketch of her Character 203
XII. WESLEYAN MISSIONS.— SIERRA-LEONE.
A Conversion — State of the Society in 1816 — Christian Spirit and Conduct
of the Colonial Chaplain — AiTival of Mr. and Mrs. Brown — Sickness of
the Missionaries — Death of Mrs. Brown — Sketch — Mr. Davies retirrns to
England — Letter from Mr. Brown — An African Fever — Appointment of
Messrs. Baker and GilUson — State of the Mission in 1819 — Mr. Brown's
Return Home — Death of Mr. GilUson — Letter from Mr. Baker — Revival
of Religion — The Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Huddlestone and Mr. Lane —
Numbers in the Society in 1821 217
XIII. NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY.
Source and Termination of the River Gambia — Influence of the Tide —
Scenery^ — Birds and Animals, &c. — The native Tribes — Jollofs — Man-
dingoes — Foulahs — And Jollars — Western Africa— The moral Degra-
dation of tlie Natives — Slave-Trade and Slavery — Polygamy — Degrada-
tion of the female Character — African Superstitious — Greegrees — Various
Olijects in Nature regarded with superstitious Dread — The three worst
Features of Superstition are Vritchcraft, a System of Deraonology or
Devil- Worship, and human Sacritices — A Reference to Romans i. 21 — 32. 232
XIV. THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
Discovery of the Gambia — Long been an English River — Fort James —
British Settlement at St. Mary's — Commencement of the Wesleyan Mis-
sions— Messrs. Baker and Morgan — First Impressions — Tentabar — ?vlan-
danaree and St. Mary's — Erection of Mission-Premises at JMandanaree —
The Missionaries visit St. Marj-'s once a Week — First-Fruit — Sickness of
the Missionaries — Rainy Season — Mr. Baker removed to the Vvest Indies
— Mr. Bell appointed — His Sickness and Death — Sketch of his Character
— Mr. Lane sent from Sierra-Leoue — The Missionaries visit Mandanaree
— St. Mary's — Letters from the Brethren — Sickness of Mr. Lane — His
Removal to Sierra-Leone — Mr. Lane's Death — His Character — Death of
Mr. Huddlestone — Sketch — Mrs. Huddlestone's Return to England —
State of the Mission at Sierra-Leone — Messrs. Piggott and Harte
appointed — Their Arrival and Reception — Number of Members in the
Society 259
XV. THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
The two Stations blended for the Sake of chronological Order — The Gambia —
Mandanaree — St. Mary's — Mr. Morgan visits the upper River, with the
Commandant — Formation of a new Settlement — Named after Sir Charles
Macarthy — Its Situation, Sec. — Mr. Morgan's Return to St. Mary's — Ex-
tracts from his Journal — Missionary Fruit — Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Haw-
kins— Mr. Morgan visits Macarthv"s Island — Excessive Heat — Extracts
CONTENTS. XV
Page.
from his Journal — Attacked with Fever — Returns to St. Mary's — The Mis-
sion-House and Chapel tinished — Communication from Mr. Morgan and
Mr. Hawlvins — Sickness of the Missionaries — Sierra-Leone — Death of
Mr. Ilarte — Sketch — Communications from Mr. Piggott at Sierra-Leone —
The Gambia — Return of i\Ir. Morgan to England — Reflection on the
Result of Missionary Labour at the Gambia — Communication from Mr.
Hawkins — Mr. Piggott — Sierra-Leone — The Appointment of Messrs.
Dawson, Courties, and May — Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Dawson at SieiTa-
Leone — Death of Mrs. Dawson — Joint Letters from Messrs. Piggott
and Dawson — The Gambia — The Arrival of Messrs. Courties and May
at Sierra-Leone — The Gift of Tongues — Negro Patois — The Day of
Pentecost — Great Diversity of Nations at Sierra-Leone— Prevalence of
the English Language — Tlie Holy Spirit graciously vouchsafed, produc-
ing Fruit — Mr. Piggott's Return to England — Mr. Dawson proceeds to
the Gambia to succeed Mr. Hawldns, who also returns to England —
Both these Brethren had remained beyond the prescribed Term of Ser-
vice— Mr. Piggott remains in England — Mr. Hawkins goes to the West
Indies 277
CHAPTER XVI. THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
State of the Mission at both Stations — Extract of Letters — Appointment of
Messrs. Munro and Peck to Sierra-Leone, and Mr. Marsliall to St. Mary's —
Their Depai'ture — Remarks — Their Arrival and Reception — Death of Mr.
May — Letter from Mr. Peck — Sketch of Mr. May's Life — Mr. and Mrs.
Marshall's Arrival at the Gambia — Extracts — Capture of Slave-Vessels —
Illness of Mr. Courties — Sails for England in a very weak State — Dies at
Sea — Character of Mr. Courties — Letter from Mr. Marshall at the Gambia
— And from Messrs. Munro and Peck at Sierra-Leone^ — The Perusal of
such Letters truly refreshing — lu the Midst of Life we are in Death —
Messrs. Munro and Peck both cut down as Flowers of the Field —
Letter from Messrs. Betts and Davey of the Church Missionary Soci-
ety, announcing the Deaths of Messrs. Munro and Peck — Sketches of
their Characters — The Impression produced among the Friends of Mis-
sions in England on hearing of this great Amount of Mortalit)^ — The
dying Fears, Hope, and Faith of Mr. Peck on the Subject of this Mission
— The previous Statement of the Committee, that they had never wanted
a Man when needed, still substantially con-ect — Mr. Keightley emljarks
for this Mission — Arrival at Sierra-Leone- — Extract from his first Letter
— Mr. and Mrs. Marshall at the Gambia — State of this Mission —
Death of Mr. Marshall — Sketch — Death of Mrs. Marshall two Days
after she arrived in Bristol — Sketch of her Character — The Orphan
Boy and black Nurse — Reflections 298
XVII. THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
A Review of the six Deaths recorded in the preceding Chapter — Mr. Keightley
now the only Wesleyan Missionary in Western Africa — Extract from his
Letter — Mr. Moister ai)poiuted to the Gambia — Touching Incident — Mr.
Moister's Arrival and Reception at St. Mary's — The first Sabbath — Mr.
Moister visits Macarthy's Island — The Conversion of a Mohammedan at
Sierra-Leone — Mr. Ritchie — Extract of a Letter from Mr. Moister at the
Gambia — Termination of the Barra War— Mr. Moister's second Voyage
up the River — Takes with him a native Teacher — Commencement of the
Macarthy's Island Mission — Mr. Keightley's Return to England — Tlie
Appointment of Mr. Maer to Sierra-Leone — Extracts of Letters from
both Stations — Mr. Ritchie's Return to Europe — Mr. Clarke appointed
— Mr. Moister's third Visit to Macarthy's Island — Pleasing Prospects of
that Mission 330
XVI CONTENTS.
CHAPTER XVIII. THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
Page.
The Writer takes Part in these Missions — Tliis was an eventful Year in the
great Mortality amongst the Ministers at Home — Two of the General
Secretaries cut off in the Prime of Life — The Author's Appointment
to St. Mary's — AiTival there with Mr. and Mrs. Dove, who were appointed
to Macarthy's Island — Dr. Lindoe and the Southampton Committee —
Plan of an Institution for benefiting the Foulah Tribe— Extract from the
General Report of the Wesleyan Missionary Society — Copy of the first
Annual Report of the Southampton Committee — -The Extension of the
Mission at Sierra-Leone — Revival of Religion at St. Marj''s, Macarthy's
Island, and Sierra-Leone — Extract from the Annual Report — Extract of
a Letter from Mr. Dove at Macarthy's Island — -Prosperous State of the
Mission at St. Mary's — The Necessity for a new Chapel — Letters — The
Author appointed Acting Colonial and GaiTison Chaplain — Extracts from
his private Joirrnal — Letter from Mr. Dove— Extracts of Letters from
the Author— Permission to erect a new Chapel — More Help needed —
Death of Mr. Clarke at Sierra-Leone — The Appointment of Mr. Crosliy
• — The Fouudalion-Stone of the new Chapel laid at St. Mary's — Extracts
from the Author's Journal — An Attack on the Mission — Defended by an
European — Christmas-Day and Watchnight— Triumphant Death of a
Member of the Society — Funeral Sermon— Another heavy Day's Work —
Souls converted — Substance of a Letter to the Committee — A Penitent
"smiting upon his Breast" — MaiTiage of liberated Africans — Arrival of
Mr. and Mrs. Wilkinson — Trip to Cape de Verde — The Portuguese —
Return to St. Mary's — Extracts from Journal — Personal and domestic
Affliction — Opening of the new Chapel — Farewell Sermon — The Author
sails for England 341
XIX. THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
The Discovery of the Coast of Guinea — Situation and Description of Cape-
Coast— Europeans — Native Population — Prospect of the Castle, &c.,
from the Sea — Trade — ^Origin and Commencement of the Mission —
Death of Mr. Joseph R. Dunwell^The Committee " perplexed, but
not disheartened " — Resolved to send two Missionaries — State of the
Mission at SieiTa-Leone — Mr. Sanders sails for that Station — The
Author and Mr. MacBrair embark for the Gamljia — The Latter sent as
a Translator of the Scriptures — Our An'ival and Reception — Communica-
tion from the Author — Mr. MacBrair proceeds to his Station at Macar-
thy's Island — Opposition to the Mission — Extracts from Mr. MacBrair's
Journal — Outrage on the Mission at Macarthy's Island — The Assistant's
House demolished by a lawless Gang — The Author requested to go
thither with all Speed — Mr. MacBrair returns to St. Mai7's — Finally
sails for England — The Writer now at Macarthy's Island — Extracts from
his unpublished Journal — The rainy Season-^Personal Affliction — Is
appointed to Macarthy's Island — Goes down to St. Mary's to settle his
Accounts with that Station — The AiTival of Mr. and Mrs. Wrigley at
Cape-Coast — And of Mr. and Mrs. Patterson at Sierra-Leone — The
Author returns to Macarthy's Island — Close of the Year — Statistics of
the Mission at each Station 378
XX. THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
The Year 1837 one of unprecedented Mortality — Eight Deaths in nine
Months — The Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Harrop at Cape-Coast — Their
Sickness and Death — Death of Mrs. Wrigley — The Shock to Mr. Wrigley
— Extracts from his Letter upon the Subject — Brief Sketches of Mrs.
Harrop, Mr. Harrop, and Mrs. Wrigley — Mr. Wrigley now the only Mis-
sionary at Cape-Coast — His Appeal for more Help — Sierra-Leone —
Death of Messrs. Maer, Crosby, and Patterson of the Yellow Fever —
CONTENTS. XVU
Page.
Sketches of their Character — The Announcement of these Deaths in the
" Missionary Notices " — Remarks thereon — Macarthy's Island — The Pro-
vidence of God — The Author's various Employments — Visits St. Mary's
— A Soldier hanged — Hope in his Death — The Author returns to
Macarthy's Island — Letters on the Suhject of the Epidemic, &c. — Wild
Beasts on the Continent— Death of a Mandingo Man and Boy hy a Leo-
pard— Further i\.ccounts of the Epidemic at St. Mary's — The Author hears
of the Death of Mr. Wilkinson — Resolves to go down— Peculiar Circum-
stances of the Case— Incidents on the Passage — Death of Governor
Rendall — Safe Arrival at St. Mary's — Sketch of Mr. Wilkinson — His
funeral Sermon — Some Remarks on the Effects of the Yellow Fever —
One Half of the Eiu-opeans at St. Mary's cut down in a few Weeks —
The Gold-Coast — Mr. Wrigley — His lamented Death — Mr. Sanders at
Sierra-Leone, and the Author at the Gamhia, now the only two Wesleyan
Missionaries on the Coast — The Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Dove, with
Mr. Badger, at Sierra-Leone — Mr. and Mrs. Swallow, with Mr. Wall,
at the Gamhia, and Mr. and Mrs. Freeman at Cape-Coast — Statistics
of the Missions — Mr. Sanders returns to England — The present Appoint-
ments, with an Extract from the Annual Report on the Subject of the
MortaUty during the Year, &c 411
CHAPTER XXI. THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE, WITH A
JOURNEY TO BONDOU.
Great spiritual Prosperity of the Missions — Native Agency — Triumphant
Deaths of the Missionaries and their Wives — A Supply of Labourers still
found — The Gold-Coast — Mr. and Mrs. Freeman — Death of the latter —
SieiTa-Leone and the Gambia — Another Robin Hood and Saul of Tarsus
near Macarthy's Island — The Author pays him a Visit — The fifth and
last Report of the Southampton Committee — The Author sets out on a
Journey to Bondou — AiTival at Fattatenda in the upper River — Some
Account of the Port, Trade, and Neighbourhood — Incidents on the Way
to Madina, the Capital of WooUi— Some Account of Madina and Barra-
kunda — Circumcision — Bambako, the Residence of Mantamba, the King's
General — Albino Negroes — Incidents on the Way, and Description of
Kanipe, Dirma, Walufarra, and Tambakunda — The Author sleeps in the
Wilderness — Wild Beasts — Arrival at Kotchair, the last Town of Woolli
— Enters Nouday, the frontier Town of Bondou — Well received —
Julangal, a Town of Sen-awoollies — AiTival at Jume, a modern Athens —
Incidents at Jume, and on the Way to Weegi, Gallordie, and Goodeerie
— First Rain — Proceed to Fittinyibbi, Dandudy, and Fettibooki — Country
more open, populous, and better cultivated — Arrival at the Capital — The
Almamy encamped at a short Distance from the royal Residence — The
Author pays him a Visit — Is introduced into the Camp — Interview and
Conversation with this Chief on the Subject of Christian Missions —
Gives to the Almamy and his Warriors a brief Summary of the Doctrines
and Precepts of the Gospel — Is listened to with Attention — This Sum-
mary well received — The Author then addresses the Almamy on the
Impropriety of going to War — This was a critical Moment — In the
Midst of a Band of half Savages, all armed with Weapons of Destruction
— But " Lo, \ am with you " was present — Second Interview vnth the
Almamy — Again warned him of his Danger — The Author's Return to
the Capital — The Almamy and SolcUers immediately followed — Interview
with the Almamy at Boollil)any — His friendly Conduct to the Author,
who bids him Farewell — Boundaries of Bondou defined — Some Account
of Boollibany- — The Manners and Customs of the People— Theh* Houses
— Furniture — Dress — Food — Religion — Government — Almamy Saada —
Their Laws — Polygamy — Commerce and Trade — Agriculture — Mode of
Cultivation — Scripture Illustrations — The rainy Season — Tornadoes —
Fertility of the Soil — " The Pastures are clothed with Flocks, the Val-
XVlll CONTENTS.
Page,
leys are covered over with Corn " — Muiigo Park— Their Wars — Super-
stitions— Sahitations — The Author's Return to Fattatencla — Incidents on
the Way — Arrival at the Banks of the Gamhia— xVfrican Travelhng —
Safe Arrival at Macarthy's Island — Meets his Class 439
CHAPTER XXII. THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
The Author's Return from Bondou — A Hint to Travellers in Africa — The
Commotions in the immediate Neighbourhood of Macarthy's Island —
Happy Contrast in the State of the Mission-^AtHictions in the Mission
Family — Death of Mr. Wall at St. Mary's — The Author proceeds thither
— Serious Illness of Mr. Swallow — ^A Trip to Goree — Arrival of Mr.
and Mrs. Moss for Macarthy's Island, of Mr. Edwards for Sierra-Leone,
and of Mr. and Mrs. Parkinson for St. Mary's — Mr. Fleet's Arrival at
Sierra-Leone — Death of Mrs. Fleet at Sea — Terrible Gales in the English
Channel — Wreck of the " Columbine," with the Loss of a Missionary
and his Wife bound for the Gambia — Death of Mrs. Moss at IVIacai'thy's
Island — The Arrival of Mr. Spencer, the Agriculturist — Printed Docu-
ment with standing Regulations respecting that Mission — Mr. and Mrs.
Swallow's Departiu'e for England — -Extract of a J/Ctter from Dr. Beecham
to the Author, on the Subject of his Return Home — Visits Macarthy's
Island — On his Return, finds the Inhabitants of St. Mary's in a State of
partial Insurrection — Origin and Cause of this- — Moral Influence of the
Mission saves the Island from a civil War — The Author \'isits the Kings
of BaiTa and Combo — Mr. Spencer's Illness — The Writer's Anxiety about
that Mission — Death of Mr. Fleet at Sierra-Leone — Mr. Freeman, at the
Gold-Coast, visits Coomassie, the Capital of Ashantee — The Author em-
barks with Mr. and Mrs. Spencer for England— Arrival at Home — The
Liverpool Conference — Again volunteers for Western Africa — Not hastily,
but from a Sense of Duty — Missionary Meetings in England — Difficulty
in saying, " No ! " — Letter from Dr. Bunting — A second Letter from the
Doctor, with the painful Intelligence of the Death of Mr. and Mrs.
Parkinson at St. Mary's — Meets the Committee in London — A School-
master, with two Missionaries, appointed to the Gambia — Biographical
Sketches of Mr. and Mrs. Parkinson — Atfecting Incidents connected wath
their Death — Mr. Jehu sails for Sierra-Leone — Mr. and INIrs. Mycock
and Mr. Brooking depart for the Gold-Coast — The Author and Family
proceed to London — Dr. Bunting — The Mission-Party embark at Graves-
end — Detention at Portsmouth — Safe AiTival at the Gambia — Happy
Death of a Negro — Centenary Meetings — Death of Mrs. Dove and Mr.
Jehu at Sierra-Leone — And of Mr. James at Macarthy's Island — Mrs.
James's Departure for England — The Author's severe personal Afflictions
and Bereavements 489
XXIII. THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
Letters of Condolence to the Author — His other Trials — The Arrival of Mr.
and Mrs. Swallow — The Judge drowned, and the Sessions postponed —
Departure of Mr. Moss for England — The Gold-Coast — ^Ir. Freeman in
England — His Embarkation for Africa with a noble Band of Missionaries
— ^Their safe Arrival — Return of Mr. and Mrs. Mycock — Death of Mr.
Thackwray and Mr. Walden, and of Mrs. Freeman and Mrs. Hesk— Mr.
Hesk's Return Home — Messrs. Freeman and Brooking enter Coomassie
— Sierra-Leone Mission — Liberated Africans and condemned Slave-vessels
— The Niger Expedition — Dr. Madden — The Arrival of Mr. Symons for
the Gambia, with Messrs. Raston and Annear for Sierra-Leone — Messrs.
William Allen, Wyatt, and Rowland arrive at the Gold-Coast — Death of
Messrs. Wyatt and Rowland — The Gambia — Extracts from the Author's
Journal — Institution — The Author's Interview with the desperate Chief
Kemmingtau — Moral Influence of the Mission— Fidehtv of a Negro Ser-
CONTENTS. XIX
Page,
vanl — A Visit to Sierra-Leone — Call at Bissac — Contrast between the
two Places — Mr. Dove and Mr. Badger return to England — The Gambia
— Rainy Season — Prince de Joinville — The Author visits the Upper
Gambia in Company with the Acting Governor — Extracts fiom his Jour-
nal— Cantalicunda the highest Trading-port on the Gambia — Influence of
the Tide — Return to Macarthy's Island and St. Mary's — Sickness and
Death of Mrs. Swallow — The Anival of Mr. and Mrs. Watkins, with Mr.
George Chapman, at the Gold-Coast — And of Mr. and Mrs. Quick and
Mr. Amos at Sierra Leone — Death of Mr. Shipman and Mrs. Watkins at
the Gold-Coast — The Gambia District-Meeting — Arrival of !\Ir. Lynn, the
Schoolmaster — The " Madagascar " Frigate — Commodore Foote — Letter
from an African Chief on the Subject of the Slave-Tradc — The Arrival
of Messrs. Godman and Parsonsou at St. Mary's — Annual Subscrip-
tions— The Author's Residence in Africa drawing to a Close — Testi-
monial from Europeans — Farewell Sermon — The Missionary's Grave — ■
The Author embarks for England with Mr. Swallow, by Way of France
— Reflections on leaving Africa — Incidents on the Passage — Arrival in
England 530
CHAPTER XXIV. THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
The Shefiicld Conference — Departure of Mr. and Mrs. Dove, with Mr. and
Mrs. Badger, for SieiTa-Leone ; and of Mr. and Mrs. Annear, with Mr.
Timothy T. Greaves, and Mr. John Martin, for the Gold-Coast — Death of
Mr. Symons at the Gambia, of Mrs. Badger at Sierra-Leone, and of Mr.
Watkins at the Gold-Coast — The Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Brooking at
Cape-Coast-Castle — Letter from Mr. George Chapman at Coomassie — Mr.
and Mrs. Quick's Return to England — Death of Mr. Greaves at British
Akrah — The Gambia Mission — Mr. Benjamin Chapman's Arrival there —
Mr. Freeman in England, with his Defence of himself and the Mission —
His Departure for the Coast with Mr. Wharton, a West Indian — Return
of Mr. George Chapman — Departm-e of Messrs. Raston, Wayte, and
Grifiiths for Sierra-Leone — Mr. Amos's Return to England — Mr. and
Mrs. Parsonson's Arrival at the Gambia — Mr. and Mrs. AUen, with
Messrs. Findlay and Addison, sail for the Gold-Coast — Return of Mr.
Brooking — Death of Mrs. Raston and of Mr. Wayte at Sierra-Leone, of Mr.
Findlay at the Gold-Coast, and of Mr. Lynn the Schoolmaster at the Gambia
■ — Return to this Country of Mr. and Mrs. Annear and of Mr. and Mrs.
Dove — Departure for, and Arrival at, Sierra-Leone of Mr. and Mrs.
Wrench, with Mr. Lewis — Messrs. John Thomas, Harrop, and Hillard
safely arrive at the Gold-Coast — Death of Mrs. Godman — Return of
Mr. and Mrs. Wrench, Mrs. Parsonson, and Mr. David Griffiths —
Mr. Raston's third Embarkation for Western Africa, accompanied by
Mrs. Raston and Messrs. Richard Hart and Purslow — Arrival of Messrs.
Meadows and Lean at the Gambia, — Return to England of Mr. and Mrs.
Allen and Mr. Martin — Death of Mr. Lean at the Gambia — And of Mr.
Purslow at Sierra-Leone — Mr. Badger and the Gambia Mission — Death
of the benevolent Dr. Lindoe — Arrival of Mr. Garry at Sierra-Leone —
And of Mr. Frederick Hart at the Gold-Coast — Return to England of
Messrs. Addison, Thomas, Harrop, and Hillard — Extracts from the
annual Report, with the Statistics of the Stations — Present Extent of the
Society's Operations on the Western Coast of Africa 568
XXV.— CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS.
Serious Reflections — Matter for Congratulation — Present State of the Mis-
sions— Facts illustrative of Negro Piety, and of the Importance of the
Wesleyjfn Missions — The three principal Obstructions to the rapid Spread
of evangelical Truth are, the Climate, the awfully-degraded State of the
Inhabitants, and the Slave-Tradc — A few Fads in connexion with the
XX CONTENTS.
Page.
fifty-four Agents of tlie Wesleyan Missionary Society who have fallen in
the Field — Not all to be attributed to the Climate — Melancholy Fact,
that more than half a Hundred have died there — This Loss of Life,
though great, not too much to save immortal Souls — The Agents who
fell were Men of the right Stamp — Wesleyan Theological Institution —
The Manner of their Death — A Word to the Friends of Wesleyan Mis-
sions— The Gospel a sufficient Remedy for the deplorable Immorality of
Africa 606
LIST OF ENGRAVINGS.
Page.
The Map, as Frontispiece.
Insurrection on board a Slave-Ship 116
Free-Town, Sierra-Leone 174
The Town of Bathurst, on the Island op St. Mary's, River Gambia 262
Cape-Coast Castle 379
Boollibany, the Capital of Bondou 472
The Missionaries' Grave 562
BRIEF HISTORY
OF
THE WESTEEN COAST OE AFRICA,
CHAPTER I.
AFRICA AND THE AFRICANS.
Africa — Its Size — Position — Population — Demoralized Condition — Mysterious why
so long neglected — Its Inhabitants supposed to be a different Species from
other Parts of the human Race — Unjustly and crueUy treated — God hath made
of one Blood all Nations of Men — All possess one common Nature and
Origin — Objections to this raised on the Ground of Difference of Colour,
Configuration, &c. — Climate assigned as the chief Cause for Difference of
Colour — Illustrations of this — Particularly in the Case of the Jews — Physiolo-
gists are not agreed as to the Colour of the human Race originally — Scripture
Quotations — A Supposition — Edinburgh Review — Josephus — -The Coloiur of
some of the African Nations corresponds with that of the ancient Egyptians —
Dr. Primatt — Colour, after all, only superficial — Not even skin-deep — Though
the Africans are black, the Skin is sleek and soft, and well adapted to the
Climate — The physical Character of the Africans described from personal
Observation — Confirmed by other Writers — Extracts from Dr. Prichard's
Researches into the physical History of Mankind — Africans and ourselves of
one common Origin, and a Part of the human Family — Supposed by some to
be mentally inferior to those of other Portions of the Globe — Personal Inter-
course with the native Tribes in Western Africa repudiates this Opinion —
Further Extracts from Dr. Prichard's Work, with Professor Tidemann's
Researches — Rev. Richard Watson — ^The above Theory proved to be without
Foundation — Another Mode of meeting the Charge of mental Inferiority urged
against the African is found in the Power of the Gospel — That solves the
whole Case — The Africans capable of Improvement— The Negroes supposed to
be under the Ban of the Almighty — This Theorj- also without Foundation — If
it ever was so, the Curse has long since been repealed — Africa included in the
World's Redemption, in the Saviour's Commission to his Disciples, and in the
Prophecies referring to the universal Empire of the Son of God — Special
Allusions to Africa in the Word of God — Its Conversion predicted — It is des-
tined to rise, and will ultimately be saved.
In size^ Africa holds the third rank in the five great divisions
of the globe ; but is the lowest in political and moral importance
and improvement. Its geographical position is now too w^ell
known to require its boundaries being particularly specified.
B
^ WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
It is a peninsula of prodigious extent, and is joined to Asia
by a narrow neck of land, the Isthmus of Suez. In its extreme
length from north to south, that is, from Cape Bianco in Tunis,
to Cape L^Agulhas, (a little eastward of the Cape of Good
Hope,) it is upwards of 4,300 geographical miles; and in its
broadest part, from Cape Verd on the west, to Cape Guardafui
on the east, it is nearly 4,200 : thus exhibiting a difference
between its longitudinal breadth and its length, of about thirty-
five leagues ; and comprising an area of not less than thirteen
millions of square miles, unbroken by any considerable estuary
or arm of the sea; and, as the northern portion of this conti-
nent is fully twice the size of the southern portion, notwith-
standing its nearly insular form, its extent of sea-coast, though
not less than ten thousand miles, is much less, in proportion to
its area, than in other quarters of the globe.
The greater part of Africa lies within the torrid zone, under
the immediate power and dominion of the sun, which renders
the heat almost insupportable in many places ; for most of its
inhabitants see that great luminary in its annual progress, from
tropic to tropic, pass twice over their heads, and thus experience
a repetition of its intense and perpendicular rays.
Its interior remained till lately a large blank on the map of
the world, and even now it is comparatively unknown; but,
through the curiosity of men of science and research, and the
enterprise of modern travellers, a considerable extent of this
vast continent has been explored. Yet the privations incident,
in a barbarous country like the greatest part of Africa, to the
progress of discovery, and especially the withering effects of the
climate on European constitutions, have too often terminated
the days of the adventurer, and left the traveller's tale
untold.
The population of Africa has been estimated at from fifty to
one hundred and fifty millions ; but, as we have no certain data
from which to compute any thing like a correct estimate of its
inhabitants, it is difficult to arrive at a proper conclusion. Yet
I have no hesitation in saying, if the numerous tribes and
thickly-inhabited parts of the western coast may be taken as a
criterion of the whole, that the latter number (150,000,000) is a
much nearer approximation to the standard than the former;
and I believe it is by no means too high a figure.
Assuming this point, then, that Africa contains one hundred
and fifty millions of inhabitants, how many painful reflections
does this arouse in the breast of every Christian, when he recol-
lects the fact, that this immense population is now buried (for
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES.
the most part of it at least) in the depths of ignorance and vice,
superstition and idolatry, — superstition and idolatry in some of
its most cruel, debasing, and revolting forms ! Why so many
millions of my fellow-men should never have heard of the name
of Jesus, I cannot tell. It is a mysterious subject; and I
should be quite disposed to leave the matter, in regard to the
past, as one of those facts in the administration of Divine Pro-
vidence which we are not in a situation, at present, fully to
understand, were it not that the poor African, by one party, has
been denied the dignity of man, and therefore to attempt his
elevation, we are told, is an hopeless task ; and, by others, the
mysterious problem is attempted to be solved by a reference to
Divine Revelation, and in the present dark and demoralized
condition of that continent they see, or think they see, the ful-
filment of prophecy and the execution of a curse pronounced
upon Africa by the Almighty near four thousand years ago;
thus absolutely throwing the reproach upon Him who " created
man in his own image.^^ (Gen. i. 27.) As though it were not
enough to deprive the Negro of the honours of a human intel-
lect, but he must be represented as under a Divine anathema,
struck out of the human family, excluded from the covenant of
grace, and even the compassion of his Maker ! As to the first of
these charges, it is now, thank God, somewhat too late in the
day to find many adherents to a system of philosophy, which
proclaims a large proportion of our species as incapable of
improvement, merely from the contour of the countenance, the
colour of the skin, or the formation of the head. And yet there
are not wanting advocates, even now, of this description, who
not only attribute to the Negro race a mental inferiority to the
nations of Europe, but who contend they must ever remain in
that degraded condition. The advocates of this theory, in sup-
port of their assertion, argue thus : — They tell us that " the
gradations of animated nature are gentle and almost impercepti-
ble ; " and, not content that the ape and baboon should fill up
the chasm which exists between the quadruped and man, an
intermediate link is invented, and the African, or some of the
African tribes, at least, are placed just in one ascending link
between the orang-outang and the human species, and as such
we are told that they were destined by nature to serve the lords
of the creation, that is, those of a fairer complexion, as domestic
animals in common with their oxen and horses, and are there-
fore reckoned among their "goods and chattels," as so much
valuable property, and nothing more.
One would wish to ask the advocates of this theory, " In
4 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
what chapter of nature's law is it declared, that one quarter of
the globe shall breed slaves for the rest ? Where shall we find
a charter conferring authority on the one, and ascertaining the
submission of the other? Are no conditions annexed, no rights
reserved, which, when violated, the subjected race can plead
before their common Lord ? Such a state cannot be imagined
as existing under the government of God : it is blasphemy
against his benevolence even to suppose it. The inanimate and
brute creation was fitted for, and subjected to, man's dominion ;
but man himself was left independent of every personal claim in
his fellows. And nothing but an implied voluntary surrender
of his independency to society, for the benefits of law, can con-
trol or lessen his claim. But North-American or West-Indian
Slavery implies no surrender, supposes no submission, but to
necessity and force.
" Had the Author of nature intended Negroes for slavery, he
would have endowed them with many qualities which they now
want. Their food would have needed no prej»aration, their
bodies no covering; they would have been born without any
sentiment for liberty ; and, possessing a patience not to be pro-
voked, would have been incapable of resentment or opposition,
— that high treason against the divine right of European domi-
nion ! A horse or a cow, when abused, beaten, or stoned, will
try to get out of the reach of the lash, and make no scruple of
attempting the nearest enclosure to get at pasture. But we
have not heard of their withdrawing themselves from the service
of a hard master, nor of avenging with his blood the cruelty of
his treatment."* But it is otherwise with a slave; he is
human, and can disobey, and not only so, — he can resist ; and
many an oppressed African has spurned his master's authority,
broken the tyrant's chain, and, in defence of his liberty, has
murdered his oppressor, or has died in the struggle.
But, notwithstanding this, modern writers have been found
who have adopted the atheistical doctrine of Hume, respecting
" different species of men," and have not hesitated to place the
African in the lowest scale of intellectual being, and even below
the dignity of man. One of them (Mr. Long) has gone so far
as to " extol the docility of the orang-outang, in order by com-
parison to depreciate that of the Negro;" and with unblushing
effrontery says, " I do not think that an orang-outang husband
would be any disgrace to an Hottentot female .'" And yet this
* Ramsay's " Essay on the Treatment and Conversion of African Slaves," pp.
233, 234. (1784.)
DESCRIPTION Of THE NATIVES. O
same writer acknowledges the fact, that the white men generally
of the West-India Islands do not scruple to '' cohabit with
Negresses and Mulattoes, free or slaves," that "not one m
twenty can be persiiaded that there is either sin or shame in
cohabiting with his slave."* What must we think, then, of the
pretended inferiority of the Negroes, and of the " moral sensa-
tions" of those who think that an "orang-outang husband
would be no disgrace to an Hottentot female/' when some of
those who believe in this theory, or link in the chain which con-
nects the homo sapiens with the brute ; a species of orang-
outang, differing from their brethren of the woods only in
possessing the faculty of speech, — when these said fair-
complexioned philosophers themselves associate with them, and
habitually cohabit with the female part of this species of what
they deem to be the brute creation ?
But it is not my intention to enter at large upon a refutation
of this wholesale piece of slander, against the woolly-haired, and
"black but comely," inhabitants of the continent of Africa.
Dr. Prichard, in his able "Researches into the Physical History
of Mankind," has done this; and it is to be hoped that the
advocates of the doctrine will, for the future, be small in num-
ber "and miserably less." That all men have one common
parent, appears evident from the Mosaic account of the creation
in the first chapter of Genesis; and the following quotation
from the New Testament is explicit upon this point : " God
that made the world and all things therein, seeing that he is
Lord of heaven and earth, dwelleth not in temples made with
hands ; neither is worshipped with men's hands, as though he
needed any thing, seeing he giveth to all life, and breath, and
all things; and hath made of one blood all nations of men for to
dwell on all the face of the earth, and hath determined the times
before appointed, and the bounds of their habitation." (Acts
xvii. 24—26.)
That we all possess the same common nature and origin, is
evident from the preceding declaration of holy writ ; to which
we may add a number of other arguments corroborative of that
fact. Let two suffice. . And the first is to be seen in the uni-
form resemblance in the physical organization of the various
"nations of men that dwell on all the face of the earth." For,
in whatever region we find man, his body is exactly constructed
like our own, and possesses the same senses, is sustained by
the same process, proceeds through the same stages, is subject
* See " Memoirs of Granville Sharp," vol. ii. Appendix iv. pp. 11, 15.
6
AVESTEKN COAST OF AFRICA.
to the same diseases, and terminates in the same dissolution.*
Further evidence is found in the fact, that, wherever we find
man, though as to his body he is erect, " fearfully and wonder-
fully made,^' yet he is, as to his soul, the inner man, mentally
and morally fallen, degraded, and depraved like ourselves; a
proof this that men every where, in all places and in all ages,
are the descendants of Adam and Eve, who fell in the Garden of
Eden, and whose posterity, it is declared, are " born in sin and
shapen in iniquity."
But to this common origin of the human race infidelity has
raised many objections. These are chiefly founded in difference
OF COLOUR, DIFFERENCE OF CONFIGURATION, and REMOTENESS
OF SITUATION. That there is some difficulty in harmonizing
these with the fact, that all have descended from one common
ancestry, is readily conceded. But if every thing must be
rejected which is attended with difficulty, we must sink into
atheism and universal unbelief; every thing in religion and
philosophy must alike be renounced. The objections, however,
are more specious than solid.
I. Colour, for instance, depends partly on diet, partly on
situation, partly on habit, but chiefly on climate. " Hence per-
sons living in the same latitudes, when the localities of these
latitudes resemble each other, will generally be found of the
same complexion." t The Africans generally are of a dark
colour; the greater part of them, indeed, dwelling as they do
within the torrid zone, are black ; and hence we start with the
proposition that climate is the " chief cause" of this difference of
colour in the human race.
It has been properly remarked by an intelligent writer, that
"the diversity of complexion which we observe in our own
country scarce excites our attention, and appears perfectly con-
sistent with the causes assigned to it, — a greater or less
exposure to the action of the sun and air. Even when we com-
pare the skins of the different nations of Europe together,
climate is considered as a sufficient cause for the variety of tints
which we remark; but when the skin of the European is con-
trasted with that of the Negro, the dissimihtude appears so
great, that recourse is had to the unscriptural, and, I may add,
* The monstrous things reported by the ancients, that some of the nations of
the interior of Africa were dumb, others without tongues, one people vnX\\ no
mouth, and others without heads, having their eyes and mouths in then- breasts,
&c., have long since been proved to be mere fables.
t Kev. Jacob Stanley, Sen.
DESCKIPTION OF THE NATIVES. 7
impliilosopliical, idea of different races of men having been
originally created. Yet these two extremes of colour are
approximated by such a variety of intermediate tints, and so
exquisitely blended, that we pass from one to the other by
almost imperceptible gradations."* Dr. Robertson, in his
" History of America," observes on this subject : " In what part
or membrane of the body that humour resides which tinges the
complexion of the Negro with a deep black, it is the business of
anatomists to inquire and describe. The powerful operation of
heat appears manifestly to be the cause which produces this
striking variety in the human race. All Europe, a great part of
Asia, and the temperate countries of Africa, are inhabited by
men of a white complexion. All the torrid zone of Africa,
some of the warmer regions adjacent to it, and several countries
in Asia, are filled with people of a deep black colour. If we
survey the nations of our continent, making our progress from
cold and temperate countries towards those parts which are
exposed to the influence of vehement and unremitting heat, we
shall find, that the extreme whiteness of their skin soon begins
to diminish ; that its colour deepens gradually as we advance ;
and, after passing through all the successive gradations of shade,
terminates in a uniform unvarying black." f This we know to
be really the case, as one moment^s "survey" will prove. "In
all warm climates we see the skin has a tendency to a darker
colour. The French, for instance, are browner than the
Swedes, Danes, English, and Germans. The inhabitants of the
southern parts of Spain are darker than the French; and the
Portuguese, in complexion, differ but a few shades from the
^Mulatto. And as we approach the equator, the skin assumes, in
general, a darker hue, until it ' terminates in a uniform unvary-
ing black.' It is worthy of remark, that Negro children are
nearly as fair as Europeans at birth, and that they continue so
for several days ; thus proving that the weather and sun act
principally in giving them a darker hue. The palms of the
hands, however, and soles of the feet, continue through life
nearly as white as those of Europeans; a circumstance not
sufficiently attended to by painters.
" But perhaps the most striking example we have of the influ-
ence of climate, is to be found among that persecuted race of
people, the Jews. Dispersed over the chief parts of the civilized
* Dr. Winterbottom's " Account of the Native Africans in the Neighbourhood
of Sierra-Leone."
f Dr. Robertson's Works, vol. ii. p, 96.
8 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
globe, but prevented by religious motives from mixing with the
rest of mankind, they still retain their characteristic features,
though they have assumed the complexion of every country i^ej
inhabit. Thus they are fair in Britain and Germany, brown iu
France and in Turkey, swarthy in Portugal and in Spain, olive
in Syria and in Chaldea, tawny or copper-coloured in Arabia
and Egypt, and nearly black in Abyssinia."* And yet they
are all Jews, of one common ancestry, nation, and language,
though " scatter'd o'er all the earth they lie."
"If, therefore," as has been well observed, "the human
race be divided into species merely from the colour, it must
necessarily follow, that, if the Negroes form a specific class
because they are black, those of an olive and tawny complexion
must form another class, because they are not white ; and, from
the same cause, the Spaniards and Swedes would form two dis-
tinct species of men; and then, on the same principle, how
many distinct species should we have among the seed of
Abraham ? "
In a recent Number of the Edinburgh Review I find an able
article on the subject of " Ethnology, or the Science of Races,"
in Avhich this precise line of argument is adopted. After speak-
ing of the varieties of colour in some branches of the Syro-
Arabian stock, the writer observes : —
It would be easy to multiply proofs to the same effect ; but we shall satisfy our-
selves ^rith adverting to the case of the Jewish nation, which, though frequently
appealed to by the advocates of the permanence of complexion and other physical
characters, really tells the other way, when fully stated. This case is particularly
satisfactory, on account of the evidence of general purity of descent through a long
succession of generations, during which the scattered residence of the race has
subjected its members to a great variety of external conditions. Now, although the
descendants of Abraham are still generally recognisable by certain peculiarities of
physiognomy, we find a great variety of complexion among them. In this country
blue eyes and flaxen hair ai'C not unfrequent ; but a light brunette hue with black
hair is most common. In Germany and Poland, the ordinary complexion is more florid,
with blue eyes and red hair. On the other hand, the Jews of Portugal are very
dark ; whilst those who have been settled from very remote times in Cochin and
the interior of Malabar, are so black as not to be distinguishable by their com-
plexion from the native inhabitants. Thus it may be stated as a general proposition,
that the complexion of the Jews tends to assimilate itself to that of any nation
in which their residence has been sufficiently prolonged ; while of this assimilation,
the introduction of a small amount of extraneous blood does not by any means
afford an adequate explanation.
After dwelling upon the effects of climate on many other
* Dr. Winterbottom, vol. i. p. 187. From Smith "On the Complexion and
Figure of the Human Species;" and Professor Zimmerman.
DESCRirilON OF THE NATIVES. \f
nations in Asia, and of the different tinges and hues of several
of the African tribes, the writer proceeds : —
Complexion, therefore, must be admitted to be no such definite distinction, as
can sever the Negro races from other branches of the human family. Nor wll the
character of their b.air be found more conclusive ; though it has been asserted by
some to be a more lasting, and therefore more trustworthy, criterion, — so much so,
that the African nations have been collectively termed " woolly -haired." Now, it is
clearly proved by microscopic examination, that the hair of the Negro is not wool ;
and that its intimate structure differs from that of the fairer races, solely in the
greater quantity of pigmentory matter contained in its interior, — as is the case with
jet-black hair in our own country. The crisp, twisted growth of Negro hair is the
only sign by which it can be really separated fi'om the straight and flowing hair of
Europeans. But a little consideration will show the futihty of attempting to
separate races on distinctions, which do not exceed such variations as may be
observed within the limits of any single race. For instance, among the African
nations, some have a dark complexion, and are conformable in other respects to the
Negro type, yet, at the same time, have long flowing hair. On the other hand,
there are many Europeans, having no admixture of Negro blood, with hair so crisp
and frizzled as almost to deserve the epithet of woolly A general view of the
phenomena belonging to the various complexions of the human race must compel
us to admit, to a very considerable extent, the influence of climate among the
causes of these varieties. Thus it is only in the intertropical regions, and in the
countries l)ordering upon them, that we meet with the greatest depth of colour in
the skin ; and all the nations inhal)iting those regions have an inclination to com-
plete blackness, which may, however, be kept in check by other circumstances.
It must be admitted, that the relation between climate and colour is not
perfectly uniform ; but it is at least as uniform as the relation between colour and
race ; that is, the difference of shade among different families of nations which
have been exposed sufficiently long to the same climatic influences, is not greater
than that which presents itself among incUviduals of the same nation We
have seen that the Arab, li^ing in the country of the Negro, becomes of Negro
blackness ; that the Negro, dwelling on the banks of the Nile, presents the dark
red tinge of the ancient Egyptian ; that the Jew, trans])lanted into the northern
regions of Europe, has the original swarthy complexion of his race replaced by a
fair and even a florid hue, whilst another offset of the same stock rivals in black-
ness the Hindoos among whom he dwells ; that the Hindoo, when he migrates to
the high lands of the Himalaya range, becomes, in process of time, as fair as the
Europeans who have come thither from the far north ; that the nations proved by
aftinities of language to be descendants of the great Asian stock, wliich has dis-
persed itself through every variety of climate, admit of every variety of colour ;
and that equal and similar varieties abound among the members of other groups of
nations (for instance, the American and the Polynesian) whose geographical cUstri-
bution and linguistic affinities afford a strong presumption of a common origin.
We cannot conceive that any cantlid person can weigh this mass of evidence, with-
out coming to the conclusion, that the most extreme difterences of complexion are
unsafe inchcatious of an original distinctness of race ; and that these differences
owe their origin far more to the prolonged influence of external physical conditions,
than to any other assignable causes.
Any other conclusion, this intelligent writer observes, involves
the case in inextricable difficulties and inconsi'^'tencies ; and
10
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
having arrived at precisely the same result by a comparison of
the cranial conformation of the different races, he once more
returns to the subject of colour : —
If we take complexion, again, as our guide, we shall be led into greater absurd-
ities ; for we must then split up the Jewish people into half a score of diverse
races : between the ruddy Saxon and the black Hindoo we must establish a dozen
of distinct grades; and when we come to the African, American, and Oceanic
nations, we must assign a new Adam and Eve to almost every tribe.*
Physiologists are not agreed as to the original colour of the
human race, nor does revelation afford us any direct assist-
ance upon this subject. About the close of the first thousand
years, Ave read, " There were giants in the earth in those days,"
and that " the daughters of men were fair." (Gen. vi. 2, 4.)
And in the Old Testament we often find women praised for
their beauty. Because Sarai, the wife of Abram, was '' a fair
woman to look upon," — that is, there was something in her per-
sonal appearance that was more than common, — the father
of the faithful was induced to give way to unbelief, and dis-
trust of the providence of God, when he gave the improper
advice, "Say, I pray thee, thou art my sister." f (Gen. xii. 11,
13.) Of Rebekah it was said, "And the damsel was very fair;"
(Gen. xxiv. 16 ;) and of Rachel, Laban^s youngest daughter,
that she "was beautiful and well favoured." (Gen. xxix. 17.)
And it is also recorded of Esther, that "the maid was fair and
beautiful." (Esther ii. 7.) Samson's father-in-law, who had
unjustly deprived him of his wife, said to him, "Is not her
younger sister fairer than she ? take her, I pray thee, instead of
her." (Judges xv. 2.) And subsequently we read, that "in all
the land were no women found so fair as the daughters of Job."
(Job xlii. 15.) The description given of the birth of Moses is not
only that "he was a goodly child," (Exod. ii. 2,) and " a proper
child," (Heb. xi. 23,) but that he " was exceeding fair." (Acts
vii. 20.) And on his coming " down from the Mount," whither
he had gone to receive "the two tables" from Jehovah, it is
said " that Moses wist not that the skin of his face shone w^hile
he talked with him." " And the children of Israel saw the face
of Moses, that the skin of Moses' face shone." (Exod. xxxiv.
29, 35.) It is said of David the son of Jesse, that "he was
ruddy, and withal of a beautiful countenance, and goodly to
look to:" that he was "a comely person;" and that "when the
Philistine looked about, and saw David, he disdained him : for he
* "Echnburgh Review," pp. 449, 452, 457, 458, 482. (1848.)
t Which she was, although by another mother.
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES. 11
was but a youth, and ruddy, and of a fair countenance."
(1 Sam. xvi. 13, 18 ; xvii. 42.) Absalom was distinguished,
amongst other things, for his fine person. " In all Israel there
was none to be so much praised as Absalom for his beauty;
from the sole of his foot even to the crown of his head there was
no blemish in him." (2 Sam. xiv. 25.) Of the three Hebrews,
with Daniel at their head, who had declined to partake of the
king's food, and Avho had " pulse to eat, and water to drink," it
is said, " Their countenances appeared fairer and fatter in flesh
than all the children which did eat the portion of the king's
meat." (Dan. i. 12, 15.) In other parts of the inspired volume,
we have similar allusions : " My beloved is white and ruddy.
His head is as the most fine gold, his locks are bushj^, and
black as a raven. His eyes are as the eyes of doves by the
rivers of waters, washed with milk, and fitly set. His cheeks
are as a bed of spices, as sweet flowers : his lips like lilies, drop-
ping sweet smelling myrrh." (Solomon's Song v. 10 — 13.) We
also read, " Sweet is thy voice, and thy countenance is comely."
" Thy lips are like a thread of scarlet, and thy speech is comely :
thy temples are like a piece of a pomegranate within thy locks."
"Thine head upon thee is like Carniel, and the hair of thine
head like purple." (Solomon's Song ii. 14; iv. 3 ; vii. 5.)
On the other hand, we find it written, " I am black, but
comely, O ye daughters of Jerusalem, as the tents of Kedar
as the curtains of Solomon." (Solomon's Song i. 5.) Again,
it is written, " My skin is black upon me, and my bones are
burned with heat." (Job xxx. 30.) "Their visage is blacker
than a coal. Our skin was black like an oven because of the
terrible famine." (Lam. iv. 8; v. 10.) "All faces shall gather
blackness." (Joel ii. 6 ; Nahum ii. 10.)
Now, it must be admitted that many of the preceding quota-
tions from the sacred scriptures are to be understood in a meta-
phorical sense. Those from the Minor Prophets are applied
to the Jews, whose countenances are said to have changed and
turned black, like persons ready to be strangled, being struck
with terror at the approach of God's judgments. The passages
from Solomon's Song unquestionably refer to Christ and his
church, in the various conditions to which it is liable in this
world. And even in those taken from the first book of Moses,
and other historical parts of holy writ, in which the expressions of
" fair to look upon," " very fair," " beautiful and well favoured,"
and others, so frequently occur, it is a question whether these
terms do not apply as much to a beautiful symmetry of form,
with a comeliness of features, and a gracefulness of movement,
12 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
as to the colour of the skin, or to a freshness or whiteness
of complexion.
But, adrjQitting the latter to be included in those com-
mendations of corporeal beauty, we have no account of the
complexion of Adam and Eve. We may, however, indulge
in the supposition, that our first parents were, as to colour,
like Moses, "exceeding fair," understanding the term in its
general acceptation; and, in support of this opinion, it may
be said, that " God created man in his own image;" and that
as white is an emblem of purity, Adam was created a white
man ; and all the pictorial representations of our great pro-
genitor, both ancient and modern, seem to favour the idea. On
this point others think differently, and amongst these are some
of the Africans, who state our race to have been at first black.
Cain, they say, was a Negro ; but he became so pale with fear
and remorse when he had murdered his brother, that his colour
never returned.
Yet not only Negro biit White physiologists have been found
who held the opinion that the human race was originally black.
We have already centioned that Negro children are nearly as
fair as Europeans at birth, that they continue so for several
days, and that the palms of their hands and the soles of their
feet continue whitish through life. Another fact is certain,
that whilst white parents have never been known to have black
offspring, children are born of black parents sometimes entirely
white, and retain that colour : these are of the Albino variet}',
several instances of which have come under my own observation.
"Secret things belong unto the Lord our God;" and where
no distinct revelation is made on a subject, it is in general
perhaps safer for us to be silent, or to confess our ignorance,
and thus refrain from speculation. But the primary condition
of the human race even in this respect is too interesting a ques-
tion to be passed by altogether; and, therefore, without enter-
taining either of the extreme views of white or black, much less
the strange and marvellous accounts which have been put forth
by some writers as to the original size, physical strength, &c., of
the first man, but taking into consideration the locality and the
climate where Adam and Eve first breathed the vital air, the
nature of the composition of which man was formed, and the
name given to him, Adam, "which signifies rec?," without at
all wishing to be wise above what is written, may we not
indulge in the supposition that they resembled in complexion
some of the light brownish or copper-coloured Moors or Foulahs
in Western Africa? The writer in the Edinburgh lleview
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES. 13
already quoted says, — " We may state our own conclusion,
drawn from a comparison of the geographical, physiological, and
glottological considerations involved in it, that some part of
High Asia was the centre from which the world was peopled ;
and that the race still inhabiting that region most nearly repre-
sents the original stock."* Against this conclusion it maybe
objected, that, since the deluge, there has been a considerable
change in the climate of that country as well as of others. It
may be so ; but admitting this for the sake of argument, then
we fall back upon one of the princip.al reasons for supposing
that our first parents were neither white nor black; that is,
upon the colour "of the dust of the ground" of which "the
Lord God formed man," and the name which he received.
"Josephus thinks that he was called Adam by reason of the
reddish colour of the earth out of which he was formed ; for
Adam in Hebrew signifies rec?." This is disputed by Sir
William Jones, " who thinks it may be from Adlm, which in
Sanscrit signifies the first. The Persians, however, denominate
him Adamah, which signifies, according to Sale, red earth." f
This opinion receives additional weight from the mass of
" evidence collected by Dr. Prichard respecting the physical
characters of the ancient Egyptians. The conclusion to which
it conducts him is a conviction that the ancient Egyptians were
so closely allied to the Negro race, that the origin of both was
probably the same. The complexion of the ancient Egyptians,
as represented by their own artists, seems to have been of a red
copper or light chocolate colour, and to have resembled the
present complexion of the reddest of the Foulah and Kafir
tribes." %
Dr. Primatt, who wrote upwards of a century ago, Avhen
touching upon the subject of colour, says, — "It has pleased
God to cover some men with white skins, and others with black ;
but as there is neither merit nor demerit in complexion, the
white man, notwithstanding the barbarity of custom and pre-
judice, can have no right, by virtue of his colour, to enslave
and tyrannize over the black man. Eor whether a man be
white or black, such he is by God's appointment; and, abstract-
edly considered, is neither a subject for pride, nor an object of
contempt." It comes to this, then, " V\^hether a man be white
or black," or neither, "such he is by God's appointment;" it
was foreseen, and determined that it should be so : and here, as
* " Edinburgh Review," p. 486. (1848.)
t Rev. Richard Watson's " Biblical and Theological Dictionaiy," art. Adam.
X " Edinburgh Review," p 452. (1848.)
14 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
in all the other parts of the Divine workmanship, we see the
wisdom and the goodness of God in adapting the skin, hair, &c.,
both of animals and the human species, to the various and
changeable climates and latitudes in which they reside. In
northern climates, for instance, men have long hair, and sheep
have wool. In southern climates sheep have hair, and Africans
and others have woolly heads ; and we know that climate affects
the hair of the head, as well as the complexion.
After all, the very striking difference of colour between the
African and European is merely superficial. "We are accus-
tomed to say, that colour is ^only skin-deep;^ but, in point of
fact, it is not even skin-deep ; for it does not reach the true skin,
being entirely confined to the epidermis, or scarf skin. It
was formerly supposed that between the true skin and scarf
skin there lay a proper colouring layer, to which the term rete
mucosum was given; and it was imagined that this layer was
greatly developed in the dark-skinned races, but nearly wanting
in those of fair complexion. This account of it, however, when
submitted to the test of microscopic inquiry, has been found to
be totally incorrect." *
One thing is certain, that though the Negro skin is black, it
is less rough than that of the children born in northern lati-
tudes, and has, in fact, the sleekness and softness of velvet;
and that, though the Negroes work naked in the hottest hours
of the day, their skin never blisters, while that of white sailors
does whenever the sun reaches them. How common it is for
Europeans who have been much exposed to the direct rays of
the sun, especially in a tropical climate, to become " tanned " or
" sun-burnt " in the face and hands, while the parts of the body
which are habitually covered retain their original fairness ! On
the other hand, the Africans enjoy hot, dry weather, while
moisture and cold make them shiver, and unfit for labour. We
close this part of the subject, therefore, in the language of holy
writ, as applicable to the Negro race : — " Look not upon me,
because I am black, because the sun hath looked upon me : my
mother's children were angry with me ; they made me keeper
of the vineyards ; but mine own vineyard have I not kept."
(Solomon's Song i. 6.)
II. As to CONFIGURATION : I havc sccn thousands of the
Jollof, Mandingo, Foulah, and other tribes on the continent of
Africa, who are not a whit behind some of the finest specimens
in England for beautiful features, symmetry of form, height of
* " Ediiibiivgli Review," p. 445. (1848.)
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES. 15
stature, and physical strength.* But as we shall have occasion
to refer to some further particulars of these and other nations,
I shall here, in support of the foregoing statement, adduce a
few quotations from some respectable writers. Dr. Winterbot-
tom was for some time physician to the colony of Sierra-Leone,
soon after the formation of the settlement ; and, from his resi-
dence there, professional skill, and general intelligence, was well
qualified to write upon this subject. When speaking of the
inhabitants in that locality, he says, — " Both men and women
are in general above the middle size, well proportioned, sprightly,
and of an open countenance. Although the palm of elegance
may be denied to them, yet they possess a great degree of ease
in all their actions. The manners of the females, particularly
the younger part, are not devoid of grace, and are free from
every appearance of constraint. The estimation of female
beauty among the natives in this country is the same as in most
others. The young women are in general remarkable for the
beautiful contour of their limbs, and for an ingenuous, open
countenance. Their eyes are often large and well formed, their
ears small and neat. Their necks and bosoms are well turned,
scarcely indeed to be surpassed by ^the bending statue which
enchants the world.' The frankness of their manners is tem-
pered with an agreeable timidity towards strangers, which
renders them still more interesting.'^ The learned Doctor
admits that there is " as great a variety of features among these
people as is to be met with in the nations of Europe," but that
" the sloping contracted forehead, small eyes, depressed nose,
thick lips, and projecting jaw, with which the African is usually
caricatured, are by no means constant traits ; on the contrary,
almost every gradation of countenance may be met with, from
the disgusting picture too commonly drawn of them, to the
finest set of European features. Want of animation does not
characterize them, and faces are often met with which express
the various emotions of the mind with great energy." When
speaking of the Foulahs, this gentleman says, " Among those
of them whom either curiosity or commerce had attracted to the
settlement at Sierra-Leone, I saw a youth whose features were
exactly of the Grecian mould, and whose person might have
afforded to the statuary a model of the Apollo Belvidere." t
* Witness the celebrated athlete from the Guinea-Coast ; a cast of whose body
is conspicuously displayed in the museum of the Royal College of Surgeons,
London.
t Dr. Winterbottom's " Account of the Native Africans in the Neighbour-
hood of Sierra-Leone," &c. vol. i. pp. 181, 197, 200. (1803,)
16 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
M. Goldberry, an intelligent French writer on Western
Africa, when speaking of the Jollofs, says, — " They are always
well made : their features are regular, and like those of Euro-
peans, except that the nose is rather round, and their lips
thick. They are said to be remarkably handsome, and their
women beautiful. The complexion of the race is a fine, trans-
parent, deep black ; their hair is crisp and woolly." The same
writer, when speaking of the Mandingoes, whose colour is also
black, with a mixture of red, says, — " Their features are regular,
their character generous and open, and their manner gentle."
Major Laing says, — " The appearance of the Mandingoes is
engaging ; their features are regular and open ; their persons
well formed and comely, averaging a height rather above the
common."
With regard to the Foulahs, who are spread in various tribes
over the countries between the Senegal and Gambia Rivers, and
in the regions farther south as far as Sierra-Leone, and for
some hundreds of miles in the interior, though the case cited by
Dr. Winterbottom cannot be taken as a sample for the whole in
all its particulars, yet those who have seen any of this numerous
part of the population of Western Africa agree in describing
them substantially as Mungo Park has done ; though it must
be admitted, there is considerable difference between the vari-
ous branches of the Foulah tribe, both as to complexion and
features, as will be shown in a subsequent chapter.
"The Foulahs," says Mr. Park, "such of them at least as
reside near the Gambia, are chiefly of a tawny complexion, with
soft, silky hair, and pleasing features;" and this he repeats
when speaking of the Foulahs of Bondou. M. Goldberry says,
" The genuine Foulahs," meaning the Foulahs of Teembo and
Foota Jollon, " are very fine men, robust and courageous.
They have a strong mind, and are mysterious, reserved, and
prudent ; they understand commerce, and travel in the capacity
of merchants even to the extent of the Gulf of Guinea. They
are formidable to their neighbours. Their women are hand-
some and sprightly. The colour of their skin is a kind of
reddish black; their countenances are regular, and their hair
is longer and not so woolly as that of the common Negroes."
It may be objected, that these are particular, detached, and
isolated cases, and that they are exceptions to the rule. In
reply to this, let the reader peruse the following summary from
Dr. Prichard^s excellent work : —
The dark coloured nations of Africa do not appear to form a distinct race, or a
distinct kind of people, separated from all other families of man hy a broad line
DEyCRIPTIO.V OF THE NATIVES. 17
and uniform among tliemselves, such as we ideally represent under the term Negro.
There is, perhaps, not one tribe in whicli all the characters ascribed to the Negro
are found in the highest degree ; and in general they are distributed to different
races, in all manner of ways, and combined in each instance with more or fewer of
the characters belonging to the European or the Asiatic.
The distinguishing peculiarities of the African nations may be summed up into
four heads; namely, the characters of complexion, of hair, featm-es, and figure.
We have to remai-k, —
1. That some races, with woolly hair and complexions of a deep black colour,
have fine forms, regular and beautiful featui'es, and are in their figure and counte-
nances scarcely different from Europeans. Such are the Jolofs near the Senegal,
and the race of Guber, or of Ilaiisa, in the interior of Siidon. Some tribes of the
South-African race, as the darkest of the Kafirs, are nearly of this description, as
well as some families or tribes in the empire of Kongo ; while others have more of
the Negro character in their countenances and form.
2. Other tribes have the form and features similar to those above described :
their complexion is black, or a deep olive or copper colour approaching to black ;
while their hair, though often crisp and frizzled, is not the least woolly. Such are
the Bisheri, and the Dawakil, and Ilazorta, and the darkest of the Abyssinians.
3. Other instances have been mentioned in which the complexion is black, and
the features have the Negro type, while the nature of the hair deviates considerably,
and is even said to be rather long and in flowing ringlets. Some of the tribes near
the Zambesi are of this class.
4. Among nations whose colour deviates towards a lighter hue, we find some
who have woolly hair, with a figure and features approaching to the European.
Such are the Bechuana Kafirs, of a light browni complexion. The tawny Hot-
tentots, though not approaching the European, differ from the Negro. Again :
some of the tribes on the Gold-Coast and the Slave-Coast, and the Ibos in the Bight
of Benin, are of a lighter complexion than many other Negroes, while their fea-
tures are strongly marked with the peculiarities of that race.*
There is, then, we contend, nothing in the phj'sical pecu-
liarities, or the variety which is observable in the countenances
and features of the preceding nations and tribes of Africa, to
indicate that they are a distinct species of the human race ; and
even if we were to select the most unfavourable specimens of
the African tribes, we may add, in the language of the above
excellent writer, that " their personal deformity and intellectual
weakness, if these attriljutes really belong to them, must be
regarded as individual varieties. Similar defects are produced
in every human race, by the agency of physical circumstances,
parallel to those under which the tribes in question are known
to exist. If these were reversed, it is probable that a few
generations would obliterate the eifect which has resulted from
them.^' This is the case ; for we know that climate, diet, and
the various modes of life, have great power over the features,
* Dr. Prichakd's "Researches into the Physical History of Mankind," vol. ii.
pp. 340, 341.
18 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
form, and stature of man, as well as in affecting the colour.
Hence West-Indian children, educated in England, improve
not only in complexion, but in elegance of features ; an altera-
tion arising, perhaps, equally from change of climate, of diet,
and of education. The difference between the children of
liberated Africans who attend the Mission-schools in Western
Africa and their parents, in point of intelligence, and even in
their features and personal appearance, is very striking. But,
" as to configuration, we sometimes see great variety of this in
the same families, — the prominent and the retiring forehead ;
the aquiline and the Grecian nose ; the long, the round, and the
oval face. The man who should gravely assert that these could
not be the children of the same parents, would be considered
one with whom it would be folly to hold any argument." *
Again : in members of the same family we see some smooth,
some hairy; some tall, some short; some fair, some brown:
but are we able to tell, from these peculiarities, which carries
the ensigns of genius, which bears the impression of wisdom ?
We see genius, and the expansion of the intellectual powers,
sporting and developed in various physical forms : we see this,
tall in Newton, bulky in Hume, slender in Voltaire, diminutive
and deformed in Pope : to say nothing of many eminent
divines who were small in stature, one of whom gave a practical
exemplification of his own poetic effusion, —
" The mind 's the standard of the man."
We close our observations on this subject in the words of an
elegant author, who observes, that " of all animals, the differ-
ences between mankind are the smallest. Of the lower races
of creatures the changes are so great as often entirely to dis-
guise the natural animal, and to distort or to disfigure its shape.
But the chief differences in man are rather taken from the
tincture of his skin, than the variety of his figure ; and in all
climates he presents his erect deportment, and the marked
superiority of his form." *
III. Then, as to remoteness of situation. — Whatever
weight there may be in this objection as to the peopling of the
New World, (and even this has been sufficiently cleared up in
BoBERTSON^s " History of America,") the objection can scarcely
be entertained for a moment with regard to Africa ; for it is not
improbable that some parts of North-Eastern Africa were inha-
bited previous to the deluge ; but if they were not, we have the
* Rev. J. Stanley, Sen. f Goldsmith's "Animated Nature."
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES. 19
clearest evidence that, soon after the flood, Africa was peopled
by the descendants of Noah, or, rather, by one branch of
Noah's family, namely, by Ham and his descendants ; — Cush,
the son of Ham, and grandson of Noah, and Nimrod, NoaVs
great-grandson, the mighty hunter, who became a mighty
builder. Besides, from the contiguity of that continent to
Asia, and some parts of it especially to the Garden of Eden, the
residence of our first parents, and from the very early mer-
cantile traffic which we know to have taken place between
Northern Africa and the East, even prior to the era of Moses,
there can remain no doubt that the inhabitants of Africa have
all sprung from the same source; and, with ourselves, are the
descendants of one common pair.
But it is still contended, even by those who believe in the
common origin of the human race, that the continent of Africa
generally, or the greater part of the kingdoms in the interior,
and the native tribes in the South and on the Western coast in
particular, are nevertheless mentally inferior to the inhabitants
of other parts of the globe ; and not only so, but that education
and other circumstances will never be able to raise them to an
equality with those of their fellow-men who enjoy the blessings
of civilization. That they are in the mass, at present, far
behind the white races, I at once admit ; but I am at issue with
those who advocate the latter part of this sentiment : such
writers must have forgotten, that there was a time in the
history of Britain, when our own ancestors were described by
the philosophers at Bome, not only as being below mediocrity
in civilization, but they were considered to be too stupid even
for slaves ; and therefore Cicero advised his friend Atticus not
to obtain his slaves from Britain, " because they are so stupid,
and utterly incapable of being taught, that they are unfit to
form a part of the household of Atticus.'^
In the preceding brief description of the physical character
of several of the nations in Western Africa, (of the Foulahs, for
instance,) we find them spoken of as " having a strong mind,"
that they are "prudent" and "understand commerce," and
that "in the capacity of merchants" they travel some hundreds
of miles. The same may be said of many other tribes : indeed,
no unprejudiced person who has had much personal intercourse
with the Mandingo, Jollof, Foulali, Serrawoolli, Bambarra, and
other nations, can entertain the slightest doubt of the equality
of intellect between white and black men. Dr. Prichard, in his
general observations on the intellectual faculties of the African
nations, observes : " But if it is pretended, that all the woolly-
c 2
20 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
haired races in Africa are uniformly inferior in intellect to other
tribes of men, the assertion is at most a gratuitous one. Nay,
it is contradicted by the most clear and decisive testimony.
Travellers in South Africa have been struck with the proofs of
vigour and acuteness of understanding displayed by the Ama-
zulah, Amakosah, Bechuana, and other Kafir nations. And if
the alleged inferiority of organization and of capacity in the
skull is the ground on which deficiency of intellect is ascribed
to the woolly-haired nations; this, at least, does not apply to
the Kafirs, many of whom have a form of the head, and parti-
cularly an expansion of the anterior parts of the skull, resem-
bling the heads of Europeans." " A similar objection to this doc-
trine might, indeed, be furnished by many black races between
the tropics, and among those tribes who are considered as
genuine Negroes. I need not repeat what I have said respect-
ing the physical and the intellectual characteristics of the Man-
dingoes, and the people of Guber, Hausa, and other nations." *
On "the assertion," "All the woolly-haired races in Africa
are uniformly^ inferior in intellect to other tribes of men," Dr.
Prichard has well observed that it " is at most a gratuitous one ;
nay," that " it is contradicted by the most clear and decisive testi-
mony," as in the preceding paragraph ; and he then proceeds to
show that those minute philosophers, who take the gauge of
intellectual capacity from the disposition of the bones of the
head, and link morality with the contour of the countenance, —
men who measure mind by the rule and compasses, and estimate
capacity for knowledge and salvation by a scale of inches, and
the acuteness of angles, — have not done the African nations
justice even on this principle : for, he remarks, —
The crania of Negroes existing in European collections, and those wliich have
been principally examined by anatomists, have been almost exclusively taken from
ti-ibes who may be supposed to have presented the most unfavourable specimens of
the African organization. They have been the skulls of unfortunate wretches
kidnapped from the coast, or their enslaved offspring. It was from Negro skulls of
this description that those proportional measm-ements were taken by Soemmering
and others, from which an attempt was made to prove that the ampUtude of the
brain is less in the Negro than in other races of men I have endeavoured to
prove, that there is a fallacy in all those statements, arising from the standard
of comparison, which is a given extent of facial bones, or length of the superior
maxilla ; that one of the prominent peculiarities of the strongly-marked Negro
head is an absolute excess in the length of the upper jaw, the extent of which,
therefore, ought to be the basis of comparison ; and that from these measurements
of Soemmering no decisive result can be deduced. This opinion has received a
* Dn. Prtchard's " Researches into the Physical History of Mankind," vol. ii.
pp. 347, 348.
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES. 21
most ample confirmation from the results of a series of observations by Professor
Tidemann, published in the " Philosophical Transactions " for 1836, on the brain
of the Negro in comparison with the brain of the Em-opean and that of the
orang-outang. In this paper the learned author proposes to answer the two follow-
ing questions : — -
" First. Is there any important and essential difference in the structure of the
brain between the Negro and the European ?
" Secondly. Has the brain of the Negro any greater resemblance to the brain of
the orang-outang than has the brain of the European.'"
To these inquiries the author has obtained very satisfactory solutions In
comparing the Africans with other races of men in rela+ion to the capacity of the
cranium, by which he estimates the magnitude of the brain, M. Tidemann adopted
the following method of proceeding : 1. He weighed the skull with and without the
under jaw-bone. 2. He then filled the cavity of the skull with dry millet-seed,
through the foramen, occipitale magnum. The skuU was then weighed again care-
fully filled. 3. He then deducted the weight of the empty skull fi-om that of .the
filled one, and thus obtained a measure of the capacity of the cavity of the cranium.
Tidemann has given the results of a great number of observations made on this
method. Forty-one instances display the capacity of the cavity of the cranium in
Negroes of different races. Seventy-seven similar measurements of male European
skulls are added, twenty-four of male Asiatics of the so-termed Caucasian race, twelve
of female Europeans, twenty of skulls of the Mongolian, and twenty-seven of the
American race, and forty-three of the Malayan and Polynesian nations, in which
Australians are included. The general result of these comparisons is, that the
cavity of the skull in the Negro is generally in no degree smaller than in Europeans
and others of the human race. Tidemann concludes, that " the opinion of many
naturaUsts, such as Camper, Soemmering, Cuvier, Laurence, and Vivey, who main-
tain that the Negro has a smaller brain than the European, is ill-founded and
entirely refuted by ray researches." He says, " I look upon Camper's facial line
and facial angle as very unsatisfactory in determining the capacity of the skidl, the
size of the brain, and the degree of intellectual power." *
In harmony with this we may add, in the language of another
able writer, "And, for Negro physiognomy, as though that
should shut out the light of intellect, go to your national
museum; contemplate the features of the colossal head of
Memnon, and the statues of the divinities on which the ancient
Africans impressed their own forms ; and there see, in close
resemblance to the Negro feature, the mould of those counte-
nances which once beheld, as the creations of their own immor-
tal genius, the noblest and most stupendous monuments of
human skill, and taste, and grandeur. In the imperishable
porphyry and granite is the unfounded and pitiful slander pub-
licly, and before all the world, refuted. There we see the Negro
under cultivation. If he now presents a difl"erent aspect, culti-
vation is wantius;. That solves the whole case." t
* Dr. Prichard's " Researches into the Physical History of Mankind," &c.
t Rev. Richard \A'atson's Works, vol. ii. pp. 91, 95.
22 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
It appears, then, from the preceding extracts, in the infer-
ences from which I have been confirmed by personal observa-
tion, that there is nothing in the physical character and consti-
tution of the African, — nothing in the organization of the brain,
the contour of the countenance, the colour of the skin, or the
formation of the woolly-haired head, — which affords the least
presumption of inferior endowment of intellectual or moral
faculties. The Rev. J. Ramsay, from whom we have already
quoted, who spent many years in the West Indies, and who
had an opportunity of judging of the mental character of the
Africans, even in a state of slavery, in the fifth section of his
" Essay on the Treatment and Conversion of African Slaves in
the British Sugar Colonies," observes : —
Having shown how Uttle can he rationally concluded against the capacity of
Negroes from their equatorial settlement, flat nose, woolly head, projecting chin,
high calves, and black skin, we come to facts.
Now we know, that house Negroes, who are generally Creoles, and are conver-
sant with their white masters, have all the address, intrigue, and cunning of family
servants in Eiu-ope. In their masters they can mark the ridiculous point, the
improper conduct, and often give these superior beings that advice, wliich they have
not wisdom enough to foUow ; often manage their foibles, and mould them to their
own interest Negroes are capable of learning any thing that requires atten-
tion and correctness of manner. They have powers of description and mimicry
that would not have disgraced the talents of our modern Aristophanes. The thstil-
lation of rum, the tempering of the cane-juice for sugar, which may be considered
as nice chemical operations, are universally committed to them. They become
good mechanics ; they use the square and compass, and easUy become masters of
whatever business they are put to. They have a particular turn for music, and often
attain a considerable proficiency in it without the advantage of a master. Negro sick
nurses acquire a siu^jrising skill in the cure of ordinary diseases, and often conquer
disorders that have baffled a host of regulars. Hence our black beans, black
beUes, black gamesters, black keepers, black quacks, black conjurers, and all that
variety of character which strikes in their masters, or promises to add to their own
dignity or interest. But what can we expect them to attempt in the higher depart-
ments of reason ? Their slavish employments and condition ; their being abandoned
to the caprice of any master ; the subjection in which it is thought necessary to
keep them : all these things depress their minds, and subdue whatever is manly,
spirited, ingenuous, and independent among them. And these ai'e weights sufficient
to crush a first-rate human genius. Had it been the lot of a paradoxical Hume, or
of a benevolent Kaimes, to have cultivated the sugar-cane, under a planter, in one
of our old islands, the first probably would have tried to have eked out his scanty
pittance of two pounds of floiu- or grain per week, by taking up the profession of a
John Crowman, or conjm-er ; and doubtless would have got many a flogging for
playing tricks with, and imposing on the credulity of, his fellows, to cheat them of
their allowance. The turn of the other to works of taste might have expressed
itself in learning to blow a rude sort of music from his nostril, through a hollowed
piece of stick ; or, if blessed with an indulgent master, he might have learned to
play by the ear a few minuets, and fiddle a few country dances, to enable the family
and neighbours to pass an evening cheerfully togetlier.
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES. 23
The truth is, a depth of cunning that enahles them to overreach, conceal,
deceive, is the only province of the mind left for them, as slaves, to occupy. And
this they cultivate, and enjoy the fruits of, to a siu-prising degree. I have, as a
Magistrate, heard examinations and defences of culprits, that for quibhling, subter-
fuge, and subtlety, would have done credit to the abilities of an attorney, most
notoriously conversant in the villanous tricks of his profession. Their command of
countenance is so perfect, as not to give the least clue for discovering the truth ;
nor can they be caught tripping in a story. Nothing in the turn or degree of their
mental faculties distinguishes them from Europeans ; though some ditFerence must
appear, if they were of a diiferent or an inferior race.*
This brings us again to the fact of the universal corruption
of human nature. The African has actually got the family mark
upon him. Originally, " the Negro was God's image carved in
ebony/' but he is fallen ; and now,
" His follies and liis crimes have stamp'd him man."
But we hasten to a different process or mode of meeting the
charge of mental imbecility urged against the teeming millions
of the descendants of Adam who are scattered over the vast
continent of Africa : for the sacred scriptures have not left us to
determine the title of any tribe, or nation, or continent, to the
full honours of humanity by accidental circumstances, " To
man has been given the law, ^Thou shalt love the Lord thy
God with all thy heart ;' and to be capable of loving God is
the infallible criterion of our peculiar nature. So extensively
has this principle been applied by Missionary Societies, that the
philosophy in question is now refuted more by facts than by
reasoning. They have determined whether the races cast out
and spurned by this theory are our brethren, and, as such,
entitled to our fraternal yearnings; they have determined who
are men, by determining Avho are capable of that universal and
exclusive law to man, — the love of God. The Negro through
all his shades, the Hottentot through all his varieties, the
Indians of America, and the natives of New-Holland, have all,
in our own days, been inspired with the love of God through
the gospel; and again we see, that 'in Christ Jesus there is
neither Jcav nor Greek, barbarian nor Scythian, bond nor free,
but that Christ is all in all.' " " They have dived into that
mine from which, we were often told, no valuable ore or precious
stone could be extracted ; and they have brought up the gem
of an immortal spirit, flashing with the light of intellect, and
glowing with the hues of Christian graces." f We say notliing
of by-gone days, of Africa's ancient glory, where still moulder
* Ramsay's " Essay," pp. 242 — 246.
t Rev. Richard Watson's Works, vol, ii. ]'p. 90, 93.
24 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA,
the ruins of Thebes with its hundred gates, and where the
mighty pyramids still rear their lofty fronts, after the lapse of
three thousand years. We say nothing of that day when
" she poured forth her heroes on the field, gave bishops to the
church, and martyrs to the fires :^^ — "Modern times have
witnessed, in the persons of African Negroes, generals, phy-
sicians, philosophers, linguists, poets, mathematicians, and mer-
chants, all eminent in their attainments, energetic in enterprise,
and honourable in character ; and even the Mission-schools in
the West Indies exhibit a quickness of intellect, and a thirst for
learning, to which the schools of this country do not always
afford a parallel."* Still more modern times have produced "a
great cloud of witnesses" to bear their testimony, that, how-
ever degraded, and even brutalized, the mind of the African
may be by sin and deep-rooted superstition, — a superstition
interwoven and dovetailed in his nature, and rendered venerable
from its antiquity and long-continued habit, — yet there is in
the " gospel of Christ," which is " the power of God," a mighty
moral lever that can and does raise him in the scale of civil and
religious society ; a principle which can disinter the mental
faculties, and quicken into quivering sensibility what appeared
to be a mass of unconscious brutality ; a principle which takes
hold of the heart, transforms and expands the mind, elevates
and ennobles the whole man, and makes him altogether " in
Christ a new creature." And many an African Negro — " the
savage all wild in his glen" — has been arrested by the triumphs
of gospel-grace; and those that "went out to see what was
done, have found the man sitting at the feet of Jesus, clothed,
and in his right mind;" and therefore, without mixing the
smallest particle of acrimony in replying to this unfounded
slander against the Negroes, we say that " the charge of mental
inferiority must in future lie rather against those who bring it,
than against the African ; " f for he has been proved to be " a
man and a brother," a Christian and a scholar. J
* Rev. Richard Watson's Works, vol. ii. pp. 94, 95.
f Dr. Harris's " Great Commission."
J The spirited author of an admirable little work, entitled " Jamaica Enslaved
and Free," touching on the Negro character, says, — " But let facts bring out the
truth, as they do in the circumstance, that two native Africans are gone back to the
wild plains which gave them birth, as English clergymen ! " And he then asks,
" Can Hume's lie be again repeated, after this additional confutation of his theo-
retical statements, when in the arrogance of his mind he said of native Africans,
' They ai-e inferior to the rest of the species, and utterly incapable of the higher
attainments of the mind ?' "
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES. 25
This fact, therefore, it is contended, gives the direct negative to
the other charge, " tlie judicial sentence of God resting upon the
Negro." A part of Africa has been reclaimed. Christianized,
and civilized ; — no one dares question this : testimonies the most
disinterested and impartial have been voluntarily borne to this
fact, by naval, military, and civil officers, as well as by intelli-
gent and enterprising travellers who have visited the various
evangelical Mission-stations in Southern and Western Africa.
It is true the bright spots on this dark continent " are few and
far between." But if a part has already been enlightened and
evangelized, however small a portion, why may not the whole ?
And yet, strange to say, to this one-fifth part of the popula-
tion of our world is applied the prophetic malediction of Noah :
" Cursed be Canaan ; a servant of servants shall he be unto his
brethren." (Gen. ix. 25.) And it is inferred from this passage,
that Africa is still under the ban of the Almighty ; and from
this supposed fact the inference has been, that Africa is the
common plunder of any invader who has hardihood enough to
steel his heart against every principle of justice and humanity.
What an accumulation of misery and wrong has been inflicted
upon that unhappy country for many generations past, in the
shameful traffic in human flesh and blood ! And yet there is
nothing in scripture to warrant, or even to palliate, these
enormous injuries perpetrated upon Africa : for, as the eloquent
advocate and friend of the Negro already quoted observes, " The
malediction of Noah (if we even allow it to be one, and not a
simple prediction) fell not upon the Negro races ; it fell chiefly
on Asia, and only to a very limited extent upon Africa ; it fell, as
the terms of the prophecy explicitly declare, upon Canaan ; that
is, in scripture style, upon his descendants, the Canaanites, who
were destroyed, or made subjects, by the Israelites ; and perhaps
upon the Carthaginians, who were subverted by the Romans.
Here was its range and its limit : the curse never expanded so
as to encompass a single Negro tribe." *
But, waving this somewhat controverted point, whatever
may have been the intention of that passage originally, it will
be sufficient for our present purpose to state, in reply, that
the gospel repeals every national malediction, and addresses
itself to men everywhere : " The law was given by Moses, but
grace and truth came by Jesus Christ." (John i. 17.) The
anathemas, therefore, of former dispensations have long since
been rescinded and abolished ; for no nation or tribe can remain
* Rev. Richard Watison's Works, vol. ii. p. 96.
26 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
accursed under the Christian economy, since Christ, "the De-
sire of all nations," hath appeared " to give light to them that
sit in darkness and in the shadow of death, to guide our feet
into the way of peace." (Luke i. 79.) " For God sent not his
Son into the world to condemn the world ; but that the world
through him might be saved." (John iii. 17.) It was for this
very purpose that " God, having raised up his Son Jesus, sent
him to bless" mankind, "in turning away every one from his
iniquities." (Acts iii. 26.) Christianity, therefore, we repeat,
turns all curses into benedictions. Its office is to bless, and to
bless " all the kindreds of the earth :" it is light after darkness,
health after sickness ; it announces " liberty to the captives, and
the opening of the prison to them that are bound;" it pro-
claims "the acceptable year of the Lord;" (Isai. Ixi. 1, 2 ;) and
it is emphatically "good tidings of great joy to all people."
(Luke ii. 10.)
Having, as I hope, satisfactorily proved that the inhabitants
of the vast continent of Africa have a common origin with our-
selves ; that they are the descendants of Adam and Eve ; and
that, though morally and mentally degraded, they are neverthe-
less capable of improvement; that there is in the gospel a
divinity and power that can and does meet their case ; it fol-
lows, that Africa, as well as other nations of the earth, is
destined to become subject to the dominion of the Redeemer,
and to " be blessed in him whom all nations shall call blessed."
For the teeming millions of Africa " God spared not his own
Son;" for them Christ shed his "precious blood;" and there-
fore " will have all men to be saved, and to come unto the
knowledge of the truth. For there is one God, and one Media-
tor between God and men, the Man Christ Jesus; who gave
himself a ransom for all, to be testified in due time." (1 Tim. ii.
4 — 6.) It was not for a few out of each quarter of the globe
that the Saviour died, or for many out of all nations, or
even for the greater part of the human race ; but " He tasted
death for every man/' (Heb. ii. 9.) And to Africa the com-
mission of the risen Saviour doubtless extended, when he said to
his disciples, " Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel
to every creature." (Mark xvi. 15.) And Africa is unquestion-
ably included in those glorious and sublime passages of holy
writ which predict the universal empire of the Son of God ;
when " He shall have dominion from sea to sea, and from the
river unto the ends of the earth ;" (Psalm Ixxii. 8 ;) and shall
receive " the Heathen for his inheritance, and the uttermost
parts of the earth for his possession;" (Psalm ii. 8 ;) when "the
DESCRIPTION OF THE NATIVES, 27
earth shall be full of the knowledge of the Lord, as the waters
cover the sea ;" (Isai. xi. 9 ;) " and there shall be one fold, and
one Shepherd/^ (John x. 16.)
To these general scriptural truths we may add, that there are
special and particular allusions to this part of God's creation in
the sacred volume : not only as regards the past, but also with
respect to the future. From sacred as well as from profane
history, we know what Africa has been. But here we cannot
enlarge : suffice it to say that Africa, though not the birth-place
of the adorable Redeemer, was the asylum of the infant Saviour ;
for " the young child departed into Egypt,'' and there found a
refuge from his blood-thirsty foes ; that Africa was the cradle of
the Christian church, and the repository of ancient literature ;
and that in that part of the globe Christianity achieved some of
its proudest conquests, and secured many of the noblest testi-
monies to its truth and power which were ever suppHed in any
region where the banner of the cross has been unfurled. And
we know that there was a period, and that for centuries, when
Northern Africa occupied no subordinate station in ecclesias-
tical rank ; when, from her episcopal thrones and councils, she
issued her decrees in all the dignity of conscious authority, and
enforced them with a power which she knew could not be dis-
puted : twelve centuries of darkness and degradation intervene
between that period and the present. But though the voice of
Africa has been for centuries silent amid the Christian commu-
nities of the earth, her candlestick removed, her light extin-
guished, and little or nothing left of her once numerous and
flourishing churches; yet she is not forgotten, much less ex-
cluded from the compassion of the Saviour; she is not doomed
to outer darkness, but shall come " forth as the morning, fair
as the moon, clear as the sun, and terrible as an army with
banners." It is true '' the young child" tarried in Africa but
for a short period : he " was there until the death of Herod :
that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the
prophet, saying. Out of Egypt have I called my Son." (Hosea
xi. 1 ; Matt. ii. 15.) But, though he was called out of Egypt,
he "shall come into" it again, "and the idols of Egypt shall be
moved at his presence, and the heart of Egypt shall melt in the
midst of it. For they shall cry unto the Lord because of the
oppressors, and he shall send them a Saviour, and a Great One,
and he shall deliver them. And the Lord shall be known to
Egypt, and the Egyptians shall know the Lord in that day. In
that day shall Israel be the third with Egypt and with Assyria,
even a blessing in the midst of the land : whom the Lord of
28 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
hosts shall bless, saying. Blessed be Egypt my people, and
Assyria the work of my hands, and Israel mine inheritance."
(Isai. xix. 1, 20, 21, 24, 25.)
"Africa," then, "with all thy just complaints" against thy
slanderous foes and cruel oppressors, and " against the practice
of Christian states, thou hast none against the doctrines of the
Christian's Bible ! That is not a book, as some have interpreted
it, written, as to thee, ^within and without,' in 'lamentation,
and mourning, and woe : ' it registers against thee no curse ;
but, on the contrary, exhibits to thee its fulness of blessings ; "
and "establishes thy right to its covenant of mercy, in common
with all mankind."* Nay, it foretells thy future greatness; for
thy name is written there, not with a curse, but thou too " shalt
know the Lord," and "the Lord of hosts shall bless" thee,
" saying, Blessed be Egypt my people, and Assyria the work of
my hands." And it is further written, " Princes shall come out
of Egypt; Ethiopia shall soon stretch out her hands unto God."
(Psalm Ixviii. 3L)
The conversion of Africa to God, then, is clearly predicted :
not merely some parts of it, such as Egypt, Ethiopia, or
Abyssinia, but the whole continent. Africa ! lift up thy head :
for though thou art fallen, " thy redemption draweth nigh ! "
The blessed Jesus gave thee honour, and bade thee hope, at the
baptism of the " man of great authority under Candace queen
of the Ethiopians" by Philip the deacon, who "preached unto
him Jesus : " and when he was baptized, though he " saw
Philip no more," yet he "went on his way rejoicing." (Acts
viii. 27, 35, 39.) And soon shall all thy peoples and nations "be
baptized with the Holy Ghost, and with fire." Africa, weep no
more ! Deeply as thou art plunged in ignorance and vice, thou
art included in the purchase of redeeming mercy; and in all
thy sun-burnt plains, and in all thy trackless forests, shall thy
children ultimately stretch out their hands unto God ! Tene-
riffe, lift up thy voice from thy throne of clouds, nor let Atlas
refuse an answer to the watchman's cry, and let it echo along
the sides of the hills, and on the tops of the mountains, and in
the dales and valleys, " The morning cometh ! " Break forth
into singing, ye noble rivers Senegal and Gambia, ye Niger and
Nile, and let the whole continent, in its every latitude and lon-
gitude, join in the swelling, bursting chorus that shall be heard
" in heaven," on earth, and in hades, saying, " The kingdoms of
this world are become the kingdoms of our Lord, and of his
Christ; and he shall reign for ever and ever !" (Rev. xi. 15.)
* Rev. Richard Watson's Works, vol. ii. p. 96.
CHAPTER II.
AFRICA, AND THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.
By whom and at what Time Africa was circumnavigated — The Discovery o^
America, and the Douhling of the Cape of Good Hope — Both these Events
proved injurious to Africa — Origin of the African Slave-Trade — Cruelty of the
Spaniards towards the Aborigines of America — Las Casas' Proposal to Cardi-
nal Ximenes, Regent of Spain — The Emperor, Charles V., grants a Patent —
Las Casas' Account of Spanish Cruelty to the native Intlians — Heylin's and
Dr. Robertson's Account of an Indian Nobleman — The Inconsistency of send-
ing to Africa for a Supply of Slaves— Charles V. and Las Casas saw their
EiTor — The Spanish Slave-Trade revived — The English engage in the Slave-
Trade — Captain Hawkins — -Queen Elizabeth— Contradictoi7 Accounts of the
English Slave-Trade cleared up by James Bandinel, Esq. — The English Slave-
Trade continued — Thrown open by Act of Parliament — The Trade rapidly
increased — The French actively engage in it — Great Britain, though not the
First to embark in it, was soon Foremost — As a Nation we are verily guilty —
The Voice of our Brother's Blood crieth against us fi-om the Ground.
The whole of Africa, except in that part where it is joined to
Asia, was known to be surrounded by the sea ; but of its gene-
ral figure, and its extent towards the south, the ancients had no
accurate knowledge. If we may credit the story of Herodotus,
however, Africa was circumnavigated, instrumentally, at least, by
Necho king of Egypt, upwards of two thousand years ago. For
though the Egyptians themselves were not navigators, their
country necessarily became the channel of a large portion of the
Indian trade, as well as that of Ethiopia ; and Necho, one of the
most illustrious of the native kings of Egypt, who was in
advance of the age in which he lived, eagerly sought the solu-
tion of the grand mystery regarding the form and termination
of Africa. For this purpose he employed a number of Phenician
sailors, who, proceeding down the Red Sea, entered the Indian
Ocean, and made the circuit of the southern promontory, pass-
ing through the Pillars of Hercules, and ascending up the Medi-
terranean back to Egypt. " They related that, in the course of
this very long voyage, which occupied three years, they had
frequently drawn their boats on land, sown grain in a favourable
place and season, Avaited till the crop grew and ripened under
the influence of a tropical heat, then reaped it and continued
their progress. They added, that, in passing the most southern
coast of Afj'ica, they were surprised by observing the sun on
their right hand, that is, to the north of them; a statement
which causes Herodotus himself to reject their report : and yet
30 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
this very fact affords the strongest confirmation of it to us who
know that to the south of the equator this must have really
taken place."* Subsequently to this, we have another account
of the circumnavigation of Africa by a private adventurer of the
name of Eudoxus, a native of Cyzicus, who lived about one
hundred and thirty years before Christ. This account is per-
haps somewhat apocryphal, though by some it is contended that
Eudoxus actually made the circuit of Africa: but, whether
these statements be true or not, for the actual discovery of the
southern extremity of Africa we are indebted to the Portuguese.
The fifteenth century of the Christian era was the age of
maritime enterprise and inquiry. Though the science of navi-
gation was then in its infancy, and the mariner's compass but
little understood, there were not wanting a few bold spirits,
who, actuated by an ardent passion for discovery, ventured to
brave the terrors of the deep, far from the sight of land. In
the year 1487 Bartholomew Diaz, under the patronage of John
II. of Portugal, fitted out a fleet, and proceeded along the coast
of Africa ; and, having endured many hardships, he at length
came in sight of the Cape which terminates Southern Africa.
But he proceeded no farther, fancying that he had arrived at
the boundary of the earth; and, being intimidated by the
darkness and tempests with which he was surrounded, he
returned without effecting a landing on its shores. On account
of the heavy gales which he experienced, he gave it the name of
Cabo des totos Tormentos, or "the Cape of Storms," which,
however, was subsequently exchanged, by the king his master,
for Cabo du buonne Espei-anse, or " the Cape of Good Hope,"
from the prospect or " good hope" which it afforded him of open-
ing a maritime path to India. Thus one grand incitement to
European enterprise, at that time, was the discovery of a pas-
sage by sea to the East Indies, which laid open to all nations the
commerce of that country, then monopolized by the Venetians.
It was in the year 1492 that Columbus, in quest of a westerly
passage to the East Indies, was unexpectedly interrupted in his
course by the islands of America ', and, five years afterwards, (in
1497,) another enterprising nautical spirit was found in the
person of Vasco de Gama, who pursued and accomphshed the
same object by doubling the Cape of Good Hope ; and to him
belongs the honour of first setting foot on that part of the vast
continent of Africa. It was in the spring of the same year that
*' John Cabot, the father of Sebastian Cabot, a Venetian by
* Murray's " Narrative of Discoveiy and Adventure in Africa." (Eilinburgh.)
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 31
birth, but who resided many years in Bristol, was sent by the
king of England, Henry VII., on an expedition of discovery in
the same direction ; the main object being to find a north-west
passage to the Indies. He steered directly west, and arrived in
June at a large island, which he called Prima Vista, but which
has since become well known under the familiar name of New-
foundland. Upon the discoveries made in this voyage the
English founded their claim to the eastern portion of North
America." *
But the treasures of the East were still the objects of pursuit
to the Portuguese and other nations ; and therefore each of these
events, the two former especially, (the discovery of America by
Columbus, and the doubling of the Cape of Good Hope by
Vasco de Gama,) operated greatly to the disadvantage of Africa.
For the coast of that continent, after having served as a clue to
conduct navigators to India, was itself comparatively neglected,
not on account of any natural inferiority in its soil, climate, or
productions, but because the Africans, not having advanced so
far in the arts as the East Indians, nor having then discovered
such quantities of the precious metals as the Americans, could
not immediately supply the European demand for those desir-
able productions which the commerce of the East and West
afforded. Thus Asia and America became the principal theatres
of the ambition and cupidity of Europeans ; and happy had it
been for Africa if they had so continued. It is distressing to
record the rapid progress of European iniquity among the sim-
ple and untutored nations inhabiting the other quarters of the
world. Its operation in America was deplorably injurious to
Africa ; for it was soon found, that the aborigines of the Western
world could not endure the toils imposed on them by their new
masters. " Hence arose the apparent, or rather pi^etended,
necessity of resorting to Africa for a supply of labourers in the
form of slaves; and here commenced the Slave-Trade,t that
* Conder's " Modern Traveller," vol. xxii. p. 73.
t This, we say, was the commencement or origin of the African Slave-Trade, but
not of Slavery itself; for that, in one form or other, had existed in the world
from the most remote period of history. It was tolerated among the jjatriarchs,
and recognised among the Jews. It also existed among the ancient Pagan nations,
— the Egyptians, Phenicians, and Greeks ; and, eighteen centuries ago, when Bri-
tain was a distant colony of Rome, the unfortunate inhabitants of our own island
were torn from their homes, and toiled for a Roman master, along with the dark-
skinned and more pliant natives of Ethiopia. Long before the first voyage of the
enterprising Columbus, the celebrated Portuguese navigator Anthony Gonzales, of
whom more will be said anon, in exploring the coast of Africa, had, in 1434, seized
32 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
scourge of the human race which has kept dowu a great part of
the Africans in a state of anarchy and blood, and which, while
its nefarious existence is tolerated, will prove the grand obstacle
to their improvement and civilization/^*
It was not, however, till the beginning of the sixteenth cen-
tury that the Slave-Trade assumed a regular form. " So early
as the 3^ear 1503, a few slaves had been sent from the Portu-
guese settlements in Africa into the Spanish colonies in
America." t But still the native Indians sank under the
harassing tasks assigned to them by their masters, which were
so overwhelming, that the extinction of the whole race seemed
inevitable ; for " the natives of Hispaniola alone were reduced,
in the short space of fifteen years, from at least one million to
about sixty thousand souls." J In 1511, Ferdinand V., king of
Spain, permitted them to be carried in great numbers; and,
after Ferdinand's death, and during the minority of Charles V.,
Las Casas, bishop of Chiapa, styled the Protector of the Indians,
proposed to Cardinal Ximenes, then regent, to establish a
regular system of importing Negro slaves from Africa into
Hispaniola to work the mines of the island. The bishop urged
the cardinal to adopt this measure upon the ground of humanity
to the natives of Hispaniola. But this enlightened statesman
dismissed the plan altogether, declaring it to be, in his opinion,
unlawful to consign innocent people to slavery at all, and wholly
inconsistent with humanity to deliver the inhabitants of one
country from a state of misery, by consigning to that state the
inhabitants of another country. "The cardinal, however, in
rejecting the scheme of Las Casas, was not inattentive to the
miseries suffered by the Indians, He gave directions that strict
inquiry should be made into their state, and stringent regula-
tions adopted for securing their kind treatment ; but his views
as to the African Slave-Trade, and his wishes as to the Indians,
were alike disregarded."
Charles V. soon afterwards assumed the reins of empire ;
and representations were made to him of the diminution of the
Indians in the several islands settled by the Spaniards," and of
a number of Negi'oes, whom he carried to the south of Spain ; and from that time
it became customary for the captains of vessels who landed on the Gold-Coast, or
other parts of the coast of Guinea, to carry away a few young Negroes of both
sexes ; and thus the practice soon grew into a tratfic.
* C. B. Wadstrom's " Essay on the Colonization of Western Africa," p. 4.
(1794.)
t Clarkson's " History of the Slave-Trade," p. 48.
X Robertson's " Histoiy of America," p. 60.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 33
the superior patience and hardihood of the Africans ; and he
was urged to permit a further importation of the latter into tlie
islands, porque era mas util el trabajo de un Negro que de quatro
Indios : " because the work of one Negro was more than equal
to that of four Indians." * In 1517 he " granted a patent to
one of his Flemish favourites, containing an exclusive right
of importing four thousand Africans into America;" and the
islands of Hispaniola, Cuba, Jamaica, and Porto-Rico received
at that time the annual supply of four thousand Africans to
work their mines and cultivate their lands. The conduct of the
Spaniards towards the aborigines of the New World appears to
have been, about this time, almost without a parallel, even in
the history of the Slave-Trade itself; and it has been well
observed, that " although the suggestion of Las Casas is not
justifiable, yet his pity for the Indians is not to be wondered at,
when the horrors he witnessed are considered. ' The whole
story of mankind/ says Edwards, (vol. i. p. 104,) ' affords iio scene
of barbarity equal to that of the cruelties exercised by the
Spaniards on the unoffending natives of the Leeward Islands.'
The Spaniards distributed them into lots, and compelled them
to dig in the mines without intermission till death put an end
to their sufferings. Such as attempted resistance or escape
were hunted down with dogs, which were fed on their flesh.
Some Spaniards called-in religion to sanctify their cruelty;
forced their captives into the water, and, after baptizing them,
cut their throats to prevent their apostasy." f
Las Casas mentions, himself, the following story : " I once
beheld," says he, " four or five principal Indians roasted at a
slow fire ; and as the victims poured forth screams which dis-
turbed the commanding officer in his slumbers, he sent word
they should be strangled. But the officer on guard (I know his
name, and I know his relations in Seville) would not suffer it ;
but, causing their mouths to be gagged, that their cries might
not be heard, he stirred up the fire with his own hand, and
roasted them till they all expired : I saw it myself." J Dr.
Peter Heylin, in his "History of the whole World," who
wrote about eighty years after Las Casas, after speaking of
the probable origin or peopling of America, says, "But from
what root soever they did first descend, certain it is that they
had settled here many ages since, and overspread all the parts
* Bandinel, " Some Account of the Trade in Slaves from Africa," p. 29.
t Idem, ibid.
X Edwards's "History of the British West Indies," vol. i. p. HI. From Las
Casas, Ant. 1579.
D
34
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
and quarters of this spacious continent : there being no place
which tlie Spaniards, or anj' other adventurers, found desolate,
or waste, and without inhabitants. But their numbers are much
diminished since these late discoveries; the Spaniards behaving;
themselves most inhumanly towards this unarmed and naked
people ; killing them up like sheep appointed to the slaughter,
or otherwise consuming them in their mines and works of
drudgery. And had not Charles V. ordained, with most Chris-
tian prudence, that the natives should not be compelled to work
in the mines against their will, but that the Spaniards should
provide themselves of slaves elsewhere, the natives in a little
longer time had been quite exterminated, to the great reproach
of Christianity and the gospel. For so exceeding barbarous and
bloody were they at their first coming thither, that Haithney, a
nobleman amongst them, being persuaded to embrace the Chris-
tian faith, demanded, first, what he should get by being of that
religion ; and was answered, that he should get heaven, and the
joys thereof : then would he know, what place was destinate to
such as died uubaptized ; and was answered, that thej went to
hell, and the torment:-; of it : finally, asking unto which of these
two places the Spaniards went, and being told they Avent to
heaven, he renounced his baptism, protesting that lie would
rather go to hell with the unbaptized, than to live in heaven with
so cruel a people.'^ *
The " nobleman,'^ or chief, here referred to, must have been
very imperfectly acquainted with the principles of our holy
religion, even in its theory; nor could he have formed any just
conception of the miseries of that place " where their worm
dieth not, and the fire is not quenched;" or he would not have
expressed himself as he did, when he said, " he would rather go
to hell with the unbaptized, than to live in heaven with so cruel
a people -J' but it shows the man's strong feeling of indignation
at the oppressive and barbarous conduct of the Spaniards; and
so far as the Slave-Trade is concerned, and in protesting against
its iniquitous and diabolical traffic, it reflects no discredit either
on his head or his heart. This strong feeling he entertained
against the Spanish nation up to his death ; for on the conquest
of Cuba in 1511, under the command of Diego Velasquez,
" the only obstruction the Spaniards met with was from Hatuey,
a cazique, who had fled from Hispaniola, and had taken posses-
sion of the eastern extremity of Cuba. He stood upon the
defensive at their first landing, and endeavoured to drive them
* Heylin's " Cosmographie, and Historj' of the whole World," p. 1017. (1657.)
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 35
back to their ships. His feeble troops^ however, were soon
broken and dispersed; and he himself being taken prisoner,
Velasquez, according to the barbarous maxim of the Spaniards,
considered him as a slave who had taken arms against his
master, and condemned him to the flames. When liatuey was
fastened to the stake, a Franciscan friar, labouring to convert
him, promised him immediately admittance into the joys of
heaven, if he would embrace the Christian faith. ^Are there
any Spaniards,' says he, after some pause, ' in that region of bliss
which you describe?' 'Yes,' replied the monk; 'but only
such as are worthy and good.' ' The best of them,' returned
the indignant cazique, 'have neither worth nor goodness: I will
not go to a place where I may meet with one of that accursed
race
> " >k
But to return to the importation of Africans into the Ame-
rican islands : as they were found to be a more docile and
hardier race than the Indians, so they were worked accord-
ingly ; and we shall be at a loss to find the principle of humanity
either in the one case or the other. The island of Margarita
was discovered in the third voyage of Columbus, in 1498 ; and it
grew rapidly into importance " by reason of the rich pearl fish-
ing which they found on the shores thereof. But the Spaniards
either could not, or would not, compel the natives to dive into
the sea for pearl; but bought Negro slaves from Guinea, and
the coast of Africa, whom they enforced with great torments to
dive unto the bottom of the sea, many times seven or eight
fathoms deep, to bring up the shells in which that treasure was
included : where many of them were drowned, and some maimed
with sharks and other fishes." t The natives of Western Africa,
therefoi'e, who were forcibly shipped and sent to the Spanish
colonies in America, under the soft name of "Negro labourers,"
were compelled to dig in the mines, dive into the sea, or culti-
vate the land, namely, the sugar plantations. Now, whether
the sugar-cane be indigenous to the West Indies, is doubtful ;
but it is certain that it grows spontaneously in Africa; and
therefore, to take no higher ground, it was surely a preposterous
thing to drag the Africans across the Atlantic to the West
Indies, there to drudge and toil amidst whips and chains, in
cultivating a commodity which, had they been prudently and
humanely dealt w-ith, they might have been induced to raise as
an article of commerce upon their ow-n soil, and that much
* Robertson's " Histor\' of America," vol. i. p. GO. From Las Casas, p. 40.
t Heylin's " Cosmographie," p. 1090.
36
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
nearer to the European markets than the nearest of the West-
Indian islands. We cannot, therefore, join with the historian
previously quoted, in commending the " Christian prudence "
of the sovereign of Spain, in compelling his subjects in America
to "provide themselves of slaves elsewhere," much as we may
admire him for interposing on behalf of the aborigines of the
New World in protecting them "from Avorking in the mines
against their will." There is a difficulty, alsp, in reconciling
the proposal of Las Casas, with the humane and charitable spirit
of that excellent man ; but " the fault was in the head, not in
the upright heart;" and it is some relief to know that the
Spanish philanthropist at length saw his error and confessed it,
as appears from the following quotation : " It was proposed by
Las Casas to relieve the natives by sending out Castilian
labourers, and by importing Negro slaves into the islands.
This last proposition has brought heavy obloquy on the head of
its author, who has been freely accused of having thus intro-
duced Negro Slavery into the New World. Others, with equal
groundlessness, have attempted to vindicate his memory from the
reproach of having recommended the measure at all. Unfortu-
nately for the latter assertion," but opportunely for the full vin-
dication of his purity of intention, " Las Casas, in his ' History
of the Indies,^ confesses, with deep regret and humiliation, his
advice on this occasion, founded on the most erroneous views,
as he frankly states ; since, to use his own words, ' the same law
applies equally to the Negro as to the Indian.^ But so far
from having introduced Slavery by this measure into the islands,
the importation of Blacks there dates from the beginning of
the century. It was recommended by some persons in the
colony, as the means of diminishing the amount of human suf-
fering ; since the African was more fitted by his constitution to
endure the climate and the severe toil imposed on the slave,
than the eflFeminate islanders. It was a suggestion of humanity,
however mistaken ; and, considering the circumstances under
which it occurred, and the age, it may well be forgiven in Las
Casas, especially taking into view, that, as he became more
enhghtened himself, he v.as so ready to testify his regret at
having unadvisedly countenanced the measure." *
Charles V. also " lived long enough to repent of what he had
inconsiderately done " by the patent he had granted in 1517;
for, "in the year 1542, he made a code of laws for the better
protection of the unfortunate Indians in his foreign dominions,
* Prescott's " History of the Conquest of Mexico."
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 37
and he stopped the progress of African Slavery by an order that
all slaves in liis American islands should be made free/^ thus
showing that he was a friend both to the Indians and to the
Africans, as a part of the human race : manumission took place
as well in Hispaniola as on the Continent. Shortly afterwards,
however, Charles abdicated the throne ; and on Philip assuming
the reins of government, the order was reversed ; Slavery was
revived in America ; and the importation of slaves from Africa
was again permitted.* Not only so, but they were imported in
such quantities, that tliere was soon a Negro for every Spaniard
in the colonies ; and in whatever new direction the Spaniards
advanced in their career of conquest, Negroes went along with
them, not willingly, but of necessity. But though they bore,
with tolerable patience and fortitude, the hardships connected
with their new situation, we have instances recorded, even of an
early date, when they attempted to rescue themselves from
servitude, and thus become their own masters ; but they were
generally severely chastised for their temerity, or cruelly put to
death.
The precise time when the English Slave-Trade commenced
is not known ; but the first importation of slaves from Africa by
our own countrymen, of which we have any authentic record,
was in the reign of Elizabeth, in the year 1562 : this was by a
Captain (afterwards Sir John) Hawkins, who, having received
information that Negroes were very good merchandise in His-
paniola, and that slaves or Negroes might easily be had on the
coast of Guinea, fitted out three ships, sailed to Guinea,
obtained three hundred Negroes, carried them to Hispaniola,
sold them, and returned to England with the produce. Queen
Elizabeth is reported to have sent for him on his return from
this voyage, to have expressed her concern at the undertaking,
and to have told him that "if any Africans should be carried
away without their free consent, it Avould be detestable, and call
down the vengeance of Heaven upon the undertaking." Captain
Hawkins promised to comply with the injunctions of Elizabeth
in this respect ; but he did not keep his word ; for, being a
species of freebooter, he persisted in his lawless enterprises ;
and, in two years after, he made another voyage, when he seized
many of the inhabitants, and carried them off as slaves, which
occasioned Hill, in his "Naval History," in the account he
gives of this second voyage, to use these remarkable words :
" Here began the horrid practice of forcing the Africans into
* Clarkson's " History of the Slave-Trade," p. 50.
38 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA,
slavery, an injustice and barbarity which, so sure as there is
vengeance in heaven for the worst of crimes, will some time be
the destruction of all who allow or encourage it." In 1568
Hawkins made his third and last piratical and kidnapping
voyage to Africa ; and the remarkable words of Hill just
quoted, and the fate which Elizabeth had predicted, fell upon
him ; for this last voyage terminated miserably.* Surprise
has been expressed by some writers, "that such a trade
should have been suffered to continue under a queen who had
so solemnly and properly expressed her abhorrence of its injus-
tice and cruelty; but this is attributed to the pains taken, by
those interested, to keep her in ignorance of the truth :" whilst
some affirm that " the first recognition of the trade by the English
government was in 1562 — 3, in the reign of EHzabeth, when an
Act was passed legalizing the purchase of Negroes ; yet, as the
earlier attempts made by the English to plant colonies in North
America were unsuccessful, there did not, for some time after
the passing of this Act, exist any demand for Negroes sufficient
to induce the owners of English trading-vessels visiting the
coast of Africa to make Negroes a part of their cargo."
There appears to be some discrepancy in these two state-
ments. How an Act could be passed " legalizing the purchase
of Negroes," and Queen Elizabeth " kept ignorant of the
truth," is difficult to solve. But this little mist is dispersed in
a work of great merit by James Bandinel, Esq., a gentleman
long employed in the Foreign Office, and who, from his official
connexion with the Government, is well qualified to give to the
public an authentic and correct record of its transactions. The
work alluded to is entitled, " Some Account of the Trade in
Slaves from Africa," and was published in 1842. It is inscribed
to the Earl of Aberdeen, at that time Her Majesty's Secretary
of State for Foreign Aifairs, and was placed at the disposal of
Government. Mr. Bandinel states, that, in 1585, (not in
1562,) Elizabeth granted to Lords Leicester and Warwick a
patent to trade to Barbary for a period of twelve years ; and in
three years afterwards (1588) she granted another patent to a
company to trade to the Senegal and Gambia for the space of ten
years. Many authors insinuate, that by this patent she virtually
gave permission to trade in slaves ; whilst some affirm, that no
voyage was actually undertaken under the patent which she
granted. Mr. Bandinel observes : " Those writers, however,
* Clarkson's " History of the Slave-Trade," p. 52 ; " Pailiamentary Debates,"
p. 212. (1806.) See also Bandinel's "Account of the Trade in Slaves from
Airica," pp. 36, 37.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 39
appear to have been mistaken in both points; for I find in
Hakluyt and in Astell a mention of three voyaa;es undertaken
under this patent : one in 1589; a second in 1590, by Thomas
Dassell and others ; and a third in 1591, by II. Rainolds and
Dassell ; and this last voyage is specially declared to have been
undertaken in virtue of Her Majesty^s most gracious patent
given in the year 1588. The account of it, though short, is
very precise : the several places visited, and the trade at each of
the places resorted to, are particularized : hides, gums, ivory,
grains, ambergris, rice, ostrich-feathers, and some gold. But
Negroes are not mentioned ; so that I see no ground for sup-
posing that, excepting Hawkins, any Enghshman had, as yet,
mixed himself up with the African Slave-Trade.^^ * Mr. Ban-
dinel adds in a note, from Hakluyt, vol. ii. p. 610, " Hakluyt
considers this patent to be of sufficient importance to give it in
extenso. No mention in it is made of a trade in slaves." In
1631, Charles I. granted a charter to Sir B. Young, Sir K.
Digby, and others, for trade to Africa. " This was the second
British chartered company for trading to Africa ; and Edwards
says, that the merchants under that charter supplied the British
settlements in the West Indies with Negroes for working the
estates. This," observes Mr. Bandinel, "is the first record I
find of the English embarking in undertakings for the African
Slave-Trade since the solitary instance of Hawkins." f
But, detestable as every pure mind must perceive it to be, the
trade in slaves was so lucrative, and so gratifying to the lust
of gold, that it blinded the mind to all its horrors, and so
blunted the feelings of Europeans to all sense of justice, tliat it
is not improbable that some of our own countrymen engaged in
trade, vigilant and calculating as they are, had, previous to this,
embarked in tlie traffic. One instance we have upon record,
(in addition to that of Captain Hawkins,) which has escaped, it
is presumed, the notice of Mr. Bandinel. This was on the
island of Margarita, at one time so famous for its pearls, but
since of less note. This island was visited " in the year 1601,
by the English under Captain Parker, who received here £500
in pearls for the ransom of prisoners ; and took a ship w^hich
came from the coast of Angola, laden with three hundred and
seventy Negroes, to be sold for slaves." % This was about forty
years after Hawkins had first disgraced the British nation and
* Bandinel's " Account of the Trade in Slaves from Africa," pp. 38, 39.
t Idem, p. 44. From Andehsgn, vol. ii. p. 42,
X Heylin's " Cosmograpliie," p. 1000.
O Q Q 19
40 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
name. But, according to INIr. BandineFs statement, the char-
tered company of 1631 did not actually embark in this trade till
ten years after tl^ charter had been granted, Avhich would
make about other forty years subsequent to Captain Parker's
visit to Margarita. It was " in 1641 the industrious planters in
Ba^badoes procured some sugar-canes from Pernambuco in
Brazil. This was the first of our colonies which fell into sugar-
plantations ; and as it was impossible to manage the planting
of that commodity by white people in so hot a climate, so
neither could a sufficient number of such be had at any rate.
Necessity, therefore, and the example of Portugal, gave birth to
the Negro Slave-Trade from the coast of Guinea." * " This
seems to mark the time, when the English began to embark in
undertakings for importing slaves from Africa; but it does not
appear that they yet entered into what was called the ' carrying
trade' for other nations. They contented themselves with
supplying to the British settlements already mentioned (Ber-
muda, Antigua, Montserrat, &c.) the few slaves which they
wanted." f This, therefore, clears up the contradictory state-
ments of previous writers, so far as the British Government is
concerned, up to that period.
But though Great Britain did not take the lead in commenc-
ing the Slave-Trade, yet, as her settlements were forming in the
West-India islands, and the shameful traffic in human beings
having once begun, it proceeded and gathered strength from
day to day : every where the colonists commenced plantations,
and these colonies were stocked with slaves. Sanctioned by
Charles I. and Charles II., and by succeeding monarchs, this
new species of commerce rapidly increased. In the year 1662
a third chartered company was formed, entitled, " The Company
of Royal Adventurers of England, trading to Africa.'^ That
company undertook to supply the British West-India colonies
with three thousand slaves annually ; but they soon amounted to
about four thousand five hundred, and in a few years afterwards
to treble that number ; so that the island of Jamaica, which was
added to the British crown in 1655, and which contained at that
period only about fifteen hundred Whites, and about an equal
number of Negroes, had so greatly increased, that, in 1673,
there were 7,768 Whites and 9,504 Negroes on the island ; and
Barbadoes, about the same time, had 50,000 Whites, and
100,000 Negroes, t
* Bandinel's " Some Account of the Trade in Slaves from Africa," p. 47. From
Anderson, vol. ii. p. 72.
t Idem, p. 48. % Idem, p. o3.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 41
But " in 1697 the trade was thrown open by Act of Parha-
ment/^ and the statute-book of Britain was stained with the foul
blot of thus officially and publicly recognising this inhuman
traffic; the consequence was, that at this period about 25,000
Negroes were landed in the British colonies annually, partly by
the Royal African Company, and partly by British traders ; yet,
after the passing of this Act, " the annual exportation was at once
nearly doubled. In 1712 the number of British ships engaged in
the Slave-Trade was thirty- three ; but so rapidly did the trade
increase in the succeeding thirteen years, that in 1725 the num-
ber of ships had risen to two hundred.^^ * " Macpherson, in his
'History of Commerce,' states that the number of Africans
shipped in 1768, by all nations, for America and the West
Indies, was estimated at 97,000 ; that of these the British ship-
ping took 60,000, and the French 23,000 ; the remainder being
divided in small portions among the shipping of other nations ;
the Portuguese at that time only taking 1,700." t But the
French soon after this were found to be more energetic in this
trade. " The average export of France from Africa for ] 786,
1787, and 1788, is given by Arnould {Balance de Commerce,
part ii. § 3) at 30,000; and this statement is confirmed by the
official returns, which make the importation for the year 1787,
30,839, and for 1788, 29,506. Thus, in the five years imme-
diately preceding the revolution, about 150,000 Negroes had
been imported into the island of St. Domingo, of whom, if the
usual proportions were preserved, near two-thirds must have
been male adults. Can we wonder at the scenes which have
since passed there, when we combine with this circumstance the
absurd, perfidious, and cruel proceedings of the French Govern-
ment towards the colonies, and the manner in which it has
uniformly sported with the hopes and fears of the Negro
race ? " J It appears from Mr. Bandinel's statistics on the
European Slave-Trade, that about the middle of the last cen-
tury, there were in the European settlements in America, and
in the British possessions in the West Indies, 777,736 Negro
slaves, nearly one half of whom belonged to Britain ; and that
" list does not include the Danish, Swedish, and Dutch posses-
sions in the West Indies ; nor the English, French, or Dutch
possessions in Guyana ; nor the Spanish possessions on the main-
land of America, and in Cuba and Porto Rico ; nor the Portu-
* " Parliamentary Debates," p. 199. (1806.)
t Bandinel's " Some Account of the Trade in Slaves from Africa," p. 63.
J "Parliamentary Debates," p. 197. (1806.)
42 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
guese possessions in Brazil and elsewhere/^ * At this period
Jamaica contained 90,000 ; but from 1700 to 1786 the number
of slaves imported by Britons into that one island was com-
puted at 610,000; and in little more than a single century,
from the year 1680 to 1786, 2,130,000 Negroes were imported
into the British West Indies alone !
Great Britain, then, has nothing to boast in the simple fact^
that the guilt of originating this horrible system does not
belong to her ; for she was not far behind in the start ; and
having once followed the example of other nations, and em-
barked in it, she threw into it her accustomed energy, and soon
outstripped all the rest. The language of the sons of Jacob,
therefore, when they said one to another, '' We are verily guilty
concerning our brother, in that we saw the anguish of his soul,
when he besought us, and we would not hear," is but too
applicable to us as a nation. " We aYe verily guilty'' recklessly
guilty, ten-fold more guilty, concerning our African brother,
than any other nation, in that we saw the anguish of his soul,
when he besought us to come to his rescue, and we would not
hear. It was not because we did not hear, or that we could not
feel for him. It was because we Avould not hear. Humanity
gave way to avarice, justice to oppression ; and a power that
ought and might have been exerted in protecting the Africans,
and in punishing the man-stealer, was, alas ! more energetically
employed than any other state in robbing Africa of her chil-
dren, to increase her own comfort and private wealth, and thus
add to her public revenues.
I repeat, ive are verily guilty ; guilty in proportion to our
station in the scale of nations ; more guilty, because mentally,
morally, and physically superior to the puny, popish, and half-
civilized countries which had originated this monstrous evil.
We are verily guilty, " in that we saw the anguish of his soul,
when he besought us, and we would not hear." Yes ; '' when
he besought us;" for as this language is not metaphorical, but
was doubtless literally true in reference to Joseph's captivity, so
has this petition been presented, with uplifted hands, with
imploring looks and gestures, by many a poor Negro : he has
"besought us," with streaming eyes and pathetic appeals;
appeals which would have melted into pity any heart save that
of the slave-dealer, who goes out sometimes singly, and, when a
convenient opportunity presents itself, he then, tiger-like, springs
upon his prey, drags his victim into the thicket, and in the
* Bandinel's " Some Account nf the Trade in Slaves from Africa," pp.64 — 68.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 45
night carries him off a slave. And this has been the case not
merely with here and there an individual, or now and then a
family ; but whole villages have been depopulated ; and cargo
after cargo of the defenceless, innocent Negroes have we as a
nation carried away from their native land. And year after
year, and generation after generation, have British ships, and
British capital, and British subjects been engaged in trading
with the flesh and blood, the bones and muscles, of their fellow-
creatures !
Surely, " the voice of our brother's blood crieth " against us
" from the ground." Yes, the sands of Africa, saturated with the
life's blood of tens of thousands who have been slain in the
seizure, cry against us from the ground ; the deserts and the
trackless forests, strewed with the skulls and bones of the thou-
sands who have sickened and died in the march to the coast,
cry against us from the ground ; the prison-houses and
slave-barracoons planted along the skirts of the coast on the
borders of the Atlantic, crammed with hundreds of Negroes
who have survived the deadly march, promiscuously thrown
together with shackles on their legs, half perished with hunger,
— these cry against us from the ground. And, now that the
black hull of the rakish vessel is approaching the coast, and these
prisoners are liberated, — liberated only to be the more closely
packed on board the slaver, — O, what bitter lamentations, Avhat
multitude of voices, cry against us from the ground ! The
wind and the waves, the mighty surge on the beach, — these
join in the melancholy chorus ; and the scores of Negroes who
are often swamped and drowned on their passage to the slave-
ships, and whose bodies are washed ashore by the swelling tide,
— these, once more, cry against us from the ground. But
the bitter cries that are heard on board those floating tombs of
gasping humanity on the mighty deep, by the hundreds who
are stowed below the decks, and the sum total of misery endured
by those who live to reach the opposite continent, are known
only to God himself !
CHAPTER III.
THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.
The Existence of the Slave-Trade to be deeply regretted — The Attention of some
eminent Men directed to its Abolition — High Tribute to Granville Sharp —
Negro Slaves coming to England — Famous Case of Somerset, in 1772 —
Thomas Clarkson and William Wilberforce — The Society of Friends — "Writers
in Favour of Abolition — Godwyn — Baxter— Whitefield— John Wesley — Ram-
say— First Petition sent to ParUament — Small Committee of Quakers — The
Inhabitants of Bridgewater petition Parliament — Clarkson's " Essay on the
Slave-Trade" — Importance of its Publication — Clarkson devotes his Life to the
Cause — A Society organized and Committee formed — Magnitude of the
Object— The Subject introduced into Parliament — Opposition to the Measure
— The Friends of AboUtion persevere — Debates in Parliament — Memorable
Session of 1807 — The Slave-Trade abolished by the British Parliament.
A REVIEW of the origin, progress, and frightful extent of the
African Slave-Trade, with the dreadful evils and miseries con-
nected with it, cannot but awaken, in the mind of every lover
of his species, surprise and deep regret that the statute-book of
Great Britain should ever have been tarnished with so foul a
stain. That such a crime should have been allowed to continue
so long without bringing down upon us some heavy national
judgment from Heaven, can only be attributed to the long-
suffering and abundant goodness of Him who is "slow to
anger," and who "delighteth in mercy." But, "after this
scourge had been permitted to desolate Africa and to disgrace
mankind for two centuries and a half, the attention of men was
at length directed to it by some eminent philanthropists of this
country. Among these, a high place must be assigned to
Granville Sharp, than whom a purer spirit never resided in the
human form The wholesale violation of all human rights,
and flagrant wreck of all Christian duties, with which the Slave-
Trade and West Indian Slavery had so long outraged and in-
sulted the world, early attracted his regard ; and he persevered
in trying the legal question, at first held to be desperate, — How
far a slave, coming to this country under the power of his
master, continues subject to that authority, or gains his per-
sonal liberty in common with the other subjects of the realm.
Although not bred to the legal profession, he devoted himself
to the study of the law, for the purpose of prosecuting this
contention ; he enlightened lawyers with the result of his
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 45
researches; he overpowered opposition by the force and the
closeness of his reasonings ; he disarmed all personal opposition
by the unruffled serenity of his temper, the unequalled suavity
of his simple yet frank and honest manners ; he gave his fortune
as well as his toil to the cause; and he ceased not until he
obtained the celebrated judgment of the King's Bench, so
honourable to the law and constitution of this country, — that a
slave cannot touch our soil, but immediately his chains fall
away/'*
Of " the celebrated judgment of the King's Bench," to which
allusion has been made, and which took place in 1772, the follow-
ing was the origin: — It had been a common practice with planters,
merchants, and others, residing in the West Indies, even before
the year 1700, when they occasionally came to England, to bring
with them Negro slaves to act as servants during their stay. It was
perfectly natural that persons thus circumstanced should compare
their own condition of slavery and hardship with the freedom
and comfort enjoyed by servants in England ; and that, con-
sidering what would be their own hard fate on their return to
the islands, they should frequently abscond from their masters.
By the slaveholders it was contended that the Negroes were as
much their slaves when on British ground as when in the
colonies ; and therefore the masters, by advertisement and
otherwise, made search for them, and often had them seized and
carried away by force. The London papers not onl}^ contained
descriptions of the persons of the runaways, and stated the
rewards offered for their apprehension, but sometimes inserted
advertisements of auctions at which slaves who had not ab-
sconded were to be sold, either by themselves, or in the same
lot with horses, carriages, and harness, or any other stock of
the proprietor. An announcement of this kind was published
in the " Gazetteer," April 18th, 1769, and reads as follows : —
"At the Bull and Gate Inn, Holborn, a Chestnut Gelding, a
Tim Whisky, and a well-made, good-tempered Black BoyJ"
And on November 28th of the same year, an advertisement
appeared in the "Public Advertiser" to this effect: "To be
sold, a Black Girl, the property of J. B , eleven years of
age ; Avho is extremely handy, works at her needle tolerably,
and speaks English perfectly well ; is of an excellent temper,
and wilUng disposition. Inquire of Mr. Owen, at the Angel
Inn, behind St. Clement's Church, in the Strand." f
* " Speeches of Henry Lord Brougham," vol. ii.
t " Memoirs of Granville Sharp," vol. i. pp. 8, 75.
46 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Thus was England for a time disgraced, as the seat both of
Slavery and the Slave-Trade, " The slaves could be sold, with all
their good qualities particularized; and those who had absconded
were seized by their masters, or by men employed by them, in
the very streets, and dragged from thence to the ships : and so
unprotected were these poor slaves, that people in nowise
connected with them began to institute a trade in their persons,
making agreements with captains of ships going to the West
Indies to put them on board at a certain price."* What a
palpable contradiction was this to the bold assertion of the
advocates of Slavery, — that Negroes were not kidnapped in
Africa, — when the thing was actually done in the streets of
London ! But matters of this kind were not allowed to con-
tinue with impunity ; and Granville Sharp was one of the first,
most active, and energetic agents in putting a stop to such
disgraceful proceedings.
In the year 1765, an African slave, named Jonathan Strong,
was brought from Barbadoes by his master, who, while in Eng-
land, treated him very cruelly, particularly by beating him on
the head with a pistol, which occasioned it to swell, and after-
wards produced a disorder in the eyes, which threatened the
loss of his sight. To this an ague and fever succeeded, and a
lameness in both his legs. In this deplorable condition he was
turned adrift by his master, and left to go whither he pleased.
He was happily directed to Mr. Granville Sharp^s brother, — a
surgeon, whose kindness and humanity led him to devote a
portion of his time to healing the diseases of the poor. Here it
was that Granville Siiarp met with him, Avho, pitying his hard
case, supplied him with money, and afterwards got him a situa-
tion in the family of an apothecary, to carry out medicine.
When Strong had become healthy and robust in his appear-
ance, his master (Mr. David Lisle, a lawyer) happened to see
him engaged in this new employment ; and immediately formed
the design of repossessing himself of him. Having found out
Strong^s residence, he employed two persons to kidnap him.
This was managed by sending for him to a public-house in
Fenchurch- street, and there seizing him. By these men he
was conveyed without a warrant to the Poultry Compter, where
he was sold by his master to John Kerr, for thirty pounds. In
his distress. Strong sent to Mr. Sharp, who immediately went
to see the prisoner, but was refused access to him. He, how-
ever, insisted on being admitted to him, and charged the keeper
* Clarkson's " History of the Slave-Trade," p. 65.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 47
of the prison at his peril to deliver him up, until he had been
carried before a magistrate. Mr. Sharp then waited upon Sir
Robert Kite, the lord mayor, and obtained from him an appoint-
ment to hear the case. At the time assigned, Mr. Sharp attended,
as did also a notary public, and the captain of a ship which was
to have conveyed Strong to Jamaica. After a long discussion, the
lord mayor discharged Strong, as he had been taken up with-
out a warrant. But no sooner was the poor African thus dis-
charged, than the captain took hold of him, and said aloud,
"Then I now seize him as my slave." On this, Mr. Sharp
promptly laid his hand on the shoulder of the captain, and said
to him, " I charge you, in the name of the king, with an assault
upon the person of Jonathan Strong ; and all these are my
witnesses." At this charge, made in the presence of the lord
mayor and others, the captain was greatly intimidated, and,
fearing a prosecution, let go his prisoner, who departed under
the protection of Mr. Sharp.*
But though the injured Africans, M'hose causes had been
tried, escaped slavery; and though many who had been forcibly
conveyed into dungeons and on ship-board, ready to be trans-
ported into the colonies, had been delivered from their captivity
through the indefatigable exertions of Mr. Sharp ; he was not
yet satisfied. The issue had not hitherto been put on the broad
ground, "Whether an African slave coming into England became
free." This v. as the question which he wished to see determined;
and he resolved to have it fairly settled at the first opportunity
that off'ered. A case exactly in point soon occurred. A Negro,
named James Somerset, was brought to England by his master
in 1769, who intended after a time to take him back: but,
before their departure, Somerset, anxious to avoid another ex-
posure to the evils of Slavery, absconded. A strict search was
made for him, and he was taken and forcibly conveyed on board
ship. The circumstance was brought under the notice of Mr.
Sharp, who immediately commenced legal proceedings upon it ;
and as the master defended his right to the Negro, it was
brought to a trial, and was argued at three difterent sittings, in
January', February, and May, 1772. The ablest counsellors
were employed on both sides, and the opinion of the judges was
taken on the point. The memorable result was a glorious
triumph for the cause of humanity. It was declared, that as
soon as the Negro set his foot on British ground, he was free.
In allusion to this decision Cowper wrote his beautiful lines : —
* Clarkson's " History of the Slave-Trade," pp. 66, 67.
48 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
" Slaves cannot breathe in England : if their lungs
Iml)ihe our air, that moment they are free :
They touch our country, and their shackles fall.
That 's noble, and bespeaks a nation proud
And jealous of the blessing. Spread on, then,
And let it circulate through every vein
Of all your empire : that where Britain's power
Is felt, mankind may feel her mercy too."
" Thus ended/^ says Mr. Clarkson, " the great case of Somer-
set, which, having been determined after so dehberate an inves-
tigation of the law, can never be reversed while the British
constitution remains. The eloquence displayed in it by those
who were engaged on the side of liberty, was perhaps never
exceeded on any occasion ; and the names of the counsellors,
Davy, Glynn, Hargrave, Mansfield, and Alleyne, ought always
to be remembered Avith gratitude by the friends of this great
cause." But chiefly to Granville Sharp, under Divine Provi-
dence, are we to give the praise, as being the man " who became
the first great actor in it, who devoted his time, his talents, and
his substance to this Christian undertaking, and by whose labo-
rious researches the very pleaders themselves were instructed
and benefited. By means of his almost incessant vigilance and
attention and unwearied efi"orts, the poor African ceased to be
hunted in our streets as a beast of pre3^ Miserable as the roof
might be under which he slept, he slept in security. He walked
by the side of the stately ship, and he feared no dungeon in her
hold. To him we owe it, that we no longer see our public
papers polluted by hateful advertisements of the sale of the
human species,* or that we are no longer distressed by the
perusal of impious rewards for bringing back the poor and the
helpless into slavery, or that we are prohibited the disgusting
spectacle of seeing man bought by his fellow-man. To him, in
short, we owe this restoration of the beauty of our constitution,
this prevention of the continuance of our national disgrace.^f
This benevolent and distinguished individual stopped not
here, but continued to be a zealous and useful coadjutor,
* This execrable practice was not, however, wholly abolished at once. For seve-
ral years afterwards, rebels against humanity were still to be found. Tlie following
advertisement was sent to Mr. Sharp in 1782, copied from a Liverpool newspaper:
— "Liverpool, Oct. 15th, 1770. To be sold by auction, at George Dunbar's office,
on Thursday next, the 21st inst., at one o'clock, a Black Boi/, about fourteen years
old, and a large Mountain Tiger-Cat." — " Memoirs of Grau\ille Sharp," vol. i.
p. 140.
t Ci-arkson's " History of the Slave-Trade," pp. 71, 72.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 49
through the long period of his after-life, in all that related to
the extinction of the African traffic and the Slavery of the colo-
nies. He was soon after followed in his bright course by-
Thomas Clarkson and William Wilberforce. Of the former " it
has been justly said, — nor can higher praise be earned by man,
— that to the great and good qualities of Las Casas, — his bene-
volence, his unwearied perseverance, his inflexible determination
of purpose, piety which would honour a saint, courage which
would accomplish a martyr, — he added the sound judgment and
strict sense of justice which were Avantiug in the otherwise per-
fect character of the Spanish philanthropist/^ And of Mr.
Wilberforce it has been observed, with equal truth, that " few
persons have ever either reached a higher or more enviable place
in the esteem of their fellow-creatures, or have better deserved
the place they had gained, than William Wilberforce. He was
naturally a person of great quickness and even subtilty of mind,
with a lively imagination, approaching to playfulness of fancy.
And hence he had wit in an immeasurable abundance, and in
all its varieties ; for he was endowed with an exquisite sense
of the ludicrous in character, — the foundation of humour, — as
well as the perception of remote resemblances, — the essence
of wit. These qualities, however, he had so far disciplined his
faculties as to keep in habitual restraint, lest he should ever
offend against strict decorum, by introducing light matter into
serious discussion, or be betrayed into personal remarks too
poignant for the feelings of individuals. For his nature was
mild and amiable, beyond that of most men ; fearful of giving
the least pain in any quarter, even Avhile heated with the zeal
of controversy on questions that roused all his passions ; and
more anxious, if it were possible, to gain over, rather than to
overpower, an adversary ; disarming him by kindness, or the
force of reason, or awakening appeals to his feelings, rather than
defeating him by hostile attack.
" His eloquence was of the highest order. It was persuasive
and pathetic in an eminent degree ; but it was occasionally bold
and impassioned, animated with the inspiration which deep
feeUng alone can breathe into spoken thought, chastened by a
pure taste, varied by extensive information, enriched by classical
allusion, sometimes elevated by the more sublime topics of holy
writ, — the thoughts
' That wrapt Isaiah's hallow'd soul in fire.'
" Few passages can be cited in the oratory of modern times of
a more electrical effect than the singularly felicitous and striking
50 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
allusion to Mr. Pitt's resisting the torrent of Jacobin principles :
' He stood between the living and the dead, and the plague
was stayed.'. . . Wherefore, when he stood forward as the leader
of the Abolition, vowed implacable war against Slavery and the
Slave-Trade, and consecrated his life to the accomplishment of its
destruction, there was every advantage conferred upon this great
cause."*
But without detracting one iota from the well-earned fame of
the three illustrious individuals already mentioned, who may be
regarded as the leading stars in this moral hemisphere, whose
brilliancy and usefulness to mankind death itself could not
extinguish; for, tbough dead, they are yet speaking by their
writings ; — yet justice to other friends of Africa and the
Abolition cause, who had previously exerted themselves on
behalf of the oppressed Negroes, demands here a passing notice
of their efforts.
It cannot be denied, then, that in a collective capacity the
Society of Friends have the fairest claim to be considered, if not
the originators, yet among the earliest, the warmest, and the
most persevering supporters of Abolition. Their founder,
George Fox, had solemnly warned them not to engage in a
traffic so utterly indefensible ; and the celebrated William Penn,
as early as 1668, denounced it as cruel, impolitic, and unchris-
tian. At their Annual Meeting in 1696, the subject was intro-
duced to the whole society in America ; and the members, some
of whom, notwithstanding the instructions of their leaders, had
engaged in the traffic, were cautioned not to purchase any more
slaves, and enjoined to treat most mercifully those whom they
might then possess. Similar injunctions and cautions were
given at every Annual Meeting for many successive years ; and,
in 1727, at the general Yearly Meeting in London, it was
resolved, " That the importing of Negroes was cruel and unjust,
and was therefore severely censured by the Meeting.^' At each
Annual Meeting for twenty years afterwards, they invariably
passed substantially the same resolution ; thus keeping the sub-
ject continually before their members. But, in 1760, they
proceeded still farther : for they passed a declaration, at their
Annual Meeting of that year, that they would exclude from
their Society all who participated in any way in the guilty
traffic. Almost the first recorded instance of a voluntary sur-
render of slave-property occurred in 1770, when a gentleman of
that Society, named Miffin, having inherited from his father
* " Speeches of Lord Broujrhain."
THE SLAVE-TRADE, 51
nearly forty slaves, generously gave them their liberty, and
employed them as freemen,*
It appears, then, that, as a body, the Friends were the earliest
advocates of the Negro race, and made the most vigorous and
systematic efforts to effect their rescue. But while we give
them the commendation which is so justly their due, it would be
absurd to assign to them all the merit of Abolition. Several of
the old English writers of eminence, without expressly referring
to African Slavery, had in a general way testified against the
criminality of "bringing one human being into absolute subjec-
tion to the will of another." Our great poet Mdton, Bishop
Sanderson, and others had gone thus far ; and were followed by
several distinguished individuals of the English Church, and of
other communities, who raised their voice against the accursed
traffic by Avriting expressly on the subject.
The first EngUsh writer who specially advocated the cause of
the Africans was IVIorgan Godwyn, a Clergyman of the Church
of England. He wrote a treatise entitled, " The Negro's and
Indian's Advocate," which he dedicated to the Archbishop of
Canterbury. In the island of Barbadoes he had been an eye-
witness of the sufferings of the oppressed Blacks, and in an
affecting manner he exposed to his countrymen the brutal senti-
ments and conduct of their tyrants. About the same time, the
celebrated Richard Baxter on several occasions pleaded the
rights of the Negroes. In his " Christian Directory " he
severely animadverts upon the trade, saying, that " those who
go out as pirates, and take any poor Africans, and people of
another land, who never forfeited life or liberty, and make them
slaves or sell them, are the worst of robbers, and ought to be
considered as the common enemies of mankind; and that they
who buy them, and use them as mere beasts of burden, for their
own convenience, regardless of their spiritual welfare, are fitter
to be called demons than Christians." He then proposes
several queries, which he answers in a close and forcible man-
ner, showing the great inconsistency of this traffic, and the
necessity of treating those already in bondage with tenderness,
and with a due regard to their spiritual concerns.
About this time, and subsequently, many other tracts and
pamphlets relating to Slavery issued from the press ; and several
authors who did not write expressly on the subject, took care to
denounce the traffic in Negroes as one which is no less repug-
nant to the feelings of humanity than to the principles of
* Taylor's " Biographical Sketch of Tliomas Clarkson."
E 2
52
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
religion. Poets, as well as divines and historians, and even dra-
matic writers, did not fail to lift up their voice in its execration.
The Rev. Messrs. J. Wesley and G. Whitefield, both of whom
had witnessed the worse than brutal treatment of the Blacks in
America,, fearlessly proclaimed, from the pulpit and from the
press, the evils of " this complicated villany." As far back as
1739, Mr. Whitefield, when in America, addressed a printed
letter to the settlers of several of the States in which Slavery
most abounded. This production had the desired effect upon
many of those who perused it. He continued a firm friend to
the poor Africans, pleading their cause through life, and w^as the
means of enlisting many thousands of his followers in their
favour. Mr. Wesley, too, wrote a spirited and able pamphlet
on the subject, which he entitled " Thoughts upon Slavery,"
and which was pubhshed in 1774, two years after the famous
case of Somerset had been decided. In this little work Mr,
Wesley grapples with the monster evil in a masterly manner.
After defining Slavery, and distinguishing it from that mild
domestic service which obtains in our country, he refers to the
place whence the slaves are taken, and describes Africa, in its
physical and moral aspects. He states that the soil is pro-
ductive, and in many parts well cultivated, bringing forth fruits,
vegetables, and grain in abundance ; and that the meadows are
capable of feeding large herds of cattle. He speaks of the inha-
bitants as being comparatively mild and well disposed ; and
affirms that they are by no means difficult to govern, and that,
instead of being the stupid, senseless savages which they have
been described to be, they are, considering their few advan-
tages, the very reverse. He next touches upon the manner in
which the slaves are procured, the places to which they are
conveyed, and the treatment which they undergo in the colo-
nies ; and he closes the pamphlet with an appeal to merchants,
captains, planters, and others interested in the continuance of
the Slave-Trade. The last paragraph consists of a prayer
devoutly off'ered up to Almighty God, and is as follows : —
" O thou God of love, thou who art loving to every man, and
whose mercy is over all thy works ; thou who art the Father of
the spirits of all flesh, and who art rich in mercy unto all ; thou
who hast mingled of one blood all the nations upon earth ; have
compassion upon these outcasts of men, who are trodden down
as dung upon the earth ! Arise, and help these that have no
helper, whose blood is spilt upon the ground like water ! Are
not these also the work of thine own hands, the purchase of thy
Son^s blood ? Stir them up to cry unto thee in the land of
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 53
their captivity, and let their complaint come up before thee ; let
it enter into thy ears ! Make even those that lead them away
captive to pity them, and turn their captivity as the rivers in
the south. O burst thou all their chains in sunder ; more espe-
cially the chains of their sins ! Thou Saviour of all, make them
free, that they may be free indeed ! ^' *
Nor did Mr. Wesley stop here ; for Mr, Clarksou, in his
" History of the Slave-Trade,'^ after speaking of " the cele-
brated divine " who " undertook the cause of the poor
Africans" in the above-mentioned tractate, adds, " Mr. Wesley
had this great cause much at heart, and frequently recom-
mended it to the support of those who attended his useful
ministry:" and soon after the first Abolition Committee was
formed, one of their sittings " was distinguished by the receipt
of letters from two celebrated persons." One of these "was
Mr, John Wesley, whose useful labours as a minister of the
gospel are so well known to our countrymen." The date of this
Committee was August 27th, 1787. Mr. Clarkson further re-
marks, " Mr. Wesley, whose letter was read next, informed the
Committee of the great satisfaction which he also had experi-
enced, when he heard of their formation. He conceived that
their design, while it would destroy the Slave-Trade, would also
strike at the root of the shocking abomination of Slavery also.
He desired to forewarn them that they must expect difficulties
and great opposition from those who were interested in the sys-
tem; that these were a powerfid body; and that they would
raise all their forces, when they perceived their craft to be in
danger. They would employ hireling writers, who would have
neither justice nor mercy. But the Committee were not to be
dismayed by such treatment, nor even if some of those who
professed good-will towards them should turn against them.
As for himself, he would do all he could to promote the object
of their institution. He would reprint a new and large edition
of his ' Thoughts on Slavery,' and circulate it among his friends
in England and Ireland, to whom he would add a few words in
favour of their design. And then he concluded in these words :
' I commend you to Him who is able to carry you through all
opposition, and support you under all discouragements.' " f
On October 30th, 1787, "a second letter was read from Mr.
John Wesley. He said that he had now read the publications
which the Committee had sent him, and that he took, if pos-
sible, a still deeper interest in their cause. He exhorted them
* Wesley's Works, vol. xi. pp. 75, 7G.
t Clarkson's " History of the Slave-Trade," p. 259.
54 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
to more than ordinary diligence and perseverance ; to be pre-
pared for opposition ; to be cantious about the manner of pro-
curing information and evidence, that no stain might fall upon
their character ; and to take care that the question should be
argued as well upon the consideration of interest as of hu-
manity and justice; the former of which, he feared, would have
more weight than the latter : and he recommended them and
their glorious concern, as before, to the protection of Him who
was able to support them." * Nor was this all : for it may be
further added, as proof of the deep and unabated interest which
he took in the abolition of Negro Slavery, that one of the last
letters he ever wrote was addressed to Mr, Wilberforce only
four days before his death, exhorting him to persevere in the
" glorious enterprise" of effecting the abolition of the traffic in the
sinews and blood of men. " Go on," he writes, " in the name of
God, and in the power of his might, till even American Slavery
(the idlest that ever saw the sun) shall vanish away before it."t
Such was Mr. Wesley's brief, but strong and dying, testimony
against Slavery : for it is believed that this was actually the last
letter he ever wrote ; and the eminent statesman and Christian
philanthropist to whom it was addressed, docketed the letter,
" John Wesley's Last Words." J
Several able pamphlets and tracts preceded and followed Mr.
Wesley's publication in 1774, which assisted the good cause ;
but which we cannot particularize in this brief account of the
Slave-Trade. It must not be omitted, however, that in 1784,
another able and zealous advocate of the Negroes was found in
the Rev. James llamsay, vicar of Teston, in Kent, who had re-
sided nineteen years in the island of St. Christopher's, where he
had abundant opportunities of observing the treatment of the
Negroes, and had studied the laws relating to them. Some two
or three years after his return to England, he published a work
which he called, " An Essay on the Treatment and Conversion
of African Slaves in the British Sugar Colonies." Attempts
were made by interested parties to answer and refute the
charges contained in Mr. Ramsay's Essay ; but these attacks
only served to call forth " A Reply to personal Invectives and
Objections," by the same author : and Captain J. S. Smith,
R.N., who had been an eye-witness, nobly came forward and
corroborated the statements of Mr. llamsay; so that by this
controversy the cause of truth gained increased sway.
Public attention being thus in some degree arrested, the
* Clarkson's " History of the Slave -Trade," p- 261.
t Wesley's Works, vol. xiii. p. 127. J " Life of Wilberforce," vol. i. p. 297.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 00
wrongs of Africa soon found an active commiseration among the
body of Friends, of whom we have already spoken. From this
time that benevolent Society appears to have entertained a
growing desire to step out of its ordinary course in behalf of
this injured people. It had hitherto confined itself to the keep-
ing of its own members unpolluted by any gain from the oppres-
sion of the Blacks. But it was now ready to make an appeal to
others, and to bear a public testimony in favour of the Negroes.
Accordingly, in the month of June, 1783, when a Bill had been
brought into the House of Commons, providing certain regula-
tions with respect to the African trade, the Society of Friends
presented a petition to the legislature, praying that something
might be done to ameliorate the condition of the slaves. This
was the first petition which was ever presented to parliament in
favour of the abolition of the Slave-Trade.*
These efforts led to the combined exertions of a few indi-
viduals, who met together to consult what steps could be taken
to abolish the Slave-Trade, and to liberate the slaves in the West
Indies, The first meeting was held in July, 1783, one month
after the Friends had petitioned the House of Commons; and
it consisted of only six individuals ; namely, William Dillwyn,
George Harrison, Samuel Hoare, Thomas Knowles, John Lloyd,
Joseph Woods. To promote the object which they had in view,
they conceived it necessary that the public mind should be
enlightened respecting it. They had recourse, therefore, to the
public papers ; to which each member in turn was appointed to
write. Several articles, consequently, appeared in two of the
London, and in many of the provincial, newspapers. The next
year, (178i,) they began to print books on the subject. The
first was from the pen of Joseph Woods, one of the Committee,
It was entitled, "Thoughts on the Slavery of the Negroes;"
and contained a sober and dispassionate appeal to the reason of
all, without offering offence to the prejudices of any. It was
distributed at the expense of the Association, and proved to be
highly useful to the cause which it was intended to promote.t
About the same time, the Society of Friends, in their collec-
tive capacity, published a pamphlet exposing the horrors of
Slavery ; copies of which were sent to the king, the queen, and
most of the members of parliament. This work was entitled,
" The Case of our Fellow-creatures, the oppressed Africans, re-
spectfully recommended to the serious Consideration of the
Legislature of Great Britain. By the People called Quakers."
* Clarkson's " History of the Slave-Trade," p. 93. t Ihid. j). 9(i.
56
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Two thousand copies of this pamphlet were printed : these were
soon disposed of; and shortly after orders were given by the
same body of Christians for the reprinting and circulation of
ten thousand additional copies of " the Case/^
In the following year, (1785,) the Association continued their
exertions as before, and the public attention was again called
to the subject by Beuezet's "Warning to Great Britain and her
Colonies on the calamitous State of the enslaved Negroes/*
Copies of this pamphlet were sent by the Society of Friends to
magistrates, clergymen, and ministers of all denominations, and
to the masters of all the great schools, and several academies.
In this year, this little band of philanthropists was strengthened
by the addition of David Barclay, an active member of the
Society of Friends, who soon gave practical proof of his abhor-
rence of Slavery and his love of liberty : for, on becoming pos-
sessed of an estate in Jamaica, on which were more than thirty
slaves, he very honourably emancipated them all. In this same
year, a public meeting was held in the town of Bridgewater,
when the mayor, the Rev. G. White, and some other gentle-
men, advocated the cause of Abolition. The result of this meet-
ing was, that a petition to the British Parliament from the
inhabitants of Bridgewater, in favour of the Abolition of the
Slave-Trade, was agreed upon, and was presented to the House
of Commons by the Honourable A. Poulet and Alexander
Hood, Esq., the members for the tov.n. This was the second
petition that was drawn up respecting this important subject.
Thus this little Association, though " small and feeble was
its day," was nevertheless silently doing a great work ; and by
not being " weary in well doing," but continuing their publica-
tions and other means, they had already effected a happy change
in the minds of many influential individuals, and won them to
the support of their great undertaking. Every year now
brought with it some fresh and able friends ; whereby their
faith was strengthened, their hope encouraged, and their exer-
tions stimulated.
But the year 1785 was perhaps most remarkable on account of
the publication of a pamphlet by Thomas Clarkson, to whom, while
pursuing his studies at Cambridge, "the Slave-Trade" was given
as the subject of an Essay which gained one of the University
prizes. The origin of this important event was as follows : — Dr.
Peckard, then Vice -Chancellor of the University, had distin-
guished himself in the early part of his life by certain publications
on the intermediate state of the soul, and by others in favour of
civil and religious liberty, and had read with attention and inter-
THE SLAVE-TRADE.
57
est the publications of the Association against the Slave-Trade.
When it devolved upon him to pi-each a sermon before the
University, he powerfully and eloquently exposed the evils of
Slavery, and denounced it as a system utterly at variance with
every Christian precept. As he was then considering what sub-
ject he should select for a Latin prize-essay for the Senior
Bachelors, it occurred to him that none would be more suitable
than some point connected with Slavery : he therefore fixed upon
the question, " Is it right to make slaves of others against their
will?'^ Only a few weeks were allowed for the composition.
Clarkson, having in the preceding year gained the first prize for the Latin
dissertation, entered with all the ardoiir of rival scholarship on the subject, deter-
mined, if possible, to sustain his reputation. To obtain all the information he
could upon Slavery, he repaired to London ; and, having pm-chased Benezet's
" Historical Account of Guinea," with such other books bearing oa the question as
he could then procure, he retiu-ned to Cambridge, and commenced his task.
Little did he imagine what would be the result. Instead of the pleasure he had
anticipated in the skilful arrangement of his materials to secure success in his
hterary contest, his mind was continually on the rack by the successive narrations,
in the course of his reading, of oppression the most villanous and cruel. " It is
impossible," he remarks in his " History of Slavery," " to imagine the severe anguish
which the composition of this Essay cost me. All the pleasure I had promised
myself from the contest was exchanged for pain by the astounding facts that were
now continually before me. It was one gloomy subject from morning till night.
In the day I was agitated and uneasy ; in the night I had little or no rest. I was
so overwhelmed with grief, that I sometimes never closed my eyes during the
whole night ; and I no longer regai'ded my Essay as a mere trial for literary
distinction. My great desire now was to produce a work that should call forth a
vigorous public effort to redress the wrongs of injured Africa."
Bearing this idea constantly in mind, and being extremely anxious that no
thought that was connected with the subject should escape unrecorded, Clarkson
always slept with a light in his room, so that he might rise at any time in the
night, and put down any thing that occurred to his mind. An Essay composed
under such intensely excited feelings, and with such great care, could hardly fail to
be successful. On completing it, Clarkson handed it to the Vice-Chancellor, and
was again honoured with the first prize. But neither his literary reputation,
though he was by no means insensible to this, nor the time which elapsed
from the period when he finished his Essay to the day when its merits were
adjudged, could divert his attention from the all-absorbing subject. His desire to
expose the cruelties of Slavery abated not. After reading his Essay in the Senate-
house, in June, 1785, as is the usual practice, when the interest in such composi-
tions commonly subsides, the subject continued to engross all his thoughts. " I
could not," he says, " divest myself of the feeling that it was the duty of some one
to expose the horrors of this bloody traffic. It grew upon me from day to day,
and I could no longer keep my mind at rest." *
It will be seen, then, that though, previously to Clarkson's
Essay, much had been done, but little good comparatively had
* Taylor's " BiograjDhical Sketch of Thomas Clarkson."
58 WESTERN COAST OF ATRrCA.
been the result. Some more decided step required to be taken
to briug the facts of the case fully before the pubhc. An indi-
vidual was needed who would boldly and incessantly labour in
the work. Such an one was now raised up by a gracious Pro-
vidence in the person of Clarkson, on whose mind a growing
conviction fastened itself, tliat a vigorous personal effort ought
immediately to be made. His feelings on repairing to London,
after having read his Essay before the University Senate, he
thus touchingly describes : '* During my journey, the melan-
choly subject was not a moment absent from my thoughts. I
became several times seriously affected on the road. I occa-
sionally stopped my horse, dismounted, and walked. I tried
frequently to persuade myself that the statements in my Essay
could not be true. But the more I reflected on the authorities
on which they were founded, the more constrained was I to give
them credit. I sat down disconsolate on the turf by the road-
side; and here it forcibly occurred to me, that if the statements
I had made were facts, it was high time that something should
be done to put an end to such cruelties. ^^
This was in the summer of 1785. In the autumn this con-
viction became, if possible, deeper. The Abolition question was
the sole object of his thoughts : w aking or sleeping, he scarcely
ever forgot it. He sometimes walked into the woods, that
he might meditate on it in solitude. But there the question
still recurred, "Are these things true?" and the reply was the
same : " They are :" and the same inference was drawn : " Then
surely some person should interfere.'^ At length, with a
modest hesitation arising from his being " a young man of onl}''
twenty-four," he embarked on his glorious career by translating
his Essay into English, and enriching it with such additional
facts and illustrations as had occurred to him since he first com-
posed it, — facts which were the most likely to impress the public
mind with the abominations practised in the horrid traffic.
The work Mas printed, and entitled, " An Essay on the Slavery
and Commerce of the Human Species, particularly the African,
translated from a Latin Dissertation, which was honoured with
the First Prize in the University of Cambridge, for the year
1785 : with Additions." It Avas ushered into the world, as he
himself tells us, " in the month of June, 1786, or in about a year
after it had been read in the Senate-house in the first form."
This work contained a much more able exposure of the evils
connected with the African Slave-Trade than v/as to be found
in any former one. It was welcomed by all the friends of
liberty and humanity ; and Clarkson soon found, by the nume-
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 59
rous invitations which he received from different families, that
there were some who took a hvely interest in tbe welfare of the
despised and oppressed Negro.
While the Essay was making its way, and bringing many
new friends to the cause of Abolition, Clarkson was using his
utmost efforts to acquire more knowledge on the subject, that
he might the more effectually expose its evils. He remarks,
"I considered, lastly, that if I took up the question, I must
devote myself wholly to it. I was sensible that a little labour
now and then would be inadequate to the purpose, and that,
where the interests of so many thousand persons were likely to
be affected, constant exertion would be necessary. I felt cer-
tain that if ever the matter were to be taken up, there could be
no hope of success, except it should be taken up by some one
who would make it an object or business of his life.^'' This
Mr. Clarkson emphatically did, though not without due delibe-
ration. Dining one day with some friends of the cause at the
house of Sir Charles Middleton, then Comptroller of the Navy,
and afterwards Lord Barham, he avowed that he was ready
cheerfully to relinquish all other pursuits and prospects, and to
devote himself entirely to the cause of Abolition. This declara-
tion was made in the presence of several gentlemen, all of whom
applauded it highly, and promised to further the great object by
every means in their power.
Clarkson, though he had not made this avowal inconsider-
ately, was nevertheless the next morning " a little uneasy," and
questioned whether he had deliberated sufficiently to be able to
fulfil the pledge which he had given to the company on the
preceding day. He therefore determined to give the subject a
full consideration, and to balance every thing on both sides of
the question. For this purpose he took a walk to the favourite
place of his meditations, — the woods ; and having reached their
solitude, he reviewed the whole matter. He derived encou-
ragement, on the one hand, from his interview v.'ith Sir Charles
Middleton, ]\I.P., which opened to him a new source of informa-
tion and knowledge on the Slave-Trade, Sir Charles being
connected with the naval department of the public service.
Clarkson could also calculate on the assistance and support of
Dr. Porteus and Lord Scarsdale, both of whom were members
of the House of Lords. He had likewise secured the co-opera-
tion of Mr. Langton, who had an extensive acquaintance with
members of both Houses of the legislature ; and he could
depend upon Granville Sharp, J. Phillips, Ramsay, Dillwyn,
and the little Committee to vthich he belonged, as Avell as on
the whole Society of Friends, and some of his own personal
60 WESTERN COA.ST OF AFRICA.
acquaintance. On the other hand, he had been designed for
the Church, had ah'eady advanced as far as deacon's orders in
it : his prospects were brilliant, and the idea of sacrificing them
all staggered him not a little. He felt, too, a thirst after worldly
interests and honours, which he could not at once extinguish.
He then asked himself seriously, " Am I prepared to make the
sacrifices that will be required, and to endure the hardships that
will probably have to be borne ? And is there any chance that
my efforts will be successful?" He "was more than two hours
in solitude under this painful conflict:" but at length he
yielded, grace triumphed, divine power was imparted, and he
made up his mind according to the pledge he had given, — " not
because I saw any reasonable prospect of success in my new
undertaking, but in obedience, I believe, to a higher Power."
He adds, " I can say, that both on the moment of this resolu-
tion, and for some time afterwards, I had more sublime and
happy feelings than at any former period of my life."
In Mr. Clarkson we have a fine illustration of Christian phi-
lanthropy,— that charity which "seeketh not her own," He
had, on other occasions, as well as in the instance which thus
determined his public career, obtained sufficient academical
honours to open before him the high road to further fame ; and
he had at his command private property enough to set him at
liberty from any necessity of taking up the labours of a learned
profession as the means of his support. Having a higher ambi-
tion than that which is content to receive honour from men, he
was at once determined in the one object of his disinterested
pursuit, — one which was of sufficient interest to demand all the
energies of his soul, while it would most assuredly be blessed
with " the honour which cometh from God only."
Being fully decided, Clarkson now entered on his work with
renewed zeal. He visited every person that he could find in
and around London who had been in Africa, or in the West-
Indian colonies, or in any situation which gave them an insight
into the Slave-Trade. He boarded all the vessels that had been
engaged in that traffic, and inspected the wretched apartments
in which the slaves had been confined during the voyage. In
short, he devoted his life to waging an implacable war with the
huge monster of Slavery. The evidence which he collected, and
brought before a Committee formed to obtain the Abolition of
the trade, drew the attention of Mr. Wilberforce, and secured
at once the services of that great man, whose subsequent life
was devoted to the cause of liberty, whose dying moments were
cheered by its triumphs, and whose name M'ill be immortalized
in connexion with its history.
THE SL.WE-TRAUE. 61
The first meeting of this Committee was held at the house of
Mr. Wilberforce ; and there were present, besides Mr. Clarkson,
the Hon. John Vilhers, Mr. Powj's, Sir Charles Middleton, Sir
Eichard Hill, Mr. Granville Sharp, Mr. Ramsay, and Dr.
Gregory. After this, several friends of the Abolition met once
a week ; and they were now of opinion that the time was
approaching when they might petition with good effect : they
were only waiting for Mr. Wilberforce to give his word that he
would introduce the subject in Parliament. Mr. Langton deli-
cately hinted this, adding that no one could do it with such
good effect : on which IMr. Wilberforce pledged himself that he
would do so when the proper time arrived,— a pledge which all
were happy to receive, and which he nobly performed.
There was now no difficulty in forming a Committee to bring
the evils of Slavery more fully before the British nation, and to
organize a Society for its entire Abolition : an object which
Clarkson had regarded as of great importance. Accordingly, on
May 22 d, 1787, he had the happiness to see it formed. The
names of the individuals composing it were the twelve follow-
ing : — Granville Sharp, William Dillwyn, Samuel Hoare, George
Harrison, John Lloyd, Joseph Woods, Thomas Clarkson, Rich-
ard Phillips, John Boston, Joseph Hooper, James Phillips,
Philip Sansom. All these were present : and Granville Sharp,
who stands at the head of the list, and whom Clarkson styles
" the father of the cause in England,^' was called to the chair.
The next five on the list had been members of the previous
Association ; and the whole Committee, except three, — Clark-
son, Sharj), and Sansom, — were members of the Society of
Friends. Several other benevolent and distinguished persons
belonged to the Abolition Society, though they were not mem-
bers of the Committee.
The Abolition of Slavery, and the Abolition of the Slave-Trade,
were two distinct things ; and as the former evil owed its exist-
ence to the latter, it was thought desirable to commence opera-
tions against the traftic. Almost their first resolution pledged
them to circulate, more extensively than had yet been done,
information on this subject. They therefore published a " Sum-
mary View of the Slave-Trade, and the probable Consequences
of its Abolition," besides several other powerful tracts. It was
not enough for this little band of philanthropists to know that
the air of England was too pure to be breathed but by freemen,
and that a slave cannot touch our soil but immediately his
chains fall off. No ; though
" That 's noble, and bespeaks a nation proud,"
62 WESTERN COAST OF ArillCA.
yet that was uot enough. Their object was to cut ofr any far-
ther suppHes from Africa for the West-India markets, to block
up the impure stream at the fountain-head, to dig up the poi-
sonous tree by the root, to destroy the monster, and lay the
giant low : it was to sever the head from the trunk ; for they
conceived that, on the abolishing of the trade in slaves, the
death of Slavery must inevitably follow.
But an object so great, and the removal of evils so numerous
and complicated, were not expected to be accomplished without
steady and united effort, combined and untiring perseverance.
The trade in slaves was not confined to a single locality, or to
one or two parts of the continent of Africa. It began at the
river Senegal, and continued winding with the coast through its
several geographical divisions for more than three thousand
miles. It Avas not merely by the inhabitants skirting this long
line of coast that the supplies were furnished : but towns and
villages many hundred miles inland were ransacked, and their
indwellers led captive to the sea-side, where vessels were waiting
to carry them across the Atlantic. Besides, this species of trade
had existed for nearly three hundred years ; it was interwoven
into the system of commerce, and was an important item in the
revenue of nations. The planters and African merchants vigor-
ously exerted themselves to oppose its annihilation : thousands,
deeply interested in its continuance, lifted up their voice against
its abolition. Looking, then, at these as some of the evils and
difficulties in connexion with the Slave-Trade, it " may be con-
sidered, like the fabulous hydra, to have had a hundred heads,
every one of which it was necessary to cut off before it could be
subdued. And as none but Hercules was fitted to conquer the
one, so nothing less than extraordinary prudence, courage,
labour, and patience could overcome the other."
But the Committee was now formed; and, two days after its
formation, its members met again to promote the object of its
institution; and on June 12th its fourth meeting was held.
While the Committee was prosecuting its labours in London,
Clarkson was journeying from one part of the kingdom to
another, Adsiting Bristol, Liverpool, Manchester, and other
places, to collect further information upon the subject. Many
pamphlets and letters, illustrative of the evils of Slavery, were
now printed, and distributed gratuitously throughout the
country. The subject having at length excited general atten-
tion, public meetings were held, and many petitions were sent to
Parliament, praying for the abolition of a traffic which had so
long disgraced our national character.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 63
The time had now arrived for tlie topic to be discussed in the
British Parhament ; which was accordingly done on May 9th,
1788, Mr. Pitt, in the unavoidable absence of Mr. Wilberforce
through indisposition, introduced the subject in the House of
Commons. He was ably supported by Mr. Fox, Mr. Burke,
Sir W. Dolben, Mr. Whitbread, and several others. The
Motion passed unanimously : but, as it only went to pledge the
House that the Slave-Trade should be investigated the next
sessions, the result could scarcely have been otherwise. "It
was supposed that this would have terminated the parliamentary
discussion of the subject for that session ; but Sir W. Dolben, a
warm friend of Abolition, desirous of at once abolishing some of
the cruelties practised in the trade, moved, on May 22d, for
leave to bring in a Bill, that the number of slaves brought in
the vessels should be in proportion to their tonnage. The
Motion was seconded by Mr. Whitbread, and ably supported by
several members ; and leave was given to bring in the Bill.
The parties at Liverpool and Bristol now became alarmed, and
resolved to oppose the measure with all their power. They got
up several petitions in favour of the trade ; and they so far suc-
ceeded as to obtain leave to be heard by counsel at the bar of
the House in its defence." But, notwithstanding this, the
Motion was carried by a large majority.
"The Bill was carried to the Lords on June 18th; and its
opponents had the audacity again to apply to be heard by
counsel, though they had so signally failed in the Commons.
Leave was granted them, and the same witnesses were exa-
mined ; but, as the same searching queries were not put to them,
the impression was less favourable for Abolition. The debate
was protracted for several days ; the Bill was violently opposed,
and it was feared by its friends that it would have been lost for
the session. At length, however, it was carried, and on the last
day of the session it received the royal assent."*
Thus it will appear that though a great impression had been
made on the public mind generally in favour of the poor
Africans, there were many both in and out of Parliament who
contended for the continuance of the disgraceful traffic. Nor
did this opposition easily subside ; for " when Mr. Wilberforce
had, with matchless powers of eloquence, sustained by a body of
the clearest evidence, unveiled all the horrors of a traffic which,
had it been attended with neither fraud nor cruelty of any kind,
was confessedly, from beginning to end, not a commerce, but a
* Taylor's " Biographical Sketch of Thomas Clarkson."
64 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
crime, he was defeated by large majorities, year after year.
When, at length, for the first time, in 1804, he carried the
Abolition Bill through the Commons, the Lords immediately
threw it out ; and the next year it was again lost in the Com-
mons. All this happened while the opinion of the country was,
with the single exception of persons having West-India con-
nexions, unanimous in favour of the measure. At different
times there was the strongest and most general expression of
public feeling upon the subject; and it was a question upon
which no two men endowed with reason could possibly differ ;
because, admitting whatever could be alleged about the profits
of the traffic, it was not denied that their gain proceeded from
pillage or murder. Add to all this, that the enormous evil con-
tinued to disgrace the country and its legislature for twenty
years, although the voice of" nearly " every statesman of any
eminence was strenuously lifted up against it, and although
every press and every pulpit in the island habitually cried it
down."*
But the day of redemption was drawing nigh; and the
friends and advocates of the Abolition ceased not their endea-
vours: they were not yet "weary in well-doing;" nor did they
doubt of success, though they had been defeated again and
again. The indefatigable Clarkson, therefore, "took another
journey" to collect fresh matters of fact; that, in case the
House of Lords should insist upon hearing evidence on the
general question, he might be prepared to furnish them with
it : for the point Avas now almost certain of being carried
in the next session in the House of Commons. Accordingly,
on June 10th, 1806, the subject was again introduced in the
Lower House by Mr. Fox, and in the Upper House, on the
24th of the same month, by Lord Grenville. The Resolu-
tion which was moved in both Houses successively was to the
following eff'ect : " That this House, considering the African
Slave-Trade to be contrary to the principles of justice, humanity^
and sound policy, will, with all practicable expedition, take
efi'ectual measures for the Abolition of the said Trade, in such
manner, and at such period, as may be deemed advisable."
This Motion led to a lengthy debate in both Houses. Its prin-
cipal opponents in the House of Commons were General Tarle-
ton, Lord Castlereagh, General Gascoyne, and Sir W. Young ;
and, in the House of Lords, Lord Hawkesbury and the earl of
Westmoreland were the two greatest opponents. The advocates
* Lord Brougham.
THE SLAVE-TRADl
65
for Abolition in the Lower House, in addition to the illustrious
names of Fox and Wilberforce, were Sir Ralph Milbank, Mr.
Francis, Sir Samuel Romilly, Lord Henry Petty, Sir John
Newport, Mr. Canning, and Mr. Smith; and, in the Upper
House, besides Lord Grenville, who introduced the Motion, its
supporters were the bishop of London, the Lord Chancellor,
the bishop of St. Asaph, Lord Holland, the earl of Suffolk,
Earl Stanhope, Earl Grosvenor, Lord Ellenborough, and Earl
Spencer.
The opponents to the measure had a variety of objections,
which they hesitated not to urge. The Motion was considered
as ill-timed, and likely to prove injurious to the trade of Liver-
pool. It was asserted to be an act of injustice to the African
merchants, especially the planters and others holding property
in the West Indies. It was alleged, too, that tlie revenue of
the country would be considerably affected by the Motion.
Some contended for the continuance of this iniquitous traffic on
account of its antiquity, and actually quoted from the sacred
volume in support of its perpetuation. Nay, they coolly urged,
that it was an act of kindness to the Africans to carry them to
the West Indies, inasmuch as they were so totally degraded in
their moral and mental faculties, that nothing could cure them,
being evidently doomed by nature to Slavery : and they com-
plained of the harsh language which some of the advocates of
the Abolition used in denouncing the Trade.
But these extraordinary views of the case were ably met and
combated by the friends of the oppressed Negro. As to its
being ill-timed, the bishop of St. Asaph, in the Upper House,
commenced by observing, "My Lords, I cannot but assent to
every part of the Resolution now before your Lordships at any
season of the year, or any day of the year, or any hour of the
day." Mr. Francis said, " The members for Liverpool were at
liberty to ask for compensation, but he for one would never
grant it, for the loss of a trade which had been decLared to be
contrary to humanity and justice.'^ And as to its antiquity,
the bishop of London contended that this afforded no argument
for its continuance. Such a mode of defence, he observed,
would prevent the removal of any evil. It would justify the
practice of the Chinese, who have for many hundred years
exposed their infants in the streets to perish. It would justify
piracy ; for that practice existed long before we knew any thing
of the African Slave-Trade. Besides, as Mr. Smith, in a previ-
ous debate upon the Abolition, in replying to the antiquity of
Slavery, very forcibly remarked, "Because a practice had
6G WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
existed, did it necessarily follow that it was just? By this
argument every crime might be defended from the time of
Cain!"
The assertion that scripture countenanced this ungodly
traffic, was most ably refuted in both Houses ; and it was pro-
nounced to be " one of the greatest libels that was ever pub-
lished against the Christian religion." Both Mr, Wilberforce
in the Commons, and two noble Lords in the Upper House,
fearlessly and very justly placed the slave-dealers where the
apostle places them; namely, with "man- stealers," with the
"murderer of fathers and of mothers," and with the most pro-
fane criminals upon earth. Lord H. Petty rescued the slandered
Africans from the imputation of mental inferiority, by showing
that they had proved to be good soldiers and non-commissioned
officers ; and that they had been placed in situations requiring
fidelity, intelligence, and courage, and had fully answered the
expectations of those who thought the most favourably of them.
And then, lastly, as to the "hard words" which some of the
advocates of Abolition had applied to the Slave-Trade, and of
which the opponents to Abolition complained, such as " robbery,
rapine, and mm^der ;" it was contended that there was no rea-
son to recall any of those epithets ; for they were the most
appropriate to the system which they designated. It was
proved that Mr. Bryan Edwards, himself interested in the
Slave-Trade, had, in a speech in the House of Assembly of
Jamaica, designated it " a system of rapine, robbery, and mur-
der:" and Lord H. Petty well remarked, " I wish tbey who com-
plain of these hard words would reserve their indignation for
those who are guilty of the acts, instead of visiting it on those
who only do their duty in describing them."*
After many able speeches in support of the Resolution, it was
triumphantly and gloriously carried in the House of Commons
by a majority of 99; there being for the Motion 114, and
against it only 15. It also passed the House of Lords by a
majority of 41 to 20.
Encouraged by this moral ^dctory, the Abolition Committee
and the other friends of the oppressed Negro received fresh
strength and spirit ; for it was now almost universally believed,
in consequence of what had already taken place, that the Slave-
Trade had received its death- wound, and that the hateful system
could not long survive. At length the memorable session of
1807 arrived; and now a Bill called "An Act for the Abolition
* Hansard's " Parlianientarv Debates."
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 67
of the Slave-Trade " was introduced into Parliament ; and,
contrary to the practice hitherto adopted, it was first brought
forward in the House of Lords. Lord Grenville opened the
debate with a very luminous speech ; and, the question being
called for at four o'clock in the morning, it appeared that the
personal votes and proxies in favour of the Motion amounted to
100, and those against it to 36. Thus passed the Upper House
the first Bill in England which decreed that the African Slave-
Trade should cease. On February 10th, the Bill was carried to
the House of Commons ; and, after much able speaking, the
House divided, when there were for the question 283, and
against it only 16. The feeling in favour of the measure had now
become so general in the Commons, that, Mr. Clarkson observes,
" several of the old opponents of this righteous cause went away
unable to vote against it, while others of them stood in their
places and voted in its favour." On March 16th, the Bill was
read a third time, and then passed without a division ; and on
the 23d of the same month, it received the last sanction of
the House of Peers; and Lord Grenville congratulated the
House on the completion, on its part, of the most glorious
measure that had ever been adopted by any legislative body in
the world.
But even at this stage of its progress, when victory had
all but crowned the mighty and long-continued eff"orts of its
friends, there was, says Clarkson, "an awful fear throughout
the kingdom, lest the Bill should not receive the royal assent
before" the dissolution of the ministry, which was hourly ex-
pected. Happily, however, the commission for the royal assent
to the Bill was obtained in time, and but just in time, to be
executed before the dissolution took place. At half-past eleven
in the morning of March 25th, 1807, letters were received by
each member of the Cabinet, requesting them to deliver up the
seals of office. The Lord Chancellor, having just then been
informed that His Majesty had ordered his consent to be given
to this Bill bj^ commission, proceeded immediately to pass it in
the usual way. " And just as the clock struck twelve, while the
sun was shining in its meridian splendour, as if to witness the
august act, and to sanction it by its glorious beams, the Magna
Charta of Africa was completed." Thus terminated, after twenty
years' struggle, one of the most glorious contests that was ever
carried on in any age or country : and thus, to a certain extent,
was realized tlie poet's aspiration, —
" That where Britain's power
Is felt, mankind may feel her mercy too ! "
F 2
CHAPTER IV.
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY.
Abolition of the British Slave-Trade — More stringent Measures adopted to render
it effectual and complete — The Slave-Trade and Slavery two distinct Things —
The Attention of the Public is now directed to the latter— Miseries of West-
Indian Slavery — Anti-Slavery Society formed — Petitions to ParUament for the
Abolition of Slavery — Mr. T. F. Buxton selected as the parliamentary Leader
by the venerable Wilberforce — Letters of Mr. Wil])erforce to Mr. Buxton — -
The Subject introduced into the House of Commons by Mr. Buxton — His
spirited Reply at the Close of the Debate — Opposition in the Colonies to any
Change in the System — Persecution of Missionaries — The Rev. John Smith's
Imprisonment at Demerara — Feeling of the Nation in favour of Emancipation
— Death of the Rev. John Smith in the Jail at Demerara — " Smith's Case"
brought before the House of Commons — Touching Incident — The Proto-
martyr Stephen — Rev. \V. J. Shrewsbury driven from Barbadoes — Mr. Buxton
brings this Case before the House — Persevering Eitbrts of the Anti-Slavery
Society — The Cabinet Ministers, though favourable to Abolition, lean towards
the Planters — The Nation becomes aroused in favour of immediate and total
Abolition — Petitions sent to Parliament — Opposition of the Planters and
others interested in the Continuance of Slavery — Persecutions of Missionaries
— Parliamentary Session of 1833 — Great Auti-SlaveiT Meeting at Exeter-Hall
— Number of Petitions — One from the Females of Britain — Presented by
Mr. Buxton — The Abolition BiU passes both Houses of Parliament — Receives
the royal Assent — Memorable First of August, 1834, and 1838 — British
Slavery exterminated — Noble Effect of the Measure.
The BiE for the Abolition of the British Slave-Trade, as we
have seen, received the royal assent on March 25th, 1807 ; and
this law came into operation on and after January 1st, 1808.
That was a deed well done. Though the struggle was long,
and the issue of the conflict sometimes appeared doubtful,
at length victory came; and the authorised and shameless
traffic in slaves which had so long stamped a stigma upon our
country was abolished, and the gigantic foe was ''cast down;"
but, alas ! he was " not destroyed." For though the above-
mentioned Act made the Slave-Trade illegal, by whomsoever
carried on, in the British dominions, and prohibited British
subjects from engaging in it in any country whatsoever; yet,
as forfeitures and penalties of a pecuniary kind were the only
consequences of violating the law, the temptations of high profit
induced many, both capitalists and adventurers, to defy the
prohibitions of the statute ; and the clearest proofs were soon
furnished of Englishmen being employed in the Slave-Trade
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 69
under the most flimsy disguises. In the year 1811^ therefore,
an Act was carried by Mr. Brougham, making the Slave-Trade
felony, punishable with transportation for fourteen years, or
imprisonment and hard labour. But even this was found inade-
quate to check or bank up the poisonous stream ; so that in
1824 the Slave-Trade was declared to be piracy, and the punish-
ment enacted was death. In 1837, however, when the number
of capital offences was diminished in consequence of the milder
character that was given to the criminal law, the punishment
for trading in slaves was changed to transportation for life.
And there is every reason to think that no British subjects are
now, or have for many years been, directly engaged in this
execrable traffic.
Bnt the friends and supporters of Abolition did not content
themselves with the accomplishment of that victory, great and
glorious as it was. The Abolition of the Slave-Trade, and the
Abolition of Slavery, are two distinct things; and having suc-
ceeded in the former, they now turned their attention to the
latter. For, supposing that the Slave-Trade was abolished, its
effects were not annihilated. Personal and hereditary Slavery
still existed in all its cruel and aggravating forms. There were
thousands and tens of thousands in the British colonies in the
West Indies, who were groaning under the heavy task, and
bending beneath the iron yoke. Mr. Clarkson, therefore, not
long after the Abolition of the Slave-Trade, composed and
printed a pamphlet entitled, " Thoughts on the Necessity of
abolishing Slavery." Neither he nor his coadjutors had ever
regarded the Abolition of the Trade as a final measure. Their
ultimate object had ever been the entire extinction of Slavery
itself, which in that publication was proved to be the source
of innumerable evils, and as impolitic as it was unjust.
To promote this and other objects, a Society was formed in
May, 1807, called ^^ The African Institution;" which, while it
directed its attention to the foreign Slave-traffic as still carried
on by other nations, with the view of inducing them to adopt
measures for its abolition, bestowed its chief care upon West-
Indian matters, as they naturaUy came more within the power
of this country.
The accounts received from the colonies confirmed the state-
ments which Mr. Clarkson had made in his able pamphlet.
The sufferings of the captive Negroes were still unalleviated ;
they were held in the most degrading bondage, and treated with
the utmost cruelty. They were over-worked and ill-fed, and
every means was employed to brutalize and stvdtify their minds.
70 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Facts have beeu related in connexion with West-Indian Slavery,
sufficient to wring the soul with anguish, to mingle gall in our
bread in the day when we heard them, and to agonize the
slumbers of the night with thoughts of horror. Many pages
of true narrative have met the eye on this subject, that we
should shrink from encountering a second time; deeds have
been listened to, which the lips refuse to utter; books have
been perused, that are laid aside, being "written within and
without," full of " lamentations, and mourning, and woe."
The writhing population of our colonies were " minished and
brought low;" their bodies were crushed with unvarying op-
pression ; and hope was utterly expelled from their hearts.
Like the children of Israel under their Egyptian taskmasters,
they " hearkened not to " the voice of the comforter, " for
anguish of spirit, and for cruel bondage." (Exod. vi. 9.) " On
the side of their oppressors there was power; but they had no
comforter." (Eccles. iv. 1.) Years had passed away, but the Abo-
lition of the Slave-Trade had not conferred on thetn the slightest
boon : there was no appearance of that gradual Abolition of
Slavery which, it was confidently asserted, would, without any
farther legal enactment, certainly follow. Clarkson had, in his
able pamphlet, exposed the folly of supposing that such would
be the result. He had likewise proved Slavery to be at variance
alike with Christianity and with the laws of England ; and had
demonstrated that its effects were most pernicious, morally and
physically, to the owners as well as to the slaves ; that emanci-
pation was safe and practicable, and would be beneficial to both
parties ; and that liberty was essential to accoimtability, being
the birth-right of every intelligent being, in whatever country
or condition he might be born.
Similar statements had been made in several other able pam-
phlets, published at difi'erent times, by various authors : but the
political affairs of Europe for some years prevented the matter
from being vigorously taken up. In March, 1823, the Anti-
Slavery Society was formed. The first thing which they did was
to circulate authentic information on the subject as extensively as
they could. They did this by the publication of various tracts
and pamphlets descriptive of British Colonial Slavery. These
were drawn up in a simple yet interesting style, and contained
most powerful appeals to the sympathies of the nation in behalf
of the suff"ering Negro. They were eagerly read by all classes ;
and England seemed to be suddenly aroused from its insensi-
bility; so that, before the ensuing May, more than two hun-
dred petitions from various parts of the country were presented
ABOLlTIOxV OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 71
to Parliament, praying that some measure might be taken to
abohsh Slavery in the British Colonies. Most of the speeches
delivered at the meetings held in different towns were powerful
and striking ; and, as these were printed, the matter was thus
brought more fully before the public, and became one of deep
and unusual interest.*
The magnitude of the subject was indeed worthy of all the
interest it excited. The destiny of nearly a million of human
beings quivered in the balance. Whether they should be
treated as men endued with immortal souls, or be looked down
upon as the beasts which perish ; whether they should enjoy
the liberty to which all God's creatures are entitled, as of right,
or be harassed, oppressed, tormented, and stinted both of bodily
food and of spiritual instruction; whether the colonies should
be peopled with tyrants and barbarians, or be inhabited by
civilized and improving Christian communities ; were questions
calculated to put in action all the best principles of our nature,
and to move all the noblest feelings of the human heart. It
was no wonder, therefore, that a matter of such vast importance
was taken up by the enlightened, the humane, and the religious,
all over the empire.
But, after all, Parliament was the field in which the battle was
to be fought. Mr. Wilberforce, the eloquent champion of the
African race, was sinking enfeebled under the weight of years,
and the want was felt of a new parliamentary advocate. But a
gracious Providence, always ready to help those who look for
Divine aid, had provided one in the person of Mr. (afterwards
Sir Thomas Powell) Buxton, whose name so early as 1817 was
amongst the directors of the African Institution, and who had
been in the House of Commons for five years as member for
the borough of Weymouth. He had already proved himself an
able ally of Sir James Mackintosh in the amelioration of our
criminal code, had taken an active part in the abolition of
suttees in India, and had given powerful support to Mr. Wilber-
force in his endeavour to prevent an apprehended extension of
Slavery in our South- African possessions. Indeed, Mr. Wilber-
force had had his eye upon him for some time, as an able and
active coadjutor in every thing that was humane, philanthropic,
and truly good, even before he came into Parliament. In a
letter which Mr. Wilberforce wrote to Mr. Buxton in Novem-
ber, 1816, when the latter had taken an active part in relieving
the distress which prevailed in Spitalfields, and had made an
* Taylor's " Biographical Sketch of Thomas Clarkson."
73 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
excellent speech on the occasion, after congratulating him on
his " successful effort in belialf of the hungry and the naked,"
he says, "I anticipate the success of the efforts which I trust
you will one day make in other instances, in an assembly in
which I trust we shall be fellow-labourers/^ And in the fol-
lowing year, when Mr. Buxton had published a work on " Prison
Discipline," which produced a powerful impression, Mr. Wilber-
force wrote to him on the subject, and thus concluded : '' May
it please God to continue to animate you Avith as much bene-
volent zeal, and to direct it to worthy objects ! I hope you
will come soon into Parliament, and be able to contend in
person, as well as with your pen, for the rights and happiness of
the oppressed and the friendless. I claim you as an ally in this
blessed league." And in May, 1821, Mr. Wilberforce again
addressed him, in a letter of some length. After stating that
"it is now more than thirty-three years since" he "for the
first time gave notice in the House of Commons that he should
bring forward the question concerning the Slave-Trade ;" and
that he was prevented from doing so, when the time arrived, by
indisposition ; but that Mr. Pitt readily at his request under-
took ttie matter : he now appealed to Mr. Buxton, under some-
what similar circumstances, as he had long wished " to bring
forward that great subject, — the condition of the Negro slaves
in our transatlantic colonies ; " but he had been waiting, with
no little solicitude, for a proper time and suitable circumstances
of the country for introducing this great business : and, latterly,
for some Member of Parliament, who, if I were to retire or to be
laid hy, would be an eligible leader in this holy enterprise." He
then states, " I can no longer forbear resorting to you, as I for-
merly did to Pitt, and earnestly conjuring you to take most seri-
ously into consideration the expediency of your devoting yourself
to this blessed service Let me, then, entreat you to form an
'alliance' witli me, that may truly be termed ' holy •/ and if I
should be unable to commence the war, and, still more, if, when
commenced, I should be unable to finish it, do I entreat that
you would continue to prosecute it." *
It was not, however, till after long and mature deliberation
that Mr. Buxton accepted the weighty charge involved in Mr.
Wilberforce's proposal, — that he should become the leader of the
Anti-Slavery cause in the House of Commons; though he had
been nominated to it by the solemn voice of the venerable
Wilberforce, and the unanimous suffrages of such men as
* " Memoirs of Sir Thomas Fowell Buxton," pp. 62, 75, 117, 118.
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 73
Stephen, Allen, William Smith, Lushington, Zachary Macaulay,
and other friends, who encouraged him to enter vipon this ardu-
ous undertaking. But he appears to have arrived at his final
decision in the autumn of 1822, when Mr. Wilberforce and
Mr. Macaulay spent some weeks at his residence at Cromer-
Hall in Norfolk. The session of 1823 was now rapidly approach-
ing : and as " the great subject has fallen into my hands,'^ to
use his own words, " I am very earnest about Slavery. It seems
to me that this is to be the main business of my life, — this and
Hindoo widows." Early in March, 1823, Mr. Wilberforce
published his well-known " Appeal on behalf of the Slaves."
Petitions, as already observed, now "began to flow in:" the
lead was taken by the Society of Friends, and it was determined
that the presentation of their appeal by the hands of Mr.
Wilberforce should be the opening of the parliamentary cam-
paign.
He introduced it by saying that a similar petition which he
had had the honour of presenting nearly thirty years before,
had been the first effort against the kindred iniquity of the
Slave-Trade ; and that, in presenting this one, he considered
that the first stone was laid of an edifice which would flourish at
some future period, an ornament to the land. Mr. Canning
asked whether it was his intention to found any Motion upon it.
Mr. Wilberforce said it was not, but that such was the intention
of an esteemed friend of his. Mr. Buxton then gave notice
that on the 15th of May he would submit a Motion, " that the
House should take into consideration the state of Slavery in the
British colonies." The 15th of May arrived, and just before he
went to his honourable post, Mr. Buxton wrote to a friend as
follows : " In five minutes I start for the House. I hope to
begin at five o'clock. I am in good health, in excellent spirits,
with a noble cause, and without a fear. If I am only given
a nimble tongue, Ave shall do." *
Such was the manner in which Mr. Buxton entered upon this
" holy enterprise," this " blessed service." He began by mov-
ing a Resolution, " That the state of Slavery is repugnant to
the principles of the British constitution and of the Christian
rehgion ; and that it ought to be gradually abolished throughout
the British colonies, with as much expedition as may be found
consistent with a due regard to the well-being of the parties
concerned." This was the first sound of the trumpet in the
holy war of emancipation ; and from that moment the doom of
* " Memoirs of Sir Tliomas Powell Buxton," pp. 127 — 129.
74 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
British Slavery was sealed : for though many a hard-fought
battle and many a wearying delay intervened, the great cause
of African freedom was never more to be effectually obstructed.
The debate concluded with a reply from Mr. Buxton, who
had been told by his opponents that the Negro did not feel his
slavery, and that the danger arose not from Slavery itself, but
from the discussion of it in the House ; to which he answered,
"What, then, does the slave require any hint from us that he
is a slave, and that Slavery is of all conditions the most misera-
ble ? Why, Sir, he hears this, he sees it, he feels it, too, in all
around him. He sees his harsh, uncompensated labour; he
hears the crack of the whip; he feels, he Avrithes under, the
lash. Does not this betray the secret ?
' This is no flattery ; these are counsellors
That feelinyly persuade him what he is.'
He sees the mother of his children stripped naked before the
gang of male Negroes, and flogged unmercifully ; he sees his
children sent to market, to be sold at the best price they will
fetch ; he sees in himself, not a man, but a thing, — by West-
Indian law a chattel, an implement of husbandry, a machine to
produce sugar, a beast of burden ! And will any man tell me,
that the Negro — with all this staring him in the face, flashing
in his eyes, when he rises in the morning, and when he goes to
bed at night — never dreams that there is injustice in such treat-
ment, till he sits himself down to the perusal of an English
newspaper, and there to his astonishment discovers, that there
are enthusiasts in England, who from the bottom of their hearts
deplore and abhor all Negro Slavery ? There are such enthu-
siasts ; I am one of them ; and while we breathe, we will never
abandon the cause, till that thing, that chattel, is reinstated in
all the privileges of man." *
Mr. Buxton^s characteristic style, and his spirited reply, are
mentioned by Mr. Wilberforce as having been, "not sweet
indeed, but excellent :" and a recent writer on this subject has
beautifully remarked, "It must have been interesting and
affecting to see the comparatively youthful senator step forward
and consecrate his energies to the great cause, while the venera-
ble AVilberforce sat by, like a parent eagle, impelling, directing,
supporting, and dehghting in the flight of its eaglet ; or, rather,
like the ancient prophet Elijah, anointing his successor, and
leading him to the spot where his own prophetic mantle should
* Hansard's " Parliamentarv Dehates."
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 75
descend upon liim, as tlie pledge of ' a double portion of liis
spirit/ " * Mr. Buxton had indeed caught his spirit, and
he gave the subject a voice within those walls which have
so frequently echoed with the eloquence awakened by the
most momentous interests. In introducing that celebrated
Motion he boldly declared, "The object at which we aim is
the extinction of Slavery, — nothing less than the extinction of
Slavery, — in nothing less than the whole of the British
dominions.^^
. The Motion, upon the whole, was well received by the House,
though it involved too many interests for it to make its way to
the extent so much desired by its advocates. Mr. Canning's
Amendment, therefore, varying but little from the Motion of
Mr. Buxton, speedily passed both Houses of Parliament. But
as the execution of the Bill was left to the colonial authorities,
it proved, as had been feared, to be entirely useless. The plans
for the instruction of the Negroes, and for the amelioration
of their condition, with those corrections of abuses upon which
Parliament had determined, were entirely disregarded by the
colonial authorities; and the Bill became a mere dead letter.
Indeed, the news of Mr. Buxton's attack on what the planters
considered to be their just rights, and of the acquiescence of the
Government in his principles, were received in the West Indies,
with two or three honourable exceptions, with the most vehe-
ment indignation. For some weeks after the arrival of the
despatches, not the slightest restraint seems to have been put on
the violent rage of the planters. An extract from the " Jamaica
Journal" of June 28th, 1823, will furnish a specimen of the abuse
lavished upon the British Parliament, and " those canting, hypo-
critical rascals," the Abolitionists. The extract is as follows : " We
will pray the Imperial Parliament to amend their origin, which
is bribery ; to cleanse their consciences, which are corrupt ; to
throw off their disguise, which is hypocrisy ; to break with their
false allies, who are the saints; and finally to banish from
among them all the purchased rogues, who are three-fourths of
their number." t
The missionaries on the spot, of various denominations,
received a large share of abuse and persecution, and were, in
several instances, imprisoned. But the Anti-Slavery Society
had been previously formed and organized ; and many provincial
and local societies and committees, in different parts of the
* Copley's " History of Slavery."
t " Memoirs of Sir Thomas Fowell Buxton," p. 138.
76 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
country, were in active operation, in which the venerable Clark-
son again took an active and distinguished part : and this great
philanthropic Society took care to inform the public of all that
transpired in the colonies, by means of the seasonable pamphlets
and tracts which they constantly published.
It was also about this time, that is, early in the year 1824,
that the great case of the missionary Smith's persecution, trial,
imprisonment, and untimely death, — in which all the forms of
judicature had been prostituted, all the rules of law broken,
and all the principles of justice outraged, — came before the
House of Commons. The Rev. John Smith was an excellent
and devoted missionary belonging to the body of Independents.
He was an innocent man ; yet, being brought before a court-
martial of militia officers at Demerara, he was condemned to be
hanged. But his treatment in prison destroj'cd his previously
failing health, and he died in his dungeon about half-past
one o'clock on the morning of February 6th, to the everlasting
disgrace of the local authorities and most of the European inha-
bitants of that island. The persecution and imprisonment of
Mr. Smith caused a great sensation in England, even before the
report of his death arrived : and the conduct of the directors of
the London Missionary Society, on this deeply affecting occa-
sion, was marked by deep sympathy for their calumniated agent,
as well as by much prudence, self-possession, and dignified firm-
ness in seeking redress at the Colonial Office.
On the 1st of June a Motion respecting " Smith's Case" was
brought forward in the House of Commons by Mr. (now Lord)
Brougham, "in a brilliant speech of four hours' length, which
produced a strong effect upon public feeling." Nearly two
hundred petitions, from various denominations, and from differ-
ent parts of the kingdom, had been presented at that time,
expressing the same sentiments of indignation. Mr. Brougham's
Motion of censure was powerfully supported by Mr. Wilberforce,
Mr. Denman, Mr. Williams, and Dr. Lushington : and though
the Motion was lost, the debate was of singular service to the
cause. The great speeches delivered were spread through all
parts of the country ; the nakedness of the horrid system was
exposed ; the corruptions as well as the cruelty of Slavery were
laid bare ; the determination of the colonies to protect its worst
abuses was demonstrated ; the necessity of the interference of the
mother-country with a strong hand was declared ; and even the
loss of the Motion showed the people of England how much
their own exertions were still required, if they would see Slavery
extirpated, by proving that upon them alone the fate of the
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 11
execrable system huug. From that time the nation began to
awaken to the truth; and the rehgious pubHc especially was
strongly enlisted on behalf of the oppressed missionaries and
their persecuted converts ; and this feeling soon increased into
a detestation of the system of which such intolerance was the
natural fruit.
I cannot forbear transferring to these pages, from " the Life
of Sir T. F. Buxton," an affecting yet deeply interesting
fact connected with some of the last moments of the perse-
cuted and martyred Smith, which the amiable and excellent
editor of the work has, in a most praiseworthy manner, rescued
from oblivion. "When Smith was dying in his prison, (which is
described as a place only suited to purposes of torture,) he was
compelled by his persecutors to draw a bill upon the funds of
the London Missionary Society, in order to defray the expenses
of his so-called trial. Many years afterwards the secretary of
that Society, in arranging some old papers, met with this bill.
In looking at it, his attention was drawn to one corner of the
sheet, and, on examining it more carefully, he found, written in
a minute hand, the reference, 2 Cor. iv. 8, 9 j on turning to
which he found the text, ' We are troubled on every side, yet
not distressed ; we are perplexed, but not in despair ; perse-
cuted, but not forsaken ; cast down, but not destroyed.^ " *
This touching incident affords a striking proof of the divinity
and power of the gospel which Mr. Smith had preached to
others, in the support which it afforded him under peculiarly
trying circumstances : for it may be truly said he died hi the
cause of God, and he died for it ; but
" His God sustain'd liim in his final hour :
His final hour brought glory to his God."
We have also, in this beautiful quotation, a fine illustration of
that divine charity that " thinketh no evil, beareth all things,
believeth all things, hopeth all things, endureth all things ;
charity " that " never faileth." (1 Cor. xiii. 5, 7, 8.) We recog-
nise in the persecuted missionary of Demerara the spirit of the
proto-martyr Stephen, who, whilst pelted to death with stones,
"which crushed his body, " kneeled down, and cried with a loud
voice. Lord, lay not this sin to their charge. And when he had
said this, he fell asleep." (Acts vii. 60.)
But though there was a similarity in the deaths of these two
Christian martyrs, their funerals were very dissimilar. The
bitter persecuting Jews had stoned Stephen to death ; but they
* " Memoirs of Sir Thomas Fowell Buxton," p. 140.
78 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
were not so inhuman as to deny him burial, they did not pro-
hibit his friends from attending him to the grave. Hence it is
stated, "Devout men carried Stephen to his burial, and made
great lamentation over him/^ (Acts viii, 2.) But this pri\ilege
was denied to the martyred Smith, and that in a British isle in
the nineteenth century. The authorities at Demerara had even
prohibited the afflicted wife from attending the body of her
husband to its last resting-place ; and he was interred at four
o^clock in the morning instead of ten in the forenoon, as was
at first intended. But "Mrs. Smith exclaimed, in aloud and
frantic voice, ' General Murray shall not prevent my following
my husband to the grave, and I will go in spite of all he can
do.'" Accompanied, therefore, by her faithful friend Mrs.
Elliott, though they were threatened with imprisonment if they
attempted to follow the corpse, she " left the jail at half-past
three in the morning, dark as it was, accompanied only by a
free black man, ■with a lantern; and proceeded to the burial-
place, where they beheld the mournful spectacle, — a beloved
husband, and a dear friend, committed to the silent grave." *
But to return : In the following year Mr. Wilberforce, the great
champion of the oppressed, retired from Parliament ; on which
occasion he wrote to Mr. Buxton as his " Parliamentary Exe-
cutor," wishing him to move for a new writ for Bramber : and,
seven years afterwards, his heart being still in the Avork, though
he had left the House, he again wrote to his " dear friend," as his
" heir-at-law," urging him to direct his attention to the subject
of the Slave-Trade as conducted by foreign nations, as well as
to the extinction of Slavery in the British colonies.
Soon after the insurrection at Demerara, a riot took place at
Barbadoes ; the Eev. William J. Shrewsbury, a Wesleyan mis-
sionary, was driven from the island by an infuriated mob of
Whites, the Wesleyan chapel was demolished, and "not one
stone left upon another." In June of this year, (1825,) Mr.
Buxton brought this subject before the House of Commons, in
a long and able speech. He did this without any apphcation
on the part of the Wesleyan Society : his speech was the spon-
taneous emanation of his own sense of justice, and respect for
religious liberty : and in this spirit he was ably supported in the
House by different Members. Mr. Canning, when speaking of
Mr. Shrewsbury, said, that " there did not appear the slightest
ground of blame or suspicion." Mr. Shrewsbury had been
charged, among other matters, with corresponding with Mr.
* Smith's " History of Missionan- Societies," vol. ii. p. 355.
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 79
Buxton : but the latter stated iu the House, " I never received
from or wrote to him a single letter ; nor did I know that such
a man existed, till 1 happened to take up a newspaper, and
there read, with some astonishment, that he was going to be
hanged for corresponding with me ! " The result of this discus-
sion was the unanimous " indignation " of the House of Com-
mons at the disgraceful transaction in Barbadoes, and an
assurance, in its Address to His Majesty, of its readiness " to
concur in any measure which His Majesty may deem necessary
for securing ample protection and religious toleration to all His
Majesty's subjects in the West-India colonies."
Mr. Buxton, in his reply, observed, " He was glad that the
discussion had taken place ; he was sure it would do much ser-
vice. He rejoiced, also, at the manly sentiments uttered by the
Right Honourable Secretary for Foreign Affairs. It would
teach the West Indians to be more moderate in their future
measures. They had had their triumphs over justice and
humanity : the missionary Smith was mouldering in his grave ;
the missionary Shrewsbury was an exile; and the noble-minded
Austin, who vainly attempted to stem the torrent of prejudice,
had lost his golden hopes of church-preferment, and was at that
moment a stipendiary curate in an insignificant village. A few
more such triumphs would only hasten the downfall of the
whole system. He wished it to be distinctly understood, that
it was his firm and unalterable resolution to devote all his life
and his efforts to advocate the cause of the slaves ; and that he
would persist in that course, in spite of opposition, unpopularity,
obloquy, or falsehood."
The Anti-Slavery Society at this juncture commenced the
issue of regular monthly publications ; and at the end of the
year they held a public meeting in London, and again peti-
tioned Parliament to take into consideration the subject of
Negro Slavery, and to adopt more effective means for its Aboli-
tion. Their example was followed by the country at large; and
nearly six hundred and fifty petitions, all most respectably and
numerously signed, were presented during the ensuing Session.
The effects of the debates on the persecuted missionaries and
the destruction of mission-property became the universal topic ;
and the name of the martyred Smith especially was the general
rallying cry. The Cabinet Ministers, on the whole, were rather
friendly than otherwise to Abolition ; but they wished it to be
carried on their own plan, and were averse to the employment
of other agents than the regularly constituted colonial autho-
rities. There was, in fact, on the part of the Government, too
80 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
much leaning towards the planters ; and the most flimsy excuses
were constantly adduced for not adopting decisive measures.
Mr. Buxton in 1824 had boldly charged the Government with
vacillation, and with the violation of a " distinct pledge that the
condition of the slave population should be ameliorated:^' and
when the same devoted advocate of the Negroes presented the
London petition against Slavery on the 1st of March, 1826, he
again pointed out how ineffectual had been the recommenda-
tions of the Government to the colonial legislatures geuerally.
He closed his speech by saying, " I am anxious to say nothing
that can give offence to any party ; but it is my duty broadly to
declare my confirmed and deliberate conviction, that this House
must do the work themselves, or suffer it to be altogether
abandoned." *
But the Government preferred to give the West Indians
" another year " before they would legislate, so that nothing was
accomplished during that session. But the impossibility of any
thing being done effectively by the legislatures abroad to relieve
the oppressed, became daily more apparent. The accounts
received from the colonies were still most unsatisfactory. The
most studied inattention was paid to the parliamentary injunc-
tions, and very determined opposition made to the intro-
duction of any measures that would diminish the rigours of
Slavery. It now became certain that Slavery would never be
ameliorated by the masters of slaves; their laws would never
reach the evil : the remedy, as Mr. Buxton had stated, could
only be effectually applied by the Government of a free people.
At length the British lion was aroused, shook his mane, stood
erect, and resolved to accomplish his purpose. The spirit-
stirring lines of Cowper were the sentiment of the whole nation :
" My ear is pain'd,
My soul is sick, wath every day's report
Of wrong and outrage -with which earth is fill'd.
We have no slaves at home : then why abroad ? "
The time was now approaching when the chains of the Negro
were to be snapped asunder : their cry, and the united cry of
Britain, had reached the ear of Heaven. Upwards of five thou-
sand petitions in favour of Negro Emancipation were presented
to Parliament during the session of 1831 ; and the annual
meeting of the Anti-Slavery Society of that year was crowded
to excess, and the Besolutions were in favour of immediate and
total Abolition. The West-Indian proprietors resident in Eng-
* Hansard's " Parliamentary Debates."
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVEKV. 81
land were panic-stricken at the miglity movement that was now
going on; and, to counteract the progress of public opinion,
they published and circulated through the country a manifesto,
declaring Abolition to be inevitably ruinous to the slaves as
well as to their owners, boldly contradicting the well-authen-
ticated instances that had been published of the manner in
M^hich the slaves were still treated, and falsely asserting that so
much was their condition now improved that they were per-
fectly contented and happy. These assertions were believed by
a few ; but by the great majority of the nation they were
treated with the contempt which they merited.
The colonial authorities, finding that matters were coming
to a crisis, were maddened wdth rage. They determined to
wring from the oppressed Negroes the utmost degree of labour
they could exact, and to treat them with the most rigorous
severity. Their plan was, wickedly and wantonly to goad them
into disobedience by their unreasonable exactions, and then to
make their revolt a pretext for asserting their unfitness for
emancipation.* They abridged the Christmas holidays, which
from time immemorial had been allowed to the slaves ; and ones
more vented their spleen against the missionaries, several of
whom they arrested in the street, dragged them from their
homes, and " cast them into prison, charguig the jailor to keep
them safely." (Acts xvi. 23.) The missionaries of different
denominations were designated sectaries, and none was ex-
empt from abuse and persecution. Moravians, Baptists, and
Wesley ans were alike stigmatized as fanatics. The Rev. Messrs.
Knibb and Burchell of the Baptist Society were driven from the
island of Jamaica; and they arrived in England at the very
juncture when their evidence before a Parliamentary Committee
was of the utmost value. Among the Weslcyans, the Rev.
Messrs. AVilliams, Campbell, Whitehouse, Orton, Greenwood,
Box, and Rawden, had been thrown into jail, and barely
escaped with their lives. The planters stopped not here, but
dem oil shed the chapels in which the poor despised Negro had
worshipped the God of heaven, burnt or pulled down the
mission-houses, and tried every expedient to banish the mis-
sionaries, intimating that nothing short of their removal could
save the islands from ruin.
But all this outburst of feeling on the pai't of the planters,
and others interested in the continuance of Slavery, only tended
to increase the desire and determination, on the part of the
* Taylor's " Biographical Sketch of Tliomas Clarkson."
a
83 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
friends of the long-oppressed Negro, to ask for immediate and
total Abolition. At length the session of 1833 arrived, and the
first reformed ParUament assembled. The Anti-Slavery Society
in London held their meeting this year a month earlier than
usual. The Great Room at Exeter-Hall was crowded to excess.
Lord Suffield took the chair. The speeches were most elo-
quent and interesting; and the Resolutions were to the effect
that immediate emancipation was safe and practicable, and was
a debt which had long been due to the oppressed Negroes. A
few days afterwards, another meeting was held in the same
Hall, at which were present delegates from the principal towns
in the United Kingdom. Samuel Gurney, Esq., took the chair.
A Resolution was passed unanimously, that Slavery must and
should be exterminated ; and a memorial to that effect, signed
by all the delegates, was drawn up and presented the next day
to Earl Grey.*
Lectures were delivered in all the counties of the kingdom.
Crowded meetings were every where held; and the friends of
the cause bestirred themselves from one end of the country to
the other. The newspapers and periodicals caught the enthu-
siasm; the cause of mercy seemed the cause of religion; and
many of the clergy and Dissenting ministers did not hesitate to
urge upon their flocks the sinfulness of Slavery, and the righte-
ousness of joining heart and hand for its overthrow. The flame
soon spread far and wide ; and from every corner of the land
petitions poured in. The number of signatures attached to the
petitions presented this session were calculated to amount to
nearly a million and a half.f One of the petitions was from the
females of Great Britain, which, within a very short period, had
received no less than 187,000 signatures. This was presented
by Mr. Buxton ; but the document was so bulky that he was
himself unable to carry it ; so that " three honourable members
went out with JNIr. Buxton, and, by the united exertions of the
four, the petition Avas brought in and placed upon the table,
amidst the laughter and cheers of the House.^' J
This was on the 14th of May, and the Government BiU for
Emancipation Avas introduced to the House by Mr. Stanley,
then Colonial Secretary, on the same evening. It underwent
various modifications, and did not finally pass both Houses till
the 20th of August. It was not entirely what the Abolitionists
wished; but they were thankful for it as it was; and on
* Taylor's " Biographical Sketch of Thomas Clarlvson."
t "Memoirs of Sir Thomas Fowell Buxton," p. 31G. J Idem, p. 321.
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 83
August 28th it received the royal assent. The Bill which was
then passed enacted, that Slavery should cease to exist in the
British colonies, on the 1st of August, 1834. From that time a
system of apprenticeship was to commence; and the domestic
slave was to have his full liberty in 1838, and the field-slave two
years later. The premium of twenty milUons to the planters, as
a remuneration for the loss which, it was assumed, they would
sustain, was strongly objected to by some of the Abolitionists,
who also contended that every Negro ought at once to have
been made absolutely free, without any pecuniary grant what-
ever. But Slavery was felt to be an evil of dreadful magnitude ;
and, as the nation had for ages participated in the guilt of it, both
by connivance and direct sanction, though the sacrifice of twenty
millions of money on the part of the country was great, the sum
was cheerfully advanced ; and the measure altogether gave general
satisfaction, especially to the religious part of the community.
The anxiously-expected First of August, 1834, at length
arrived; and the precious boon of liberty was bestowed on
upwards of eight hundred thousand Negroes, who were then
raised from the condition of chattels, and goods, and things, to
the dignity of man ; and our nation was freed from a load of
guilt which had long hung like a mill-stone about our necks,
ready to sink us to perdition. In the Statute-Book there was
now an Abolition Code. Liberty of conscience was given to the
too long degraded and persecuted Negro in all our Colonies;
and Great Britain, from whose empire the sun never sets,
became on that day universally free !
That day was hailed with unutteraljle delight by the recipi-
ents of the boon, as well as by the friends of Abolition. That
day made the slave a free man, knocked off his fetters, and
healed that soul into which the iron had so frequently entered.
It was observed very generally throughout England as a day of
rejoicing : and what a pleasing contrast did that morning pre-
sent, in the West Indies, to the assertions of the fearful and
feverish planter, and to scenes of former times ! In several of
the islands proclamations were issued which announced the
First of August as a day of Public Thanksgiving, and ordered
all churches and chapels to be opened at the usual time for
morning service, as on the sabbath-day. Business was sus-
pended, and the shops were universally closed : it was a holiday
by common consent ; and that ever-memorable and glorious day
was passed in a religious and most happy manner. Many thou-
sands of human beings, who had that morning, for the first
time, breathed the air of freedom, — of freedom at least from
G 2
84 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
absolute bondage, — assembled iu cheerful crowds to praise and
Avorship Him who "looseth the prisoners."
The Rev. Peter Duncan, though not in the West Indies
at the time, was intimately acquainted with West-Indian
affairs; and, in his interesting "Narrative of the Wesleyan
Mission to Jamaica," observes on this subject : " The eventful
First of August at last arrived, — a day which, according to the
predictions of some, was to be marked with disorder, rapine,
and blood. But how delightfully were such predictions falsi-
fied ! The behaviour of the emancipated Negroes exceeded the
expectations of their best friends. On that day, and the follow-
ing sabbath, thousands of the apprentices were seen wending
their way to the house of prayer. Jamaica had never witnessed
such vast religious assemblies before. Never on that island had
so many voices been raised in praise to the Giver of all good :
never had so many united in prayer at the throne of the hea-
venly grace. Thousands of petitions ascended to God on behalf
of the king, and the benevolent in the mother-country, through
whose efforts the oppressed had been set free. It is true,
restrictions did exist under the system of apprenticeship; but
much was gained. The reign of persecution was at an
END; and no man was allowed to invade the sacred rights of
conscience. Sunday markets were abolished; and all might
employ the time of the day in attending to those sacred
exercises for which the sabbath was instituted."*
In some of the Wesleyan chapels watch-night services were
held on the previous evening, when suitable and appropriate
sermons were preached ; and, just as the clock struck twelve, it
was stated that the First of August had arrived, with the cheer-
ing announcement, " You are all free ! " Gratitude flowed from
every heart, and tears of joy ran down many a sable face;
whilst some, in the fulness of their loyalty to their beloved sove-
reign, and with an enthusiasm which had never before been
witnessed, loudly exclaimed, " God save the king ! Long live
King William IV. ! God save the king ! " Devout and fervent
prayers were then offered up for the king, the royal family, the
British Parliament, and British Christians generally, by whom,
under God, the great boon was conferred; and the spirit of
loyalty and gratitude was great and general. But was the
Author and Giver of "cAory good and perfect gift" left out of
the question? By no means. One of the missionaries, from
whom we have already quoted, and who communicated the
* Duncan's "NarratiTe of the Wesleyan Mission to Jamaica," pp. 361, 362.
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 85
result of tlie First of August to the Missionary Committee from
the island of Antigua, where the legislature wisely dispensed
with the apprenticeship, thus writes : " O how did my heart
thrill with ecstasy, while hundreds upon hundreds, just delivered
' from the house of bondage,' made the place ring again," whilst
3^et upon their knees, " with the voice of joy and thanksgiving !
It was like Israel in the time of David and Solomon, when ' all
the congregation blessed the Lord God of their fathers, and
bowed down their heads, and \vorshipped the Lord, and the
king/ (1 Chron. xxix. 20.)"*
Another Wesley an missionary, in describing a parallel scene
wdiich occurred in another chapel on the same island at the same
hour, says, " It seemed as if the very heavens rejoiced with us ; for
just at this moment the thunder rolled, with all the majesty of a
royal salute, while the clouds poured down their precious contents
upon the thirsty ground, as if emblematical of those hallowing
influences of the Holy Spirit which we then felt/'t Through-
out every island, in fact, rang the glad sound of thanksgiving to
the Father of all; for the chains were broken, and the slaves
were free. One of the Moravian missionaries, writing from
Jamaica, says, " We have good reason to believe that this was a
day of real blessing. The Negroes frequently expressed their
thankfulness to God for the benefit conferred upon them ; and
promised good conduct, on their part, in their new civil condi-
tion. One said, ' First we thank the Father in heaven, and
then the king, and massa/ his master and former owner.
Surely, then, on the first day's enjoyment of freedom, a suffici-
ent pledge was given for its future improvement. To God were
its earliest hours devoted, in a grateful acknowledgment, that,
while the boon was a blessing in itself, it was the more sacred,
because He was the great Dispenser of it. At his feet the freed
men poured out the exuberant joy of their hearts; and, from
the lips of his minister, they willingly received those truths
which were calculated to make tliem free indeed, to seal on their
hearts a lasting sense of the favour that day conferred, and
embody in their lives every thing which could adorn the
doctrine of God their Saviour."
The interest of that auspicious day was, indeed, greatly
heightened by the consideration that the pure influence of our
holy religion, the religion of the gospel, had procured this great
blessing, on the one hand ; and, on the other, had prepared the
recipients for the right use and enjoyment of it. It was the
* " Wesleyan Missionary Notices," voL vii. p. 555. f Idem, p. 554.
rf6 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
influence which Christianity had exerted upon the masses of the
people at home, that obtained this great charter; -and it was
missionary toil abroad, and the preaching of the same everlast-
ing gospel, which had supported the Negro under the infliction
of grievous wrongs, and which now fitted and prepared him to
enter upon the possession of his undoubted rights. "Glad
tidings ^^ of the peaceable conduct of the Negroes reached Eng-
land from all the colonies, thus proving that they were worthy
of the confidence which was reposed in them : and the general
feeling was, "To God be all the praise \"
Thus closed the memorable First of August, 1834. By many
persons that great measure was regarded as an experiment, con-
nected with considerable hazard ; but it succeeded beyond the
hopes of its most devoted advocates. The religious Negroes
very generally did honour to their profession ; and subsequent
events have proved emancipation to be productive of great good.
Education now began to advance with surprising rapidity ; and
Christianity made a steady progress, that sanctified the boon
which the emancipated Negro had received; so that the
debased and crouching slave became converted into an industri-
ous and happy peasant, whose godliness and honesty com-
manded general respect. The following extract from a series of
articles on the West Indies, which appeared in the " Christian
Times" of March 2d, 1849, will exhibit the truth of this state-
ment : —
In Jamaica and British Guiana there are at least fifty thousand jjersons who,
only a few years ago, were slaves, who are now living on their own freeholds, upon
which they liave, for the most part, erected houses for tliemselves of a far more
durahle and comfortahle kind than the Negro houses they formerly occupied. It is
no uncommon thing, in the latter colony, for twenty or thirty Negroes who have
been refused leases of the houses and grounds they occupied when slaves, or to
whom the land-owners decUned to sell those houses and grounds, to become pur-
chasers of an estate of five hundred acres ; to employ a surveyor to divide it
amongst them in lots proportioned to the capital which each one contributed ; by
their united labour to make up the sea and back dams ; to open, widen, and deepen
the canal by which the laiul is drained ; to make up the roads running through the
estate ; to build each one a comfortable house for his family ; and to erect, by their
joint exertions, a place of worship in which they, and the Negroes on contiguous
estates, meet for mutual instruction and the worship of the Almighty.
Four years soon passed away, and, by the praiseworthy exer-
tions of British Christians, on the First of August, 1838, the
apprenticeship system throughout all the islands ceased, and
Slavery was entirely exterminated. That day was also cele-
brated as a day of public thanksgiving ; and rehgious services
were held, when appropriate sermons were preached, and suitable
ABOLITION OF BRITISH SLAVERY. 87
addresses delivered. The Negro then became fully free ; every
link of the galling chain was broken ; the sun of liberty slione
upon him in unclouded glory : his sabbaths were his own, his
children were his own, and he could worship God according to
the dictates of his conscience. On that day the sceptre of
Queen Victoria extended only over freemen in the West Indies,
not a single slave being left in thraldom.
" ' But then, it has cost the country twenty millions ! ^ And
do we grudge it ? It has cost us twenty millions ; but it has
saved the colonies ! It has cost us twenty millions ; but it has
liberated the Negroes ! It has cost us twenty millions ; but it
has preserved our honour, and raised our fame among the
nations of the earth. It has cost us twenty millions ; but, I trust,
it has saved us from the anger of that Deity, who could not but
have looked upon us in wrath and indignation, had not this
evil been removed.^^ Tlius spoke Sir Fowell Buxton at the
Wesleyan Missionary Anniversary in Exeter-Hall. And this
feeling w^as general ; for the poet's philanthropic aspiration was
caught by the nation : that was the feeling
" Through every vein
Of all your empire : — that where Britain's power
Is felt, mankind may feel her mercy too."
And therefore twenty millions of money were cheerfully given.
That was a noble sacrifice ; but it was in a noble cause ; and we
may conclude this chapter in the words of an eloquent citizen of
another nation : " Great Britain, loaded with an unprecedented
debt, and with a grinding taxation, contracted a new debt of a
hundred million dollars, to give freedom, not to Englishmen, but
to the degraded African. I know not that history records an
act so disinterested, so sublime. In the progress of ages, Eng-
land's naval triumphs will shrink into a more and more narrow
space in the records of our race. This moral triumph will fill a
broader, brighter page." *
* Du. Channing.
CHAPTER V.
THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.
The Slave-Trarle unsubdued — Great Britain no longer participates in the Traffic —
Has used her diplomatic Influence with other Nations — Great Expenditure
incurred in discouraging the Slave-Trade — The Slave-Trade not destroyed,
but increased — Sir T. F. Buxton's Statement — The Construction of Slave-Ships
— Enormous Profits of the Slave-Trade — The Middle Passage — Capture of
the "Carolina" — Original Tonnage allowed to Slave-Ships — The"Patacho"
Slaver at Rio de Janeiro — Extracts from the Rev. P. G. Hill's Pamphlet, entitled
" Fifty Days on board a Slaver" — A recent Capture near Sierra-Leone — The
Negi-oes branded with red-hot Irons — Twenty thousand Negroes constantly
on the Atlautic — Villages depopulated by Slave-Hunters — The Distress of the
Africans at the Loss of their Relatives — The Hebrew Maid, and Jacob's Son
Joseph — An Appeal to Christian Parents.
Having briefly sketched the rise, progress, and abolition of
the British Slave-Trade, and the termination and destruction
of Slavery in the British empire, the accomplishment of wliich
sheds an lialo of glory on our nation, and which is worthy
of being placed upon everlasting record ; the question almost
involuntarily starts up, "But is the Slave-Trade abolished?"
Facts the most incontrovertible and unquestionable, and almost
innumerable, not only furnish an unqualified answer in the
negative, but most clearly prove that the Slave-Trade is carried
on at this day to a greater extent than it ever was ; and, still
further, that it is attended with more horrible cruelties, and
with a greater amount of mortality, than it was sixty years ago,
when the attention of Great Britain was first directed to its
abolition. These are lamentable facts, and furnish a proof
demonstrative of the magnitude of the evil, while they vouch fur
the correctness of Clarkson's metaphor, when he compared the
Slave-Trade " to the fabulous hydi-a, having a hundred heads,
every one of which it was necessary to cut off before it could be
subdued."
It is matter of congratulation, however, that our own country
no longer participates in the guilt of buying and selling men,
women, and children, like cattle in a market ; that our ships,
whose canvass whitens every sea, and whose flag flutters in
every breeze, are not crowded above and below with living
cargoes; and that our merchandise, which is carried to every
Til 13 SLAVE-TRADE. 89
port, is now a legitimate tradcj one article being given ia
exchange for another. English merchants do not now send a
few trinkets of finery, or a piece or tAvo of blue baft, in barter for
a human being. Powder and shot and fire-arms are not now
furnished bj^ them to some petty chief, who employs and
expends that powder and shot in procuring for the European some
of his own subjects in payment for those very articles. No :
though it is to be feared that British capital has in some
instances found its way into this corrupted and contraband
channel, thank God, the British Slave-Trade is abolished, and
British Slavery too ! It is also to the honour of Great Britain,
that she has used her diplomatic influence in rousing the
government of other countries to the importance of this subject,
and that her influence has been felt, and her example followed,
b}^ most of the foreign powers j two of Avhom proceeded to
make the traflSc piracy, punishable with death, as England
had done. These two were the United States and Brazil.
The rest did not go quite so far ; but all of them made the
traffic illegal, and, with the exception of the United States, have
consented to what is called "the mutual Right of Search:"
that is, each nation has agreed to permit its ships to be searched
at sea by the ships of the other contracting parties, so as to
detect any slaves who may be on board. And for some years
past a line of British cruisers has been stationed along the
African coast, and others on the opposite side of the Atlantic,
near South America and the West Indies, to chase and capture
slave-vessels.
The people of England, indeed, have taken a more lively and
intense interest in this than, perhaps, in any other foreign sub-
ject : and the Government, whether in the hands of one party
or another, cannot be accused of having, for a long series of
years, been wanting either in zeal or in exertion for the sup-
pression of the Slave-traffic. Towards the end of the last
century, the cruelty and the carnage Avhicli raged in Africa
were exposed ; and, as already stated, after tAventy years'
struggle. Great Britain in 1807 prohibited her subjects from
engaging in the Slave-Trade : in 1833 she borrowed tAventy
millions of pounds sterling to purchase the freedom of the slaves
in her West-India and other colonies; aud on the First of
August, 1834, British Slavery became extinct ; and the British
Government, in abolishing Slavery, then laid doAvn the principle
that no human being has a right to enslave another; and all
or most of the great poAvers of Europe have been induced by
Great Britain to unite in expressing their abhorrence of this
90 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
traffic, and with all of them treaties more or less stringent have
been made for its extinction.
Eight years ago, England had expended in payment to foreign
powers on account of the Slave-Trade, in bounties, and in
the maintenance of courts established for the adjudication of
captured slavers, upwards of fifteen millions sterling. If Ave
add this to our twenty millions, and the large sum still
annually expended in supporting a considerable force of cruisers
to intercept and destroy the traffic, and the five or six millions
which, it is calculated, the people of the United Kingdom
annually lose — or did lose, up to 1846 — in the purchase of
sugar, coftee, &c., from the West Indies, by way of encouraging
free labour, instead of buying them from Brazil and other slave-
holding countries, whence these articles can be had much
cheaper; the amount is enormous. And to this we must add
the immense loss of British life which is necessarily occasioned
in pursuing the object. But what is the result of aU this ?
The question again presents itself, " Is the Slave-Trade sup-
pressed? Does Brazil, does Cuba, does Porto Rico, does Buenos
Ayres, does Texas, do the United States, import no Negroes
now ? Are there no slave-ships packed with Negroes crossing
the Atlantic at this moment ? Are they only wax, teak- wood, and
elephants^ teeth that form the cargoes for which vessels now
visit the Guinea coast ? Are there no slave-warehouses now on
the line of shore between Cape Verd and Biafra? Are the
inhabitants of Timbuctoo and the banks of Lake Tchad wonder-
ing what strange thing has befallen the "Wliites, that there is
now no demand for Negroes ? And do they now find it useless
to kidnap one another as they did formerly ? Do no droves of
slaves come westward now ? Has the stream of traffic, disap-
pointed of its western outlet, turned northward in the direction
of the Barbary States and the Isthmus of Suez? Have the
labours of our Sharps and Clarksons and Wilberforces, of our
philanthropists and statesmen, and the struggles and negotia-
tions of forty years, been crowned with success?"* In one
word : after the millions of money that have been expended,
and the multitudes of lives that have been sacrificed, once more
we ask, " Is the Slave-Trade at an end ? "
Startling as the assertion is, The Slave-Trade is not extin-
guished, the Slave-Trade is not diminished, the Slave-Trade is
really abolished only in reference to Great Britain. Nay, more,
the number of Negroes imported into America is twice as great
* Chambers's "Miscellany," No. 19.
THE SLAVE-TilADE. 91
as it Avas half a century ago ; whilst this odious traffic is accom-
panied with the most unparalleled and unheard-of cruelties —
cruelties aggravated, and in some measure occasioned, by the
decided determination with which our country has set its face
against this ungodly and detestable trade. The cause is this :
During the latter period of the existence of the Slave-Trade
among ourselves, the slave-merchants and traders were induced
to adopt and comply with certain regulations which Avere
intended to diminish as much as possible the horrors of the"
Middle Passage, that is, of the voyage from Africa to the West
Indies. But, now that the whole trade is proscribed, and our
own countrymen take no part in it, and many other nations
have joined in reprobating the system, and in determining, if
possible, to crush it, the traffic in human flesh has fallen into
the hands of needy and unprincipled adventurers and despe-
radoes, Avho care not through what oceans of crime and blood-
shed they wade, if they can only secure a little paltry and
present advantage. The consequence is, that the Slave-Trade
is now carried on with a waste of human life almost beyond
conception, arising from the vessels being small, ill- contrived,
badly constructed, and scantily provisioned, and from the hasty
manner and various precautions which their captains are com-
pelled to adopt, in order to escape detection.
Sir Fowell Buxton, on the failure of past efforts for the sup-
pression of the Slave-Trade, observes : " It is, then, but too
manifest, that the efforts already made for the suppression of
the Slave-Trade have not accomplished their benevolent object :
we have only the afflicting conviction, that the Slave-Trade
is as far as ever from being suppressed. Nay, I am afraid the
fact is not to be disputed, that while we have thus been endea-
vouring to extinguish the traffic, it has actually doubled in
amount." And this Sir Fowell most clearly proved " by docu-
ments which cannot be controverted, — that for every village
fired, and every drove of human beings marched in former
times, there are now double. For every cargo then at sea, two
cargoes, or twice the number in one cargo, wedged together in
a mass of living corruption, are now borne on the waves of the
Atlantic. But whilst the numbers who suffer have increased,
there is no reason to believe that the sufferings of each have
been abated : on the contrary, we know that in some particulars
these have increased : so that the sum total of misery swells in
both ways. Each individual has more to endure; and the
number of individuals is twice what it was. The result, there-
fore, is, that aggravated suffering reaches multiplied numbers."
92 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
In order to escape tlic British cruisers, all slave-ships are
now built on the principle of fast sailing ; so that the exulting
expression of an old weather-beaten Spaniard mentioned by the
preceding writer, " Once outside in my trim vessel, you may catch
me if you can," is unhappily something more than an empty
vaunt. For we know too well, that, with his slaves safely on
board, and his vessel fairly at sea, it is not often that the slave-
trader is captured, — probably not more than once in thirty
times. Even this small risk of being captured takes away all
inducement, from mere selfish motives, to make the cargo mode-
rate : on the contrary, it is an object now to make the cargo as
large as possible ; because then the escape of one cargo out of
three will, it is calculated, give to those engaged in this dis-
graceful trade a net profit of from 150 to 180 per cent. And
here it is that we find the cause, the principal cause, of the con-
tinuance of the Slave-Trade. It is " Mammon," it is " filthy
lucre," it is the "love of money," which is emphatically "the
root" of this monster "evil." Accordingly the Negroes are
now packed in the slave-ships like bales of goods in a warehouse,
or herrings in a barrel. They have neither standing-room, nor
sitting-room, nor lying-room. They are cooped up anyhow,
squeezed into crevices, or jammed up against the curved planks,
or wedged together in water-casks, and are literally fed on
the " bread aud Avater of afiliction." These poor creatures are
sometimes actually packed in butts or casks covered over at the
top ; and the OAvners, on being chased by a British cruiser, have
been known to throw the casks, with their living contents, into
the sea.
The reader may form some idea of the misery endured by
these unhappy creatures on the Middle Passage, from the fol-
lowing account of the capture of a slaver off Whydali, in the
year 1834. This narrative was kindly furnished to me, when in
Africa, by the Heverend gentleman himself, soon after it was
penned.
EXTRACT FROM A JOURNAL ON BOARD H. M. S. " ISIS," KEPT BY
THE REV. W. V. HENNEH, CHAPLAIN.
February 16th, 1834. Latitude 5° 4' South, longitude 4° 52' East. We yester-
day fell in with the " Griffon ; " and by signal were informed that she had chased a
vessel, which she supposed to be a slave-vessel, all day and night, but had lost her.
Guessing her course, the captain stood on all night : and early this morning she
was seen in the wind's eye. After chasing her some time and nearing her, it fell
calm ; when our l)oats were hoisted out, manned and armed, and dispatched to the
chase, now about seven miles distant. At noon the boats boarded ; and at one
P.M. a fine brigantine came alongside of us with three hundi-ed and fifty slaves on
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 93
board. It was Sunday ; and, after sending away the boats, the duties of the day
were not forgotten, and service was performed on the quarter-deck. In the after-
noon I went on board, when the sight that presented itself beggars all description.
The upper deck was crowded mth women and children, sitting and lying down so
thickly, that the sailors to whom the duty of setting and trimming sails devolved,
could with difficulty make their way among them without treading upon some.
All were naked, and apparently unconscious of a breach of decency. On my
getting upon deck, and looking upon them with the eye of commiseration, mixed
with indignation at the perpetrators of this cruel breach of laws both Divine and
human, some caught me by the hand or feet, others held out to me their tongues,
black and parched for want of water, and all in the most piteous accents begged for
uqua. I took a can, and gave them enough to moisten their tongues, which they
seized with the greatest avidity, licking up even that which dropped upon the deck.
But the sufferings here were light in comparison to those upon the deck below,
where the men were stowed. There, with three feet from deck to deck, with irons
round their legs, and panting for air as well as water, were the miserable victims of
tills diabolical traffic laid, groaning and exhausted with anguish. Some had been
brought up into the air on the upper deck, worn out with sufferings and gasping
for life : to others, alas ! the remedy had been too long delayed, they were extended
lifeless corpses. Every feeling, the pangs occasioned by the being torn from
friends and relations and country and home, the sense of decency and common
modesty, were all forgotten, and sacrificed to the agony created by a want of food
and water. Heu, gens infelix! Shall there be found men to advocate thy
miseries ? Can man advocate the miseries of his fellow-man ? Where are the
advantages to balance the miseries .' Nowhere, but in the imaginations of those
who mistake gain for godliness, or who are led astray by the fallacious reasonings
of man worshipping mammon instead of God.
A change was soon wTOught in the melancholy scene. The irons were struck
oft' ; food and water were distributed ; their parched and feverish boches were well
washed ; joy beamed in every countenance ; and the Divine attribute of doing good
was experienced both by those who gave liberty to the captives, and by those who
received the boon.
The "Carohna" was an eighty-seven Spanish tons' ship.
A law passed the British legislature in 1788 by which it was
provided that vessels under a hundred and fifty tons should not
carry more than five men to every three tons ; that vessels above
a hundred and fifty tons should not carry more than three men
to every two tons ; and that the height of slave- vessels between
decks should not be less than five feet. In 1813 it was decreed
by the Grovernment of Portugal and Brazil, that two tons
should be allowed for every five men ; and the Spanish " Ce-
dula'^ of 1817 adopted the same scale. It should be under-
stood, however, that the Spanish and Portuguese ton bears the
proportion of one and a half to the British ton ; so that the
above scale of two tons Spanish to five men, is the same as five
men to three British tons. But then it is often found, on
re-measuring the slave-vessels, that the tonnage is much less
than that stated in their papers ; and thus the accommodation,
94 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
limited as it was at tlic best, lias been greatly diminished. It
turned out, in fact, that "the 'Carolina^ was only seventy-five
tons' burden, yet she had three hundred and fifty Negroes
crammed on board of her ; one hundred and eighty of whom were
literally so stowed as to have barely sufiicient height to hold
themselves up when in a sitting posture." * How could they,
indeed, when there was only "three feet from deck to deck,''
and they had " irons round their legs, and were panting for air
as well as water?" No wonder that those poor creatures
crowded round their deliverers, with their mouths open and
their tongues black, and parched for want of water, " which they
seized with the greatest avidity, licking up even that which
dropped upon the deck," and presenting a perfect spectacle of
human misery. But to others, alas ! the remedy had been too
long delayed ; death had terminated their suflerings ; " they
were extended lifeless corpses."
The capture of the " Patacho," reported by the Commission-
ers at Rio de Janeiro in 1835, affords another instance of the
worse than brutal treatment Avhich the poor Africans are called
to endure on board these horrible floating, coffin-like dungeons.
" This vessel was in the first instance detained only on suspicion,
and the capturing party had had possession forty-eight hours,
and had made every possible search, as they supposed, before it
was discovered that there were any slaves concealed on board.
What the state of these wretched beings, to the number of
forty-seven, must have been, deprived for so long a time of air
and food, and packed in the smallest possible compass, like so
many bales of goods, we need not pain your Lordship by
describing." f
Mr. Cowper, Consul at Pernambuco, under date of January
1st, 1844, writes, "I cannot report to your Lordship any new
features connected with this traffic, further than that the vessels
in it are daily diminishing the space allowed on board their
ships to these unhappy beings, thereby, of course, increasing the
horrors attendant upon the voyage, and sacrificing more and
more the lives of their wretched victims. Por instance, it must
appear incredible to those unaccustomed to these details, that
ninety-seven human beings could have been stowed away in a
vessel (the " Conceicao ") of twenty-one tons, giving five indivi-
duals to each ton, or one fifteenth of the space allowed in the
transport service of Great Britain to each soldier, and this for a
period of twenty days, with the thermometer certainly not
* Sir Thomas Fowell Buxton's " Slave-Trade and its Remedy." f Idem.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 95
averaging less than 86° of Fahrenheit, without exercise even
for the necessities of nature ; without air, excepting such as
could find its way betwixt the gratings of the hatchway ; and
that ninety-one of these poor creatures should have reached their
prison-land in safety. I, who know this, and have seen the
vessel, or rather boat, cannot, by any stretch of imagination,
conceive how the powers of human endurance could have sup-
ported them twenty days in this floating hell." *
Other cases of equal cruelty and barbarity the reader will find
in Sir FoweU Buxton's work on the Slave-Trade, and elsewhere ;
but since that painfully interesting book was published, a har-
rowing pamphlet, describing the wretched condition of the poor
Negroes at sea, even after they fell into British hands, has been
printed and published by the Rev. P. G. Hill, and is entitled,
" Fifty Days on Board a Slave-Vessel in the Mozambique
Channel, in April and May, 1843.'^ This slaver was the
" Progresso," a Brazilian vessel, and was captured on the coast
of Madagascar by Her Majesty's cruiser " Cleopatra," on board
of which Mr. Hill was chaplain. The " Progresso " was bound
for Rio Janeiro, had quitted the coast of Africa only the pre-
vious evening, and was consequently captured within a few hours
after the embarcation of the slaves. She was of about one hun-
dred and forty tons, and the slaves on board amounted to four
hundred and forty-seven. Of this number, one hundred and
eighty-nine were men, few, however, if any, exceeding twenty
years of age ; forty-five were women ; and two hundred and
thirteen, boys. The slaver, immediately on being captured, was,
as is usual, taken charge of by a British crew, who were to
navigate her to the Cape of Good Hope, most of the sailors of
the "Progresso" being placed on board the "Cleopatra." Mr.
Hill, at his own request, accompanied the slaver ; and his pam-
phlet is a narrative of what took place during the fifty days
which elapsed before their arrival at the Cape, and is perhaps
one of the most heart-rending tales of woe by which the history
of the horrid Slave-Trade has been distinguished. We cannot
here quote the details of the treatment of the Negroes given by
Mr. Hill ; but the following account of the horrors of a single
night may suffice as a specimen.
Shortly after the "Progresso" parted company Avith the
cruiser, a squall arose, and the Negroes, who were breathing
fresh air on the deck, and rolling themselves about for glee, and
* " First Report of the Select Committee of the House of Commons on the
Slave-Trade, 1848," p. 252.
96 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
kissing tlie hands and clothes of their deliverers, were all sent
beloAV.
The night (says Mr. Hill) being intensely hot, four hundred wretched beings,
thus crammed into a hold twelve yards in length, seven in breadth, and only three
and a half feet in height, speedily began to make an effort to re-issue to the open
air. Being thrust back, and striving the more to get out, the after -hatch was
forced down on them. Over the other hatchway in the fore part of the vessel, a
wooden gi-ating was fastened. To this, the sole inlet for air, the suffocating heat of
the hold, and, perhaps, panic from the strangeness of their situation, made them
press ; and thus great part of the space below was rendered useless. They crowded
to the grating ; and, cUnging to it for air, completely barred its entrance. They
strove to force their way through apertures in length fourteen inches and barely six
inches in breadth, and in some instances succeeded. The cries,— the heat, — I may
say without exaggeration, " the smoke of their torment," — which ascended, can be
compared to nothing earthly. One of the Spaniards gave warning that the conse-
quence would be " many deaths." Next day the prediction of the Spaniard was
fearfuUy verified. Fifty-four crushed and mangled corpses Ufted up from the slave-
deck have been brought to the gangway and thrown overboard. Some were
emaciated from disease ; many, bruised and bloody. Antonio tells me that some
were found strangled, their hands still grasping each other's throats, and tongues
protruding from their mouths. The bowels of one were crushed out. They had
been trampled to death for the most part, the weaker under the feet of the
stronger, in the madness and torment of suffocation from crowd and heat. It was
a horrid sight, as they passed one by one, — the stiff, distorted limbs smeared with
blood and filth, — to be cast into the sea. Some, still quivering, were laid on the
deck to die ; salt water thrown on them to revive them, and a little fresh water
poured into their mouths. Antonio reminded me of his last night's warning. He
actively employed himself, with his comrade Sebastian, in attendance on the
wretched hving beings, now released from their confinement below ; distributing to
them their morning meal of " farinha," and their allowance of water, rather more
than half a pint to each, which they grasped with inconceivable eagerness ; some
bending their knees to the deck, to avoid the risk of losing any of the liquid by
unsteady footing : their throats doubtless parched to the utmost with ciying and
yelling through the night." *
The mortality which took place within the space of fifty days,
the period which elapsed from the capture of the " Progresso "
until her arrival at the Cape, — was one hundred and sixty-nine ;
a little short of one half of the human cargo. Many also died
after being lauded. The crew of the slaver escaped, there being
no court empowered to try them at the Cape.
Instances of the great cruelty with which the Slave-Trade is
still carried on are daily occurring. The " St. Helena/' whose
case was reported in a letter from the Sierra-Leone Commis-
sioners, dated January 6th, 1844, "was of eighty tons only:
she had a crew of eighteen persons, and five hundred and forty-
nine slaves; making, with the crew, seven persons to a ton.
* Hill's " Fifty Days on board a Slave-Ship," pp. 23, 24.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 97
One hundred and twenty of these died between the capture and
the condemnation/^ Another example is communicated in a
letter from Mr. Pakenham to Lord Aberdeen, respecting the
American bark " Pons.^^
The " Pons " was at anchor at Cabenda for about twenty days before she took
on board the slaves, during which time she was closely watched by Her Britannic
Majesty's brig " Cygnet." At about nine o'clock on the morning of the 27th of
November the " Cygnet " got under weigh, and stood to sea. Immediately Berry
gave up the ship to GaUono, who commenced getting on board the water, pro-
visions, and slaves ; and so expeditious were they in their movements, that at eight
o'clock that evening the vessel was under weigh, having embarked nine hunflred
and three slaves. Two days afterwards we captured her. The next morning I
regretted to learn that eighteen had died, and one had jumped overboard. The
vessel has no slave-deck; and upwards of eight hundred and fifty were piled,
almost in bulk, on the water-casks below. About forty or fifty females were con-
fined in one-half of the round-house cabin. As the ship appeared to be less than
three hundred and fifty tons, it seemed impossible that one-half could have lived to
cross the Atlantic. The stench from below was so great, that it was impossible to
stand more than a few moments near the hatchways. Our men who went below
from curiosity, were forced up sick : then all the hatches were off. Wliat must
have been the sufferings of these poor wretches when the hatches were closed ? I
am informed, that very often, in those cases, the stronger will strangle the weaker ;
and this was probably the reason why so many died, or rather were found dead,
the morning after the capture. None but an eye-witness can form a conception of
the horrors these poor creatures must endure in their transit across the ocean.*
One more capture I will mention, which occurred in the
month of October, 1846. It topk place in the neighbourhood
of Sierra-Leone, and the particulars of it were published in the
'' Watchman '' newspaper of that colony, in November of the
same year. The article was kindly furnished to the editor by
an intelligent friend under the signature of " Joliba," and is as
follows : —
On the 1st instant. Her Majesty's brig " Cygnet," Commander Montresu", arrived,
having in tow the Brazilian brigantine, " Paqueta de Rio," which vessel had been
captured off the Sherbro on the 27th ult., having on board, at the time of capture,
five hundred and fifty-six slaves, nine of whom died on the passage here. Through
the politeness of the prize-officer, I was permitted to inspect the vessel. Although
I have frequently been on board full slavers on their anival at this port, I cer-
tainly never was on board of one where human beings were stowed in the smallest
imaginable space, as was the case in this vessel : — five hundred and forty-seven
human beings, besides the crew and "passengers," (as they styled themselves,)
twenty-eight in number, in a vessel of about ninety tons !
The slaves were all stowed together perfectly naked, with nothing but the sur-
faces of the water-casks, which were made level by fiUing-in billets of wood, which
formed the slave-deck. The slaves who were confined in the hold, — it being
utterly impossible for the whole of them to remain on deck at one time, — were in
* " First Report of the Select Committee of the House of Commons on the
Slave-Trade, 1848," p. 252.
H
98
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
a profuse perspiration, and panting like so many hounds for air and water. The
smell on board was dreadful. I was informed that on the officers of the " Cygnet "
boarding the slaver, the greater part of the slaves were chained together with pieces
of chain which were passed through iron collars round their necks ; iron shackles
were also secured round theu' legs and arms. After the officers had boarded, and
the slaves were made to understand they were free, their acclamations were long
and loud. They set to work, and, with the billets of wood which had hitherto
formed their bed, knocked off each other's shackles, and threw most, of them over-
board. There were several left, which were shown to me. We w'ill leave it to the
imagination of yoirr readers, what must have been the feelings of those poor people,
when they found they were again free, — free through the energy and activity of a
British cruiser. On examining the poor creatm-es, who were principally of the
Kosso nation, I found they belonged to, and were shipped to, different individuals :
they were branded Uke sheep. Letters were burnt in the skin, of two inches in
length. Many of them, from the recent period at which it had been done, were in
a state of ulceration. Both males and females were marked as follows : On the
right breast, J. ; on the left arm, P. : over women's right and left breast, S. and A. ;
under the left shoulder, P. ; right breast, R. and R. J. ; on the right and left breast,
S. S. ; and on the right and left shoulder, S. S. She was captmed off the Sherbro,
not eighty miles from this place, on Thursday the 27th of October. This is the
same vesssl that cleared out from here, about three weeks previous to the capture
from Rio de Janeiro. The' slaves were all embarked from the slave -factories at
GalUnas, under the notorious Don Luiz ; and the vessel was under weigh in five
hours ; and had there been the slightest breeze, she would have escaped. Amongst
the slaves were two men belonging to Sien'a-Leone : — a man named Peter, once
employed by Mr. Elliott the pilot. He stated that he had been employed by a
Mr. Smith, a Popah-man, to go to the Sherbro to purchase palm-oil ; and that
whilst pursuing that object, he was seized and sold by a Sherbro chief, named
Sherry. The other man, who stated his name to be James, had once worked for
Mr. Hornell, merchant of tliis town. WhUe at the Galhuas, he was sold by a cliief
named Mannah. Dming the day, the marshal of the Vice-Admiralty Court landed
two hundred and ninety-seven men, sixty-seven women, one hundred and fifty-foiu-
boys, and twenty-nine girls : nine deaths on the passage made a total of five hun-
dred and fifty-six slaves on board at the time of captiu:e. The poor creatures were
amply suppUed with clothing, and their wants attended to, when lodged in the
capacious quarters at the Liberated African Yard.
It was a liappy circumstance for these unfortunate Negroes^
branded though they had been with the red-hot iron, and
placed in the slave-ship, and consigned to certain dealers in
human flesh on the opposite side of the Atlantic, and already
under weigh, that the sharp cut and black hull of this Brazilian
slaver were so soon discovered by the watchful eje, and then
captured by the activity, of our brave officers and crew of the
" Cj^gnet.^' A vast amount of misery was thus prevented, and
many lives were saved. But it is often the case, that, when a
slaver is captured, hundreds of these our fellow-creatures, men,
women, and children, have been on board, and in the holds of
these dismal dens, for two or three or four weeks, wedged toge-
ther between the decks, in a space which, in some cases, is not
THE SLAVE-TRADE, 99
more than twenty-two inches from the floor to the ceiling. The
agony of the position of the croncliing slaves must be dreadful ;
and when they are once fixed, relief by motion or change of
posture is next to impossible. The body frequently stiffens ;
and, on being rescued, the poor creatures cannot stand, and it
requires the utmost exertions, favoured by a hot sun, to
straighten their rigid and distorted limbs; while many can
never resume the upright position.
Let the reader also bear in mind, that the preceding facts are
not gleaned from the records of former times, and preserved by
historians as illustrations of the strange and prodigious wicked-
ness of a darker age. They are the common occurrences of our
own era, the " customs " which prevail at tliis very hour. Every
day that we pass in security and peace at home, witnesses many
a herd of wretches toiling over the Avastes of Africa to slavery or
death : every night, villages are roused from their sleep, and
exposed to the alternatives of the sword, or the flames, or the
manacle. " At the time I am writing,^' remarks one of Africans
best friends. Sir T, Fowell Buxton, " there are ^t least twenty
thousand human beings on the Atlantic;" — not, it may be added,
free, voluntary emigrants from Great Britain to America or
Australia, as cabin or steerage passengers, who are crossing
" the wide blue sea " in the hope of bettering their temporal
condition. No ; these twenty thousand human beings are
Negroes from Africa, who have been kidnapped, torn from their
native land, and forced on board, who are now between the
decks of the slave-ship, and who are suffering from every variety
of M'retchedness that the preceding ]:)ages describe, or that can
well be imagined : or rather, as Mr. Pitt once eloquently said,
when speaking of the Slave-Traffic, '' there is something in the
horrors of it which surpasses all the bounds of imagination,"
The Slave-Trade, then, still exists ; and this appalling fact is
every day receiving confirmation. It is proved, beyond the possi-
bility of doubt, that, notwithstanding all our past efforts, the traffic
in slaves is still carried on, to an alarming extent, by some other
nations. Accursed system ! who can contemplate it without feel-
ings of indignation ? I have myself seen villages depopulated, the
huts reduced to ashes, and the inhabitants led captive to the sea-
coast, or taken from one petty state to another, to be exchanged for
cattle, or sold for merchandise. I have seen the husband lamenting
the loss of his wife, — not by death; but in his absence a marauding-
banditti had fallen upon his native town, and his wife was carried
away into all the horrors of Slavery. I have seen Negro parents
wringing their hands, and with bitter cries and tears mourning
H 2
100 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
the loss of their children, — not, I repeat, by death : though such
bereavement is distressing enough, yet there is no comparison
between the sorrow excited by the death of a child, and the
anguish caused by its being kidnapped and enslaved. The loss
of a son at sea must be deeply felt ; and the removal of a child
from the domestic circle by the wasting disease of "slowly
rolling years,^' or by the sudden sickness of a day, must leave
an aching void in the heart of a parent. But to have a son, or
perhaps a daughter, carried off by robbers, and made a captive,
a slave, exposed to infamy, to abuse, to insult, and to contamina-
tion,— this, this is far more painful.
Which of us has not sympathized with the little Hebrew
maid mentioned in the Second Book of Kings, that vras car-
ried " away captive out of the land of Israel" by the Syrians
who "had gone out by companies?" (2 Kings v. 3.) Had
those Syrians killed the father and mother of the Israelitish
maid ? Perhaps so ; but if they escaped and were still alive,
what agony, what inexpressible distress must they have felt,
when they thought of the condition of their daughter, of their
" little maid ! " Who lias perused the history of Joseph, and
has not been deeply aflected with that touching narrative ? O
yes, we have sympathized with the mother of the little maid;
and with the good old patriarch, bereaved and afflicted, when
his son Joseph Avas sold into slavery : but have we no hearts to
feel for the thousands of Jacobs in Western Africa who are
bitterly lamenting that Joseph is not, and Simeon is not, and
that Benjamin, too, has been stolen from them ! Mothers of
Britain ! ye who are so alive to Christian sympathy, ye who can
retire to rest with your "olive branches" in perfect safety,
" none daring to make you afraid," you know not how many
Rachels are now weeping in Africa, and refusing to be com-
forted, because their children " are not." Their offspring are
not dead, but the man-stealer has taken them away : and
though
" Skins may differ, yet affection
Dwells in Blacks and Whites the same."
This is not a mere poetic effusion from the fancy of some bene-
volent and humane individual : it is matter of fact. Oft have I
seen the Negro mother wrap her swarthy infant to her bosom,
and plant upon its little sun-burnt lips ten thousand kisses.
There may be exceptions ; we know there are, and in other lands
besides Africa : but the rule is for African mothers to love their
children. And yet how often are their infiints cruelly torn
from them, or barbarously put to death in their sight !
CHAPTER VI.
THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.
The Method of procuring Slaves— A Definition of true Hamanity — The principal
Wars in Africa originate in the Slave-Trade — Towns and Villages hurnt, and
the Inhabitants led into Captivity — The great Amount of Mortality involved
in the Seizure — Testimony of M. Brue, French Director at the Senegal in
1G97 — ^Mr. Moore at the Gambia in 1730 — Bruce of Abyssinia in 1770 —
Laird and Rankin in 1832-4 — Communications from Africa by the Author in
1837-8 and 1841 — Extract from the Narrative of Joseph Wright, a liberated
African at Sierra-Leone — Rev. R. M. MacBrair's Statement of two liberated
African Youths at Macarthy's Island — The March down to the Coast — Major
Gray's Account of a Caravan of Slaves — The Slave-BaiTacoons on the Coast —
Letter from a Gentleman at Senegal in 1818 — Captain Cook in 1837 — Joseph
Wright's Nan-ative continued — Rev. W. Allen's Description of Whydah and
Badagry, two notorious slave-trachng Ports in the Bight of Benin — Hasty
Manner in which the Slaves are put on Board — Cruel Treatment in the Mid-
dle-Passage-— Insurrections on Board Slave-Ships — The Arrival of a Cai'go of
Slaves in America — Disposal of the Negroes — Letter from the Havannah in
1838 — Miserable Condition of newly-imported Negroes — Brazilian Slavery —
Disgraceful Advertisement — Slavery and the Slave-Trade contrary to the Prin-
ciples of Justice and Humanity — Great Mortality incident on the Seizure —
March and Detention — The annual Loss to Africa immense — Vast Amount of
Guilt and Misery involved in the Traffic — Comparison of the Effects of Napo-
leon's destructive Career with those of the Slave-Trade — The probable Loss to
Africa up to the Close of the last Century, and from the Commencement of the
Slave-Trade to the present Period — The Misery consequent.
The mode of taking or procuring slaves, in the first instance,
is now pretty generally understood; and I have no wish to
harrow the feelings of my readers by going into lengthened
details respecting this part of my subject, especially as in the
preceding pages a tolerable specimen has been given of the
cruelties and miseries inflicted upon the unhappy Africans in
what is called "the Middle Passage." Yet I cannot help
thinking with a celebrated member of the House of Commons,*
who, in the course of a debate on the Slave-Trade, observed,
"True humanity consists not in a squeamish ear; it consists
not in starting or shrinking at such tales as these ; but in a dis-
position of heart to relieve misery. True humanity appertains
rather to the mind than to the nerves, and prompts men to use
real and active endeavours to execute the actions which it sug-
* The Right Honourable Charles James Fox.
103
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
gests.^' In the spirit, then, of this observation, let tis look at
the mode iu which the Africans are made slaves. It has been
said, on high authority, "that the principal, and almost the
only, cause of war,^^ on the Western Coast and " in the interior
of Africa, arises from the desire to procure slaves for traffic;
and that every species of violence, from the invasion of an army
to that of robbery by a single individual, is had recourse to for
the attainment of this object.^^* And in this opinion I sub-
stantially concur. I am aware that there are other causes of
war besides that inhuman traffic; and I am also aware that
there are other sources of African Slavery besides war ; such, for
instance, as debt, famine, and crime : but very few slaves are
thus supplied, in comparison of the great numbers furnished by
the wars and marauding excursions which are perpetually occur-
ring in some part or other of the vast continent of Africa.
This assertion is substantiated by the experience of every person
at all conversant with African affairs. Bruce and Park, Den-
hara and Clapperton, Lander and Laird, and almost every other
writer, ancient and modern, unite in the declaration, that the
Slave-Trade has produced the most baneful effects, causing
anarchy, injustice, and oppression to reign in Africa, and
exciting nation to rise up against nation, and man against man.
The towns or villages are usually attacked in the night ; in
order to increase the confusion, they are frequently set on fire ;
and, as the huts are mostly constructed of wattled cane, and
roofed with long dry grass, there is immediately a general con-
flagration; and the wretched inhabitants, as they are flying
naked from the flames, are seized and carried into slavery.
They massacre all the men that offer any resistance ; and often
the aged and infirm are deliberately kiUed, while the infants are
left in the streets to die, or are thrown into the devouring
flames.
If we go back towards the close of the seventeenth century,
we find the testimony of M. Brue, Director- General of the
French Senegal Company, who resided several years in Western
Africa, and penetrated some distance into the interior, and who,
from the position he occupied as the Director- General of the
Company's affairs on the coast, as well as from the opportunities
for observation afforded him in his travels, must be regarded as a
competent judge. This gentleman thus writes : " The Europe-
ans are far from desiring to act as peace-makers amongst them''
(namely, the natives of Africa). "It would be too contrary to
* Sir T. F. Buxton's " Slave-Tiade, and its Remedv."
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 103
their interests; for the ouly object of their wars is to carry off
slaves; and^ as these make the principal part of their traffic,
they would be apprehensive of drying up the source of it, were
they to encourage these people to live well together." Again :
" The neighbourhood of the Darnel and Tin keep them perpetu-
ally at war, the benefit of which accrues to the Company, who
buy all the prisoners made on their side ; and the more there
are to sell, the greater is their profit ; for the only end of their
armaments is to make captives, to sell them to white traders."
" They have every thing they wish to aim at from their wars,
when they are able to make captives from one another. Ava-
rice, and the desire of making slaves, are often the veritable
motives for going to war."
The testimony of M. Brue, not an advocate, let it be remem-
bered, for the Abolition of the Slave-Trade, but a Director-
General of that commerce, is fully confirmed by Le Maire,
Barbot, Bosman, Smith, and all the old writers. They concur in
stating, not only that w^ars are entered into by the natives for the
sole purpose of making slaves, but that they are also fomented
by Europeans with a view to that object. But the Slave-Trade
not merely excites wars between neighbouring nations ; it gives
birth to the most dreadful outrages which are perpetrated by
kings on their own subjects. On this point the author above
cited says, "The Negro kings have not always slaves to treat
with ; but they have always a sure and ready way of supplying
their deficiency; that is, by making inroads upon their own
subjects, carrying them off and selling them, for which they
never want pretensions in order to justify their pillage and
rapine." And then he states an instance in which, in order to
trade with M. Brue himself, the king of Damel made incursions
on his own subjects, seized about three hundred of them, and
then sent word that he was ready to trade with him.
Mr. Moore, a factor to the English Boyal African Company in
the river Gambia, about the year 1730, a writer of acknowledged
credit, and, it will be admitted, a very competent witness with
respect to the real nature of the Slave-Trade, writes : " When-
ever the king of Barsally wants goods or brandy, he sends a
messenger to the Governor, at James Fort, to desire he would
send a sloop there with a cargo. This news being not at all
unwelcome, the Governor sends accordingly. Against the
arrival of the sloop, the king goes and ransacks some of his
enemies^ towns, seizing the people, and selling them for such
commodities as he is in want of. In case he is not at war with
any neighbouring king, he then falls upon one of his own towns,
104 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
wliicli are numerous^ and uses them in the very same manner.
He very often goes with some of his troops by a town in the
day-time, and returns in the night and sets fire to three parts of
it, and sets guards to the fourth to seize the people as they run
out from the fire. He ties their arms behind them, and marches
them to the place where he sells tliem.^^ He then gives, in
illustration of his general statement, the following instance :
"Yesterday, March 20th, 1732, the king fell upon one of his
own towns, and, having taken a good many prisoners, brought
them along with him, with intent to sell them.^'
Bruce, the enterprising Scotchman, who travelled in Abys-
sinia in 1 770, in describing the slave-hunting expeditions there,
says, " The grown-up men are all killed, and are then mutilated,
parts of their bodies being always carried away as trophies.
Several of the old mothers are also killed ; while others, frantic
with fear and despair, kill themselves. The boys and girls of a
more tender age are then carried off" in brutal triumph.'^
"In 1822 our Minister at Paris thus addressed Count de
Villele : ' There seems to be scarcely a spot on that coast (from
Sierra-Leone to Cape Mount) Avhich does not show traces of the
Slave-Trade, with all its attendant horrors ; for, the arrival of a
ship, in any of the rivers on the windward coast, being the
signal for war between the natives, the hamlets of the weaker
party are burnt, and the miserable survivors carried off', and
sold to the Slave-Traders.^^*
" Laird ascended the Niger, and its tributary the Tschadda,
in 1832, and was an eye-witness of the cruelties consequent on
the Slave-Trade, while in the river near to the confluence of the
two streams. He says, speaking of the incursions of the Fela-
tahs, ' Scarcely a night passed but we heard the screams of some
unfortunate beings that were carried off into Slavery by those
villanous depredators. The inhabitants of the towns in the
route of the Felatahs fled across the river on the approach of the
enemy .^ ' A few days after the arrival of the fugitives, a column
of smoke rising in the air, about five miles above the confluence,
marked the advance of the Felatahs ; and in two days afterwards
the whole of the towns, including Addali, Cuddah, and five or
six others, were in a blaze. The shrieks of the unfortunate
wretches that had not escaped, answered b}^ the loud wailings
and lamentations of their friends and relations, (encamped on
the opposite bank of the river,) at seeing them carried off" into
Slavery, and their habitations destroyed, produced a scene
* Sir T. F. Buxton on tbe " Slave-Trade, and its Remedy."
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 105
which, though common enough in the country, had seldom, if
ever before, been witnessed by European eyes, and showed to
me, in a more striking hght than I had hitherto beheld it, the
horrors attendant on Slavery/ " *
Mr. Rankin, in the narrative of his visit to Sierra-Leone in
1834, says, that the warlike Sherbros had recently invaded the
territories of the Timmanees, and had fallen on the unguarded
Rokel, which became a prey to the flames. "The inhabitants
who could not escape across the river to Magbelly perished, or
were made slaves ; and the town was reduced to ashes/^ f
From these statements it appears, that the mode of procuring
slaves is precisely the same now as it was upwards of a hundred
years ago; that the inhabitants are taken by surprise, kid-
napped, and "forced from home with all its pleasures;" and
that this mode of seizure is attended with many horrible cruel-
ties, and a vast amount of mortality. It would be almost an
endless task to cite all the evidence Avhich might be adduced :
but two or three specimens of what I have seen and heard
myself, while in Africa, will serve still further to corroborate
these positions.
The following is an extract from a letter which I addressed to
the General Secretaries of the Wesleyan Missionary Society, a
part of which the reader may find in Sir T. F. Buxton^s Avork
on the African Slave-Trade. It is dated,
" Macarthy's Island, River Gambia, March ISth, 1837.
" The Foolahs, Teucolors, and Mandingoes from Jamalli have
all dispersed, in consequence of an attack made upon them, not
by Kemmingtan himself, though he was the cause of it. This
desperate chief had sent to Bambarra for assistance to make war
upon Woolli, when his messenger happened to meet a number
of the Bambarras, who had left their country in search of plun-
der, and who immediately proceeded with the messenger to
Dunkaseen, Kemmingtan's residence; but they, it appears,
refused to join him against Woolli, owing to some previous
pledge which they or their fathers had given, never to make war
upon that kingdom. The consequence was that Kemmingtan
had to point them to some place where they might obtain some-
thing, they having come so far at his request. He therefore
sent them into this neighbourhood, and gave them his son and
several other warriors to assist them. They immediately com-
menced their marauding excursion, driving all the cattle before
* Sir T. F. Buxton on the " Slave-Trade, and its Remedy."
t Rankin's " Sierra-Leone," vol. ii. p. 259.
106 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
them, the inhabitants flying for their lives. They came close to
the river's bank, opposite where I am writing, and carried off
near one hundred head of cattle belonging to persons on this
Island, But the militia, and about thirty soldiers, being sent
off immediately, overtook them near Jamalli,* where they were
feasting upon one or two bullocks which they had just killed •
but, seeing our soldiers and militia, they immediately fled,
and most of the cattle were re-captured, with one man and a
horse. Another was killed, whose body was consumed by wild
beasts the following night.
" I visited Jamalli a few weeks ago, and also Laming, another
small Maudingo town on the way. At the latter place I
counted twelve huts that had been destroyed by fire, and at the
former about forty. Proceeding to the Foulah town, about half
a mile eastward, I found it was not in the least injured, but,
like the other two, was without inhabitants ; not a soul was to
be seen.
" Foolokolong, a large Foolah town in Kemmingtan's domi-
nions, has lately been attacked by Woolli, and, I believe, nearly
the whole of it destroyed, the cattle driven away, many of the
inhabitants killed, and many others taken prisoners. On Wed-
nesday evening last, I returned from a hasty visit to the upper
river. I went as far as Fattatenda. At Bannatenda, not quite
half the way, I found a poor aged Foolah woman in irons.
Upon inquiry I found that she was from Foolokolong, one of
the many who were captured in the recent war ; and that she
was sent on the south side of the river to be sold for a ho7^se.
I immediately rescued the half-famished and three-parts-naked
female from the horrors of slaver}^, by giving a good horse in
exchange for her. I then broke off her chains, and brought her
to this settlement, where, by a singular but happy coincidence,
she met with her own brother, who lives upon Kattaba's land,
and who, hearing that she, her daughter, and her daughter's
children had been taken in the war, had been a considerable
way up the river to inquire after them, but heard nothing of
them, and had consequently returned. I, of course, gave the
woman up to her brother ; from whom, as well as from herself
and several Foolahs who came to see her, I received a number
of blessings.
" From Fattatenda, supposed to be three hundred miles from
this, (though I do not thiuk it is so far,) I proceeded to Madina,
the capital of Woolli, about twenty-four miles in the interior,
* In tbe kingdom of Kattaba, about tbrec miles from Macartby's Island.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 107
and had an agreeable interview with His sable Majesty, Mansa
Koi, who promised to give me land, his own children to be edu-
cated, &c. &c., if I wished to sit down in his kingdom. In this
journey I gathered some further particulars of the recent war ;
and from the king himself I learnt that they brought three
hundred and fifty Foolahs from Foolokolong, (Kemmingtan's
largest Foolah town,) besides one hundred whom they killed on
the spot/^
In another letter, of the 5th of January, 1838, I again wrote
from the same place : —
" The neighbourhood of Macarthy's Island is again in a very
disturbed state. Scarcely are the rains over, and the produce of
a plentiful harvest gathered in, ere the noise of battle and the
din of warfare are heard at a distance, with all its attendant
horrors. Mothers, snatching up their children, with a few
necessary articles, flee for their lives ; towns, after being pillaged
of as much cattle, &c., as the banditti require, are immediately
set on fire ; columns of smoke ascend the heavens ; the cries of
those who are being butchered may be more easily conceived
than expressed; and those who escape destruction are carried
into the miseries of hopeless slavery. A number of Bambarras
are again on the north bank of the river, not far from this
place ; and the poor Foolahs at Jamalli have consequently fled
to this Island for protection, bringing with them as many of
their cattle and other things as they could."
From my next communication to the Committee, which was
written only about a fortnight after the preceding one, and
which was printed in the Annual Report of the Wesleyan Mis-
sionary Society for 1838, I make the following extract:
" Brooko and Jamalli have not been regularly visited for some
time, owing to the very disturbed state of the country, and
other causes of a very discouraging nature. The horrors of war,
and the number of bandits who are constantly going about,
literally ^seeking whom' or what they *may devour,' are truly
terrific; and the desolation and misery that follow are very
deplorable. In my last few hurried lines I gave you some
account of a marauding party of Bambarras, who were on the
north side of the river, and of Habdurcheem,* a powerful chief
of the Foolah tribe and of the Mahometan creed, from the
neighbourhood of Foota Jallon or Teembo, who was on the
south side ; both not far distant from Macarthy's Island. The
Bambarras have proceeded a considerable distance down the
* Perhaps Abdaiacheem, or " The Servant of the Merciful."
108
WESTERN COAST OI' AFRICA.
north bank of the rivei-j have pillaged and destroyed several
small towns, and have taken some of the inhabitants into
slavery; and a few people Lave been killed."
Perhaps one more instance will be sufficient to show that the
slave- wars of Africa are not merely the events of a by-gone period.
In a letter, dated ''St. Mary's, Gambia, July 13th, 1841,'' I wrote
to Dr. Maddon, who had been sent to the coast on a commis-
sion of inquiry. The substance of that communication I also
forwarded to the Wesleyan Mission-House : but the following
extract from my letter was published in the Appendix to the
Report of the West-African Committee: "The day after you
sailed, I embarked for Macartliy's Island ; and, while there, an
alarm was given on Thursday morning, the 10th ult., that the
Island w^as attacked. The soldiers and militia were, conse-
quently, immediately turned out ; the former, with one or two
field-pieces, proceeding to the supposed place of attack; the
militia, in the mean time, guarding tlie barracks and town.
But it turned out as I expected; namely, some warriors had
fallen upon two or three small towns near the south-east end of
Macartliy's Island; and those of the inhabitants who could
escape fled to Macarthy's Island for safety and protection.
This is only one instance, out of a great many that have come
under my notice, of these desperate marauding banditti. It
appears, on this occasion, it was some Foota Foulahs and Cabu
Mandingoes, who came down and fell upon a town called Bar-
sansang, and another town called Brooko, not more than two or
three miles from the south-east end of Macarthy's Island ; and
report says, they took away an immense number of cattle, and
about two hundred slaves. Some few of these will probably be
redeemed at double prices ; and the rest will be sent down to
tbe coast, and sold to these horrible persons engaged in this
nefarious and abominable traffic."
From the preceding pages, then, it is evident tliat the whole-
sale method of seizure is by far the most frequent; and that
without this plan a sufficient number of victims could not be
procured for the market. Indeed, having resided on Macarthy's
Island for several years, which was frequently filled for a time
with refugees from all the country round about; and having
visited the kingdoms of Barra and Kombo, on the north and
south bank of the Gambia, near the Atlantic, and most or
nearly all the chief and petty states from thence up the river as
far as Cantalicunda, and in the interior of the continent as far
as Boollibany, the capital of Bondou; and, moreover, having
been in close connexion Math those unfortunate, and yet fortu-
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 109
nate, Negroes, the liberated Africans ; I had many opportunities
of learning the various modes in which they were made slaves.
And from what I have seen myself, as well as from the state-
ments of those who made a precipitous flight to Macarthy's
Island; and especially from the testimony of the liberated
Africans who had been taken from various parts of the inte-
rior, some as far as from Houssa, and who are of different
nations and kingdoms, speaking distinct languages ; I am fully
convinced that the freqvieut wars and marauding excursions are
by far the most common and the prevailing way of obtaining
slaves.
I will, however, offer two additional illustrations of this inland
traffic, derived from eye-witnesses and sufferers from this
unhappy state of Africa. The first is an extract from a narra-
tive written by Joseph Wright, a member of the Wesleyan
society at Sierra-Seone, who is of the Aku tribe. The narrative
is too long for the Avhole to be inserted here ; but the reader
may find it in the Appendix to Dr. Beecham's admirable work
on '^Ashantee and the Gold-Coast.^^ It appears that Joseph,
with his family, resided in a large and populous town, which
was surrounded by a strong well-built mud- wall ; that the attack
made upon them was by a party of their own nation ; that the
inhabitants nobly defended themselves, until they were " almost
destitute of food /^ and that,
III this hard case of ours, we had no God to go to for help ; but we were constantly
sacrificing. At last the famine overcame us, so that the chosen men of war could
not forbear; and one night, in about seven months after the war had besieged us,
they consulted together to go to another place, in order to buy us some food, to
preserve us children of the land. And so they did; and in this band were my
father and mother. They went to get us some food too ; for they pitied us, when
they saw us perishing with hunger. Short time after, they were gone, with all the
mighty men of war. May be, the enemies knew this ; so they got ready to take
the city, before the people who gone for food should come back. The town
had become very poor, for want of people to fight ; because the greater part of the
people determined to go to seek food.
0 soiTowful, sorrowful morning ! Many had fled ; and many of the aged men
had put an end to their lives. Among these was one in our house, — my father's
near and very dear relation : he had put an end to his life too. The enemy had
fully taken the city : we came out into the street ; and, when we had walked about
fifty fathoms from our house, we saw the city on fii-e, and before us were the
enemies ; and they caught us. They separated me from aU my brethren, except
one of my father's children, born to him by his second wife. I and this were
caught together by one man. By the time we left the house, I saw my father's
mother pass the other gate. She and I had no hope of seeing her again in this flesh ;
doubtless they would kill her. Many were killed. There were two cities beside
oiu- own, that those enemies had besieged. The enemies satisfied themselves with
110 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
little girls, young men, and young women. They (lid not care for the elderly and
old people : they killed them without mercy ; and then the father knew not the
son, and the son knew not the father. Abundant heaps of dead bodies were in the
streets, and there was none to burj' them ; suckling babes crying at the point of
death, and there was none to take them up. These three cities were consumed in
one day ; and many of the inhabitants were taken as slaves.
I was with them (the enemies) in the camp about ten days, and saw many won-
derful instances, all of which I cannot now mention. I saw some people bound in
the streets ; and I saw a child of about eighteen months old, which was cast out of
the camp, because the child was too young, that nobody would buy him ; and that
poor orphan was there crjang at the point of death, for about two days, and none to
pity or take him up. Another time, I took a walk about in the camp, when I saw
ray own brother. I was not allowed to speak to him, although they knew hira to
be my own brother.
Few days after this, we came to the market, where many hundreds of slaves.
We were put in rows ; and in about five hours a trade-man came and bought
me, and put me in a canoe at once, and we were sailing all that night. Next
morning we came to another slaves' market, and there we remained the whole
day ; for the man wanted to buy more slaves. Early in the morning we were
brought to wliite Portuguese for sale. After strict examination, the white man put
me and some others aside ; after that, they then bargained how much he would
take for each one of us. After they were well agreed, the wiiite man sent us to the
slave-fold. The articles which the Portuguese paid for slaves were tobacco, rum,
clothes, powder, guns, cutlasses, brass, iron rod, and jaki, — that is our countrj' money.
The other ilhistration which I shall offer is the case of two
liberated African youths of IVfacarthy^s Island^ one of whom was
my servant for several years. Their history is so well told by the
Rev. R. M. MacBrair^ that I shall give it in his own words : —
The dreadful evils which the Slave-Trade has entailed upon Africa may be far-
ther illustrated by an account which two of our boys gave me of their captm'e and
subsequent sufferings. They were natives of Brecam, a small town beyond the
country of Catabar ; and Joseph's father was head-man, or chief, of the place. A
spy had come to search out the town ; in which he appears to have found few men,
l)ut many women and children. One night, therefore, after the usual recreations of
music and dancing, which the Negroes keep up to a late hour, they had retii-ed to
their respective huts, and were buried in balmy sleep ; when suddenly the shout of
an invading troop was beard, as they rushed through the stockade, and set tire to
the thatched dwellings of Brecam. Aroused by the ciy and the din of arms, each
warrior grasped his weapon, and rushed forth to repel the assailants, but instantly
received the shot or the spear-thrust of a watchful foe. Thus Charles's father was
numbered amongst the slain ; and, as the women and childi-en fled out of their
flaming dwellings, they were siurounded and captured. The man-hunters in this
case were also cannibals ; (a few of whom live in the interior of Central Africa ;)
and they afterwards deliberated upon the choice of new victims. Some talked of
devouring the children ; and Charles and Joseph hid themselves during the awful
moment behind some litter. " But we can get goods for them," was the sugges-
tion of a warrior, to whose lot they had fallen ; and so a more useless victim must
be selected. This they found in Charles's mother, who was then in such a condi-
tion as rendered her little fit to undergo the fatigues of a long journey. The child-
THE SLAVE-TRADE. Ill
ren saw a man perform the bloody deed, which was accompanied with such revolt-
ing brutalities as memoiy would fain endeavour to hide imder the cloak of
forgetfulness.
A long road now lay before the captives, during which they suffered much from
toil and weariness. The children were sold to one party for cloth, to another for
salt, and finally to a Portuguese slaver for tobacco. They formed part of a cargo
of eight hundred human victims, several of whom speedily died on the passage,
and found a grave in the ocean's bed. But, as they proceeded on their voyage, the
shot of a cannon was heard athwart the deep ; for a British cruiser now summoned
the slaver to " haul to." The latter was well armed and manned ; and, being of
far greater force than the little cruiser, prepared for a desperate resistance. But
after the engagement had commenced, the breechings of the slaver's guns gave way,
(being rotted by the climate of Africa,) and she therefore became defenceless. Her
captain, furious to desperation, though he had received several severe wounds, upon
seeing his vessel about to be boarded by the British, gave orders to a seaman to
fire the powder-magazine, and blow her up, that they might all perish together.
The latter disobeyed, and the EngUsh took possession of their prize; xipon wliich
the poor slaves, who had been in a state of indescribable emotion whilst the con-
flict lasted, now set up a loud shout of joy at the prospect of freedom.
Some time afterwards, a man came one day to our mission-house to sell some
little article of merchandise. Upon accidentally seeing him, Charles and Joseph
instantly fell upon him with all the fury of their tongues, and launched out the
bitterest invectives in their native language. Being interrogated as to the cause of
this passion, " That is the man," cried Charles, " who killed and ate my mother ;
and so I curse him." (The Negroes use "cursing" in the sense of scolding, as
well as of malediction.) It was indeed the self-same individual ; who, shortly after
perpetrating the foul deed above naiTated, had himself been siu-prised by a superior
foe, had been sold as a slave, Uberated on the high seas by another British cruiser,
and actually landed on Macarthy's Island before the children who had been the
victims of his barbarity. Such a fact speaks volumes (observes Mr. MacBrair).
And for such deeds of cruelty as these, Em-opean and American slave-dealers have
to answer at the bar of God, since it is they who incite the naturally-peaceful
African to violence and murder in procuring slaves.*
Mungo Park, one of Africa's best and most faithful historians,
has given some affecting accounts of Slavery, and of the manner
in which the slaves are treated on their mai'ch down to the
coast. But we hasten to a more recent date for a specimen of
the cruelties practised upon these unhappy captives on their
journey to the slave-ship. Major Gray in 1825 published his
" Travels in Western Africa ; " from which the following is an
extract : —
" I had an opportunity of witnessing the sufferings to which
the new-made slaves are subjected in their first state of bondage.
They were hurried along, the men tied in pairs by the necks, their
hands secured behind their backs ; the women, by the necks only,
with their hands left free ; not, however, from any sense of feeling
* MacBrair's " Sketches of a Missionary's Travels," pp. 258 — 2G1.
112 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
towards them, but iu order to enable them to balance the immense
loads of corn or rice which they were forced to carry on their heads,
besides the children, who were unable to walk, on their backs.
Their pace was little short of running, to enable them to keep
up with the horsemen, who drove them on as Smithfield drovers
do fatigued bullocks. Many of the women were old, and by no
means able to endure such treatment. One in particular would
not have failed to excite the tenderest feelings of compassion in
the breast of any, save a savage African : she was at least sixty
years old, in the most miserable state of emaciation and debility
nearly doubled together, and with difficulty dragging her totter-
ing limbs along. All this did not prevent her inhuman captor
from making her carry a heavy load of water; while, with a
rope round her neck, he drove her before his horse ; and, when-
ever she showed the least inclination to stop, he beat her in the
most unmerciful manner with a stick."
Of a subsequent day's toil the major writes : " The sufferings
of the poor slaves during a march of nearly eight hours, partly
under an excessively hot sun and east wind, heavily laden with
water, of which they w^ere allowed to drink but very sparingly,
and travelling bare-foot on a hard and broken soil, covered with
long dried reeds and thorny underwood, may be more easily
conceived than described.
"One young woman, who had for the first time become a
mother two days only before she was taken, and whose child,
being thought by her captor too j^oung to be worth saving, was
thrown by the monster into the burning hut from which the
flames had just obliged the mother to retreat, suffered so much
from the swollen state of her bosom, that her moans might fre-
quently be heard at a distance of some hundred yards, when,
refusing to go on, she implored her fiend-like captor to put an
end to her existence : but that would have been too great a
sacrifice to humanity; and a few blows with a leathern horse-
fetter soon made the wretched creature move again."*
On arriving on the Coast, the captives are placed in the slave-
barracoons, with gyves round their necks, and shackles on their
feet, and are fed on the " bread and water of affliction," till the
slave- vessel arrives. A gentleman resident at Senegal in 1818
stated, to his correspondent at Paris, "No one in the town is
ignorant that there are here six hundred wretched creatures
shut up in the slave-yards, waiting for embarkation. The delay
which has occurred causing a serious expense, they receive only
* Gray's " Travels in Africa," pp. 290, 292, 296.
THE SLAVE-TRADE.
113
what is sufficient to keep them alive ; and they are made to go
out for a short space of time, morning and evening, loaded with
irons."*
Captain Cook mentions a distressing case which occurred in
August, 1837, and which came under his own observation. He
says, " Slaves to the number of two hundred and fifty, or there-
abouts, male and female, adults and children, were brought in
canoes from Senna, a Portuguese settlement at some distance in
the interior of Africa, to be sold at Quillimane, there being at
that time several slavers lying in the river. Those unfortunate
beings were consigned to a person holding a high civil appoint-
ment under the Portuguese Government (the collector of cus-
toms). These poor creatures were from a part of the country
where it is said that the natives make bad slaves ; consequently,
and as there was abundance of human flesh in the market, they
did not meet with a ready sale. The wretch to whom they were
consigned actually refused them sustenance of any kind. Often
have I been compelled to witness the melancholy spectacle of
from twelve to twenty of my fellow-creatures, without distinc-
tion of age or sex, chained together, with a heavy iron chain
round the neck, wandering about the town in quest of food to
satisfy the cravings of nature ; picking up bones and garbage of
every description from the duug-heaps, snails from the fields,
and frogs from the ditches; and, when the tide receded, col-
lecting the shell-fish that were left on the bank of the river; or
sitting round a fire, roasting and eagerly devouring'^the sea- weed.
"Again and again have I seen one or more of these poor
creatures, when unable from sickness to walk, crawling on their
hands and knees, accompanying the gang to which they were
chained, when they went in search of their daily food ; for one
could not move without the whole." f
We followed Joseph Wright in his affecting narrative down
to the " slave-fold," as he calls it. He then goes on to say, " I
was there in the fold for about two months, with a rope on my
neck. All the young boys have ropes on their necks in a row ;
and all the men with chains in a long row, for about fifty per-
sons in row; so that no one could make escape without the
other. At once the town took fire, and about fifty slaves were
consumed; because the entry was so crowded that these slaves
could not get out. — Next day, early in the morning, we were all
brought down close to the salt water for to be put in canoes. We
all were heavy and sorrowful in heart, because we were going to
* Sir T. F. Buxton's " Slave-Trade, and its Remedy." f Ibid.
I
]U
AVESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
leave our lane! for another which we never knew; and not only
so, but, when we see the waves of the salt water on which we
were just to enter, it discouraged us the more; for we had
heard that the Portuguese were going to eat us when we got to
their countr3^ This put us more to despair; and, when they
began to place in canoes to bring ns to the brig, one of the
canoes sunk ; and half of the slaves died. After they had done
loading the brig, they stowed all the men at the bottom under
the deck ; the boys and women were left on the deck. The
brig sailed in the evening.'^*
The Rev. W. Allen, Wesleyan Missionary on the Gold-Coast,
has furnished the Christian public, through one of the Society^s
publications, with a lively description of Whydah and Badagry,
two slave-dealing ports in the Bight of Benin, where this inhu-
man traffic is pursued on a very large scale. After stating the
geographical position of Whydah, the size of the town, its popu-
lation, &c., and noticing its beautiful scenery, he observes : —
The two principal establishments in this place are, Mr. De Souza's, and Mr.
Tangronie's, two slave-dealers : the latter died early in the year 1843. Mr. De
Sonza's premises occupy at least three acres of ground, surrounded by a substantial
s^vish wall, two feet thick and twelve feet high. Inside this wall are his slave-
barracoons. His house stands in fi'ont of his premises ; and, being coloured M'hite,
is visible from the sea. Mr. Tangronie's premises are similar, only not quite so
extensive. These two large slave-establishments are separated from each other by
a street running in a direct line between them. Mr. De Souza's house is elegantly
furnished ; and such a display of silver I never beheld in any house in Europe.
There are other slave-dealers' premises on the same principle, but not quite so
extensive as these. I cannot attempt to describe my distressed feelings while
walking along the streets, generally formed by the dreary walls which surrounr) the
barracoons, knowing that hundreds of poor innocent creatures were there deposited,
all in ii-ons, to be shipped oft' at the first opportunity. The thought was almost
more than I could bear. While I was at Angway, a slave-port fifty miles to the
windward, a large slave-brig passed down, called in at Whydah, and in three hours
took on board eleven hundred and seventy slaves, and sailed off with them. It is
distressing to be made acquainted with the treatment of these poor creatures.
When the Portuguese and Spaniards buy the slaves from the interior, they put their
feet in irons to secure them, deposit them in their barracoons ; and, before they
ship them off, they brand them, with a red-hot iron between the shoulders, with
the initials of the individual to whom they belong. When a slave-vessel comes in
to Whydah, and none of Her Majesty's ships of war are in sight, these poor crea-
tures are marched down to the beach, stowed away under the athwarts of the
canoe, and taken to the vessel. Owing to the surf running high, canoes are fre-
quently swamped, and many are drowned before they reach the vessel. " Slave " is
painted on the head-board of these slave-canoes in large letters. The canoes and
canoe -men employed on the Slave-Coast for shipping slaves ai'e aU procm-ed from
the Gold-Coast. Vessels, under a false national flag, call in at some of the ports on
* Beecham's " Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," pp. 3,55 — 357.
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 115
the Gold-Coast to sell rum and roll- tobacco; they then purchase cauoes, and
engage canoe-iuen to go down with them to the Slave-Coast to work them ; and
many are never allowed to return. The barbarous manner in which the unfortu-
nate slaves are stowed away on board the slavers, is distressing. In small crafts,
where you would suppose it was not possible to find room for one hundred men,
they will stow away five hundred. It is not an uncommon thing for one-third of
them to die on board from suffocation.
Whydah forms part of the kingdom of Dahomi. The inhabitants are cruel and
barbarous : this need not be wondered at, if we consider the examples which are
set them by these slave-dealers. While I was there, not fewer than two hundred
Portuguese and Spaniards were engaged in this inhuman traffic, besides many of
the influential natives.*
We have already given some accouut of the miseries of the
Middle Passage, and therefore need not enter into a recapitu-
lation : but a specimen or two of this species of commerce
on the other side of the Atlantic may be here adduced.
Having been forcibly torn from their native towns in the inte-
rior by a stronger foe, or kidnapped whilst engaged in their
fields and gardens, or suddenly seized upon in the foot-path
while journeying from one village to another, these poor crea-
tures are lashed together; and, after a fatiguing and tedious
march over burning sands and under the rays of the scorching'
sun, in some cases for a distance of upwards of five hundred
miles, they at length arrive on the coast ; and, as soon as the
slave-ship is ready, hundreds of these innocent Africans are
hurried on board of one of these vessels in the course of a few
hours, and, amid the sighs and sobs and tears of bitter regret
and pain, they bid adieu to their native land. But they are
now safely lodged in their floating prison; and, as we have
already seen, are crammed together like herrings in a barrel.
In addition to this, they are surrounded with every thing nau-
seous and disgusting. A very scanty allowance of water is
afforded them ; and horse-beans are allotted as their food. If
they manifest any external signs of uneasiness at their hard
fate, the lash is applied as the only remedy for their grief: if
they refuse to eat, they are compelled by instruments of torture
to SAvallow their victuals. They are sometimes requested to
dance and sing ; and, if any reluctance is exhibited, the cat-o^-
nine-tails is employed to enforce obedience. Yes, strange as it
may seem, many of these poor creatures may saj"^, in the lan-
guage of the Israelites, "They that carried us away captive
required of us a song ; and they that wasted us required of us
mirth." (Psalm cxxxvii. 3.) But, labouring under a fixed
melancholy at the loss of their relatives, friends, and country,
* " \Yesleyan Missionary Notices," September, 1847.
I 2
116 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
they can neither dance nor sing; and many of them, instead of
complying with the unfeeling and unreasonable request, attempt
self-destruction; and some actually accomplish it. Suicide is
sometimes effected by choking and strangling themselves; but
more frequently by jumping overboard, and thus seeking rest in
a watery grave. Pairs of them have been known mutually to
agree to this, and have thrown themselves into the sea locked in
each other's arms.
In some cases the slaves rise in a mass to liberate themselves ;
and then force is opposed to force, and in the scuffle many of
them are shot, and others jump overboard and are drowned;
and some, whilst actually drowning, have been seen to wave
their hands in triumph, exulting that they had escaped, thus
preferring death to the misery of their situation.
Wadstrom, in his ''Essay on Colonization in Western
Africa," published in 1795, mentions one or two instances of
this kind. The annexed sketch represents an insurrection on
board a slaver, and is copied from one in his work, the original
of which, he informs us, was furnished to him at Goree in 1787.
The particulars narrated below are from the Report of the
Directors of the Sierra-Leone Company: "I have just heard
that an American brig has been cut off by the slaves, seven
or eight leagues north of Cape Sierra-Leone. A single slave
began the attack, r\ished into the cabin, laid open the captain's
face and breast with an axe, and severely Avounded a passenger.
As the seamen made no resistance, they were permitted to go
off, with the wounded, in the boat. The captain died. The
ship was re-taken by a Liverpool vessel, after an encounter in
which some of the slaves were killed."
The following is an account of a similar catastrophe to that
which the sketch represents : '' I have got considerable light
into the historj^ of Mahady, the famous Mahometan prophet,
who appeared in these parts, with an immense concourse of fol-
lowers, about three years ago. When he was killed, his gene-
rals contended for the mastery ; and one of them, being taken
by his antagonist, was immediately sold to a French slave-ship^
lying off a factory near Sierra-Leone. There he behaved with
a sullen dignity, and, even in chains, addressed his fellow-slaves
in his wonted tone of authority. I heard this from a slave-
trader, who had seen him, both as a great chief or general, and
as a prisoner on board a slave-ship. The slave-trader and the
captive chief mutually recognised each other. On the same
day, when the slave-trader was on board, it happened that the
chief was permitted to walk on deck without his fetters. No
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 117
sooner had the captain and his friends sat down to dinner, than
a signal was given. The slaves rose to a man, knocked off each
other's fetters, and, headed by the chief, attacked the barricade.
But they failed. The guns were pointed at them ; some were
killed, many leaped into the sea, and the insurrection was
quelled. The captain inquiring for the ringleader, the chief
came boldly forward, and avowed that he was the man; that he
wished to give liberty to all the slaves on board; that he
regretted his defeat on their account ; but that, as to himself,
he was well satisfied with the prospect of immediately obtaining
what he termed his own liberty. The captain hung him up
instantly to the yard-arm."
Mr. Wadstrom mentions another case, — that of a Boston
slave-ship, in which "the slaves rose, and cut to pieces the
second mate and a seaman on deck. They then attacked the
cabin, and killed the captain and chief mate. The rest of the
crcAV surrendered on condition that their lives should be spared,
and the ship given to them, with the promise that they would
navigate her into some place where the slaves might escape.
In steering towards a neighbouring river, she ran aground ; and
they came in contact with a slave-trader with a number of
armed men. An obstinate engagement followed ; but the slaves
were overpowered, several of them were killed, and the rest,
being eighteen, were sold again into slavery."*
But we have a more recent account of a slave-ship mutiny,
furnished by the Bio Commissioners, under date of the 21st of
March, 1845 ; and given in the evidence of James Bandinel,
Esq., before a select Committee of the House of Commons on
the Slave-Trade, during the session of 1848. It is as follows:
"The 'Kentucky^ had taken a cargo of slaves at Inhambane.
The next day, after the vessel crossed the bar on leaving
Inhambane, the Negroes rose upon the officers and crew. The
majority of the men, all of whom were in irons, got their irons
off, broke through the bulk-head, and likewise into the fore-
castle. Upon this, the captain armed the crew -with cutlasses,
and got all the muskets and pistols, and loaded them ; and the
crew were firing down amongst the slaves for half an hour or
more. In the mean time deponent was nailing the hatches
down, shot no musket or pistol ; and there was no occasion, as
the Brazilian sailors seemed to like the sport. In about half an
hour they were subdued, and became quiet again. The slaves
were then brought on deck, eight or ten at a time, and ironed
* Wadstrom's "Essay on Colonization," part ii. pp. 86, 87.
118 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
afresh; they were all re-ironed that afternoon, and put below,
excepting about seven, who remained on deck. There were but
eight or ten more or less Avounded. On the next day they were
brought upon deck, two or three dozen at a time, all being well
ironed, and tried by Captain Fonseca and officers ; and, within
two or three days afterwards, forty-six men and one woman were
hung and shot, and thrown overboard. They were ironed or
chained two together; and, when hung, a rope was put round
their necks, and they were drawn up to the yard-arm clear of
the sail. This did not kill them ; but only choked or strangled
them : they were then shot in the breast, and the bodies thrown
overboard. If only one of two that were ironed together was to
be hung, a rope was put round his neck, and he was drawn up
clear of the deck, beside of the bulwarks, and his leg laid across
the rail, and chopped off, to save the irons, and release him from
his companion, who at the same time lifted up his leg till the
other's was chopped off, and he released. The bleeding Negro
ivas then drawn up, shot in the breast, and thrown overboard.
The legs of about one dozen were chopped off in this way. When
the feet fell on deck, they were picked up by the Brazilian creiv,
and thrown overboard, and sometimes at the body, ivhile it still
hung living ; and all kinds of sport were made of the busi-
ness." *
The preceding are but a fcAv instances, out of many others, of
the attempts which the slaves naturally make to liberate them-
selves, but in which they rarely succeed. Indeed, how can suc-
cess be expected, when they are ironed and doubly-ironed,
chained together below the deck, and carefully guarded and
watched ? Even when they succeed in knocking off their fet-
ters, they have nothing with which to defend their naked bodies
against the cutlasses and fire-arms of their merciless foes. But
the account of the occurrences on board the "Kentucky" pre-
sents a scene of such barbarity, a picture of such hideous
atrocity and butcherj', as practised by the captain and crew
towards the slaves, that a parallel, if sought for, can only be
found in the cannibalism of the savages of New Zealand or
Feejee.
But even when the slaves who are stoAved away on board
these unhallowed vessels do quietly submit to their hard fate,
such is the impurity of the atmosphere arising from close con-
finement and a deficiency of fresh air, and from the filth and
* " First Report of the Select Committee of the House of Commons on the
Slavc-Trade, 1848," p. 253.
THE SLAVE-TKADE.
119
stench cousequent thereon, that they nmy be said barely to
exist while detained in these floating hospitals. For hospitals
indeed they are, with this difference, — they are places where
diseases originate, and where but few cures take place. For
Captain Cook, when speaking on this subject, says, "With all
this probability, or rather certainty, of disease, I never knew
but one slaver that carried a surgeon." But, supposing every
slaver carried a surgeon on board, that would only prove the
necessity that existed for medical treatment, and the absolute
certainty that diseases do originate there, and that they require
prompt and skilful attention. It is well known that the
Negroes are far more violently aftected by sea-sickness than
Europeans ; and that this frequently terminates in death, espe-
cially among the women. Divers diseases, such as dysentery,
ophthalmia, scurvy, the small-pox, and other putrid and fatal
disorders, frequently occur; and are so rapid in their progress,
that, when the inspector goes in the morning, he has often to
pick out dead slaves out of the wedged row^s, and to unchain
their dead carcasses from the bodies of their -wretched • fellow-
sufferers, to whom they had been fastened.
Of the efl"ects of ophthalmia the Fifteenth Report of the
African Institution furnishes a terrible instance, which took place
on board a French slaver, the "Le Rodeur," in 1819. This
vessel left the Bonny with one hundred and sixty Negroes on
board, and a crew of twenty-two men. After she had been
about fifteen days on her voyage, it was discovered that many of
the slaves had contracted a considerable redness of the eyes;
and, though this vessel had a surgeon on board, the disease
spread so rapidly, that the crew were seized with it. " Twelve
of them lost their sight entirely, among whom was the surgeon ;
five became blind of one eye, one of them being the captain ;
and four were partially injured." The vessel, however, reached
Guadaloupe on June 21st, 1819; and, three days after her
arrival, the only man who during the voyage had withstood the
influence of the contagion was seized with the same malady.
Of the Negroes, thii-ty-niue had become perfectly blind, twelve
had lost one eye, and fourteen were affected Avitli blemishes
more or less considerable.
It was stated that the captain caused several of the Negroes
who Avere prevented in the attempt to throw themselves over-
board, to be shot and hung, in the hope that the example might
deter the rest from similar conduct. It was further said that
upwards of thirty of the slaves who became blind were thrown
into the sea and drowned ; upon the principle that, had they
120 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
been landed at Guadaloupe, no one Avould have bought them ;
while, by throwing them overboard, the expense of maintaining
them was avoided ; and a ground was laid for a claim on the
underwriters by whom the cargo had been insured, who are said
to have allowed the claim, and made good the value of the slaves
thus destroyed.
But the supplement must not be omitted. At the time when
only one of the crew on board the " Rodeur" could see to steer
that vessel, they fell in with a Spanish slave-ship, the " St.
Leon.^^ A contagion had seized the eyes of all on board of her ;
so that there was not an individual, sailor or slave, who could
see. They implored help from the "Rodeur;" but, alas! it
was in vain ; they were unable to render them any assistance ;
and the " St. Leon" passed on, and, being totally at the mere}'-
of the wind and the waves, without an helmsman to steer, or
any one to work the ship, she was never more heard of !
But we cannot linger here. The wretched cargo, in ordinary
cases, has now crossed the vast Atlantic, and the slaves are being
landed in the colonies of the far West. From the horrors of
the Middle Passage the slaves often arrive in a sickly, disordered
state, with wounds or eruptions ; and the captain now acts the
part of an English horse-jockey, in improving their appearance,
and concealing their defects, and thus preparing his cattle for
the market. For this purpose, astringent washes, mercurial
ointments, and repelling drugs are applied, that their Avounds
and diseases may be hid. These preparations being completed,
they are led to the market like cattle, examined, handled,
selected, separated, and sold : except in those cases where the
Negroes are branded — not like sheep, who have the farmer's
initial marked with tar upon their wool, but — ivlth the red-hot
iron upon the hare flesh. As these marks show that they
belonged to, and were shipped on account of, different indivi-
duals, they are at once transferred to their owners.
A letter from the Havannah, in 1838, contains the following
account : " In the cool of the evening we made a visit to the
bazaar. A newly-imported cargo of two hundred and twenty
human beings was here exposed for sale. They were crouched
down upon their forms around a large room. During a visit of
more than an hour that we were there, not a word was uttered
by one of them. On entering the room the eyes of all were
turned towards us, as if to read in our countenances their fate.
They were all nearly naked, being but slightly clad in a light
check shirt, upon which was a mark upon the breast. With a
few exceptions they were but skin and bone. Too weak to
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 121
support their languid forms, thej were reclining on the floor,
their backs resting against the vvaD. When a purchaser came,
they were motioned to stand, which order they obeyed, though
with apparent pain. A few were old and grey ; but the greater
proportion were children, of from ten to tliirteen or fifteen years
of age. When they stood, their legs looked as thin as reeds,
and hardly capable of supporting the skeletons of their Avasted
forms. The keeper informed us, they were of several distinct
tribes, and that they did not understand one another ; and this
was apparent, also, from the formation of the head. While we
were there, five little boys and girls were selected and bought
to go into the interior. No regard is paid to relationship ; and,
once separated, they never meet again.^'*
The population of Brazil in South America is estimated at
upwards of five millions ; and of these more than two millions
are slaves. Notwithstanding, that country took part with
other nations in the Abolition of the Slave-Trade, made it
illegal in 1831, and even declared it punishable as piracy; yet
an active Slave-Trade is still carried on between it and the
African coast ; and the number of Negroes landed at five of the
principal ports of Brazil is upwards of seventy thousand
annually. So eager, indeed, is the demand for slaves, that it is
believed that, were ten thousand Africans to be brought into
that province every month, they would be all bought up. The
slaves, when landed, are generally taken to depots along the
coast, until recruited after their voyage. If not sold at the
depot, a case which often happens, they are marched openly in
gangs into the interior, and distributed over the country, and
are employed in the mines or on the plantations. The follow-
ing extract from a letter written on board of a British
vessel, and dated January 9th, 1843, will give an idea of the
conduct of the Brazilian government with refei'ence to the
Slave-Trade, and of the way in which the Negroes are disposed
of on landing in Brazil : —
"We arrived off Santos on November 12th, and received
information that a slave-vessel was daily expected from the east
coast. The vessel arrived ; but, having gained intelligence from
the Portuguese on shore that our boats were at the mouth of
the river, she landed her cargo a few miles lower down, and
thus escaped being captured. The commander of the English
cruiser wrote to the governor of Mozambique, who, not being
friendly to the Slave-Trade, fined the vessel severely for a breach
* Sir T. F. Buxton on the '• Slave-Trade, and its Remedy."
122 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
of the custom-laws j which was reported to the Portuguese
government at home; and an order Avas despatched for his
supersession^ it having been found that he Avas too strict, and
that, in consequence, the colonial treasury was impoverished.
A duty is paid upon each slave of seven dollars ; and the autho-
rities, instead of suppressing the abominable traffic, encourage it
by every means in their power.
"The ship in question sailed from Quillimane with eight
hundred and fifty slaves, all children, and landed six hundred
and tAventy, having lost tAvo hundred and thirty on the passage.
The cost of slaA^es at Quillimane is about thirty-tAvo milreis
each ; (about £i sterling ;) and the price obtained for them on
landing Avas six hundred milreis, {£75 sterling,) ready mone}^,
leaving a profit, after a deduction of eighteen milreis for their
subsistence on shore previous to being sold, of five hundred and
fifty miireis on each slave, to pay the expense of their transit,
and to reimburse the vile Avrctches employed in the nefarious
traffic, and also to enable them to fee the authorities, in order
to hoodwink them. In a conversation I had with the English
consul, Mr. Whittaker, he said that the authorities are all deter-
mined to encourage the traffic, alleging that no act can become
law by the Portuguese constitution unless it be beneficial to the
country generally ; and that, as the importation of Negroes is
beneficial, and desired by a majority of the people, the treaty
entered into by the mother country is not binding upon
them."*
It appears from authentic documents that the slaves on the
plantations and in the mines of Brazil are, on the Avhole, better
treated than those in the planting states of America; that they
have more holidays in the course of the year ; that the laAV com-
pels the master to manumit the slave for the price at which he
was first purchased, or for his present value, if it be greater
than prime cost; and that instances of manumission are far
from uncommon.
But, with the exception of these meliorating circumstances, Slaver}' in Brazil
is as miserable a state of bondage as could well be pictured. " If we be the most
merciful," says the author of a Brazihan pamphlet on Slavery, " what must the
rest be ? On the great sugar estates in the north of Brazil, it would horrify you to
witness the misery of the slaves, whose bodies, covered with wounds, sufficiently
indicate the treatment of which they are continually the victims.
" In the province of Maranham and Piauhy, as novenas, that is, ' whippings for
nine successive days,' is an ordinary punishment. The culprit is fastened to a cart,
* Chambers's " Miscellany."
THE SLAVE-TRADE, 123
and there receives two or three hundred lashes ; the mangled flesh is then cut, and
Cayenne pepper and salt are put into the wounds, to prevent, as they suppose,
gangrene and coiTuption. I know a man named Joao. Alvarenga, in Piauhy, who,
when he wished to get rid of a slave, ordered him a novena, and then exposed him
in a sack to the burning sun, where the unhappy victim was farther tortured to
death. The punishment of the tomiguette, hand and neck-stocks, thumb-screws,
irons, stocks, and many other instruments of torture, are common on our planta-
tions ; and even in our cities they are not rare. The art of torturing is far
advanced amongst us. To expose a slave for a whole night tied to a stake over an
ants' nest, as is customary in some provinces, or on a cross to the stinging of mus-
quitoes, as in Rio Grande de Sul, are refinements of barbarity peculiar to Brazil."
As in other slave-using countries, so in Brazil, the cruel treatment which the
slaves experience drive many of them to the most desperate means of escaping it.
" Suicide," says the Rev. Dr. Walsh, " is the daily practice in Brazil. Respectable
persons have told me they frequently encountered black bodies, when they went to
bathe. I have seen them myself, left by the tide on the strand, and some weltering
just under our windows. The wretched slave often inflicts death on himself in an
extraordinary manner. They have a method of buiying their tongue in the throat,
in such a way as to produce suffocation. A friend of mine was passing when a
slave was tied up and flogged. After a few lashes he hung down his head, appa-
rently lifeless ; and, when taken down, he was actually dead, and his tongue found
wedged in the cBsophagus so completely as to cover the trachea. Negresses are
known to be very fond mothers ; yet this very affection often impels them to com-
mit infanticide. Many of them, particularly the Minas slaves, have the strongest
repugnance to have children, or, as they say, to bring slaves into the world." *
Instances of runaway or straj^ed Negroes are of frequent
occurrence, when advertisements are published, offering a
reward, for their apprehension. If recovered, they are severely
punished.
Advertisements are also to be seen of sales of Negroes, such as the following,
which occurs in the Rio Janeiro paper, the Journal de Commerce, July 21st, 1840 :
" For sale, in the Rua de Cano, No. 119, with or without her infant of four months,
a Negress. She has good milk, is very healthy, and very kind and tender to chil-
dren. She has neither vices nor defects ; can sew, wash, starch, and cook, all in
perfection, which will be guaranteed by the Publisher. The motive for selling her
is her being disol)edient to her Senhora." f
Where is there a Eriton that can read this cold-blooded piece
of barbarous inhumanity, this daring insult to our common
nature, without feelings of the utmost repugnance and the
deepest indignation ? Or, as Cowper expresses it,
" What man, seeing this,
And having human feelings, does not blush
And hang his head, to think himself a man .-'"
A mother offered for sale, " ivith or without her infant of four
* Chambers's " Miscellany." t Idem.
124 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
months ! " No wonder that the Negresses " have the strongest
repugnance to have children, or, as they say, to bring slaves into
the world.'^ AVhat English grazier would thus separate the
young of his sheep-fold, or any of his other cattle, from their
dams at a corresponding tender age ? " She lias good milk ! "
Whose face, male or female, does not exhibit a crimson blush of
shame at this short sentence ? " Is very healthy, and very kind
and tender to children : she has neither vices nor defects," ^c. :
and yet this healthy, kind, and tender-hearted mother, groaning
under the cruel usage of her task-master, must suffer an addi-
tional pang, by having her infant torn from her bosom ! O !
there is something, in the system of Slavery and the Slave-
Trade, so contrary to the principles of justice and humanity,
something so unearthly, so diabolical and infernal, that it makes
one^s blood to chill and one's pulse to stand still with horror.
Who does not pity poor Africa, and the millions of Africans
who are toiling in other lands, for another's gain ?
Abundantly has Africa multiplied, but only to furnish fresh
victims to the fraud and avarice of other nations. Brazil alone, as
we have already stated, receives an annual importation of upwards
of seventy thousand Negroes : and Sir Fowell Buxton has most
clearly proved, that Africa has been annually robbed by the
abominable Slave-Traders, Christian and Mahometan, of upv.^ards
of two hundred thousand of her children ; that this immense
number of Africans are periodically torn from the land of their
birth and of liberty, and sent into a state of cruel captivity. To
this amount may be added fully 125 per cent, as the average of
lives destroyed, first, by the wholesale murders which take place
in the primary seizure of these unhappy creatures ; secondly, by
the mortality which rages amongst them on their march down to
the coast, and during their detention, often in a state of starva-
tion, in the slave-barracoons ; and thirdly, by the multiplied
horrors of the Middle Passage ; thus making the total loss to
Africa of not less than five hundred thousand per annum. In
the preceding calculation we have not included the 20 per cent,
or the one-fifth of the number imported, that perish in the
seasoning, after they are landed in a foreign country ; nor the
seven or eight thousand that are annually captured by the
British cruisers, and that are conveyed back again to their
father-land, and many of whom die on their homeward passage,
and not a few after they are landed on the British settlements
on the coast. So that Africa loses far more than America or
other slave-holding countries gain.
Take the folloM'ing simple calculation from Sir T. F. Buxton's
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 125
affecting record of the Slave-Trade : — " Of 1000 victims to the
Slave-Trade,
One-half \ierish in the seizure, march, and detention, — that is 500
Of the SOO emharked, one-fourth, or 25 per cent die on the passage 125
Of the remaining 375 landed, one-fifth, or 20 per cent, perish in the
seasoning 75
Total loss... 700
So that 300 Negroes only, or three-tenths of the whole number
of victims, remain alive at the end of a year after their deport-
ation."
From these statements it is plain, that the whole wastage, or
tare, of the traffic is seven-tenths : that is to say, for every ten
Negroes whom Africa parts with, America receives only three ;
the other seven die. If we apply, therefore, as we may fairly do,
this mode of calculation to the actual numbers, we shall find that
if 500,000 Negroes are collected in the interior of Africa, in the
collecting of these one-half will die before the time of their
embarkation, leaving only 250,000 to be shipped ; of these one-
fourth will die in the passage across the Atlantic, leaving only
187,500 to be landed ; and of these one-fifth will die in the
process of seasoning ; leaving only available to the planter or
slave-holder 150,000. So that 350,000 Africans annually perish
at the shrine of this goddess of European cupidity, avarice, and
cruelty ; besides the 150,000 who are every year left to toil and
bleed and groan under the heavy lash of these modern Pharaohs,
whose hearts Satan himself must have hardened, or they would
long ere this have let the people go free.
Nor does the awful amount of mortality stop here, frightful as
it is : for, through the haste with which the embarkation is
generally conducted, the poor slaves being stowed away under
the athwarts of the canoe, on their way to the slave-ship, in
consequence of the surf running high, some of the canoes and
boats are frequently swamped amidst the breakers, and many
slaves are thus lost. This was the case when Joseph Wright
was being shipped; for he says, ''When they begin to place in
canoes, to bring us to the brig, one of the canoes sank, and half
of the slaves died." Many slave-vessels, as well as others, are
wrecked at sea: and hundreds and thousands have in this
way found a grave in the ocean's bed. Many are also cast into
the sea, when a man-of-war is in sight, to lighten the ship, and
so increase its speed, and prevent capture. And even when the
elements are not unfavourable to the slaver's course, and there
126 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
is no British cruiser to intercept her progress^ " death thins the
cargoes in various modes : suicide destroys many ; and many
are thrown overboard at the close of the voyage ; for^ as a duty
of ten (or seven) dollars is set by the Brazilian Government
upon each slave upon lauding, such as seem unlikely to survive,
or to bring a price sufficiently high to cover this custom-house
tax, are purposely drowned before entering port. Those only
escape these wholesale murders who Avill probably recover health
and flesh when removed to the fattening-pens of the slave-
farmer, — a man who contracts to feed up the skeletons to a
marketable appearance." * The Paris petition of February,
1825, states, " that it is established, by authentic documents,
that the slave-captains throw into the sea, every year, about
three thousand Negroes, men, Avomen, and children ; of whom
more than half are thus sacrificed, whilst yet alive, either to
escape from the visits of cruisers, or because, worn down by
their sufl'erings, they could not be sold to advantage." t
If to these items of mortality we add those who are slaugh-
tered when a mutiny occurs on board, and the numbers thrown
overboard when a storm arises, to prevent a worse catastrophe ;
and the great number of deaths which take place after capture,
when the slaves fall into British hands, on their way to the
place of adjudication, and even after they are landed at the
British settlements ; the amount will probably be not less than
370,000 of those who actually and annually perish in this the
worst of all plagues.
It is not easy to arrive at a correct estimate of the amount of
the Slave Trade, as carried on by various nations, during any
given year or number of years. All that can be done is to form
a calculation, approaching as nearly as possible to the actual
quantity, taking our data from well-authenticated records and
unquestionable facts. This task we have endeavoured to per-
form. What an accumulation of guilt, then, rests upon those
nations which have for so many years been engaged in this
atrocious and execrable trade ! and what an awful amount of
misery and mortality has Africa endured since her sons first
began to be kidnapped from her fertile shores ! If we calculate
the annual loss to Africa at 500,000, and multiply this number
by the ages through which the injury has been protracted, the
amount appals and rends the heart.
" From age to age" this cruelty "may be traced upon its own
* Rankin's " Sierra-Leone," vol. ii. p. 72.
t Sir T. F. Buxton's " Slave-Trade, and its Remedy."
THE SLAVE-TRADE. 127
sun-burnt continent;" for "which of the sands of her deserts
has not been steeped in tears, wrung out by the pang of separa-
tion from kindred and country? What wind has passed over
her plains without catching up the sighs of bleeding or broken
hearts ? And in what part of the world have not her children
been wasted by labours, and degraded by oppressions?"* It is
calculated that Napoleon in the course of his career occasioned
the sacrifice of three millions of the human race : but this is
a mere trifle compared with the awful scourge which the male-
volent and inveterate Slave-Trade has inflicted, and is at this
day inflicting, upon unhappy Africa; for from the preceding
statements it appears that upwards of one thousand victims are
daily required to feed this terrible consumer of mankind. This
is not, therefore, an occasional war between one nation and
another upon some great national principle : it is the every-day
business and profession of hundreds of armed bandits, who, like
the dreaded locusts, drive or carry off every thing before them.
This is indeed " the terror by night," and " the arrow that flieth
by day." It is emphatically the " pestilence that walketh in dark-
ness," and " the destruction that wasteth at noon-day." (Psalm
xci. 5, 6.) For, in the language of Bryan Edwards, " the whole
or the greater part of that immense continent is a field of war-
fare and desolation ; a wilderness, in which the inhabitants are
wolves to each other." But, O ! " tell it not in Gath, publish
it not in the streets of Askelon," that the untutored Africans
are urged on to those deeds of bloodshed and cruelty by the
civilized white villains of other countries !
As there is considerable difficulty in ascertaining the exact
number of slaves forced from Africa during any one given year,
so it is next to impossible to arrive at any correct conclusion- as
to the sum total of Negroes that Africa has lost since the com-
mencement of this ungodly traffic. But a hundred yean^ ago
the amount was supposed to be 100,000 annually ; that is, this
number was at that period landed in slave-holding states. Con-
sequently, so far back as that, upwards of another 100,000 must
have been sacrificed in the seizure, on the march, during their
detention on the coast, and on board those floating lazar-houses,
the slave-ships : and up to the close of the last century it has
been calculated that Africa must have been defrauded of a
population equal in numbers to that of the British islands, or
nearly 30,000,000 ! If we add the half million which Africa is
now annually losing, and has been losing yeariy for a long
* Rev. Richard Watson's Works, vol. ii. p. 93.
128 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
time past, the amount will be nearly twice the population of
Great Britain, or one-third of the inhabitants of Africa itself,
and not less than one- fourteenth part of the population of the
whole globe ! AYhat mind can grasp the idea? or what imagina-
tion can conceive one-half of the horrible murders, the countless
miseries, the heart-rending atrocities, and the wholesale devasta-
tions, which have been committed in the enslaving of such a
number of human beings ? Surely we may say, in the language
of holy writ, " This is a people robbed and spoiled ; they are all
of them snared in holes, and they are hid in prison-houses : they
are for a prey, and none delivereth ; for a spoil, and none saith,
Restore/' (Isaiah xlii. 22.)
It has been well and truly said, " This is no picture of infernal
torments, devised by a wild mythology ; no fabulous tale,
invented to warn mankind against the malignity of unbridled
power; no antiquated history of obsolete and now impossible
facts. It is a true report, a faithful diary, of actual life. Even
now, at every moment of that happy existence Avith which nature
and Providence have blessed this happy land, all the fearful
scenes are acting. At this very moment the savage bandits are
raking peaceful villages with fire and sword, and seizing or
slaughtering their affrighted prey. At this moment savage
captors are driving their chained gangs to the coast. Even now
the slavers are packing the human cargo in narroAver space than
bales of goods would require : while others are borne across the
Atlantic, others kept in hulks off the Brazilian shore. At this
and every hour the cane-fields are tilled by scourged gangs,
debarred all intercourse with women, and by systematic ill-usage
consumed in the shortest time, and unceasingly replaced by
fresh victims. And, the truth cannot be disguised, all this
follows, ' as the night the day.' " *
And must this tale of horrors be continued? When will the
justice, the benevolence, and the religion of Christendom put an
end to this infamous traffic ? But we leave the subject for the
present. Some further observations on the Slave-Trade will be
found in subsequent parts of this work : and at the close a few-
suggestions will be offered as to the best mode of destroying
this gigantic evil.
* Lord Denman's " Second Letter to Lord Brougham on the final Extinction
of the Slave-Trade," 1849, p. 31.
CHAPTER VII.
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
The Circumnavigation of Africa — Early Discoveries of the Western Coast — Hanno
and Eudoxus — Strange Report of the former — Since found to be substantially
correct — The Decline of maritime Discovery — Invention of the Mariner's
Compass — Discovery of the Canary Islands by the Spaniards — The Portu-
guese lead the Way in maritime Enterprise — Discovery of the Madeira Islands
in 1418 — Cape Bojador passed in 1433 — Prince Henry's Instructions to his
Navigators — His Wishes gratified by Gonzales in 1442 — Presentation of the
Negroes to the Pope — His Bull in favour of the Portuguese — The Portuguese
enter the Tropics — Cape-Verd — Senegal and Gambia — The Gold-Coast —
Commercial Prospects — John II. sends an Expedition — A Portuguese Colony
formed on the Gold-Coast — John assumes the Title of " Lord of Guinea" —
Emanuel succeeds John — The renowned Vasco de Gama — Portuguese Forts
and Slave-Factories established on different Parts of the Coast — Objects of the
Portuguese in exploring the Coast — Gold and Slaves the principal Attractions
— Commencement of the European Slave-Trade — Mode of taking Slaves — Gon-
zales and Nunez Tristan both killed in kidna]ipiug Slaves — Increase of the
Portuguese Slave-Trade — The Spaniards imbibe a Taste for Man-stealing — -
Portuguese engage in the " Carrying Trade"— Catholic Missionaries sent to the
Coast in 1490 — Well received — Wholesale Method of baptizing — Rapid
Progress of the Catholic Religion — Its early Decline — Total Extinction.
Long before the discovery of the New World by Columbus,
or the rounding of the Cape of Good Hope by Vasco de Gama,
other voyages were undertaken with a view to the exploration of
certain parts of the unknown coasts of Africa. In a pi'eceding
chapter we have placed upon record two accounts of the circum-
navigation of Africa, at a very early period. The first of these
voyages Avas undertaken by the Phenicians in the service of
Necho, king of Egypt, about 2,450 years ago ; and the second
and most memorable was performed along the Western Coast of
Africa by I Ian no, about 570 years before the Christian era.
The Carthaginians fitted out this expedition v.itli a view partly
to colonization, and partly to discovery. The armament con-
sisted of sixty large vessels, on board of which were embarked
persons of both sexes, to the number of thirty thousand.
The narrative handed down to us of Hanno's voyage begins
at the passage of the Straits of Gibraltar, or the Pillars of
Hercules. After two days' sail thence, they founded, in the
midst of an extensive plain, the city of Thymiaterium. In two
days more, thej' came to a cape, shaded with trees, called Solo-
cis, a promontory of Libya, on which they erected a temple to
K
130 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Neptune. Tlic}^ sailed round a bay, thickly bordered with plan-
tations of reeds, where numerous elephants and other wild
animals were feeding. Passing along for many days, they came
to a gulf, in which were several large islands. Here a remark-
able phenomenon arrested their attention. During the day
profound silence reigned, and nothing appeared but a vast world
of wood. But when night arrived, the whole shore blazed with
fire, and echoed with tumultuous shouts, as well as with the
sound of cymbals, trumpets, and musical instruments of every
description. The Carthaginians, appalled, passed hastily along
these shores, and came to another region, which struck them
with no less surprise. Here the land appeared all on fire;
torrents of flame rushed into the sea ; and if they attempted to
land, the soil was too hot for the foot to tread upon. One
object particularly struck them, which, at night, appeared a
greater fire mingling Avith the stars ; but, in the day-time,
proved to be a mountain of prodigious height, to which they
gave the appellation of " the chariot of the gods."
After sailing three days, they lost sight of these fiery torrents,
and came to another bay, containing an island, which presented
a new phenomenon. The inhabitants were of the human form ;
but, shagged and covered with hair, they suggested the idea of
those grotesque deities by which superstition supposed the
woods to be peopled. To these monsters they gave the name
of Gorilla. The males evaded all pursuit : they climbed pre-
cipices, and threw stones on their pursuers. But three females
were caught, and their skins carried to Carthage. Here the
narrative winds up by saying, that the farther progress of the
expedition was arrested by the want of provisions.
Such are the leading features of this celebrated voyage, than
which none has afi'orded, in modern times, more ample room for
the speculation of the learned. Many of the circumstances
which wore at first a marvellous aspect, have been found to
correspond with the observations of modern travellers. The
fires and nocturnal symphonies represent the habits prevalent
on all the Negro states, — repose during the day; music and
dancing prolonged through the night. The flames which seemed
to sweep over an expanse of territory, might be explained by the
practice, equally general, of setting fire at a certain season of
the year to the grass and shrubs ; and the Gorilla were evi-
dently the remarkable species of ape, to which we give the
name of ourang outang.* Extreme difference of opinion,
* Murray's " Narrative of Discovery and Adventure in Africa," vol. i. pp.
17—20.
GENERAL DESCRIPTION. 131
however, prevails as to tlie extent of coast actually explored by
this expedition : M. Gosselin contending that Hanno's voyage
terminated on the frontier of the coast of Morocco, a little
beyond the river Nun, in latitude 29" N., and only about 7°
below Gibraltar; while Heeren is of opinion that the expe-
dition reached to the mouth of the Gambia, in latitude 13° N. ;
and Major Rennell believes that Hanno went still further to
the south, that he passed Sierra-Leone, and that the island
and bay of the Gorilla; were Sherbro Island and Sound. The
first theory supposes a run along the western coast of above
six hundred miles ; the second, of about two thousand two hun-
dred ; and the last, of nearly three thousand miles, from the
commencement of the voyage.
The next remarkable voyage along the Western Coast of
Africa of which we have any account, was that of Eudoxus,
about 440 years subsequent to that of Hanno, or 130 years
before the birth of Christ. We have already mentioned this
spirited and enterprising navigator; and though there appears
to be some doubt as to whether he actually rounded the Cape
of Storms, yet that he passed the Straits with the prow of his
vessel turned towards India, and that he sailed a considerable
distance along the shores of Africa, is pretty evident.
Soon after this period, the spirit of discovery and maritime
enterprise declined, and lay dormant for many centuries. The
first fresh impulse which it received was about the year a.d.
1302, when the invaluable invention of the mariner's compass
was made by Flavio Gioia, a citizen of Ormalfi, in the kingdom
of Naples, which " opened to man the dominion of the sea, and
put him in full possession of the earth." But "near half a
century elapsed from the time of Gioia's discovery, before navi-
gators ventured into any seas which they had not been accus-
tomed to frequent.'' Hence Dr. Robertson remarks, " The first
appearance of a bolder spirit may be dated from the voyages of
the Spaniards to the Canary or Fortunate Islands. By what
accident they were led to the discovery of these small isles,
which lie nearly five hundred miles from the Spanish coast, and
above one hundred and fifty miles from the coast of Africa,
contemporary writers have not explained. But about the
middle of the fourteenth century, the people of all the different
kingdoms into which Spain was then divided, were accustomed
to make piratical excursions thither, in order to plunder the
inhabitants, or to carry them off as slaves." It does not
appear, however, that this event had any important influence
on the progress of discovery, though we find that " Clement Yl.,
K 2
132 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
in virtue of the right claimed by the holy see to dispose of all
countries possessed by infidels, erected these isles into a king-
dom in the year 1344;" and it was long held as " a fief of the
crown of Castile."
But, soon after this, the spirit of enterprise, which had been
asleep for ages, awoke, and burst forth with fresh and almost
unparalleled energy. " The glory of leading the way in the
new career was reserved for Portugal, one of the smallest and
least powerful of the European kingdoms. Various circum-
stances prompted the Portuguese to exert their activity in this
new direction, and enabled them to accomplish undertakings
apparently superior to the natural force of their monarchy." *
These undertakings are eloquently illustrated and described by
the great historian. Dr. Robertson, in the introduction to his
" History of America." It appears that one of the first attempts
towards obtaining a knowledge of Africa was made by the
Portuguese in 1412. Notwithstanding their vicinity to that
continent, they had never ventured beyond Cape Nun, which
had received its name from a supposed impossibility of passing
it. This year, however, or soon after, they proceeded one
hundred and sixty miles beyond it, to Cape Bojador, which,
stretching a considerable way into the Atlantic Ocean with
rocky cliffs, appeared so dreadful to the navigators, that they
returned to Lisbon without any attempt to pass it ; '' more
satisfied," says the historian of America, " with having advanced
so far, than ashamed of having ventured no farther." In a
subsequent attempt to double this formidable Cape, they were
driven out to sea by a sudden squall, which was followed by a
violent storm ; and when they all expected to perish, they dis-
covered Porto-Santo, one of the least of the Madeira Islands.
This was in 1418 ; and in the following year they discovered
Madeira itself. Prince Henry, in 1420, settled a colony here ;
and not only furnished it with plants and domestic animals, but
procured slips of the vine from Cyprus, and plants of the sugar-
cane from Sicily. " These throve so prosperously, that the
sugar and wine of Madeira quickly became articles of some
consequence in the commerce of Portugal."
But the information obtained respecting the Western Coast
of Africa was still very limited. Cape Bojador continued to be
the boundary of the continental discoveries of the Portuguese,
till 1433, when that passage was effected by Gilianez, which
caused a surprise and admiration almost equal to what were
* Dr. Robetson's " History of America."
GENERAL DESCRIPTION. 133
afterwards excited by the discovery of America. As yet, how-
ever, nothing had been brought home besides plants ; but two
years afterwards " Gonzales Baldeza penetrated about two de-
grees farther, and collected a valuable cargo of seal-skins, with
which he returned to Henry. The prince had always urged
his navigators to bring home some of the natives, that he might
have them baptized, educated, and sent back ; so that the Por-
tuguese might afterwards be able to open a commerce with
them in their own country. In 1442, twenty-four years after
the first expedition had sailed on this pursuit, the prince's
wishes were gratified. Gonzales, returning after a voyage of
two years, brought with him ten slaves and some gold-dust.
Henr}^ held out to his followers the gold, as the fruit to be
gathered by all who would assist in these discoveries ; and he
presented the Negroes to the Pope, and entreated his holiness to
make over to him a title to all the countries he should discover,
as an encouragement to those who should persevere in the enter-
prise, for the propagation of the Christian faith. Upon this
invitation. Pope Martin V. in the same year issued a Bull, b}^
which he granted to the Portuguese nation an exclusive right
to the possession and dominion of ail the countries which they
might discover from Cape Bojador to the continent of India."*
In 1443 Nunez Tristan passed Cape Blanco, and discovered
the Island of Arguim. They had now penetrated within the
Tropics ; and a rapid progress having been made along the shores
of the Sahara, the Portuguese navigators were not long in
reaching the fertile regions watered by the Senegal and the
Gambia. In 1446 Diniz Fernandez discovered Cape Verd, and
in the following year Lancelot entered the Senegal. The
Cape de Verd Islands and the Azores were successively dis-
covered about the year 1449; and in 1471 the voyagers pro-
ceeded as far south as the Gold-Coast, and were surprised to
find that the Torrid Zone, contrary to the opinion of the
ancients, who imagined it to be burnt up with heat, was not
only habitable, but fertile and prosperous. " While the Portu-
guese proceeded along the coast of Africa, from Cape Nun to
the river Senegal, they found all that extensive tract to be
sandy, barren, and thinly inhabited by a wretched people, pro-
fessing the Mahoraedan religion, and subject to the vast empire
of Morocco. But to the south of that river, the power aud reli-
gion of the Mahomedans were unknown. The country was
divided into small independent principalities ; the population
* Banjjinei.'s "Account of the Trade in Slaves."
134 WESTERN COAST OF AFlllCA,
was considerable; the soil fertile ; and the Portuguese soon dis-
covered that it produced ivory, rich gums, gold, and other valu-
able commodities. By the acquisition of these, commerce
was enlarged, and became more adventurous. Men, animated
and rendered active by the certain prospect of gain, pursued
discovery with greater eagerness than when they were excited
only by curiosity and hope.^^
In 1484 a powerful fleet was fitted out by John II., which,
after discovering the kingdoms of Benin and Congo, advanced
about fifteen hundred miles beyond the Line ; and the Portu-
guese, for the first time, " beheld a new heaven, and observed
the stars of another hemisphere. John was not only solicitous
to discover, but attentive to secure the possession of, those coun-
tries. He built forts on the coast of Guinea ; he sent out
colonies to settle there ; he established a commercial intercourse
with the more powerful kingdoms; he endeavoured to render
such as were feeble or divided tributary to the crown of Portu-
gal. Some of the petty princes voluntarily acknowledged them-
selves his vassals : others were compelled to do so by force of
arms. A regular and well-digested system was formed with
respect to this new object of policy, and, by firmly adhering to
it, the Portuguese power and commerce in Africa were estab-
lished upon a solid foundation." *
About this time, (1485,) the king of Portugal, upon the
strength of these discoveries, formally assumed the title of " Lord
of Guinea ;" since borne by his descendants. King John conti-
nued his enterprises up to 1497, when he died, and was suc-
ceeded by Emanuel, who inherited John's passionate desire for
discovery, and trade in the East : and in that year the whole
line of coast was explored, by the renounced Vasco de Gama,
who passed the Cape of Good Hope, and the southern extremity
of the Afi'ican continent, visited Cape Natal, Mozambique, and
Melinda, whence he stretched across to India. The Portuguese
had now completed the circumnavigation of Africa ; and at the
close of the century, had built several other forts besides that
at Elmina, and established slave- factories at Arguim, and on
the banks of the rivers Senegal, Nunez, Benin, and Congo;
and carried on a considerable commercial trade in the interior,
even up to Timbuctoo.
The objects of the Portuguese in these maritime enterprises
appear to have been threefold, — legitimate commerce, — trade
in slaves, — and the propagation of the Roman Catholic religion.
* Dr. Robertson's " History of Amciica."
GENERAL DESCRIPTIOX. 135
We have already noticed that Prince Henry had urged upon his
navigators to bring home some of the natives, in order that he
might have them baptized and educated, and then sent back to
the Portuguese settlements. And in 1481, when John II. suc-
ceeded to the throne, finding that his subjects, in some cases,
discontinued the Slave-Trade, and, in others, disposed of their
Negroes in Africa for gold, he encouraged them by all means in
his power to continue to trade in slaves, and to import them
into Europe, " in order," said he, " that the slaves may be
taught the worship of the true God before they die." * But
the laudable purpose of Henry and of John II. were soon mixed
up with baser objects ; for, on arriving at the Gold-Coast, the
Portuguese were dazzled by the importance and splendour of
the commodity, the commerce of which gave the name to that
region which it still retains. The fort which they built on that
part of the coast was called Elmina, (or " the mine,") and
became the centre and capital of their possessions in this conti-
nent. So far back as 1443, private merchants formed them-
selves into an Association for the avowed purpose of carrying on
jointly the gold-and Slave-Trade : and in the same year Nunez
Ti'istan, in the neighbourhood of Arguim, in latitude 20° 30'
North, met with some native boats, captured them, and brought
back their crews, amounting to fourteen persons, and made
slaves of them. From this period may be dated the beginning
of the African Slave-Trade in Europe ; and it is melancholy to
reflect upon the rapidity with which it increased. In 1444,
almost as soon as the Association was formed, its leaders set sail
and captured two hundred slaves. Part of these were liberated
again on ransom in Africa, and part were brought to Portugal,
and there sold.f Gold and slaves, but chiefly the latter, were
still the two main objects for which the Portuguese traded with
Africa; and the articles which they carried there for barter,
were cloths and stufl's of Portuguese manufacture.
In 1454 Cadamosto undertook a voyage to the Gambia, at
the request of Prince Henry, who had heard of the wealth on
the banks of that noble river. Cadamosto learned that the Por-
tuguese had been in the habit of landing by night, taking the
villages by surprise, attacking them, and carrying ofl" the inha-
bitants ; and thus, sailing along the coast, had committed
ravages, and caused horrors, wherever they went. Such were
the deeds which had already become common with the slave-
* Bandinel's " Account of the Trade in Slaves," p. 22. From Kerr's
" Voyages and Travels." f Ibid. p. 16.
136 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
traders of Portugal. But that the native Africans were hostile
to those plundering expeditions of the Portuguese, and resisted
them with all their might, we have proof at this early period :
for in 1445, in another voyage made by Gonzales, when he
attacked the unoffending natives with the view of obtaining
more slaves, he was himself killed in the affray which ensued.
Thus terminated the career of the man who a year or two pre-
viously was the first Avho had forced the Africans from their
native land, and had conveyed them to Europe. In the follow-
ing year, Nunez Tristan, who had embarked in the same unhal-
lowed enterprise, met with a similar fate. In ascending the
Rio Nunez, such was the eagerness of the Portuguese to obtain
slaves, that they again attacked the natives ; and in the scuffle
Nunez Tristan lost his life, leaving his name to the river on
which he died.^=
But this nefarious traffic, having once begun, continued
rapidly to increase ; and as early as 1460, the Portuguese estab-
lishment and Slave-Factory on the island of Arguim were in full
operation ; the Portuguese having enticed the Arabs to bring
down 'from the interior Negroes and gold, in exchange for Por-
tuguese goods. It appears from Mr. Bandinel, who quotes
from Cadamosto, that "from seven hundred to eight hundred
head of slaves " were yearly imported fi-om Africa into Portugal
about this period.
The Spaniards, also, had now imbibed a taste for man-steal-
ing ; though they indulged in it only to a very limited extent,
until the discovery of the New World, at the close of the cen-
tury. Then it was that the wholesale trade commenced : for it
is well known that Negro Slavery in the West Indies, both in its
cause and guilty agency, stands in close alliance with the horrid
extermination of the poor American Indians ; both being deeds,
the infamy of which belongs principally, if not solely, to the
Spaniards. In the mean time, the Portuguese traffic in slaves
continued to increase; and after supplying Portugal itself
with as many slaves as that country would take, the traders
commenced the practice of transporting their victims from
Africa as slaves to other countries; and this was called "the
Carrying Trade." f
But thoiigh the trade in gold and slaves was the principal
object which the Portuguese had in view in exploring the
Western Coast of Africa, they did not omit to introduce and
inculcate the principles of their religion. This, indeed, was a
* Bandinel's " Account of the Trade in Slaves," p. 17. f Ibid. ji. 24.
GENERAL DESCRIPTION. 137
part of the Portuguese policy, whenever they eifected the con-
quest of any country ; as it was also the practice of the Spaniards
on taking possession of Hispaniola, and other of the West-
Indian islands. Hence, on the return of Diego Camru from
Portugal about the year 1486, with some Congo princes, whom
he had taken with him to Lisbon about fifteen months pre-
viously, he was received with great kindness by the Congo king,
who promised to embrace Christianity, and sent several of his
nobles back with Diego to Europe to be instructed in its princi-
ples. They remained two years, and were treated with great
respect; and when they were considered ripe for baptism, John
II. stood godfather to the principal envoy, and his cliief cour-
tiers to the others.
In 1490 the Congo nobles were conveyed back to their native
country under charge of an ambassador, and a body of mis-
sionaries. The Portuguese, on their arrival, were received by
the king in full pomp. The native troops approached in three
lines, making so prodigious a noise with horns, kettledrums,
and other instruments, and raising shouts so tremendous, as to
surpass all that the Europeans had ever witnessed in Cathohc
processions and invocation to the saints. The king hmiself Avas
seated in the midst of a large park, upon an ivory chair raised
on a platform. He gave full permission to erect a church ; he
and all his nobles were baptized ; and free scope was allowed to
the exertions of the Catholic missionaries ; so that a hundred
thousand of the subjects of Congo were baptized in one day,
and called Christians, but without any idea of the duties and
obligations which that sacred name imposes. The wholesale man-
ner in which the Spanish Catholic friars performed the rite of
baptism upon the aborigines of the New World, may be infer-
red from the following quotation from Heylin, who, after men-
tioning the case of a person of note wlio resolutely refused to be
baptized, says, '^ The rest were driven into the font, like so
many horses to the watering-place, and received into the church
of Christ without any instruction : insomuch that one old friar
(as himself confessed to Charles V.) had christened 700,000 of
them ; and another of that rank, 300,000 ; never acquainting
them with any of the articles of the Christian faith, or points of
religious conversation.^^*
Nothing could be more auspicious than the first establish-
ment of the Roman Catholic faith in Congo. But when, after
these ceremonial preliminaries, the missionaries proceeded to
* Heylin's " Cosinographie," p. 1017.
138
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
enforce upon their sable disciples the necessity of some moral
restrictions in the matter of polj'gamy, the aged monarch consi-
dered this too great a privation to be endured ; and he^ with all
his nobles, plunged again into the abyss of Pagan superstition.
His eldest son, however, Alphonso, the youthful heir-apparent,
saw nothing so dreadful in the sacrifice ; and he alone remained
firm. The old king dying soon after, this zealous convert
became entitled to reign ; and though he met with considerable
opposition from his brother, Panso Aquitimo, the nobles, and
almost the whole nation, who raised the standard of revolt in
support of polygamy and Paganism, yet, being firmly seated on
his throne, he continued a steadfast adherent to the Portuguese,
and a great friend to the missionaries. Having thus acquired a
settlement in Congo, and being re-inforced by successive bodies
of their brethren, who were sent out by the court of Rome, the
missionaries spread the Catholic faith over the neighbouring
countries, and penetrated into the interior, as yet unexplored by
Europeans, also along the coast, and into the island of Fernando
Po, where the work of conversion went forward, and a church
was built. In fact, almost every where their career was similar;
the people gave them the most cordial reception, flocked in
crowds to witness, and to share in, the pomp of their cei'emo-
nies, accepted with thankfulness their sacred gifts, and received
by thousands the rite of baptism. They were not, however, on
this account, prepared to renounce their ancient habits and
superstitions : it was a mere nominal Christianity which existed
from first to last. We do not possess any record of the exact
period when the Portuguese missionaries were expelled, or
abandoned their work at Congo ; but we know that from the year
1490 down to 168.2, there continued to be sent out friars,
monks, priests, bishops, and fathers : * so that in Congo, and the
districts soutli of that kingdom, for more than two centuries,
at least the profession of Christianity was retained, though in
a form which was very little better than Paganism itself : for
many years past, however, not the least vestige of this "holy
catholic faith" has been found on the banks of the Zaire, or in
other parts of the coast of Guinea.
* Murray's " Narrative of Discovery and Adventure in Africa," vol. i. i)p. 68,
116. See also Wadstrom's " Essay on the Colonization of Western Africa," p. 125.
CHAPTER VIII.
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
The English embark in the African Trade — John II. of Portugal remonstrates against
tliis to Eflward IV., King of England — His Wishes for some time complied
with — Englisli Traders visit the Coast— Success of Lok's Voyage in 1554 —
The French embark in the Trade — The English, though much annoyed by the
Portuguese, still persevere — Captain Hawkins and the Slave-Trade — The Eng-
hsh, French, and Dutch engage in lawful Commerce — Queen Elizabeth grants
a Patent to some Exeter Merchants to carry on the Trade of the Senegal and
the Gambia — French Vessels touch at both these Rivers — The Dutch actively
engaged in the African Trade — James I. grants a Charter to some Merchants
in London, for the Purpose of " Adventuring in the Golden Trade " — George
Thompson reaches Tenda in the Upper Gambia — Jobson sent by the Company
in the same Direction — The French found an Establishment at the Senegal —
The English, French, Dutch, Portuguese, and Spaniards, all engaged in the
Slave-Trade — The Company of Royal Adventurers of England trading to
Africa founded — Opposition to the Trade from the Dutch — War with Hol-
land-— New Company incorporated under the Name of " The Royal African
Company of England " — The British Trade in Africa placed upon a better
Basis — Several Forts built — The African Trade mixed up with the West
Indies — The French sell their Establishment at Senegal to the French West-
India Company, with an exclusive Right to trade from Cape Blanco to the
Cape of Good Hope — The Spanish Papal Bull — The French and English com-
mit the same Blunder — The Slave-Trade — The Spirit of African Discovery
revived in 1720 — Stibbs sails up the Gambia, and passes the Falls of Barra-
conda — Brue ascends the Senegal as far as Gallam — Conflicting Accounts of
the Niger — The English Company contracts with Spain to su])i)ly her Colonies
with Slaves — This proved to be a losing Concern — The Company cede to the
Crown all their Possessions- — The European Forts and Settlements on the
Western Coast of Africa — A new Era in the Annals of Africa — Formation of
"The Afiican Association" — Modern Travellers — The Niger — Tribute to
Mungo Park.
Although the Portuguese bore away the pahn of maritime
enterprise in Africa from all other nations, there were not want-
ing some who followed close in their wake, — the adventurers of
France and England especially. But the latter, though early
thirsting for enterprise in Africa, were diverted for a length of
time from even sending a single ship there, by the monstrous
Bull granted in I^IS by the Pope to the Portuguese. For no
sooner had the Portuguese monarch assumed the title of " Lord
of Guinea," than he claimed a right of prohibiting the other
European powers from landing, or engaging in traffic, on any
pai't of the African continent. And as this exorbitant preten-
140
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA,
sioii was sanctioned b}^ the authority of the court of Rome, he
hesitated not to maintain it by force of arms ; and for some
time it appears to have been tacitly recognised.
In 1481, a movement was made in England for the purpose
of obtaining a share in the African trade. John Tintam and
William Fabian are stated to have been employed in equipping
a fleet for the coast of Guinea, at the command of the duke of
Medina Sidonia. Alarmed at this intelligence, the king of
Portugal, John II., immediately despatched an envoy to
Edward IV., to represent to the English court his sovereign
claims as lord of Guinea; and to urge the request that,
throughout the English dominions, no man should be allowed
"to arm or set forth ships to Guinea ;^^ and that His Majesty
would "dissolve a certain fleet ^' equipped for that purpose.
The demand was complied with; and down to the close of the
sixteenth century, the merchants of London imported from
Lisbon the rich productions of the East.*
But the shrewd, business-like, spirited, and enterprising men
of our own countiy were not for ever to be excluded from "a
share in the African trade ;^^ nor did they wait to the close of
the sixteenth century, before they embarked in what was con-
ceived to be the legitimate right of all honest and honourable
traders. So early as 1551 and 1553, a Captain Windham had
made two successful voyages to the coast of Barbary ; and in
relation to the latter he observes, " Here, by the way, it is to be
observed, that the Portugals were much off'ended with this our
new trade into Barbary : and, both in our voyage the year
before, and also in this, gave out in England, through their
merchants, that if they took us in these parts, the}^ would use
us as their mortal enemies.'^ But, nothing daunted by this
threat, and in defiance of the extravagant claims of the Portu-
guese monarch, in the following year Windham undertook a
third voyage, in which he reached Guinea. Slaves, however,
were not his object. He proceeded first to Rio Sestos, where
they might with great advantage have loaded the ship with pep-
per. " But setting lightly by that commodity in comparison of
the pure gold they thirsted for, he coursed on to the Golden
Coast, obtained one hundred and fifty pounds' weiglit of the
gold of the country, and returned. ^^ In 1554, John Lok made
a voyage to Guinea. He also proceeded to liio Sestos, and
thence to the Gold-Coa-t, and brought home four hundred
* Conder's "Modern Traveller," vol. xx. p. 25. See also note in Bandinel's
" Account of the Trade in Slaves," p. 32.
GENERAL PKSCinpTlON. 14l
pounds' weight of gold, thirty-six butts of Guiiie;i pepper, and
two hundred and fifty elephants' teeth. The natives are
described by him as being " very wary in bargaining, but yet
honest." *
Several other voyages, of both Englishmen and Frenchmen,
are mentioned by Hakluyt as having been undertaken about
this time to the Western Coast of Africa, for the sole purpose of
legitimate trade in the rich productions of that country. In
1555 and 1556, William Towerson made two voyages to Guinea.
In the first of these, while engaged in trade with the natives
near Elmina, he was attacked by the Portuguese : he escaped,
however, to his boats, and, passing farther, completed his cargo
of gold-dust and elephants' teeth ; though, he observes, " the
Portuguese brigandines followed us from place to place, to give
warning to the people of the country that they should not deal
with us." In the latter voyage, Towerson met with five French
vessels trading on the African coast, with whom he joined com-
pany, for their mutual protection against the attacks of the Por-
tuguese. They soon after met with a Portuguese squadron,
which attacked them. The French, however, did not assist
Towerson as he had expected, and they therefore parted com-
pany. Soon after, Towerson met with another French vessel,
which, seeing his shattered condition, attacked him. But he
fought her ofi*, and returned in safety ; though it appears that,
owing to the above circumstances, this voyage was not so
successful in the acquisition of gold as he had expected. t
John Bull, having once embarked in a trade so lucrative as to
be able, as v.'e have seen in the case of Lok's one voyage, to
bring home from the Gold-Coast several hundred weight of that
precious metal, amounting to upwards of =£20,000 in value,
besides the thirty-six butts of Guinea pepper and a considerable
quantity of ivory, — was not to be beaten ofi^ by the menacing
attitude of the Portuguese on the Coast, or of their squadron at
sea. Much less was he to be frightened into an abandonment
of the traffic by the great blundering Bull granted by the Pope
to Henry of Portugal in 1442. British navigators, therefore,
continued to visit the Coast for the purpose of commerce, having
as yet abstained from mixing themselves up in any way with the
Slave-Trade. f At length, however, in 1562, the importation of
* Bandinel's "Account of the Trade in Slaves," pp. 33, 34. From Hakluyt.
t Idem, p. 35.
% The reader may form some idea of the strong temptation to embark in the
African Trade from an extract of a letter from a merchant at Morocco, to his friend
in London, in 1594. It is as follows : " That you may not think me to slumber in
142 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
slaves from Africa was first practised by our own countrymen ;
and the name which is consigned to everlasting disgrace for
commencing this nefarious traffic on the part of the English, is
that of Captain Hawkins. But the particulars of this expedition
we have given in a preceding chapter : we will, therefore, here
only call attention to this remarkable fact, — that the two
Europeans who first embarked in this unlawful, unprincipled,
and abominable traffic, namely, Gonzales of Portugal and Cap-
tain Hawkins of England, both lost their lives, almost at the
very commencement of this barbarous Trade. Whether the
fate of Hawkins had an influence in deterring our countrymen
from this ungodly enterprise, or whether they were held back
by a higher principle of justice and humanity, I know not ; but
thus much is certain, that the English did not engage in the
Slave-Trade for many years after this, though they frequently
visited the Coast of Africa.
" In 1580, Henry of Portugal died without heirs ; and on his
death Spain took possession of Portugal, and of its various
dependencies in Africa, Asia, and America.^' A new turn was,
therefore, now given to the African trade. " Philip II., who
possessed the throne of Spain, was fully occupied in Europe ;
and what attention he could give to colonial matters, was
devoted to the Spanish possessions in America. Africa was,
therefore, neglected ; and the English, French, Dutch, and even
Courlanders, rushed in, and within a few years possessed them-
selves, with comparative ease, of that trade which Portugal had
laboured so hard and spent so many years in acquiring." *
It was about this period that the English Government mani-
fested an interest in the trade to Africa; and the formation of
establishments on the banks of its central and principal rivers
was commenced. In 1588, Queen Ehzabeth granted a patent
to certain rich merchants of Exeter, to carry on the trade of the
Senegal and the Gambia. The Portuguese appear to have been
by this time entirely driven from the Senegal, since the English
navigators_, in 1591, heard of only one individual of that nation
residing on its banks. But on the Gambia they were estab-
lished in great numbers ; and they appeared to view the arrival
of the English with great jealousy. Some French vessels from
this action, wherein you would be truly and perfectly resolved, you shall under-
stand, that, not ten days past, here came a Cahaia of the Andoluzes home fi-om
Gago, and another principal Moor, whom the king sent tliither at first with Alcaide
Ilamode ; and they hrought with them thirty mules laden with gold." — Hakluyt.
* Bandinel's "Account of the Trade in Slaves," pp. 3", 38. From Barbot,
Koch, and Hakluyt.
GENERAL DESCRIPTION. 143
Dieppe, about this time, touched partly at the Senegal, and
partly at the Gambia.*
Shortly after this, the Dutch were actively engaged in the
African trade. In 1617, they purchased the Island of Goree;
and, following up the traces of the Portuguese, soon supplanted
them, taking possession of all their factories and forts, in addi-
tion to which they constructed some new ones. Their capital,
Elmina, itself soon fell into the hands of these bold and success-
ful rivals, who had now risen to the first rank as a naval people.
But the Dutch did not remain long undisputed masters of the
seas. The glorious and splendid results which had arisen from
the discovery of the East and AVest Indies, caused the ocean to
be generally viewed as the grand theatre where wealth and glory
were to be gained. The French and English nations, whose
turn it was to take the lead in European affairs, pressed eagerly
forward in this career, endeavouring to surpass at once their
predecessors and each other.
In 1618, James I. granted a charter to a Company of mer-
chants in London, for the purpose of " adventuring in the
Golden Trade." George Thompson, a Barbary merchant, to
whom was intrusted this adventure, ascended the Gambia as far
as Tenda, — a point much beyond that which any European had
before reached. Forts, as well as factories, were erected at several
places on the Gambia. Flattering reports had reached Europe
of the magnitude of the gold-trade carried on at Timbuctoo,
and along the Niger. According to all the geographical sys-
tems of that age, the great river Niger was understood to empty
itself into the Atlantic either by the Senegal or the Gambia ;
and therefore, by ascending either of these rivers, it seemed
possible to reach Timbuctoo, and thus to arrive, at length, at
the great fountain of wealth, — the gold country. Two years
after, Richard Jobson was sent by the Company in the same
direction. He reached the same point as Thompson had done,
but did not push his discoveries farther. Both of these expedi-
tions were attended with considerable annoyance, and even loss
of life, from the rude and brutal attacks of the Portuguese, who
were still numerous in the upper parts of the Gambia. Thomp-
son had left most of his crew at Kassan, and pushed on in open
boats ; and soon after his departure, the Portuguese, seized with
bitter jealousy at this expedition made by a foreign and rival
power, furiously attacked the party left at Kassan, and suc-
ceeded in effecting a general massacre of the English. Jobson^s
* MuaaAY's " Narrative of Discovery and Adventure in Africa," vol. i. p. 210.
141 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
men were more fortunate than those of Thompson, bemg unmo-
lested by the Portuguese, though not without some appi^ehen-
sions to tlie contrary. But they suffered from another cause :
for on Jobson's return to Kassan, he found the chmate had
done its usual work ; the master and great part of the crew of
the vessel had died ; only about four remained in a estate fit for
labour. He therefore immediately sailed down the river, and
returned to Europe ; nor does he appear to have again visited
the African continent.
About this time, (1626,) there flourished at Rouen a Company
of French merchants trading to Africa, whose director-general
resided at Senegal. This Company shortly afterwards supplied
the West-Indian colonies with slaves. In 1631, the second
British chartered Company for trading to Africa was formed ;
Charles I. having granted a charter to Sir B. Young, Sir K.
Digby, and others. Edwards states, that the merchants imder
this charter supplied the British settlements in the West Indies
with Negroes for working the estates. Within a few years after
this, many African settlements were formed, with the view of
securing a supply of slaves for the West-India colonies ; and
the English, French, Dutch, and Portuguese imported Negroes
from Africa to their various possessions in those islands. The
Spaniards did the same to a very large extent ; and not only so,
but they had recourse to other nations to help them with a sup-
ply of Negroes for their colonies. In the year 1662, under
Charles II., another chartered Company Vvas formed, entitled,
"The Company of Royal Adventurers of England, trading to
Africa." This was the third British Company that was formed :
and the king's brother, then duke of York, afterwards James
II., being a member of the Company, it received tlie above
designation. This third step was taken with a view to the pro-
tection of the trade from the aggressions of the Dutch; who,
having deprived the PortuguesQ of all their forts and settlements
on the Gold-Coast, attempted, in their turn, to monopolize the
entire commerce of Western Africa. They had, in fact, " made
it their business," as Mr. Bandinel observes, " to ruin the
British trade in Africa; and, step after step, sometimes by
fraud, and sometimes by force, they effected, to a great degree,
their object, — destroying our siiips, and taking our forts."
Although the English had long had a fort at Cormantine, and
had also established factories at other places on the Gold-Coast,
and thus enjoyed as good a right to participate in the trade as
themselves, yet the restless and envious Dutch violently opposed
them ; and the loss inflicted on the second English Company,
GKNKUAL DESCRIPTION. 145
previously to the formation of the third " Company of Royal
Adventnrers of England trading to Africa," was stated to be
£300,000; 'Svhich/' says Mr. Bandinel, "if not exaggerated,
shows the power and wealth of which the Company had been
in possession."
The British Government, having failed in obtaining redress
from the Dutch Government for the wrongs which the Dutch
had committed against the British trade in Africa, declared war
against Holland, in the year 1664. The war was carried on
with various success ; but as the resources of the Company were
exhausted, they surrendered their charter to the crown, and a
new Company was incorporated in the year 1672, under the
name of "The Royal African Company of England," with ample
powers and privileges, for the purpose of prosecuting and pro-
tecting the trade between Africa and England. That Company,
acting with much energy, restored the trade, enlarged Cape-
Coast Castle, built one fort at Accra, another at Dix-Cove, a
third at Winnebah, a fourth at Succondee, and a fifth at Com-
menda; and rebuilt a sixth at Annamaboo. Three of these
forts were only at about musket-shot distance from the Dutch
forts. The Company likewise purchased Fredericksberg, or
Fort-Royal, from the Danes. By these exertions the English
interest was put on an equal footing with that of the Dutch ;
and large quantities of dye-stuff, ivory, wax, and gold, were
imported into England, and the British colonies in the West
Indies were supplied with slaves. But it appears that at this
time the Dutch trade in slaves was ten times greater than that
of the English.*
The African trade, it will be seen, was now essentially mixed
up with that of the West Indies ; and nearly all the European
states were soon engaged in the Slave-Trade. France took a
prominent part in this traffic ; and in 1664 the French African
Company sold their estabhshment at Senegal, and all their
trade, to the French West India Company, which obtained
from the king of France an exclusive right to trade from Cape
Blanco to the Cape of Good Hope for forty years. This Com-
pany not only supplied the French colonies with slaves, but
they entered on the trade of carrying them to the Spanish
colonies. The Spaniards had arrogated the Western World
entirely to themselves : hence, immediately on the discovery of
the West Indies, profiting by the example of Portugal, they
* Bandinel's " Account of the Trade in Slaves," pp. 52, 53. See also Dr
Beecham's " Asliantce and the Gold-Coast," pp. 35 — 37.
L
146 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
obtained, in 1493, the issue of a Papal Bull, which granted to
the crown of Spain all continents and islands which her subjects
might discover to the westward of one hundred miles west of
the Azores. But it will be seen, from the preceding transfer on
the part of France to the French West India Company of an
" exclusive right to trade from Cape Blanco to the Cape of Good
Hope," that the Spaniards and Portuguese were not the only
Europeans who had put forth such pretensions, and committed
such flagrant abuses of a legitimate commerce.
Nor can we clear our own countrj^men from the odium of a
participation in the same blunder : for, to the Company that
was established in 1672, by Charles IL, the said Charles was
graciously pleased to give and grant " all and singular the lands,
countries, havens, roads, rivers, and other places in Africa, from
Sallee in South Barbary, to the Cape of Good Hope, for and
during the term of one thousand years; with the sole, entire,
and only trade and traffic into and from the said countries and
places." Who does not see the absurdity of such gifts, grants,
and transfers'? Mr. Wadstrom observes, with regard to this
regal cession, " May it not be doubted, whether Swift himself,
that great master of irony, ever penned any thing so consum-
mately ridiculous, to say nothing of its other qualities?" One
of its salient points is, that " Charles gave and granted to him-
self a participation of the above extraordinary privileges ; for he
and his brother, afterwards James IL, were subscribers to this
same Company, and were both . largely concerned in the Slave-
Trade." *
These lofty claims on the part of different nations led to a
variety of disputes among the European powers, both in the
New World, and on the African coast. In 1678, the French
took the Dutch settlement of Arguim ; and the trade being
thrown open to all subjects of France, the French trade for a
while got the ascendancy in that quarter, engrossing the whole
line of Western Africa. Ten years after this, (1688,) the
Declaration of Rights in England took away, virtually, the
exclusive privileges of the African Company; and the British
African trade thenceforward became legally open to all British
subjects. English capitalists now embarked in the trade gene-
rally ; the English African Company, which still existed, entered
into an agreement with the Spanish Government, to supply the
Spanish West Indies with some Negroes from Jamaica; and
about this time there were landed in the British colonies, partly
by the Company, and partly by British traders, about 25,000
* Wadstrom, "On the Colonization of Western Africa," p. 193.
GENERAL DESCRIPTION.
147
Negroes a year.* But it appears that the direct supply of
slaves from Africa to the Spanish colonies was at that time
engrossed by the French; and it was not until 1713, when the
Spanish Government made over to the English Guinea Com-
pany, by a formal royal contract, the privilege of supplying the
Spanish colonies with slaves from Africa, that the English took
a part in what was called the " Carrying Trade." t
About the year 1720, the spirit of African discovery again
revived in England. The Duke of Chandos, then director of the
Eoyal African Company, concerned at the declining state of
their affairs, entertained the idea of retrieving them by opening
a path into the golden regions still reported to exist in the
interior of Africa. The Gambia was again the starting-point.
Accordingly, in 1723, Captain Stibbs was furnished with the
usual means to navigate that river as high as possible. On the
7th of October he arrived at James Island, about thirty miles
from the Atlantic, where the English had a fort and factory.
He here discovered that Mr. Glynn, whom he expected to find
governor, had been dead six months ; and that Mr. Willy,
who succeeded him, happened to be then visiting the factory of
Joar, more than a hundred miles distant. Stibbs immediately
wrote to him fd^ assistance in the expedition, but received a
very cold reply ; and he was much surprised when, a few days
after, a boat brought down the dead body of the governor, who
had fallen a victim to the fever of the climate, which in this
case had affected the brain, and accounts, in some degree, for
the want of interest he had felt in the expedition. A Mr.
Orfeur succeeded Willy in the government at James Fort, who
exerted himself very actively to forward the objects of the expe-
dition. Stibbs had a crew assigned him of nineteen Avhite men ;
of whom one, indeed, " though as black as coal," yet being a
Christian, considered himself a white man, and served as inter-
preter. He had likewise about thirty Africans, with three
female cooks; and he afterwards took on board a balafeu, or
native musician, to enliven the spirits of the party. Stibbs set
out on December 26th, and the voyage proceeded for some time
very agreeably. The English were every where well received ;
and at one place even a saphie, or " charm," was laid upon the
bank, for the purpose of attracting them on shore. The captain
had endeavoured to conceal his object, but in vain : he found
* Bandinel's " Account of the Trade in Slaves," p. 56. From Edwards's
" British West Indies," and the " Report of the Privy Council on Trade with
Africa, 1789."
t Bandinel's " Account of the Trade in Slaves," pp. jG, 57.
L 2
148 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
himself repeatedly pointed out as the person who was come to
bring down the gold. The native crew, however, predicted the
most fearful disaster, if he should attempt to proceed above the
Falls of Barracouda. As the boats approached that fatal bound-
ary, the Africans came in a body, and stated their firm determi-
nation on no account to ascend any farther. No one, they said,
had ever gone beyond Barracouda : Barracouda was the end of
the world ; or, if there existed any thing beyond, it was a
frightful and barbarous region, where life would be in continual
danger. A long palaver and a bottle of Stibbs^s very best
brandy were necessary, ere they would agree to accompany him
beyond this dreaded boundary of the habitable universe.
Stibbs now proceeded to pass the Falls of Barracouda, which
were not found so formidable as rumour had represented.
They were narrows rather than Falls, the channel being con-
fined by rocky ledges and fragments, between which there was
only one passage, where the canoe rubbed against the rock on
each side. On passing this obstacle, it soon appeared, not only
that the world extended beyond Barraconda, but that all the
evils predicted from the hostility of the natives were wholly
chimerical. They were found to be a harmless, good-humoured
people, who, M'herever the crew landed, met them with presents
of fowls and provisions. The adventurers now, however, found
themselves in the region of crocodiles, river-horses, baboons,
and elephants. The last-mentioned were seen in bands, cross-
ing from one side of the water to the other. The river-horses,
too, were very numerous, and sometimes came in collision with
the boat; through which this huge animal, incensed at the
obstacle, was apt to strike a hole with his great teeth, so as to
endanger its safety. What was still worse, the severest exer-
tion now became necessary in order to pass the flats and quick-
sands, which multiplied in proportion as the party ascended,
and over which the boats, in some instances, could only be
dragged by main force. Stibbs, however, persevered until
February 22d, when he found himself about sixty miles above
Barraconda, and then was obliged to stop a little short of Tenda.
He therefore immediately returned, and proceeded down the
river with all possible expedition.*
While the English sought to ascend the Gambia, the Senegal
was the Niger of the French, — the stream by which they hoped
to penetrate upwards to Timbuctoo and the regions of gold.
From a very early period they had founded the settlement of
* Murray's " Nan-ative of Discovery and Adventure in Afi'ica," vol. i. pp.
236—241.
GENERAL DESCRIPTION.
149
St. Louis, at the mouth of that river, which has ever since con-
tinued to be the capital of the French possessions in Africa.
In 1697, M. Brue was appointed director-general of the Com-
pany's affairs at the Senegal, and was the person who effected
most for their prosperity, and made the greatest efforts to pene-
trate into the interior. In that year he embarked on a visit to
the siratik, or king, of the Foulahs, whose territory lay about
four hundred miles up the Senegal. The principal object of
this journey was to settle some disputes that had arisen between
him and the French traders at the mouth of the Senegal. In
ascending that river, Brue was struck by the magnificent forests,
and the profuse and luxuriant verdure with which they were
clothed ; while it was amusing to observe the numberless varie-
ties of the monkey tribe, which were constantly leaping from
bough to bough. Elephants, too, as on the Upper Gambia,
were seen marching in bands of forty or fifty ; and large herds
of cattle were feeding on the rich meadov/s, though, during the
season of inundation, they withdrew to the more elevated spots.
Brue reached the fort of Ghiorel without any difficulty, and
then set out for Gumel, the residence of the siratik, about ten
leagues in the interior. He was kindly received, and even
obtained permission to erect forts, — a privilege of which African
princes are usually and, indeed, naturally jealous. Having
accomplished the object of his visit, and established a factory at
Ghiorel, the director did not attempt to penetrate higher, but
immediately sailed down to Fort St. Louis,
In the following year, however, the same gentleman took
another voyage, in which he aimed, not merely at the limited
objects above stated, but sought to ascend the Senegal as high
as possible, and to open a commercial intercourse with the inte-
rior. In this journey he reached as far as Gallamj and, on
arriving at Dramanet, a thriving toAvn in that kingdom, which
was inhabited by several rich native merchants, who traded as
far as Tirabuctoo, Brue considered it the most convenient place
for a fort. He accordingly erected one, which was called St.
Joseph, and continued long to be the principal seat of French
commerce on the Upper Senegal. Brue then went up to Felu,
where a large rock, crossing the river, forms a cataract, which it
is almost impossible for vessels to pass. Quitting his boats, he
proposed to ascend to the Falls of Govinca, about forty leagues
higher; but the water was getting so low, that, fearing lest the
navigation downward should be interrupted, he returned to St.
Louis. In the course of this voyage Brue made many inquiries
respecting the countries bej'ond Gallam, and particularly con-
cerning the Niger. He received flattering accounts of the rich
150 WESTERN COAST OE AFRICA.
gold miues of Bambouk, Bambarra, and Timbuctoo ; of caravans
Avhich came to the latter place from Barbary, and even of masted
vessels which were seen on the waters beyond the Lake Dibbie :
but^ as to the course of the Niger, which was the grand object
of his research; the statements were conflicting, and therefore
no satisfactory knowledge on this point was gained ; though the
popular opinion, in that country, as well as through Europe in
general, long continued to regard the Gambia and Senegal as
branches of the Niger.*
We have referred, in a preceding page, to the English
Guinea Conapany supplying the Spanish colonies with African
Negroes ; and, for the sake of chronological order in these brief
remarks on the English trade and expeditions to Africa, we
return to this subject for a moment. " The contract was dated
the 13th of March, 1713, and was signed by the king of Spain
himself. It purported that the engagements in it were to last
thirty years from its date; and that the contract which His
Majesty had made with the French Guinea Company for sup-
plying his colonies with slaves having expired, he now made
over a similar contract to the English Guinea Company, who
were to bind themselves to supply his colonies with 144,000
slaves within the thirty years, being at the rate of 4,800 slaves a
year. They were to advance him 200,000 crowns for the privi-
lege of importing these slaves, and to pay a duty of thirty-three
and a half crowns for each slave ; and they were, moreover, to
give the king of Spain and the king of England each one
quarter share of the profits of their trade." t
This contract, it appears, was a losing concern from the first ;
for though the Company had the privilege of importing into any
of the Spanish dominions in America, for the first twenty-five
years, as many slaves as they could sell, in addition to the num-
ber of slaves stipulated for, and also the pri\dlege of sending
every year to the Spanish West Indies a ship of five hundred
tons^ burden, with an assortment of general goods for sale ; yet
they were obliged to come to Parliament for assistance to keep
up their forts and factories. The various grants of money
which they obtained from Government, from the year 1729 to
1749, amounted in the whole to £80,000. But still their afl'airs
deteriorated ; and, notwithstanding the aids already given, they
were indebted, about this time, to sundry creditors in the sum
of upwards of £100,000 : they therefore surrendered their char-
ter to the Government ; and their forts, castles, and other pos-
* Murray's " Narrative of Discovery and Adventure in \frica," vol. i. pp.
15.5—174.
f Raxdinei.'s " Account of tlic Trade in Slaves," p. 58.
GENERAL DESCRIPTION. 151
sessions were transferred to a new Company, which was estab-
lished by Act of Parharaent, and in which each member traded
individually on his own capital. But this Company, declining
by degrees in influence, in power, and in projects of ambition,
ceded in 1765 to the crown all its forts and settlements in
Africa; and the African trade was now more than heretofore
free and open to all His Majesty's subjects.*
From the preceding rapid sketch of the discoveries made on
the Western Coast of Africa, and the various expeditions and
trading companies which were formed, and which engaged in
the African trade, it will be seen that though these Companies
were protected by patents and exclusive privileges, and though
some of them were honoured with the enrolment amongst them
of members of the royal family, yet they did not flourish, and
therefore, from time to time, returned into the hands of the
crown the powers and privileges granted to them. It will also
be perceived, that, from the time this Coast was first discovered,
its rich productions, gold especially, became the subject of much
contention among the maritime powers of Europe; and that its
settlements and fortresses, during nearly three hundred years,
frequently changed hands, and were either ceded to the diff'er-
ent nations of Europe by treaty, or were forcibly seized by
them, and retained as lawful possessions.
It would answer no good purpose to go into detail here ; but
we may just mention that, at the present time and for some
years past, the settlements on the Western Coast of Africa are
and have been in possession of the following nations : —
The English have two principal settlements on the Gam-
bia; namely, at Bathurst, on the island of St. Mary's, a
few miles from the mouth of the river; and at Macarthy's
Island, about two hundred and fifty miles farther up. They
also possess the sovereignty of the whole of that great stream of
water, and have trading-places and stores at difi'erent points,
and on both banks of the river, from Jillifree as far as Cantali-
cunda, not far distant from the Falls of Barraconda. James
Fort, on the small island opposite Jilhfree, was destroyed by
the French in 1688, and has never since been restored. At the
Isles de Los, the English have also mercantile establishments.
These islands, which are "five in number, are situate about
sixty miles to the northward of Sierra-Leone, and five or six
miles from the Coast ; and were ceded to Great Britain by the
chief, Dalla Mahomedu, to whom an annual payment is made
* Bandinel's " Account of the Trade in Slaves," pp. oS— 64.
15.3 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
for them. Factory Island, the second in extent, is four and a
half miles long, by half a mile broad. They are, however, very
valuable for the trade which is from thera carried on with the
rivers of the adjacent continent, consisting in the exchange of
British goods for hides, ivory, gold-dust, &c.^^* Sierra-Leone,
and the Banana Islands contiguous thereto, also belong to the
English. There are likewise several British factories established
on the various rivers between the Gambia and Sierra-Leone.
Further south we come to the Gold-Coast : and here the
English have the principal sway. Cape-Coast Castle, Annama-
boo, Accra, and Dix-Cove, are all British settlements ; besides
which there are several other minor forts and trading factories.
The French have the sole control of the Senegal, and have
two principal establishments on that river; namely, St. Louis,
at the entrance of the river ; and Fort St. Joseph, in the king-
dom of Gallam. They possess, also, the island of Goree, on the
south side of Cape Verd ; and a small trading port at Albrada,
about thirty miles up the Gambia, which they persist in holding
in defiance of the Treaty of 1783. They have, likewise, the
principal trade in gum at Portindic, though it would appear
that by this treaty the right was conceded to the English to
trade with the Moors in the same ai'ticle at that place.
The Dutch still hold the fort and castle of Elmina, which
they took from the Portuguese in 1637. It is their principal
settlement in this part of Africa, and is only a few miles from
the English fort at Cape- Coast Castle. They have also several
other forts along the coast ; but none of them are now garri-
soned, except Elmina and Axim.
The Danes have a respectable fort near Accra, called Chris-
tianberg Castle, which is their chief establishment, though they
have several others on the coast of Guinea.
The Portuguese and Spaniards are found in different parts
of the coast; but their possessions are merely nominal, the
subjects of these two states being principally engaged in the
unnatural traffic in human beings. In this iniquitous trade
they were the first to embark ; and it but too plainly appears
that they are determined to carry the disgrace of being the last
to leave it off.
The year 1788 constituted a new era in the annals of African
discovery. Hitherto motives of mercenary interest alone had
guided the spirit of enterprise ; but in that year " The African
Association" was formed, consisting of men eminent for rank
* Martin's " Ihilish Colonics," vol. iv. p. 559.
GENERAL DESCRIPTION. 153
and wealth, and still more distinguished by their zeal in the
cause of science and humanity. The object of this Association
was to promote the discovery of the interior of Africa, with a
view to the advancement of geographical knowledge. They
subscribed the necessary funds, and sought out individuals duly
qualified to undertake such distant and adventurous missions.
Several noblemen were connected with this Association ; and
Ledyard, Lucas, Houghton, Park, and a host of other spirited
and enterprising travellers, were successively employed ; each
of whom contributed more or less information concerning the
interior of Africa, the geographical divisions of some of its king-
doms, its natural scenery and productions, with some account
of the native tribes. It was then proved to a demonstration,
that neither the Senegal nor the Gambia had any connexion
with the far-famed Niger. The course of that mighty stream
for a considerable distance had been discovered by Park, who,
unfortunately, in his second journey, lost his life in its waters ;
but its termination was still wrapt in mystery, until a very
recent period, when this long-prosecuted discovery was accom-
plished by the energetic and heroic Landers.
The results of the investigations made by several or nearly
all of the above enterprising travellers have long been before
the public, and are still perused with almost unabated interest.
The writer of these pages, however, cannot pass by one name
without a word. I refer to Mungo Park. This intrepid tra-
veller having taken the route of the Gambia in both his journeys
into the interior, the names of Jillifree, "a town on the northern
bank of the river Gambia, in the kingdom of Barra;^^ of Vin-
tain, "a town situated about two miles up a creek on the
southern side of thie river;" and of Kayaye and Pisania, and
other towns and places mentioned by Park, on the Gambia, —
are all as familiar to me as the principal towns or counties in
England are to a commercial traveller, since I have had the
gratification of sailing up and down that splendid stream very
many times. I am also well acquainted with " Madina, the
capital of Woolli ; " with Kanipe, and Tambacunda, and other
places inland mentioned by Park, as far as Boollibanny, "the
capital of Bondou;" and I feel it but an act of justice to the
memory of that great African traveller and writer to say, that
his descriptions of the towns and places, the kings and king-
doms, the native tribes and their customs, are admirably correct;
so much so, that I believe a more faithful representation of a
country was never given, than that which is to be found in the
travels of the well-known Scotchman, Mungo Park.
CHAPTEU IX.
WESTERN AFRICA.— SIERRA-LEONE.
Limits of Western Africa — Windward and Leeward Coasts — Low Land — Various
Rivers — Despotic Power of the Chiefs — Humiliating Reflections — First Pro-
testant Missionary — Origin of the Colony of Sierra-Leone — Dr. Smeathman
and Granville Sharp — The American Revolution — Four hundred Blacks,
with sixty Whites, sail for Sierra-Leone — Sickness and MortaUty amongst
the Settlers — Granville Sharp's Liherality — The Town destroyed by a neigh-
bouring Chief — Mr. Falconbridge sent out — Granville-Town — " The Sierra-
Leone Company" chartered — A Re-inforcement of Settlers from Nova-Scotia
— Upwards of one hundred Europeans sent out — Sickness and Death — The
Colony attacked and destroyed by the French — Reflections on this Disaster —
The spirited Conduct and Exertions of the Company — Nova-Scotian Male-
contents — -The Arrival of the Maroons — An Attack on the Colony by the
Timmanees — The Assailants repulsed — Transfer of the Colony to the Crown —
The African Institution — State of the Colony in 1807.
The precise limits of Western Africa are not very accurately
defined ; but what is generally understood as constituting the
western portion of this continent, is nearly the whole of the
line of coast within the Tropics, commencing at about Cape
Blanco, and forming a wide sweep around the Gulf of Guinea to
Angola, one of the kingdoms near the southern extremity of the
country of Congo ; thus extending upwards of 3,000 miles along
the Atlantic, with an average breadth of 300 miles. A con-
siderable part of this line of coast, as we have shown in the
preceding chapter, has long been occupied by a chain of Euro-
pean forts, erected at different times with a view to the com-
merce in gold, palm-oil, and ivory, but, above all, in slaves ; for
though this last object has for some time been finally abandoned
by Great Britain, France, and some other nations, yet it is a
well-known fact, that the trade in African Negroes may still be
called the staple of the Portuguese, Spaniards, and Brazilians.
It would, perhaps, be right and proper to devote this chapter
to a description of the physical, social, and moral condition of
Africa ; but, fearing to enlarge this volume to an undue size, I
am reluctantly compelled to omit any lengthy remarks here on
these subjects. I yield, however, to this necessity the more
readily, because, in other parts of the work, each of these
points is more or less touched upon ; and in the thu'teenth
chapter more particularly, the reader will find some accouut of
SlERllA-LEONE. 155
the degraded moral condition of this part of the Heathen world.
A word or two I must allow myself in passing.
Western Africa is divided into the Windward and Leeward
Coasts. The Windward Coast includes the s]mce in which the
Slave-Trade is most rife^ and takes its name from the direction
of the trade- winds, which constantly blow from certain quarters.
It comprehends Senegambia and Guinea ; extending from Sene-
gal, in latitude 16° N., to Cape Palmas, in latitude 4° 26' S.
This part of Africa is again di^dded into what are called the
Grain, the Ivory, the Gold, and the Slave Coasts ; the names of
which sufficiently indicate the distinguishing peculiarities of
their respective localities. Almost the whole of the sea-coast,
for some hundred leagues to the north and south of Sierra-
Leone, is very low. From the Gambia to the Bullom shore, it
is remarkably flat ; so much so, as to present to the approaching
voyager a singular prospect of palm and other trees, in long
lines, apparently growing out of the water; their foliage and
lofty stems being in full view, often for many hours, whilst the
land beneath remains unseen, until within a very short distance
of it. Sierra- Leone, however, forms an exception and a bold
relief to the monotony of the low land. This interesting
peninsula presents heaped-up mountains of prodigious heights,
which rise like pyramids in the desert, and the tops of which
are frequently wrapped in clouds and mist.
This low and flat country is, however, backed by ranges of
lofty mountains, which in some places approach the sea, and, as
at Cape Verd, project in bold headlands. The well-known
Mountains of the Moon are of an amazing height ; some of the
peaks being not less than 13,000 feet in elevation. It is only,
therefore, about the estuaries of the great rivers, and along
their banks, that the country can be said to be an unbroken
flat. In other places it consists of gentle undulations and
rising eminences, giving considerable beauty to the landscape.
The principal rivers are the Senegal, Gambia, Rio Grande, Eio
Nunez, Sierra-Leone or Rokel, Mesurado, Nun, or Niger, and
Congo. These rivers penetrate into the interior by a great
variety of windings, and divide into innumerable branches and
creeks, which communicate with each other, and with the
branches of neighbouring rivers, so as to render the inland
navigation very extensive and intricate.
Along this vast line of coast, that is, between the Tropic of
Cancer and that of Capricorn, and for some hundreds of miles
inland, the territory is in the possession of a number of petty
states and kingdoms, maiiv of which compose aristocratic rcpub-
156 WESTERN COAST OF AiailCA.
lies, turbulent, restless, and licentious. But the greater part
of Western Africa may be said to be under the dominion of the
most savage despotism, the power of the chieftains being con-
sidered as absolute. They exercise their authority most despotic-
ally. With them human life is of little or no value. Their law-
is strength, and their strength men ; and the passions and
caprices of these chiefs being unchecked by any counteracting
influence, the very name of Africa is associated with aU that is
shocking and revolting to the feelings of humanity, and its
history might well be written in characters of blood.
Two humiliating reflections involuntarily press themselves
upon our attention here. The first is, that, dark and degraded as
Africa is by nature, and by a deep-rooted superstition, it has been
rendei'ed more dark and gloomy, more miserable and wretched,
by coming in contact with Europeans, who originated the Slave-
Trade, that fruitful parent of almost every other evil. The
other humiliating thought is this, — that though Africa itself is
one of the fairest, most beautiful, and most fruitful portions of
the globe, containing forests of the most valuable timber, which
cover thousands of miles, and enriched with districts impreg-
nated with the precious metals ; though its vast continent has
been circumnavigated by ships of Europe for three centuries
and a half; and though Great Britain and other maritime
states of Europe have for more than two centuries held com-
mercial intercourse with the Western Coast, and have derived
considerable adv^antage from Africa; notwithstanding, until
comparatively a late period, little or nothing has been done to
communicate to its teeming millions the blessings of the gospel.
The first Protestant attempt of which we have any record
took place in the year 1751. This was made by a minister of
the Church of England, who had spent five years in America
as a missionary under the direction of the Society for the Pro-
pagation of the Gospel in Foreign Parts. This gentleman
proceeded to the Gold-Coast in that year, in order " to make
a trial with the natives, and see what hopes there would be of
introducing among them the Christian religion." * It appears
that during the four years of his stay, he officiated as chaplain
at Cape-Coast Castle, but was much discouraged in his endea-
vours to introduce a purer faith among the natives. His health
having failed, he returned to England in the year 1756. But,
previously to his return home, he sent to this country three
native boys for education ; one of whom went to the University
* Beecham's " Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," p. 257. From " An Account of
two Missiouaiy Voyages," &c. " By Thomas Thompson, A.M. London, 1758."
SIEllRA-LEONE. Ii57
of Oxford, was subsequently ordained, and returned to exercise
his ministry in his native land. For half a century this African
minister was chaplain at Cape-Coast Castle ; but he " does not
appear to have been instrumental in turning any of his country-
men to Christianity. Nor will this excite surprise, when it is
known, that on his death-bed he gave evidence that he had at
least as much confidence in the influence of the fetish as in the
power of Christianity." After his decease, other English chap-
lains were sent, who speedily sank under the influence of the
climate, having " successively died soon after their arrival at
Cape-Coast Castle." *
The next — indeed, it may be called the first vigorous and
united. — efl'ort that was made to benefit Africa, was commenced
towards the close of the last century, in the formation of the
colony of Sierra-Leone : — an undertaking which originated in
the most benevolent motives, and was long conducted under
highly distinguished patronage. Sierra-Leone was discovered
by the Portuguese in 1463, who were the first Europeans that
formed settlements on the river of that name. They were
afterwards folloAved by other European nations ; and, according
to Golberry, the river Mitembo was included at one time within
the limits of the French ''Government of the Senegal," It
first became known to the English in 156.2, when the noto-
rious Sir J. Hav/kins landed there, made unsparing use of
fire and sword, and, after perpetrating every atrocitj^, succeeded
in capturing some hundreds of the natives, put them on board
his vessels, and afterwards sold them in the West Indies for his
own advantage.
But this locality was afterwards selected for a widely difli'erent
purpose, — to check and put down the Slave-Trade, and to
introduce and difi'use the principles of our holy religion, with its
attendant blessing of civilization, and thus to benefit the whole
continent of Africa. The idea of establishing a free Negro
settlement at Sierra-Leone was first suggested by Dr. Smeatli-
man, in his letter to Dr. Knowles, dated July 21st, 1783. f It
appears that he conceived this noble design in Africa itself,
where he had resided several years. Contemporary, however,
with Dr. Smeathman^s suggestion, this subject had occupied the
thoughts and the pen of that eminent philanthropist, Granville
Sharp; who, on the 1st of August of the same year, (1783,)
sketched the outline of a plan " in his private memorandum for
* Beecham's " Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," pp. 258, 259.
f Wadstrom's " Essay on the Colonization of Western Africa," part ii, p. 3.
See also Appendix to that work, pp. 197 — 207.
158 WESTERN COAST OF ArillCA.
a settlement on the coast of Africa," which, lie observes in the
first paragraph, " will deserve all encouragement, if the settlers
are absolutely prohibited from holding any kind of property in
the persons of men as slaves, and from selling either man,
woman, or child/' An enlarged account of this plan was found
among Mr. Sharp^s papers ; and it was probably the foundation
of all the regulations by which the colony was governed at its
commencement.*
There appear to have been two principal causes or cii'cum-
stances which led to the formation, at that time, of the colony
at Sierra-Leone. While Great Britain was engaged in the
American war, a vast number of Negroes forsook their masters,
and joined the British forces. These served with fidelity, until
hostilities were brought to a termination in 1783. But when
the troops were about to be disbanded, it became a matter of
considerable difficulty how to dispose of these Blacks, consist-
ently with the principles of justice, humanity, and honour. To
abandon them in the United States, was to expose them to the
resentment of their ancient masters, against whom they had
fought, and to reward them with slavery for their attachment to
our cause. To prevent these evils from taking place, great
numbers of them were carried to the Bahama islands and Nova-
Scotia with the white loyalists, where they Avere declared free.
But many of them, being incorporated with the British regi-
ments, were carried to Great Britain, and especially to London.
On being dismissed, the English soldiers repaired to their
respective abodes, but the Blacks were left in a forlorn condi-
tion, without a home, and without a friend, in a foreign land.
These men became, therefore, objects of genuine compassion :
they were entitled to ample protection and a generous requital.
In the mean time this project was taken up by Granville
Sharp, as affording the best remedy for an inconvenience that
had grown out of his own benevolent exertions on behalf of the
enslaved Africans. After the memorable decision of Lord
Mansfield in favour of the Negro Somerset, in June, 1772, — the
particulars of which we have already stated, — great numbers of
Blacks, who had been brought to England, and turned adrift by
their masters, — many of them unaccustomed to any useful han-
dicraft or calling ; and, like the disbanded Negroes from Ame-
rica, without a home, or a parish, where they could claim
parochial relief, shivering from the influence of our chilly
climate, — fell by degrees into great distress, and were conspicu-
* " Memoirs of Granville Sliarp,'' vol. ii. ))p. 11 — 15.
SIERRA-LEONE. 159
Oils in the streets of the metropoHs as common beggars. As
Mr. Sharp was their known patron and friend, they flocked to
him for protection and support ; and he frequently and gene-
rously relieved them out of his own purse : but their numbers
being great,— at one time, it is stated, '^ about four hundred,'^ —
he found he could not relieve them daily consistently with his
engagements to others. A number of humane gentlemen,
therefore, formed a " Committee for Relieving the Black Poor :''
and with this Committee Mr. Sharp and Dr. Smeathman zeal-
ously co-operated. In 1786 the latter published his "Plan of a
Settlement to be made near Sierra-Leone, on the Grain-Coast
of Africa ; intended more particularly for the service and happy
Establishment of Blacks and People of Colour, to be shipped as
free Men, under the Direction of the Committee for Relieving
the Black Poor, and under the Protection of the British
Government." The " substance " of this plan the reader may
find in the Appendix to Wadstrom's " Essay on Colonization."
The Blacks of London having heard of this proposed settle-
ment, many of them waited on Mr. Sharp, "to consult with
him about the proposal. Sometimes they came," he says, " in
large bodies together. Upon inquiring among themselves, I
found that several of them had been on the spot." * To the
" plan " already mentioned the " Committee for the Black
Poor" annexed a hand-bill, inviting all persons of the above
description, who were willing to become colonists, to apply to
Dr. Smeathman, to whom had been intrusted the formation of
the settlement. In consequence of this measure, several hun-
dred Blacks, with some few Whites, expressed their willingness
to embark in the expedition. Application was also now made to
the Ministers of England for assistance : the Government had long
regarded the number of Negro mendicants as a nuisance, and
therefore readily consented to lend a helping hand to the pro-
ject. Accordingly " a small weekly allowance was made from the
Treasury for the subsistence of the settlers ; and navy transports
were hired to carry them out." f l^^t the sickness and
lamented death of Dr. Smeathman, at this important juncture,
suspended the execution of the plan for a short time ; and Mr.
Sharp stood involved in all the expenses which had attended its
outset. In this situation of aftairs, the Government again
interfered; provision was made both for transporting the
intending settlers, and for supplying them with necessaries
during the first six or eight months of their residence in Africa ;
* " Memoirs of Granville Sharp," vol. ii. p. 5. t ^^'«'«> P- 1*^-
160 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
and the little fleet at length sailed, under convoy of the " Nau-
tilus" sloop of war, on the 8th of April, 1787 ; having on board
somewhat more than four hundred Negroes, to which were
added about sixty Europeans, chiefly Avomeu. It appears that
seven hundred black poor had ofi'ered themselves to go to the
proposed settlement ; but from the delay which occurred in the
Channel, and from a feeling of jealousy which prevailed among
them, that Government intended to send them to Botany Bay,
as the transports for that expedition were then waiting at Ports-
mouth, where the ships for Sierra-Leone were ordered also,
many of them deserted, so that only four hundred Negroes
embarked in the first instance.
On leaving England they were placed under the direction of
Captain Thompson of the navy, commander of the "Nautilus"
sloop of war, Avho on his arrival at Sierra-Leoue procured for
His Britannic Majesty a fine tract of mountainous country, to
be appropriated to their use. This land was first purchased of
King Tom, a neighbouring Chief; and the bargain was after-
wards confirmed by Naimbanna, the king of the countrj^ who
resided at the small island of Robanna. But the commence-
ment of the settlement was inauspicious. During a long deten-
tion of these poor people in the Channel, and during their
passage to Sierra-Leone, they were in an extremely unhealthy
state, in most instances produced by disorders brought on board
with them, and aggravated by intemperance. In consequence
of the delay that had occurred, the}^ had landed in the rainy
season, when no sufficient order or regularity could be estab-
lished among them ; and, being exposed to the weather, a great
portion of them very soon perished. In the course of the first
year their numbers were reduced nearly one-half; many having
died before they reached the coast, and a great number a
short time after their landing. Some few, also, had deserted.
The remainder, however, were still sufficient for building a
small town : and Captain Thompson fixed upon a beautiful
eminence on the southern bank of the river for the site of the
new township. About three hundred and sixty town-lots, of
one acre each, were marked out in streets ; and the lots were
drawn and appropriated on June 12th, 1787.*
Mr. Sharp had heard of the safe arrival of the settlers at the
Madeira Islands from the Rev. Mr. Eraser, who had accom-
panied the expedition as chaplain; and subsequently he was
informed of their reaching the coast. On the 31st of October,
* " Memoirs of Granville Sharp," vol. ii. pp. 20, 90.
SIERRA-LEONE. IGl
1787, he Avrote to Dr. J. Sharp as follows: "I have had but
melancholy accounts of my poor little, ill-thriven, swarthy
daughter, the unfortunate colony of Sierra-Leone. They have,
however, purchased twenty miles square of the finest and most
beautiful country, they all allow, that was ever seen. The hills
are not steeper than Shooter's-Hill ; and fine streams of fresh
water run down the hill on each side of the new township ; and
in the front is a noble bay, where the river is about three
leagues wide. The woods and groves are beautiful beyond
description, and the soil very fine : so that a little good manage-
ment may, with God's blessing, still produce a thriving settle-
ment." *
A code of laws, or rather " Temporary Regulations," had
been drawn up by Mr. Sharp, for the new settlement; and not
being objected to by the Government, and having been
approved of and adopted by the settlers before they sailed, these
rules were of considerable use, and would have been of still
greater benefit, had they been more strictly adhered to and
maintained. But it could scarcely have been expected, that a
colony composed of disbanded soldiers, and Whites of indiffer-
ent character, many of them females of loose morals, would
speedily become a prosperous settlement. Making every allow-
ance, therefore, for the unfavourable season of the year at which
the party arrived on the coast, and the misery they had endured
on board the ship, some of them having been there above three
months ; " the greatest blame of all," as Mr. Sharp observed,
" is to be charged on the intemperance of the people them-
selves ; for the most of them (both Whites and Blacks) became
so besotted during the voyage, that they were totally unfit for
business when they landed, and could hardly be prevailed on to
assist in erecting their own huts. Thus unhappily the allow-
ance of I'um, granted to them by the Government wdth the
most benevolent intention, really proved their greatest bane.
There were, of course, many honourable exceptions; and Gran-
ville Sharp received several interesting letters from the settlers ;
and though some of them were of a discouraging nature, yet
they were all expressive of their gratitude to him as " their con-
stant and generous friend."
It appears, however, that when His Majesty's sloop " Nauti-
lus" left the settlement on September 16th, 1787, there
remained, in all, two hundred and seventy-six persons.
Amongst the many who had died during the rains, were Mr.
* " Memoirs of Granville Sharp," vol. ii. pp. 83, 84.
M
TG2 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Irwin, the agent-conductor; Mr. Gesau, the town-major and
engineer; and Mr. Richards, the gardener. These deaths,
with the desertion of many others, occasioned great discourage-
ment to those that remained. Another misfortune to the settle-
ment was the sickness of the Rev. Mr. Fraser, the chaplain,
whose continued ill state of health obliged him to return to
England in March, 1788. The number of settlers at that time
was only one hundred and thirty in all : but this great reduc-
tion was not so much attributed to sickness, as to emigration.
For the people, having little or nothing to live upon, and no
one to look up to as their leader and guide, dispersed in various
ways. Mr. Sharp, being apprehensive of an entire desertion,
hastened to rescue the colony from total wreck, by sending out,
principally at his own expense, the brig "Myro," laden with
various articles of considerable present use in meeting the
urgent necessities of the settlers. In the same vessel sailed
thirty -nine passengers, both white and black, to augment the
number of the colonists. "Among these were several very
intelligent men, two of them surgeons of respectable abilities,
Mr. Lacitus and Mr. Peale ; and also Mr. Irwin, son of the late
agent-conductor." The timely arrival of the "Myro" with
provisions, and a re-inforcement of hands, preserved the infant
colony, and renovated the hopes of the distressed wanderers, the
greater part of whom, finding that they could not subsist so well
in any other place, now gladly returned to the settlement.
The settlers were, however, soon doomed to another sad
disaster; for, towards the end of 1789, while the colony was
again in a state of advance, they received a formal notice from
the great council of a neighbouring chief, that he had resolved on
burning their town, in retaliation for a similar injury done to
his own capital by the marines and crew of an English ship of
war ; * and that he allowed them three days for the removal of
their goods. They had no resources; they fled from their
homes, and abandoned their plantations ; and the judicial sen-
tence was carried into execution at the appointed time. This
attack was an overwhelming blow to the colony, and threatened
it once more with entire annihilation. But the philanthropic
zeal which prevailed in Britain for the colonization of Africa
suffered no abatement ; and the same provident care which had
sent the "Myro'^ to the aid of Sierra-Leone in its utmost need,
had also secured the means of aftbrding it further protection by
* This is fully explained in the Report for 1793. The misunderstanding ori-
ginated with an American slave-captain, whose cause some British sailors and
marines aftei-wards espoused.
SIERRA-LEONE.
163
the estabiishment of a company in England, called "the St.
George's Bay Company," united for the purpose of carrying for-
ward the benevolent designs of its founder : and a memorial
was now addressed to His Majesty, praying that he would be
graciously pleased to grant to it his royal charter of incorpora-
tion. Accordingly, in September, 1790, the Company's agent,
Mr. Falconbridge, set sail, with a commission to examine and
report the state of the colony, and to afford, temporary relief to
the distress that had arisen, until the grant of the charter
should enable the Directors to take more effective measures for
the prosperity of the settlement.
Mr. Falconbridge arrived about twelve months after the dis-
persion of the settlers ; and, collecting as many of the fugitives
as he could any where discover, he brought them to a new set-
tlement above Foura Bay, about two miles further than the
former site was from the town of the chief who had invaded
them. Here they took possession of some deserted houses ; and
about four acres of land were cleared, and planted with yams
and cassada, and sown with Enghsh seeds. This little body of
settlers was supplied by Mr. Falconbridge with muskets, ammu-
nition, and articles of cutlery, which they might barter for
necessaries; and he reported them at his departure from the
coast as likely, with very little labour, to maintain themselves in
the same manner as before their dispersion. They at that time
amounted in all to sixty-four. The males, though disorderly
and turbulent, appeared to be warmly attached to the Company,
and resolutely bent on defending themselves. The new settle-
ment received the name of Granville-Town, in honour of their
original protector and friend : and the affairs of the settlement,
though small, now began to assume a more promising aspect.
Before the close of the session of 1791, the British legislature
gave its sanction to the movement, and incorporated the sub-
scribers under the denomination of "The Sierra-Leone Com-
pany." As soon as this Act was passed, they held their first
meeting in London, on the 19th of October, 1791, and chose
their Directors for the ensuing year. Among these we find the
celebrated names of Wilberforce, Thornton, Clarkson, Granville
Sharp, and others, who have immortalized themselves by
espousing the cause of insulted humanity. A capital of
£250,000 was now raised for carrying on the undertaking ; and
it became necessary to increase the number of settlers. While
the Directors were discussing measures for that purpose, an
opportunity offered which appeared to meet their wishes for
strengthening the colony by an additional body of free Negroes,
M 2
164 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
acquainted with the English language, and accustomed to the
labour of hot climates. It has been already observed, that at
the conclusion of the American war a body of Negroes, who
had been induced to enlist in the British army by the king^s
proclamation of freedom to all slaves who should join the royal
standard, were, on the termination of hostilities, carried to
Nova-Scotia, where the greater part of them remained, though
some of them founc^ their way to England, and were sent out to
Sierra-Leone with the first settlers.
During this year, (1791,) a Negro named Peters arrived in
London as a delegate from many of his countrymen of the
above description, who, in consequence of finding the climate
of Nova-Scotia unfavourable to their health, and on account of
the withholding of some grants of land which had been pro-
mised to them, were desirous of joining the new colony at
Sierra-Leone. The Directors immediately applied to Govern-
ment, to know if it would defray the expenses of the passage of
these Negroes ; and, being favourably answered, they availed
themselves of the oflFer of Lieutenant Clarkson, of His Majesty's
navv, (a brother of the zealous historian of the Abolition of the
Slave-Trade,) to bring the new colonists over to Sierra-Leone.
Lieutenant Clarkson set sail on August 19th, 1791 ; and, on
his arrival at Nova- Scotia, found, to his surprise, that the num-
ber of black people who were desirous to embark for Sierra-
Leone far exceeded the account given by their delegate. Not
fewer than eleven hundred and ninety-six were brought on
board. It was obvious that the accession of so large a body of
people could not fail to produce the most important conse-
quences to the infant settlement : their numerous wants would
demand instant supply : the Directors, therefore, turned their
immediate attention to this subject. The first vessel sent out
by the Company from England, reached Sierra-Leone in Febru-
ary, 1792, and was soon followed by two others, carrying out in
all rather more than one hundred Europeans. In the succeed-
ing month the Nova- Scotia fleet arrived, consisting of sixteen
vessels, from which were landed eleven hundred and thirty-one
Blacks ; sixty-five having died during the passage.
The colony being thus recruited with this large addition of
labourers, and the native princes being perfectly satisfied with the
intention of the settlers, the new town, which, in consequence
of instructions from the Directors, was named Free-Tcwn, began
to rise rapidly ; and a public wharf and warehouse were likewise
commenced. A fever, however, which the Negroes had brought
with tiiem, aggravated by the rainy season which followed soon
SIERRA-LEONE. 165
after their arrival, carried off a considerable number : and to the
latter cause of mortality half of the European settlers fell vic-
tims. But the sickly season having passed, things went on
prosperously. The site of Free-Town was unquestionably the best
that could be selected in the vicinity ; and it was soon found
that both the soil and climate were admirably adapted for all
the productions of the tropical region. But in September, 1794,
the colony was surprised by the arrival of a French squadron,
who, notwithstanding the declaration of the French Convention,
barbarously plundered and destroyed the colonial town, and
thus caused a pecuniary loss to the Company amounting to
upwards of c€50,000. The particulars of this base and bar-
barous outrage have appeared in print in several publications.
The following is an extract of a letter from Mr. Afzelius, who
was a botanist belonging to the colony, and an eye-witness of
the facts which he details. His letter is dated Sierra-Leone,
November 15th, 1794, and was addressed to the Swedish
ambassador in London : —
The English colony (says he) at Sierra-Leone had, like all other new colonies,
in the beginning, great difficulties to overcome. But before the end of two years
from its first institution, order and industry had begun to show their effects in an
increasing prosperity. A new town had been laid out, with regular streets, and a
little garden belonging to each house. The woods had been cut down, to the dis-
tance of about three miles all round the town. By this means the climate had
become healthier, and sickness had diminished. The fame of our colony had spread
not only along the whole Western Coast of Africa, but also to parts far distant
from the coast ; and we have had embassies from kings and princes, several hun-
dred miles distant, with the view of acquiring a better knowledge of us, and of
obtaining our friendship. They began to send their children to us, with full con-
fidence, to be brought up in the Chiistian religion. In short, we were externally
respected and internally happy. But the French have been here, and have ruined
us. They arrived on the 28th of September last, early in the morning, with a fleet
consisting of one large ship, two frigates, two armed brigs, and one cutter, together
with two large armed merchant-ships, taken by them at the Isles de Los, — an Eng-
lish slave-factory at the north of oiu- colony, and which they have also destroyed
and bm-nt.
So well had they concealed their nation, that we took them for English. They
had Enghsh-built vessels, which were rigged in the English way. They showed
the English flag, and had their sailors — at least, those whom we saw — dressed
like English. In short, we did not perceive our mistake, until we observed them
pointing their guns. We had not strength sufficient to resist ; and therefore our
governor gave orders, that as soon as they should begin to fire, the British flag
should be struck, and a flag of truce hoisted. Accordingly this was done; but
still they continued firing, and did much damage both within and without the
town. They killed two people, and wounded three or four. But as we did not
understand the meaning of this i)roceeding, we asked them for an explanation : and
they answered us, that we should display the flag of liberty, as a proof of our sub-
mission. We assured them that it should already have been done if we had had
any, which terminated the hostilities from the ships.
16G WESTERN COAST OV AFRICA.
In the mean time, most of the inhabitants had fled from the town, having taken
with them as much of their property as they conveniently could in such a hurry.
I was with the governor, together with a number of others. But as soon as I was
certain that they were enemies, I went towards my own house, with a view to save
as much as possible of my property and natm-al collections ; but was received in
such a manner, that I could not venture to proceed. My house was situated near
the shore, and unfortunately just opposite the frigate which fired. I saw the balls
passing through my house, and heard them whizzing about my ears. I saw that I
should lose all my property ; but life was dearer to me, and I hastened to the
woods. In the afternoon the enemy landed, finding the town almost destitute of
people, but rich in provisions, clothing, and other stores. They began immediately
to break open the houses, and to plunder : what they did not want, they destroyed,
burnt, or threw into the river. They killed all the cattle and animals they found
in the fields, streets, yards, or elsewhere, not sparing even asses, dogs, and cats.
These proceedings they continued the whole succeeding week, tiU they had entirely
ruined our beautifid and prospering colony ; and when they found nothing more
worth plundering, they set fire to the pubhc buildings, and all the houses belonging
to the Europeans, and consequently to mine among the rest. About twenty-four
houses, great and small, were thus destroyed; and nine or ten houses of the
colonists were also burnt by mistake.
In the mean time, the enemy was not less active on the water. They took about
ten or twelve prizes, including the Company's vessels ; most of these they unloaded
and burnt. They took also two of our armed vessels ; one of which v/sls a large
ship, laden mth pro^dsions, and which had been long expected ; but she unfortu-
nately arrived a few days too soon, and was taken with her whole cargo. We
expected at least to receive our private letters ; but even this was refused, and they
were thrown overboard. At last, after inflicting on us every hardship we could
suffer, only sparing our lives and the houses of the colonists, they sailed on the
13th of October last at noon, proceeding downwards to the Gold-Coast; and left us
in the most dreadful situation, without provisions, clothes, houses, or fru-niture.
Most of us must have perished, had not our friends in the neighbourhood, both
natives and Europeans, who were so happy as to escape the enemy, kindly sent us
what they could spare. Since that time most of us have either been, or still are,
very sick, and many have died for want of proper food and medicine. The worst,
however, is now past. At least, we are not in any want of provision, although of
the coarsest kind ; but we are destitute of the most necessary articles and utensils
for the house, the table, and the kitchen.
The report of the governor and council at Sierra-Leone, to
the Directors in London, with other private letters, — one of
them dhted" Ruins of Free-Town, October 8th, 1794,'' — corrobo-
rate every material fact contained in the foregoing extract, and
furnish some additional particulars of the same outrageous
character. " The books of the Company's library," we are told,
" were scattered about and defaced ; and if they bore any resem-
blance to Bibles, they were torn in pieces and trampled upon.
The dweUing-house of the botanist (Mr. Afzelius) was pillaged,
aud his collections destroyed. In the accountant's office, all
was demolished, in the search for money : the copying and
printiug-presses also were destroyed : all the telescopes, baro-
SIERRA-LEONE. 167
meters and thermometers, and an electrical machine, were
broken to pieces," Nor did these desperadoes stop here ; for
" the apothecary's shop and medicines were also destroyed : "
and on the same day " the church was pillaged, the books torn,
and the pulpit and clock broken to pieces." In a few days
subsequent to this, "the conflagration of all the buildings which
had escaped the former fire commenced :" and now "the church,
a range of shops," and in fact every thing else which could be
met with belonging to the Compan}', shared the same fate.
"On the 9th of October, the Company's largest ship, the
'Harpy,' arrived off Cape Sierra-Leone from England, having
several passengers on board, and goods to the amount of
■£10,000. The demolition of the Company's houses having
been discovered, she put out again to sea, and she appeared for
a time to gain on the vessel which was sent in chase of her;
but, the wind dying away, she was overtaken, and immediately
struck. No part of the cargo of this ship was landed in the
colony, nor would the commodore suffer the despatches and
papers brought by her to be delivered, a few newspapers excepted.
The English passengers were completely plundered of their pro-
perty ; the Company's chaplain, who went out with her, was
deprived of all his private papers ; and three natives, who had
been making a voyage to England, lost all the presents which
they were carrying back with them, not excepting a part of
their clothes, which they were obliged to exchange for others of
an inferior sort." *
On the ^8th of October, as already mentioned, the French
commodore set sail to the southward with all his fleet, to w^hich
the " Harpy " was now added. He had, however, sent on shore
about two or three weeks' supply of provisions for the Europeans
in the colony ; but paid no attention to the governor's solicita-
tion for any thing else. The distress caused by this barbarous
invasion is more easily conceived than described ; and the pre-
ceding narrative furnishes room for many painful reflections.
The miseries of war are dreadful, even when the contest is con-
ducted on what are called "principles of honour:" but when
treachery wields the sword, or points the cannon, it levels the
civilized warrior with the lowest state of barbarian degradation.
France promised fair, having at the commencement of the
war obtained full explanation of the designs of the Sierra-Leone
Company in the formation of the colony ; and the French Con-
* " Substance of the Report of the Court of Directors of the Sierra-Leone Com-
pany, (ieliveri'd to the General Court of I'rojirirtors, rel)ruary 2Gth, 1795."
1G8 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
vention directed one of its agents to request a list of the ships
employed by them, assuring them of the good wishes of the
French Government to so noble an undertaking, and that nei-
ther their ships nor the colony should be injured by the repub-
lican arms. That promise once made to the Directors had
lulled both them and the colonists into a state of such profound
security, that they could not foresee any possible attack, and
were totally unprepared for it in the way of defence. But the
preceding narrative furnishes a brief history of an outrage almost
without a parallel in the records of civilized ages. " So well
had they concealed their nation," with English-built vessels,
manned by English-dressed sailors, with the English colours
flying, that the fleet was actually taken for the English, until
" some men in one of the frigates were seen pointing a gun into
the piazza of the governor's house ; and the shot began flying
over the town in a few minutes after." Though the British
"colours were immediately struck" in the colony, "and a flag
of truce was held out," yet "the firing still continued, and
several grape and musket-shot fell into the piazza." On asking
for an explanation of this continued firing, the colonists were
told that they " should display the flag of liberty as a proof of
their submission." The Sierra-Leone colony, as the French
well knew, was established in order to efl'ect the abolition of the
Slave-Trade, to enlighten the Africans, and to render them
virtuous and rational, free and happy : but these powerful
patrons of the "rights of men," who knew the benevolent
design, acted contrary to their own acknowledged fundamental
doctrines, in destroying a colony based on similar principles.
It was thus that the French executed their purpose of spreading
" light and liberty " through the world, when they, under cir-
cumstances of the most wanton cruelty, destroyed the "beautiful
and prospering colony " at Sierra-Leone, — a colony which pre-
viously was " externally respected and internally happy,"
" rich in provisions, clothing, and other stores," but ' was now
" entirely ruined " by the depredations of this fleet of French
pirates.
A few weeks after the departure of the French squadron,
intelligence was received of its having captured two of the
Company's small trading-vessels on their passage down the coast.
The crews of these vessels were immediately put on shore, with-
out food or shelter. As many of these as were able made their
way to Sierra-Leone, and their numbers increased the common
distress. Soon after this excitement was over, a general sick-
ness broke out amongst the Europeans, which was greatly
SIERRA-LEONl!. 169
aggravated by the loss of medicines, as well as by the want of
proper provisions.
It is difficult to find any thing in the shape of an apology for
the conduct of the French in this distressing and painful affair ;
though the Directors, in publishing their report of the whole
matter, very liberally admit a doubt whether the attack on
Sierra-Leone was in any manner sanctioned by the Govern-
ment then existing in France. They express themselves as
having reason to believe that the squadron was equipped on the
speculation of certain private individuals, some of them Slave-
Traders, and acting as owners of privateers. One thing is
certain, and is Avorthy of special record, — that whilst the Slave-
Traders in the neighbourhood did all in their power to add to
the hardships of the colony at that time, the native chiefs, on
the contrary, were unanimous in rendering it every assistance.
Some good effects resulted from this calamitous visitation.
It had a most salutary influence on the Nova-Scotian malecon-
tents; so that harmony was for a time completely restored
among the colonists. The French squadron, too, which had
been fitted out against the English slave-factories on the coast,
by interrupting the traffic in slaA^es, increased the influence of
the colony, and promoted its commercial views.
The misfortune was also met with firmness by the Directors,
who immediately dispatched two small vessels with an assort-
ment of necessaries. Being supported by the rectitude of their
own intentions, and the hope that Divine Providence would still
favour their undertaking, they did not give way to despair.
They resolved to render the distressed adventurers all the assist-
ance in their power : and, with this, entreated them to
" Ply all the sinews of industrious toil,
Glean up the refuse of a generous soil,
Rebuild the town that smoked upon the plain.
And hope the sun would gild its spires again."
By the spirited exertions of the Company, their affairs were
soon retrieved from these complicated disasters ; and the ensuing
four years after the French invasion may be considered as the
most prosperous period of the colony prior to its transfer to the
crown.
" In the year 1798, Free-Town contained about three hundred
houses, laid out with great regularity, besides many public
buildings. Three wharves had been erected. The government-
house was completed on an eminence that commanded the town
and the harbour, and was protected by a palisade and six pieces
170 WESTERN COAST OF AFllICA.
of cannon. The inhabitants of the colony were about twelve
hundred; the heads of families being about three hundred. Of
these, about one-half were supported by their farms; many
were mechanics ; and the rest followed various occupations, as
retail shopkeepers, fishermen, seamen, &c. The town was also
become a place of considerable resort for the neighbouring
natives, of whom from one to two hundred daily visited the
settlement, for the purpose of exchanging African produce for
British manufactures. Some came in canoes, from a distance
of eighty to one hundred miles.^^ *
In the following year, (1799,) symptoms of an insurrectionary
spirit, more especially on the part of the Nova-Scotians, which
had onl^ been slumbering, induced the Directors to apply to
the British Government for a Charter to increase the powers of
the governor and council, who hitherto had been unarmed with
anj^ legal sanction to enforce their authority. The Charter was
granted in 1800, creating the settlement an independent colony,
and placing the criminal jurisdiction in the hands of the
governor. Before, however, it could reach Sierra-Leone, the
conspirators, finding that no time was to be lost in executing
their scheme, which had for its object the complete overthrow
of the Company's authority, broke out into open rebellion.
Affairs were in the most critical state, the insurgents out-
numbering the loyal settlers, and no alternative seemed left to
the governor but to hazard an attack upon the rebels, when a
most providential occurrence rescued the colony once more from
impending destruction. A large ship, the "Asia" transport,
appeared in the river, having on board about five hundred and
fifty Maroons (including Avomen and children) from Nova-
Scotia, together with a detachment of forty-five soldiers under
two officers of His Majesty's 24th regiment. The rebellion was
now speedily suppressed, although the insurgents at first treated
with contempt the offer of an accommodation, and obstinately
maintained their hostile position, till they found themselves
attacked. They were routed at the first onset, two of their
immber being left dead on the spot. Thirty-five prisoners were
brought in, of whom three were selected for trial, and were
executed ; the rest were expelled the colony. " Seven, who had
taken a principal part in exciting the disturbance, were sent to
Goree, and twenty-five were transported to the Bullom shore ;
but, after a few years, they were permitted to return to the
colony."
* " Memoirs o( Granville Sharp," vol. ii. p. 58.
SIERRA-LEONE.
171
It was the wish of the governor and council to procure for the
Maroon settlers the island of Bananas, about thirty miles south
of Free-Town; but their intention was frustrated, through
alarms raised in the minds of the natives by the Slave-Traders.
It was therefore determined upon to grant lands to the Maroons
on the same side of the river as the Company's settlement was
on. Town-lots were accordingly marked out for them in
Granville-Town, in November, 1800 ; and farms were allotted
to them near that place. They built a neat town for them-
selves, and began to cultivate their farms with spirit. A parha-
mentary grant indemnified the Company for part of the heavy
expenditure and loss they had incurred ; and a farther sum of
^£7,000 was voted towards building a fort. A firmer system of
order was beginning to prevail, when a sudden blow was again
aimed at the very existence of the settlement by some native
chiefs, without any previous intimation or ground of complaint.
On the 18th of November, 1801, about day-break, a body of
natives of tlie Timmanee country, headed by ten of the Nova-
Scotian insurgents, who had effected their escape, made an
assault on the paHsades of the governor's house. After some
loss on both sides, the assailants were repulsed, and were pur-
sued till they had withdrawn from the vicinity. In March,
1802, a truce was concluded with them; and some additional
troops having arrived from Goree, the peace of the colony was
restored. There was reason, however, to apprehend that the
chiefs who had made this unforeseen attack, were still busy in
exciting among their countrymen a jealousy of the growing
power of the Sierra-Leone settlement ; and the Directors were
induced to present a memorial to the British legislature, ear-
nestly invoking more efficient protection.
Notwithstanding the truce which had been concluded with
the native chiefs, the colony was attacked, in the following
month, by a force amounting to more than four hundred men,
among M'hom were eleven of the rebels who had been banished
from the settlement. The attack was sudden and vigorous;
and although the assailants were again repulsed wdth severe
loss, the spirits of the settlers were so greatly damped, that they
abandoned their farms, and the idea of evacuating the colony
became general. The affairs of the Company were the more
embarrassed in consequence of the suspension of the annual
grants from Government, pending a parliamentary inquiry which
was instituted in 1803. In the Report of the Committee, made
in the following year, it was stated to be their opinion, upon a
full consideration of the difficulties which continued to embar-
173 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
rass the Company, and the interest which the British Govern-
ment were found to take in the settlement, that the great
object for which the colony was undertaken might be more
effectually accomplished, by a transfer of the civil and military
authority of the settlement to the crown ; and that it would be
expedient to invite the proprietors to make a surrender of their
rights to His Majesty. In pursuance of this recommendation,
not unacceptable to the Company, a Bill for transferring the
colony to the crown was brought into Parliament, which
received the royal assent on the 8th of August, 1807; and on
the 1st of January, 1808, the possession of the settlement was
surrendered to the crown, and the Company withdrew from its
arduous and beneficent enterprise.*
The reader will have perceived that the obstacles which had
thwarted the plans of the chartered Company in this noble
enterprise, were neither few nor small. They may be summed
up, however, in few words : — the unfavourable character of the
Nova-Scotians, who joined the first settlers ; the want of suffi-
cient power in the hands of the local government ; the inade-
quacy of its force to restrain the aggressions of the neighbour-
ing natives ; the war with France ; and the enmity of the Slave-
Traders to the principles on which the colony -was founded, and
which to this day make it an eye-sore to all who are interested
in the traffic in human beings. But though the Company did
not succeed to the utmost of their wishes, it would be unjust to
say that they had laboured in vain. On the transfer of the
colony of Sierra-Leone to the British Government, the Com-
pany's Directors published the following statement, which satis-
factorily demonstrated the success of the Company in the attain-
ment of its most important objects, and was calculated to con-
vince every proprietor that his money had been expended to a
noble purpose : —
However great may have been the Company's loss in a pecuniary view, the
Directors are unwilling to admit that there has been a total failure in their main
objects, or that their capital has been expended without effect. It must afford
satisfaction to reflect, that the Company should both have conceived and attempted
to execute those plans of beneficence which led to the institution of the colony j
and that they should have continued to pursue them for so many years, in the face
of opposition, disappointment, and loss ; in spite of severe calamities, arising from
European as well as African wars, and much turbulence on the part of the colo-
nists. The proprietors have the farther satisfaction of knowing, that the Company
have contributed to the abolition of the Slave-Trade, by exposing its real nature
before the view of a hesitating legislature, and detecting the artifices and misrepre-
sentations by which the persons engaged in it laboured to delude the public.
* " Memoirs of Granville Sharp," vol. ii. pp. 59 — 77.
SIERRA-LEONE. 173
The Company have communicated the benefits flowing from a knowledge of let-
ters, and from Christian instruction, to hundreds of Negroes on the coast of Africa ;
and, by a careful education in this country, they have elevated the character of
several of the children of African chiefs, and directed their minds to objects of the
very first importance to their countrymen. They have ascertained that the cultiva-
tion of any valuable article of tropical export may be carried on in Africa ; that
Africans, in a state of freedom, are susceptible of the same motives to industry and
laborious exertion which influence the natives of Europe ; and that some African
chiefs are sufficiently enlightened to comprehend, and sufficiently patriotic to encou-
rage, schemes of improvement. They have demonstrated that Negroes may be
governed by the same mild laws which are found consistent with the maintenance
of rational liberty even in this kingdom ; and that they may be safely and advan-
tageously intrusted with the administration of these laws, not only as jurors, but
even as judicial assessors. They have, in some measure, retrieved the credit of the
British — it may be added, of the Christian — name, on the continent of Africa ; and
have convinced its inhabitants that there are Englishmen who are actuated by very
different motives from those of self-interest, and who desire nothing so much as
their improvement and happiness. To conclude : they have established, in a cen-
tral part of Aft-ica, a colony which appears to be now provided with adequate
means both of defence and subsistence ; which, by the blessing of Providence, may
become an emporium of commerce, a school of industry, and a soiu"ce of know-
ledge, civilisation, and religious improvement to the inhabitants of that continent ;
and wliich may hereafter repay to Great Britain the benefits she shall have commu-
nicated, by opening a continually-increasing market for those manufactures which
are now no longer secure of their accustomed vent on the continent of Europe.
The Directors are persuaded that they only express the general feeling of the
proprietary, when they say, that they cannot prevail upon themselves to consider
these eflfects as an insignificant retiu'n for any pecuniary sacrifices which have been
incurred for their attainment.
It was with sentiments and feelings of this description, that
the Sierra-Leone Company withdrew its official connexion from
that interesting colony ; bearing with it the grateful conscious-
ness, that it had humanely and vigorously seconded the merito-
rious efforts of its celebrated founder. It is a pleasing feature
in the history of this settlement, that the same year which ter-
minated the Sierra-Leone Company, witnessed the formation of
the "African Institution, " which was composed of a large body
of the most virtuous and respectable persons in this country,
whose objects were somewhat similar to those of the former
Company; namely, the improvement and civilisation of the
African continent. It is also worthy of further remark, that in
the course of the year 1807, peace had been fully established by
a treaty with the native chiefs ; and that at the time of the sur-
render of the territory to Government, the colony " had attained
to a situation of comparative strength and prosperity. The
fortifications had been so far advanced, as to communicate to it
a sense of complete security. Its internal order had gone on
improving ; the confidence of the natives had been restored ;
174 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
and the number of native children sent to Sierra-Leone for
education, continued to increase. The colonists were building
good houses, and showed other marks of growing prosperity.
Cultivation was reviving. The colony Avas also improving in
healthiness. During the first half of the last year, the propor-
tion of births to deaths was as twenty-three to fourteen. None
of the troops had died in that time ; and, of the Company's ser-
vants, only one had died since the 1st of January, 1806." *
The population, in the year 1807, amounted to one thousand
eight hundred and seventy-one persons; and it will be seen
from the preceding quotation, that though the Company was a
failure, as far as mercantile profit was concerned, yet the other
and more important objects which it had in view were satis-
factorily promoted. Schools, places of worship, agriculture, and
the habits of civilized life were introduced ; so that the Sierra-
Leone Company may be regarded as having fixed the basis, and
laid the foundation, for the civilization of Africa.
The following is the succession of governors of Sierra-Leone
from the commencement of the settlement : — J. Clarkson, Esq.,
superintendent, March, 1793. W. Dawes, Esq., December,
1792. Z. Macaulay, Esq., 2^ro temp., April, 1794. W. Dawes,
Esq., returns, 1795. Z. Macaulay, Esq., governor, 1796. T.
Ludlam, Esq., pro temp., 1799. W. Dawes, Esq., January, 1801.
Captain W. Day, E.N., February, 1803. J. Ludlam, Esq.,
August, 1803. T. P. Thompson, Esq., July, 1808.
* "Last Report of the Directors of the Sierra-Leoue Company," 1808, p. 11.
.i' 'H
CHAPTER X.
SIERRA-LEONE.
Situation of the Colony — The Principles on ■which it was founded — View and
Description of Siei-ra-Leone in 1796 — The African Institution — Capture of
Slave-Vessels— Disposal of the captured Negroes — State of the Colony in
1816-1818 — Number of Villages erected — Major Gray's Statement respect-
ing the Colony in 1821 — Continuance of the Slave-Trade — Reports of the
Colony in 1821-1823 — -Letter from Sir Charles Macarthy — Sierra-Leone
Gazette — Great Mortality in 1823 — Lamented Death of Sir Charles Macarthy
in 1824 — Successive Governors — Mortality — Commission of Inquiry into the
State of Sierra-Leone — Hostility to the Colony — The Expenditure reduced —
Some Statistics in 1833 — Population in 1838 and in 1846 — The Settlers —
Maroons and liberated Africans — Miserable Condition of the latter on being
landed — Dr. Fergusson's " Letter on the Character of the liberated Africans "
— Extract from " Letters from Sierra-Leone, by a Lady " — Moral Means — A
Tribute to the Church Missionary Society.
The peninsula of Sierra-Leone is situated in 8° 30' N. lat.,
and in about 13^° W. long. The etymology of the name is
somewhat disputed ; some contending that it imports " the
Mountains of Lions/^ from the presumption that these monarchs
of the forest were plentiful in that locality ; whilst others have
doubted this fact^ and are of opinion that the name " Sierra-
Leone^^ was given by the first discoverers to the "mountains/'
on account of the " tremendous roaring of the thunder," which
frequently echoes along the sides of the hills and on the tops of
the mountains, and the effect of which is felt in the valleys,
and even on board the ships.
Free-Town, the capital, is situated on the south side of the
river, on a gentle rising ground at the foot of a hill, at the dis-
tance of about five miles from Cape Sierra-Leone. Its name
sufiiciently indicates the principles on which the colony was
established ; but as a further illustration of this, Ave find, in the
third edition of the "Temporary Regulations,^^ published in
1788, one of its fundamental laws thus laid down : " As soon as
a slave shall set his foot within the bounds of the new settle-
ment, he shall be deemed a free man, and be equally entitled,
with the rest of the inhabitants, to the protection of the laws,
and to all the natural rights of humanity." Another regulation
was, " That the common council of the settlement be assembled
according to the ancient established rules of country courts,
namely, ' twice every year, and more often, if need be.' "
176
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Another important rule, referring to ecclesiastics, was, " That
no clergyman, who receives a salary as such, within the bounds
of the settlement, shall enter into trade." When the transfer of
the colony to the crown took place in 1807, the Act strictly for-
bade the trafl&c in slaves within the settlement, and continued
to the colonists the full enjoyment of all the rights which they
had possessed under the authority of the Company.
It has been already stated, that the year which terminated
the Sierra-Leone Company, gave birth to a kindred company
of benevolent gentlemen, who formed what was called " the
African Institution /' and, as Great Britain abolished the Slave-
Trade the very same year, Sierra-Leone was now selected by the
Government as a fit place for locating those slaves who should
be forcibly rescued from the pestilential confinement of the
slave-ship by British cruisers. Accordingly, soon after the Act
for abolishing the Slave-Trade was passed in England, a Court
of Vice- Admiralty was established at Sierra-Leone, for the pur-
pose of giving full effect, in the colony, to the provisions of the
Act ; and it is still maintained for the same object, — an object
which reflects more honour on the British name than the subju-
gation of nations, or the conquest of empires.
Few colonies have had more difficulties to contend with, or
have been more misrepresented, than Sierra-Leone. In the
advocacy of its friends it is easy to detect the bias of party pre-
judice ; and in the attacks of its foes, the rancour of interested
hostility. But into this violent controversy it is not my busi-
ness to enter : my limits compel brevity. Suffice it to say that
Sierra-Leone has been represented, both by French and English
writers, as displaying a scene of surpassing beauty. " Europe,"
says Golberry, " may present prospects more rich and brilliant ;
but in no part of the world can there be found a site so
delightful as the Bay of Sierra-Leone." And Rankin observes,
" No site for a town more lovely could have been selected, had
charms to the eye been the sole guide." On the other hand, it
has been described as " the worst place that possibly could have
been chosen, whether considered in a political, or in a commer-
cial, or in an agricultural point of view ; " as " a pestiferous
charnel-house," and "a detestable place, having no one good
quality to recommend it." Avoiding both these extremes, it
may with truth be said that the view of Sierra-Leone from the
sea is interesting, and somewhat picturesque. The reader may
form some idea of it from the accompanying engraving, which
gives a tolerably correct view of Free-ToAvn as it now is. Dr.
Winterbottom, in the interesting work which he pviblished in
SIERRA-LEOXE. 177
1803, gives also a very correct sketch of this colony, as it then
was; or rather as it veas in 1796, when Dr. Winterbottora left
the coast. The town and colony have, of course, very much
improved since that period ; but the landscape and the position
of Free-Town are much the same. He says, "The land
forming the peninsula of Sierra-Leone, when viewed from the
sea, or from the opposite shore, called BuUom, appears like a
number of hills heaped upon each other in a very irregular man-
ner. On a nearer approach the face of the country assumes a
more beautiful aspect. The rugged appearance of these moun-
tains is softened by the lively verdure with which they are con-
stantly crowned; their majestic forms, irregularly advancing
and receding, occasion huge masses of light and shade to be
projected from their sides, which add a degree of picturesque
grandeur to the scene. The most craggy and inaccessible parts
of the mountains are covered with forests of immense growth,
which yield
' A boundless deep immensity of shade.
Here lofty trees, to ancient song unknown,
The noble sons of potent heat and floods
Prone rushing from the clouds, rear high to heaven
Their thorny stems, and broad around them throw
Meridian gloom.'
The lower grounds which are cultivated, present a considerable
degree of verdure through the whole year, which, contrasted
with the darker hues of the more distant hills, forms a spectacle
highly grateful to the eye."*
In speaking of the capital, the same writer observes, " Free-
Town is situated on the south side of the river Sierra-Leone,
about six miles from its mouth, upon a piece of ground which
rises abruptly from the water's edge to the height of at least
fifty feet, and then proceeds with a gentle and gradual ascent
for about three quarters of a mile, till it reaches the foot of a
chain of mountains running nearly in an E.S.E. and W.N.W.
direction. The town is bounded on the N.W. by St. George's
Bay, on the E. by another small bay called Susan's Bay, and
on the S. are the mountains already mentioned. It extends
about one-third of a mile in length, and nearly the same in
breadth, and contains about seventy or eighty acres. The
number of houses amounts to between three and four hundred ;
and they are disposed in regular streets, of which nine run in a
straight line towards the mountains, in a north-west and south-
* Dr. Winterbottom's " Account of the Native Africans in the Neighbourhood
of Sierra-Leone," vol. i. pp. 16, 17.
178 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
east direction. These streets are intersected, at right angles, by
three cross streets, which run parallel to the shore. They are
all eighty feet in breadth, except the parallel street nearest the
water, which is double the breadth of the others.
" Each house stands separate, and has a small garden attached
to it ; forty-eight feet, by seventy-six, being the space allotted
for each family to build upon. Before the town was destroyed by
the French, the principal public buildings were placed in the
widest street, which was terminated by the governor's house,
situated upon a point of land at the north-western extremity
of Free-Town. All these, however, together with every other
building which had the appearance of superior neatness, were
unfeehngly devoted to the flames, in October, 1794, by the
French. The dwelling-houses of the Nova-Scotian settlers,
which constitute the chief part of the town, consisted, during
the first two years, almost entirely of thatched buildings; but
since that period they have procured for themselves more com-
fortable habitations. They at present consist chiefly of wooden
buildings, about thirty feet in length, and fifteen in breadth,
divided into rooms by partitions, and raised two or three feet
from the ground. The floors, also, instead of being formed of
earth, are now boarded ; and the roofs of many of them are
covered with shingles, or thin pieces of wood, about six inches
in breadth, and three feet in length, placed over each other
like the tiles of a house. In general there are no chimneys in
these houses ; the fire for culinary purposes being made in the
open air, or in a detached building. The present residence of
the governor of Sierra-Leone is a handsome wooden building
of one story, surrounded by a spacious piazza. It is situated
upon a small round hill, elevated about an hundred and fifty
feet above the level of the water, and placed between the town
and the foot of the mountains. From this eminence, called
Thornton-Hill, the eye takes-in a most extensive prospect, and
dwells with pleasure upon the surrounding picturesque scenery,
in Avhich the milder beauties of nature are agreeably blended
with those of a more solemn and sublime appearance." *
We may remark, that the town being situated upon a gentle
slope renders it dry, and its elevation exposes it to the regular
sea and laud breezes. The situation is also well adapted for
trade, being placed upon the banks of a river accessible at all
times to vessels of the greatest burden, which may lie in safety
close to the shore. Near it are various bays which ofl^er every
* Dr. Winterbottom's " Account of the Native Africans in the Neighbourhood
of Sierra-Leone," vol. i. pp. 275 — 277.
SIERRA-LEONE. 179
convenience for repairing of vessels, or for the construction of
docks. It is, moreover, well supplied with excellent water,
which may be procured in any quantity with great facility. It
has, however, one drawback, — the want of an inland naviga-
tion ; the Sierra-Leone river, and those contiguous to it, being
comparatively of small magnitude. With this exception, the
situation seems admirably adapted for all the purposes its bene-
volent friends contemplated; and it may be justly questioned
whether a more eligible site could have been selected on the
whole coast south of the Senegal.
The reader will bear in mind that the preceding account of
Free-Town with its " wooden buildings " refers to the year
1796, only two years after its almost entire destruction by the
French squadron, which sufficiently accounts for the want of
stone edifices. Soon after this the town began again rapidly to
rise : but as we have already traced its history up to 1807, we
pass on to that and subsequent periods.
The African Institution was formed at that memorable epoch
when, by parliamentary enactments, the African Slave-Trade
ceased to be the crime and the reproach of Britain ; and it was
principally composed of persons who had distinguished them-
selves by their indefatigable exertions to procure the abolition
of that abominable traffic. Its objects were, to watch over the
execution of this Act of the legislature for the protection of the
natives of Africa ; to seize every favourable opportunity for
exciting in surrounding nations a proper interest in the subject ;
and to promote, by every means in its power, the diffusion of
light and knowledge in regions which had hitherto been kept in
darkness and ignorance by the operation of a system disgraceful
to the Christian name, and derogatory to the character of civil-
ized man. It was proposed to make the natives acquainted
with the comforts of social order, and with the useful mechanical
arts ; to point out the manner in which they might avail them-
selves of the natural products of their country, by substituting an
innocent for a guilty traffic ; and, above all, to prepare the way
for that greatest of blessings, a knowledge of the Christian
religion.
Such being the great objects with which the Institution set
out, Sierra-Leone very naturally and immediately fell under its
fostering care ; and the African Institution ever after watched
over that colony with a paternal solicitude.
The first of a series of resolutions which were adopted at the
formation of the Institution, on the 14th of April, 1807, will be
sufficient to show the benevolent intentions of the fouudei's
N 2
180
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
of that society with regard to Sierra-Leone: — "1. That this
meeting is deeply impressed with a sense of the enormous
wrongs which the natives of Africa have suflfered in their inter-
course with Europe ; and, from a desire to repair those wrongs,
as well as from general feelings of benevolence, is anxious to
adopt such measures as are best calculated to promote their
civilisation and happiness." The first measure adopted by the
Committee of the Institution was to open a correspondence with
such persons in Africa as were likely to be useful in promoting
the Society ^s views. They accordingly communicated with
gentlemen in different parts of the coast ; but to the governor
of Sierra-Leone they wrote more at large, as Sierra-Leone
appeared to them the place where their efforts for the improve-
ment of Africa might most advantageously commence. And
though they had explicitly stated in the " Rules and Regula-
tions," that it was- the Society's fixed determination not to
undertake any religious missions, nor to engage in commercial
speculations ; yet they were disposed to assist in the diffusion
of light and knowledge ; and they requested full information
respecting the natural productions of the country, its agri-
cultural and commercial facilities, and the moral, intellectual,
and political condition of its inhabitants. They further pro-
posed to appropriate a part of the Society's funds in the erection
and support of a school at Sierra-Leone, in which, in addition
to the usual branches of elementary knowledge, such as reading
and writing, they should furnish instruction in agriculture and
other useful arts. But as the great object of the Institution
was to watch over the execution of the Act of the legislature for
the protection of the natives of Africa, they directed the atten-
tion of the governor of Sierra-Leone especially to this subject.
One of the principal difficulties against which the Sierra-
Leone Company had had to contend, Avas the accursed Slave-
Trade. It had almost depopulated the neighbourhood of Sierra-
Leone, and English Slave-Traders were permitted to the last to
frequent that locality, and to trade even in the river itself. But
no sooner had the Act passed prohibiting the subjects of Britain
from engaging in that detestable traffic, and empowering the
Admiralty to treat all such as pirates, than the eyes of the
native chiefs were fully opened as to the real object and forma-
tion of the colony. Previously to this the Africans might well
conceive, as they generalh^ did, that a white man or trader
visiting the coast could have no other design in courting his
acquaintance than to make a slave of him : but now that the
British cruisers were employed in capturing slave-ships, and
SIERRA-LEONE.
181
actual!}^ brought them to Sierra-Leone with the hving cargo on
board, when the chains of the slaves were immediately knocked
off, and meat, drink, and clothing given to them ; now, when
the natives beheld hundreds of their fellow-countrymen rescued
from the horrors of the slave-ship and from slavery itself, and
enjoying the liberty of British subjects ; they had living, unmis-
takeable proofs of the good faith and genuine philanthropy of the
English ; and notwithstanding " the enormous wrongs " which
the Africans had suffered in their intercourse with European
nations, and with Great Britain amongst the rest, they were
now fully convinced that there were Englishmen who abhorred
the Slave-Trade, and who, far from kidnapping the merchant or
labourer who should put himself in their power, v»'ere desirous
of nothing but his improvement and happiness.*
The first slave-ship that was captured and condemned at
Sierra-Leone, as far as I have been able to ascertain, was the
schooner " Marie Paul.^^ The seizure took place on November
10th, 1808. The number of slaves is not specified in the
Eeturns ; but they were all liberated, and the ship and cargo
were condemned ; and against this there was " no appeal."
During the same month, two other slavers were captured and
condemned at the same place; and again there was "no
appeal." f
On the slave-ship being taken into Sierra-Leone, the unhappy
captives were set on shore : such as seemed fit for military
service were conveyed to the barracks ; others were apprenticed
to the settlers, or those who wished to engage them ; and the
rest were employed for a given time under the direction of the
* To show, however, that some of the natives were a Uttle sceptical upon the
subject, still doubting the fact of this friendly feeUng on the part of all the vessels
which came even from England, I extract the following anecdote from the
"Meniou-s of Granville Sharp." The biographer received it fi-oni a respectable
nobleman, the eariy part of whose hfe was passed in His late Majesty's service in
the nav}' ; and he gives it in that nobleman's own words, as follows :—
" The late Admu-al Matthew Buckle commanded a small squadi-on on the coast
of Africa, and had a broad pendant on board the ' Assistance,' of fifty guns. One
day, while at anchor on the coast, a Negro came oif with his canoe, loaded with
fruits, and all that he had that was valuable. The commodore being on the
quarter-deck, the Negro accosted him with, ' What ship this ? ' The other replied,
in the jargon of the country, ' King George ship, man-of-war ship.' The Negro
replied, doubting, ' No, you Bristol ship.' The commodore repeated what he had
said ; but the Negro felt his fears increase, and, exclaiming, ' Dom your heart, you
Bristol ship,' leaped overboard, leaving his canoe to its fate I need scarcely
add," said the nan-ator, " that tlie canoe was humanely towed on shore, where the
owner was most Ukely to tind it."
t " Eighth Report of the African Institution," p. 69.
182 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
local government, to inure them to habits of industry^ and to
teach them the arts of civilized life ; after which they obtained
assignments of ground, by the cultivation of which they might
earn their own subsistence. It was soon proved to a demonstra-
tion that the free Negroes are capable of being governed by mild
laws, and require neither whips nor chains to enforce their sub-
mission to civil authority. From these importations, and other
causes, the population rapidly increased. In 1811, Sierra-
Leone and its environs contained not less than 4,000 persons ;
and in 1815, the census included 10,000 souls.
The preceding mode of disposing of the captured Negroes
was appointed by an Order in Council of the parent Govern-
ment, under the provisions of the Abolition Act : and in the
official Return communicated to the Secretary of State, it
appears that, up to July 9th, 1814, Negroes to the following
amount were received into the colony of Sierra-Leone, and
disposed of in the ways here stated : —
Settled in the colony, namely, as free labourers, carpenters,
sawyers, masons, blacksmiths, &c. ; living in the mountains
on their farms ; the girls at school ; the women married in
the Royal African Corps, &c 2,757
Entered into His Majesty's land service, men and boys 1,861
AVomen married to soldiers at the recruiting depot 65
Left the colony, being chiefly natives of the surrounding Tim-
mannee, Mandingo, Bidlom, and Loosoo countries 419
Apprentices whose indentm-es are in force at the present time ... 347
Entered into His Majesty's navy 107
Apprenticed out of the colony 68
Living as servants at Goree 12
At the Lancasterian school in England 3
Stolen from the colony ; two to the Havannah, and one to the
Kroo country 3
Died, chiefly of the scurs'v and di'opsy, caught on board 283
Total 5,925*
Letters received from Sierra-Leone, dated February, 1816,
give a favourable account of the progress of the colony. The
conduct of the settlers is said to differ very little from that of
the generality of Enghsh villagers. They are chiefly engaged
in trading speculations. The captured Negroes, on the other
hand, subsist solely by agriculture : Sierra-Leone is supplied
with fruit and vegetables almost exclusively from their planta-
tions. Many intermarriages between the Nova-Scotian and
Maroon settlers had taken place, which, it was thought, would
* " Ninth Report of the African Institution," p. 63.
SIERRA-LEONE. 183
result in the improvement of both. All the settlers are now
married in the manner prescribed by the church; and the
institution of marriage gains ground even among the captured
Negroes.
In the Eleventh Keport of the African Institution, there is an
interesting communication from Dr. Hogan, the Chief Justice
of Sierra-Leone, dated October, 1816, in which he makes the
following judicious remarks : —
I have always thought, that in the infancy of such a settlement, the certainty of
its striking a deep root was tlie most important point, and ought to be the main
consideration. The little vicissitudes of occasional blight or partial bloom, if they
do not materially affect the vitality of the trunk, are scarcely ever worthy of the
attention of a statesman, who wishes to legislate for a lengthened series of genera-
tions, and to provide for the interests of a remote posterity. I compassionate the
weakness, therefore, that can dwell with emphasis upon the minute fractions of
good or of evil which may have resulted from any particular system of measures at
such a period of prematurity. For my own part, I am perfectly satisfied to find a
solid foundation of British pre-eminence, and of African civilization, laid here
within the short space of one quarter of a century. A population of ten thousand
free men collected upon one spot so favourably situated, and guided and governed
with a view to such noble and ennobling objects, forms too grand a stride in the
moral march of human affairs, not to fix the attention of an enlightened observer,
and cast into the shade every lesser consideration. Wlien it is remembered besides,
that the numbers now actually in a coiu-se of intellectual cultivation in the various
schools and ' public institutions in this colony exceed one thousand, you wiU do
justice to the feeling that leads me to the indulgence of prospective, rather than of
retrospective, views, to a calm and encouraging anticipation of the future, in pre-
ference to a captious discussion of the past ; to a settled, firm, and immovable con-
viction, that the good or the e\'il management of former times can have no other
effect, in the revival of contentious questions respecting it, than to create chsunion
between the otherwise concurrent advocates of the common cause. I take this
colony, therefoi-e, as it is ; and, looking steadily to the great objects which it was
from its first settlement intended to promote, am well content.
There is, no doubt, much, very much, to deplore, on the score of reUgion, on the
score of morals, on the score of manners, or of the social tact, as derived from both
religion and morals ; on the score of depraved, biit inveterate, habits, and of hnger-
ing barbarism, and tardy improvement : yet I distinctly perceive all the principal
elements of social order and effectual civilization in existence and vigour, requiring
only the care of a skilfid hand to mould them into form, and to collect from them,
in that state, the early fruits of a successful and rapid cultivation.
In the " Sierra-Leone Gazette" of January 3d, 1818, it is
stated, " This day ten years this colony was transferred from
the Sierra-Leone Company to His Majesty's Government ; and
by a return published in the then ' Gazette,^ the total number
of births in the year 1807 were fifty-seven ; deaths, thirty-six ;
and marriages, fourteen. We hope to be enabled to give in our
next the return for the year 1817: and as an evident proof of
the better state of morality in the colony, Ave are bold to say.
184 WESTEEN COAST OF AFRICA.
the marriages frequently exceed in one week the number of one
year at that time/'
An extract of a letter from His Excellency the Governor of
Sierra-Leone, Sir Charles Macarthy, dated !March 6th, 1818,
will throw further light on the gradually-improving state of
the colony : — ^' I shall avail myself of au early opportunity to
forward the return of the schools. The number of scholars of
both sexes in the country towns has increased ; and the grand
total of men, women, boys, and girls, now attending schools on
the peninsula, does not fall short of two thousand. The inha-
bitants of the colony have so very frequently experienced the
interest the friends of Africa take in their prosperity, that I
feel it a most pleasing part of my duty to be enabled to prove,
by incontrovertible documents, the very great improvement in
the commercial importance of this colony. The enclosed returns
prove that during the year 1817 the amount of merchandise
imported into the colony exceeds that of the year 1816 by
^39,286; and the number of vessels, fourteen." *
The exports also were rapidly increasing, particularly in the
articles of timber and rice : and the arrival of condemned slavers,
with their living cargoes, continued to swell the population.
According to the Parliamentary Returns at this time, it appears
that the number of slave-ships captured and condemned at
Sierra- Leone, from 1808 to 1819, was seventy-three, and that
11,280 slaves were rescued from these floating dungeons, and
entitled to the privileges of British subjects. During this
period, several villages were formed throughout the peninsula :
— that of Leicester, in 1809; Regent, in 1812; Gloucester, in
1816; Leopold and Kissey, in 1817; Charlotte and Bathurst,
in 1818; Kent, York, Wellington, and Waterloo, in 1819.
These villages are generally situate in different parts of the
mountains, but all connected by good roads with each other
and with Free-Town, the capital, from which they are distant
from three to seven miles ; excepting York and Kent, which are
sixteen miles from Free-Town, and are situate in what is called
the sea-district.
About this time, the colony was divided into parishes, accord-
ing to a plan formed by Governor Macarthy ; and it was the
intention of the Church Missionary Society to provide an
efficient minister for each ; but the sickness and mortality which
prevailed reduced their number of labourers so rapidly, that
this design w^as not accomplished.
* "Twelfth Report of the African Institution," p. Ul.
SIERRA-LEONE. 185
In 1820, tlie population of Sierra-Leone was 12,521 ; and
the progress made in civilizing those unfortunate persons who
had been rescued from Slavery and all its horrors, was matter of
admiration to all who had the opportunity of witnessing it.
Major Gray, who visited Sierra-Leone in 1821, thus speaks of
the colony and of its capabilities in respect of cultivation : —
His Excellency Sir Charles Macarthy, who had just amved from England, was
then about visiting some of the Uberated Negro establishments in the country towns,
accomjianied by all the civil and miUtary staff of the colony. I felt too much con-
cern in the welfare of those truly interesting objects not to make one of the party,
and therefore had an opportunity of witnessing the wonderful improvement that
had taken place in every town since I had before seen them. Indeed, some, hav-
ing all the appearance and regularity of the neatest village in England, with church,
school, and commodious residences for the missionaries and teachers, had not in
1817 been more than thought of. Descending some of the hills, I was surprised
on perceiving neat and well laid-out villages in places where, but four years before,
nothing was to be seen except almost impenetrable thickets. But, arriving in
those villages, the beauty and interesting nature of such objects were much enhanced
by the clean, orderly, and respectable appearance of the cottages and their inhabit-
ants, particularly the young people and chikh-en, who, at all the towns, assembled
to welcome with rejieated cheers the return of their governor and daddy, (" father,")
as they invariably styled His Excellency, who expressed himself highly pleased at
their improvement during his absence ; in which short period large pieces of ground
had been cleared and cultivated in the vicinity of all the towns, and every produc-
tion of the cUmate raised in sutHcient abundance to supply the inhabitants, and
furnish the market at Free-Town.
His Excellency visited the schools at the different towns, and witnessed the im-
provement which all the students had made, but particidarly those of the high-school
atRegent's-Town, whose progress in arithmetic, geography, and history evinced a capa-
city far superior to that which is in general attributed to the Negro, and proves that
they may be rendered useful members of society, particularly so in exploring the
interior of the country, having previously received the education calculated to that
peculiar semce.
From the change wliich has taken place in those villages since I saw them in
1817, I am satisfied that a little time is alone necessary to enable the colony of
Sierra-Leone to vie with many of the West-India islands in all the productions of
tropical climates, but particularly in coffee, wliich has been already raised there,
and proved, by its being in demand in the Enghsh market, to be of as good quality,
if not superior to that imported from our other colonies. That the soil on the
mountains is well adapted to the growth of that valuable berry, has been too well
proved by the flourishing state of some of the plantations in the immediate vicinity
of Free-Town, to need any comment. Arrow-root has also been cultivated with
advantage on some of the farms belonging to private individuals ; and there can be
no doubt of the capability of the soil to produce the sugar-cane, as some is already
grown there ; but whether it is of as good a description as that of the West Indies,
I cannot pretend to say, as the experiment had never been tried at Sierra-Leone, at
least to my knowledge. The cultivation of all these, with the cotton, indigo, and
ginger, could here be carried on under advantages which our West-India islands do
not enjoy ; namely, the labom' of free people, who would relieve the mother country
from the apprehensions which ai'e at present entertained for the safety of pro-
186 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
perty in some of these islands, liy revolt and insurrection among the slaves, and
from the deplorable consequences of such a state of civil confusion. These people
would, by receiving the benefits arising from their industry, be excited to exertions
that must prove beneficial to all concerned in the trade, and conducive to the
prosperity of the colony itself.
Free-Town, the capital of the peninsula, is of considerable extent, and is beauti-
fully situate on an inclined plane, at the foot of some hills, on which stand the fort
and other public buildings that overlook it and the roads; whence there is a
delightful prospect of the town, rising in the form of an amphitheatre from the
water's edge, above which it is elevated aljout seventy feet. It is regularly laid out
into fine streets, intersected by others parallel with the river and at right angles.
The houses which, a few years since, were for the most part bviilt of timber, many
of them of the worst description, and thatched v\'ith leaves or grass, are now
replaced by commodious and substantial stone buildings, which both contribute to
the health and comfort of the inhabitants, and add to the beauty of the place ; which
is rendered peculiarly picturesque by the number of cocoa-nut, orange, lime, and
banana trees, scattered over the whole town, and affording, in addition to the pine-
apple and youava, that grow wild in the woods, an abundant supply of fruit. The
Madeira and Teneriffe vines floiu"ish uncommonly well in the gardens of some pri-
vate individuals, and yield in the season a large crop of grapes. Nearly all our
garden vegetables are raised there ; and what with yams, cassada, and pompions,
there is seldom any want of one or other of those agreeable and almost necessary
requisites for the table. There are good meat, poultn', and fish-markets ; and almost
every article of house-keeping can be procured at the shops of the British merchants.*
But notwithstanding the frequent re-captures made by our
gallant officers and crews of those unfortunate beings who had
been torn away from their native land^ the Slave-Trade con-
tinued. The very fact of those captures was proof of this.
Information was received fi'om time to time of the horrid crimes
perpetrated in Africa, and on the high seas, by miscreants who
made it their business to buy and sell their fellow-creatures,
and of the alarming increase of this abominable traffic, espe-
cially under the flags of France, Spain, Portugal, and the
Netherlands. In the months of February, March, and April of
the year 1822, eleven slavers were taken to Sierra-Leone by His
Majesty^s cruisers, with nearly fifteen hundred slaves on board.
Three of these vessels were under French colours, three under
Spanish, and five under Portuguese. In the months of July
and August of the preceding year. His Majesty's ship, " Myr-
midon," cruised in the Bight of Biafra ; and in the course of a
fcAv weeks sixteen slave-vessels were boarded and examined by
her, but of this number only one came within the provisions of
the public conventions. This was the schooner " Adelaide," a
Portuguese. She was taken to Sierra-Leone, and condemned
in the Mixed Court. About the same time six slavers were
* Major William Gray's " Travels in ^Yestel•n Africa," pp. 332 — 336.
SIEKRA-LEONE.
18;
boarded at Wliydali and Badagry : but as they had no slaves on
board, the vessels could not be taken.
In the Reports of the African Institution for the years 1821,
1823, and 1823, and in other public documents, we find the state
of Sierra-Leone described as progressing favourably, both in a
commercial and in a moral point of view. There was a growing
intercourse of the colony with the interior, almost to the banks
of the Niger. Caravans of native merchants brought their gold,
ivory, and other articles from Foota, Jallon, and places beyond it,
which they bartered in the colony for British merchandise ; and
merchants of Sierra-Leone had occasionally received from £500
to .€1,000 worth of gold in a single day, in exchange for their
goods. In other respects, also, the colony was evidently improv-
ing. Crime had diminished, cultivation had extended, substan-
tial erections had multiphed, churches were either built or in
the course of being built in every village, education had been
more widely diff'used, and the influence of Christianity more
generally prevailed among the inhabitants. A few extracts
from published letters of unquestionable authority will serve to
illustrate these assertions.
The excellent governor. Sir Charles Macarthy, in a letter
addressed to Earl Bathurst, dated " Sierra-Leone, January 14th,
1822," observes :—
I have the honour of availing myself of the return to England of a merchant
brig (the " Bedford ") with African timber, to report my arrival here on the 28th
of November last ; and I have great pleasure in stating, that I found the European
inhabitants and others very healthy, after experiencing what is termed rather a
severe season, particularly upon new comers. I have employed as great a propor-
tion of my time as I could spare from my other duties in visiting the towns and
villages on the peninsula, inhabited by liberated Negroes, and discharged soldiers
from the 2d and 4th West-India Kegiments, and the Royal African Corps : and it
affords me the highest gratification to say, that I have found these people happy,
contented, and industrious ; more particidarly the former class, (liberated Africans,)
who at diiferent periods were landed here from the holds of slave-ships ; and under
the zealous care of the chief superintendent, Mr. Retfel, and of the superintendents
I appointed from tlie Church Missionary Society, have, during my absence, con-
tinued improving in religion, morals, and agricidture.*
The following remarks on the state of Free-Town are from
the " Sierra-Leone Gazette " in 1822 :—
We have not resided a long time on this coast oiu-selves, yet we can remember
when the inhabitants of Free-Town comprised the whole popvdation of the colony,
and when the hills surrounding us seemed to be its boundaries ; when a journey to
the Hogbrook, where Regent's-Town now stands, was deemed a task of consider-
al)le difficulty, and was never attempted unless in large parties. At a more recent
* " Sixteenth Report of the African Inslitution," p. 327.
188
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
date, the erection of a stone house, such as we now see on almost every lot, was
only attempted by the Government ; the great majority of the inhabitants residing;
in miserable hovels, their manners and customs apparently as rude as their habita-
tions. Such was the picture then afforded to the newly-arrived stranger. His
feelings would, of com'se, be commensurate to the scene before him. What dif-
ferent sensations must now pervade the breast of an incU^^dual coming among us !
On our wharves, the busy stir of commerce meets his ear ; and, in every branch of
society, he finds persons whose manners and intellectual acquirements will bear
comparison with the relative ranks in any part of the world. But it is in our
liberated Afiican towns, that the richest enjoyment awaits the arrival of the philan-
thropist. There he may contemplate with dehght the happy fruits of that system,
the primary feature of which is religious instruction ; and with, and proceeding
from, that instruction, the inculcation of moral and industrious habits, the supe-
rioi'ity of the mountain-roads, the cleanliness and respectable appearance of the
villages : but, above all, the immense forests cleared away, and the soil covered
with the various productions of the climate, fully attest the unremitting industrj" of
these interesting people ; while the buildings erected in the respective villages, solely
by the Negroes themselves, mark their capability and improvement as artificers.
Some of the liberated Africans^ from the cliflferent villages,
now sat as jurors at the Quarter-Sessions in Free-Town, to the
entire satisfaction of those concerned : and a very strong proof
of the moral improvement of the colony was made manifest
during the Sessions of 1822. The Rev. Mr. Johnson, in Sep-
tember of that year, whites thus : " At the Quarter-Sessions,
the Chief Justice observed, when addressing the inquest, that,
ten years ago, when the population of the colony was only four
thousand, there were forty cases on the calendar for trial : and
now that the population was upwards of sixteen thousand, there
were only six cases on the calendar. He congratulated the
magistrates and grand jury on the moral improvement of the
colony. There was not a single case from any of the villages
under the superintendence of a missionary or schoolmaster.
When the Chief Justice found that this was the fact, he dis-
missed us and our constables in a very civil manner, as having
no business to attend at the Quarter- Sessions; and we departed
well pleased," We have, then, in the preceding extracts, the
concurrent testimony of His Excellency the Governor, the Chief
Justice, the editor of the " Sierra-Leone Gazette," and others,
all bearing witness to the same fact,~the moral improvement of
Sierra-Leone.
The mortality at Sierra-Leone during the year 1823 was
unusually great, owing to the yellow fever, or black vomit, which
prevailed on the coast : and this was previous to the setting in
of the rains, or what is termed "the sickly season." Not less
than seventy-seven Europeans died between December and the
12th of June. Among these were three medical men, the
SIERRA-LEONE. 189
chaplain^ and three members of the council, including the Chief
Justice. Several other officers of the colony, both civil and
military, as well as missionaries, fell victims to the disease. The
Governor himself was absent at the Gambia and at Cape-Coast,
and did not return till July 11th; when he immediately made
the best arrangements in his power to supply the vacancies
occasioned by disease and death, and resumed that kind and
vigilant attention to all parts of the colony which had so much
endeared him to the various classes of its inhabitants. In a
letter dated Free-Town, September 13th, 18,23, addressed to the
Church Missionar}'^ Society, after giving some explanations
which tended to diminish in some degree the alarming character
of the preceding number of deaths, Sir Charles pleads earnestly
for further aid in his benevolent exertions to benefit the regions
under his care. He observes, " I shall, as long as I have my
health, and His Majesty may require my presence on the coast,
promote, to the utmost of my power, the religious instruction of
this part of his dominions ; and more particularly so, of the
liberated Africans, who, from the forlorn condition in which
they are landed, more peculiarly call for assistance. Here, as
every where, assistance and means are required : otherwise all
must end in unavailing wishes. I shall end this letter by again
expressing my sincere thanks for the aid which I have obtained
from the Society, and leave it to the liberality of your own feel-
ings to be thoroughly convinced that, in regretting the want of
a sufficient number of zealous missionaries, I am thus bearing
the strongest and most positive testimony of the value which
I set upon the labours of those whom I have had.^' * The plea
for more labourers was also earnestly urged by the Rev. M.
Nylander, one of the surviving clergymen, who says, "Africa
now stretches forth both her arms to the Society, praying,
' Come over, and help us ! Send us help, or we perish for lack of
knowledge \' "
The year 1824 commenced with a great loss to the colony in
the lamented death of the Avorthy governor. Sir C. Macarthy.
He was killed in a battle against an overwhelming force of the
Ashantees, fought on the Gold-Coast, and under the greatest
disadvantages. On the 21st of January, Sir Charles was
severely wounded, and taken prisoner, and was immediately put
to death by the enemy. The following official notification of
this melancholy event appealed in the " Sierra-Leone Gazette"
of the 17th of April of the same year : —
• Missionai-y Kegister," January, 1824, pp. 5,
6.
190 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
The members of His Majesty's Council have tlae melancholy duty of announcing
to the civil and miUtary officers, and to tlie inhabitants of the colony at large, the
heart-rending and afflicting intelligence of the death of His Excellency Brigadier-
General Sir Charles Macarthy, their revered Governor and Commander-in-Chief, who
was killed in an action ^dth the Ashantees on the 21st of Januarj' last. In making
this communication known to the pubHc, the council are aware of their inabiUty to
do that justice to their own feehngs, and those of their fellow-colonists, (who have
for so many years enjoyed the benefit of His Excellency's paternal care and govern-
ment,) which such a distressing calamity would call forth. His Excellency's
administration of the government of this colony, during the most arduous and
important period of its establishment, has been marked throughout by the distin-
guished approbation of his beloved sovereign ; and is visible in the increased and
increasing welfare and prosperity of its inhabitants. Under his auspices, it has
arisen to a state of importance and respectabihty, which places it among the most
improving of His Majesty's colonial possessions ; and has eminently proved the
wisdom of His Excellency's measures.
The unwearied attention which he devoted to his government, and the fostering
care which he extended to those placed under his command, have so sensibly
endeared him to every class of the inhabitants of this colony, that time alone can
soften their grief or mitigate their sorrows. It may, indeed, be truly said, that, in
him, his country has lost a brave and highly-talented officer; while Africa and
Afric's sons are doomed to momn the death of one who has ever shown himself
their warmest friend and benefactor.*
It appears that out of eleven officers of the Regulars and
Militia who belonged to His Excellency's division, in the above
engagement, seven were killed. One of these Avas the Honour-
able T, S. Buckle, a member of the council; and another Avas
J. W. Wetherall, Esq., private secretary to the governor, who
fell gallantly fighting by the side of His Excellency in the same
action.
Major- General Charles Turner succeeded the lamented Sir C.
Macarthy, as Captain-General and Governor-in-Chief of the
colony of Sierra-Leone and its dependencies ; and as the result
of his energetic administration and indefatigable exertions, it
was stated that never at any period, since the first establishment
of the colony, was the prospect so bright and cheering. But
he soon fell a victim to the combined influence of the climate,
and of excessive personal exertions in prosecuting his plans of
African improvement. He died in the cause of justice and
humanity at six o'clock in the morning of the 7th of March,
1826; soon after which a gazette extraordinarj'^ was issued by
the council, announcing the painful intelligence to the public.
The reforms proposed by that able and zealous functionary
were resumed and carried forward by his successor. Sir Neil
Campbell, powerfully seconded by Lieutenant-Colonel Denham.
* " Missionary Register," June, 162 5, {). 276.
SIERRA-LEONE. 191
But in addition to the annual sickly season^ which generally-
carried off several Europeans, particularly new comers, the coast
was again visited in 1829 with an epidemic, similar to that of
1823, which greatly reduced the number of the Europeans at
Sierra-Leone, not sparing even the oldest settlers. From Feb-
ruary, 1825, to 1832, four governors — General Turner, Sir Neil
Campbell, Colonel Denham, the distinguished traveller, and
Colonel Lumley — sank under the pressure of the climate ; and
Major Eicketts was obliged to return to England on account
of ill health.
These circumstances, in connexion with the heavy expendi-
ture incurred, had often led to the consideration whether Sierra-
Leone ought not to be entirely relinquished. In 1825 a Com-
mission of Inquiry into the State of Sierra-Leone and its
Dependencies was appointed by Government; and the atten-
tion of the pubUc was at that time more than usually turned to
that quarter. This colony, in common with all similar estab-
lishments, has, indeed, had to struggle with dangers and diffi-
culties from its very commencement ; and, from peculiar cir-
cumstances, it has not only had more than its full share of
natural obstacles to contend against, but it has had to encoun-
ter, throughout the whole course of its existence, a bitter and
unsparing hostility, ever aiming to bring into discredit the
humane and liberal principles which gave it birth.
Had the colony of SieiTa-Leone been founded \yith a view to commercial advan-
tages merely, it would probably have been permitted to proceed with as little oppo-
sition as any other of om' foreign establishments ; but, imfortunately for its tranquil
progress, the founders of it professed to have higher purposes in prospect. They
professed to hate the Slave-Trade and Slavery. They professed to believe, that the
oppressed and degraded African was a human being, a member of the same great
family with themselves, and a fellow-heir of the same blessings of redemption.
They professed to beUeve that he was capable of being elevated from the brutal
conflition to which he had been reduced, and of exhibiting to the world the same
mental and moral endowments which were to be found in his enslavers. And they
not only professed to beUeve all these otfensive doctrines, but they had the courage,
in the face of slander and contumely, to attempt to act upon them. They aimed,
both by exertions and by sacrifices, to promote the civilization and moral improve-
ment of the African race.
Such an attempt to counteract the evils of the Slave-Trade, and to repair, in
any measure, the disastrous effects it had produced on the character and well-being
of this unfortunate part of our species, we might have hoped, would, at least, have
been treated with indulgence, if not with respect, however unfortunate may have
been its issue. So far from it, it appears to have been this very circumstance of its
philantliropic motive which has served to embitter hostility, to sharpen every arrow
of detraction, and to give increased weight to every maUgnant suggestion, and to
every false representation respecting this colony. And even at this moment, after
so many sinister predictions of its enemies have been falsified ; after it has sur-
192 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
mouuted its early dangers and difficulties, aggravated by a bitterness of enmity
peculiar to itself; after it has gone on for years, notwithstanding very great mis-
management, increasing in prosperity, while not a slave breathes on its soil, and
while it has been made the instrument of imparting to thousands of Africans,
raised from the lowest depths of misery and debasement, the blessings of British
freedom, and of Christian light ; — there are still to be found men whose delight
seems to consist in reiterating, with fresh exaggerations, the often-refuted calum-
nies against it, and in labom-ing not only to bring it into discredit with the public,
but to sweep it, if it were possible, from the face of the earth.*
The first part of the Report of the Commissioners of Inquiry
into the State of Sierra-Leone and its Dependencies was printed
in May, 1827, by order of the House of Commons ; and the
second part soon after. These Reports, together with some
other erroneous statements respecting the colony, which ap-
peared about the same time, called forth a work from Mr.
Kenneth Macaulay, entitled, ''The Colony of Sierra-Leone
vindicated;" and the controversy was warm and protracted:
but it would answer no good purpose to go into its details here.
It was considered, that to abandon this colon}" would leave full
scope for the contraband Slave-Trade, and would frustrate all
hopes of establishing a centre whence civilization might here-
after spread throughout Africa. The European troops, however,
were withdrawn, and their places supplied by Negroes, having
European officers ; and the expenditure of the colony was consi-
derably reduced ; so much, indeed, that, for the five years end-
ing 1824, the expenditure was ^75,000 per annum, and for the
succeeding five years it was diminished to nearly half that
sum, or to .€40,000, of which about .€17,000 was for liberated
Africans.
In 1833, the population of Sierra-Leone was 29,764; and in
two years afterwards it amounted to 35,000 ; of whom about 200
were Europeans, consisting of civil and military officers, mer-
chants, traders, chaplains, missionaries, and schoolmasters.
The number of vessels with merchandise which entered Sierra-
Leone in 1833 was sixty-three : of these, two were foreign ves-
sels, eleven were from British colonies, and the other fifty were
from Great Britain. The amount of exports Avas €57,164; the
greater part of which was received in Britain, and consisted
principally of timber, corn, wood, palm-oil, ivory, rice, hides,
copal-gum, ginger, arrow-root, coftee, &c. ; there being very
little gold exported that year.f
The population, in 1838, was about 40,000 ; and, owing chiefly
* " Anti-Slavery Reporter," vol. iii. pp. 157, 158. (April, 1830.)
t See Martin's " British Colonies," vol. iv. j)p. G03, 604.
SIERRA-LEONE. 193
to tiie great number of slavers that were captured about this
time and subsequently, Free-Town itself, in 1846, contained
15,000 inhabitants; and the colony, embracing a circuit of
thirty miles, numbered not less than 50,000 souls.
In order to form a correct estimate of the moral condition of
Sierra-Leone, and of what has been there effected, we ought, in
all fairness, to look at the character of its inhabitants, as they
have from time to time been introduced into the colony. With-
out treading over the same ground again, this may be done in
few words. The oldest residents, it will be recollected, are
black and coloured Nova-Scotians, Avho emigrated thither up-
wards of fifty years ago. The appellation of "settlers" is
applied to this part of the community ; and much has been said
for and against them. Great blame has also been attached to
the Sierra-Leone Company, for not adhering to its original pro-
mise, in granting to them such quantities of land as they had
stipulated for ; and it cannot be denied that there was a breach
of faith on the part of the Sierra-Leone Company in this parti-
cular, though perhaps it was unavoidable. But the Nova-
Scotians were so disappointed and disgusted, when they found
that only one-fifth of the land promised could be granted to
them, that they began to entertain a feeling of distrust towards
the Company, and to show a want of due respect towards its
resident agents. This was the first grievance ; and the evil
efi'ects of this disappointment may be traced even to this
day.
After the lapse of some seven years, an accession was made
to the colony in point of numbers, but by no means in respect
of moral strength, by the advent of a body of Maroons. The
Maroons had been for many years the only bodj' of free Blacks
in the island of Jamaica, v/here they spent the greater part of
their time in hunting wild beasts in the woods, or in chasing
and ferreting out runaway slaves ; for which latter purpose they
were held in great repute, and were always in preference
resorted to, on such occasions, by slave-owners. At the close
of the Maroon war in that island, they were sent to Nova-
Scotia, and subsequently to Sierra-Leone, where, immediately
on their arrival, arms were put into their hands, and they were
commissioned to use them in reducing the "settlerg" to obe-
dience. By this act they regained favour with the English;
but it was at the expense of an amount of hatred and reproach
from the old colonists which lasted fur many years.
The Abohtion of the Slave-Trade by Great Britain, in 1807,
introduced, in the body of the liberated Africans, a third and
o
194
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
the principal element into the population of the colony; and
the great mass of the inhabitants of Free-Town, and of the rest
of the peninsula, amounting, as Ave have stated, to fifty thou-
sand souls, are re-captured Negroes, not consisting of Blacks of
one nation only, but of many tribes, who were landed there at
different times, in a condition the most degraded, having been
redeemed from the blood-thirsty grasp of Slaver}^, and of those
"men-stealers" who
" Drive a loathsome traffic, gauge and span
And buy the muscles and the hones of man."
The condition of a body of captured slaves, on their arrival at
Sierra-Leone, when just released from these floating, gasping
tombs, or coffin-like prisons, the slave-ships, is the most misera-
ble and wretched that can well be conceived. An eye-witness
of a scene of this description thus writes : —
One fine day in May, the signal-gun told of the approach of a vessel, which the
lookers-out on the signal-hill announced, hy the usual mode of hoisting a coloured
hall to the top of a staff, to be a schooner or brig from the south. A sharp-built
schooner, with crowded canvass, glanced up the estuary Uke lightning. Her nature
was obvious : she was a prize. A painful interest prompted me to visit, as speedily
as possible, this prison-ship. A friend offered the advantage of his company to a
scene which has sometimes so completely overwhelmed a novice, as to render the
support of a friend advantageous.
The Timmannee crew of the official l)oat swiftly shot us along-side. The craft
showed Spanish colours, ami was named La Pantica. We easily leaped on board,
as she lay low in the water. The first hasty glance around caused a sudden sick-
ness and faintness, followed by an indignation more intense than discreet. Before
us, lying in a heap, huddled together at the foot of the foremast, on the bare and
filthy deck, lay several human beings in the last stage of emaciation, — dying. The
ship, fore and aft, was thronged with men, women, and children, all entirely naked,
and disgusting with disease. The stench was nearly insupportable, cleanhness
being impossible. I stepped to the hatchway ; it was secured by iron bars and
cross-bars, and pressed against them were the heads of slaves below. It appeared
that the crowd on deck formed one-third only of the cargo, two-thirds Ijeing
stowed in a sitting posture below, between-decks, — the men forward, the women
aft. Two hundred and seventy-four were at this moment in the little schooner.
When captured, three hundred and fifteen had been found on board : forty had
died during the voyage from Old Calabar, where she had been captured by His
Majesty's ship, " Fair Rosamond ;" and one had drowned himself on arrival, proba-
bly in fear of being "yammed" by the Enghsh I attempted to descend, in
order to see the accommodation. The height between the floor and ceiling was
about twenty-two inches. The agony of the position of the crouching slaves may
be imagined, especially that of the men, whose heads and necks are bent down by
the boarding above them. Once so fixed, relief by motion or change of posture is
unattainal)le. The body frequently stiffens into a premature curve; and in the
streets of Free-Town I have seen liberated slaves in everj' conceivable state of dis-
tortion. One I remember, who trailed along his body, with his back to the
SIERRA-LEONE. 195
ground, liy means of liis hands and ankles. Many can never resume Uie upright
posture.*
A communication from Sierra-Leone of more recent date
confirms the preceding horrible picture. It is from the pen of
the Rev. C. S. Frey : — "April 16th, 1845. In going from
Kissey to Free-Town, I met with a scene of misery which made
such an impression on my mind that I shall scarcely forget it.
About four hundred emancipated Africans, old and young, of
both sexes, were proceeding toward Kissey Hospital. They had
just come from the slave-vessel, and were in a most heart-
rending condition. Some, not being able to walk, were car-
ried ; while others supported themselves with sticks, looking,
from the starvation they had endured on board, more like
human skeletons than living beings. I have since been
informed that, within a short time, a hundred of them died.^f
Such are the wretched materials out of which the colony of
Sierra-Leone has been principally constructed : nor does the
preceding description, horrifying as it is, convey an adequate
impression of the disadvantages under which these poor crea-
tures labour. They arrive not only debilitated and diseased in
body, without even a rag to cover them, but desponding and
dejected in mind, wholly ignorant of the English language, and
without power or inclination for exertion. Is it, then, to be
wondered at that, in such circumstances, the faculties of the
soul should be so cramped and benumbed by cruelties inflicted on
the body, as almost involuntarily to suggest to the mind of the
beholder an idea, that the mass of miserable beings before him
are but little elevated above the brute creation ? And yet,
with regard to these wretched beings, what is the fact, as stated
in the preceding pages, and more especially as existing at the
present time ? Why, the change passed upon them is like a
resurrection from the dead ; a translation from chains and dark-
ness to hght and liberty; from a depth of wretchedness of
which those whose eyes have not witnessed it can form no ade-
quate conception, to a state of comparative ease and enjoyment,
of comfort and happiness ; and from barbarism and degradation
the most complete, to civilization and Christian improvement.
In one word, there are scores, nay, hundreds, of those poor
creatures who brought nothing with them into the colony but
their unnerved and tottering limbs, their naked and emaciated
bodies, with their depressed and abject spirits, who are now,
* Kankin's "Visit to Siena-Leone m 1834," vol. ii. pp. 118 — 123.
t " Missionary Register," 1846, p. 151.
o 2
196
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
both in a literal and spiritual sense, " clothed, and in their right
mind;" — thousands of them, who are industrious, intelligent,
and pious, useful members of civil and religious society.
Owing to the frequent accessions of these ignorant and
debased Heathens from the interior, the morals of the people in
some parts of the colony are very low ; but it may with truth be
said, that the majority of emancipated slaves cheerfully submit
to all the ordinary restraints of British law, and that many of
them even take part in the administration of those laws which
yield them protection, and in the maintenance of the peace and
good order of the colony.
It would be interesting, did the limits of this work permit it,
to trace the gradual progress of the liberated Africans from the
depths of misery to which allusion has been made, until we find
them, after a few years, well clad, well housed, quiet, orderly,
respectable members of society, and some of them in independ-
ent circumstances. This pleasing task has, lioweA^er, been in
part ficcomplished by the late Dr. Fergusson, of Sierra-Leone, in
a Letter addressed to Sir T. F. Buxton, in 1839; the substance
of which Sir Fowell has embodied in his stirring work on " The
Slave-Trade and its Pi,emedy." As I have the printed letter
before me, I will avail myself of it to make the following
extracts. It may be here remarked, that Dr. Fergusson, whom
I had the pleasure of knowing personally, was a gentleman of
great intelligence; and, from his intimate knowledge of the
peninsula, acquired during his long residence at Sierra-Leone,
where he was for many years at the head of the medical depart-
ment, and occasionally held the highest official civil office in the
colony, he was well qualified to write upon the subject. Speak-
ing of the liberated Africans as a class, and of the position in
society which they occupied at that time, he observes, —
1. Those raost recently arrived are to be found occupying mud-houses, and small
patches of ground, in the neighbourhood of one or other of the villages : (the vil-
lages are about twenty in number, placed in ditferent parts of the colony, grouped
into three classes or districts ; namely, mountain, river, and sea districts.) The
majority remain in their locations as agriculturists ; but several go to reside in tlie
neighbourhood of Free-Town, looking out for Avork, as labourers, farm-servants,
servants to carry wood and water, grooms, house-seiTants, &c. ; others cultivate
vegetables, rear poultry and pigs, and supply eggs for the Sierra-Leone market.
Great numbers are found offering for sale in the public market, and elsewhere, a
vast quantity of cooked edible substances, — rice, corn, and cassada cakes, heterogene-
ous compounds of rice and corn-flour, yams, cassada, palm-oil, pepper, pieces of
beef, mucilaginous vegetables, &c., &c., under names quite unintelUgible to a
stranger, such as aagedee, ahalla, akalaray, cabona, Sic, &c., cries which are
shouted along the streets of Free-Town from morn till night. These, the lowest
grade of liberated Africans, are a harmless and well-disposed people ; there is no
SIEllRA-LEONE. 197
poverty among them, nor begging ; their habits are frugal and industi-ious ; their
anxiety to possess money is remarkable ; but their energies are allowed to run riot
and be wasted, from the want of knowledge requisite to direct them into proper
channels.
2. Persons of a grade higher than those last described are to be found occupying
frame-houses : they drive a petty trade in the market, where they expose for sale
nails, fish-hooks, door-hinges, tape, thread, ribbon, needles, pins, &c. Many of
this grade also look out for the arrival of canoes from the country, laden with
oranges, kolas, sheep, bullocks, fowls, rice, &c., purchase the whole cargo at once at
the water-side, and derive considerable profit from selling such articles by retail, in
the market and over the town. Many of this grade are also occupied in curing and
drying fisli, an article which always sells well in tlie market, and is in great request
by people at a distance from the water-side, and in the interior of the country. A
vast number of this grade are tailors, straw-hat makers, shoemakers, cobblers, black-
smiths, carpenters, masons, &c. Respectable men of this grade meet with ready
mercantile credits, amounting from £20 to £60 ; and the class is very numerous.
3. Persons of a grade higher than that last mentioned are found occupying
frame-houses, reared on a stone foundation of from six to ten feet in height.
These houses are very comfortable ; they are painted outside and in ; have piazzas
in front and rear, and many of them all round ; a considerable sprinkling of maho-
gany furniture of European workmanship is to be found in them ; several books are
to be seen lying about, chiefly of a religious character, and a general air of domestic
comfort pervades the whole, which, perhaps, more than any thing else, bears evi-
dence of the advanced state of intelligence at which they have arrived. This grade
is nearly altogether occupied in shop-keeping, hawking, and other mercantile pur-
suits. At sales of prize goods, public auctions, and every other place affording a
probability of cheap bargains, they are to be seen in great numbers ; where they
club together in numbers of from three to six, seven, or more, to purchase large lots
or unbroken bales ; and the scrupulous honesty with which the subdivision of the
goods is afterwards made, cannot be evidenced more thoroughly than in this, that,
common as such transactions arc, they have never yet been known to have become
the subject of controversy or litigation. The principal streets of Free-Town, as
well as the approaches to the town, are lined on each side by an almost continuous
range of booths and stalls, among which almost every article of merchandise is
offered for sale, and very commonly at a cheaper rate than similar articles are sold
in the shops of the merchants.
Two rates of profit are recognised in the mercantile transactions of the European
merchants ; namely, a wholesale and a retail profit, the former varying from thirty
to fifty per cent., the latter from fifty to one hundred per cent. The working of
the retail trade in the hands of Eurojieans requires a considerable outlay in the
shape of shop-rent, shopkeepers', clerks' wages, &c. The liberated Africans were
not slow in observing nor in seizing on the advantages which their peculiar position
held out for the successful prosecution of the retail trade.
Clubl)ing together, as before observed, and holding ready money in their hands,
the merchants are naturally anxious to execute for them considerable orders, on
such unexceptionable terms of payment ; while, on the other hand, the liberated
Africans, seeing clearly their advantage, insist most pertinaciously on the lowest
possible per-centage of wholesale profit.
Having thus become possessed of the goods at the lowest possible ready-money
rate, their subsequent transactions are not clogged witli the expense of shop-rents,
shopkeepers' and clerks' wages and subsistence, &c., &c., expenses unavoidable to
Europeans. They are therefore enabled at once to undersell the European retail
198
WESTERN COAST OF AFllICA.
luercliants, and to secure a handsome profit to themselves ; a consummation the
more easily attained, aided as it is by the extreme simplicity and abstemiousness of
their mode of living, which contrast so favourably for them with the expensive and
almost necessary luxuries of European hfe. Many of this grade possess large
canoes, with which they trade in the upper parts of the river, along shore, and in
the neighbouring rivers, bringing down rice, palm-oU, camwood, ivory, hides, &c.,
&c., in exchange for British manufactures. They are all in easy circumstances,
readily obtaining mercantile credits from dE60 to £200. Persons of this and the
grade next to be mentioned, evince great anxiety to become possessed of houses
and lots in old Free-Town. These lots are desirable, because of their proximity to
the market-place and the great thoroughfares, and also for the superior advantages
which they afford for the establishment of their darling object, " a retail store."
Property of this description has of late years become much enhanced in value, and
its value is still increasing, solely from the annually-increasing numbers and pros-
perity of this and the next grade. The town-lots originally granted to the Nova-
Scotian settlers and the Maroons are, year after year, being offered for sale by
public auction, and in every case liberated Africans are the purchasers. A striking
instance of their desire to possess property of this description, and of its increasing
value, came under my immediate notice a few months ago.
The gentlemen of the Church Missionary Society having been for some time
looking about in quest of a lot on which to erect a new chapel, a lot suitable
for the purpose was at length offered for sale by public auction ; and at a meeting
of the Society's Local Committee, it was resolved, in order to secure the purchase
of the property in question, to offer as high as £ijO. The clergyman delegated for
this purpose, at my recommendation, resolved, on his own responsibility, to offer, if
necessary, as high as £70 ; but, to the surprise and mortification of us all, the lot
was knocked down at upwards of <£90, and a liberated African was the purchaser.
He stated very kindly, that if he had known the Society were desirous of purchas-
ing the lot, he would not have opposed them ; he nevertheless manifested no desire
of transferring to them the purchase, and even refused an advance of £10 on his
bargain.
4. Persons of the highest grade of liberated Africans occupy comfortable two-
story stone-houses, enclosed all round with spacious piazzas. These houses are
their own property, and are built from the proceeds of their own industry. In
several of them are to be seen mahogany chairs, tables, sofas, and four-post bed-
steads, pier-glasses, floor-cloths, and other articles indicative of domestic comfort
and accumulating wealth.
Persons of this grade, like those last described, are almost wholly engaged in
mercantile pursuits. Their transactions, however, are of greater magnitude and
value, and their business is carried on with an external appearance of respectability
commensurate with their superior pecuniary means : thus, instead of exposing their
wares for sale in booths or stalls by the way-side, they are to be found in neatly-
fitted-up shops, on the ground-floor of their stone dwelling-houses.
Many individual members of this grade have realized very considerable sums of
money, sums which, to a person not cognizant of the fact, would appear to be
incredible. From the studied manner in which individuals conceal their pecuniary
circumstances from the world, it is ditficult to obtain a correct knowledge of the
wealth of the class generally. The devices to which they have recourse in con-
ducting a bargain are often exceedingly ingenious, and to be reputed rich might
materially interfere with their success on such occasions. Thus nothing is more
common than to hear a plea of poverty set up, and most pertinaciously urged, in
extenuation of the terms of a purchase, by persons, whose outward condition, com-
SIERRA-LEONE. 199
fortaljle, well-fimiished houses, and large mercantile credits, indicate any thing but
poverty.
There are circumstances, however, the knowledge of which they cannot conceal,
and which go far to exhibit pretty cleai'ly the actual state of matters ; such as,
Firstly, the facility with which they raise large sums of " cash prompt " at public
auctions. Secondly, the winding-up of the estates of deceased persons. (Peter
Newland, a liberated African, died a short while before I left the colony; and his
estate realized, in houses, merchandise, and cash, upwards of £1,500.) Thu-dly,
the extent of their mercantile credits. I am well acquainted with one individual of
this grade, who is much courted and caressed by every European merchant in the
colony, who has transactions in trade with all of them, and whose name, shortly
before my departure from the colony, stood on the debtor side of the books of one
of the principal merchants to the amount of £1,900, to which sum it had been
reduced from £3,000 during the preceding two months. A highly respectable
female has now, and has had for several years, the Government contract for the
supply of fresh beef to the troops and the naval squadron ; and I have not heard
that on a single occasion there has been cause of complaint for negligence or non-
fulfilment of the terms of contract. Fourthly, many of them, at the present
moment, have their children being educated in England at their own expense.
There is at Sierra-Leone a very fine regiment of colonial mihtia, more than eight-
tenths of which are liberated Africans. The amount of property which they have
acquired is ample guarantee for their loyalty, should tliat ever be called in question.
They turn out with great alacrity and cheerfulness on all occasions for periodical
drill. But perhaps the most interesting point of view in which the liberated
Africans are to be seen, and that which will render their moral condition most
intelligible to those at a distance, is when they sit at the quai-ter-sessions as petty,
grand, and special jurors. They constitute a considerable part of the jury at every
sessions, and I have repeatedly heard the highest legal authority in the colony
express his satisfaction with their decisions.*
Dr. Fergussou remarks^ " It may be objected to some of these
statements, that they are extreme instances of the flourishing
condition of the Hberated Africans. I grant they are so ; but as
I have herein undertaken to give you a faithful summary of
their present condition and status in society, it is right and pro-
per that they should be exhibited to you in all their phases.
They have been already shown to you in the depths of misery
and degradation. Why should the more beautiful and interest-
ing side of the picture be concealed ? " The same gentleman,
in the same letter, further remarks, " Of the liberated Africans,
as a body, it may with great truth be said that there is not a
more quiet, inoff'ensive, contented, good-humoured, and light-
hearted population on the face of the earth." With their reli-
gious spirit he professes not to be intimately acquainted ; but
he observes, " I know that their outward observance of the sab-
bath day is most exemplary. On that day the passion for
* Fergusson's " Letter on the Character of the Liberated Africans at Sierra-
Leone," 1839, pp. 8—13.
200 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
dancing, singing, and other noisy amusements, is altogether
laid aside, and nearly the whole body of the people are to be
found engaged in the services of the sanctuary, at one or other
of the Protestant churches or chapels which abound in the
colony."
The most recent work that has appeared on this interesting
colony, and which touches on the condition of the liberated
Africans, is one published during the last year, and is entitled,
"Letters from Sierra-Leone, by a Lady. Edited by the Hon.
Mrs, Norton." The amiable and intelligent authoress of these
"Letters," in speaking more particularly of the hberated
Africans as domestic servants or in the lower grades of society,
has appropriately headed " Letter XXXI." with the title, " First
hasty Impressions regarding the Natives — Second Considera-
tions," &c. ; and observes : —
However philanthropically disposed you may be towards the Negro on taking up
your residence at SieiTa-Leone, so soon as the first novelty of situation wears off,
the indolence, stupidity, and want of tidiness (to say nothing of graver faults) of
the only ])ersons you have to depend u}'on as domestic sei^vants, throw you into a
sort of actual despair. You teach, persuade, remonstrate, lecture, by tmrns : your
words are listened to with a good-humoured apathy ; but, neither your rhetoric nor
example effecting the slightest improvement, you begin to doubt whether the Negro
be gifted \Tith any good quality or mental capacity whatever, and feel iiTCsistibly
led to include the whole race in a most sweeping kind of condemnation.
" Use lessens marvel," it is said ; and as time wanes by, custom rendering you
less fastidious, trifling physical discomforts become less felt, and you look to the
causes of all this semi-barbarism in a place that has been colonized and under Bri-
tish rule for upwards of half a century ; and, upon duly examining and weighing
these causes, come to a totally opposite conclusion to that you were at first inclined
to adopt ; the disadvantages under which the Blacks emancipated here have
labom-ed, striking you far more than the partial advantages they have enjoyed.
As a people, they have been enslaved and oppressed for upwards of four hun-
dred years ; and even this sohtary consideration tells us, that to form an unbiassed
judgment of the liberated Africans, we must not institute comparisons between
them and the lower classes of our own free England. Brought here in a state of
utter degradation and barbarism, where the language, laws, manners, and customs
are totally new to them, where Eiu-opean society is by far too Umited to aflFord an
example of civilization as it exists at home, and where, excepting the patient, pious,
and indefatigable missionary, there are very few to guide, teach, and instruct the
minds of these ignorant Heathens ; it is surprising to find so many of the hberated
Africans advanced to the degree they are ; more especially as ship-loads of Negroes,
in their rudest condition, constantly arriving here, are the means of keeping up and
perpetuating amongst the others all the prejudices and practices of their own
savage nations.
Nothing can exceed the pains taken in teaching the people by the different mis-
sionaries, among whose ranks mortahty is most avrfully frequent ; but yet their
numbers are not adequate to insure to the tvhole of the vast population here the
benefit of instruction in the thorough manner it must be conveyed, ere we can look
for its fruits in that improvement of mind, heart, and soul which a right knowledge
SlEllRA-LEONE. 201
of our holy religion, in all its truth, purity, simplicity, and beauty, is calculated to
produce. Still, to a certain degree, they have seen their labours rewarded ; and of
their dense and orderly congregations it is to be hoped that the greater part are not
merely Christians in outward profession, but to the utmost extent of their abilities.
Yet many, many of the liberated Africans are savages in every sense of the word,
whilst numerous others, who were either never at school, or else taken away ere
they had made the least progress, apprenticed out in early childhood to the rudest
and most ignorant of their country people, although they have grov^^n up conform-
ing externally to a few of the most striking usages of civilized life, in every other
respect are as barbarous as the lowest slaves in their own country. But when we
read and think of the miserable degradation of mind, the superstitious and honid
practices of the tribes of the interior ; and then look at the quiet, sober, light,
hearted individuals of these very barbarous tribes, whether pursuing their way to
market, going out in their tiny fishing-skitfs, cultivating their little farms, waiting
upon you at table, or in the superior occupations of tradesmen and mechanics, we
perceive that it is not so much intellect the Negro wants, as a wider field for exam-
ple and encouragement from others, to teach him to exercise the sense his Creator
has given him.*
After these testimonies, coupled with many other disin-
terested and important ilhistrations which might be given of the
capabilities of the Negro, it is to be hoped we shall hear no more
of his being a species of the mere animal part of God's creation.
We claim for him a place among ourselves, however low and
base and degraded we know he is, — a true fellow-child of tlie
first Adam, but the redeemed property of the Second. He
belongs to the same family; and we claim him on the ground
that he possesses the faculty of speech, and a mind capable of
cultivation and improvement. We claim him as our brotlier,
because, in thousands of instances, he has listened to the pro-
clamation of the gospel, felt its sanctifying power, has exhibited
in his conduct its lofty principles, and has died triumphantly in
the faith. These are proofs which ought to cause the sceptic to
blush, and make him hasten to bury that petty philosophy
which denies to the Negro the dignity of man : and never let it
rise again till he has succeeded in instructing some monkey
tribe in the rudiments of religion; till he has taught the ouran-
outang " how to live," and " how to die.''
In the preceding pages frequent allusion has been made by
different writers to the labours of " colonial chaplains," to " the
different missionaries" and "schoolmasters," to "religious
instruction," and to " the inculcation of moral and industrious
habits proceeding from that instruction :" and no one, it is pre-
sumed, will attempt to deny, that, but for the use of these
moral means, the colony would never have attained to its pre-
sent state of civilization and respectability. The fair writer
* " Letters from Sierra- Leone. By a Lady," pp. 251 — 253.
202
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
already quoted, in addition to the extract in Avhich she respectfully
mentions the " patient, pious, and indefatigable missionary," &c.,
has very honourably made this subject prominent in the preface
to her work ; where she says : — " And here a tribute is due to
the missionaries for their unwearying zeal for the benefit of the
colony. To them unquestionably is to be mainly ascribed the
state of education and enlightenment attained by the black
population of Sierra-Leone, Avhich is higher than is generally
credited in this country ; and has, especially of late years, —
notwithstanding the continual importations of fresh bar-
barians,— greatly advanced." The gospel, in fact, went out
with the very first settlers, who sailed from England in 1787;
a pious chaplain having accompanied that expedition. And
though he was soon obliged to return on account of ill-
health, the Sierra-Leone Company discovered a laudable zeal to
promote the gospel of Christ, in continuing to supply the settle-
ment with chaplains ; and not only so, but they encouraged
schoolmasters and others who were willing to labour among the
settlers, or to go as missionaries to the natives of the surround-
ing country.
At an early period missionaries, as well as catechists and
schoolmasters, were sent out by the Church Missionary Society;
and they have continued to occupy an important position in the
colony from that time to the present. Between the Church and
Wesleyan missionaries the utmost cordiality appears at all times
to have existed ; nor does the history of the mission furnish a
single example to the contrary. They both regarded themselves
as engaged in one and the same work ; and neither party have
suffered themselves to be drawn aside by smaller differences.
It has been the writer's privilege to be personally acquainted
Avitli several of the Church missionaries ; and, supposing them
to be fair specimens of the whole, he believes that a more pious,
intelligent, faithful, and useful body of Christian missionaries are
not to be found on the face of the globe, than those belonging
to the Church Missionary Society, who have been, or are now,
labouring at Sierra-Leone. But as the object of this work is to
give a brief history of the Wesleyan missions only, with the
best feelings and wishes with regard to other kindred Societies,
we shall proceed, in the next chapter, to execute what is pro-
mised on our title-page.
CHAPTER XI.
WESLEYAN MISSIONS.— SIERRA-LEONE.
(1792-1815.)
Wesleyan Missions commenced by the Rev. John Wesley and Dr. Coke —
America — Origin of the Mission at Sierra-Leone— AppUcations for a Mis-
sionary— Failure of the Foulah Expedition in 1796 — Reflections- The Appoint-
ment of two Missionaries on the proper Plan — Sierra- Leone still without a
Missionary — George Warren appointed by the Conference in 1811 — His
Reception in the Colony — Usefulness — First Death — Biographical Sketch —
The little Flock again without a Missionary — The Appointment of Mr. Davies
in 1814 — State of the Society and Schools — Death of Mrs. Davies — Sketch
of her Character.
The general Wesleyan Missionary Society was not estab-
lished till the year 1817 ; but missions to the Heathen were
commenced and superintended by the late Rev. John Wesley
and Dr. Coke, long before any reports of their successes were
published, or societies organized for their regular support. So
early, indeed, as 1769, at the Wesleyan Conference held in
Leeds, Mr. Wesley asked the question, " Who will go to help
our brethren in America?"* Two of his sons in the gospel
responded to the call, and a collection was then made by the
preachers, amounting to j£50 ; and it reflects great credit on our
fathers and brethren in the ministry that the first collection
ever made in the Wesleyan Connexion towards sending the
gospel abroad was raised among themselves. The origin of the
Wesleyan missions may be dated from this period ; but they did
* In the year 1763, several persons, members of Mr. Wesley's society, emigrated
from England and Ireland, and settled in various parts of America ; and, some few
years after, two local preachers from Ireland began to minister the gospel of Christy
the one at New-York, the other in Frederic county in Maryland, and had the happi-
ness to see their labours accompanied with the divine blessing, many being con-
verted to God, and liy them formed into societies. About this time Mr. Webb, a
lieutenant in the army, preached with great success at New-York and Philadelphia ;
and, with the assistance of his friends, he erected a chapel in the former place, which
was the first belonging to the Methodist society in America. Encouraged by this
success, and by an earnest desire for the salvation of mankind, he wrote to Mr.
Wesley, earnestly importuning him to send missionaries to that continent. It was
the receipt of that request which led Mr. Wesley to ask tlie question in the text.
(See "Missionary Magazine," 1796, p. 65.)
204
WESTERN COAST OF AFllICA.
not fairly commence till the year 1786, when Dr. Coke sailed
with three missionaries bound for Nova-Scotia ; but a succes-
sion of violent gales, and a leak in the vessel, together with a
scarcity of fresh water, compelled the captain to steer for the
island of Antigua ; and thus commenced our important missions
in the West Indies. Other missionaries, in the mean time and
subsequently, were sent to America; and the Methodist Episco-
pal church on that great continent is an offspring of Wesleyan
jNIethodism.
The primary occasion which led to the introduction of
Methodism into the African colony of Sierra-Leone is of an
interesting character. We have, in a preceding chapter, stated
that the generality of the first settlers, and of theNova-Scotians,
who were conveyed to Sierra-Leone in 1792, were, for the most
part, restless and discontented : there were, however, exceptions
to this ; and many of the Blacks from Nova-Scotia had heard
the gospel in America from the missionaries sent out by Mr.
Wesley, and were savingly converted to God. When they
arrived at Sierra-Leone, they carried the savour of divine grace
with them ; and being attached to our doctrine and discipline,
and finding " the constitution of the colony congenial to their
wishes, granting to all liberty to worship God agreeably to the
dictates of their consciences, while those in power encouraged
the practice of every moral virtue, they established the worship
of God among themselves, according to the plan of the Method-
ists ; at the same time earnesth' inviting others to join them.
Two or three, at this time, officiated as local preachers, and a
few others bore the office of class-leaders. As their lives were
exemplar}-, and their preaching regular, their congregations
soon increased, and several others augmented the original num-
ber of the society; and in process of time a preaching-house
was erected, capable of containing four hundred persons." *
In the Minutes of the Conference for 1792 we find, under the
head of, " What numbers are in the societies ? " the answer is,
" Sierra-Leone, coloured people, 223." This is the first official
record of Wesleyan Methodism in connexion with the continent
of Africa which I have discovered ; and this number appears in
the Minutes up to 1796.
Thus earlv, and thus far, did God vouchsafe to bless the
endeavours of this simple-minded people, to promote his glory,
and to benefit each other ; and they were graciously preserved
through succeeding years as lights in a benighted land. Dr.
* Coke's "Narrative of a Mission 1o Sierra-Leone," pp. 18, 19.
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIERRA-LEONE. 205
Coke, by whose direction and energies, principally, the Wes-
leyan missions had been carried on since the death of Mr.
Wesley, took a deep interest in the colony of Sierra-Leone, and
in the welfare of that little band of Christian soldiers who had
thus far nobly stood their ground, strengthening each other's
hands in the Lord. He yearned over sonls, particularly those of
the Heathen. Africa now lay near his heart ; and he longed to do
something to benefit the sable sons of Ham. The doctor says,
" We received many letters from them, beseeching us to send a
missionary to the colony to second their own exertions, and to
instruct them more fully in the way of righteousness." Of
these requests he never lost sight; but being at that time
unable to procure men who were both qualified for the mission,
and willing to undertake the arduous task, and being desirous of
making an attempt "beyond the confines of the colony," he
turned his attention to this in the j'ear 1795. With this vieAv
he gave encouragement and assistance to sundry " mechanics
who were members of our society in England, some of whom
had officiated as local preachers, to accompany Governor
Macaulay to the settlement, in order to form a Christian colony,
and open a friendly intercourse with the natives of the Foulah
country," and to instruct them in domestic arts, inculcate
piety by their example, and occasionally preach the gospel of
Jesus Christ. Being furnished with every thing necessary for
the voyage, and for their subsequent occupations, they sailed
from Portsmouth on February 17th, 1796, and arrived at
Sierra-Leone on March 18th. "It seems, however, that they
had either not rightly understood the engagement, or had not
fully counted the cost ; " as will appear from the following letter
of Mr. Macaulay to Mr. Wilberforce, dated
Free-Town, Jpril I9t/i, 179G.
Mr. Clark * will probably acquaint you with the failure of the Methodist mis-
sion to the Foulah country, and the causes of it. I had resolved to accompany them
to the place of their destination, in order to negotiate a settlement with the king of
the country for them, and to see them completely established. But on the morn-
ing which had been named for our departure, there came a delegation from the
missionaries to say that they could not proceed. It is so far fortunate, that they
have retracted before we set out on our journey, as their receding then might have
displeased the natives, and shut the door against future missions. It seems as if
the field they were to occupy, which is a veiy extensive and important one,
was reserved by Providence for some, who, with more courage, can encounter diffi-
culties and bear their cross, and who will be disposed, with Paul, to count all things
but loss ; nay, not even to count their lives dear for the sake of Christ, f
* The chaplain to the colony. f "Missionary Magazine," 1796, p. 34.
206 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Previous to the embarkation of these individuals, no impro-
priety whatever had been discovered in their behaviour, nothing
that could indicate in the least degree the unhappy result which
finally defeated the undertaking. It appears that they repaired
to the ship in good health, in high spirits, and in a state of per-
fect harmony with one another; but during the voyage they
became extremely discontented, quarrelling among themselves,
and two of them were continually calling each other ill names. On
their arrival at Sierra-Leone, thc}^ behaved in such a manner as
excited the derision and contempt of all who had an opportunity
of observing them. Happily, however, the dissensions which
prevailed among them prevented the evil from being carried
into the country which they intended to visit ; so that, if the
natives of the Foulah country were not to be enlightened by
the gospel at this time, neither were they to be corrupted bj""
their ill example, nor disgusted by their unholy strife. Some
of the women declared they would proceed no further, and
reflected on their husbands for conducting them to a foreign
land ; and the men, after wavering for a season, joined them in
their revolt. Thus the design of a colony was completely aban-
doned, and the unworthy adventurers seized the earliest oppor-
tunity of returning to England, to accuse each other of having
defeated the undertaking, and to endure that shame and
reproach which their misconduct so justly merited. One alone
seems to have been actuated by a proper principle. This man
held fast his integrity, and at the close of a letter from Sierra-
Leone, detailing what occurred on the voyage, he observes : " I
was truly weighed down beyond measure, as I plainly saw that
our design, and that of the subscribers, would be frustrated. ""
Such, indeed, was the case ; but " it is only an act of justice to
the Wesleyan body to state, that though the colonists belonged
to that communion, they were not sent out by the Conference,
but by a Committee in London, consisting of gentlemen of
various denominations.'^ *
Dr. Coke, we know, took an active part in this plan for the
civilization of the Foulah tribes in the neighbourhood of Sierra-
Leone ; but it was " in conjunction with others," as the pre-
ceding extract shows, — " with gentlemen of various denomina-
tions," among whom was Mr. Wilberforce, who, in a letter to
Dr. Coke, observes : '' I cannot help taking up my pen for a
moment, to assure you of the satisfaction it affords me to hear
of your intention to plant a mission in the neighbourhood of
* " Missionary Records," JVestern Africa, p. 65.
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIERRA-LEONE. 207
Sierra- Leone. I shall certainly, among my brother Directors,
recommend and enforce our duty, and the utility of forwarding
the measure in the best way we are able, with propriety, in our
official situations; and I dare say we could procure a large
subscription towards the support of the mission in our individual
capacities. I pray that it may please God to bring this scheme
into accomplishment, and that He may bless your labours with
success." * That eminent statesman and Christian philanthro-
pist, in the same letter, very properly remarked : "I cannot
help adding, that much must depend upon the qualifications
and dispositions of the missionaries, not only for their success
among the natives, (according to the usual proceedings of Divine
Providence,) but also for the funds we might be able to raise
for the general purpose of the establishment." On this subject
there can be but one opinion : not only much, but every thing,
depends upon the character of those who are sent to evangelize
others, in subordination to the agency of the Holy Ghost; and
Dr. Coke, no doubt, was as fully convinced of this as any one :
but he was in this case deceived in the men whom he had
engaged ; and we may charitably hope that the persons by
whom they were recommended were also deceived. The one
who alone appeared to have been actuated by a proper principle,
and whom we have before mentioned, remarks : " I am sorry to
say that most of the persons you chose for the propagation of
the gospel in the Foulah country, in Africa, have manifested to
the world that they are strangers to the power of it themselves.
I thought that their discontent while on board might have. arisen
from their being strangers to ships ; but I soon found that it
arose from an unrenewed heart." It was no wonder, therefore,
that the mission failed. Motives of a higher order than those
which actuate the generality of mankind, or even many of our
great philanthropists, are requisite for a work like this; an
enterprise in which none can successfully engage, but men in
whose hearts a flame has been enkindled, pure, quenchless, and
divine.
Other colonizing schemes of a similar character have been
attempted in the same locality and elsewhere, and have as sig-
nally failed ; but this was the first and only effort of the kind
attempted by Wesleyans, and that not in their official capacity.
This fact will be more fully established by the concluding para-
graph in a " Narrative of the Methodist Missions," contained in
the " Missionary Magazine," published in Edinburgh in 1796,
* Drew's " Life of Dr. Coke," p. 265.
208 -WESTERN COAST OF AFHICA.
from which we have already quoted, and which is ahke charac-
terized by its candour, and its accuracy and veracity in the
perspicuous and concise statement of important facts. The
editor says, "We understand that the mission to the Foulah
country, which is said to have failed, was not properly a Me-
thodist mission, as the families that went out with jMr. ISIacaulay,
with the design to settle on the borders of that country, were
not sent by the Methodist Conference. We therefore insert
this note, lest any of our readers, by attaching the common idea
to the phrase 'Methodist mission,' should be led to conclude,
that these persons must have been missionaries sent out by that
body of people, for the express purpose of preaching to the
Heathen ; whereas, they were neither so sent, nor was their
mission so immediately to preach, as to form a Christian
colony.'' *
Notwithstanding this just and satisfactory explanation of the
matter, and though no real blame could be attached to Dr.
Coke, much less to the Wesleyan Conference, yet both felt that
the honour of Methodism was involved in the failure of the
expedition, inasmuch as the parties sent out were professed
Methodists, and they had been encouraged and assisted in the
enterprise by one of its most distinguished ministers. Dr. Coke
especially felt this, and "his soul was cast down within him;"
indeed, "in consequence of the miscarriage of the Foulah mis-
sion," his biographer speaks of his "heart bleeding at every
pore." But the annual assembly of the Wesleyan ministers
was nigh at hand ; and in the Minutes of Conference for that
year (1796) we find the first appointment of " missionaries for
Africa, namely, "Archibald Murdoch, and William Patten,"
with the following note at the bottom of the page : " Dr. Coke
laid before the Conference an account of the failure of the colony
intended to be established in the Foulah country in Africa;
and, after prayer and mature consideration, the Confei'ence
unanimously judged, that a trial should be made, in that part
of Africa, on the proper missionary plan. The two brethren
above mentioned, having voluntarily offered themselves for this
important work, the Conference solemnly appointed them for it,
and earnestly recommended them and their great undertaking to
the public and private prayers of the INIethodist societ}'." f
Thus one good resulted at once from the evil ; and that was
the immediate appointment of two brethren "on the proper
missionary plan," who were commended to the prayers of the
* " Missionai'y Magazine," p. 69. f " Minutes of Conference," vol. i. p. 335.
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIERRA-LEONE. 209
Methodist society. But it appears that neither of these bre-
thren sailed for Africa; for, in the following year they were
appointed to Ireland, and in 1798 Archibald Murdoch was
sent to Tortola in the West Indies, where he laboured for
several years. I find no farther record on the Minutes as to
the appointment of missionaries for Africa, or as to the number
of members in the society, until 1808; when it is stated,
'' Sierra-Leo7ie, A preacher is to be sent, as soon as the general
superintendent and Committee can find a suitable person." *
Dr. Coke having occasionally to visit the religious societies ou
the continent of America, the superintendence of the missions
devolved upon a Committee appointed in 1804. This Commit-
tee consisted of the preachers resident in London, and of nine
other gentlemen ; and it was during this year that public col-
lections in support of the missions were appointed hj the Con-
ference throughout the Connexion.
We have already stated that among the members of society
who went from Nova -Scotia to Sierra-Leone, two or three offi-
ciated as local preachers ; these brethren, we have also said,
frequently wrote to Dr. Coke and others, beseeching them to
send a missionary. The following letter from one of them,
addressed to Dr. Coke, will be interesting ; it is dated,
Sierra-Leone, Juhj bth, 1806.
Rev. Sir, — I wrote to you more than two years ago ; but I am rather doubtful
wliether you received my letter, as I did not receive any answer thereto. I now
make bold to repeat the contents of that letter ; and inquire whether you could not
send us a pious person, who could assist in preaching to the people, and taking the
charge of our small flock. Dear Sir, you know money will not procure us a minis-
ter ; and if it would, we have none. Therefore, if our brethren in England will not
pity us, and take our case into their serious consideration, none will. Our congre-
gation consists of about forty members, who appear to grow in grace, and in the
knowledge of our blessed Lord. But as I am old, and my assistant, Mr. Gordon, is
likewise advanced in years ; and as there is no prospect of any suitable person being
raised up here, that could attend to the little flock, in case we should be called
hence ; we the more earnestly desire and pray that God may send us a person of
warm zeal, to assist in carrying on his blessed work ; and that our brethren, of
whose household we are, may remember us in this important matter.
Our place of meeting was much decayed, and we have been obliged to build
another, which is now finished ; and the next sabbath-day it will be opened for
Divine service.
MyseK, and all the members of our society, beg to be remembered in your
prayers.
I am, &c.,
Joseph Brown. f
* " Minutes of Conference," vol. iii. p. 17.
t "Methodist Magazine," vol. xxx. pp. 283, 284. (1807.)
P
210 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
No " suitable person " as yet having offered himself for this
interesting field of labour, the little society was continued under
the pastoral care of the two or three local preachers on the spot ;
but tlie great Head of the church was Avith them, and their
numbers increased. In 1808 one of the coloured brethren wrote
to Dr. Adam Clarke, giving an account of a good work which
had commenced among the Maroons, and stating that they had
" begun to subscribe two cents each per week, for the further
promotion of the gospel of Christ.^^ The writer observes : " The
converted Maroons give their love to their reverend fathers and
brethren in Christ Jesus, and hope that their souls are in health
as ours are." The whole number of members in the society at
that time was about one hundred. Still they were left as sheep
without any regularly constituted shepherd. The prejudicial
effects of the climate on European constitutions was the great
and primary cause why this interesting little church was kept so
long without a missionary ; for it was well known that, though
the locality of Sierra-Leone was one of the best on the coast as
to health, it was nevertheless an unhealthy atmosphere; and
therefore the man who went thither must go with his heart full
of the love of God, and with yearning pity for the souls of his
fellow-men, "not counting his life dear unto him;" and the
absence of these qualifications was too well remembered as the
cause of the previous failure, to permit any precipitancy or
indiscretion in the selection of a suitable missionary on the pre-
sent occasion, who should make a trial in that part of Africa
" on the proper missionary plan."
At length a man was found possessing the requisite qualifica-
tions for the undertaking. Whilst travelling in the west of
Eugland in the winter of 1810, Dr. Coke met with Mr. George
Warren, who was at that time an itinerant preacher in the
Helstoue circuit, in Cornwall. Mr. Warren stated that " for a
long season his mind had been deeply impressed with a persua-
sion that it was his duty to visit Africa; that even then he
would prefer that station to any other ; and that he was fully
persuaded these impressions came from God." Accordingly, in
the Minutes of the Conference for 1811, we find George Warren
appointed to Sierra-Leone. Three pious young men from the
Dewsbury circuit also volunteered their services ; and, after
being examined by a Committee of the Leeds District, they
were accepted as assistants or schoolmasters. Their names were
Rayner, Healey, and Hirst : the two former were local preachers.
These brethren, with the Rev. George Warren, sailed from
Liverpool, September 21st, 1811, amidst the prayers and best
WKSLEYAX MISSION'S AT SIERRA-LKONE. 211
wishes of many of the benevolent and pious friends of Liverpool.
Amongst those who " accompanied them unto the ship " was
the venerable Dr. Coke, with the E.ev. Messrs. Entwisle,
Gaulter, and Buckley : the three latter were at that time
stationed in the Liverpool circuit, and all four have long since
been gathered to their fathers. The brig " Traveller," on board
of which these brethren sailed, was commanded by a pious
Quaker, of the name of Paul Cuffee, a free man of colour ; and
the ship was wholly manned by American sailors of the same
description and complexion, all of whom were reported to be
men who feared God.
On the 3d of October they were in 44° N. lat., and 19° 51'
W. long., when they had a narrow and providential escape from
a French privateer. At length they reached the colony in
safet}^ and landed at Sierra-Leone about five o'clock in the
afternoon on the 12th of November. They were kindly received
by the Rev. Mr. Nylander, the chaplain of the colony, as also b}'^
the governor, and other friends, "who showed them no small
kindness." But by none were tliey more cordially welcomed
than by "the little flock" to whom they were sent. One of the
local preachers, whose heart seemed to overflow with joy, after
recovering a little from the transport of his amazement and gra-
titude, exclaimed, with a degree of rapturous pathos which no
art can imitate, " This is what we have been praying for so long,
and now the Lord has answered our prayers ! "
On the 15th of November, 1811, Mr. Warren commenced his
missionary labours, by preaching to a crowded congregation in
the chapel which these pious Blacks had erected some years
before. On the following day he met the stewards and leaders
of the whole society, and was much pleased with their attention
to discipline, which they had carefull}' maintained : the num-
ber of members in the society was also, to his agreeable surprise,
one hundred and ten. The sacrament of the Lord's supper was
now administered by the missionary, which was a fresh cause of
thankfulness ; though it was arranged that it should not be
celebrated at the same time that the ordinance was administered
at the church.
Mr. Warren had not long continued to preach, before he had
the happiness to perceive some fruit to his labour, in the con-
version of sinners to God ; and the chapel, though capable of
accommodating four hundred persons, was soon too small to
hold the congregation. The other brethren were co-workers
with the missionary in a variety of ways, but particularly in the
schools. In a few months death removed Mr. Warren, after
p 2
212 WESTERN COAST OT" AFlil(;A.
a short illness, to liis eternal rest. The sudden removal of
this faithful and laborious missionary was severely felt, not only
by the societ\% but by the inhabitants generally.
George Warren, from a child, knew the holy sci'iptures,
and experienced them to be the power of God unto salvation.
He also began early to make known to mankind the things of
God, an employment in which he never grew weary. He
entered the Wesley an ministry in 1807, and was stationed to
the Cardiff circuit : he subsequently travelled in the Kington,
St. Austle, and Helstone circuits, where he laboured with credit
to himself, and profit to others. It was in the latter place that
Dr. Coke met with him at the close of 1810; and knowing that,
at the time, Africa was without any missionary, and that it was
with extreme difficulty one could be procured, though the neces-
sity for one was so urgent, Mr. Warren nobly offered to go,
being rather encouraged than intimidated by the difficulty
and dangers of the mission. Western Africa had long been
impressed upon his mind ; but, his parents objecting, he had
paused for a time. Mr. Warren then wrote to them, beseech-
ing them, by the blood of souls, not to hinder him from going.
After a desperate struggle, one of them gave consent, and soon
after the mother died : then his way was open, and, with a
glad heart and free, he embarked for Sierra-Leone in Western
Africa. He not only went willingly, but "preferred that sta-
tion to any other;" nor was he disappointed after his arrivrd
in Africa, though very different from an English appointment.
In a letter to Cornwall he wrote : " I bless God I do not at all
regret the sacrifices which I have made ; nor have I ever been
more satisfied in my own mind, with respect to being in the
way of Providence, than I now am." But Infinite Wisdom
saw fit to take him to Himself: his race, therefore, was soon
run. He entered into the joy of his Lord on the 23d of
July, 1812, after a residence of little more than eight months.
Mr. Warren was the first Wesleyan missionary who preached
the gospel in Western Africa, and he was the first that died
there; but he neither lived in vain, nor died in vain ; and, both
by his life and by his death, "he, being dead, yet speaketh."
]\Ir. Rayner, one of the schoolmasters, about this time
returned to Europe, and was sent out in 1813 as a missionary
to the West Indies, where he laboured faithfully for several
years, and died in the v.ork.
xVfter the death of Mr. Warren, a considerable time elapsed
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIERK A-LEON E. 213
before iiuotlier could be procured to fill his place; aud^ during
this iuterim, the prospects of the Httle society were rather
gloomy, in consequence of the derangement which his death
occasioned, and the return to England of Mr. Rayner on
account of ill health. But the other two European school-
masters, though they were "perplexed/' were "not in despair:"
they did all they could to serve laoth the school and the society ;
and God continued to favour them in their little assembhes, as
will be seen from the following extract of a letter from these
two brethren, addressed to the late Rev. Robert Smith, the
secretary to the missionary Committee : —
Sierra-Leone, August 3d, 1813.
In meeting the society, we were mucli delighted to find many of them rejoicing
in the light of God's countenance. We may safely say of them, that their souls
are in a more prosperous state than our fears suggested. Blessed be God, the
glory has not departed from us. We feel him many times in the midst of our
little assemblies, especially in the band-meetings. In these and in the love-feasts,
the Spirit is frequently poured out in such abimdance, that the people are at a loss
how to express themselves ; their joy is indeed unspeakable.
The congregations are in general very good, and our society consists of ninety-
one members, beside four or five whom we consider on trial.
John Healey,
Thomas Hirst.*
It is generally known, by the friends of missions, that, during
the year 1814, the Wesley an connexion and the cause of mis-
sions met with a severe loss in the death of Dr. Coke, while on
his voyage to establish a mission in Asia. In the "annual
Report of the State of the Missions" from " February 1st, 1814,
to February 1st, 1815," printed at the Conference-Office, there
is an address " to the generous subscribers who have contributed
towards the support of the missions," in which there is the fol-
lowing allusion to this event : — " Our missions being supported
by your generous subscriptions and donations, we think it right
to furnish you, annually, with a report of our success, and of
the expenditure of your money. The former Reports were
drawn up by the Rev. Dr. Coke, whose sudden death we deeply
lament; but the task now devolves on the secretaries of the
missions appointed by the last Conference." t In this Report,
* Methodist Magazine, vol. xxxvii. p. 79. (1814.)
•f- They were the llev. Jonathan Edmondson and the Rev. James Buckley, who
were stationed in the two London Circuits. The departure of Dr. Coke for the
East, and his lamented death, led eventually to a more complete and etficient
organization of the missionary operations of the connexion. At the above period
there were several of the Methodist societies and congregations, in diflFerent parts
of the kingdom, who had formed themselves into Missionary Societies, for the pur-
2U
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
under the liead of " Sierra- Leoue m Africa/' the state of that
mission is thus referred to : —
Every event of Divine ProAddence, however painful to our feelings, is designed to
answer some good end ; and yet we are so short-sighted, and so foohshly prone to
prefer our own will to the will of God, that we do not always see his gracious
intentions, or bow down to him with pious submission. This remark applies, in
too many instances, even to the flock of Christ, especially when they lose valuable
pastors. Perhaps our brethren in Sierra-Leone felt something of this, when the
Lord took from them our beloved brother WaiTen. Ever since his lamented death,
we have been anxiously looking out for a suitable person to supply his place ; and,
at length, our \\-ishes have been accomplished. Brother Davies, the Welsh mis-
sionary, from London, has undertaken the pastoral care of that little flock. May
the Chief Shepherd support him, and crown his labours with great success !
There is a discrepancy in tlie Minutes of Conference for
1814; the name of WilHam Davies being found on the Stations
for Sierra-Leone^ at the same time that he was appointed for
London, and was labouring there as a Welsh preacher. The pro-
bability is, that in the original Minutes for that year he Avas
appointed to London only, and that Sierra-Leone stood as it
did in the preceding year, " One wanted;" and that the mistake
occurred in the reprinting of the fourth volume of the Minutes
several years afterwards.
Mr. Davies, with his wife, sailed from Plymouth on the 23d
of December, 1814, in the ship "Wilding," Captain Gibson,
under a convoy, which, having to touch at Cork, detained them
for a short time. There were seven persons on board connected
l)ose of raising pecuniary' supplies for the support of the Wesleyan missions. But,
at the Conference of 1817, a " plan" was drawn up and printed, to combine these
various exertions of the societies and congregations of the Wesleyan Jlethodists
into one Society, under the denomination of " the General Wesleyan-Methodist
Missionary Society;" and a meeting of the Society was appointed to be held
annually in London, in the month of May. The Rev. George Marsden and the
Rev. Richard Watson were elected as joint-secretaries. The Conference of that
year had directed the executive Committee to make such additional arrangements
as might be deemed necessary for perfecting the plan, and carrying it into full
effect. This was accordingly done, and was presented to the following Conference,
when it was printed in the Minutes, under the title of, " Laws and Regulations of
the General Wesleyan-Methodist Missionary Society." It was also published in
what was called the "First Report" of the Society, in 1818, at which time the
general treasurers were, Thomas Thompson, Esq., Hull, and the Rev. George
Marsden, London ; and the general secretaries were the Rev. Jabez Bunting, A.M.,
the Rev. Joseph Taylor, and the Rev. Richard Watson. Mr. Taylor was the
" resident secretary;" the other two were doing the full work of a circuit. The
General Committee consisted of fifty members, one-half of whom were laymen.
The above " Laws and Regulations," &c., are printed every year in the annual
Reports of the Society.
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIERRA-LEONE. 215
with the Church Missionary Society, some of whom were mis-
sionaries; and the cheerful, social, and Christian spirit of the
whole party contributed much to each other's comfort. The
wind being favourable, they finally put to sea on the 5th of
January, and arrived safely at Sierra-Leone on the 13th of
February, 1815, after a pleasant voyage from the Cove of Cork.
Mr. Davies soon met with the brethren Healey and Hirst,
and the coloured friends, who greatly rejoiced because God had
answered their prayers in sending them a missionary. He com-
menced his labours the following day, by preaching from Isaiah
xlv. 22, and after the service met the leaders and members,
when he read to them the letter, with the regulations, of the
Committee in London, which afforded them great satisfaction.
Many in the society were truly alive to God, and the school-
masters had been usefully employed, several of the boys having
proceeded in arithmetic as far as the rule of three, and being
able to read and write tolerably well.
At the close of March, it was found that there Avere one hun-
dred members in society, and nine on trial. Mrs. Davies was
also actively engaged in meeting a class of females, and was
made a blessing to the souls under her care. The well-known
and highly-respected Governor Macarthy caused a large school-
room to be built on the mission-premises, where upwards of
two hundred children were daily collected ; and in this depart-
ment the wife of the missionary found delightful work.
The rains had closed in October; and though the captain of
the "Wilding" died a few days after his arrival at Sierra-
Leone, and several other Europeans, during the sickly season,
had fallen victims to the climate, one of whom had resided in
Africa many years, yet Mr. and Mrs. Davies were mercifully
preserved. Mr. Davies, it is true, was occasionally " a little
feverish," at other times " rather faint in body ;" but Mrs.
Davies enjoyed good health during the whole of the worst sea-
son of the year, and in November " was going on charmingly
well with the school." But the cold hand of death was not far
distant : she was taken ill on the 8th of December, and her
husband was seized with fever on the same day; he was in
one end of the house, and she in the other. Medical aid
was immediately resorted to, and the greatest attention
was paid to both of them; but the strength of Mrs. Davies
diminished daily, and at the end of a week " the weary wheels
of life stood still." On the morning of the day of her death,
Mr. Davies " crawled to see her," and was much affected at the
change; but, in answer to the question, "Is Jesus precious?"
216 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
she, with a faint voice, and pressing his hand, said, " Yes, yes,''
and spoke no more till she joined the assembly of the first-born
above. The next day, at four o'clock in the afternoon, her
remains were conveyed to the silent tomb, accompanied by His
Excellency tlie Governor, the chief gentlemen of the colony,
and almost all the inhabitants, and amid the tears of the school-
children ; Mr. Da^des being at the time confined to his bed in
solitary sadness, mourning his loss.
Mrs. Davies was a woman of a cheerful disposition, amiable
temper, tried piety, and superior accomplishments. She was
fond of reading, and, having a strong memory, could recite the
history of almost every book she had read. She was calculated
for great usefulness, and nobly co-operated with her husband
in advancing the kingdom of the Redeemer. Her character,
talents, and unwearied zeal rendered her a valuable auxiliary to
the mission at Sierra-Leone. She was mighty in prayer, paid
laudable attention to the members of her class, and before her
death had a school of one hundred and fifty girls under her
care, to whom she was much attached. But in the midst of her
usefulness she " was cut down like a flower," and her death was
a great loss, not only to her husband, the society, and the
school, but to the colony. This was stated by His Excellency
Sir Charles Macarthy, when waited upon some time after by
Mr. Davies, to ask for a stone to put on his dear wife's grave.
Sir Charles replied, " By all means : any thing that is in the
department is at your service for the sake of Mrs. Davies.
There is not a man in the whole place, yourself excepted, that
feels more at the loss of that amiable woman than myself. Her
loss is the public's loss."
She died on the 15th of December, 1815, in the thirtieth
year of her age, and after a residence in Africa of ten months
and two days. Mrs. Davies was the first wife, or, perhaps with
equal propriety it may be said, she was the first Wesleyan
female missionary, that fell in Western Africa ; and this was the
second loss by death which that mission had sustained. But, in
reference to herself, " to die was gain ;" and it was therefore an
appropriate quotation at the close of the inscription on the
tomb-stone, "Not lost, but gone before."
CHAPTER XII.
WESLEYAN MISSIONS.— SIERRA-LEONE.
(1815—1821.)
A Conversion — State of the Society in 1816 — Christian Spirit and Conduct of
the Colonial Chaplain — Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Brown — Sickness of the Mis-
sionaries— Death of Mrs. Brown — Sketch — Mr. Davies returns to England —
Letter from Mr. Brown — An African Fever — Appointment of Messrs. Baker
and Gillison — State of the Mission in 1819 — Mr. Brown's Return Home —
Death of Mr. Gillison — Letter from Mr. Baker — Revival of Religion — The
Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Iluddlestone and Mr. Lane — Numbers in the Society
in 1821.
As soon as Mr. Davies was able to be removed, he " locked
up the house/' and went " to reside for a while with his beloved
friend, the Rev. L. Butscher," the colonial chaplain, ''in order
to change the scene, and forget the stroke.'^
On Christmas-Day he resumed his labours, and at four
o'clock in the morning preached on the birth of Christ. On
the 4th of February, 1816, the power of God was graciously
manifested at a prayer-meeting held in the school- room; and
one poor native, of the name of Prince Edward, who had for
some time been in a state of spiritual bondage, was, by faith in
the Lord Jesus Christ, brought into Christian liberty. This
was while Mr. Davies was engaged in prayer. A voice of
rejoicing broke out at the furthest end of the room, and the
man went and lifted Mr. Davies off a little platform where he
was kneeling, took him up in his arras, and cried aloud, " I
found Him ! I found Him ! " On being asked what he had
found, he answered, still holding Mr. Davies in his arms, " I
found Christ. I feel his pardoning peace. His Spirit says,
' Go in peace ; all thy sins are forgiven thee ! ' " Thus was this
poor sable sinner, whose name was Prince, that day numbered
with the princes of God's Israel, and "he went on his way
rejoicing."
At the close of March, the number in the society was one
hundred and twenty-nine, eleven having found peace with God
since Mr. Davies had been with them ; and several had left the
church militant to join their friends on the other side Jordan ;
among whom was Mrs. Butscher, the wife of the chaplain, who
was a member of our society.
218 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
In April Mr. Davies visited some of tlie country places ; and
on one occasion His Excellency Governor Macarthy accompa-
nied him to Kissey-Town, and told the people that the mission-
ary had come to preach to them the word of God : accordingly,
they assembled together under a shed. Mr. Davies read
praj^ers, and the kind governor officiated as clerk^ repeating the
responses on his knees, on the mud floor, which had a very
good effect on the people. The excellent chaplain, the
Rev. L, Butscher, also frequently accompanied him on these
errands of love and mercy on week-day mornings. " And O
how delightful it is," writes ]\Ir. Davies, " when going, before
day-break, through the streets of Free-Town, to hear the sound
of praise and prayer around the family altar ! Every professor
is sure to hold family worship before he crosses the threshold of
his door.^'
On one occasion, after Mr. Butscher and Mr. Davies had
preached at one of the villages in the morning, the head man of
the town gathered all the greegrees in which they had been
trusting, and by noon he had a bag full of them, made of lea-
ther, horn, or paper, with Arabic words upon them rendered
sacred by their priests. He commanded 9ome of the people to
bring shavings, sticks, straw, &c. : he then emptied the bag,
and set fire to the whole, and they Avere burnt. One of the
inhabitants complained sadly, saying, " What me do now for
greegree to keep me?" when an aged man answered, "Hold
your tongue, you ! We be tink these ting keep we from the big
fire, and he no can keep himself from burning before my eye.
Me be fool no longer. Me seek white man God : me seek
Massa Jesus to save me."
Monthly missionary prayer-meetings were commenced about
this time; and they were held regularly once in the Baptist
chapel, once in Lady Huntingdon's chapel, and twice in the
Wesleyan chapel, there being no lamps in the church. The
worthy chaplain heartily co-operated in these "Evangelical-
Alliance " means of grace. Indeed, he was a frequent hearer in
the Wesleyan chapel on Sunday evenings ; and it was stated by
the missionary, that he, on some occasions, gave a warm exhor-
tation after the sermon, or concluded with prayer. " We are
brethren indeed," writes Mr. Davies. "When I administer
the sacrament in our chapel, I give the bread, and he the wine ;
and once in the quarter, all our people go to church, and he
gives the bread, and I the wine."
Mr. Davies, after the death of his beloved wife, paid as much
attention as possible to the state of the school, and was pleased
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIEURA-LEONE. 219
at the regular daily atteudauce of the childreu, and at the evi-
dent improvement they Avere making-. It Avas a delightful sight
to see the re-captured Negroes rescued from the hold of slave-
vessels^ clothed, and learning to read the word of God, and
other useful things. His Excellency often visited the school,
and was present one day in the month of April that year, when
Mr. Davies and Mr. Butscher baptized one hundred and five of
these kidnapped children. " All were dressed in clean clothes,
and had labels hanging before them, with their new names ;'^
and the missionary adds, " O may they all have a new name
from above ! "
Mr. Davies having more than he could attend to, and addi-
tional openings continually presenting themselves, he appealed
to the Committee for help. Accordingly, in the Minutes of the
Conference for 1816, the name of Samuel Brown was added to
that of William Davies, for Sierra-Leone. Mr. and Mrs. Brown
sailed in October, and aiTived in December. They were met on
the beach by Mr. Davies, who was thankful for this seasonable
supply of coadjutors. It was during this year (1816) that
the Wesleyan Missionary Committee commenced the publi-
cation of the Monthly " Missionary Notices,^^ containing
abstracts of letters and other communications from the foreign
stations, &c.
The following letter from Mr. Brown, addressed to the Com-
mittee, announces his arrival and reception, and gives an inter-
esting viCAv of the state and prospects of the mission. It is
dated,
Free-Town, Sierra-Leone, February ith, 1817.
Through the tender mercy of God, we arrived here in health and safety on the
evening of the 26th of Decemher.
On the first day of our arrival, I waited upon Ills Excellency, Charles Macarthy,
and showed him my credentials. He welcomed us to the colony, and behaved in
a very affable, fiiendly manner : he is very much respected as a humane, fatherly
man.
I think this colony, in the space of fifty or one hundred years, will be of great
importance to England. Many of the re-captured Negroes are taught to read,
A\Tite, and some useful trade. They afterwards form connexions, marry, and live as
orderly as in many of our English villages. I have visited two of tliese native
towns, Congo-Town and Portuguese-Town. In the latter we have established a
meeting. When we first went, we found them beating their rice, and doing other
kinds of work, on the Lord's-day. We told them we were come to preach to them ;
but if they worked on Sundays, we could not. They instantly attended to the
advice given ; and now when we go, they are prepared, like the people whom
Cornelius had gathered into his house, to hear what God will say by his servants.
Two of them are awakened to a sense of their sin and danger, and are anxious to
be baptized, and united with us in church-fellowship. This people said, " Other
220 WESTERN COAST OF AFllICA.
towns had lioase for God," and regretted that they had none, but expressed a
determination to have one soon. Congo-Town is three miles from Free-Town ; but,
as they do not hke its present situation, they have bought five acres of land, for ^5,
a mile and a-half from Free-Town, where they were for removing in the space of a
fortnight. They assign two reasons for changing their situation : First. That they
may hear the gospel, or, as they generally term it, " God palaver." Their other
reason is, that they may be near the sea, and have an opportunity of supplying their
families with fish. After partaking of a fowl, some cassada, and rice, which they
cheerfully boiled for us, I gave them an exhortation, sang and prayed with them.
They have pressingly invited me to preach regularly for them, when they are settled
in their new situation. Though the Africans are generally inclined to their " coun-
try fashions," which are very immoral and base ; yet, when they are converted,
tlie traces of true godliness are very apparent through the medium of their
simplicity.*
About the same time Mr. Davies, who was actively engaged
in different parts of the colony, having preached three times
on the sabbath at Leopold^ and feeling his mind rather low,
went to Regent^s-ToAvn to see his friend Johnson. After
taking a cup of tea, they went to the church, and Mr. Davies
preached,, " Avhen the tears were seen flowing over many a sable
face." There was one person in particular, of the name of
Tamba, who was in great distress, and cried aloud. He
remained in the church after the others Avere gone, and seemed
resolved not to rest till he obtained peace v<ith God. Mr.
Johnson, the church missionary at the station, met him the
next morning, looking very cheerful; when he said to him,
" Well, Tamba, how are you this morning ? How do you feel
your heart this morning?" Taraba answered, "My heart dis
morning, massa. My heart no live here now." " Well, Tamba,
wher^ does your heart live?" "O, massa, heart live top
now."
At the end of March there were in the society in Free-Town
115 members, with 24 on trial. The experience of the members
was spoken of as being " scriptural and rational." Two, also,
were admitted on trial in Portuguese-Town; and soon after
this a school was opened at the same place. Early in July,
Mr. Brown wrote to the Committee, expressing his thankfulness
that both himself and his wife had, he hoped, passed through
the seasoning sickness, and were then in good health ; but in
two or three weeks after this, both the missionaries, with Mrs.
Brown, were attacked with violent fever, and were all ill at the
same time. Mr. Davies was the first that recovered, at least so
far as to be able to render some assistance to ]Mr, and Mrs.
* "Missionary Notices" for April, 1817, p. 127.
WESLEYAN MISSION'S AT SJ EIlllA-LEONE. 221
Brown in their ti-ying circumstances ; but she soon fell a vic-
tim to the disorder, nature becoming exhausted with the
repeated attacks she had endured. She continued sensible to
the last, though for a few hours before she departed, through
weakness, she was unable to speak. She expired about half-
past eleven o'clock on the evening of the ninth day after the
attack. This was the third loss this mission had sustained by
death.
Mrs. Brown was a most affectionate wife and sincere Chris-
tian. She had had the charge of a class of eighteen members ;
and from her engagements in the school for female Negro
children much usefulness was anticipated ; but " here we have
no continuing city." She was present at the funeral of the
Rev. L. Butschei', the colonial chaplain, who had died a few
weeks previously; and this event had impressed her with the
probability of her own approaching end, and tended to quicken
her pace in the road that leadeth to everlasting life. " In her
last illness," writes one who witnessed it, " it was delightful to
behold her gaining fresh spiritual strength; her soul stayed
simply on Jesus, and deriving consolation from his all-sufhciency
and willingness to save." She had a short struggle with the
enemy about two days before she died, but afterwards obtained
deliverance ; and, " with tears trickling down her face," she
exclaimed, " Glory be to God, the enemy is chained ! " After-
wards, on being asked how she was, she answered, "Very
happv, very comfortable." She departed this life in the full
assurance of faith, on the 28th of July, 1817, after a residence
in the colony of seven months and two days. The body was
interred in the same grave with that of Mrs. Davies ; but their
disembodied spirits have long been " v>'ith the Lord," and
they now " rest from their labours, and their works do follow
them."
Mr. Brown was very ill at the time of his wife's death, but in
a few days was out of danger; and, though he felt the shock
most severely, he bore it with Christian fortitude, and resumed
his labours as soon as possible.
Mr. Davies, on account of repeated attacks of fever, returned
to England early in 1818; but the great Head of the church
continued to bless the labours of Mr. Brown, and the mission
prospered. The following letter from this devoted missionary,
addressed to the late Rev. Joseph Benson, will show the state of
the mission at that period : —
222 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Sierra-Leoxe, May 2Qfh, 1818.
My dear and honoured Father, — You have, I doubt not, of late received
infonnation, through various means, relative to this mission. But, being desirous
of adding some further particulars to it, I venture, with some reluctance, again to
present tlie subject before you.
At our last quarter's visitation of the classes, we had one hundred and fifty per-
sons in society, and forty-foiu- on trial, against whose moral character I found no
material objection. About ninety are Nova-Scotian settlers, or their children ;
twenty, Maroons ; forty, re-captured Negroes ; and the probationers are chiefly of
the last description. That the piety of African believers is equally bright, vigorous,
and stable, with that of Eiu-opeans in general, is what I cannot think or say ; as a
religion but partially enhghtened is always weak and precarious. But, though they
have not the advantage of taking-in all those rays of gospel-truth, by which they
might have been exalted in their experience and practice ; yet the day-star from on
high hath visited them, and given many the light of the knowledge of the glory of
God in the person of Jesus Christ. It is true that many have but an imperfect
view of divine things, yet I may with confidence assert that they are recei\'ing an
increase of Ught, growing in grace, and in the knowledge of Jesus Christ.
That we have brighter prospects of usefulness, and more pleasing scenes of
labour opening before us than we have had, I am pretty confident. Our congrega-
tion in Free-Town on Sundays is generally greater than our chapel there can well
contain. And the congregations at Soldiers'-Town and Portuguese-Town are
encouraging ; usually at the former from fifty to a hundred attend, and at the latter
from thirty to eighty. Our little congregation at the west end of Free-Town, in the
old school-house, is broken up, as the temporary place has fallen into ruins ; but
the Maroons are building a stone chapel at tliis end of the town, which, in the
space of twelve months, will, I doul)t not, l)e finished, and will add strength to our
mission, as well as increase our labours. They are a \"igorous and persevering peo-
ple ; and tlieir erection and settlement of their chapel on the Conference plan,
(which, I trust, will be done,) will provoke to holy jealousy the Nova-Scotians in
carrying on with spirit the buikUng tliey have begun at the east end of Free-Town.
The dimensions of the former are sixty feet by thirty ; and of tlie latter, sixty-five
feet by forty ; each of them are raised abovit two or three feet above the surface of
the ground.
I verily think the school we have had here woidd be a great blessing, were it
re-established. The colonial school is situated at the extremity of the east end of
Free-Town ; while at the west end scores of childi-en are brought up in ignorance,
and attend no school.
But my hands are full, and more than full ; so that my honoured fathers will see,
I hope, a necessity of sending a married missionary to take the superintendency,
and bear the burden of domestic affairs. You \vill excuse me when I say that it
is by no means proper that an indi\idual missionary should be on any station, espe-
cially a young man. I think, Rev. Sir, when you have weighed the statements that
are given, you will see with me that the season is arrived for the permanent estab-
lishment of oiir mission ; that the present is a critical period, and that the work
should be in the hands of an experienced, holy, and prudent minister. I might fur-
ther lu-ge this subject by teUing you / alone have had all the weight of our mission
here upon me ever since my arrival in Africa ; that the ckcumstances in which it is
now placed call aloud for men of piety, prudence, and talent, to come over and
help us.
As regards my own experience, 1)y the Divine mercy I can say, I am raised above
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIERRA-LEONE. 223
an inordinate love of life, and a slavish fear of death ; my desires are expressed in
one of our hymns :—
" If in this feehle flesh I may
Awhile show forth thy praise,
Jesus, support the tottering clay,
And lengthen out my days."
Though all God's waves and billows have gone over me, though 1 have none
with whom to communicate ; yet I have converse with my heavenly Father, and
happiness in the exercise of my ministry ; so that my time does not hang heavy
upon my hands ; my wound also is bound up, closed, mollified with ointment, and
healed.
I shall not soon forget your great kindness to us while in London, and the suit-
ableness of the address delivered to our dear brethren Fox, Osborne, Newstead, and
iiiyself, in Lambeth chapel ; your kindness in presenting me with a volume of your
sermons, one of which, No. XL, proved a cordial to my drooping spirits a few weeks
after the death of Mrs. Brown, and my own severe sickness.*
During this season, Mr. Brown suffered severely from the
country fever, having had repeated attacks; and he felt the
force of that passage, "Woe to him that is alone when he
falleth ; for he hath not another to help him up.^' Still God
was with him : his European brethren of the Church Missionary
Society were very kind ; the governor also called to see him, and
offered him any thing in his house ; and he adds : " I have proved
more than ever the love of the people towards me, in their anxiety
for my recovery. They have offered many prayers for me, paid
me many visits, and done me many kind offices." But, "O, who
can describe the painfulness of a burning African fever, which
drinks up the spirits, yea, absorbs the very moisture, destroys
the powers of reason, and is attended with a head-ache, thirst,
and violent strainings to vomit ? These things I fully expe-
rienced, and never expected more to cumber this world." But
he was mercifully preserved through the rains, which proved
fatal to several Europeans that year ; and, as soon as he was
able, he resumed his beloved employment, " the Lord working
with him, and confirming the word with signs following."
Two single men, Messrs. Baker and Gillison, were appointed,
and sent out at the end of the year, to succeed Mr. Brown,
who, from having been repeatedly and dangerously ill, and from
the loss of his excellent wife, it was thought, needed a change.
These brethren sailed from Gravesend on the 16th of December,
and arrived at Sierra-Leone on the morning of February 14th,
1819. It was the sabbath-day; and Mr. Brown was soon on
board to give them a hearty welcome. " From the ship,"
observes Mr. Brown, " we went to the chapel, when, after I
* "The Methodist Magazine," 1818, p. 793.
224 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
had read prayers, Mr. Baker preached for us, and in the even-
ing jMr. Gillison. It is truly pleasing to myself and our
members to receive an increase of missionary labour to this
part of the world ; and, what is infinitely more, I am certain it
is pleasing to God, and well-timed. O that their health and
life may be spared ; that they, from an enriched and over-
flowing heart, may ever bless their hearers out of Zion in the
name of the Lord ! "
By these brethren Mr. Brown received the following com-
munication from the General Secretaries : —
A RESOLUTION OF THE MISSIONARY COMMITTEE.
November 187i, 1818.
That in future the missionaries sent to SieiTa-Leone shall not be required to
remain on that station more than three years, unless they shall themselves be
willing to continue longer ; and that missionaries so removed from Sierra-Leone be
sent for the remainder of their missionary service to some other foreign station less
unfavourable to health than West Africa.
By the Stations filled up and altered at the same meeting, John Baker and John
Gillison, single men, were appointed to Sierra-Leone ; and you vrere, in considera-
tion of your late affliction and indisposition, appointed to St. Vincent's, in the West
Indies, one of our old and 1)est stations, and where your health, we hope, will be
completely restored.
(Signed,) Jabez Bunting,
Joseph Taylor,
December Ith, 1818. Richard Watson.
At the same time, he received the following note, dated a few
days after, from the "Resident Secretary :^^ —
77, Hatton-Garden, December \2th, 1818.
I HAVE cUstinctly to state that your being removed from Sierra-Leone is merely
in consequence of your late atHiction, and from a wish to save your life. The
Committee have the fullest confidence in you, and the greatest satisfaction with
you and your labours.
Yours truly,
(Signed,) Joseph Taylor.
For some months previous to the arrival of these new mis-
sionaries, a gradual revival of the work of God had been going
on, and from twenty to thirty undoubted conversions had taken
place. ]\Ir. Brown, in referring to this, and to one or two
remarkable instances of the grace of God, in a letter dated
February 27th, 1819, remarks: "I have sown in tears, but
now we reap in joy. Thank God, this is an ample recompence
for every sigh, every tear, every shaking ague, every burning
fever, every bereavement, every restless and sleepless night I
have had to endure since I came to Africa. This makes me
very reluctant to leave. I feel I love their precious souls ; the
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIERRA-LEONE. 225
affections of my heart are iiiterwoveu with theirs ; and I know
they love me. This^ in union with a joyous sense of my
acceptance with God, makes me wilhng to spend and be spent
for the welfare of the church, and the honour of my adorable
Redeemer; to count nothing dear to me, so that I may finish
my course with joy, and be received to that eternal rest which
remains for the people of God.^^
Shortly after this, Mr. Brown returned to England, when he
furnished the Committee with the following interesting report
of the mission, giving the etymology of several of the villages,
"with some other important facts : * —
We have five different places at which we regularly preach; two in Free-Town,
and three in country villages entirely inhabited l)y re-captured Negroes.
At the east end of Free-Town stands our principal meeting-house, which is a
boarded building, with a grass-thatched roof, fitted up with benches, excepting one
pew which joins the pulpit. It may, when crowded, contain from three to four
hundred hearers. We have freehold land sufficient on which to build both a com-
modious chapel and a preacher's house. The foundations of a chapel, sixty-five
feet by forty, are laid, and stones prepared, which cost £100, collected by Mr.
Davies. In addition to this, we have since collected upwards of £100.
We preach in this meeting-house twice on Sunday, give a lecture to children on
Monday evenings, preach on Wednesday evenings, and hold prayer-meetings every
morning, and on two evenings in the com^se of the week. The congregation on
Sunday is usually larger than the place can accommodate. It consists of Negroes
from Nova-Scotia, Maroons, and re-captured Negroes. My mind has often been much
pained, that the bounds of our decayed wooden meeting-house could not seat all wlio
anxiously came to hear the word of life. Many were obliged to sit dowTi on the
outside, in the scorching heat of the sun. This meeting-house is at the head of
our mission : here our re-captured people from the villages attend on sabbath morn-
ings ; and, influenced by the cleanly habits of the Nova-Scotians and Maroons, make
a decent appearance, which does credit to the religion they profess. Here they are
* On the eve of his embarkation for England, Mr. Brown received, amongst
other letters, the following pohte and Christian note from His Excellency, the late
Sir Charles Macarthy : —
" Government-House, Sierra-Leone, April Tld, 1819.
" Dear Sir, — In returning to you my sincere thanks for the Annual Report of
your missions, I feel great pleasure in assuring you of my most sincere good wishes
for your welfare, in whatever part of the glol)e you may be employed.
" I enclose herewith a letter to the respectable members of your Committee, to
whom I express, in very inadequate terms, my opinion of your zeal and exertions in
the good cause. I accept with gratitude your prayers for my welfare and the
prosperity of our colony.
" Believe me, with the highest esteem,
" Dear Sir,
" Your faithful, obedient servant,
" C. Macarthy.
" To the Rev. Samuel Brown, isfc. <!^"e."
Q
226
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
brouglit more intimately into acquaintance with our society, and have further
opportunity of improvement.
Among my most pleasant lahours I may rank the lectures which I gave twice a
week to children, apprentices, and servants of all descriptions ; part of them I met
at the mission-house on Sundays, and the rest and greater part on Monday even-
ings. The number on Sundays was from twelve to twenty, and on Monday evenings
from sixty to one huntlred.
The west end of Free-Town is chiefly inhabited by the Maroons and re-captured
Negroes. With a design to awaken a spirit of piety, in the dry season of 1818, I
preached on Sunday morning, alternately in the streets at the east and west end
of the town, and visited most of the inhabitants from house to house. Some good
arose from this to my own mind, and to the souls of several of my hearers. Seve-
ral re-captured families became our constant hearers, and are now members of our
society. In the hut of one at this end of the town we preach twice a week, and
hold a prayer-meeting. The brethren now on the Station have formed a promising
class at the same place.
Congo-Town is so called from its inhabitants chiefly consisting of re-captured
Negroes from the river Congo. Its population, taking-in the scattered huts in the
neighl)ourhood, may be averaged at from three to four hundred adults, exclusive
of children. About the middle of 1818, I took them wholly under my care ; and,
by the help of the leaders, visited them three times a week. They are all re-
captured Negroes, and, in general, married. From an earnest desire to have their
children taught to read, that they might have an opportunity of hearing the gospel,
they commenced a subscription to build a chapel. It is now nearly completed, and
will serve the double purpose of a school and preaching-room. Here we have
twenty-seven members, under difi^erent degrees of concern for their salvation. We
have appointed Moses Brown, whom I taught to read and write, as schoolmaster,
under the immediate care of the brethren. We are fully satisfied as to his suitable-
ness for the work. He lived with me two years, and, on the whole, behaved him-
self to my satisfaction. The congregation is usually from forty to eighty, and the
prospects are very encouraging.
Soldiers'-Town is the first of our country villages, for the fruit it has yielded to
our mission. It received its name from being the residence of the re-captured
Negro soldiers who are now in the African corps. Its population may be averaged
at six hundred adults, besides children. On February 13th, 1817, I commenced
my labours in it ; and took my stand in the open air, on an elevated place, and,
assisted by some of our members from Free-Town, began the service. At first
about twenty attended, chiefly females ; afterwards the nural)er increased to fifty or
sixty. I continued my out-door preaching fourteen weeks ; when, on July 6th, I
opened a wattled meeting-house, which cost us about XIO, and woidd accommodate
a hundred and fifty hearers. I now, by the assistance of some of the leaders,
visited them three times each week, twice on Sundays, and on Thursday evenings.
The congregation was usually from fifty to one hundred, about two-thirds women,
and very attentive. Some became impressed by the truths which they heard, and
showed a reformation in their lives. The concern of many wore away ; but their
places were more than filled up by the addition of others. I found it very ditficult,
at first, to make myself understood ; and was obliged to accommodate myself to
their capacities and knowledge of the English language. The state in which I
found them, unmarried, unbaptized, sunk in superstition, fornication, and every
vice, suggested the necessity of keeping them on trial from six to eighteen months,
until their knowledge was enlarged, and their conduct proved their sincerity. In
the latter end of November, 1817, several who had been for some time in deep con-
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT STERHA-LEONE. 227
cern for their salvation, made a clear and satisfactory' profession of faith in Christ.
One whose name is John Crown came to the mission-house, and said he was come
to tell me what God had done for his soul ; that when I baptized his child, (which
had taken place about fom- M'eeks,) con\dction seized his mind ; that he had prayed
in the bush, in his house, or wherever lie might be, for the Lord Jesus to forgive
his sins ; that every thing bad that he had done came to his recollection ; that his
trouble was so great, that he could neither eat nor sleep ; that his wife and former
companions frequently questioned him as to what burdened his mind, and urged
him to eat. and not give way to trouble ; that when he had been at prayer in a
retired place in the bush, and was returning home, he felt a sudden change pass
upon his mind, his trouble went away, and gladness filled his heart ; that this good
thing which he felt was sweet ; that in his own country he had eaten honey, and
in white man's, (Sierra-Leone is so called by the re-captured Negroes,) sugar ; but
this, putting his hand to his breast, is sweeter than all ; that since his mother bore
him, he never felt the same ; that if the governor had given him plenty of shops
full of cloth, his heart could not feel as glad as it did. " 0," said he, " I thank God
for this good thing ; that ever he brought me into this country, and that he may
ever keep this good thing in my heart." This man has been very useful to the
society, which consists of about thirty members, and the same number on trial.
The conversion of many of them is clear and satisfactory. At the present time we
have a new wattled meeting-house, (the first, after standing two years, having sunk
into decay,) built chiefly by their own exertions. It is generally filled with a con-
gregation of from fifty to a hundred and fifty. The brethren. Baker and Gillison,
have joined me in expressing the pleasxu'e which it always affords to visit this
society ; the hearts of the members abound with love and gratitude to God, and to
their ministers.
Portuguese-Town takes its name from the majority of the inhabitants having
1)een rescued from the Portuguese. In the beginning of February, 1817, I first
visited this town, and by ringing a small bell collected the inhabitants ; to whom,
imder the side of one of their huts in the open air, I published the truths of the
gospel. The hearers were attentive, and my congregation was usually from thirty
to sixty. On the 30th of April I opened a wattled meeting-house in the village,
and by the help of the leaders held meetings three times a week. Two females
appeared concerned for their salvation, whom I put under the care of an experi-
enced Cliristian. On May 5th, 1817, I commenced a day-school. Twenty-nine
attended, and seemed anxious to learn to read. This school was continued
but for a short time : sickness and death caused a suspension, and, finally, a disso-
lution, of it. After continuing my ministry under many discouraging circumstances,
we had at length the pleasure of seeing some fruit of our labour. A man and his
wife became experimentally acquainted with the Savioirr. The work spread, and
four other persons professed to experience the same blessing. The society at this
time consists of fifteen members, and some on trial.*
The total number of members in the society in the wliolc
circuit at this time was two hundred and fifty, being an increase
of one hundred during the year. Several greegree-vci&w were
amongst those who were converted to the faith, and who had
cast far from them all their charms and tools of enchant-
* " Report of the Wesleyan-Methodist Missionary Society," 1819, pp. 30-
n 9
228
WESTERN COAST OF AERICA.
merit : so tliat, in tlic language of the ins,>ired historian, it may
be said, " Many of them also which used curious arts brought
their books together, and burned them before all men : and
they counted the price of them, and found it fifty thousand
pieces of silver. So mightily grew the word of God and
prevailed." (Acts xix. 19, 20.)
At the Wesley an Conference of 1819, Mr. Brown was
appointed to Nevis, in the West Indies,* where he laboured for
several years : since which period he has been usefully engaged
in the ministr}^ at home.
In the mean time the brethren Baker and Gillison had
entered upon their work. The former writes : — " I never felt
happier in my life : I would not exchange my present station
for a crown. It is my determination, and that, I believe, of my
colleague also, that, through Divine assistance, we will lay our-
selves out in every possible way to advance the cause of Christ
in this iuission." They did so; but death again speedily made
a breach in this little party, and that passage was literal!}'-
fulfilled, "Then shall two be in the field; the one shall be
taken, and the other left." (^Nlatt. xxiv. 40.) Mr. Gillison had
not been in Africa quite six months, when he was carried off by
the fever peculiar to that climate, after an illness of eleven days,
much lamented by his colleague and the people.
John Gillison was converted to God when very young, at
Bourne, in the Grantham circuit, where he laboured for several
years with great acceptance as a local preacher. He was a
young man of deep pietj^ and respectable talents, an affectionate
colleague, and an acceptable preacher, and bid fair to be a veiy
useful missionary. He had laboured one year in the ministry
in England, and cheerfully accompanied Mr. Baker to this post
of danger, where God crowned his efforts with considerable
success. On the evening of July 29th, he buried a corpse, and
another the next morning : in the afternoon he preached at
Congo-Town; and soon after his return home in the evening he
went to bed rather poorly. During the night he was seized with
fever, which never left him. Mr. Baker was also ill at the same
time ; but after some days he was assisted into his colleague's
room, though in a very weak state. Mr, Baker writes : — " When
I came, he requested to be helped up in bed, and we seemed like
two dear friends meeting, who had long been separated. I
immediately asked, *Is Jesus precious to you?' He distinctly
* The appointment was changed from St. Vincent's to Nevis.
WESLEVAN MISSIONS AT SIEUKA-LEONE. 229
answered, ' Yes, glory be to God for it, he is ! ' '' The next
morning Mr. Baker saw him again, and found him happy in
God, and prepared for his will ; and, in all the intervals of
delirium which afterwards occurred, he continued to express
himself in the same manner, till, on August 10th, he exchanged
mortality for the joy of his Lord. He died in the twenty-second
year of his age, and the second of his ministry.
" That lil'e is long, which answers life's great end."
As soon as Mr. Baker^s extreme Aveakness would permit, he
took up his pen to communicate to the Committee the melan-
choly intelligence of the death of his worthy colleague : he was
himself, even then, in a delicate state of health, having had a
relapse of the fever, occasioned hj his preaching Mr. Gilhson's
funeral sermon, which quite overpowered him. As health
gradually returned, he engaged in the work of the mission; but
was frequently laid aside during the rainy season, and fears
were entertained for his life. In November he writes : —
I can assure my dear fathers, notwithstanding these trying dispensations of Pro-
vidence, I feel happy in my work, and am satisfied I am in my providential place.
The Lord makes me happy by the continual manifestations of his favour, and many
of these dear people make me happy by their unblamable life and conversation.
GI017 be to God, unworthy as I am of such an honour, he is pleased to make me
useful ! Here in town I have some time since had to cut off some whose Uves were
inconsistent with their profession, and who, I beUeve, have been a stumbhng-block
to others ; but lately the Lord has been reviving his work in the society, aud
gathering in some from the Heathen. He was pleased to bless to many souls the
last two or three sermons I preached before my late sickness. 0 for more strength
to preach His word ! I bless God I can say, I only wish for life to spend in pub-
lishing the sinners' Friend. He is my all and in all, — " In toil my rest, my ease in
pain."
My late dear colleague and myself laid it down as a rule, ft-om the first, never to
flinch from any point of discipline, or suffer those, in any place, who we had
reason to fear were deceiving themselves, to go to hell quietly : this made us use
the plainest and most faithful dealing we could with such characters ; and now,
thanl^ God, the incorrigible have been all, or we trust nearly all, discovered. The
members have for some time past been growing in grace. Many flock to hear the
word of God ; and it grieves me to see the want of room to accommodate them.
I am certain the chapel, though much the largest in town, is not half large enough
to contain the people who wish to attend. The place is crowded to suffocation.
I am obliged, as soon as I get home after every sermon, to change every tiling 1
have on, even to my coat.
I wrote to you some time ago of our having formed a class at the west end of
Free-Town, which, thank God, is now one of our promising societies. After they
had been on trial, I told them they must all get married, if they wished to remain
with us. They were quite willing, and I took down the names of eleven couple.
Two or three of the women had ungodly men, to whom some of them said, " Sup-
pose you no marry me, I leave you ; this time I want for seek God, and live Chris-
230 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
tian fashion." The men have all consented. These things arc i)leasing, and to me
very encouraging.
The governor is going in a few days to the river Gamhia, to form a settlement
higher up, perhaps two hundred miles or more from St. Marj's. Should this suc-
ceed, there would certainly he a fine opening for the exertions of a faithful mission-
ary. Tliis station will he ahout 14° north latitude, and consequently much healthier
than Sierra-Leone. I tind, according to Park, this part of the river is near a chain
of mountains ; and if the people there, as in some places in the interior, hve much
ahove the level of the river, the station will he healthier still.
Protected l)y the countenance of the British Government, the missionaries might
proceed much further up, if needful ; and, I have no douht, would he useful. I
must say, that I always think, if a minister of the gospel is faithful, God will, in
some way or other, make him useful ; and though the first missionaiy to that place
might not hve to see fruit of his labour, yet it would doubtless appear after many
days. In reference to the healthiness of such a station, there can be no doubt of
its being healthier than this. It is a weU-known fact, that they have not so much
rain on the Gambia as we have here ; and the cause of the sickliness at St. Mary's is
more owing to the very low situation of the island on which our present settlement
is found, which in the rains is in a state of inundation from the rise of that great
river, and from a bad morass on the island, so low as not to admit of draining, and
which makes the air passing over it bad. The rains begin as far south as the Line,
and go as far as Senegal, 17° north latitude.*
In the annual Missionary Report for 1820, the number in
society were as follows: Free-Town, 172; Congo-Town, 10;
Soldiers'-Town, 17; Portuguese-Town, 28; West-End, 34;
total, 261 ; being an increase of eleven on the preceding year.
But before the close of that year a great revival of religion took
place, " and the Lord added to the church daily such as should
be saved/^ Mr. Baker, under date of November 1st, 1820, in
giving some particulars of this, observes : —
I scarcely know where to begin; but the best of all is, God is truly with us.
We have the greatest outpouring of the Spirit I have ever yet witnessed.
And when I consider the meanness of the instmment made use of, I sometimes
tremble lest it should not be real. But I can never look closely at the work with-
out discovering the finger of God plainly engaged in it. He himself has done it,
and that in his own way. May he grant me ever to feel as I do now ! for my
spirit truly says, " Not unto us, Lord ; not unto us ; but to thy name be all the
glory." The work has been gradual : I can trace its beginning up to the com-
mencement of the year. But within the last three months it has increased
rapidly ; and stUl goes on, and increases Uke the noise in the camp of the Philis-
tines. All my sleepless nights, all my burning fevers, all my severe conflicts, and
all my agonizing pains, — all, all put together, and heaped up, seem no more than
dust in the balance, when compared with this great work. Here is not only
double, but tenfold, for all my hire. I have no talents to attract attention ; but I
go on as God helps me, pi-eaching with all my might a present and a full salvation
by faith in Christ. I do verily believe, that preacliing a present salvation, and
insisting upon the direct witness of the Spirit, is the glory of the gospel. I thauk
* " Missionary Notices," vol. ii. pp. 232, 233.
WESLEYAN MISSIONS AT SIERRA-LEONE. 231
God my views of this subject are enlarged ; and especially since this work began.
It brings to my remembrance the days of our venerable Founder, and makes his
name to sound more sweetly in my ears. Those who have lately been brought in,
manifest that they have not believed a cunningly devised fable. They bear the
consequent friuts of living faith ; and I do not hesitate to say, of nearly all of those
who have been added, I no more doubt of their conversion than my own. We
have had twenty-five, twenty-seven, and twenty-nine of a week brought into
liberty. At our last Quarterly-Meeting, I found we were three hundred and
thirty ; since then we have not added less than fifty. Poor Congo-Town, where I
have so long laboured, and seemed to be spending my strength for nought ; even
there, the Lord is gloriously making bare his holy arm. We had, at the last
Quarterly-Meeting, only fourteen in that place ; now we have fifty-six ; forty-seven
of wliom can rejoice in a sin-pardoning God. Our chapel stands just where it
should do, and is filled.
In town, also, this work has been great ; we have had many added to our num-
bers. I am quite worn down with labour ; and am a standing miracle to all who
know my work, and what I have suffered. But I thank God I do it cheerfidly ;
and if I may but hold out till my colleagues come, then, if the will of God beteo,
let me ||
" My body with my charge lay down, ^\
And cease at once to work and live." \f\
This work has really produced a general reformation ; and the grog shop-keepers
are mad against us, as their craft is not only in danger, but has very considerably
suifered. Some of the greatest rebels, who were like the man among the tombs,
are now sitting at the feet of Christ, clothed, and in their right mind. I bless God
I ever came to Africa. May the Lord help me to go on insisting on a present and
full salvation ! *
On the 8th of November, just one week after the above letter
was written, Mr. and Mrs. Huddlestone arrived at Sierra-Leone,
and were much pleased with the kind and warm reception they
received, as well as with the state of the mission : they were
soon joined by Mr. Lane, who sailed for that station in January,
1821 ; and now Mr. Baker was at liberty to visit the river
Gambia, to commence a new mission, to which he had been
appointed by the preceding Conference. The nvimbers in the
society at Sierra-Leone in 1821 were 470; being an increase of
upwards of two hundred on the preceding year.
* " Missionary Notices," vol. iii. pp. 40, 41.
CHAPTER XIII.
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY.
Source and Termination of the River Gambia — Influence of the Tide — Scenery —
Birds and Animals, &c. — The native Tribes — Jollofs — Mandingoes — Foulahs
— And JoUars — ^W^estern Africa — The moral Degradation of the Natives —
Slave-Trade and Slaverj' — Polygamy — Degradation of the female Character
— Afiican Superstitions — Greegrees — Various Objects in Nature regarded with
superstitious Dread — The three worst Features of Superstition are Witchcraftj
a System of Demonology or Devil-Worship, and human Sacrifices — A Refer-
ence to Romans i. 21 — 32.
The Gambia is one of the finest rivers in Africa. It is sup-
posed to take its rise in a group of mountains a short distance
to the north-east of Teemboo, in Foota Jallon, and not many-
days' journey from the famous Niger. After running in a
serpentine course for upwards of one thousand miles, it empties
itself into the Atlantic in 13° 30' north latitude, and in 16° 42'
west longitude. It is about fourteen miles wide at its mouth,
and is navigable for upwards of five hundred miles by vessels
of considerable burden ; and small vessels might sail much
farther, particularly in the rainy season.
This noble river contains many islands ; the principal of
which are St. Mary^s, Elephant-Isle, Deer-Island, Paboon or
Dean's Island, and Macarthy's Island. On two of these, that is,
the first and the last, the English have formed settlements, which
Avill be noticed in the following chapter. In the dry season the
influence of the tide is felt as far as Cantalicunda, and the falls of
Barracouda, the highest trading-ports on the river, supposed to
be two hundred and fifty leagues, or seven hundred and fifty
miles, from the sea-coast. A number of other small rivers and
creeks empty themselves into the Gambia ; and it is to be
lamented that these have not as yet been properly surveyed, as
it is not improbable that some of them would be found to com-
municate with other rivers north and south of the Gambia, and
thus an extensive inland navigation would follow, which would
increase the trade by affording a more ready and friendly inter-
course with the natives.
For about one hundred and fifty miles the banks of the river
are covered with thick mangroves, which, being alwaj'^s green,
tend to reheve the eye from the oppressive glare of the scorching
sun : the Avater here also becomes fresh, and is used for all
THE GAMBIA. 233
culinary purposes^ and as the common beverage of man and
beast. In advancing higher up the river, the scenery varies,
the country becomes more hilly, and the trees assume a more
variegated appearance, being rich in foliage, and splendid in
their blossoms. The beautiful palm, monkey-bread, and stately
mahogany trees, are conspicuous ; and in many places the coun-
try wears the appearance of one extensive and majestic forest,
and not unfrequently the scenery is highly picturesque. Birds
of the most beautiful plumage are numerous ; paroquets, par-
tridges, pigeons, guinea-birds, and water-fowl are also abundant.
But your right to advance on the river is often disputed by
large monkeys of the baboon species, residing in vast families
at a distance from each other on the trees near the river.
Sometimes they become outrageous ; climbing the trees nearest
to the intruders, chattering in the most menacing tones, break-
ing off sticks, and throwing them with all their might, bending
the extreme branches, and shaking them towards their enemies,
plainly intimating what they would do if the water did not pre-
vent them. These strange exhibitions, with the amusing antics of
those of a smaller size, and of a more harmless kind, which are
frequently seen with the squirrels, sporting on the branches of
the trees ; together with the songsters of the grove, and the harsh
crow-like sound of the graceful crown -birds, (Balearic cranes,)
flying over-head in great numbers ; the huge alligator basking
fast asleep on the mud and sand of the banks of the river, till
awoke by the report of a gun with a few shot, wliich only bound
from his back like peas falling on a pavement, when he instantly
shakes his tail and slides into the water unhurt ; the beautiful
horned deer and striped antelopes, w^hich are seen in herds
quietly grazing in the meadow^s; with ever and anon a small
canoe crossing the river, with a single native at its stern, or one
of larger dimensions, at a point or turn of the river, or perhaps
coming down a creek, and containing from ten to twenty Negroes,
who propel it forward at a rapid rate vv^ith their short paddles,
which they ply with great dexterity, cheerfully and musically
singing some song made on the occasion, and beating time to
the tune with the strokes of their paddles : — all tend greatly to
relieve the tedium of a six or ten days^ voyage up the Gambia.
When* on board a small cutter, or open boat, lying at anchor
in the middle of the day, without a breath of air, and waiting
for the tide, it is no small treat to be rowed ashore to some
village, or up one of the narrow creeks, or " natural canals," as
they have been called, where the thick foliage from these ever-
lasting greens proves a most welcome screen from the vertical
234 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
rays of the sun, and presents an appearance of real rural beauty.
But take care you do not bathe, lest you should come out of the
water minus an arm or a leg, or perhaps be divided and subdi-
vided, or consumed altogether, by one or more of the numerous
alligators which infest those creeks.
By night the hippopotamus is heard snorting, and plunging
from the banks on which it grazes into the river ; sometimes so
near your canoe or boat as to place it in danger of being
swamped by the motion of the water, should it be a small one.
This animal in bulk is only second to the elephant. The head is
of an enormous size, and the mouth, when open, is about two feet
wide ; the legs are short and thick, and the eyes and ears small.
The hair on the body is very thin ; but the skin is very thick
and strong, and the tusks, which are from twelve to upwards of
twenty inches long, furnish the best ivory. Though possessing
amazing strength of body, this animal is naturally of a mild dis-
position, and is orAj formidable when provoked. When wounded,
or when their young are injured either by accident or design,
they will rise and attack boats and canoes with great fury,
and will sink them by biting large pieces out of the sides, or
strildng holes in the bottom, or by placing their huge bodies in
such a position as to upset them in an instant ; and not unfre-
quently the people are drowned. One or two accidents of this
kind occurred in the Upper Gambia during my residence in
Africa. It need scarcely be said that the hippopotami are
amphibious; but they are so cautious that it is during the night
principally that they leave the river in order to pasture, when,
consuming large quantities of millet, rice, and other eatables,
they do much damage to the cultivated fields and plantations.
But though rarely out of the water by day, I have frequently
seen their small pointed ears, with a little of the head, when
rising towards the surface in order to take-in fresh air. In this
manner they may be seen in herds, as many as a dozen of them
together.
This part of the continent, in fact, abounds with specimens of
natural history in almost all its branches, — with shells and fish,
plants and flowers, insects and reptiles, birds and wild animals ;
to say nothing of its minerals, some districts being interlaced
with inexhaustible veins of the precious metals. The natu-
ralist and geologist would therefore find full employment for
their scientific researches from one year's end to another.
If the writer had the ability to enlarge upon this subject, the
nature and limits of this book would forbid it ; suflice it to say,
that, as to fish, the Gambia abounds in these of various kinds,
THE GAMBIA.
235
from the sprat to the dolphin and shark of sixteen feet in
length. Here, too, is to be seen the little, exquisitely, beauti-
fully plumaged humming-bird, smaller than the linnet, or, as a
fair authoress expresses it, " scarcely larger than an humble-
bee ; " with the towering eagle, the gigantic stork, and that king
of the feathered tribe, that swiftest of all running creatures, the
ostrich. On the Gambia, likewise, or in its neighbourhood,
the traveller may find the small red monkey, not much larger
than a rat, with almost every other species of apes up to the
orang-outang and chimpanzee : here, too, are to be found the
prowling wolf, the screaming hysena, the snarling leopard, and
the roaring lion ; the lizard and the crocodile ; the leech, so
numerous in the creeks, and so useful to man in sickness, the
venomous snake, the boa-constrictor and serpent of from twenty-
five to thirty feet long.* And here, too, the European may be
teased and bitten by the tiny, but troublesome, mosquito ; and
he may be gratified and excited by a sight of the sagacious and
majestic elephant. The ostrich is exclusively indigenous to
Africa, and even the problematical unicorn is still said to exist
in the interior. The shrubs and earth swarm with termites,
ants, spiders, and caterpillars, while passing armies of locusts
frequently obscure the sun like clouds. The most beautiful
insects abound, and the force of vegetation is extraordinary ;
the earth renders back the seed to the cultivator increased at
least a hundred-fold, and the climate and soil produce plants,
flowers, and fruits of various kinds.
* The following extract from an American paper, which appeared a few months
ago, will confirm this statement : —
"Another monster snake. — The good ship 'Allen,' Captam Williams, recently
arrived at Salem, Massachusetts, from the coast of Africa, having on board a Uving
monster serpent of the constrictor kind, which verifies all the stories we have heard
of their crushing and swallowing a horse in a single meal ; it is much larger than
any ever before taken, its length being thirty feet. Of course, the arrival of such a
monster set all our showmen into a wonderful fever. Van Amburgh, and June,
and Titus, despatched an agent for them, via New-Haven ; one of the firm of
Raymond and Baring proceeded by way of Worcester ; and Barnum sent his major-
domo, Hitchcock, by the steamer ' Bay State.' The Yankee proprietor of the snake,
seeing such an excitement, and feeling that it will be difticidt to run an opposi-
tion, has taken his ground ; and a telegraphic despatch to Van Amburgh and Co.
announces that he will take no less than ten thousand dollars for it, and in case of
not finding a customer he will turn showman, and exhibit himself. The agent
offered seven thousand dollars for it ; but Mr. Hitchcock immediately bid five hundred
dollars more, and so the matter stands. Captain Williams positively avers that it
took one hundred and twenty-six Negroes seven hours to secure this monster. They
did it by means of a heavy rope net made for the purpose, and thrown over him
Mhen coiled up. What a sarpinf !" — Neic-York True Sun.
236 WESTERN COAST OF AFKICA.
But as we have to do rather with the human and rational part
of the creation in this brief history of missions, it will be neces-
sary to say something of the people amongst whom the mission-
aries have laboured.
The aborigines inhabiting the banks of the Gambia, and the
countries bordering on that river, though distributed into many
distinct governments and independent states or nations, may be
fairly divided into four great classes or tribes; namely, the
Jollofs, the Mandingoes, the Foulahs, and the Jollars.
The Jollofs are of the middle size, proportionably built, of
jet black, with woolly hair, their lips and noses not so promi-
nent as most of the other Negro tribes. The countenance is
open and intelligent, with fine eyes and beautiful white teeth,
which are kept in a pure state by frequent washing, or rather
constant rubbing Avith a small twig of the tamarind-tree, which
they substitute for a tooth-brush, and which answers as well as,
or even better than, the European instrument used for the same
purpose. The Jollofs are warlike, brave, and generous, ardently
attached to each other, and proverbial for gratitude and fidelity.
At the same time, they are very superstitious, and are much
afraid of ghosts and evil spirits, against whose dreaded influence
they have many imaginary means of defence. They live princi-
pally in the country which lies between the Gambia and the
Senegal. The language is harsh and guttural, and frequently
coarse and vulgar. These people are a mixture of Pagans and
Mohammedans; and some of those who have come into immediate
contact with the French colonists in the Senegal and Goree are
tinctured with the forms of Popery, though few of them have
learned any of the doctrines or precepts of pure Christianity.
The Mandingoes are the most numerous and warlike tribe in
this part of Africa. They are called Mandingoes, as having ori-
ginally migrated from Manding, an elevated region about seven
hundred miles eastward from the coast; and are now spread into
various independent states and nations, down the banks of the
Gambia to the kingdoms of Barra and Combo on the sea-coast ;
whilst they are to be found in considerable numbers as far south
as Sierra-Leone. The physical characteristics of the Mandin-
goes have already been described ; and Mungo Park has given
a faithful record of the habits and manners of this people.
The pure Mandingo language is mellow and harmonious, and,
with few exceptions, is universally understood from the Senegal
and Gambia to the Joliba or Niger.
In speaking of the Foulahs, it will be necessary to notice the
diflerent tribes ; a distinction which it is the more needful to
THE GAMBIA. 237
make, as they have frequently been spoken of as one and tlie
same class of people. There are, properly speaking, at least
three tribes, called in Africa Teucolors, Loubies, and Foulahs ;
and to these may be added the Fallatalis of Central Africa, who
are of the same race : the latter are frequently spoken of by
Lander as being superior to other native tribes, in personal
appearance, dress, industry, moral virtue, and intelligence.
The Teucolors resemble the Mandingoes in appearance, cha-
racter, and prowess. They have established themselves in several
powerful kingdoms, the chief of which are Foota-Torro, on the
north of the Senegal ; that of Bondou, between the Senegal and
Gambia ; and Foota- Jallon, about four degrees north-east of
Sierra-Leone. The colour of their skin varies a little, some
being quite black, and others of a fairer complexion. They are
properly a settled people, though they have a few scattered
villages amongst the Mandingoes. The Teucolors are generally
strict Mahomedans.
The Loubies are a degenerate race, stunted in growth, and
haggard in appearance. They are generally quite black, though
in features they much resemble the Foulahs, and they also
speak the Foulah tongue. They possess neither towns nor
cattle, but are the gipsies of Western Africa, living by the
manufacture of wooden bowls and other utensils, which they
sell to the Mandingoes.
The physical characteristics of the Foulahs (the third class or
tribe) we have briefly given in the first chapter of this work.
They are in features and complexion, manners and habits, obvi-
ously distinguished from the rest of the aborigines of Western
Africa. Their features have a close resemblance to the Euro-
pean, with a fairer skin than the Negroes in general, some of
them approaching to the Mulatto colour. They have a tradi-
tion, that they descended from a white man,* and, when talking
of different nations, always rank themselves among the white
people. They have no lands of their own, but are much attached
to a pastoral life ; and have introduced themselves into many of
the kingdoms as herdsmen and husbandmen, paying a tribute
to the sovereign of the country for the lands which they hold.
They breed much cattle, and are dexterous in the management
of them. The whole herd belonging to the respective towns
feed during the day in the neighbouring savannas, and, after
the removal of the crops, in the rich grounds. They are attended
* See an interesting article on this subject in the " Wesleyan-Methodist Maga-
zine," for the year 1834, pp. 29—33.
238 wi!:sTEUN coast of afuica.
by herdsmen, who prevent their entering the corn, or escaping
to the woods. As they make no claim to a right in the soil, but
live by the sufferance of the Mandingoes and Jollofs, in whose
countries they find pasturage for their cattle for the time being,
and have no certain dwelling-place, they are called "wander-
ing Foulahs,^' removing their families and cattle from place to
place as occasion may require. Being thus dependent, the
Foulahs suffer much at times. They have not only to pay a
large tribute for the privilege of pasturing their cattle on the
lands which they cultivate, but the king will sometimes come
down upon them, and take away nearly all they have. Being
also a timid people, and unaccustomed to fight, they are fre-
quently plundered by marauding parties, who go about day and
night scouring the country. Thus the Foulahs, though the
most industrious, are the most grievously oppressed.
The JoLLARs (or Feloops) are small and short in stature, but
are strong and nimble runners. Their colour is a deep black,
with rather a rough skin • but their features are tolerably regu-
lar, except when distorted by the fantastic figures which they
imprint on their faces. They wear very little clothing, merely a
small apron or pagne loosely fastened round the loins. They are
not numerous, and reside chiefly to the south of the Gambia, in the
neighbourhood of the Casamaza. The Jollars are nearly the zero
of the thermometer of African civilization in this part of the
continent. They are a wild and unsociable race of people, of a
gloomy disposition, and are supposed never to forgive an injury :
they are even said to transmit their quarrels as deadly feuds to
their posterity, insomuch that a son considers it incumbent on
him, from a just sense of filial obligation, to become the avenger
of his deceased father^s wrongs. The Jollars are Pagans, and
pay homage to no being but the devil ; and him they worship,
to him they offer sacrifice and consecrate a house, thinking, if
they secure his friendship, they shall be safe.
In addition to the preceding four great classes of Africans,
there are many other nations betAveen the Senegal, Sierra-
Leone, and the Gold-Coast. But, however numerous the native
tribes of Western Africa, in a faithful description of one tribe
we have a fair picture of the whole ; for, whether Mahometan or
Pagan, the Africans are all ignorant, guilty, and depraved,
"earthly, sensual, and devilish," "sitting in darkness and in
the region of the shadow of death," "having no hope, and
without God in the world."
The moral degradation of both Mohammedans and Pagans in
Western Africa is shown in many striking features, and fully
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 239
corroborates the declaration of the Psalmist, " The dark places
of the earth are full of the habitations of cruelty/'
Of the Slave-Trade we have before spoken, with its attendant
horrors of war, rapine, and death. The fire, blood, and desola-
tion which marked the track of those invading and marauding
bandits engaged in the seizure, will never be forgotten by the
tens of thousands on the other side the Atlantic, who were the
victims on those occasions, and who are now watering with their
sweat and tears the soil which enriches their oppressors. The
Slave-Trade renders Africa a perpetual scene of bloodshed ; for
one tribe is continually making war upon another, for the sake
of the prisoners obtained in the contest. It fosters a state of
barbarism, excluding every thing which can soften, or enlighten,
or civilize, or elevate the people of that vast continent. It
loosens all the ties of nature, debases the morals of the people,
creates endless insecurity, banishes commerce, knowledge, and
social improvement, and constitutes one of the principal obsta-
cles to the progress of Ciiristianity.
But even the Slave-Trade, with all its accumulated horrors, is
only one among the many evils with which Africa is afflicted,
though confessedly one of the greatest. We have, in a preced-
ing chapter, distinguished between the Slave-Trade and Slavery;
and it is necessary here to state, that this distinction belongs to
Africa as well as to the New World. Without, therefore, at all
blinking the fact, that the Slave-Trade, as still carried on by
several European nations, adds fifty per cent, to the misery of
Africa, it must at the same time be admitted, that Africa is a
land of slaves, and that Slavery existed in Africa long before the
Slave-Trade commenced, and will probably continue long after
that iniquitous system is abolished. At all events, it does exist,
separate and independent of the Slave-Trade, and that to a con-
siderable extent. According to the computation of Mungo
Park, and other celebrated authorities, not less than three-
fourths of the entire population of Africa are in a state of
Slavery. What, then, must be the condition of society in a
vast continent like Africa, when so many millions are held in
abject bondage ? It is true that, in some countries, the system
is comparatively light, among the domestic slaves especially;
but with regard to others, it is not so : the slave is treated with
unkindness and severity, according to the caprice of his master ;
and cruelties the most barbarous are frequently practised upon
these unfortunate beings. In some nations the master may
kill his slave without exposing himself to the smallest amount of
punishment, whilst, on special occasions, numbers are slain in
240 WESTERN COAST Ol' AFRICA.
sacrifice. Where life may be thus taken away with impunity,
what security can there be against the commission of other
enormities ? It is well known that in some of the great as well
as the smaller kingdoms of Africa, the female part of the slave
population are commonly and systematically let out for the hire
of prostitution, and are liable to the grossest abuses to which
their savage masters may choose to subject them.
But even taking the mildest form of this great evil as it exists
in Africa, the slaves on tliat continent, like those of all other
slave-holding nations, have no property in themselves. Their
bones, their blood, their sinews, their hands and feet, are not
their own ! They live, and breathe, and move, not for them-
selves, but for others ! Nor is this all : they have no property
in their children ; they are fed and nursed and bred for others,
and not for themselves ! And, African Slavery being hereditary,
the system is perpetuated. To this natural cause we may add,
that famine, insolvency, and crime are so many sources which
supply this unrighteous system with victims. It would be easy
to furnish a long catalogue of evils in connexion with the means
by which Slavery is replenished, and replenished to such a
degree, that the practice may be said to be almost universal.
Pohjgamy is another dark feature in the moral and social
condition of Africa. No sooner has the African taken to him-
self one wife, than he is ambitious to have a second, a third, &c.
With the Mohammedans there is imposed some limitation as to
the number : in the Koran the followers of the false prophet
are usually restricted to five ; and in those countries where the
dictates of Mohammed are implicitly obeyed, this number is not
exceeded. But among the Pagan kingdoms of Western Africa,
potygamy prevails to an extent still more fearful. Every man
of free condition, as soon as his circumstances will allow it, has
a plurality of Avives. Some private individuals have six, eight,
or even ten wdves, and as many concubines; while the higher
classes and the native chiefs take wives almost without number.
I have seen some of the Mandingo kings surrounded by a host
of females, all said to belong to one of these sable monarchs ;
and it is stated, that in Ashanti the law allows the king to have
three thousand, three hundred, and thirty-three wives ; but in
w^hat consists the charm of this mystic number, which is care-
fully kept up, does not appear.
The result of this state of African society may be easily
inferred. One inevitable consequence is, to make one passion
almost the sole end of life; and this evil propensity of a depraved
nature is not only thus indulged and sustained by the system
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 241
under consideration, but among the Mohammedans it is sup-
ported and sanctioned by religion.
The domestic arrangements, in places where this fearful evil
prevails, are formed on different principles from those which
regulate an English or civilized family. In Africa the husband
lives separate from his wives, who dwell in different huts or
sheds, built contiguous to each other, in the form of a square ;
and these are enclosed with a wattled cane fence. This enclosure
contains one family ; that is, one husband and one father ; but
that husband has many wives, and the wives have many chil-
dren. Favovu-itism prevails, jealousy is aroused, and revenge
unsheaths the sword which deals forth destruction. Polygamy
is the fruitful source of jealousy and distrust : it contracts the
parental and filial affections, weakens and disjoints the ties of
kindred, and degrades the female character almost to a level
with the brute creation. Before marriage, and in the affairs of
courtship, the wishes of the female are but little consulted, the
daughter being the property of the parents : the business is
chiefly settled between the suitor and them ; and in all cases the
parent receives a sum for his daughter, instead of giving a for-
tune with her, as is the practice in European countries. In
marriage, therefore, the African female is literally sold, — sold,
like an article of merchandise, to the best purchaser. Nor is
her condition in the least degree improved after her marriage :
she has only changed proprietors ; that is, from being the pro-
perty of her parents, she has become the property of her hus-
band. In our beloved country, woman is what she ought to be^
man's companion, the nurse of his children, and the mistress of
his home; but in Western Africa, the men look upon their
wives, not as their companions, but more like hired servants,
and employ them as such. Hence the weightiest duties gene-
rally devolve upon the Avife, who may be seen transacting busi-
ness in the market, cultivating the plantations, or, with a child
upon her back, " grinding at the mill ; " and, instead of the
husband maintaining the wife, as in duty bound in all Christian
countries, in many parts of Africa the woman supports the
man : for if an African can obtain six or ten wives, the fruit of
their united labours is sufficient to enable him to lead a life of
indolent ease and licentious enjoyment. Thus the females
have assigned to them the merest drudgery and the hardest
labour, and are treated more like beasts of burden than
women, and are looked upon by their husbands more in
the capacity of slaves, or creatures of convenience, than as
bosom friends.
242 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
In countries where polygamy prevails, it might be presumed, that either there is
a great disparity between the sexes, or that all do not marry. According to Bos-
man, the number of women among the natives on the coast, in his day, was much
greater than that of the men ; but it is supposed that the proportion of women to
men in Ashantee is not two to one ; and it is the fact, that the majority of the males
live without wives. Sometimes a caboceer will give his daughter to a confidential
slave ; but ceUbacy is the condition of far the greater proportion of the slave popu-
lation, which principally constitutes the military force of Ashantee. From this
unequal state of things, the grossest irregularities nativrally follow. In despite
of the penalties with which incontinence is visited, the violation of the man'iage-
contract is notoriously common ; and prostitution is openly countenanced. In
some instances, females are provided by the state, and are set apart to their office
by pul)lic formalities and religious ceremonies. As many as two himrlred and fifty
females of this description have been seen together on state occasions at the court
of Dahomy. But scarcely any single circumstance tends to show so clearly the
demoralization of Negro society, as the fact that wealthy females on their death-bed
regard it as one of the most meritorious acts which they can perform, to bequeath
to the public a few female slaves. AMiat must be the moral condition of a people,
where the state lends its authority to legahze crime, and the sanctions of religion
are employed to invest \nce with the attributes of virtue ! *
Such are some of the evils and pernicious tendencies of this
crying sin of polj'gamy, and such is the condition of women in
Africa. In the language of another excellent author, " it must
suffice to say, that almost all that is foul and black in the
history of female depravity in other parts of the world, is daily
poisoning and darkening the moral atmosphere in which woman
lives and moves in Africa. If such, then, be woman, what must
be man ? what, the children whom she bears ? Depraved her-
self, woman in Africa fosters whatever is evil in man, and instils
into the minds of her offspring the same vicious principles which
characterize herself." f
Another feature in the moral degradation of Africa is to be
found in the prevalence of its superstitions. This is an item of no
small magnitude ; sufficient, indeed, of itself, to fill a volume,
which might be " written within and without " in " lamenta-
tions, and mourning, and woe." It is true that some of the
superstitions of that great continent are comparatively innocent
and harmless, and sometimes not a little amusing: but they
have generally an immoral tendency, and are, therefore, injuri-
ous in their effects ; whilst, in other cases, they assume a graver
aspect, and are still more demoralizing and debasing to the
intellect and to the heart, until they reach such a point of cruelty
and brutal wretchedness and depravity, that the bare narration
of the terrible facts makes the heart sicken.
* Beecham's " Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," pp. 129, 130.
t East's " Western Africa," p. 60.
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 213
Nearly every writer on Western Africa, in describing the
manners and habits of the people, makes frequent mention of
their superstitious regard for greegrees. The word greegree is
probably a corruption of a Persian word, which signifies '' a
charm " or " incantation/^ Hence it has received divers names
from different writers, — saphie, amulet, charm, fetish, and gree-
gree. The latter term is more generally in use in the Sene-
Gambia, and from thence to Sierra-Leone. The greegree is
nothing more than a scrap of Arabic, being in most cases a
short select sentence from the Koran, written by one of the
priests. This is enclosed in a piece of red cloth, or stained
leather, which is neatly sewed up, so as to be worn on the per-
son as an ornament. They are either of a square, triangular,
round, or oblong form, and promise to the wearer perfect immu-
nity from danger, such as drowning, fire-arms, wild beasts, &c.
They are generally worn round the neck and arms, sometimes
as a girdle round the waist, and even round the legs; and I
have frequently seen the Mandingoes so armed at all points
with these greegrees, that it was with difficulty they could get
upon horseback. They are used for an almost endless variety
of purposes : for instance, in addition to the above, some are
obtained to cure disease, others to ward off sickness ; traders
purchase them to insure success in business, and have them
attached over their store- doors, or shops, to prevent fire ;
and they are sometimes hung upon orange and other trees
to prevent the fruit from being stolen. They are to be
seen, in fact, in all directions, and are worn by young chil-
dren, as well as by persons of riper years, and even down to
the white-bearded and grey-headed old man; from the slave
in chains to the king; men and women wear them, pagans
and bushreens, chiefs and warriors. They are also fre-
quently tied round the necks of horses, sheep, and goats ;
and the infant babe has not been in the world raaii}^
hours before a small greegree is fastened round the neck or
loins. The Mohammedan scribes derive a considerable revenue
from the sale of these greegrees, the price varying according to
the supposed intrinsic value or nature of the charm ; and not
unfrequently ten and twenty dollars and upwards are given to
obtain one of these sapldes or greegrees, so much dependence do
they place on them. Tatta Fodey, a celebrated slatee, or native
trader, residing at Subakunda in the kingdom of Woolli in the
Upper Gambia, has frequently given a horse for one of these
charms ; and the Alkaid of Jillifree, about thirty miles from the
entrance of the Gambia, on one occasion, travelled to Jume in
R 2
244 WESTERN COAST OV AFRICA.
the kingdom of Boiidou to a popular Marraboo priest named
Kabba, to obtain a particular kind of greeyree. This was not
less than five hundred miles' journey ; and he gave to the bush-
reen, in payment for the said charm, a female slave, about
fourteen or fifteen years of age. In other cases, as will be
seen hereafter, two slaves and more are given in this locality ;
and on the Gold-Coast prices still more enormous are some-
times paid for these charms manufactured by the followers
of the false prophet, even to the amount or value of thirty-
seven slaves !
" The origin of amulets,'' observes Dr. Winterbottom, " is lost
in deep antiquity. The Jews had their phylacteries ; the Greeks
their apotropaia, phylacteria, amynteria, p)eriapta, periammata ;
and the Romans had their phylacteria, ajnuleta, and prabia. The
bulla aurea worn by the Roman youth, and used as an insigne of
triumph, and which often contained herbs supposed capable of
resisting the effects of envy, were of the same nature In
Europe at the present day the superstitious practice of wear-
ing amulets still prevails, and great faith is reposed in them,
when hung round the necks of children, to protect them from
disease. Anodyne necklaces are worn to prevent convulsions in
teething, as a cure for worms, hooping-cough, &c. ; and it is
only lately that such modes of cure have been banished from
our Dispensatories, many instances of which may be seen in the
writings of the excellent INIr. Boyle. It is not improbable
that the necklace which at present forms so ornamental a
part of female dress, owes its origin to these superstitious prac-
tices."*
John of Gaddesden, the physician to Edward II., 1320, our
earliest English medical author, had a great taste for an amulet,
and an anodyne necklace. In his Rosa Anglica he gives this
admirable recipe for the small-pox : " Immediately after the
eruption, cause the whole body of your patient to be wrapped in
scarlet cloth, or in any other red cloth, and command every
thing about the bed to be made red : this is an excellent cure.
It was in this manner I treated the son of the noble king of Eng-
land, when he had the small-pox ; and I cured him without
leaving any marks." f So much for quackery in England in
the fourteenth century, in the use of red cloth as a cure for
small-pox ; and though this mode of cure has long since been
exploded, there are still to be found in some parts of our country
* Dr. Winterbottom on Sierra-Leone, vol. i. pp. 257, 258.
f Duncan's " Essays and Miscellanea."
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 245
some relics of Paganism, which have a striking resemblance to
some of the lesser evils of superstition as practised in Africa.
Red cloth especially is a favourite article and colour with the
Africans; and in small patches of this, many of the greegrees
are carefully wrapped up.* The preceding may be considered
as the first stage or lowest grade of superstition on that
continent.
Nowhere does superstition exert her baneful influence more
powerfully than in Africa, where all classes of people are deeply
afi'ected by it. It is interwoven with almost every act of life ;
and nearly every object in nature is formed into a species of
greegree, or is looked upon by them as a kind of subordinate
deity. They conceive of the Divine Being as too high and
exalted in his nature, and at too great a distance from them-
selves, to concern himself with the afi'airs of men, and that he
has consequently committed the government of the world to
these inferior deities and spirits which they worship. In
addition, therefore, to the written greegrees furnished by the
Mohammedan priests, as already described, the articles of which
African charms consist are exceedingly numerous : a tree, a
stick, a stone, a piece of rag or string, or a feather, and
many other trifles equally insignificant, often make a gree-
gree. The head of a snake, a lock of a white man^s hair,
* In the "Boston Herald" newspaper, in the early part of the present year,
(1850,) I find the following :—
" Superstition in Lincolnshire. — At the magistrates' office, Spilshy, William
Martin, of Bratoft, was charged with imposing on Tobias Davison, by giraig him a
pretended charm, to cm-e his wife of a certain complaint, and receiving for the same
the sum of 10s. Martin is an old man, eighty-five years of age, and has long
enjoyed the reputation of being ' a wise man.' Davison stated, that about eight
weeks ago he went to the prisoner's house, and told him that his wife was ill, and
he was to come and see if he could cure her. He told the prisoner that he had
only 10s. ; and he said, ' Well, I cannot help it, if you have no more.' He took the
money, and went to another part of the room, and shortly after came again and
gave him a paper parcel, which, he said, was to be suspended round his wife's neck,
and it would do her good. His wife wore it some time, according to prisoner's
dhection, but did not receive any benefit. The bench ordered the parcel to be
opened, when in several folds of the paper were found some pieces of sticks and a
piece of writing-paper, on which was written the word Abracadabra, the twelve
signs of the zodiac, some fractional numbers, and the following lines : —
' By St. Peter and St. Paul,
God is the maker of us all ;
What he gave to me I give to thee,
And that is nought to nobody.'
Ordered lo be committed for fourteen days, to pay all expenses, and the cost of
maintenance in prison.''
246 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
or a handful of soil from a grave, are carefully preserved as
greegrees. The sun, moon, and stars, the dry land and sea,
the rivers, creeks, and lakes, the wind and weather, thunder
and lightning, rocks and mountains, the deep glen and " the
wide waste," animals, reptiles, and insects, and almost every
thing that can be mentioned, form an object of superstitious
dread or veneration to the inhabitants of Western Africa.
And in addition to the various deities furnished by the animate
and inanimate creation, artificial representations are adored.
Hence some of the images, to which religious offerings are
presented, are made of wood, rudely carved, so as to resemble
the human form. These are generally from twelve to eighteen
inches in length, and are called " the household gods," being
placed in a corner of the room within the house, and covered by
a curtain.
One of the Wesleyau missionaries residing at York, in the
colony of Sierra-Leone, on one occasion went out to visit the
};eople, and called on a widow, to invite her to Christian service.
He writes : " She had in her room four gods : one for herself,
one for her late husband, and one for each of her two children.
She had been rubbing eggiddi (a rich kind of food, made of
Indian corn, beaten fine in a mortar, and mixed with palm-
oil) on their mouths; but they ate not. I endeavoured to
show her the folly of such practices ; but she was joined to her
idols!"
Thunder is an object of worship with many, and they have
an idol which is called " the god of thunder." When they
worship, they call a party of their friends together, with drum-
beaters and dancers ; they then kill a fowl, and present the
blood to the god, and sometimes they pour out a libation of
palm-oil before him. On one occasion, a man and his wife,
at Sierra-Leone, were killed by lightning; and their bodies
were allowed to remain on the ground three days, because the
people were afraid to touch them, lest they should offend their
imaginary god.
There is also the god of iron : to this deity the ofl^eriug is a dog;
whose blood is sprinked on the god, and the carcass hung over him
to drain. It is afterwards boiled; and, with vegetables and other
animals, is eaten by the whole party. This feast is kept up by
a repetition of dog sacrifices for six or seven days. Goats, sheep,
and oxen are also presented as oflFerings to these subordinate
deities, as well as fruit, boiled eggs, &c.
" IVe know that an idol is nothing in the world, and that
there is none other God but one." (1 Cor. viii. 4.) But, in
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 247
Western Africa, tliough the worshipping of idols, as practised
in the East, does not in that form so generally prevail, yet it
will be admitted, from the preceding brief statement, that
" there be gods many and lords many," and that " they have
become vain in their imaginations, and their foolish hearts are
darkened."
But the three worst features of superstition that have come
under my own observation in Africa, are a species of witch-
craft; a system of dkmonology, or devil-worship; and human
SACRIFICES.
The natives generally believe in the power of ivitchcraft ; and
this produces continued excitement and alarm, injurious at
once to the peace of the community, and to the mental tran-
quillity of individuals. If an African is taken ill, he imagines
that his neighbour, or some one else, has been using enchant-
ments against him. Many instances of this kind have come
under my own notice. A liberated African of the Pappa tribe,
residing at Soldiers'-Town, on the island of St. Mary's, had a
brother who died rather suddenly at Macarthy's Island. This
man attributed his brother's sickness and death to a female of
the same tribe, who, he said, had bewitched and killed him.
The woman soon afterwards returned to St. Mary's. Bent on
having his revenge, one evening, just before sun-set, seeing her
walking down a narrow path or street at the outskirts of the
town, he rushed from behind the fence, and, though the poor
woman had a child upon her back, and was leading another by
the hand, this infatuated man stabbed her in the neck and face
with a long knife, and almost severed the head from the body.
She was so dreadfully wounded and mutilated that she instantly
expired. This occurred in February, 1843, not many yards
from my residence. Hearing the noise, I hastened to the spot,
and found the poor creature weltering in her blood. The super-
stitious assassin fled into the bush, dug a deep hole in the sand,
and covered himself with small branches of trees and other
brush-wood ; and, being armed with a gun and other weapons,
bade defiance to any body that dared to seize him. He was,
however, at length captured by the natives, and unfortunately
shot by the party in self-defence. This poor wretch I also saw
a few minutes before life was extinct. Thus were two lives
sacrificed at the shrine of this Pagan altar.
Another item in the catalogue of the superstitions of Africa
is to be found in a system of demonology, or devil-worship, which
prevails among nearly all the Pagan trilics of Western Africa.
All the Africans, as already intimated, acknowledge a Supreme
248 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Being, the Creator of the universe ; and the notion of a future
state universally prevails : but their ideas of that future state
are exceedingly vague and confused. They also believe in tlie
existence of the devil ; but, supposing that the Almighty is
endowed with too much benevolence to do harm to mankind,
they think it unnecessary to offer him any homage. It is
therefore from the devil, demons, and evil spirits only, that
they apprehend danger ; and they endeavour to deprecate their
wrath by sacrifices and offerings. This is done in various ways
on different parts of the coast.
Beelzebub, "the prince of the devils," is supposed to walk
at large ; but those of an inferior order have a locality ascribed
to them, and are said to inhabit different places, such as the
sources of large rivers, the deepest recesses of a forest, rocks and
mountains of a pecaliar construction, immensely large trees,
which are rendered venerable by age, and some particular parts
of rivers and creeks, with many other places whicli have a
strange and uncommon appearance, or such as are calculated to
inspire the spectator with awe.
Lander, in descending a branch of the Niger near the
Atlantic, speaks of one of the latter : —
These meditations, and a train of others about home and friends, to which they
naturally led, occupied my mind, as our canoe passed through the narrow creeks,
sometimes winding under avenues of mangrove-trees, and at others expanding into
small lakes occasioned by the overflowing of the river. The captain of the canoe,
a tall, sturdy fellow, was standing up, chrecting its course, occasionally hallooing, as
we came to a turn in the creek, to the felish ; and where an echo was returned,
half a glass of rum and a piece of yam and fish were thrown into the water. I
had never seen this done before ; and on asking Boy the reason why he was throw-
ing away the provisions thus, he asked, "Did you not hear the fetish ?" The
captain of the canoe replied, " Yes." " That is for the fetish," said Boy : " if we
do not feed him, and do good for him, he will kill us, or make us poor and sick."
I could not help smiling at the ignorance of the poor creatures ; but such is their
firm belief.*
A similar custom prevails in the Gambia. About seventy
miles from the entrance of that river there is a sharp elbow-
turn from left to right : the left bank is rather hilly, and is
covered with trees : this is called " Devil^s Point." The river
is here about two miles wide; and, in passing this place, the
natives are in the habit of consigning to the deep some small
portions of the ship^s cargo, or eatables, in honour of his satanic
majesty, and to insure a safe passage up and down the river.
The first Lime I sailed up this splendid stream, I was requested
* Lander's " Journal," vol. iii. p. 242.
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 249
to give something to the devil at this place, which, of course, I
declined; but it is still practised by the superstitious natives
and sailors ; for the prince of darkness is said to have a resi-
dence under that point of land, and to stretch out his long
arms beneath the water, in order to receive the offerings pre-
sented by his worshippers.
In the neighbourhood of Sierra-Leone, the same custom
prevails. In a creek of the river near Bashia, there is a rock,
to which the natives offer sacrifices, supposing it to be the
residence of an evil spirit, and asserting that the rock sometimes
moves, and that it would be death for any one to put his
foot upon it. In other cases, as with the Jollars already men-
tioned, there are huts or sheds erected, and dedicated to
the devil, where offerings of palm -wine and other trifles are
presented.
In the Bassa country, the town is not complete Avhich has
not a devil-house, where the people daily offer sacrifices, and
dedicate a part of their food to the devil. They profess to
believe that there is a good and merciful Deity, who can and
will do them good, and not evil; but that the devil is all-
powerful, and that it is necessary to appease his wrath. " Every
town has its peculiar devil."
Rankin, in speaking of the Timmanees, and of one of these
temples, says : " The devil-house, whose shelter I was not
permitted to seek, w^as erected over a small relic of the nest of
the warlike ant, now abandoned. These booga-boogs being
regarded as imps, the servants of Satan, secure this honour for
the corpse of their abode. On the apex of the nest lay a small
piece of broken white earthenware ; an article sufficiently
uncommon so far from the English settlement to be considered
worthy of Satan's acceptance."
In a visit which I paid to Madina, the capital of Woolli on
the Upper Gambia, in 1837, I witnessed a still more awful
instance of this species of devil-worship. The chief of that
kingdom had recently been waging war, or rather committing
ravages, upon the territories of a neighbourir)g chief of the name
of Kemmingtan, and had taken away a great number of slaves.
These were distributed in various ways ; but a few of the juve-
niles Avere in the capital : among these was a little interesting
Foulah boy of about six years of age, whom I saw in the king's
yard, and, hearing that his father was killed in the attack which
had captured the child, with many others, I ventured to ask
His sable Majesty if he would place him under my care, and I
would take him to the mission-house at Macarthv^s Island, and
250 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
have him educated, &c. To this the king objected ; and, point-
ing to a long spear attached to his royal residence, he said,
" That boy is dedicated to that greegree ;" in other words, this
innocent and unoffending child was by some cruel means to be
put to death, and thus presented as an offering to the devil, to
insure success in another meditated attack upon Kemmingtan.
I would fain have rescued this poor little fatherless boy from
the unmerciful grasp of these wild barbarians, by giving a hand-
some present for his redemption ; but even had I succeeded,
another would doubtless have immediately been substituted in
his stead.
A short time previous to this, Kemmingtan consulted one of
the head Mohammedan scribes to obtain a greegree, for the
purpose of keeping war from his country ; or, in case of an
attack, that he might be successful in repelling the assailants.
The bushreen demanded two slaves and five horses for his trou-
ble : and a young female was selected, of about twelve years of
age ; and two holes were dug in the earth near Kemmingtan's
fort, about two feet in depth. In these holes the feet of the
female were fixed ; and, notwithstanding the bitter lamentations
of the mother, and the loud screams of the unfortunate sufferer,
men were employed in building a wall of clay round the body,
till it was ultimately worked over the head, and thus the poor
creature was smothered to death. This awful monument of
Mohammedan and Pagan superstition and wickedness was seen
standing some time after the horrid crime was perpetrated.
At Badagry, the devil is publicly worshipped ; and Mr. Mar-
tin, one of our missionaries there, has seen a man in the streets
take up his own child, and offer it up to the devil for the sake
of his " blessing."
The Dahomians on the Gold-Coast, though by their warlike
character they are the terror of the surrounding country, yet
are very superstitious, and are even alarmed at travelling
alone by night, lest the devil, who, they believe, assumes various
characters, and frequently flies about in the shape of a small
snake, should touch them. And as this evil being is supposed
to be ever at hand for the purpose of mischief, they are in a
state of constant alarm and apprehension.
Among the Fantees and Ashantees, the devil is not wor-
shipped.
On the contrary, he is annually driven away on the Gold-Coast, with great form
and ceremony. This custom is observed at Cape-Coast-Town, about the end of
August. Preparation is made for the ceremony in the course of the day ; as the
hour of eight o'clock in the evening draws nigh, the people are seen collecting in
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 251
groups in the streets, armed with sticks, muskets, and otlier weapons ; at the
instant when the eight-o'clock gun is fired from the castle, a tremendous shouting,
accompanied with the firing of muskets, breaks forth from all parts of the town ;
and the peojile rush into their houses, and beat about with their sticks in every
corner, shouting and hallooing with all their strength. This sudden outburst of all
kinds of noises often alarms Europeans who have recently arrived, inducing them to
suppose that an enemy has attacked the place. When it is imagined that the devil
is excluded from all the houses, a simultaneous rush is then made out of the town,
and the people in a body pursue the invisible enemy, with lighted flambeaux,
shouts, and the firing of muskets, until it is concluded that he is completely routed
and put to flight. After this achievement, they return ; and, in some of the towns,
the women proceed to wash and purify their wooden and earthen vessels, to
prevent the de\il from returning to their houses.*
But of all African superstitions^ the most dreadful and appal-
ling is that of human sacrifices.
Only a few instances of this horrible species of the degrada-
tion of Africa have come under my own observation; but in
AshauteCj Dahomy, Benin, and among other countries where
the Mohammedan religion and the Mohammedan power do not
prevail, this iniquitous, revolting, and diabolical practice is car-
ried to a fearful extent. Hundreds, nay, thousands of human
beings, men, women, and children, are deliberately murdered in
cool blood.
The occasions on which these sacrifices are offered are nume-
rous. "We have already mentioned two cases where this horrible
custom was observed by two chiefs in the vicinity of the Gambia,
at the commencement of war ; and it is stated that human
victims were daily sacrificed by the king of Ashantee at the
commencement of the w^ar with the British in 1823-4. In that
battle, it has been already stated, the late Sir Charles Macarthy
was unfortunately killed. Mr. Williams, Sir Charles's secre-
tary, was also stunned by a ball, and fell ; but his life was
spared. Two other Europeans were killed at the same time,
and on the same spot; and on Mr. Williams recovering a little
from the wound he had received, and looking round, he " wit-
nessed the appalling sight of the headless trunks of Governor
Macarthy, Mr. Buckle, and Mr. Wetherell. He remained for
some time a prisoner in the Ashantee camp ; during the whole
of which period, he was regularly locked up at night in tlie
same place with the heads of his unfortunate companions,
which, by some peculiar process, were kept in a state of perfect
preservation; Sir Charles's head presented nearly the same
appearance as when alive." But, not content with decapitating
* Beecham's " Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," p. 184.
252 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
the unfortunate victims, the body of Sir Charles was cut up,
and "it is stated that his heart was actually eaten by the princi-
pal Ashantee chiefs, in order that they might, as they imagined,
imbibe his bravery ; and his flesh, having been dried, was then
divided, together with his bones, among the men of consequence
in the army, who kept their respective shares about their per-
sons, as charms to inspire them with courage."* Such was the
conduct of these savage conquerors, previous to and during this
dreadful campaign.
On tlie achievement of a victory, and at the death of distin-
guished personages, these human sacrifices often take place on a
larger scale. At the conclusion of tlie Gaman war, for
instance, itself full of horrors and bloodshed, two thousand
wretched victims, selected from the prisoners taken in the con-
test, " were slaughtered over the royal death-stool, in honour of
the shades of departed kings and heroes."
The exquisite torture to which the unhappy victims are fre-
quently subject previous to death, is another terrible feature in
this barbarous and diabolical practice ; and the term, '' living
sacrifice," may, in a certain sense, be applied to those unfortu-
nate suff"erers. One or two instances will suffice.
Bowdich, who visited Coomassie, the capital of Ashantee, in
1817, says. While waiting in the street for leave to attend the
king, " our attention was forced to a most inhuman spectacle,
which they paraded before us for some minutes : it was a man
whom they were tormenting previous to sacrifice. His hands
were pinioned behind him, a knife was passed through his
cheeks, to which his lips were noosed like the figure of 8 ; one
ear was cut off, and carried before him ; the other hung to his
head by a small bit of skin ; there were several gashes in his
back, and a knife was thrust under each shoulder-blade ; he was
led with a cord passed through his nose, by men disfigured with
immense caps of shaggy black skins, and drums beat before
him."t
In addition to this "inhuman spectacle," let the reader
attentively peruse the following affecting record from a Wesleyan
missionary, who was also an eye-witness of what he describes
at the same place, and what occurred very recently : —
Sad are the scenes -which sometimes transpire in Kumasi, showing the brutal-
izing effects of Heathenism upon the heart of those who are brought under its
influence.
* Beecham's " Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," pp. 75, 76.
t Buxton on the Slave Trade, p. 233. From Bowdich, p. 33.
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 253
In the " customs" which are held in honour of any deceased chieftain, great
numbers of slaves are generally beheaded. This is done under the belief that the
spirit of the in(U\dduals so sacrificed will attend upon their deceased masters in
another world, and will there wait upon them, as they had been accustomed while
here.
In the selection of the \-ictims, no regard is paid to age or sex, but male and
female are slaughtered.
Should it be the case that a female, with an infant at the breast, is condemned
to die, the child is not spared; but as soon as sentence of death is pronounced
upon the mother, her infant is regarded as an abomination. Hence, when the
mother is led to the place of execution, and falls in the streets a headless coi-pse,
her child falls with her. The body of the mother may remain all day in the
street, exposed to the gaze of every passer-by ; and by her side may remain her
helpless hving infant, exposed, too, not only to the heedless foot of the multitude,
but suffering intensely from the eifects of the direct rays of a tropical sun. Seldom
does any eye pity : no one would ever think of taking away that child, and thus of
saving its life : it remains in the street until evening, and then, as the individual,
whose business it is to drag away the bodies of these victims, takes away the
mother, he at the same time takes away the child ; not to pity and to save it, but
to cast both mother and infant together into the dell where these wretched victims
are thrown, and there both remain to putrefy, or to be devoured by swine, or
carnivorous birds.
During the time of my residence in Kumasi, several infants perished in this
miserable manner. Never shall I forget the effects produced upon my own mind,
when, on one occasion, a person connected with the mission family came in from
the town in great distress, and, vrith a countenance expressive of fear and pity, as
well as of horror, stated that he had just passed a spot where lay a victim and her
infant : the mother had been sacrificed two hours before, and her infant, pressed
by hunger, had crept to her bleeding neck, and was literally feeding upon the blood
of her who gave it birth ! I shuddered as I listened to the narration, and at once
determined, if possible, to save that child. Bidding the narrator accompany me, I
hastened to the spot; but it was too late: a by-stander, observing my approach,
and suspecting my errand, had placed his foot upon the neck of the infant ! It
was dead, and there it lay : side by side were these two unoffending persons, victims
of a sanguinaiT superstition, pleading in death, in langiiage which could not be mis-
understood by a Christian heart, the necessity existing for teachers.
With a sad heart I returned to the mission-house, to weep over and pray for the
people of my charge ; a whole nation with but one missionary ! Many were the
earnest prayers which this and similar scenes prompted, that messengers of mercy
might be sent to guide the feet of these wanderers into the way of peace.*
" Scenes " like these arc " sad " indeed ; but the repetition
of them in Ashantee causes thera to be so faraihar with the
inhabitants of that sanguinary nation, whose " feet are swift to
shed blood/' that they '' glory in their shame."
The Rev. Thomas B. Freeman, in his first journey to Ashantee,
was detained some time at Fomunah ; and under date of Tues-
day, February 19th, 1839, he writes thus: —
* Rev. George Chapman.
254 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Last night a sister of Korinchi died, after a long sickness. Her death was
announced by the firing of muskets, and the " mourners going about the streets."
When an Ashanti of any distinction dies, several of the deceased's slaves are sacri-
ficed. This horri1)le custom originates in some shadowy ideas of a future state of
existence ; in which they imagine that those who have departed hence stand in
need of food, clothing, &c., as in the present world ; and that, as a vast number of
concubines, slaves, &c., are the chief marks of superiority among them here, so it
must also be in a futiu-e state. Accordingly, as I walked out in the morning, I
saw the mangled corpse of a poor female slave, who had been beheaded during the
night, Ij'ing in the pubUc street. It was partially covered with a common mat ; and
as this covering is unusual, I concluded that it was thrown over in order to hide it
from my view. In the course of the day I saw groups of the natives dancing round
this victim of superstitious cruelty with numerous frantic gestures, and who seemed
to be in the very zenith of their happiness.
A few clays subsequently Mr. Freeman writes : —
To-day another human victim was sacrificed, on account of the death of a person
of rank. As I was going out of the town in the cool of the evening, I saw the
poor creature lying on the ground. The head was severed from the body, and
lying at a short cUstance from it ; several large turkey-buzzards were feasting on the
wounds, and rolhng the head in the dust While the body was lying in the
public street, many of the people were looking on, with the greatest indifference ;
indeed, they are so famihar mth these aw^ul and bloody scenes, that they think as
little of them, yea, not so much, as they would of seeing a dead sheep, monkey, or
On arriving at Coomassie Mr. Freeman again witnessed these
scenes of darkness and of blood. The king had lost one of his
relations by death, and in consequence four human victims were
immediately sacrificed, and their mangled bodies were lying in
the streets, where a number of large hawks and turkey-buzzards
were hovering over them.
Throughout the day, (wTites Mr. Freeman,) I heard the horrid sound of the
death-drum, and was told in the evening that about twenty -five human victims had
been sacrificed, some in the town, and some in the surrounding villages ; the heads
of those killed in the villages being brought into the town in baskets. I fear there
will be more of this awful work to-morrow.
In two days forty human beings were immolated on this
Pagan altar, and their headless and naked bodies left in the
streets until they began to decompose ; and such was the callous
state of mind of the people, that many were seen walking about
and among the putrefying bodies, smoking their pipes witli
amazing indifference.
In a second Adsit which Mr. Freeman paid to the capital of
Ashantee in the latter end of 1841, he once more beheld the hor-
* Freeman's " Journal of a Mission to Ashanti," pp. 24, 28, 29.
NATIVE SUPERSTITION AND CRUELTY. 255
rid effects of this superstitious custom. Under date of Decem-
ber 1 7th, he writes : —
In the afternoon I heard that a chief had died, and that three human sacrifices
had been made in the town : the mangled victims were left in the streets as usual.
0 God, have mercy upon this beaighted people ! I saw a lad near my lodgings,
who is one of the king's executioners. He had decapitated a poor victim that
morning. He appeared to he from sixteen to eighteen years of age. I asked him
how many persons he had executed : he answered, " Eighty." 0 awful fact ! eighty
immortal spirits hurried into the eternal world, by the hands of a boy under eigh-
teen years of age, and he only one of a large number engaged in the same dreadful
employment ! *
On a subsequent occasion the same excellent missionary, on
walking into the town, saw two criminals seated on a block of
wood, in a street near the king's residence, each accompanied by
an executioner. In this case he witnessed a barbarous and hor-
rid spectacle, similar to that mentioned by Bowdich : " Two
knives were forced through the cheeks of each criminal, one on
each side, which deprived them of speech.^' This brutal prac-
tice, we are told, is adopted to prevent them from cursing the
king, or swearing the death of any person or persons whom
they might be disposed to mark out for destruction.
The Rev. George Chapman, writing from Coomassie, under
date of January 2d, 1844', says : —
The scenes I have been called to witness, during my short residence here,
have in many instances been of the most soul-harrowing description ; nor could I
have thought it possible that hinuan life should be so little cared for, or common
humanity be so foreign to the mind, as is the case in Kumasi. I do not exaggerate
when I say that, during the past four months, at least eight hundred persons have
fallen by the sacrificial knife, not one of whose dishonoiu-ed remains has been laid
in the grave. On several occasions I have seen the headless trunks of these poor
victims lying in heaps of from fifteen to twenty, the swine and turkey-buzzards
either greedily preying upon them, or standing by literally gorged with the flesh of
one's fellow-men. Often has my heart sickened at these most revolting spectacles,
and I have returned home to weep over and pray for a people so deeply sunk in
error, and so far from the way of peace. Often is the language of that beautiful
hymn commencing, " Saviour, whom our hearts adore," the language of my heart.
Great indeed will be the change when Kumasi, now mourning with the blood of
thousands, if not " millions, slain," shall " sound the mystery of redeeming love." O
may this happy consummation be hastened ! May Ashanti soon " stretch out her
hands unto God !" Surely the Claristian church, even in these days of " rebuke and
blasphemy," will continue to make special intercession for a part of the human
family so deeply degraded, and so greatly needing the kind interference and help of
those who themselves have tasted that the Lord is gracious. f
* Freeman's " Journal of a Mission to Ashanti," p. 128.
t " Wesleyan Missionary Report," 1844.
.ZOb WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
The Rev. Henry Wharton, another Wesleyan missionary
who was stationed in Ashantee in 1846-7, wrote as follows : —
The annual Yam Custom has passed off with its usual debasing ceremonies.
On the first sabbath after its commencement, a fat freeman— as is customary —
was sacrificed near the gate of the king's palace, and afterwards cut up by the
executioners, who danced about the town with pieces of the victim's flesh between
their teeth. They were all horribly disfigured, and most of them had the jaw and
other bones of sacrificed human beings strung around their necks. During the
day the greatest excitement prevailed. In the afternoon another man was immo-
lated at the sacred town of Bantama ; after which, the skulls of vanquished kings
and warriors, including that of Sir Charles Macarthy, were displayed in procession
through the town.
One of those horrifying tragedies which, alas ! are but too frequently acted at
the celebration of the above festival, was exhibited on the present occasion. The
facts are briefly these : — Previous to the Yam Custom of 1845, the principal chief
of Morpon (a large provincial town) was cruelly put to death by liis own people,
through some jealous feeling arising among them. Four spear-knives were thrust
through his cheeks, two on either side ; his limbs were amputated, and the
remaining fleshy parts of his body cut off" and shown to him with a view to aggra-
vate his sufferings. After several hours of the greatest possible torture, he was
despatched by decapitation. On the arrival of the Yam Custom of 1845, the
people who were guilty of this diabolical act purposely absented themselves, in
opposition to the desire and expectation of His Majesty Quako Duah. Their con-
tempt was, however, for the time passed over in silence. About two months
previous to the arrival of the Yam Custom of the present year. His Majesty, fearing
that the delinquents would again think proper to keep away from the approaching
festival, contrary to the constitutional usages of the country, sent one of his lin-
guists to them, requesting their attendance ; to secure which, some inducement was
held out which had the desired effect. On their arrival in Kumasi, several days
were allowed to elapse in silence. At the close of that period the king summoned
his principal chiefs and captains to attend at the palace, for the purpose of looking
into the Morpon " palaver." After several hours' investigation of the case, the peo-
ple of Morpon were pronounced "Guilty;" and the king issued orders for their
immediate arrest and imprisonment. The scene which then transpired cannot
easily be described. A body of men, consisting of several hundreds, rushed from
the palace to the quarters of the people in question, who were violently seized, and so
unmercifully beaten with sticks, that the blood flowed copiously from their persons.
Men, women, and children were hurried through the streets to the place of
imprisonment. Every article of which they were possessed was taken from them,
not excepting the loose drapery of native cloth which they wore. Three men were
beaten to death, and about twelve more were decapitated, principally chiefs and
linguists. The women, children, and a number of men, who were deemed inno-
cent, were subsequently liberated.*
More terrible still are the scenes which take place on the
death of some powerful chief or king. On these occasions
whole hecatombs of human beings are sacrificed, and the streets
are made to stream with gore. At the death of Adahunzan, one
* "Wesleyan Missionary Report," 1847.
NATIVE !^UPEUSTITIOX AND CRUELTY. 257
of the kings of Dahomj^, two hundred and eighty of his wives
fell as victims to the sauguinary superstition of the counti'y.
When Osai Quaraiiia died, the funeral custom was repeated every week for three
months, two hundred slaves being sacrificed, and twenty-five barrels of powder
being fired on each occasion ; but when the king's brother died, during the inva-
sion of Fantee, the king devoted three thousand victims, two thousand of whom
were Fantee prisoners, and nearly one thousand more were furnished by various
towns ; maldng in the whole about four thousand human beings who perished at the
grave of this royal personage.*
Such is the fearful extent to which these deeds of blood are
perpetrated, under the dictation of a debasing superstition. Nor
is this all; for the graves of the departed must in some instances
be annually " watered " with human blood. And " when the
king dies, Ashantee is, in fact, one vast Aceldama ; for all the
'customs^ which have been made for deceased subjects during
his reign, must be repeated by their families, simultaneously
with the 'custom^ which is celebrated, in all the excess of
extravagance and barbarity, for the departed monarch himself." f
Other cases might be mentioned in which human beings were
inhumanly tortured and put to death, sometimes at the mere
caprice of some cruel tyrant, or to gratify his notions of brutal
grandeur. The following fact furnishes a frightful corrobora-
tion of this statement : —
After a great victory achieved by the army of the king of Dahoray, the otficers
and sokbers having been hberally rewarded by the distribution of cowries and
cloth, the skulls of the vanquished enemy were ordered to be applied to the deco-
ration of the royal walls. The operators accordingly proceeded with their work,
till the skulls were all expended, when it appeared that there were not a sufficient
number for the completion of the task. On the defective part of the walls being
measured, and a calculation made, it was found that one hundred and twenty-seven
more heads were required, to finish this barbarous embellishment. The prisons,
therefore, where the wretched captives had been confined, were thrown open, and
the requisite number of devoted victims dragged forth to be slaughtered in cold
blood, for this hellish purpose. And this act of barbarity is said to have been
applauded by all present ! %
Mr. Freeman witnessed this horrible spectacle in 1843, in
a visit which he paid to Abomi, the capital of Dahomy.
In the preceding pages a tale of licentious wickedness, deep-
rooted superstition, and awful depravity has been told ; and it
would be easy to extend the recital to a much greater length ;
and even to add others of a more horrifying and diabolical cha-
racter ; for almost every crime which has polluted other parts of
the Heathen world is chargeable on Africa. But it is hoped
* Beecham's "Ashantee," p. 237. f Idem.
% Dalzel's " History of Dahomi," p. 190 (1735).
S
258 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
that enough has been said to give a tolerable idea of the demo-
ralized and degraded state of millions of the human race on that
vast continent. It may be truly said, in reference to Africa,
that "the whole head is sick, and the whole heart is faint."
But we cannot further enlarge. If the reader desires a more
detailed account of the moral and social condition of that people,
I would refer him to Beecham^s "Ashantee and the Gold-
Coast," East's " Western Africa," and to the works of Mungo
Park, Bosman, Meredith, Bowdich, Gray, Dupuis, and
the Landers. And those who wish to see at a glance, and
in few words, what many parts of this great continent is, I
would respectfully direct to Romans i. 21 — 32. In the deeply-
affecting account there given by the apostle of the Heathen
world in his day, the reader will find a correct portrait of the
present state of Western Africa.
It is, however, gratifying to know that "the gospel of Christ'^
is now, as it Avas in the days of the apostle, " the power of God
unto salvation to every one that believeth ; " and therefore, after
giving in the following chapter some account of the British set-
tlements on the Gambia, we shall proceed, in chronological
order, with a brief history of the missions, in which this truth
will be clearly demonstrated.
CHAPTER XIV.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1821—1824.)
Discovery of the Gambia — Long been an English River — Fort James — British
Settlement at St. Marj^'s — Commencement of the Wesleyan Missions — Messrs.
Baker and Morgan — First Impressions — Tentabar — Mandanaree and St.
Mary's — Erection of Mission-Premises at Mandanaree — The Missionaries visit
St. Mary's once a Week — First-Frnit — Sickness of the Missionaries — Rainy
Season — Mr. Baker removed to the West Indies — Mr. Bell appointed — His
Sickness and Death — Sketch of his Character — Mr. Lane sent from Sierra-
Leone — The Missionaries visit Mandanaree — St. Mary's — Letters from the
Brethren — Sickness of Mr. Lane — His Removal to Sierra-Leone — Mr. Lane's
Death — His Character — Death of Mr. Huddlestone — Sketch — Mrs. Huddle-
stone's Return to England — State of the Mission at Sierra-Leone — Messrs.
Piggott and Harte appointed — Their Arrival and Reception — Number of Mem-
bers in the Society.
The Gambia is almost entirely an English river, and has
been so for nearly the last two hundred years ; the attempts to
form settlements upon it having for that period been principally
confined to our own nation. It first became known as a river
of some magnitude about the middle of the fifteenth century.
Prince Henry of Portugal, having heard of this river, " coupled
with the wonderful accounts of tlio wealth of its banks,
employed Cadamosto, in 1454, to undertake a voyage of disco-
very thither.'^ The Portuguese, therefore, as at Sierra-Leone,
were the first European settlers at the Gambia. The great
object at this period, and previously, as stated in a preceding
chapter, was to obtain slaves ; and the ravages committed were
so great, that Prince Henry, who was eager for the trade, but
wished it to be carried on with as much humanity as was com-
patible with success, thought it necessary to make stringent
regulations to prevent those excesses.* Subsequently forts
were erected, and factories established, in different parts of the
river; and the trade chiefly consisted in "Negroes and gold, in
exchange for Portuguese goods." At TancroAvall, about forty
miles from the Atlantic, they had a considerable establishment,
"and built their houses in a difterent style from the Mandingoes."
* Bandinel, p. 18. From Cadamosto in Ramusio.
s 2
260 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
In the upper river they had several otlier factories and trading-
posts; so that, for a lengthened period, the Portuguese pos-
sessed nearly the exclusive commerce of this important stream.
In Jobson's voyage up the Gambia, in 1621, he met with "the
Tenda merchants at Setico," a town about four miles from tlie
river, and the largest he had seen in the country. This
" formed the highest point to which the Portuguese had carried
up their trade ; " and at this place " a considerable commerce
was carried on in slaves, salt, and gold." Soon after this the
English obtained a footing in the Gambia ; and, notwithstand-
ing " the jealousy of the Portuguese and IMulatto inhabitants,"
they succeeded in a short time in establishing a trade with the
natives, and formed several small factories and trading-posts on
the right and left bank of the river, as far as Fattatenda.
James Island was one of the first and most important of the
English settlements. Here a strong fort was built, and a small
garrison kept. This island is about thirty miles from the mouth
of the Gambia : it is very small, being only about two hundred
yards long and fifty broad, and is situated in the middle of the
stream, which is here from three to four miles wide. But the
French, on capturing it in 1688, destroyed the works. It was
resumed by the African Company at the commencement of the
last century ; and Francis IMoore, who was for several years
factor or superintendent for the Company at the different
trading stations on the Gambia, published a work, in 1735,
containing some interesting information on the. subject of the
trade, and the natives of the surrounding country. But though,
according to Moore's statement, " a salute " was generally
" fired by order of the governor " of James Island on the arrival
of vessels from England, it appears the fort was never entirely
restored to its original state.
Jillifi'ee stands opposite to Fort James, on the northern bank
of the river, in the kingdom of Barra, and is surrounded by a
fertile district. It has long been a noted place for trade, and is
rendered somewhat remarkable as being the landing-place of
Mungo Park in both his journeys into the interior. The first
was on the 21st of June, 1795; and the second, on the 9tli of
April, 1805. The French have a small factory called Albradar,
about a mile and a half below Jillifree, of which more will be
said hereafter.
During the Aruerican and continental wars, at the close of
the last and the beginning of the present century, the Senegal
and Gorec alternately belonged to the French and English ; and
the commerce of the Gambia was carried on for some years
THE GAMi5IA AND Sli;illiA-Li;ONii:. 261
during the latter period exclusively by the English traders from
Goree, though Fort James Avas still maintained and defended by
a few British traders and soldiers. But on the final restoration
of Senegal and Goree to the French, in 1816, exclusive posses-
sion of the Gambia was re-assured to the English by the treaty
of Paris, on the same footing as that of 1783.* The English
immediately turned their attention to the formation of a new
and larger settlement in the Gambia, for the protection and
extension of legitimate commerce, as well as for the suppression
of the iniquitous traffic in slaves. The place selected was the
island of St. Mary^s, about ten miles from the Atlantic, or the
cape of the same name.
St. Mary's is a small island on the south side of the
Gambia, about sixteen miles in circumference, and is sepa-
rated from the main-land by a narrow creek, called Sarra
Creek, or, more generally, "the Oyster Creek,'' from the quan-
tity and good quality of oysters, which grow spontaneously upon
the mangroves as they hang in the water.f It was purchased
by the British Government of the king of Combo. The island
is low, and in some parts swampy; but this locality was
chosen on account of the advantages which it afforded, both
for trade and for commanding the river by a garrison, as well as
for the harbour, Avhich furnished good anchorage for vessels of
almost any burden. Hither, therefore, the English merchants
and traders from Goree at once repaired, and commenced build-
ing temporary residences, until more substantial ones could be
erected. "The troops arrived there in March, 1816, in number
about fifty, besides a few natives, commanded by Captain
Grant." These fifty soldiers were Europeans, eight of whom
died during the first rains. In November of the same year,
" the town consisted of the commandant's house and a few
huts ;" and at that time they were busily employed in intrench-
* The following is the article of the treaty of 1783: — "Art. X. The Most
Christian king, on his part, guai'antees to the king of Great Britain the possession
of Fort James and of the river Gambia." (See Martin's " British Colonies," vol.
iv. p. 562.)
t This is the case in the West Indies, and some other warm climates : but about
two hundred years ago it appears that some attention was paid to this mode of
growing oysters. Hence an old historian, in speaking of Sclavonia and lllyricum, and
the islands contiguous thereto, says, " Near to this last island (Languste) is good
fishing for sprats ; " and it is reported of the natives, that they possess " an ai't
in making their trees to bring forth oysters, by bending down the boughs, and
staying them under the water with stones ; so as in two years there are so many
oysters fastened to them as is strange to see, and in the third year they arc very
good." (See IIeylyn's " Cosmographie," 1057, p. 55G.)
262
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
ing themselves, as they feared an attack from the natives, who
were displeased, it was said, at the English coming " to prevent
the smuggling of slaves." They were, however, unmolested,
and jiroceeded with the settlement. The town, which is situated
on the north-eastern extremity of the island, was called
Eathurst, in honour of the noble lord who was colonial secretary
when the buildings commenced. Major Gray, who called at St.
Mary's on his expedition into the interior in January, 1818, thus
speaks of it : " The settlement, although in its infant state, has
made a most rapid progress in improvement. Many fine sub-
stantial government-buildings have been latelj^ erected, and the
British merchants resident there have vied with each other in
the elegant and convenient arrangement of their dwelling-
houses and stores, all which are built with stone or brick, and
roofed with slates or shingles." At the commencement of the
following yeat the inhabitants amounted to eight hundred, and
they were increasing ; and already the prospect of a fair and
profitable trade was most encouraging ; the wood was partly
cleared away, and the place promised to be as healthy as any
part of the coast.
From the Sierra-Leone Gazette we learn that, in ten vessels,
there were consigned to London during the year 1819, from
Bathurst, the under- mentioned exports, on which were payable,
in Great Britain, the duties specified : —
EXPORTS.
DUTY.
Tons. cwt. qr.
lb.
£. S.
d.
Wax
....U2 li 1
6
9,463 15
7
Ivory . .
.... 3 12 1
12
217 10
0
Gum
1 1 1
26
12 18
0
Gold
130or. IWw;/.
\2gr.
Hides . ,
53,619 ,
1,340 9
6
Total duties, 11,034 13 1
In 1820 the population was upwards of one thousand, beside
the garrison ; and Captain Grant formed a school, and read
prayers on the forenoon of the sabbath-day. A strong desire
having been expressed to have a chaplain, a short time after
this, the Rev. llobert Hughes was sent, who arrived at Bathurst,
by way of Sierra-Leone, in March, 1821. This gentleman
usually " preached on the sabbath morning, and expounded in
the afternoon; and also on Tuesday and Thursday evenings."
On the establishment of this British settlement at St. Mary's,
the few soldiers at Fort James were removed, and the island,
principally on account of its inadequate size, was abandoned ;
and Fort James is now a heap of ruins. It was about this time
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
263
that the " French, for the purpose of securing a footing in the
river, dispatched an agent from Goree to establish a trading-
post, or comptoir, as they call it, at Albradar, under pretence
of their having formerly had a comptoir at that place." * The
result of this intrusion on the part of the French proved very
injurious to the English traders on the Gambia, as well as to
the general prosperity of the new colony ; and it cannot but be
deeply regretted that this infant and rising settlement, formed
as it was on the same humane and philanthropic principles as
the colony of Sierra-Leone, should have been retarded in its
progress by this unjustifiable conduct of the French.
It was well known that, in the year 1820, the French Slave-
Trade had swelled to a more enormous extent than at any
former period, the number of slave-ships on the Coast being
almost incredible. But, not content with reviving the traffic on
the Senegal, the French slave-traders actually entered the Gam-
bia. The following extract from the " Fifteenth Report of the
African Institution," published iu 1821, will more fidly exhibit
this :—
As a further proof that the statement of the cessation of the French Slave-Trade
at Senegal and its neighbourhood is not correct, it may be added, that when
Governor Macarthy visited Bathurst, in the river Gambia, in the month of August
last, on his way to Europe, he learnt, on undoubted authority, that the Slave-Trade
was at that time carried on with great activity by various merchants, both of Sene-
gal and Goree. These persons were pointed out to him ; and it was added, that
they had estabbshed agents for this purpose at a small village called Albrada, in
the river Gambia, about forty miles above its mouth.
xUbrada was formerly a French factory dependent on Goree. By the treaty of
1783, it will be seen that France relinquished all right to its occupation. Indeed,
by the terms of that treaty, which has not since undergone any modification, it
clearly appears that the river Gambia was as effectually and unreservedly ceded to
Great Britain, as the river Senegal was to France : and as France would fairly
object to our attempting to re-estabhsh ourselves on any part of the Senegal, or
even to navigate that river at all ; so are we entitled to maintain the same exclu-
sive right of occupation and navigation in respect to the Gambia.
Since the British establishment of Bathurst was formed on the island of St.
Mary's, near the mouth of the river, no French vessel has been allowed to enter or
leave the river without undergoing an examination. Notwithstanding this restric-
tion, however, a very considerable Slave-Trade is carried on by the French factors
of Albrada throughout the whole length of the river Gambia ; for, although the
autliorities at Bathuj-st do not permit any vessel with slaves on board to pass that
settlement, yet they are carried in canoes to the left bank of the river, and thenCe
conveyed by land to Cacho or Cuzamens, whence they are shipped for the West
Indies. By these means the whole of that noble river, which would otherwise be
entirely free from this traffic, is, from one end to the other of its navigable course,
* Martin's " British Colonics," vol. iv. p. .'J63.
284
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
exceeding one thousand miles, made the scene of the atrocities of the Slave-Trade :
and thus not only is the progress of civilization and improvement in that fertile
region retarded, and the natives prevented from pursuing a course of peaceful
iudustiy and heneficial intercourse, but wars are excited among them, and the sur-
rounding districts are involved in depredation and hlood. Such being the case, it
appears to be highly expedient that the British Government should claim the strict
execution of the provisions of the treaty of 1783. This measure is pressed on us,
under existing circumstances, by the highest moral considerations ; and Great
Britain, therefore, seems bound to vindicate her exclusive right to the navigation of
this river, were it only to deliver our sulFering fellow-creatures, in that quarter of
the globe, from the violence and cupicbty of the slave-traders. This subject, the
Du-ectors believe, is now under discussion between the two Governments.
The subject was discussed between the two Governments ;
for representations setting forth the injurious effects of Albradar
on the trade of St. Mary's, as well as its being a market for the
slave-dealers, were forwarded by memorial to the secretary of
state, from the English merchants at the Gambia. But, " un-
fortunately," as Mr, Montgomery Martin, in his " History of
the British Colonies," says, '• this was not resisted at the time
by the English commandant. Colonel Grant, for want of suffi-
cient information on the nature of the treaties; and every
attempt made since to dislodge them by fair means, has failed
of success. It is but justice to our Government to add, that the
most persevering remonstrances have been addressed in vain to
the French Government on this subject."
The French, therefore, retain the possession of Albradar to
this day, in defiance of the treaty, and despite the repeated
remonstrances of the English Government, as well as to the
great annoyance and injury of the fair traders at the British
settlements, whom I have frequently heard bitterly complain of
this encroachment on the part of the French. And well they
might ; for, independent of tlie French Slave-Trade, as cariied
on in that factory, as well as in the upper river, for many years,
which gave tliem a pecuniary advantage over the honest and
honourable English trader, there were certain colonial duties
levied on various articles of merchandise at St. Mary's, to which
the French at the small factory of Albradar were not subject ;
and, as a natural consequence, the English merchants and
traders could not compete vvith them, even in a fair and legiti-
mate commerce.
But, notwithstanding these vexatious annoyances and draw-
backs, the British settlement gradually advanced ; and, as we
shall see presently, an additional one was in a few years formed
in the upper river. At Bathurst, the article of bees'-wax soon
amounted to two hundred tons annuallv ; and in the years
THE GAMBIA AND SIERKA-LEONE.
265
1823 and 1823 the article of gold had increased so much, that,
in each of these years, from tliree to four thousand ounces of
that precious metal were exported. The trade also increased in
ivory, hides, and other useful commodities; and several ship-
loads of fine timber of the mahogany kind were sent to London,
and met with a ready market. The population of St. Mary's in
1823 was 1,845 : forty-five of these were Europeans, of whom
eight were females. There were one hundred and thirty-five
Mulattoes, male and female, adults and children. Tlic others
were principally Blacks, with the exception of a few strangers.
In 1826 the population was about tlie same, there being a little
increase of Blacks, but a decrease of Europeans. In 1833 there
were thirty-six Whites, five being females ; seventy-five Mulat-
toes ; and the rest Blacks : making a total of 2,740. This did
not include the garrison, which consisted of about one hundred
and fifty of the Royal African Corps.*
The Gambia had been recommended to the Wesleyau Mis-
sionary Committee in London, as an eligible situation for a new
mission, by the excellent and benevolent Sir Charles Macarthy,
the friend and patron of all Protestant missions on the Coast ;
and, at the Conference of 1820, Messrs. J. Baker and Morgan
were appointed. f
Mr. Morgan landed at St. Mary's, direct from England, on
the 8th of February, 1821 ; and, having a note of introduction
to Mr. Dodd, he was kindly received by that gentleman. ''The
morning after my arrival," writes Mr. Morgan, "Mr. Dodd
accompanied me to the government-house, and introduced me
to the commandant, Captain Stepney, who very kindly expressed
his approbation of the object of my mission, and promised to do
any thing he could for its furtherance." He was also intro-
duced to all the respectable merchants in the colony, and on
" the following sabbath preached, at the government-house, to
the Europeans, the soldiers from the barracks, and to a great
number of re-captured slaves." But "the brutal Mretchedncss
of the natives surpassed all his previous conception of human
* These were Blacks from the West Indies, and re-captured Negroes, with
European officers ; the roortality among the white troops heing so great, that the
idea of keeping up a sulKcient supply of white soldiers was found impracticable.
It is stated that, during the years 1825 and 1826, there were sent to the Gambia,
at three separate periods, three hundred and ninety-seven English troops, and that
out of that number " in nineteen months two hundred and seventy-nine perished."
t W. Walker's name stands in the Minutes with that of John Baker ; but he
Mas sent by the Committee to the aborigines of New South Wales; and Mr. John
Morgan was sent to the Ganiliia in his stead.
266
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA,
misery and degradation. He was even tempted to think tliem
inferior to the human species, and incapable of benefiting by
his labours. Having walked about among them for several
days, striving in vain to make those who professed to under-
stand English, understand the object of his coming among
them, he turned a wistful eye to the vessel from which he had
landed, and wished in his heart that, consistently with his duty
to those who sent him, he could immediately return in her
to England." Such were Mr. Morgan's first impressions, as
expressed by himself. But, on the arrival of his colleague, Mr.
Baker, about a month after this, his " doubts of success were
soon removed."
Mr. John Baker, it will be recollected, had laboured with
great zeal and success among the same class of people at Sierra-
Leone, for two or three years ; and " no sooner did Mr. Baker
begin to preach to them in their own dialect, with which his
services at Sierra-Leone had rendered him familiar, than an
awakening to a consciousness of guilt and danger took place,
and several began to inquire, ' What must I do to be saved ? '
A little societ}^ of these inquirers after salvation was soon
formed ; several of w hom were free emigrants from Sierra-
Leone, and had profited by Mr. Baker's ministry at that
place."
Tentabar, some distance up the south bank of the river, had
been pointed out as a suitable place to commence a mission ;
and a small trading-vessel sailing up the river presented an
opportunity for the missionaries to proceed to the place of their
appointment. But Mr. Baker, having an attack of fever, and
being previously emaciated by labour and sickness on the Coast,
was unable then to undertake the journey. It was therefore
determined that Mr. Morgan should go alone, to see the king,
obtain his permission to settle on his land, look out for an
eligible situation, &c. On his arrival, and making known his
object, the king readily granted him permission to settle in any
part of his kingdom ; but significantly added, " I advise you to
buihl your house as near the river as you can ; then, if any of
my people should attempt to injure you, you can jump into a
canoe, and get out of the way of them." This Avas as much as
to say, " I cannot engage to protect you." Other circumstances
combined to make an impression on the mind of JNIr. Morgan,
that Tentabar Avas not suitable for a missionary establishment ;
and he returned to St. INIary's, to consult with his colleague,
who concurred in his opinion ; and they then resolved to look
out for a settlement in the kingdom of Combo, from whence
THE GAMBIA AND SIERKA-LEONE. 267
they might be able to visit the people at St. Mary^s, already
benefited by their labours.
A present to an African king is an invariable custom^ pre-
vious to an interview ; and having ascertained that scarlet clotli
was in high estimation among the native chiefs, they bought a
large piece of a merchant on the Coast, and a small horse, for a
present to the king of Combo. On May 3d, 1821, covered with
the scarlet clotli, from head to tail, they led the horse away to
the king, who Avas much pleased with their blazing present.
He readily granted them permission to dwell on his land ; not,
of course, from respect to their religion, (for of that he kneiv
nothing,) but from a hope that white men living in his country
would promote trade. Having spent the night in the best
lodgings the king could afford them, they set out in the morn-
ing, guided by one of the king's slaves, to look for an eligi-
ble locality. They soon found that the people regarded them as
unAvelcome neighbours, as from place to place they expressed
determined opposition to their settling near them. In vain the
missionaries tried to convince them that their object was only to
do them good. '' We have heard," they said, " of white men
before, and know that you want to steal our children, and make
slaves of them. If the king settles you here, we will all leave."
At night the missionaries reached a place called Mandanaree,
fatigued and famishing with thirst. They found in the town an
old Negro, known in the British settlement, who granted them
permission to lie down at the door of his hut for the night ; but
he had nothing but a little dirty water to give them to drink.
Having made their bed of palm-leaves, they lay down ; but,
from the stinging of musquitoes, and from the noise of Avild
beasts, though fatigued, they had but little sleep. Their situa-
tion was now peculiarly trying. The rainy season was just at
hand, and they were without home or shelter, in the midst of
rude and unfriendly savages. But, finding the neighbourhood
of Mandanaree an eligible place, situated on the south bank of
the Gambia, and not more than eight miles from Bathurst, they
fixed upon an elevated spot, and determined to locate amongst
this people. In the mean time, they took lodgings in the
miserable hut of the old Negro ; and, having obtained their
tools from St. Mary's, proceeded to cut down trees for the
erection of their house, which they completed with the help
of a few natives, after several weeks' hard labour. During the
erection of the building, and subsequently, the brethren alter-
nately visited St. Mary's once a week, and sometimes both
went together.
268
WESTEKN COAST OP AFillCA.
lu a letter to the Missionary Conimittee, dated Maadanaree,
May 26th, 1821, Mr. Baker thus writes : " In preaching, we
can do nothing here till we have learned the language. In the
mean time, we go to St. Mary^s every Saturday afternoon in a
canoe, and return on Monday morning: we meet our little
class early on Sunday morning, attend the chaplain^s preaching
at ten a.m., preach at two p.m. to about one hundred people,
and in the evening at six, to frequently more than double that
number. Our intermediate time on the sabbath is devoted to
visiting the poor people ; and on Monday we have an oppor-
tunity to procure anything we want for ourselves or the settle-
ment. This at present is all our preaching, and must be, till
the language is our own ; and we hope by the end of the rains
to have made considerable progress."* Speaking of the people
at Mandanaree, Mr. Baker, in the same letter, says : " Their
character is bad enough. As masters, they are proud, insolent,
and cruel. As servants, they are fawning, hypocritical, and
extremely dishonest. It seems as though Mohammedanism had
made them almost, if not altogether, the worst of men; and
the generality of them think themselves authorized to cheat
and steal from Avhite people at every opportunity. In this
kingdom, however, liberty of conscience is allowed. Tlie king
himself is a Pagan ; and so are the greater part, if not all, of
the people of this town ; yet their Paganism is mixed up with
the worst Mohammedan superstitions." A yearly tribute of
twenty dollars was to be paid for the land; and Mr. Baker
further remarks : " We are at present busily engaged in
cutting down the bush, and building a temporary house of
rind-trees, split for posts, and bamboos, woven for the sides, and
plastered ; which, should our mission, under God's blessing,
succeed, will be our school-house. We can both say with the
apostle, ' We labour with our hands.' "
Mr, Morgan about this time writes : — " The following Satur-
day, (May 12th,) I went to St. Mary's, to preach on the
sabbath. In the evening, soon after I arrived at my lodgings,
a poor woman visited me, who had met in class a few times, and
said to me, ' O, massa, my heart trouble me too much. I see
myself lost sinner.' I exhorted her to believe in Christ, and
explained the nature of justification by faith. She left me with
her sins as a burden too intolerable to be borne. The next
morning I met her in the class, and was delighted to hear her
express her religious joys. She said that, after she left me the
* " Missionary Notices," vol. iii. p. 151.
THE GAMBIA A\D SIERRA-LEONE. 269
preceding night, ' mc went into tlie bush, and put me knee
down on the ground, and I praj^, I pray, till all my trouble go
away, and my heart be full of joy. Me glad too much, and I
praise my Massa Jesus ; and then I pray for my poor husband,
that my Massa Jesus w ould save him/ " *
Here we have recorded the "first-fruit" of this mission, the
conversion of one soul, with its invariable characteristic, a con-
cern for others, especially those near to it : " And then I pray
for my poor husband, tliat my Massa Jesus would save him !"t
On the following sabbath, Mr. Morgan was again at St. Mary^s,
" met the class, and was happy to find a good spirit among the
people. I preached to them twice."
On the 14th of June, he says, " We left our lodgings, and
became inhabitants of our own building : the change was much
for the best, although our new building is far from a com-
modious one." From the elevation of the spot which they had
chosen, the missionaries indulged a hope that their settlement
would have proved comparatively healthy ; but in this they
were disappointed. In addition to this, the " hard labour" and
fatigue, in " felling trees " and "labouring with their hands"
in the erection of the mission-premises, soon proved too much
for Mr. Baker^s previously-impaired constitution ; and before
the rains commenced, " every two or three days he was attacked
with fever." INIr. Morgan had but recently arrived, fresh from
the balmy air of England; and being "blessed with a strong
constitution," the climate on him for some time " produced no
sensible effect." He laboured on under the warm rays of a
vertical sun, and retired every evening, "much fatigued;" but
this he " considered an advantage ; for, having very uncom-
fortable lodgings, if not fatigued, he could not sleep at all."
But even this "strong man" soon "bowed down" under the
withering effects of the climate, and was attacked with the
country fever. This was on July 14th : his colleague was at
the same time ill in bed, but recommended him to hasten to
St. Mary's for medical advice. Mr. Morgan writes : " Assisted
by two men, I Avalked to the canoe, and at evening reached
St Mary's." The first night, he lodged at Mr. Grant's, and
then with difficulty was placed in the military hospital, where
he remained nearly two months. This was the worst part of
the rainy season, when every European is more or less attacked
* " Missionary Notices," vol. iii. p. 2G0.
t Some account of the consistent life and happy death of this first convert will
be given hereafter.
270 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
with fever, which often proves fatal, especially to new-comers.
It did so this year to several; and, among the rest, the
worthy chaplain, and his excellent wife, were both cut off
in the midst of their plans of usefulness. Mr. Hughes, the
chaplain, as we have previously stated, arrived in March, and
died on the 24th of August ; and Mrs. Hughes, on the 28th ;
leaving two very young children, and one son about fourteen
years of age, who had remained in England, to mourn their
loss.
The two Wesleyan missionaries were, however, mercifully
preserved, though both of them suffered much ; and there can
be no doubt that their sickness was superinduced and aggra-
vated in a great measure by over and incautious exertion. But
as Mr. Baker was an invalid on his arrival at St. Mary's, it was
not intended that he should remain longer than was neces-
sary to commence the mission ; and in the end of the year
Mr. W. Bell was sent to supply his place, and " Mr. Baker was
removed to the West Indies to save his life." After labouring
for a short time in the West Indies, and in British America,
the state of his health obliged him to return home. In Eng-
land his health became established, and he laboured in several
important circuits with great diligence and acceptance for many
years.*
Mr. Bell arrived at the Gambia on the 28th of January, 1822,
" in good health ; " and Mr. Morgan was delighted with the
prospect of having in him an efficient colleague, as he con-
sidered him " a good subject for the climate,'' but hoped he
would " be cautioned, by his indiscretion, against too much
exertion." His knowledge of agriculture also rendered him an
additional acquisition to the mission. But, alas ! how short-
sighted is man ! And how little do missionaries abroad, or
even medical men at home, know as to who will be able to
stand against the pestilential atmosphere of Western Africa !
Though Mr. Bell had arrived " in good health," and at the most
healthy season of the year, and appeared to be " a good subject
* This excellent minister died at Brighton, November 17tli, 1845. A brief,
but faitliful, record of him is printed in the Minutes of Conference for 1846. But
as it is announced in the title-page of this work that a sketch of those missionaries
only who died in Africa is to be here given, I am reluctantly compelled to omit
any further remarks respecting this devoted missionary, except to say, that in the
above memoir it is correctly stated, that in Africa " he labom-ed with great zeal,
fidelity, and success," and that in England he " retained liis missionary ardour to
the last." I may also be permitted to add, that many African children, 1 doubt
not, will be " the crown of his rejoicing in the day of the Lord."
THE GAMBIA AND STERRA-LEONE. 271
for the climate;" and tliougli lie, doubtless, profited by Mr.
Morgan's past indiscretion, and by his brotherly advice in other
respects, yet the great Head of the church, whose "thoughts
are not as our thoughts,^' "numbered his days;" and those
were " few ;" for he lived only forty-six days from the period of
his landing in Africa till he was safely landed " in a nobler
clime."
William Bell was a native of the neighbourhood of Louth, in
Lincolnshire, where he acted in the capacity of a local preacher
for several years, with general acceptance. His piety was steady
and consistent, and was tested and exemplified under peculiarly
trying circumstances. Soon after his arrival in Africa, he was
assailed by a violent fever, which continued for several weeks.
When free from the delirium caused by his disorder, he
expressed himself to his colleague as having " no doubt of his
acceptance through Christ;" and one of the brethren, who
wrote of this bereavement, says, " Though his race was short,
his prize was secured, and his exit peaceful ; " and so satisfied
was he with the closing scene that he adds, " May my end be
like his!" Much more we are unable to give: but, from his
being the first missionary who fell in the Gambia at an early
stage of the mission, and after so short a residence, the touching
lines of the Bard of Sheffield, written on the melancholy death
of another Wesleyan missionary, in a different part of the same
great field, are not inapplicable to this excellent young man : —
" How did the love of Christ — that, like a chain,
Drew Christ himself to Bethlehem from his throne,
And bound Him to the cross — thy heart constrain,
Thy willing heart, to make that true love known !
But not to build, was thine appointed part.
Temple where temple never stood before ;
Yet was it well the thought was in thy heart, —
Thou know'st it now, — thy Lord required no more."
Mr. Bell died at St. Mary's, on the 15th of March, 1822,
aged twenty-seven years.
Mr. Morgan was now alone, and not in a very good state of
health ; but the news of Mr. Bell's death having reached Sierra-
Leone before Mr. Baker found an opportunity of sailing from
thence to the West Indies, the brethren Baker and Huddlestone
thought it advisable that Mr. Lane should at once proceed
to the assistance of Mr, Morgan until further help came from
England. Mr. Lane therefore arrived at the Gambia on the
272 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
11th of May, and found Mr. Morgan was " very unwell," and
some weeks after this he was " still feeble." But cheered with
the presence and hearty co-operation of a colleague, he was
"not weary in well-doing;" and, in company with Mr. Lane,
soon after his arrival, he proceeded to Mandanaree; but their
prospects there were not cheering, owing to their being ignorant
of the Mandingo language ; and the choice of the place, from
there "being very little water, and that very bad," was con-
sidered "an unhappy one." St. Mary's, in the mean time,
occupied a considerable share of their attention. The popula-
tion, at this period, amounted to upwards of two thousand ; and
though the greater part of these were Jollofs and Mandingoes,
there were some discharged (Black) soldiers, and a few liberated
Africans, who partially understood the English language, and to
whom the missionaries could preach so as to be tolerably
understood. In a letter, dated St. Mary's, June 25th, 1822,
Mr. Lane writes : — " Our labours here are not great at present :
we preach twice on the sabbath, and meet a class, and hold
a prayer-meeting in the week : we have also a small day-
school at our lodgings ; but this is attended with inconvenience,
through not having a house of our own for that purpose." In
a joint letter from Messrs. Morgan and Lane, dated August
15th, they write : " We have taken a house in JoUof-Town, at
four dollars per month, where we preach twice on the sabbath,
and once in the week. At this place we keep a day-school for
children, and take the care of it a week each alternately. We also
preach at Soldiers' -Town twice on the sabbath, and once in the
week ; and on Sunday mornings we meet the class at this
place."
The rains having again set in, the brethren confined their
labours principally to St. Mary's, having here two preaching-
places, with a small week-day school, and an infant society.
But, though their " labours were not great," yet, owing to
repeated attacks of sickness, they met with considerable inter-
ruptions. Mr. Lane was ill with fever from the 7tli of September
to the 16th of October : he had been to Cape St. Mary's for a
week, but " returned no better than when he went; " and towards
the close of the rains, by the advice of his medical attendant and
friends, he sailed for Sierra-Leone, intending to return as soon
as his health would permit.
Mr. Morgan was therefore once more left alone; but some
good had been achieved at St. IMary's ; enough, as Mr. Morgan
expressed it, " to compensate for the time, money, health, and
life, which have been already expended." Nor was he dis-
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 273
couraged by the aflflictions and difficulties with which he was
surrounded. About this time he writes: "Our prospects of
eflfecting much at present are certainly not cheering: yet I
think I can look through the cloud which at present surrounds
us, and behold distant prospects of success."
Mr. Lane arrived safe at Sierra-Leone, and found Mr.
Huddlestone in tolerable health and spirits. These two breth-
ren, it should be remembered, had laboured harmoniously toge-
ther for a considerable time previous to Mr. Lane being sent
to the Gambia, and God had blessed their labours ; but during
the former part of the year some misunderstanding arose in the
society at Free-Town, between the settlers and Maroons, which
led to a division : a local preacher having headed the party,
they took one of the chapels, and called themselves West-
African Methodists. This necessarily led to a reduction of the
number of members, though it would appear the missionaries
continued to supply the chapel. Matters were, however, now
in a more settled state ; and Mr. Lane, under date of December
16th, writes : "To-day I have called upon some of our members
and friends. I am disposed to think that the providence of
God has brought me back to Sierra-Leone, as also that by its
direction I went to the Gambia : therefore I am thankful for
both." Mr. Lane at the same time expressed himself as being
" happy in finding our humble society in a prosperous state, and
most of the pious Maroons in fellowship with us. The word
of the Lord is blessed to those who hear ; a serious deportment
and fixed attention are conspicuous in the congregations ; and,
above all, souls are brought to a saving knowledge of God and
of Jesus Christ." As far as his strength would permit, Mr. Lane
again co-operated with Mr. Huddlestone in carrying on that
interesting mission, and preaching he designated as his "most
delightful employment." But he never fully recovered from his
serious illness at the Gambia, and was consequently unable to
return thither. On the 27th of March he had another severe
attack of fever. It was hoped, with the Divine blessing upon
the prompt and able treatment of " Dr. Shower, the oldest
physician in tiie colony," that in a few days he would recover ;
but it was otherwise ordered. Mr. Huddlestone, shortly after
this, writes : " Our beloved brother is now ' as water spilt upon
the ground, which cannot be gathered up again;' and his
liberated spirit has fled to the realms of light and immortality.
How mysterious a providence ! How happy a visitation to him !
how painful to us ! "
274 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
George Lane was a native of Bath, and was a young man
of considerable promise. He arrived at Sierra-Leone as a
Wesleyan missionary early in 1821, where he laboured with
diligence and fidelity, with occasional interruptions, arising from
sickness ; nor did he labour in vain, either there or at the
Gambia. At Sierra-Leone, especially, he witnessed some graci-
ous manifestations of the Divine presence and power, particu-
larly whilst preaching to the re-captured Negroes, and in the
quarterly love-feasts. He was a kind and an affectionate col-
league, a faithful and successful missionary; in life highly
respected, and at his death greatly lamented. This was mani-
fested by the "numerous assembly" who attended the funeral.
The members of the society especially, writes Mr. Huddlestone,
"mingled their tears with ours;" and the colonial chaplain, the
Rev. S. Flood, kindly read the funeral service over the corpse,
which was conveyed to the Wesleyan chapel for that purpose.
It was afterwards removed to the colonial burial-ground, and
Mr. Huddlestone " committed him to the grave." Mr. Lane
died at Free-Town, Sierra-Leone, in great peace, April 16th,
1823, in the twenty-eighth year of his age, and in the third of
his ministry.
The loss of Mr. Lane was severely felt by INIr. and INIrs.
Huddlestone, as well as by the society and other friends ; but,
painful as it was, it was shortly followed by another mysterious
dispensation of Providence. Scarcely had three months passed
away, when he who had committed his "respected and much-
loved brother to the grave," was himself called to "walk
through the valley of the shadow of death ; " and the mission,
by this rapid succession of deaths, was left destitute ; with four
chapels and their congregations without a missionary !
John Huddlestone, it will be recollected, took charge of
this station on Mr. Baker's removal to the Gardbia early in
1821. He was a sincere and upright Christian, and a laborious
and enterprising missionary, being anxious to carry the gospel
into the regions beyond the limits of the colony. He had a
good constitution, having passed the first rains in comparative
health, though about thirty Europeans, that season, went to
their long home. Indeed, he continued to labour, with but slight
interruptions from ill health, till within a few weeks of his
death. In the month of April, 1823, he wrote : "My dear ^dfe
and myself are both well, and know not how to be sufficiently
thankful for this blessing, much less for all the goodness of the
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 275
Lord our God." But though he had withstood the country
fever for nearly three years without his health being materially
affected, the yellow fever was too much for him : few, indeed,
who are attacked with that malignant and dreadful disease ever
recover ; and during this year it prevailed along the coast, and
proved fatal to many Europeans at Sierra-Leone. Mr. Huddle-
stone had been ill the latter end of June and the beginning of
July; but, on the 14th of that month, the fever returned with
greater violence ; and it soon became evident from the colour of
the skin, that his complaint was the dreadful disease just men-
tioned. Mrs. Huddlestone writes: "He had much bodily
suffering; but patience had its perfect Avork in him. He was
resigned to the will of God, and, at every interval of ease, he
cried, ' O how good the Lord is ! How gently he deals with
me! Praise him for his mercies!'" Two days before his
decease he was informed that there was very little hope of his
recovery. " He then said, he had not a doubt of his acceptance
with God, through the blood of his Saviour ; that his prospect
of heaven was glorious. ' Yes,' added he, ' I shall be carried
by angels into glory.' " He charged his wife " to tell the Com-
mittee that he had exerted every nerve in the cause of the
mission, and that he was dying happy in the faith." This event
took place on the 20th of July, 1823, in the twenty- seventh year
of his age.
Mrs. Huddlestone, soon after this painful bereavement, left
the colony, and arrived safe and in good health in England.
She furnished the Missionary Committee with the particulars
of her husband's sickness and lamented death, the substance ot
which is embodied in the preceding brief sketch. From the
members of the society, also, the Committee received a pleasing
testimony to the character and usefulness of the excellent men
who had laid down their lives in the work of God, and a press-
ing entreaty to have ministers sent out to them. The Maroon
chapel at Free-Town was then occupied, and would contain six
hundred persons ; and the new chapel at Portuguese-Town, to
which His Excellency the Governor Sir Charles Macarthy had
kindly presented two donations, was finished, and the mission
was in a rising and promising state when these painful visita-
tions of death took place. The leaders, in the mean time, held
services on the sabbath in each of the chapels ; and in the
Maroon chapel prayers were regularly read every Sunday
morning, and occasionally one or two of the leaders gave
exhortations.
T 2
276 WESTERN COAST OV AFRICA.
But the society was not long left destitute of pastoral care
and the ministry of the word of life. Two heroic men, who
" counted not their lives dear to them " in comparison of the
salvation of their fellow-creatures, gave the preference to this
post of danger. These were Messrs. Piggott and Harte, who,
after a voyage of five weeks, arrived at Sierra-Leone, March
19tli, 1824. Soon after their arrival Mr. Piggott wrote :
" Never could two missionaries be more joyfully received : the
news of our arrival soon spread; and to see the poor Blacks
running from one house to another to inform their brethren and
sisters, lifting up their eyes and hands towards heaven, thanking
and praising God, was such a scene as we never witnessed befoi'e ;
and we could not for a moment regret having left home to
preach salvation to those of whom it may be said, ' The fields
are white already to harvest.'" On the following day INIr.
Piggott " examined the class-papers, and met the leaders ; and
was happy in finding that the society had been wonderfulh'
preserved." The number of members in the societ}' at that
time was eighty-one, with several on trial; and, owing to the
prejudicial effects of the climate on European constitutions, the
stay of missionaries was limited to two years.
CHAPTER XV.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1824—1827.)
The two Stations blended for the Sake of chronological Order — The Gambia —
Mandanaree — St. Mary's — Mr. Morgan visits the upper River, with the
Commandant — Formation of a new Settlement — Named after Sir Charles
Macarthy — Its Situation, &c.— Mr. Morgan's Return to St. Mary's — Extracts
from his Journal — Missionary Fruit — Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Hawkins — Mr.
Morgan visits Macarthy's Island — Excessive Heat — Extracts from his Journal
— Attacked with Fever — Retiu-ns to St. Mary's — The Mission-House and
Chapel finished — Communication from Mr. Morgan and Mr. Hawkins — Sick-
ness of the Missionaries — Sierra-Leone — Death of Mr. Harte — Sketch —
Communications fi'om Mr. Piggott at Sierra-Leone — The Gambia — Return
of Mr. Morgan to England — Reflection on the Result of Missionary Labour at
the Gambia — Communication from Mr. Hawkins — Mr. Piggott — Sierra-
Leone — The Appointment of Messrs. Dawson, Courties, and May — Arrival
of Mr. and Mrs. Dawson at Sierra-Leone — Death of Mrs. Dawson — Joint
Letters from Messrs. Piggott and Dawson — The Gambia — The Arrival of
Messrs. Courties and May at Sierra-Leone — The Gift of Tongues — Negro
Patois — The Day of Pentecost — Great Diversity of Nations at Sierra-Leone —
Prevalence of the English Language — The Holy Spirit graciously vouchsafed,
producing Fruit — Mr. Piggott's Return to Eagland — Mr. Dawson proceeds to
the Gambia to succeed Mr. Hawkins, who also returns to England — Both
these Brethren had remained beyond the prescribed Terra of Service — Mr.
Piggott remains in England — Mr. Hawkins goes to the West Indies.
In giving a connected view of the rise and progress of the
Wesleyan missions in this interesting part of the great moral
field, with a brief notice of the deaths which so frequently
occurred, it will be necessary now to blend the two stations at
Sierra-Leone and the Gambia together, and, for the sake of
keeping up a chronological account, frequently to pass from
one to the other.
Mr. Morgan, it will be remembered, was left alone at the
Gambia at the close of 1822. The mission at Mandanaree had
been suspended on account of the state of his health ; and when
he recovered, the work at St. Mary's fully occupied his atten-
tion. Here the little society had increased from twelve to
twenty-four ; and as there was little or no fruit at Mandanaree,
as the water was very bad, and as other openings more favour-
able presented themselves in the upper river, this place was
ultimately abandoned. Mr. Morgan took up his residence at
278 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
St. Mary's, where, in addition to the day-school for children,
he opened an evening school for adults, which, with preaching
on different parts of the island, gave him full employment.
At the heginning of March, 1823, Major Grant, the com-
mandant at St. Mary's, sailed up the river for the purpose of
selecting a suitable place for a new and additional mercantile
settlement, and at the same time visiting the different chiefs
near the river, to promote a good feeling and understanding
between them and the traders. INIr. Morgan accompanied him
in this expedition, with a view to the extension of the Wesleyan
mission. Each of the kings whom the major visited expressed a
great desire that the most advantageous place for the new settle-
ment might be found in his own dominions. Some endeavoured
to persuade the commandant, that the people beyond them were
so vile and malignant that strangers could not go near them,
without danger of being shot with poisoned arrows from the
thicket. Having, however, proceeded without molestation as
far as Cantalicunda, near the falls of Barracunda, a distance of
from five to six hundred miles from the Atlantic, they returned
and fixed upon Lemon Island, in the king of Kattaba's domi-
nions ; this being about mid^vay between Cantahcunda and St.
Mary's. In their way up, on passing this place, they found the
king of Kattaba in his camp, embroiled in war with a young
prince called Kemmingtan, who was endeavouring to establish a
kingdom for himself in Kattaba's land, for which he sought
to justify himself on the ground of a family feud. King
Kattaba's father had slain Kemmiugtan's father by cutting
off his head, which the son considered it his duty to avenge
by exact retaliation, or, if he could not, it must descend as
a duty to the next generation.* INIajor Grant tried to put a
stop to this war ; but Kemmingtan refused to see him, alleging,
as an excuse, that he had no yreegree that would insure his
safety so near the river. Lemon Island, or Janjamberry, which
was the native name, being considered the most eligible situa-
tion which the major had seen for the establishment of the new
settlement, and the king of Kattaba being much straitened by
the war, a bargain for the land was easily struck. t The union-
jack was at once raised on it; and from respect to the excellent
governor at Sierra-Leone, who had manifested great interest in
the welfare of the Gambia, it was named Macarthy's Island. A
* We have already mentioned this desperate chief, and shall have occasion to do
so again, probably more than once.
t An annual custom being aftcnvards paid to the king.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
279
mud-walled fort, seventy-four feet in length, ten feet high, and
three feet in thickness all round, with a bastion at each corner,
was speedily erected, which was called Fort George, in honour
of His Majesty George the Fourth ; and a Black sergeant, with
thirteen Black soldiers, were left to occupy and protect it. With
the concurrence of the major, Mr. Morgan fixed on a lot of land
for his missionary establishment, on which stood the largest and
most beautiful raahogany-tree he ever saw, under the grateful
shade of which he intended to build his house, and commence
his mission. Duty, however, required his return to St. Mary s,
from which he had been absent several weeks ; and, after a long
and toilsome passage of ten days from Macarthy's Island, he
landed safely at St. Mary's, having "left the major and Mr.
C. Grant directing the building of a fort for the garrison, as the
commencement of a place which, it is expected, will be of con-
siderable importance in a few years, in a commercial point of
view." Mr. Morgan added : " And I pray, with great hope,
that it may prove a centre from Avhicli the Sun of righteousness
shall diff'use its rays through the dark shades of Mohammedan
error and superstition."
Macarthy's Island is about two hundred and fifty miles up
the Gambia. It is situated nearly in the middle of the river,
the main branch being on the north side, opposite to Yani, the
territories of the king of Kattaba. This branch of the river is
about two hundred yards wide. The island is a rich tract of
laud, in the form of an ellipse or oval, and contains about
nine square miles. Its elevation is not sufficient to prevent
partial inundation in the rainy season ; but, though the heat is
more intense than at St. Mary's, it is supposed to be more
healthful. The town called Fort George, which consisted
entirely for some time of native houses, is at about an equal dis-
tance between the two extremities of the island, and is near the
water's edge on the northern bank of the river. There was also
a small Mandingo town about half a mile distant; but the
inhabitants were all Mohammedans.
The day after Mr. Morgan arrived at St. Mary's, Avhich was
April 14tli, he says : " I attended my school, and was sorry to
find that the boys had sustained great loss in my absence, not-
withstanding a young man had given them instruction every
day," The congregation had also necessarily suffered during
his absence; but he was glad to find that the greater part of
the members had been diligent in the means of grace. The
following extracts from Mr. Morgan's journal will uot be unin-
teresting here ; —
280 AVESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
April 27tli, 1823. — I preached in Jaloof-Town in the morning, and in the after-
noon at Soldier-Town, to small congregations. In the evening I went again to
preach in Jaloof-Town, Mhere my mind was greatly pained to see so few attending
to hear the word of God, while the people were sauntering ahout by hundreds in
the streets and walks. When I came to the meeting-house, I found no one pre-
sent but my little society ; upon which I determined to take my people into the
street, and preach there ; and by this means I collected together about a hundred
persons.
May 1st. — After school I preached at Soldier-Town. Tliis last week we have
been favoured with a strong breeze from the sea, which has rendered the air plea-
santly cool. May the Lord's name be praised, I still enjoy good health, which
long affliction has taught me to appreciate more highly than in any former period
of ray life. I think I never felt better, nor ever more thankful for this inestimable
blessing. May the Lord help me to show forth his praise by labouring more dili-
gently in his service ! In the evening I preached in Jaloof-Town.
5th. — This morning I met the society. Several seemed deeply impressed with a
sense of their depravity, and we had a solemn meeting. After preaching in Jaloof-
Town in the morning, and in Soldier-Town in the afternoon, in the evening I
preached again in the street, and to a large congregation.
10th. — My heart is deeply impressed with a sense of the goodness and mercy of
God towards me. He continues to bless me with health ; and I recollect no period
of my Ufe in which I was more happy than the present. I feel delight in my work,
and am able to prosecute it with great hope of success. This evening, after school,
I preached in Jaloof-Town.
12th, Sunday. — This morning I met the society as usual; all present. I preached
in the morning and afternoon in the meeting-houses ; and in the evening stood in
the street near the dwelling of some Greots, a most degraded set of people, who get
their living by dancing, di-umming, and singing at festivals, &c. They are almost
always in Uquor, and in their mode of living come nearer the brute than any people
I have seen. I was led to hope that the novelty of my preaching at their doors
would attract their attention ; but in this I was disappointed, as not one of them
appeared, though several of them understand a little English. I had none to hear
me but my own people, for the novelty begins to wear off ; but if I am spared, I
will preach at one place more next Sunday evening, that every part of the town
may have an opportunity of hearing.
26th. — My congregations in the house to-day were much lai'ger than usual. In
the evening I took my stand at a place where many could hear me in their houses.
27th. — This evening, in Soldier-Town, I was much encouraged by the attention
and increase of my congregations.
July 3d. — After school I preached in Soldier-Town, and was followed home by
a young Jaloof man, whom I have long observed to be very attentive, and who
gave me the happiness to hear a detailed account of his conversion. One good
mark of his sincerity is, that he manifests a great concern for the salvation of his
countrj'rnen, and embraces every opportunity to caution and instnict them ; telling
them what God has done for him.
This is tridy the day of small things here ; but I thank God, that in my little
sphere I am often encouraged by a hope of increase ; and my society, tliough small,
contains several instances of the converting grace of God.
My school, though small, is encouraging. It consists of about twenty-five boys,
with seven adults, who attend in the evenings and on the Sunday mornings ; and it
often tends to support my mind when walking to the meeting, and cast down by
THE GAMBIA AND SIEURA-LEONE. 281
the anticipation of a small congregation, to be accompanied by such a number of
the chilflren of harlots, drankai'ds, sabbath-breakers, and thieves ; and nearly half
of them with their Bibles in their hands, to read after me the word of God.
13th, Sunday. — This morning I met the society, preached, and baptized a young
man. I preached again twee in the following parts of the day, and afterwards had
much conversation with a man-aboo. He affords me but little ground to hope that
he has been benefited by former discourses which we have had together, as he is
totally ignorant of his natural depravity ; and till he is convicted and condemned in
his own conscience, I can entertain very little hope of doing him good, though I
think it might be an easy thing to make a convert of him to a profession of Chris-
tianity, This, however, would be of no advantage either to him or to the church.
He talked candidly ; praised the moral precepts of the Koran ; and stated some dif-
ficulties which he felt in acknowledging the truth of the Bible, but which were all
founded on the prejudices of habit and education. He told me, that the principal
thing which led him to think that the Christian religion might be from God, was
the disposition of Christians to do good to others. He had observed that I
instructed the children gratuitously, without respect to persons, and freely gave
advice to any who asked for it. He was also certain that if the Mohammedans had
the power which the Christians have in this island, they would put us all to death,
whereas he saw that the maiTaboos were permitted to live among us without
molestation. He also adverted to our abolition of the Slave-Trade as a proof of the
superiority of the spirit of Christianity to Mohammedanism.
20th, Sunday. — I met the society, who seemed in a good spirit. The congrega-
tions, through the day, much as usual. It affords me much pleasure to see that
several of them enjoy religion, by their voluntarily assembUng together for devo-
tional exercises,
August 4th. — I visited the sick, and felt much pleasure with one poor woman
who lay in the most excruciating pain. Her husband, an in-eligious man, seemed
to murmur at Divine Providence ; saying, " Me no sabby," (know,) " massah, what
for that poor woman get that bad sick : too much pain catch her this time, me no
sal)by what for." The poor woman immediately rebuked him, though almost inca-
pable of moving on her bed ; saying, " Ah, no talkey so ! no let poor sinner say he
no sabby what for sick catch him : we been do wicked enough."
10th.— I desire to be unfeignedly thankful to Almighty God, that I enjoy good
health thus far through the rains ; and that, while the greater part of the Europeans
on the island, and many natives, are sick, nothing has hitherto prevented my
attending to preaching and to the school.
Sept. 3d. — After school I preached in Solcher-Town. My man-aboo still perse-
veres in learning to read English.
7th. — I spent the evening in conversing with my mairaboo on things relating to
his soul. I talked to him of experimental religion, and endeavoured to show him
the depravity of his nature, and the necessity of regeneration. Two young men of
his country were present, who belong to the society, and have lately obtained justi-
fying faith ; and they confirmed to him what I said from their own experience, at
which he expressed great astonishment. After having pointed out the justice and
hohness of God, and man's corruption and disobedience, I was led to hope that he
saw something of the sinfulness of his nature, and of his need of a Saviour, as he
appeared much concerned, and said, he had always thought well of himself, seeing
he had been taught to read when a child, and had abstained from strong drink ;
but now he feared he should go to hell. He says, he sees that every thing I tell
him is true, but he knows not what to do ; and tliis, I beUeve, is the case ; but I
283 WESTERN COAST Or AFRICA.
fear his heart is not sufficiently impressed with a sense of its importance, to stand
the trial to which he wll he exposed as soon as the marraboos take alarm ; when,
if it he in their power, they will injure him ; and he ^vill have need to take care
of being poisoned. His father, too, is now absent ; and, on his return, ^vill undoubt-
edly disiuherit him, unless he abandons my house.
23d. — This day I was visited in my school by a strange marraboo, who is consi-
dered as a sort of metropolitan in this place. He appears to be the most learned
among them, as he can read my Arabic Bible ; and he was desirous of disputing
with me in favour of Mohammedanism ; but his arguments were much the same as
those of the rest who visit and hinder me almost every day, and are not worth
repeating.
Oct. 4th. — I went to my garden, which I have made on the lot of land enclosed
for the mission-house ; and was sorry to find that all my labour has been in vain
for this year, as the grasshoppers have fallen by tens of thousands on my young
vegetables, and destroyed them all.
7th. — In the evening, after school, I went into several yards, and invited the
slaves to attend the preaching, through the medium of an interpreter, in the Jaloof
language. Many promised to come ; and about si\ o'clock my house was thronged
to such an extent, that I went through the service trembling lest the floor should
give way, and let us down into the warehouse below. Mj interpreter executed his
office with much ability. Heretofore I have been afraid to trust even to the best
that I could get ; but this young man is a Jaloof, and knows his language well ;
and has, besides, a much better knowledge of English than most of his countrymen,
having, within this last year, since I have kept school, been taught to read in the
Bible, so as to get through a plain chapter with Uttle difficulty. His crowning
qualification, however, is, that God has graciously given him to experience in his
soul the blessedness of that truth which he assists in declaring to others. My
marraboo was present, with many of his tribe ; and I conversed a long while with
him after the service, as he expressed himself nuich interested in what he had
heard. My interpreter, and another of his countrymen who has lately been
brought in some measiu-e under the influence of the gospel, delivered what I said
in Jaloof; and they related to him their experience, at which he expressed much
wonder. He said, he had been taught to read the Alcoran from a child, and had
abstained from strong di-ink ; but had never heard of experimental rehgion, or that
a marraboo had ever known his sins forgiven him in this life. I asked him if he
knew any thing of original sin. He replied, that he knew all men were polluted
by Adam's fall ; and that, on account of his depravity and disobedience, he was
driven from God's presence. I then, in hope of showing him the necessity of a
Saviour, asked him by what means he expected a reconciUation to be effected
between God and man, and the latter made fit to be re-admitted into the Divine
presence. He replied, that they expect all their actual sins to be freely jiardoned
when they beUeve Mohammed ; and from the pollution of the original offence, they
look to be deUvered by external washing with water, which, as oft as they pray,
they apply to such parts of the body as they think were most active or instrumental
in the transgression. Thus they wash the legs and feet which bore the ofl-enders
to the tree, the eyes which saw the forbidden fruit, the hands and arms which
gathered it, the nose which smelt it, and the mouth which ate it ; and lest Adam
and Eve should have had occasion to stoop to get under the tree, they wash the
knees. I asked him, if he thought the heart had nothing to do in it. He replied,
that the heart certainly desired it ; but, having no vv.iy of washing that part, they
vested content with doing what is in their power.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 283
I am not certain whether what I have said to him has had any good effect or
not ; but time will determine : and I have great reason to believe that it has not
been altogether in vain in other respects. Our conversations have generally taken
place in the evening in my house, when two Jaloof youths were present, who are
learning to read, and who can neither talk nor understand English. As I have
frequently talked to the marraboo in Jaloof, through the medium of the interpreter,
they have had the advantage of hearing our dialogue, and I have often observed
them very attentive. One of them came to me privately, a few days ago, and
begged me to teach him how he must pray to God. I think they are both under
sei'ious impressions, and they are on trial for admission into the society.*
Thus did this excellent missionary continue to labour during
the whole of this rainy season, with scarce any interruption. It
may with truth be said, he was " instant in season, out of sea-
son," teaching and preaching both in-doors and out, visiting the
sick and the dying, and holding long conversations with the
deluded followers of the false prophet. " To the weak became he
as weak, that he might gain the weak : he was made all things
to all men, that he might by all means save some." (1 Cor. ix.
22.) Nor did he labour in vain, as the preceding extracts show.
The "Jollof young man," who followed him home, and gave
him a detailed account of his conversion, and whom he employed
as his interpreter, some time after became a local preacher,
and, eventually, an assistant missionary.
Mr. Morgan having strongly solicited an additional mis-
sionary for St. Mary's, that he might proceed to the new settle-
ment at Macarthy's Island, which presented a promising open-
ing for a new mission, the Missionary Committee towards the
close of the year appointed Mr. Hawkins to the Gambia ; who
was solemnly ordained, and set apart for this important work, at
the Wesleyan chapel, Deptford, on the 10th of February, 1824.
Mr. and Mrs. Hawkins left Loudon on the 3d of March, to
embark at Gravesend ; but they did not arrive in Africa till
about the middle of the following month. Mr. Morgan, under
date of April 14th, writes : " This morning arrived the brig
' Asoph,' having on board brother and sister Hawkins. This to
me is a cause of much thankfulness, as I was beginning to
despair of going up the river this year." The next day Mr.
Morgan was engaged in seeking a suitable house for his new
friends, but could find none; so, after a few days' hospitable
entertainment at Mr. C, Grant's, they took up their abode in
the " hired house " which Mr. Morgan had occupied, until the
mission-house, which was in course of erection, should be
finished. Mr. Hawkins was the first married missionary
* "Missionary Notices," vol. iv. pp. 247 — 219, 261.
284 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
appointed to this station. He immediately entered upon his
work : Mrs. Hawkins soon raised a female school, and felt a
pleasure in imparting to these " black lambs " the usual
branches of an elementary education.
On the 22d of this month, Mr. Morgan embarked on board
the brig " Asoph " for Macarthy's Island, and arrived there on
the 28th, nothing particular having occurred on the passage,
except the excessive heat. On leaving St. Mary's, the thermo-
meter stood at 80°; but after one or two days' sailj from eleven
A.M. to five P.M., it was never below 91° in the cabin, and on
the deck, under an awning, it was 118°.
The following extracts from Mr. Morgan's journal will
exhibit the difficulties and toils connected with the formation
of a new mission, in an uncivilized and barbarous country, like
the interior of Africa : —
April 29th. — This morning I went ashore, and took up my residence in an empty
hut, the property of Mr. Grant, -rtlio is trading here, and is hrother to our excel-
lent friend at St. Mary's.
May 1st. — I desu-e to be unfeignedly thankful to Almighty God that I have
health in the most unfavourable circumstances ; being, ■svith two school-boys, and
my baggage, huddled up in a small circular hut, which can scarcely be called a
shed, and so surrounded by huts as to be inaccessible to the breeze.
2d, Sunday. — This morning I held service in a small house near the Barracks.
The soldiers, about thirteen, who are stationed in the Barracks, under the command
of a sergeant, were marched to the place. Several discharged soldiers, who are
settled on the island, (all black,) attended with the ship's company in which I
came, two traders and some natives, so that I had a tolerably good congregation
for a commencement. I preached again in the evening. The heat through the
day was almost intolerable. This morning, before the sun rose, the thermometer
stood at 80° ; at two p.m., 110° ; in the sun, 125° ; near the ground, 128°.
3d. — This morning I preached again to the soldiers ; my congregation small, as
it was in the evening ; but yet I see among the old soldiers recently discharged a
degree of attention which I did not expect ; for, when enrolled at St. Marj''s, tliey
never attended divine service except when compelled, which was once on the
sabbath. Now they voluntarily attend twice. On the first sabbath, several of
them were working about their houses. I spoke to them of the evil of violating
the Lord's day, and they desisted.
10th. — This afternoon the king of Cahtabah visited the island ; he told us that
he was now about to take a decisive step in the war. His troops were encamped
opposite the fort on the mainland. He came to beg rum, tobacco, gunpowder,
or any thing and every thing he could get from Mr. Grant. I conversed with him
a considerable time on my intention to settle on the island, and asked if he had any
sons whom he wshed to have instructed : he said he had two, and woiUd give
them to me if I came among them. In the evening he commenced his march
against Kimmingtang, who is waiting his approach on high ground at Cullareen.
The king's people have long been kept waiting for a day wiiich they superstitiously
liope may prove favourable to them ; and it seems that the marraboos of the king
of Cahtabah and those of his allies are at variance in their divinations, and both are
inclined to respect their own oracles. The king's marraboos say, that if they
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 285
march, it vAW be fatal to them. But the king of Wooley's marraboos declare that
by marching ^tliey will insure success : this has also occasioned a delay, and 1
behave they pi'oceeded on this day rather from necessity than choice, as they had
consumed all their rice and corn, and appeared half-starved.
13th. — This morning the king's warriors returned, having advanced far enough
to get a sight of the enemy. Their courage then failed them, and they returned :
the king of Wooley's people went home, and by the way were routed by a detach-
ment of Kimmingtaug's army, whom they immediately offered to join ; but he
refused their service.
16th. — This morning and evening I held service again : the congregation as usual.
The heat to-day has been almost intolerable : at nine a.m. thermometer 96°, at
two P.M. 106°. I was almost led to fear that I should not be able to live here ;
but while men actuated by the love of gold expose themselves to such inclemencies,
I trust that the love of souls will not be less influential on me.
17th. — This afternoon the heat is very oppressive. Thermometer, in the after-
noon, 110° in the house ; in the sun, 140°. I had a slight attack of fever.*
On the 20th, the first tornado for the year commenced, which
"raised the dust in such clouds/' says Mr. Morgan, "that it
almost suffocated us before the rain came on." The following
morning, he writes : " Through the Lord's mercy, I am better,
but rather weak. I expect no fever till to-morrow, as the fever
of this country is generally intermittent." The next day he
held a long conversation with some marraboos from the east,
and with the chief of Yannimaroo ; and " the heat beiug into-
lerable in my hut," he writes, " for want of the breeze, I went
with my four school-boys under the shade of a tree, to teach
them ; but a fresh breeze blowing over the land, brought such
a current of heat, that I returned to my cabin again."
The rains had commenced before he had done much in the
way of erecting a suitable residence ; and being ill with fever,
and having no medical aid at hand, a favourable opportunity,
too, presenting itself of proceeding to St. Mary's, where he
was desirous of spending some time with Mr. Hawkins, Mr.
Morgan was kindly taken on board Mr. Chown's cutter, and
sailed with him for St. Mary's, at the latter end of this month.
"The first tornado at St. Mary's took place on the same
day that he reached there." The mission premises at that
station were now nearly completed; and on the 8th of June
Mr. Morgan writes : " This evening I preached in our new
house, that is, in the under part of the new house, into which
we are about to remove. The congregation was comparatively
large." The following evening was the missionary prayer-
meeting ; and the brethren were pleased and profited by hearing
some of the members of the society engage in prayer. " They
* " Missionary Notices," vol. iv. pp. 357, 358.
286 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
evidently prayed both with the heart and the understanding."
Three members had been added to the female class during Mr.
Morgan's absence.
On the 15th of the same month, Mr. Morgan says : — " This
morning I went to Cape-Town with Mr. Thompson, one of the
Quakers, to receive some instruction in ploughing, he having a
plough there at Avork. He kindly gave me such instructions as,
I trust, will enable me to introduce the same excellent system
of cultivation further in the interior." *
The mission-house, a good substantial stone building, about
forty feet by twenty in the clear, with shingled roof, being now
finished, Mr. Morgan writes : —
We are now got into our new house, in which we are tolerably comfortable, both
as it respects an habitation and a place for worship. We have both under the
same roof; the under-part being a very convenient and sufficiently commodious
place for our meetings and the school. Res])ecting our prospects here, I have the
happiness to inform you, that the hopes I have often expressed of seeing successful
days in St. Mary's I am still encouraged to indiUge. Several of the natives, I trust,
are not far from the kingdom of heaven. Our school still affords us encourage-
ment, and now proceeds with increased energy. Sister Hawkins has also a school
of twenty black girls, f
* About this time a philanthropic attempt was made to benefit the Negro race,
principally by the Society of Friends, in which the late Mrs. Kilham took a promi-
nent part. Early in 1822, Mr. W. Singleton was sent out on a visit to Africa, by
the Committee of a Society " for Promoting African Instruction." He visited
Sierra-Leone and the Gambia ; and at the latter place, accompanied by Mr. Morgan
and two or three other Eiu-opeans, he paid a visit to the king of Combo, and some
other places on the river. The object of this Society, in addition to school-
instruction, was to couple with that a correct knowledge of agricultiu-e ; and some
attention was paid to the native languages. Mrs. Kilham had taken under her care
two Africans, whom she met in London ; and during the following year the same
Committee sent out other " Friends." " The little company of settlers, consisting
of Hannah Kilham, Richard Smith, John Thompson, and his sister Ann Thompson,
and the two natives, embarked at Gravesend, on board the ' James,' bound for St.
Mary's, in the Gambia, on the 26th of tenth mouth, 1823." On the 8th of Decem-
ber, this little band arrived safely at St. Mary's ; and shortly after they proceeded
to Baccow, or Cape-Town, the proposed place of their settlement. But in this
case, as in many others, the great barrier to success was the climate. The two
females were the only persons who lived to return to England ; John Thompson
having died on his passage home, and Richard Smith on the Coast. Mr. Smith
was visited during his illness by Mr. Morgan and Mr. Hawkins ; and the former
was with him when he expired, on July 30th, 1824.
Mrs. Kilham continued to visit the Coast of Africa for several years after this,
and her "labours were not in vain in the Lord;" but she died at sea, while on her
passage from Liberia to Sierra-Leone, on the 31st of March, 1832 ; and "her grave
is the boundless deep." (See " Memoirs of Hannah Kilham," pp. 170, 474.)
t " Report of the Wesleyan-Methodist Missionary Society for 1824," p. 43.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 287
Mr. Hawkins about the same time wrote : — '
I have reason to lilcss God that I ever came to St. Mary's. I am engaged in
the work in which my heart dehghts, and it is most encouraging to see so many
attend our services, since we opened the new preaching-place, which is under the
house in wliich we live. My work is to meet the class on the Sunday mornings at
nine o'clock, preach at half-past ten, attend the prayer-meetings at three, and
preach at six in the evening ; again on Tuesdays at seven in the evening, on Wed-
nesdays at the same hour, and also on Fridays ; which makes five sermons in the
week ; in addition to which, I attend the day-school, in wliich there are upwards of
thirty boys. Mrs. Hawkins meets the women's class at nine on Sunday morning ;
and she has a girls' school, in which she has about twenty children, who are taught
to read and sew. Thus we endeavour to make ourselves useful; but the igno-
rance and sin which abound on the island are great ; and the natives are in a
most deplorable state, sunk into the lowest depths of iniquity.*
Soon after this, both Mr. and Mrs. Hawkins were attacked
with fever ; and, it l)eing their first season, they " were neai^
death, from which they recovered very slowly." Mr. Morgan
was therefore in his proper place at St. Mary^s, rendering all
the assistance he possibly could to his colleague and his wife in
their affliction, and attending to the duties of the mission as far
as his own constitution, Avhich had received a shock, would per-
mit. The mission family at St. Mary^s were, however, though
much afflicted, happily preserved in life during the year, and
" kindly for each other cared."
But the year did not close at Sierra-Leone, before the society
were called to lament the loss of another valuable labourer,
in the death of Mr. Harte, who died on the 37th of December,
1824, after nine days' illness.
Henry T. Harte, it will perhaps be recollected, arrived at
Sierra-Leone with Mr. Piggott, on the 19th of March, 1824,
where he was received as an angel of God by the afflicted
societies, who had been deprived by death of both their former
pastors. He laboured most cordially and zealously with Mr.
Piggott, and the rains had passed without materially affecting
his health ; he not having, it would appear, an attack of what
is called "the country-fever," until the 18th of December.
Medical aid was promptly resorted to, and the members of the
society were particularly kind and attentive during his illness.
Mr. Piggott, who communicated the intelligence of his death to
the Missionary Committee, speaking of the affection of the
people for their afflicted pastor, says : " I am persuaded, if
prayers, or any thing they could do, would have prevailed with
* " Report of the Wesleyan-Methodist Missionary Society for 1824," p. 43.
288 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
God to spare his life, that he would have been with us now."
But neither medical skill, nor the prayers of the people, could
save him. After two or three days, there was hope of his reco-
very : " the fever had left him, and he began to take bark, and
ate a little light food : " but a relapse followed this temporary
improvement, with double violence, and he soon became deli-
rious, and so continued for near two days. Early on the morn-
ing of the day of his death, he prayed with the friends that sat
up with him, and said to one of them, " Thank God, my salva-
tion is at hand ! Now, Lord, I am ready to come ! " He then
grew much weaker ; and about twenty minutes past two in the
afternoon, without either sigh or groan, his happy spirit took its
flight from this vale of tears to the place " where the inhabit-
ants shall no more say, I am sick ; " " leaving me," adds Mr.
Piggott, "and a great number of friends, to lament his loss."
Mr. Harte was pre-eminently a man of prayer and praise. He
evinced great deadness to the world, and much heavenly-
mindedness. He was a devoted young man, and an excellent
missionary ; and preferred Sierra-Leone to any other station ;
where, after nine months' and eight days' residence, he " died
in the Lord," in the twenty-seventh year of his age. He was
buried the day following, in the same grave as Mr. Warren, the
first Wesleyan missionary who fell in this honourable field of
labour. " An immense multitude " attended the funeral ; and
as it was with Stephen, so it was here : " Devout men carried
him to his burial, and made great lamentation over him."
Mr. Piggott, who communicated the substance of the preced-
ing particulars, deeply felt the loss of his faithful colleague;
and, finding the funeral service " too much for his feelings," he
was kindly assisted by the Rev. G. R, Nylander, one of the
Church missionaries. Turning from the mournful subject, he
requested an interest in the prayers of the Committee, that the
painful visitation might be sanctified, and earnestly requested
that, as soon as possible, additional help might be sent out to
him, though he could not expect it till the close of the next
rains. He then adds : —
I thauk God, with respect to myself, 1 am as well as can be expected, consider-
ing the multiplicity of my engagements, and the painful loss I have sustained. I
should he inclined to despair; but when I consider that the friends in England are
praying for poor Africa, that wide field which is already white unto the harvest, but
where indeed the labourers are few, I take courage, and go forward ; esjjecially
when I consider that I have not already laboured in vain, nor spent my strength
for nought, which will appear evident from the following statement.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 289
On our an-ival, we found a society of eighty-one members ; but this quarter we
have one hundred, making an increase of nineteen. Our congregations are very
encouraging, especially at Free-Town, where we have several Europeans also for our
constant hearers ; and I have not the least doubt, had we the chapel finished, we
should have several m-ore. We preach at West-End, Congou-Town, and Portuguese-
Town as usual. At the latter place we are suffering for want of room, the chapel
not being finished. At Free-Town we have a Sunday-school of about one hundred
and forty children. A few small presents for the male children, to encourage
them, would be very acceptable. At Congou-Town we have opened a Sunday-
school.*
On the 12tli of April, Mr. Piggott again wrote from Sierra-
Leone as follows : " The Ijord has been very gracious to us in
Africa during the past quarter, notwithstanding ray lonely
situation since the death of my dear brother Harte, and the
consequent increase of my labour and care. He has fulfilled
His promise in granting me strength proportioned to my day.
O that I could more fully rely upon the word of His grace, and
wait with patience the fulfilment of all His promises ! In the
last quarter the Lord has added to our little flock about nine
persons, principally new converts, who promise to be ornaments
to their profession. Their convictions apparently were deep,
and their experience is sound. Our congregations at each
place are somewhat encouraging, which enkindles in my mind
the hope of seeing better days." Thus did the great Head of
the church fulfil his promise, "Lo, I am with you alway, even
unto the end." Though he buried his workmen, he still carried
on his work ; and while the missionary on this station was
thankful for past and present success, he was confiding in the
promises of his almighty and omnipresent Saviour, and still
" hoping to see better days." Mr. and Mrs. Hawkins, whom
we left at the Gambia, in a debilitated state, had by this time
recovered ; but it Avas not so with ]Mr. Morgan. He had now been
in Africa upwards of four years ; and during the first and last
season he had suffered severel}^ from the influence of the climate
in repeated attacks of fever, and from his exposure to the exces-
sive heat of the sun by day, and the heavy dews by night, in
travelling up and down the river, together with the want of a
suitable residence, proper food, and medicine. His naturally
good constitution was fast giving way, and, instead of proceed-
ing again to Macarthy's Island, he was obliged to return to
England. He sailed from St. Mary's for his native country on
the 27th of March, 1825, leaving as the fruit of his labours, in
conjunction with those of his brethren, " a small church of
* *' Missionary Notices," vol. iv. p. 438.
U
k
290 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
uativeSj about thirty in number, one of whom Imcl begun to
preach the gospel/^
By a mind unenhghtened by God^s Holy Spirit, these results
would probably be considered a small return for upwards of
four years^ mental and physical labour and toil, by several mis-
sionaries, with the consumption of a considerable sum of money,
the loss of health, and even of life ; one, if not two, European
missionaries having been sacrificed, in the formation of this
" small church of natives." But, by those who reflect upon the
value of the soul, the price given for its redemption, its capabili-
ties of enjoying endless bliss, and of enduring everlasting woe, a
diff'erent conclusion would be arrived at. And when it is consi-
dered that those thirty persons, who Avere formed into a Chris-
tian church, were not mere nominal members, but that the
greater part of them had experienced a real change of heart,
and were "new creatures in Christ Jesus;" that, though few in
number, they were of various nations and dialects; that they
had been raised from the deepest ignorance, depravity, and
superstition, to a state of Christian communion with each
other, and of holy intercourse and fellowship with God; and
that "one" out of the "thirty had begun to preach tlie gos-
pel ; " who does not see that the " return " was not " small," but
that the fruit was, literally as well as spiritually, at the very least,
not less than "thirty-fold?" It was a sufficient recompence for
the past, and it furnished a guarantee and pledge for the future.
" For as the rain cometh down, and the snow from heaven, and
returneth not thither, but watereth the earth, and maketh it
bring forth and bud, that it may give seed to the sower, and
bread to the eater : so shall my word be that goeth forth out of
my mouth : it shall not return unto me void, but it shall accom-
plish that which I please, and it shall prosper in the thing
whereto I sent it." (Isai. Iv. 10, 11.)
Mr. Morgan arrived safe in England, whence, after a short
residence for recruiting his health, he intended to return to
Africa ; but, a considerable time having elapsed before he fully
recovered, the Committee thought it not right to send him
again, and he was appointed to an English circuit ; and he has
since that period been usefully employed in the ministry at
home.
There being now but one missionary at the Gambia, Mac-
arthy's Island remained for some time before it was again
visited by any Wesley an missionary. Meanwdiile, Mr. and Mrs.
Hawkins were actively and usefully employed at St. Mary's.
The school continued to prosper, there being thirty-eight boys.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 291
besides the girls. The class was divided, and the time of meet-
ing altered from the Sunday morning to the week evenings;
Mr. Hawkins meeting the men, and Mrs. Hawkins the women.
The members were reported as advancing in their Christian
course, the Sunday-morning prayer-meeting was well attended,
and here six of the young men engaged in prayer. The congre-
gations were improving in cleanliness, in order, and in number,
the chapel being quite full, particularly when the service was in
Jollof. In speaking" of themselves, Mr. Hawkins, under date of
May 17th, 1825, writes: "In my last I stated that we enjoyed
tolerably good health, which I am happy to say is the case at the
present ; and I trust the Lord will grant us a continuance of
the same blessing through the approaching unhealthy season.
I understand the rains are set in at Sierra-Leone, and that
some heavy tornadoes have been felt there ; but at Bathurst we
have not yet had much rain. It appears to be the general
opinion, that this is likely to be a bad season here ; but, if it
should please the Lord to afflict us again, I trust He will grant
lis patience and resignation to His will. We beg an interest in
your prayers, that God may spare our lives, and make us more
useful. We trust we can say that we are growing in grace, are
happy in our work, and blest with the smile and approbation of
God." No death occurred this year at either of the stations ;
and in February, 1826, Mr. Piggott communicated some parti-
culars of a visit which he had paid to the Bullam shore, opposite
to Sierra-Leone, and gave an interesting account of an inter-
view which he had with the venerable old king, who was
upwards of one hundred and nine years of age. This African
chief had been to England twenty years previously, and now
expressed a strong desire to have a mission with a school estab-
lished in his kingdom. The Tiramanee country also was opened
to receive missionaries.
Mr. Piggott at Sierra-Leone and Mr. Hawkins at the Gam-
bia having completed their term of service, which, it will be
recollected, owing to the great mortality, was reduced to two
years on the coast, — the Wesleyan Missionary Committee in
London, anxious to preserve as much as possible the lives of
their valuable agents, sent out three brethren during this year ;
namely, Messrs. Dawson, Courties, and May. Mr. Dawson
was a married man, and was intended to succeed Mr. Hawkins
at the Gambia : but as there was no vessel at that time going to
the Gambia, and there being one just leaving for Sierra-Leone,
Mr. and Mrs. Dawson embarked on board the " Princess Char-
lotte," on the 4th of April, 1826, and arrived safe at Sierra-
TJ 2
292
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Leone on Friday, May 26tli, about four o'clock in tlie afternoon,
intending to proceed to the Gambia by one of the first monthly
packets, which at that time regularly sailed between the two
settlements. But they had not been there long before Mr.
Dawson was seized with the country fever, and was for some
time dangerously ill. He Avas not recovered when Mrs. Dawson
was attacked with every symptom of the same disease.
Though medical aid was promptly rendered, it was without suc-
cess ; and on "Tuesday, August 1st, twenty minutes before five
in the morning, without either struggle or groan, she breathed
her last.'" A short account of this excellent woman appeared in
the " Obituary " department of the " Wesleyau Magazine " for
June of the following year.
Mrs. Dawson was a woman of deep personal piety, having
" for some time loved the Lord her God with all her heart, and
soul, and mind, and strength." Though her residence in
Sierra-Leone was short, it was sufficient to convince those who
knew her, that she was an " Israelite indeed, in whom was no
guile;" and she bid fair to be a bright luminary in that part of
the Heathen world. But "God moves in a mysterious way:"
her sun went down at noon-day ; but there was light in " the
valley of the shadow of death." She did not regret going to
Africa, but exclaimed, " The best of all is, God is with me ! "
"She was willing to live, if the Lord thought good; nor less
willing to die." The latter was chosen by her heavenly Father;
and she died in the full triumph of faith, on the morning of
August 1st, in the twenty-seventh year of her age, after a
residence in the colony of only two months and five days.
After the loss of his excellent wife Mr. Dawson remained for
some time with Mr. Piggott, assisting him in the Sierra-Leone
mission ; and in a joint letter from these brethren written about
this time, the society there was said to be in a state of great
peace and unity, and at one of the chapels prayer-meetings
were held every morning at five o'clock. A few followers of the
false prophet had renounced Mohammedanism, had embraced
Christianity, joined the societj'-, and become consistent, humble,
and sincere Christians.
At the Gambia, the cause was gradually, though not rapidly,
advancing, the school was promising, and among the adults " a
few had been brought to God in truth."
From the very commencement of these missions the members
of the society had been taught that it was a duty and a privi-
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 293
lege to contribute towards their support ; and this they cheer-
fully did as far as their poverty would permit. In addition to what
was raised in the societies in the way of class and ticket money,
annual subscriptions were solicited by the missionaries from the
Eui'opean residents, or others who were favourably disposed to
the missions. This plan had been adopted for four years, with
pleasing success, as the annual Eeport will show ; and though
the Gambia had the precedence in this good work, the example
was speedily followed at Sierra-Leone. During the year the
annual subscriptions at Sierra-Leone were £S, and at St. Mary's
they amounted to £20. 4^,
On the 20th of October the brethren Courties and May
embarked at Gravesend on board the "Cato," bound for Sierra-
Leone ; but, owing to contrary winds, they did not get clear of
the English Channel until the 2d of November ; on the 10th
they passed the Madeira islands, and on the 28th "dropped
anchor in Free-Town harbour." Mr. May had suffered severel}'^
from sea-sickness most of the voyage ; and Mr. Courties, on the
da}^ they made the land, was attacked with a violent headache,
accompanied with vomiting, which excited some alarm lest it
should prove to be the " country fever ;" but such was not the
case, and he was so far recovered as to be able to go on shore a
few hours after they came to an anchor. On arriving at Sierra-
Leone, they found Mr. Piggott recovering from a severe attack
of fever, which was the first he had experienced. Mr. Dawson
at this time was tolerably well; and they were both cheered
and encouraged by the presence and timely arrival of these new
brethren, to Avhom they gave a cordial welcome.* Their recep-
tion by the native converts, though more simple in the
manner of expressing it, was not less affectionate and encou-
raging. One of the brethren, in writing to a friend in Eng-
land, under date of December 17th, 1826, and referring to this,
says, " The simplicity and affectionate manner of their receiv-
ing us was very striking indeed. Some said, ' Tank God, new
massas go for come ! God bring em over de great water safely :
* Since writing tlie above, I have received a letter from the Rev. W. Piggott,
from which it appears, that the " Cato " came into the harbour of Sien-a-Leone
early that morning, unknown to the missionary on the spot ; and Mr. May, accom-
panied by a friend, had found his way to the mission-house. Mr. Dawson, being
the first to hear the news, hastened to Mr. Piggott's bed-room door, and awoke
him, by knocking and shouting, " A missionarj' ! A missionary is come ! " " My
door was soon open," writes Mr. Piggott ; "when Mr. M'Cormack introduced Mr.
May, who said he had left Mr. Courties on board, he Ijeing rather poorly. After
breakfast Messrs. Dawson and Mav took boat to fetch Mr. Courties."
294
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
dat very good/ One of our friends belonging to Portugnese-
Town told me, that his heart was ' too glad/ that is, very glad,
at our safe arrival; and then, in all his native simplicity, asked
how my 'friend do?^ that is, all my relations and Christian
friends. When I told him that they were all well when I left,
he replied, ' Dat good, dat very good ; my heart too much
glad.^ '' The same missionary observes : " I often wish that I
possessed the gift of tongues : then I should be able to address
them in their own language, and tell them of the wonderful
works of God."
This harmless wish to possess " the gift of tongues " has, no
doubt, been as innocently indulged in by many a missionary in
modern times, especially in those countries where, on his first
arrival, he finds himself as helpless as a man sent to the quarry
without a hammer, or to the forest without an axe ; for there
he is speechless until he has acquired a knowledge of the lan-
guage. And the acquisition of this in most cases requiring at
least twelve months, this is no small trial of faith and patience ;
for though his heart is burning with love to the perishing souls
around him, he must remain the greater part of this time
entirely useless, not being able to hold one intelligible conversa-
tion with the natives, on the subject of their everlasting welfare.
But the inhabitants in the British settlements on the Western
Coast of Africa being generally of the same class of people as
those in the West Indies, who soon acquire a kind of jargon
which they call English,* and which, strange as it may sound
to an English ear, is soon understood ; the missionary in
Western Africa is not so circumstanced as some of the brethren
in the East Indies, and other parts of the Pagan world ; for he
may at once commence his ministry among them ; and though
this murdering of the queen's English cannot be commended
in the pulpit, yet in common conversation on matters of business,
as also in some of the society meetings, it may be tolerated, at
least for some time, for the sake of benefiting those newly-
imported liberated Africans, whose kno^vledge of the English
language is necessarily so imperfect, that this Negro patois is
the only means of holding communication with them.t
* " The frequency of Europeans on the coast has introduced among the natives
a kind of lingua Franca sufficient for the purposes of trade ; though it is not
uncommon to meet with individuals among them who can speak Enghsh, French,
Dutch, or Portuguese with tolerahle fluency." — Dr. Winterbottom.
t The following extract from the work of a fair authoress on Sierra-Ijcone,
recently pubhshed, will illustrate this : —
" Not long after coming to this country, we happened lo get some green peas,
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 295
• On the (lay of Pentecost, "there were dvveUing at Jerusalem
Jews, devout men, out of every nation under heaven," that is,
of every nation where any Jews were scattered at this time
throughout the world : " Parthians, and Medes, and Elamites,
and the dw^ellers in Mesopotamia, and in Judea, and Cappadocia,
in Pontus, and Asia, Phrygia, and Pamphylia, in Egypt, and in
the parts of Libya about Cyrene, and strangers of Rome, Jews
and proselytes, Cretes and Arabians :" and yet all these heard
the apostles speak " the wonderful works of God " in their own
language, " the tongue wherein they were born," and which
the apostles never understood before, (Acts ii.) But numerous as
were those different nations and languages, the colony of Sierra-
Leone presents a greater diversity of " nations and tongues and
people ;" for, besides the English, French, Portuguese, and
other European languages, there are many African languages
spoken, by natives of various nations contiguous to the settle-
ment, who have freely emigrated thither from that locality, and
from different parts of the coast ; of many distinct tribes, of vari-
egated costumes and manners ; such as the Jollof, Mandiugo,
Eoulah, Tiramanee, Serrawoolli, Kroomen, and others, besides
the great mass of re-captured Negroes, brought thither from
different parts of the interior of the continent, and who have
nearly as many dialects as there are days in the month or
weeks in the year ; so that, for each one of these to hear in his
own tongue "the wonderful works of God," would require
another Pentecost, equal, if not superior, to that which took
place at Jerusalem in the days of the apostles. But this is not
to be expected, nor is it necessary ; for though the smallest
which I gave out to the cook to have plauily boiled for dinner. Fancy ray surprise,
when dinner-time came, to find the anticipated dish metamorphosed into a very
thin soupe-maigre, and sent up in a tureen ! We'were nmch amused at the man's
mistake, and I found it rather difficult to make him comprehend that we did not
like soup made without meat or stock of any kind. He was a new-comer, and,
having evidently not understood my directions, thought it better to follow his own
approved fashion, than condescend to say, ' No been savey ivhat missis say.'
" I remember my wise reflections on hearing a European lady talk ' country
fashion ' to a black servant one day very shortly after my arrival, and my mental
resolve that / would never profane my mother tongue by adopting so extraordinary
a mode of speech. Nay, I was even so uncharitable in my ignorance as to think it
slightly bordered on affectation, patronizing and using this most inelegant and
unintelligible language ; and was quite as ridiculous as if an Englishwoman were to
deem it incumbent upon her, when visiting Scotland or Ireland, to learn to speak
in the broad dialect and harsh accent of either of those countries. But neces-
sity has gradually taught me to think very differently, and I now give my house-
hold orders with perfect fluency, in a patois that woidd certainly puzzle liolh a
linguist and grammarian." — " Letters from Sicrra-Leonc, by a Lady," p. 11 1.
296
WESTERN COAST OF AFKICA.
class of voluntary residents at Sierra-Leone are Europeans,
principally from Great Britain, the English language is becom-
ing increasingly prevalent; and though, from the continued
importation of liberated Africans, the miserable jargon called
" English " will not speedily die away, yet, from the intercourse
the natives have with the English, and others who have been
educated in England, and especially from the numerous day-
schools which are in operation in different parts of the penin-
sula, our own pure mother tongue is now, and will be, the
great instrument of communicating instruction to the tens of
thousands in the colony of Sierra-Leone, and ultimately to
" the regions beyond/'
But though "the gift of tongues" is not absolutely needed
in prosecuting missionary labour, in this or in any other part of
the Heathen world, the gift of the Holy Ghost is needed ; and
this is earnestly sought by every mission aiy, and is graciously
vouchsafed in answer to fervent and believing prayer. Though not
sent in that abundant and miraculous manner in which it was
communicated on the day of Pentecost, thank God, on all our
mission-stations in Western Africa it has been vouchsafed :
many a baptismal and heavenly flame of holy fire has descended
upon the congregations in that torrid zone, and man)'' a gra-
cious and teeming shower of spiritual rain has come down in
that tropical clime on those hallowed assemblies ; and the moral
soil, the fallow ground of man's hard heart, has been broken,
softened, and watered, the seed has been deposited, and,
being again watered by the Holy Spirit, it has sprung up and
produced fruit, " in some thirty, some sixty, and in some an
hundred fold."
But, to return from this short digression, to the thread of the
narrative of these missions : A few months after the arrival of
Messrs. Courties and Mav at Sierra-Leone, Mr. Piffgott
returned to England, and Mr. Dawson proceeded to liis proper
appointment at the Gambia, to succeed Mr. Havvkins. These
two brethren had more than filled their term of service; but
Mr. Piggott having passed two years at Sierra-Leone without
having the fever, though he " sensibly felt the kindness of the
Committee in offering to remove him to another station," he at
the same time said, " I am happy in this land of darkness,
especially since the arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Dawson, and an
assurance that I have an interest in your prayers. I do not,
therefore, ask a removal to another station. No. I knosv of
no one that I could make choice of in preference to this ; but
I ask for help." In the same communication, (June 7th,
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 297
1826 J lie thought it might be necessary, after some time
longer, to return to his native country to recruit his strength ;
for though he had his health, he felt much debilitated.
We have, in a preceding page, stated that at the close of
the rains of that year he had a severe attack of fever, which
M as the first he had during his residence in the colony ;
and as his health and strength had now failed him, and the
station was re-inforced with two missionaries, his way was
open to return to England, which he did by way of the Gambia,
having accompanied Mr. Dawson to that station, which place
they reached on the 12th of February of the following year ;
and on Monday, May 7th, he left the Gambia with Mr. and
Mrs. Hawkins for England, and after a quick passage they
arrived in safety at Portsmouth, on the 7th of June. At the
Conference of 1827, Mr. Piggott was appointed to Bury St.
Edmund's, and his ministry since that period has been confined
to England. Mr. Hawkins, at the preceding Conference, had
been appointed to Antigua; but Mr. Dawson being detained at
Sierra-Leone by ill health, and subsequently by the sickness
and death of his wife, Mr. Hawkins nobly stood his ground
another year at the Gambia, and did not leave till Mr.
Dawson arrived ; soon after which he, with his excellent wife,
safely arrived with Mr. Piggott in England. Mr. Hawkins at
the same Conference received an appointment to the Waltham-
Abbey circuit ; but before the Methodistical year closed, he
sailed for Antigua, and has ever since that period been labour-
ing as a Wesleyan missionary in the West Indies.
CHAPTER XVI.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1827—1830.)
State of the Mission at botli Stations — Extract of Letters — Appointment of
Messrs. Munro and Peck to Sierra-Leone, and Mr. Marshall to St. Mary's —
Their Departure — Remarks — Their Anival and Reception — Death of Mr. May
— Letter from Mr. Peck — Sketch of Mr. May's Life — Mr. and Mrs. Mar-
shall's Arrival at the Gambia — Extracts— Captiu-e of Slave-Vessels — lUness of
Mr. Corn-ties — Sails for England in a very vreak State — Dies at Sea — Charac-
ter of Mr. Corn-ties — Letter from Mr. Marshall at the Gambia — And from
Messrs. Munro and Peck at Sierra-Leone — The Perusal of such Letters truly
refreshing — In the Midst of Life we are in Death — Messrs. Munro and Peck
both cut down as Flowers of the Field — Letter from Messrs. Betts and
Davey of the Chiu-ch Missionary Society, announcing the Deaths of Messrs.
Munro and Peck — Sketches of their Characters — The Impression produced
among the Friends of Missions in England on hearing of this great Amount of
Mortality — The dpng Fears, Hope, and Faith of Mr. Peck on the Subject of
this Mission — The previous Statement of the Committee, that they had never
wanted a Man when needed, still substantially coiTect — Mr. Keightley embarks
for this Mission — Arrival at Sien-a-Leone — Extract from his first Letter — l\Ir.
and Mrs. Marshall at the Gambia — State of this Mission — Death of Mr.
Marshall — Sketch — Death of ^Irs. Marshall two Days after she arrived in
Bristol — Sketch of her Character — The Orphan Boy and black Nurse —
Reilections.
During the year 1827^ the brethren were preserved iu tole-
rable health, and the work of God was gradually progressing at
both the stations. In a private letter addressed to a friend
near Manchester by Mr. May, dated Free-Town, Sierra-Leone,
March 5th, 1827, which is now before me, he says: "I feel
thankful in being able to inform you that both myself and
colleague are at present quite Avell, and feel happy in our minis-
terial M'ork. I meet a class in Portuguese-Town on Sunday
morning at six o'clock, consisting of twenty members, all black
people ; I think, the most loving people that ever I met Avith.
We have in the colony ten classes, comprising about ninety-five
members. I had a profitable season in holding a love-feast at
Congo-Town on February 18tli: I felt both pleased and sur-
prised at their artless experience. Our house is close to the
sea-side, which, I believe, makes it a little more healthy than it
otherwise would be ; for the climate, upon the whole, is very
unhealthy, and many Europeans have died of the icvcr since
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 299
my arrival in tlie colony." At the Gambia the missionarj'-
writes : " Our congregations are large, particularly on sabbath
mornings, when I preach in English. The principal part of the
merchants regularly attend, and also their domestics. Our
school affords great encouragement, increasing in numbers
every week; and the boys are very attentive. The merchants
look upon our school as one of the greatest blessings bestowed
npon St. Mary's ; and I have no doubt but it will tend to ren-
der the scholars useful in various ways." Thus wrote Mr.
Hawkins from Bathurst, before he left the Gambia.
Mr. Dawson, in a letter from St. Mary's, dated Bathurst,
December 31st, 1827, says : " In reporting this station, I feel
happy in stating that some good has been done the last quar-
ter : to God be all the praise ! Some of the members are
making themselves useful to their fellow-men ; they are exhort-
ing them to ' flee from the wrath to come.' This has been a
means of increasing my evening congregation ; and I hope our
number in society will abundantly augment." The number of
communicants at this time at the Gambia was forty-three, and
the school was still increasing ; and Mr. Dawson added : " We
will not ' despise the day of small things.' The oak must first
be an acorn ; and there may be some gospel messengers in this
school, although in embryo."
The work of God was still extending its influence at Sierra-
Leone, especially among the re-captured Negroes, as will be
seen from the following extract of a letter from Messrs. Courties
and May, dated Sierra-Leone, January 8th, 1828 : —
It aflfords us pleasure to be able to inform you that a gradual revival of religion
appears to be going on amongst us. Our labours are blessed to the conversion of
some, and the awakening of others.
At our quarterly renewal of tickets, we added eighteen new members ; most of
whom have not only discovered their need of salvation, but have also exi)erienced
that God is good, and ready to forgive, and plenteous in mercy to all them that
call upon Him.
We also admitted upon trial twenty-seven persons, who wish to cast in their lot
amongst us. Several of these were members when Mr. Baker laboiu-ed on this
station, but, for some cause or other, went back into the world ; from whence, as
poor prodigals, they now wish again to return.
Our love-feasts have of late been truly jdeasing and profitable ; for, notwithstanding
the manner in which the recaptured Negroes relate their experience in broken
accents, it is very easy to understand them, and to perceive the correspondence
there is between their relations and the word of God.
Thank God, there is the shout of a King in our camp ; and to this King of
saints we gladly give the glory of all the good that is done.
New memlxn-s are added ; backsliders arc returning to be healed ; and many
who have been in society, some for two, others for three, years, but had not expe-
300 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
rienced the clear knowledge of salvation by the remission of their sins, have been
stirred up to seek this privilege, and some of them have found the invaluable
blessing.
The last night of the year we observed as a watch-night. The congregation,
although at such a late hour, was both large and attentive. 0 that the year upon
which we have now entered may be marked with abundant blessings upon our
Zion ! *
The year upon which these brethren had now entered ivas
"marked with abundant blessings upon their Zion;" but there
was also in connexion with that, towards its close, and soon after-
wards, some painful afflictions and bereavements, as will be seen
in due course. In the mean time the missionaries were happy
in God, and helpers of each other's joy. They had in company
visited the BuUam shore, and were anxious to commence a mis-
sion there, only they were afraid of tlie expense ; but they
found full employment in the colony : the " gradual revival "
referred to in the preceding letter continued; the number of
members at the Christmas quarter-day had increased from ninety-
five to one hundred and fourteen, with twenty-seven on trial ;
and at one of the love-feasts not less than fifty spoke of what
God had done for their souls.
On the 30th of June, the brethren Courties and May again
wrote to the Committee : —
With respect to the work on this station, it has been, and still continues to be,
attended with a slow but gradual revival. Our numbers continue to increase, and
the members, in general, are regular in their attendance at the classes, and the
other means of grace ; and of some of them, we believe, it may be said, that they
are growing in grace, and in the knowledge of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Clarist.
Our number of members this quarter is one hundred and forty-six, making an
increase of seventeen members, besides ten on trial.
The preaching-house which we have recently fitted up at Soldiers'-Town, is well
attended, and appears likely to be very useful. It is occupied for preaching twice
on the sabbath, and on Thursday evening ; every moniing in the week for a prayer-
meeting ; and also on Monday evening for the same purpose.
In all our chapels prayer-meetings are held between five -and six o'clock in the
morning, and on one evening in the week ; which, with preaching twice on the
sabbath, and one evening in the week, keeps them all well occupied.
But we do not rest here ; we are not content with seeing our members regular
in their attendance upon the outward ordinances, or means of giace. We lu-ge
them not to rest in these, but earnestly to seek, in the use of them, that true
experimental religion, the love of God and man, which alone can constitute them
happy here, and prepare them for the happiness of the saints in eternity ; and
of many of them we do not hesitate to say, that they are in the actual possession of
this true religion. May the Lord help them to hold fast whereunto they have
attained, and improve therein yet more and more, till taken to sit down with
Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, in the kingdom of heaven ! f
* " Missionary Notices," vol. v. pp. 459, 460. f I'^id. vol. vi. p. 7.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 301
There were at this time upwards of eighty schohars in the
day-scliools, a few of whom were beginning to read the New
Testament ; and some of the parents cheerfully contributed to-
wards the education of their children one penny per week for each.
In the Annual Missionary Report for 1828, Messrs. Munro
and Peck were appointed to Sierra-Leone, and Mr. Eichard
Marshall to the Gambia. The announcement of these appoint-
ments is accompanied with a note, as follows : " Messrs. Cour-
ties, May, and Dawson are returning home, having completed
their engagements on those stations, and wall receive appoint-
ments from the President of the Conference.^' These excellent
men, therefore, with Mr. and Mrs. Marshall, left London early
in October of the same year, to proceed to their respective
appointments; and in announcing their departure, the Com-
mittee remark : " In noticing the sailing of these brethren for
stations generally considered to be unfavourable to the health of
Europeans, we cannot but record, with unfeigned gratitude to
God, the special protection which has been vouchsafed to our
brethren who have been sent to those stations during the past
five years ; so that, though they have not all been Avholly with-
out attacks of fever incident to the climate, their lives, with but
one exception, have been preserved through, and even beyond,
the time prescribed for their service there ; and they are
returned, or returning, with hopes of long usefulness in other
parts of the work." The Committee proceed : " We are
happy to state, that though we never send any missionary to
these places who does not voluntarily engage himself in the
Avork, and notwithstanding the hazard which is supposed to be
attached to a residence there, we have never yet been without
men, when wanted, to encounter all the perils of the climate,
for the sake of those who need theii' spiritual assistance."
The Committee further add : " We earnestly recommend our
valued brethren and sister to the prayers of our friends, for
their protection by sea and land, and for the prosperity of the
work of God by their means." There can be no doubt that
this recommendation was responded to, and that many prayers
Avere devoutly offered up for this little band of missionaries, and
that those prayers were graciously ansAvered, so far as that jour-
neying mercies, both " by sea and land," Avere vouchsafed to
them, they having arrived in safety at their destination ; and
Mr. Dawson at the Gambia Avas permitted to return to Eng-
land, and "received an appointment" to an English circuit.
But it Avas not so with the other tAvo brethren at Sierra-Leone :
they both fell victims to the climate just as their term of service.
303 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
though short, had expired ; and the reader will scarcely be pre-
pared for the still further painful announcement, that the two
missionaries now on their way to succeed their brethren at
Sierra-Leone, both sank into an early and untimely grave,
leaving the station without a missionary, aud the sheep without
a shepherd ! Nor does the mournful tale end here ; for to
these must be added Mr. and Mrs. Marshall, who also both
died. Thus were the whole six numbered with the dead in the
short space of two years ! But much as we may sympathize
and feel at this great amount of mortality, and the severe loss
occasioned thereby to the mission, and the grief it gave to
friends at home, we cannot stop to philosophize upon the sub-
ject. Divine Providence is
" A vast unfathomable sea
Where all our thoughts are drown'd."
But the day of explanation will come, when the Great Supreme
" Will throw full daylight on earth's darkest scene,
And justify the ways of God to man."
Till then it becomes us to submit, and to labour on. We shall
therefore proceed to give some account of the labours of these
self-denying missionaries, and to place upon record their peace-
ful, happy, and triumphant deaths, in the order in which they
occurred.
On Thursday, the 9th of October, 1828, " at eight o'clock in
the morning " the brethren Munro and Peck " left the happy
shores of England," and embarked at Gravesend on board the
" Ocean." " At nine the ship was in motion, and at one
o'clock Mr. Munro began to be sea-sick." They anchored
once or twice in the Downs, and on the 14th lost sight of land.
On the 17th they were in "the Bay of Biscay, with a brisk
wind ;" and Mr. Munro, who had been sea-sick from the first
day of their embarking, was now " very sick indeed." Mr,
Peck, though not sick, " felt very giddy." He says, " I heard
much of the roughness of this Bay, and to be sure it is rough
enough ; the ship rolls and pitches so much that we can scarcely
walk about." On the 27th, they Avere both quite well, and at
" half-past three in the afternoon came in sight of Madeira."
On the 2d of November, Mr. Peck read prayers and preached
on deck, Mr. Munro being again sick. Two days after this,
they were " off Cape Verd." The next day JNIr. Peck writes :
*' Wednesda}^, 5th. The warmest 5th of November I ever knew.
We passed the Gambia at a hundred miles' distance." Shortly
THE GAIMBIA AND SIERRA -LEONE. 303
after this they were becahned for several days. On the 14th
they were anxiously looking out for land, as they knew they
were not far from Sierra-Leone. The next day, writes Mr.
Peck, " I rose at half-past five, and found that the Sierra-Leone
mountains and a considerable length of coast were in sight.
This is the first sight of land we have had of Africa ; and I felt
much affected on the consideration of this as the scene of my
future labours. O how can I perform the duties which will
now devolve upon me ? O for help from heaven, without which
I can do nothing ! Still I trust that, by the grace of God, I
shall be enabled so to act, that in me and by me God may be
glorified." They w^ere then at anchor ten or twelve miles from
Free-Town. At one they got under weigh, and moved slowly
towards the harbour. At six o'clock " a pilot came on board,"
The brethren immediately entered into conversation with him,
and, to their surprise and grief, found that Mr. May had died
about six weeks previously. This was painful news ; but, though
they were anxious to get on sliore, the vessel w^as obliged to
anchor at eleven o'clock at night about four miles off. A small
vessel with two hundred and eighteen slaves on board was taken
into the harbour that evening.
Sunday, 16th, " Early this morning they left the ship in the
pilot's boat, and with no small joy set their feet on the shores of
Africa about half-past eight o'clock." On reaching the mission-
house they found Mr. Courties tolerably well. Mr. Munro
preached in the morning, and Mr. Peck in the evening. The
latter, speaking of this, and of their reception, says : " I shall
never forget my feelings when I stood up for the first time
before a black and coloured congregation. The news of our arrival
soon spread, and we had large numbers of visiters, all coloured
people, to see and welcome us. Mr. Courties asked two of
them to pray with us, which they did ; and the simplicity and
earnestness with which they prayed would have aftected hearts
harder than ours. "We could not understand all they said ; but
what we could understand was to me most delightful : ' O Lord
Jesus, bless all we two new ministers ! Dou did save Shadrach,
Meshach, and Abednego in the fire; and dou have saved dem
trou de big Avater : bless dem. Lord ; save dere lives ; Lord,
make dem useful : bless dere daddies and mammies, dere bro-
der and sisses, and all dere friends dem left behind ! Bless all
de big Society dat send them ! De big Society pray for Africa :
now. Lord, Africa pray for dem ! Lord, bless we y make we
heart soft ; make we love Jesus more ; keep we from sin ; keep
we from stealing, from bad language ; make we love to pray !
304 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Bless Kroo-Town, Congo-Town, Portuguese-Town, Soldiers'-
Town, Grassfield ! Lord, bless we ministers, bless we leaders,
bless we exliorters ; make we all love Jesus more, make we all
have more faith, and fill all we souls wid God ! Amen ! ' "
The very act of copying this simple, but beautiful and com-
prehensive, prayer, has warmed the writer's heart; for he has
been carried in imagination to the very spot where, ofttimes, he
has listened with thrilling delight to prayers of a similar kind,
from the same class of people. " God bless de good people in
England ! " "Amen ! " would shout a hundred voices. "And
Lord spare we minister's life ! " Another chorus of " Amen,
Jesus ! Amen, amen, amen ! " And surely this simple and
unadorned manner of expressing themselves, this "Negro
patois," would be as acceptable to " high Heaven that heard "
those broken accents, coming, as they did, from the heart, as
the prayer of the most accomplished scholar. We know it is
so ; for " God is no respecter of persons : but in every nation
he that feareth him, and worketh righteousness, is accepted
with him." (Acts x. 34, 35.)
On the following Sunday, November 23d, the brethren were
fully employed. Mr. Peck " went to Portuguese-Town to meet
his class " early in the morning ; at " ten he preached in the
Maroon chapel, Free-Town ; at two, went to the love-feast ; a
good time :" and he adds, " O how I should like my English
friends to hear them speak ! The tears run down their sable
cheeks Avhile they tell of the love of Christ. Fifty-seven spoke.
At night I preached at Soldiers'-Town."
Shortly after this, Mr. Peck wrote to his friends at Lough-
borough ; and as this letter contains several points of great
interest bearing on the mission, and the missionary spirit of the
writer, I have great pleasure in transcribing the whole of it,
though it be long. It is as follows : —
Wesleyan Mission-House, Free-Town, Sierra-Leone, December %th, 1828.
To all my dear friends, " grace, mercy, and peace."
IIa\ing, by the blessing of God, arrived in health and safety at the scene of my
future labours, I proceed to state a few particulars, for the information of those
who feel interested in my welfare
On the morning of Saturday, November 15th, we came in sight of Sierra-Leone;
and on the following morning, Sunday, November IGth, at half-past eight o'clock,
we, with grateful hearts, set our feet on the shores of Africa. The Lord be praised
for all his mercies bestowed on us while on the bosom of the ocean ! We were
much affected on hearing from the pilot, before we landed, of the death of Mr.
May. It was a sudden and a trying stroke to us, to hear that he had been, onjthe
whole, in good health, and was called to his eternal home while actually engaged in
preparations for his return to England. However, he has left a glorious testimony
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 305
Usebirnl : he died triumphantly, and is doubtless joining the blood- washed throng, in
singing the praises of redeeming love in the heaven of eternal repose. Who would
shrink from such a death in such a cause ? I am much pleased with the appear-
ance of the countiy : it has a peculiar, and to me a delightful, appearance. The
new and beautiful prospects, with the charming and curious notes of numerous
birds, together with the new and interesting situation in which I was placed, pro-
duced on my mind indescribable feelings : they were a mixture of joy, gratitude,
and love ; of fear, lest I should unfaithfully perform the important duties on which
I was about to enter ; and of dependence on Ilim who alone can give Ills people
strength. With these feelings, I landed on the interesting shores of injured Africa.
I suppose, on the spot where 1 landed, there formerly stood a slave-factory. On
our way to the mission-house, a friend met and recognised us, and conducted us to
our future home. The news of our aiTival was soon circulated, and numbers of the
members very soon came to see us. In the course of the day I suppose we had
one hundred and forty people to see and welcome us. The joy and gratitude they
expressed on account of our safe arrival was a source of most delightful feelings to
me : many of them wept as soon as they saw us ; and almost every individual said,
" Tank God, tank God." It was indeed pleasing and encouraging to witness their
atfection, gratitude, and sympathy, and to hear their simple yet truly Christian -hke
expressions ; such as these, " We heart bin sorry too much," (i-eferring to Mr.
May's death,) " but now God send we two new ministers to-day ; him no let de
big water be too much sauce to swallow 'em up ; we tit to be tankful ; tank God,
tank God." They then inquired what friends we had left in England ; and, when
they learned this, I heard them talking to one another, and saying, " 'Em leff 'em
daddy, lefF 'em mammy, lefF 'em brodder and sisses, leff 'em class and all fi-iends ; "
and then they would utter a deep sigh or groan, seem for a while lost in astonish-
ment, and end with, " Tank God."
The settlers (a party of nonconformist Methodists, who oppose us in every possi-
ble way) had been tormenting the poor people by saying, " Yom- white ministers all
die ; the Society in England will send ycu no more ; you had better join us." When
we came, brother Courties said to some, " What will the settlers say now ?" They
said, "0, 'em hearts '11 burn too much;" (that is, they will be very angry or
vexed ;) " tank God, him will send we ministers plenty, plenty." Now, is it possi-
ble that this insinuation w'ill ever be the fact .' for it is urged in England as well as
Africa. Is it possible that missionary zeal should so far decline, that this station
should ever want a man .' I hope not, I believe not : I would not hesitate to give
more than my own poor life for this colony. Mr. Wilberforce calls it " the morning-
star of Africa," and so I conceive it is. It is as the dawn of a bright and glorious
gospel-day to this vast, this injured continent. It is as a bright rising sun, from
which will emanate rays of salvation in every direction. Bear us up by faith and
prayer. We see extensive openings, which have not yet been entered : we intend,
if our lives and health be spared, to tiy to send the gospel in directions in which it
has not hitherto been known. May the Lord help and bless us ! If any inquire
whether I do not repent leaving home, tell them that though I cannot cease to love
most affectionately my dear Loughborough friends, yet I do not, in the least degree,
lament having left them to come to this place. I am convinced it is the will of
God concerning me ; and I cannot repine, even though circumstances were unplea-
sant ; how much less when every thmg is better than I expected ! We have many
comforts and privileges which I did not expect to find in Afiica. Oiu- house is
pleasantly situated on the banks of the river, which is seven miles broad ; we have
a full view of the open sea on one side, and of the mountains on the other; we get
X
306 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
plenty of gTOd, sweet provisions, as yams, rice, beef, and mutton ; (these are better
than I expected, though, of course, not equal to English ;) very good large oranges,
eight a penny ; beautiful pine-apples for nothing, or, if we had to buy them, one
penny each ; good cucumbers, radishes, and lettuce in abundance : for all these
things I am thankful ; but " the best of all is, God is with us." In my own soul I
am happy ; God is with me, Christ is precious, my cup often overflows with grati-
tude and love : I have these gracious visits, and delightful feelings, more frequently
than ever. The Lord be praised for his benefits ! But, better than all, the work
revives ; souls are saved ; the gates of hell begin to tremble ; and though iniquity
does abound, yet the Lord is mightily working. To him be glory and dominion for
ever and ever ! There is every prospect of a revival of the work : a spirit of prayer
and expectation is very widely diffused through the members. It appears now only
to want a few decisive steps and strong exertions on our part, with the assistance of
faith and prayer from our friends, and great and glorious effects will result. By
the help and blessing of our heavenly Father, we are determined to use our utmost
endeavours ; and I say again to my friends, " Bear us up by faith and prayer, and
the powers of hell shall be compelled to fly, like chaff before the wind." In God
alone we trust : to him be all the gloi-y. I believe you do not forget us at the mis-
sionary prayer-meeting. Last week, just at the time of the missionary prayer-
meetings at Greenwich and Loughborough, brother Munro was preaching, and a
man found peace, and praised God so stoutly, that brother Munro was obliged to
desist. At the same time, another man was in deep distress, and rolled about the
floor, so as to upset foiu" or five of the forms. Their gestures and actions while
under convictions are surpi-ising; but I must defer a particular account of these
things to a future communication. I was preaching last night at Soldiers'-Town,
and there were five persons in deep distress. We have been here just three weeks,
and in that time about twelve persons have found peace; or, to use their own
expressions on such occasions, have opened glory to God.
I must conclude this by a few particulars, which I think will be interesting to all
who love the cause of missions. We have six chapels, — three stone ones, and three
of wood and long grass ; about one hundred and sixty members, black and
coloured ; fourteen leaders ; seventeen classes. The leaders attend literally to Mr.
Wesley's rule, to see their members weekly. If a member is absent, they always
go to see what is the cause ; and it is astonishing with what assiduity they seek
after fresh members. At even' chapel they hold a prayer-meeting every morning
at five o'clock. We have six local preachers. I heard one of them preach from,
" Ye must be born again ; " and a very decent sermon he made, too. He very ear-
nestly enforced the necessity of regeneration, and said, " It does not say, ' Ye
should be born again,' nor, ' You 'd better be born again,' nor, ' You may be bom
again ;' but, ' Ye must ;' that is, ' If ye don't, ye must go to hell.'" My labour is,
— on Sunday morning, at six o'clock, I meet my class two miles from home ; at ten I
preach, sometimes at the chapel in town, and sometimes two miles off; at two go
to the Sunday-school ; (we are the only teachers for about fifty children ;) and at six,
preach again. On Monday I meet the children who are learning to sing ; on Tues-
day, Wednesday, and Friday evenings I preach, and on Saturday afternoon meet the
leaders. Brother Mnnro's labours are very similar, only he does not go out to meet
a class on Sunday morning : he meets one on Monday afternoon. We have also
two day-schools to keep in order by occasional visits : indeed, the whole manage-
ment of them belongs to us, as we are ordered to receive £30 a year from the
Society of Friends, for the support of these schools.
We have this day received a letter from the Gambia, stating that Mr. and Mrs.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
307
Marshall have arrived in safety. May their lives be spared, and their labours suc-
cessful ! To every one of my dear Loughborough friends I give my most aifectionate
regard. May all your kindness to your unworthy fellow-traveller to a better country
be returned to your own souls ! May every spiritual blessing be richly imparted to
you ! May the Spirit of God be poured out upon you, and the work of God revive
throughout the whole society ! and when I hear of your affairs, may it be that you
stand fast in one spirit, with one mind, striving together for the faith of the gospel !
Believe me to reiTiain,
Yours, in the strongest bonds of Christian affection,
William Rowland Peck.*
The interesting facts detailed in this letter speak for them-
selves, and need no comment from me, except the lamented
death of Mr. May, which is there again referred to, and which
is entitled to further notice ; and this may be the proper time
and place for the brief sketch of his life. From private papers
and unpublished letters with which I have been kindly furnished,
as well as from other sources, I am able to record the following
particulars respecting this excellent man : —
John May was born in the year 1799, and was educated and
brought up at the Foundling Hospital, London. At the age of
fourteen he was bound an apprentice to Mr. Thomas Andrew,
calico-printer at Harpur-Hey, near Manchester ; and at the age
of twenty, he went to reside with a Wesleyan family at Blackley,
in the Manchester First Circuit. Here he was brought under
the ministry of the Wesleyan Methodists ; and the first sermon
Avhich he heard was from the Rev. James B. Holro3^d, on the
ascension of Christ. This produced an impression Avhich led to
a consciousness of his guilt and depravity, and which showed
him the necessity of a change of heart. He sought this for
some time Avith deep penitence and prayer ; and one evening, as
he was returning from a prayer-meeting, he resolved in his own
mind, that if there Avas such a blessing to be obtained, he would
have it before he retired to rest. He wrestled and prayed till
after midnight ; he then rose from his knees almost exhausted,
and, opening the New Testament, began to read John xvii. ;
and, while reading the third verse, " And this is life eternal,
that they might know thee the only true God, and Jesus Christ,
whom thou hast sent," he felt the guilt of sin removed, and
" the love of God shed abroad in his heart by the Holy Ghost
given unto him." Before retiring to rest, he prayed that, if the
work was real, he might have the same joyous feelings when he
awoke in the morning, and be directed to some portion of scrip-
* " Memoirs of the late Rev. Rowland Peck," pp. 86-93.
X 2
308 "WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
ture wliicli would confirm it. Accordingly, the first thing in
the morning, he opened his Bible, and it was at Isaiah xii. ;
and that memorable verse, vvhich has increased the joy and
gladdened the heart of many a believing penitent, presented
itself before him : " And in that day thou shalt say, O Lord, I
will praise thee : though thou wast angry with me, thine anger
is turned away, and thou comfortedst me." This did indeed
confirm him ; for he felt that, " being justified by faith, he had
peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ;" and therefore
could and did say, "O Lord, I will praise thee!" Having
tasted that the Lord is gracious, he was concerned for the
spiritual welfare of others. He took an active part in the
Sunday-school at Blackley, attended the prayer-meetings, and
visited the sick in their abodes of wretchedness, frequently
relieving them as far as his circumstances would permit; and
in this labour of love, instances were known in which he had
caused the heart of the widow and the fatherless to rejoice.
But while punctually attentive to all the outward means of grace,
and to those acts of Christian benevolence, he did not neglect
the more private duties of religion, such as reading the scrip-
tures, meditation, and private prayer. For this purpose, it was
his custom to rise at four or five o'clock in the morning ; and in
the evening, God's book was his " companion still." His piety
was deep and unaffected, and his zeal ardent and constant.
In the year 1822 he laboured under a severe bodily affliction,
a cancer on his tongue, which had been of some years' standing ;
but this he bore with great patience and resignation to the
Divine Avill : and soon after his recovery, he devoted himself
afresh to the cause of God, in attending the prayer-meetings,
and in exhorting the poor in the villages around him to " repent
and be converted." In 1824 he was admitted as a local
preacher; and his labours were very acceptable and useful,
" especially in his own neighbourhood, where he preached fre-
quently, both on week-nights and on Sunday mornings, to
crowded congregations." In 1826 he was recommended as a
candidate for the missionary work, by the Rev. George Marsden ;
and soon after the Conference, in company with Mr. Courties, he
sailed for Sierra- Leone. His arrival and reception, with the
commencement of his labours, and several communications in
conjunction with his colleague, are already before the reader in
this chapter ; and some of them have been before the public for
many years. One of the first things which Mr. May did, after
his arrival at Sierra-Leone, finding that the colony was so
sickly, was "to set his house in order." This he had done in a
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 3C9
spiritual point of view, long before lie embarked in the mission
work, and now he thought it prudent to attend to the secular
part of it. Accordingly, in a private letter to a friend at Black-
ley, having referred to several Europeans who had died siiice
his arrival, within a few months, he says, " I think it quite
necessary to make some temporal arrangements, as well as
spiritual provision, in case 1, among the rest, should be
cut off by death; and as I am a fatherless child, and have no
friends in England so dear to me as those at Blackley, and,
amongst these, none more so than yourself, I have made
arrangements with my colleague, after he has secured to the
Missionary Committee a certain amount with Avhich he is
acquainted,* to transmit the remainder of my money,
books, &c., to you ; and should it be that my body be laid
in Africa, I should like you to consider the books which may
in such case be transmitted to you as your own, being a tes-
timony of my brotherly affection towards jou; and also to
devote towards the removal of the debt on your chapel, any
money which may be transmitted to you, as a token of the
regard which I feel towards the welfare of the Methodist Soci-
ety at Blackley, — the place where I got my first good and found
my first love.'"'
This arrangement would have been carried into effect, but,
unfortunately, as will be seen hereafter, what little amount of
property Mr. May had nt his death was afterwards lost at sea.
In a subsequent letter, addressed to the same friend at the
beginning of 1828, Mr. May speaks of the pleasure which it
afforded him to hear that the work of God was prospering at
Blackley, a place which " lay near his heart.^' And then,
speaking of himself, he says, " Thank God, I have found that
which 1 long desired, and sometimes thought I felt, but did not
possess. I mean the perfect love of God, sanctification, a
clean heart, or, as it is termed in your letter, ' purity.^ " In
the same communication, he expressed his thankfulness for the
preservation of his life thus far, and for " the abundant bless-
ings upon Zion."
* The " certain amount " was most probably this : — Most of the young men
have accounts against them with the Committee ; besides which, every missionan',
till his probation is over, is considered as owing the Committee a proportion of his
outfit of books and clothing. In case of death, the effects are generally sold, from
which a certain amount is deducted, to be paid to the Committee. In other cases,
the effects are sent to England ; but even then a certain amount is due to the
Committee, varying according to the term of service. In this case, £40 was the
required sum to be returned for tlie outfit of books and clothes, and the remainder
would be given up to his friends.
310 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
About the middle of the year, he was actively employed in
the work of the mission ; and, in a letter to the secretaries, says,
" Our numbers continue to increase ; and of some of them we
believe it may be said, that they are growing in grace." The
rains had now set in ; and towards the close, this humble,
zealous, and useful servant of his Divine Master was called
to his reward. He died at Sierra-Leone, on the 4th of
October, 1828, a few weeks prior to his intended embarkation
for his native country. The particulars of his sickness and
death we are unable to furnish ; but we are told that " he died
triumphantly," and "left a glorious testimony behind," that
death to him was eternal gain.
Thus lived and thus died John May, a special subject of the
particular providence of God. In him was literally fulfilled
the promise, " When my father and my mother forsake me,
then the Lord will take me up." (Psalm xxvii. 10.) Cast upon
the wide world by his unnatural parents, when but an infant of
a few days old, " the Lord did take him up," and
" To all his weak complaints and cries
His mercy lent an ear."
Though "fatherless" and friendless, yet, "when in the slippery
paths of youth," he was soundly converted to God, soon after
began to show unto men the way of salvation, was ordained as a
Wesleyan missionary, and in the " burning clime and tainted
air" of Western Africa he lived and preached the gospel for
nearly two years ; and then his heavenly Father said, " It is
enough : come up hither;" and he entered into the joy of his
Lord in the twenty-ninth year of his age. Of John May we
can say with truth, " He was a faithful man, and feared God
above many."
Messrs. Munro and Peck were now harmoniously and zeal-
ously engaged in their Avork, their labours being very similar.
On the 14th of December, being the sabbath, the latter of them
writes : — " God has graciously preserved my life and health
another week in this colony. I went at six in the moruing to
meet two classes at Portuguese-Town ; thirty-five members
present out of thirty-six. I heard brother Munro preach in the
morning ; afternoon, I preached at West-End, and met three
classes ; at night, preached at the Maroon chapel. One woman
found peace, and loudly praised God, while we were singing the
last hymn." The day following, Mr. Peck writes : " Rather
unwell in body to-day, but my mind sweetly composed. I thank
THB GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 311
my God I die daily, and live above the fear of death ; I feel
truly resigned to the will of my heavenly Father. Not knowing
how soon my change will come, I begin this day to make my v»i\\."
Mr. and JNIrs. Marshall had an agreeable passage, and arrived
safe at the Gambia on the 18th of November, two days after
Messrs. Munro and Peck reached Sierra-Leone. On the day
of landing, Mr. Marshall writes in his private journal : " With
gratitude to God, I record his goodness in bringing us in health
and safety to the scene of my future labours. We were five
weeks and one day on the voyage, during which we received
comforts we never expected on board a ship. I preached four
times to the passengers, and as many of the sailors as could
attend ; and held family w orship daily. I have great reason to
be thankful to God for what he has done for my own soul on the
voyage. I had many baptisms from on high. While entering
the harbour, I was led to reflect, ' How many Europeans have
been called to the eternal world ! Perhaps I may never leave
this place. My wife or myself may have severe affliction of
body or mind ! ' I thought, ' I have not come here to do my
own will, but the will of my heavenly Father. In health or sick-
ness, in life or death, let me have his favour, and all will be well.^'
Thus did these excellent men at both stations enter upon
their works of faith and labour of love; and God was with them,
and confirmed the word preached with signs following. This
will appear from the subjoined spirited and encouraging com-
munication from Messrs. Munro and Peck, dated Free-Town,
January 13th, 1829 :—
We rejoice in being enabled to state tliat our health continues unimpaired, and
that we are as strong to labour as when we left England. For this care and pro-
tection of our heavenly Father we believe the Committee will unite with us in
offering sincere and ardent praise. We feel perfectly at home among the people ;
and our work, though arduous, is pleasant and profitable to our own souls, while
our gracious God condescends to acknowledge and to bless our unworthy labours,
in the awakening and conversion of others. Already we have been aljundantly
encouraged, and constrained to bless the guiding Providence which has cast our lot
in this pleasant land, where the fields are already white to harvest, and where he
that reapeth receiveth wages and gathereth fruit unto life eternal. We have
indeed seen the truth of that saying of holy writ, " One soweth and another
reapeth ; " for our dear brethren have gone forth, breaking up the fallow ground,
bearing precious seed, and watering it with prayers and tears ; and some even with
tiieir dying breath have rejoiced in hope ; and now the fruit is apparent : though the
labourers are removed or laid aside by affliction, the work of the Lord still goes
forward ; and many precious souls are gathered into the fold of Christ, and find
pasture in his chiu-ch.
We have at present six places of worship ; three of which are stone chajjels,
and three are grass-houses. In Free-Town we have the Maroon chapel, which is
alwavs well attended, and sometimes crowded. Of the Maroons, three are leaders.
312 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
and twenty-five mem])ers ; the others are re-captured Negroes ; and make altogether,
in Free-Town, four classes with thirty-five members, l)esides several on trial. A very
considerable movement has lately taken place among the Maroons ; six or eight
have been awakened and converted, and in the presence of large congregations
have declared what God has done for their souls, glorifying his holy name, and
caUing upon others to seek and serve him. This has produced the happiest eflTects,
and many are beginning to inquire the way to Zion. At Portuguese-Town, the
chapel will contain about one hundred and fifty persons, and is well attended.
Our members here are all re-captured ISegroes. There are two classes, thirty-four
members ; making an increase of seven during the last quarter. They are a
zealous, praying, and loving society, forward to ever)' good word and work. We
have here a day-school under a native schoolmaster, who is a member of the
society. About forty boys and twenty girls are instructed here, and have already
made considerable progress. In the African villages, the season of Christmas is
kept with dancing, intoxication, and almost every species of noise and disorder; but
in Portuguese-Town nothing of the kind was to be seen ; all was quiet, save where
the songs of Zion were heard ; for, at a love-feast held there on Christmas-day, six
souls were enabled to praise God with joj'ful voices. On the same day, twenty-one
adults, who had for some time met in class in the various villages, and had given
satisfactorj' proof of their sincerity, were baptized. At Congo-Town we have a
chapel capable of containing nearly two hundred persons. We have here three leaders
and thirty-five members, making an increase of six during the quarter, besides five
who are on trial. We have here also a day-school, kept by one of our members,
in which forty-fom- boys and twenty-three girls receive instruction. At West-End
we have a grass-house which will contain about eighty persons. There are three
leaders and twenty-four members, making an increase this quarter of five, besides
four on trial. The congregations fill the place, and great good is likely to result
from our labours here. At Grassfield we have a house situated in the midst of a
populous village. We have here three classes and forty-three members, being an
increase of nine during the last quai-ter, besides four on trial. Several young men
of great promise have been raised up in this place, who are likely to prove a bless-
ing to the cause. At Soldier-Town we have a grass-house. Here the work of the
Lord is in great prosperity. ^Xe have one leader, (a superannuated soldier, lately
belonging to the Royal African corps,) who, about two years ago, began a class
here. He has now twenty-two members, and six on trial. The chapel will con-
tain about eighty persons. We preach here on sabbath and Thursday evenings ;
and there are generally more persons present than the place vriU contain. Thus
in all our societies the work of the Lord is in progress. We have a delightful
prospect before us. We already behold the drops before the shower, and are
expecting a large eftusion of the Holy Spirit in answer to the united prayers of our
Christian friends in every part of the world. Our people are a praying people.
Every morning at five o'clock a prayer-meeting is held in each of our six chapels,
and their praises ring through the towns before tlie break of day. The work of
God must prosper among such a people, and we are persuaded that it wiU. We
labour not only in hope, hut our eyes already see Zion in prosperity. Still, though
thankful for what has been accomplished in this colony, we are not, cannot be
satisfied till the gospel of the blessed God is made known to all the trihes of this
vast continent, — yea, till the whole earth shall he filled with the glory of God.*
Two days after this letter was written, a brig under Spanish
colours was taken into Sierra-Leone, ^uth four hundred and
" Mi&sionai7 Notices," vol. vi. pp. 138, 139.
THE GAMBIA AND SIEKRA-LEONE.
S13
fifty slaves ou board. One of the missionaries wrote : " She lias
fourteen guns, and, when attacked, made a vigorous resistance.
The Euglish vessel had but one gun ; but with that she silenced
her opponent, and gained possession of her ; yet not until the
captain of the slaver and nine men, besides twenty-four slaves,
were killed/^ On the morning of the 6th of the month no less
than five of these rakish craft, which had been captured by our
brave countrymen, were taken into the harbour of Sierra-
Leone, having on board more than a thousand slaves. In one
of the vessels were " two hundred and fifty children, many of
them not more than four or five years old, and few of them
above tea or eleven." Three of these slavers had Brazilian
colours, one Portuguese, and one French.
Mr. Courties had been waiting for some time for a passage to
England ; for, though tolerably well on the arrival of the brethren,
he was much debilitated, and soon after had another, and then
another, attack of fever. He was removed to a difterent part
of the colony for a change of situation ; but he continued very
ill. On the 31st of this month Messrs. Munro and Peck were
engaged in preparing his boxes, &c., as, from his excessive
weakness, he was incapable of either doing it himself, or giving
any directions. The day following, February 1st, Mr. Courties
embarked on board the " Potton," bound for England. He
was so weak as to be obliged to be carried to the boat, and was
utterly incapable of using the slightest exertion. The brethren
felt much at seeing their friend and brother embark in such a
weak state of body ; but the colonial doctor was of opinion that
the sea air would efiect a great improvement in a fevv' days ; and
Mr. Peck writes : " We leave him in the hands of his great and
gracious Master. May he be restored and preserved ; be
blessed, and made a blessing ! I accompanied him to the ship,
put him to bed, and left him at eight o'clock ; perhaps to meet
him no more till we meet in another world. '^ Such indeed was
the issue ; for this excellent missionary, who had embarked in a
state of great weakness, died on board in a few days. The
vessel was afterwards wrecked; but the crew and the other
passengers were saved. With Isaiah we may therefore say,
"Verily thou art a God that hidest thyself;" and with the
Psalmist, " Thy w ay is in the sea, and thy path in the great
waters, and thy footsteps are not known.''
John Courties was a plain, pious, and excellent man, much
devoted to God and to his work. He was made very useful as
H local preacher, both in Falmouth and in Spitalfields circuit ;
314 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
and on his arrival in Africa^ he was deeply affected at the moral
degradation of the sable sons of Ham, and longed for their
conversion to Christ. In a letter addressed to a friend, soon
after his arrival, he says : " Ou our landing, O what a scene
burst upon my astonished view ! ]Men, women, and children
nearly naked ; houses and furniture different from any thing I
had ever seen before. But what affected me most was, their
spiritual and eternal interest. O, my dear brother, it may
indeed be said of this colony, ' Darkness hath covered the earth,
and gross darkness the minds of the people.^ Ten missionaries
could find plenty of employment here, instead of two
Could you but see and consider the Avretchedness of what is
called ' the re-captured Negroes,' I am sure your heart would
bleed for them A few days ago I bathed with tears the
graves of the brethren Warren, Gillison, Lane, Huddlestone,
and Harte, all at different times employed in the same work,
and occupying the same house, as my dear brother May and I
now do."
Mr. Courties possessed talents of a respectable order, his
knowledge of the INIethodist doctrines was correct, and his zeal
for the salvation of men was ardent and constant. His " dear
brother ]May," in a private letter now^ before me, speaking of him,
says, " Brother Courties I find an agreeable colleague ; truly
pious, and very faithful in warning sinners." God owned the
efforts of his servant, both in the conversion of souls and in
building up believers ; and after labouring w ith great fidelity
and success for upwards of two years in Sierra-Leone, whilst on
his way to England he was called to his eternal home. He
died at sea on the 4th of February, 1829, and his body was
committed to the deep. Though no friend was near to bathe
his grave with tears, yet there " his flesh shall rest in hope," until
"the sea shall give up the dead;" and then the body of John
Courties shall " be fashioned like unto Christ^s glorious body,
according to the working whereby he is able even to subdue all
things unto himself." *
* The vessel, as we have abeady stated, was afterwards wrecked, and Mr. May's
effects were lost, as were also those of Mr. Courties, and indeed every thing else,
except the ship-letters and a few small parcels. The following letter addressed to
the friend to whom Mr. May had bequeathed his books, &c., will explain this. It
was written by the late Rev. John James, who was at that time one of the mission-
ary secretaries : —
" London, July \.<tf, 1829, 77, Hatton-Garden.
" Sir, — According to my promise, 1 now write to inform you, that Mr. Cour-
ties, of Sierra-Leone, died three days after his embarkation for this countn,- ; and
six days after his death the vessel and all she contained went to the l)ottom of the
THE GAMBIA AND SIEREA-LEONE. 315
The brethren on the Coast did not hear of the lamented
death of Mr, Courties till some months after ; and were in the
mean time devoting their energies to the glorious cause, in
which they had embarked their little all. Mr. Marshall, at the
Gambia, under date of February 13th, 1839, writes : —
With respect to the cause of God in the souls of the people, we have reason to
be thankful for what he is doing. The society, especially the male part, appear to
be truly pious ; and our class-meetings are well attended. In the discharge of
private and family duties, they are truly exemplary. I am not aware that any who
are heads of families neglect family prayer, and, when able, the reading of God's
word. When I contemplate the ditficulty under which they labour in receiving
rehgious instruction in a language of which they are comparatively ignorant, and,
on the other hand, the work wrought in them, I can only account for it thus :
" The good that is done in the earth, the Lord doeth it." The public ordinances
are well attended ; some are inquiring the way to Zion ; and we have, since our
arrival, received nine or ten on trial. Some of these are truly converted to God ;
and among them I am happy to number our schoolmaster, who is decidedly pious,
and is now endeavom-ing to impart to the children what he himself has received.
In consequence of this, we have been obhged to divide our Bathurst class, and
Mrs. Marshall has taken charge of the females.
In order to the permanent establishment of this mission, and the extensive
spread of the gospel by it, two things appear important : the raising up of suitable
native preachers, not subject to loss of health, like Europeans ; and the translation
of the scriptures, and other pious books, into their own language. These desirable
ends the Lord appears to be bringing about. In our small society we have six per-
sons, who have begun to call their fellow-sinners to repentance in their native
tongue ; and with the assistance of some natives I have translated the first part of
the Conference Catechism into Jollof.*
On the 2d of March, the following joint letter from Messrs.
Muuro and Peck, at Sierra-Leone, was sent to the Missionary
Committee : —
We are still, by the good providence of God, preserved in perfect health, and are
favoured with such a sense of the Divine Presence and blessing, both in our pubUc
and private duties, as enables us to go on our way rejoicing. We feel an increas-
ing conviction of the inefficiency of all human efforts, separate from Divine influ-
ence ; and of the absolute necessity of humble dependence on the Giver of every
good and perfect gift, without whose help and blessing even Paul may plant and
Apollos water in vain. Our gracious God has not sent us a warfare at our own
charge, nor left us to labour in this part of Ilis vineyard without some token of His
presence, and some manifestation of His power, to make even our feeble labours
effectual in the awakening and conversion of the souls of men. Our toils have been
deep, the crew and passengers only just escaping with their lives. Whatever,
therefore, of the late Mr. May's property was committed to Mr. Courties is for
ever lost. This dispensation of Providence is enveloped in great mystciy : we
deeply lament it, but feel it is o\ir duty to submit.
"I am yours truly,
" John James."
* " Missionai7 Notices," vol. vi. p. 139.
316 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
rendered pleasant, and our absence from the land of our nativitj', and from friends
whom we love, has been almost forgotten, when our souls have been drawn out in
prayer, that this wilderness might become as Eden, and this desert as the garden
of the Lord ; and when, in answer to prayer, we have seen the plants of the Lord's
right-hand planting springing up, and bearing fruit to His honour and glor\'; — when
we have seen Ethiopia stretching out her hands unto God ; — when we have heard
the cry, "What must I do to be saved?" and the joyful song, "0 Lord, I will
praise thee : for though thou wast angry with me, thine anger is turned away, and
thou comfortedst me ;" — when we have seen multitudes flocking to the house of the
Lord, and eagerly hstening to the word of life ; — when people of various nations
have been led to renounce all the refuges of lies in which they have trusted, to cast
their greegrees and idols to the moles and to the bats, and rely on Christ alone for
salvation. The details of this glorious work are interesting. They would take up
more of your time than could be conveniently spared. However, we beg leave to
mention two or three particulai's. In Portuguese-Town, which is inhabited exclu-
sively by re-captured Africans, are several ilohammedans, one of whom has long
been accounted their principal man, and the leader of their devotions in their
assemblies. According to their phrase, " Him sabby book too (very) much."
Possessing an inquiring mind, he often conversed vrith some of our leaders, who are
his countrymen ; and arguments for and against the religion of Mahomed were
frequently adduced. It was urged by our leaders, " Momadoo, (Mahomed,) he only
steal some worde fro Mosee, and some worde fro Jesu Christee, and put 'em in a
book. And he no stand fast and die for de truth all the same as Jesu Christee ;
but -when 'em want to kill him, him run away to Mecca. Momadoo no be Saviour,
him no can take away you sin ; him no can make you feel peace in your heart ; but
suppose you believe in Christee, him be great Saviour, him can do all dis for you."
His faith in the false prophet has been gradually shaken, he has lately begun to
desire instruction, and has been repeatedly visited by our friends, who have con-
versed and prayed with him in simplicity and sincerity. They told him of what
themselves felt of the inward power and joy of their religion, and argued that a
rehgion which makes a man's heart feel first the greatest depth of sorrow, and then
the highest enjoyment arising from a sure confidence of the mercy of God, must be
from God, and consequently true. His mind has been gradually opened ; he
expressed a desire to meet in class, and is now earnestly seeking an assurance of
pardon, and walking in all humility and patience before his former companions, who
are very inveterate against him, and declare that his head is spoiled, and that he
will soon go into the bush (that is, that he is deranged).*
It is truly refreshing to peruse such beautiful, well-written,
and interesting communications as these, containing as they do
facts of such vast importance, exhibiting the progress of the
mission, and the Divine adaptation of the gospel to meet the
moral wants of the various Pagan and degraded tribes of Western
Africa. We read in these epistles, not only of accessions to the
church in the way of numerical strength, but of real conversions
from sin to God. The cry extorted, " What must I do to be
saved?" is followed with the joyful song, "O Lord, I will
praise thee ! " And this takes place_not with one or two indi-
* ".Missionary Notices," vol. vi. pp. 109, 110.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 317
viduals, but people of various nations are led to renounce all the
refuges of lies in which they had trusted, to cast their greegrees
and idols to the moles and to the bats, and to rely on Christ alone
for salvation. Among these vv'as the principal or leading man of
the Mohammedan creed, who, though superior in point of intelli-
gence to the poor re-captured Negro, was fairly beaten in argu-
ment by these illiterate creatures, who had proved that Christ
was infinitely better than IMohammed, in that he had imparted
to them a sweet sense of sins forgiven, and that this " great
Saviour, him can do all dis for you." Such a telling fact, com-
ing fi-om these simple people, and accompanied by the Holy
Spirit of God, was enough to shake the faith of this man in the
false prophet, which it gradually did, and he was led earnestly
to seek for an assurance of pardon. And the genuineness of
these conversions was seen not only by the new converts eagerly
listening to the public ministry of the word of life, but by their
exemplary discharge of private and family duties ; none who
were heads of families neglecting family prayer, and, when able,
in connexion therewith, the reading of God's word. Nor was
this all; for in the small society at the Gambia six persons had
begun in their native tongue to call their fellow-sinners to
repentance ; and at Sierra-Leone the same number were regu-
larly employed as local preachers.
Thus did Jehovah carry on his work, through the instru-
mentality of his servants. But, alas ! " in the midst of life "
and usefulness " we are in death." This has often been the
case on some of our mission-stations ; but in none more so than
in Western Africa. And we have again to dwell upon the
mournful subject of mortality. The latter of the preceding
letters, it is believed, was the last official communication which
the writers made to England ; for the hands which wrote it, in
a few months after this, " forgot their cunning ;" and these two
promising young men were both cut down as flowers of the
field, and numbered with the dead, their noble spirits and pre-
cious souls being received into the paradise of God.
The particulars of their sickness and death were communi-
cated to London by two of the brethren of the Church Mission-
ary Society, who had very kindly visited them in their illness,
and witnessed their last moments. The letter, immediately on
its arrival, was published in the Wesleyan " Missionary
Notices," and was prefaced with the following observations by
the general secretaries of our missions : —
We have just received the distressing intelligence that our valuable missionaries,
Messrs. Munro and Peck, have fallen a sacrifice to the dreadful epidemic fever.
318 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
which has for some time heen raging with fatal violence in this colony. In their
last hours they received the most kind and brotherly attention from the missionaries
of the Church Missionary Society, to whom we feel greatly indebted for this exem-
plification of that true Christian charity which, on various occasions, has eminently
distinguished the missionary character in every part of the widely-extended stations
of missionary occupation.
The great loss thus occasioned to the Society and congregations by the decease
of their laborious and beloved pastors, will, we trust, be regarded by other devoted
young men, of true missionary zeal, voluntarily offering themselves as the self-
denying and fearless successors of those who have fallen in the great and sacred
work of ministering the word of salvation to the poor benighted Africans.
The following extract of a letter from the missionaries of the Church Missionary
Society will afford evidence, that our dear brethren found that peace in death which
they had preached to others : —
Extract of a Letter from the Rev. Messrs. Betts and Davey, Missionaries of the
Church Missionary Society, dated Free-Town, July 22d, 1829.
It is with feelings more easily conceived than described, that we are called
upon to address you under the mournful circumstances which we are about to
narrate.
You probably are aware that an epidemic fever has for a considerable time
raged in Free-Town, by which a large number, both of Europeans and of natives,
have been cut off. It will grieve your minds, we are sure, as it has done ours, to
know that your Society has been deprived of the valuable services of your repre-
sentatives in this colony.
We suppose you have heard that the late Rev. W. R. Peck had the usual
fever of this colony, early in the month of May last, from which he recovered, and
was enabled again to resume his labours for a short time. We have now to com-
municate that he was seized with the epidemic fever about the 27th of June, and
that he continued to suffer under it until the afternoon of the 3d of July, when his
happy spirit took its flight to the mansions of bhss. He was visited, during his
illness, by both of us, and evinced a calm resignation to the will of his heavenlv
Father in the approach of death, though it was evident he keenly felt for the cause
in which he was embarked, and for the prosperity of your mission in this colony, in
particular. Of him it may truly be said, that he was a devoted and a zealous mis-
sionary.
The Rev. W. Munro had enjoyed almost unintennipted health from the time of
his arrival, up to the time when he was attacked by that disease which terminated
fatally. He had been incessant in his attentions to his afflicted brother Peck, up
to the time of his decease ; at which period it was conceived better for him to
remove fi'om his residence to that of one of those who now address you, (the Rev.
W. K. Betts,) that he might there enjoy that rest of body, and composure of mind,
which he so much needed. With tins advice he complied ; but the same evening
the symptoms of fever appeared. Medical aid was immediately called in, and
promptly rendered by Dr. Boyle, the colonial surgeon^ whose unwearied attentions
to both your servants, during their illness, deserve the highest commendations.
While we regret, however, that his skill in this case, as in the other, proved
ineffectual, it is a consolation to our minds, and will, no doubt, be an alleviation to
your sorrow, to know that our departed brother Munro appeared to have his soul
firmly stayed on the merits of the Redeemer ; and though he at times experienced
aberration of mind, yet he never betrayed any fear of death, or doubt of his interest
THE GAMBIA AND SIEttRA-LEONE. 319
in the Saviour. He was removed from a suffering, to (we doubt notj a glorified,
state, on the morning of the 8th instant. His end was peace, and his works shall
follow him.*
An interesting Memoir of Mr. Peck, the first of these bre-
thren who died, was written and published by his father, in
1830, which has reached a third edition : and I have great
pleasure in recommending this little work to the friends of
missions generally, especially to young people, — being per-
suaded it Mould fan the flame of missionary zeal, and thus
help forward the good cause. But, notwithstanding an account
of the character, life, and death of this amiable and excellent
young man have been before the public for some years, from
which we have already quoted, he is entitled to some further
notice in this place.
William Rowland Peck was born at Loughborough, on
the 29th of December, 1805 ; and was baptized by Dr. Coke,
on February 28th, 1806. In his eighteenth year he was savingly
converted to God, and became a zealous and laborious teacher
in the sabbath-school, and made himself useful in a variety of
ways. Soon after this, he began to keep a journal of his
Christian experience ; from which it appears that he first
became impressed with the importance of the missionary enter-
prise by reading Campbell's Travels in South Africa. In his
nineteenth year he attended a missionary meeting at Leicester ;
and he writes : " The condition of the Heathen world often
fills my soul with longing desires to be with them : my soul is
on fire for their salvation." During the same year, the mis-
sionary meeting at Loughborough was an interesting one. Mr.
Peck called it " a high day ;" and further added : '' Such times
as these fill me with zeal for the conversion of sinners. O my
sold yearns over them ! O that I might now go and tell them,,
' Jesus died ! ' O how I long to be traversing the dreary plains^
of Africa ! Danger seems only to animate me. The more I
hear of the dangers and difficulties of a missionary life in Africa,
the more anxious am I to go." In his twentieth year he began
to preach ; and though he went to the house with much fear
and trembling, the Lord was with him, and he "had much
liberty." Though naturally diffident and modest, yet, by pay-
ing considerable attention to the composition of his sermons,
and by fervent and believing pra3^er casting himself upon the
fidelity of God, " Lo, I am Avith you," he generalh^ realized the
* "Missionary Notices," vol. vi. p. 153.
320 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Divine presence and aid in addressing a public assembly. He
soon Ijccame a very acceptable and useful local preacher. Hav-
ing offered himself as a candidate for the missionary work, he
passed the usual examinations with credit in his own circuit, in
the district-meeting, and before the Missionary Committee in
London. About this time he wrote in his journal his views of
the missionary work, aud his replies to the objections which
some had made as to the motives by which he was influenced.
With regard to the latter he says : —
I Ijelieve that I am influenced by no improper motive. For,
1. If I consulted ease, I could enjoy it at home ; and do not, cannot, expect it
there.
2. If I sought or desired fame, I am conscious that I could obtain it at home,
in a way much more agreeable to human nature.
3. If my views were mercenary, I have a good prospect for Ufe at home, which
I must relinquish, if I engage in this work.
Some persons have attributed unworthy motives, and urged objections ; as,
1. "It is only a youthful feeling, wliich will soon die away." To which I
answer. Whether it will soon die away, I cannot tell ; I only know that it now
burns, and with constantly increasing vigour ; and I am persuaded it will never
die, while there is a spark of the life and love of God in my soul.
2. It has been attributed to a love of travelling, and a desire to see foreign lands.
I answer, I do not recollect that I ever felt a love and desire of this kind, uncon-
nected with a love for souls, and a desire to proclaim Christ crucified, the only hope
of a ruined world.
3. It has been said, I have entered on it thoughtlessly, and have not counted
the cost. I answer, I have not entered on this important step thoughtlessly : of
this I am confident. AVith respect to the latter, I answer, I have counted the cost
thus : the loss of ease and pleasm-e, and of my worldly prospects ; the loss of the
delightful Christian privileges I now enjoy, and of all the enjoyments of civilized
life ; and, more than all, the loss of dear relatives and friends and companions.
I say, I have counted on the loss of those who arc dear to me as my own
life ; and this connected with a persuasion that I shall never more behold their
faces in the flesh, but a hope that I shall one day meet them again on the blissful
plains of everlasting felicity I have counted not only on the loss of these
things, but, in exchange, I expect toils and labour, pain and hardships, of various
kinds, and from various sources, and a possibility of persecution and violent death.
Thus I have counted ; and on these things I cannot look with indifference. I do
not, cannot, review them, even at a cUstance, with the feelings of a Stoic : the bare
idea of some of these circumstances makes my heart to melt, and my eyes overflow ;
but " the love of Christ constraineth me."
Such were the views and feelings of this young missionary on
embarking in this glorious cause ; and " dangers only seemed
to animate him," Early on Tuesday morning, September 9th,
1828, " he, without shedding a tear, quitted his father's house
for ever." He was accompanied by some of his relations to
Leicester, where he took coach for London, After his departure
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
321
a scrap of paper was found in the room which he had just
quitted, with the following lines : —
" The sultn' climes of Africa I '11 choose ;
There will I toil, and sinners' bonds unloose ;
There will I live, and draw my latest breath,
And in my Jesu's service meet a stingless death."
But though Mr. Peck left his father^s house " without shed-
ding a tear," this did not arise from indifference, or want of
feehng; for, in counting the cost, he had reckoned " on the loss
of those who are dear to me as my own life;'^ and to himself,
as well as to the few who witnessed it, the moment of his
departure, when he took coach at Leicester, " was one of bitter
and tearful anguish." Divine grace alone sustained him in this
hour, and enabled him to make, freely and voluntarily, this
painful sacrifice. Besides, long before this, he had written in
his journal as follows : — " Three days since, a good, well-
meaning, but certainly injudicious, person, by some means,
heard of my intention to go out on the foreign service, and
came direct to our house, and told ni}' dear mother, in a most
abrupt manner, the whole affair. This was certainly ill-judged.
I had asked and received proper advice in that particular, and
he ought first to have mentioned it to me. The consequence
is, my mother is much distressed, and will now, through his
injudicious conduct, sufl'er much and unnecessarily for a consi-
derable time. She has not yet mentioned it to me; but I
hourly expect and dread it. O my God, give me strength to
be resolute, and give her grace to bear it ! "
The particulars of what passed between the mother and the
son on this trying occasion, are worthy of being placed upon
record. The mother "kept all these things, and pondered
them in her heart," for several months, before she could sum-
mon courage to speak to her son upon the subject. At length,
seeing the way was opening, and the time of his departure was
drawing nigh, with a heart almost broken with anguish at the
loss of such a son, though in so good a cause, she said, " Row-
land, if you go to Western Africa, you will be the death of me."
What did the much-loved son say in reply ? Why, though he
loved his mother, and had " dreaded this hour," yet God had
answered his prayer, and " gave him strength to be resolute ; "
and, looking at his mother, with tearful and filial affection, he
said, " Mother, if you do not consent to my going to Western
Africa, you will be the death of me." In a short time after
this, and after much prayer, the mother resigned him to the
work, " saying, she saw it was of the Lord, and she would not
Y
323
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
resist His will." His dear parents were both present at liis
ordination in London, or rather Greenwicli, where he again
stated, " I arn not only Avilling to go to Africa, but I long to
go." * His biographer writes : " I will not revert to the final
parting : grace was given when grace was needed." The son^s
prayer, that he might have " strength to be resolute, and his
mother grace to bear it," was graciously and fully answered ;
for when the painful tidings of his death reached Loughborough,
the mother Avas even more resigned than the father was ; and
in a few years afterwards she died, and "her end was most
peaceful and happy."
We have already accompanied, in imagination at least, this
promising young missionary to Africa. We have seen him land
at Sierra-Leone, witnessed his hearty reception by the people,
heard him preach "the glorious gospel of the blessed God,"
listened to his joyous expressions of gratitude to God for thus
permitting him to labour in the work on which his heart was
fixed. We have read his interesting communications, beheld
the work of the Lord revive through his instrumentality ; and
now we must see him die; and in death we shall see "the
ruling principle," — his great love to the work in which his soul
delighted. The Church missionaries, who communicated some
account of his death, stated that, " during his illness, he evinced
a calm resignation to the will of his heavenly Father in the
approach of death, though it was evident he keenly felt for the
cause in which he was embarked, and for the prosperity of the
missions." And one of them subsequently communicated some
further particulars, from which it appears that his death was
more than peaceful, — it was triumphant.
" His dying hour brought glory to his God."
* In a letter recently received from his father at Loughborough, this longing
desire is exhibited in a strong light. Having some doubt or fear in his mind, that
he should not pass the examining Committee in London, he had said to some per-
sonal friends, " If the Committee will not accept me, I will ask my father for my
worldly portion, and go to Africa at my own expense : if my father refuse me, I
will beg my way to the sea-shore, and work my passage over." " This," adds Mr.
Peck, " w'as doubtless extravagant ; but it shows the earnest desire of his heart to
precch to the poor Africans the unsearchable riches of Christ." In the same letter
Mr. Peck mentions, that, in his son's Will, his last words were, " My earnest desire
is, that my dear friends will always stand by the holy missionary cause ; and espe-
cially that they will never cease to pity poor Africa." The last three words were
placed as a motto on the tablet put up to his memory in the Wesleyan chapel,
Loughborough ; and the father adds, " And they often quicken me in speaking and
giving and labouring in the cause."
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
3.23
He was sensible to the last day, except occasionally, wlieu for
•a little time he wandered and was delirious. He never ex-
pressed any thing like regret at having come to Africa. The
day before he died, he said, " Nothing grieves me so much as
the thought that my death will cause the hands of our friends
ill England to hang down. My parents, too, will feel it much."
Towards the closing scene, when he could not speak, and those
about him thought his voice would be no more heard, he broke
forth into an attempt to sing, —
" Happy, if with my latest breath
I may hut gasp His name," &c.,
and lifted up his dying hands to heaven, in token of joy and
victory. He expired July 3d, 1829, in the twenty-fourth year
of his age. He was a little-bodied man, but possessed a mis-
sionary soul of no common order.
William Munro was converted to God when very young.
He resided at Greenwich, in the Deptford circuit, where his
labours as a local preacher were both useful and acceptable.
His call to the ministry was clear and satisfactory ; but he felt
it his duty to preach the gospel to the Heathen, and, preferring
the post of danger to any other, he requested to be sent
to Sierra-Leone. He and Mr. Peck were solemnly ordained
to the missionary work in the Wesleyan chapel, Green-
wich, on "Wednesday evening, September 17th, 1828; and,
soon after, they sailed together in the ship " Ocean," Captain
Major, bound for the shores of Africa. He was a young man
of good understanding, deep piety, amiable manners, and great
diligence. His ministerial gifts were very promising; and, had
he lived, he would soon have become a most able minister of
the New Testament. He and his colleague, being possessed of
genial and kindred spirits, soon formed a warm attachment
for each other, which continued to the last. He was incessant
in his attentions to his afflicted brother Peck, and in his journal
daily marked the progress of that disease which removed him to
a better world. During the height of the fever, he "rubbed his
forehead, bathed it with vinegar, and kissed him." On the
morning of the day on which Mr. Peck died, Mr. Munro wrote
in his journal, "My dear brother has passed a restless night,
but without much pain. Dr. Boyle has just left ; says he is in
the last stage. O my God, have mercy ! O, what shall I say to
this? Spare him yet a little longer! But why do I repine?
Thou wilt do all things well."
Y 2
32i WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Up to this time IVIr. Munro had enjoyed almost uninter-
rupted health, and had laboured faithfully and successfully in
-the cause of God; but he deeply felt the loss of his colleague;
and though removed to the residence of one of the missionaries
belonging to the Church Missionary Society, that he might
enjoy that rest of body and composure of mind which he so
much needed, he was seized with the same fever, that very
evening, which had deprived him of his faithful friend and
brother ; and in fiv^e short days his valuable life was terminated.
He died, having his soul firmly stayed on the merits of the
Redeemer, July 8th, 1829.
The premature death of this excellent, affectionate, pious, and
intelligent young man and devoted missionary, was deeply
lamented both at home and abroad. He was buried by the side
of his companion and friend Mr. Peck, ]\Ir. INIay being laid on
the opposite side. "A large African plum-tree grows over the
graves, and the dear missionaries rest under its shade.^^
The sudden removal by death of these two excellent and
pious young men, — who were so admirably qualified for the work
in which they had engaged,* — coming as it did so soon after
the lamented deaths of their predecessors, INIessrs. May and
Courties, produced in the minds of the friends of missions in
England an unusual degree of sympathy, and deep feeling of
regret at the great loss of life occasioned in carrying on these
interesting missions. Some, indeed, who were well-wishers and
liberal contributors to the cause, Avent so far as to question the
propriety of sending European missionaries to so sickly and
deathly a place. But not one of those who had sickened and died
there, ever expressed the smallest regret at the sacrifice they had
made, and several had written to the effect, that, " while men
actuated by a love of gold expose themselves to such a climate,
surely the love of souls ought not to be less influential on us."
The subject of the preceding brief sketch had said to his suffer-
ing colleague, onl}^ two days before he died, " Suppose the Lord
should take us both away before we return to England, what a
glorious meeting we should have in heaven ! " " O yes," he said,
"it will be a glorious meeting indeed; we shall often talk of
* Without intending the shghtest disparagement to any of their predecessors, it
may with truth be said that Messrs. Munro and Peck were greatly beloved by the
people of their charge ; and it is a fact that, though their sojourn in the colony
was so short, during that time some of the seceders or nonconformist Methodists
returned to the bosom of the society, and remained there till they themselves were
removed bv death to a better world.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 325
Sierra-Leone ; but tlie poor people at home would be much dis-
tressed. However, God will do all things well ; all will be riglit.^'
By the "people athome^^ being "much distressed," Mr. Peck did
not simply mean his own relations and friends, but the friends
of missions generally, as is evident from what he said the day
before his death. Besides, he had previously touched upon this
subject, in the letter addressed to his friends at Loughborough,
which is found in a preceding part of this chapter. Some of
the nonconformist Methodists had said to some of the members
of our ov.'n society, " Your white ministers all die : the society
in England will send j^ou no more: you had better join us;"
and Mr. Peck in his letter asks, " Now, is it possible that this
insinuation will ever be the fact ? for it is urged in England as
well as in Africa. Is it possible that missionary zeal should so
far decline, that this station should ever want a man ? I hope
not, I believe not : I would not hesitate to give more than my
own poor life for this colony."
The fears expressed by this dying youth, that the announce-
ment of both their deaths would occasion much distress at
home, were well grounded ; but it did not operate to such an
extent as to lead to the abandonment of the mission ; and he
was quite correct in hoping and believing, that that station would
never want a man to fill up the ranks of those who had fallen.
An encouraging affirmation, the reader will recollect, had been
made by the Missionary Secretaries, on the departure of Messrs.
Munro and Peck to succeed Messrs. Courties and May, who
were at that time shortly expected in England. The Committee
had said, " We are happy to state, that, though we never send
any missionary to these places who does not voluntarily engage
himself in the work, and notwithstanding the hazard which is
supposed to be attached to a residence there, we have never yet
been without men, when wanted, to encounter all the perils of
the climate, for the sake of those who need their spiritual
instruction." This statement, it should be remembered, was
made about twelve months before, during which period four
missionaries had fallen victims to the pestilential atmosphere
of Africa; so that it was now no longer a supposed hazard to em-
bark in this mission, but the men who went there must go with
their lives in their hands ; willing to live or to die, as their Divine
Master thought fit. The Committee were still substantially correct;
for, when the time of need came, then came the promised help.
Christian heroism aud devoted zeal furnished a supply ; * and
* A supply of one, though two were really needed ; but only one suitable person
having offered at that lime, only one was sent.
326 WESTERN COxVST OF AFRICA.
Divine Providence had so ordered it, that a personal friend of
Mr. Peck was now ready and Aviliing to succeed him at this
very station ; and John Keightley, of Loughborough, sailed in
the month of December of the same year for Sierra-Leone.
Mr. Keightley, after a very pleasant voyage, arrived at
Sierra-Leone on the 27th of January, 1830; and on the 23d of
the following mouth communicated some interesting particulars
respecting the state of the mission. Though the societies had
been deprived of their pastors for about six months, " all the
places of worship had been kept open, and divine service regu-
larly performed in all of them since the death of the mission-
aries.^' He had, on the preceding sabbath, administered the
sacrament of the Lord's supper to about two hundred persons at
the Maroon chapel ; and he added, " O that the friends and sup-
porters of missions had seen these devout worshippers com-
memorate the Lord's death ! It would have gladdened their
hearts, and have constrained them to say, * Blessed are the eyes
that see what we see ! "'
During the year 1829 the lives of Mr. and Mrs. Marshall at
the Gambia had been mercifully preserved through the rainy
season, though they had suffered severely from repeated attacks
of fever ; and at its close, being much debilitated, they went to
reside for a short time at the Govei'nment convalescent-house at
Cape St. Mary's. This house is built on an elevated rock on
the shore of the Atlantic, and is about half a mile from the
mouth of the Gambia : the air is, therefore, comparatively cool
and refreshing, and they both derived some advantage from
their new situation. This, however, was but temporary, and
thej' subsequently took a short sea-voyage, and went to Goree,
where Mr. Marshall preached witii encouraging prospects of
success. On the 23d of January, 1830, Mr. Marshall returned
to St. Mary's, fully restored to health ; and he writes : " Mrs.
Marshall and myself are both able to attend to our regular
work ; she to her little school, and I to preaching, &c."
The amount of annual subscriptions to the mission-fund, at
the Gambia, was that year £53. At Sierra-Leone I find no
return, which was probably owing to the deaths of the mission-
aries. The numbers in the society were, — Sierra-Leone, two hun-
dred and fifty-seven ; St. Mary's, forty-five. Interesting commu-
nications from Mr. Marshall were published in the " Missionary
Notices" for March and July, 1830. The latter of these is
dated February 26th, 1830, in which he gives some account of
two natives of the Jollof tribe, who Avere very acceptable local
preachers, and whom he wished to employ as assistant mission-
THE GAMBIA AND SIEllRA-LEONE. 327
aries, which they subsequently became. But before instructions
to that effect were received from the General Committee, Mr.
Marshall was called away by death, and the station was left for
some time without a missionary.
RiCHiVRD Marshall was a native of West-Thirston, North-
umberland, and was born December 28th, 1804. He was
favoured with pious parents, and very early became a subject of
religious impressions. His convictions of sin were afterwards
more deep and powerful ; and, in his nineteenth year, his godly
sorrow was turned into spiritual joy, and he could say, " Jesus
loved me, and gave himself for me." From that time he
" enjoyed sweet communion with the Lord." This great change
took place at Newcastle, at which time he was residing with
an elder brother. From his conversion until his death, Mr.
Marshall invariably manifested his love to God, by a burn-
ing zeal for the salvation of man. Possessing an excellent gift
in addressing the throne of grace, he was soon noticed by his
brethren, who pressed him to give a word of exhortation, which,
after some hesitation, he did. Soon after this he began to
preach; and those who heard him were fully convinced that
God designed him to be useful as a public teacher. He was
employed for some time as a hired local preacher in some of the
destitute parts of his native county, Wark being the place of his
abode. He went to most of the villages within fifteen miles of
that place, and estabUshed regular preaching at twelve or four-
teen of them, which he visited once a fortnight. To fulfil his
appointments lie had frequently to walk thirty miles, on roads
which were almost impassable, and preach three times on the
sabbath, with but poor accommodations at the end of the day.
But in the midst of these toils he literally rejoiced. In some of
the places he formed small societies, several being awakened
under his ministry ; and, after labouring here ten mouths, he
left nearly fifty persons in religious fellowship.
From the first, he had considered himself as especially called
to labour in the mission-field ; and though his family felt reluc-
tant to part with him, and were opposed to his going to Western
Africa, he was constrained to offer himself to the Missionary
Committee for any part of the Heathen world, not excepting
even Western Africa. He was accordingly appointed, in the
autumn of 1828, to labour at St. Mary^s, on the River Gambia.
On taking leave of his friends at Newcastle, Mr. Marshall
writes : " This evening I was called to that which I have long
(headed, the parting with all that is dear on earth. But how
328 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
true is the word of tlie Lord, ' As thy days, so shall thy strength
be !' While I was taking leave of my parents, brethren, sisters,
friends, I felt power to commit them all to my heavenly Father,
in good hope of meeting them at his right hand at last/^ After
remaining in London a short time, he, with Mrs. Marshall,
embarked on board the " Redman,^^ bound for the Gambia.
His views and feelings on his arrival we have previously
recorded. He was eminently qualified for the work to which
he was appointed, being intelligent, prudent, and laborious :
nor was he less pious : he not only possessed the gift of prayer,
but lived in the spirit of prayer and devotedness to God, He
continued to labour, often in great bodily Aveakness, till the
middle of the second rainy season, when, after five days' illness,
he was taken to his eternal reward. He died August 19th,
1830, in the twenty-sixth year of his age, and after a residence
in Africa of twenty-one months and one day.*
At the time of his death. IMrs. INIarshall was confined with
the same fever, together with their infant son. At the urgent
recommendation of her medical attendant, she embraced the
only opportunity which offered for sailing to England, and left
the Gambia two days after her dear husband's decease, accom-
panied by a faithful Negro servant-girl, named Sally. She
arrived at Bristol on the 1st of October, in a state of great
bodily weakness, and much mental suffering. Nothing in the
course of the day appeared to indicate immediate danger; but,
during the evening, she was seized with strong convulsions, and
the next morning was delivered of a dead child. The convul-
sions continued, Avithout intermission, until the evening, when
her sufferings terminated in death, and her spirit joined its
mate in the skies, to be parted no more.
Mrs. Marshall's maiden name was Liddell. She was a
native of Newcastle, and was united in matrimony to Mr.
Marshall a short time before they sailed for Western Africa.
A few days after they reached London, Mrs. Marshall's mother,
whom they had left at Newcastle in the enjoyment of good
health, sickened, and " died in the Lord." As might be
expected, this proved a severe shock to Mrs. Marshall ; but she
* An interesting memoir of this excellent missionary, with some account of
Mrs. Marshall, was published in the Wesleyan Magazine for 1833. It was written
by the Rev. J. E. Coulson ; and \ am indebted to that interesting piece of biography
for some of the facts embodied in the preceding and following sketches of their
characters.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 329
found the grace of God all-sufficient, and was enabled to bow
with submission to his righteous will. Mrs. Marshall had fre-
quently spoken in the most joyous manner of the opportunities
she should have in Africa of instructing the Heathen females
and children in that religion which is profitable for the life that
now is, and for that which is to come. Immediately on their
arrival at the Gambia, she took charge of the female class at
Bathurst, and was no less useful among the female children in
the day-school, to whom she paid the closest attention, with
very satisfactory results. In reference to the mission, she had
a spirit equal to that of her husband, and was well qualified to
soothe, and encourage, and stimulate him in the toils of his
station. But, alas ! her own health and spirits sank beneath
the weight of personal and domestic affliction ; and the loss of
her beloved husband, at a time when she was herself sufi'eriug
from the same disease, together with the peculiarity of her
situation, greatly tended to increase her afl^iiction ; and she died
at the house of Mr. Shewring, in Bristol, on the 2d of October,
1830, about forty-eight hours after she landed on the shores of
her native country, leaving her little orphan son Richard and
his African nurse as " strangers in a strange land."
It has been well said by Mr. Marshall's biographer, " Events
such as these are truly affecting, and stagger human reason.
Here was a pair every way qualified, apparently, for the work
in which they were engaged ; labouring with acceptance and
usefulness; determined to spend all their days and strength to
the glory of God. But, suddenly, they are cut ofi" with a stroke,
and the world is bereft of their labours for ever. We will not
repine. Already have they gained a glorious distinction. Their
names are recorded on high, their memories shall be enshrined
in many bosoms : and the ultimate benefit of their labours iu
Africa no one can calculate.''
CHAPTER XVII,
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1830—1833.)
A Review of the six Deaths recorded in the preceding Chapter— Mr. Keightley
now the only Wesleyan Missionary in Western x\frica — Extract from his
Letter— Mr. Moister a])pointed to the Gambia — Touching Incident— Mr.
Moister's Arrival and Reception at St. Mary's — The first Sabbath — Mr.
Moister visits Macarthy's Island — Tlie Conversion of a Mohammedan at
Sierra-Leone — Mr. Ritchie — Extract of a Letter from Mr. Moister at the
Gambia — Termination of the Barra AVar — Mr. Moister's second Voyage up the
River — Takes with him a native Teacher — Commencement of the Macarthy's
Island Mission — Mr. Keightley's Return to England— The Appointment of Mr.
Maer to Sierra-Leone — Extracts of Letters from both Stations — Mr. Ritchie's
Return to Europe — Mr. Clarke appointed — Mr. Moister's third Visit to
Macarthy's Island — Pleasing Prospect of that Mission.
In the preceding chapter we have given some account of the
short but useful Hves, and of the peaceful and triumphant
deaths, of no less than six valuable European agents of the
Wesleyan Missionary Society ; tiiat is, five missionaries, and the
wife of one of those who fell in this field. All these had died
within the brief space of two years; but, though dead, they
are not lost : — no,
" In a milder clime tliey dwell —
Region of eternal day,"
and though twenty years have elapsed since these moral heroes
" fought the good fight, and finished their course," they are not
forgotten ; their names are not only " recorded on high," but
their memories have been embalmed in the affectionate remem-
brance of scores in Africa, as \^'cll as of many surviving rela-
tions and friends in England. On " the resurrection morn" we
shall meet again; and then no fathers or mothers will ever
regret having given their sons or daughters to such a glorious
cause ; and then what now appears to us dark and mysterious
will be clear as the noon-day ; for
" God is his own Interpreter,
And he will make it plain."
Mr. Keightley was now the only Wesleyan missionary on the
West Coast of Africa ; and many prayers were devoutly offered
up, that his hfe might be spared, and that the Almighty would
THE GAMBTA AND SIERRA- LEONE. 331
continue to raise up and send forth more labourers into these
fields that were already white to the harvest. "We cannot but
record the goodness of God, not only in the preservation of
the life of his servant, but in that, during the whole of the rains
of that year, he had enjoyed comparative health. This will be
seen from the following extract of a letter from Mr. Keightley
himself, addressed to the Missionary secretaries, and dated
Eree-Town, Sierra-Leone, November 4th, 1830 : — " Your letters
have laid me under the greatest obligations. Accept my thanks
for your sympathies and prayers. I feel thankful to God that
the sickly season is past. I have been indisposed several times,
but have not been prevented from attending to my regular
duties more than three or four days ; and at present I am quite
well. We have removed to a good house, in one of the most
healthy situations in Free-Town. During the last six months we
have been blessed with many seasons of refreshing from the
presence of the Lord ; and while we have had occasion to
mourn over some, we have had occasion to rejoice on account of
others.^^ Mr. Keightley also speaks of an improvement in the
children of the school, and of his gratification with the zealous
conduct of the class-leaders ; but laments the want of a colleague,
and hopes one would soon arrive. This reasonable and just
request was complied with as soon as was practicable ; but as
the Gambia was without a missionary, the attention of the
Committee was naturally directed to that station first ; and,
towards the close of the year, Mr. Moister was appointed as
Mr. Marshall's successor at St. Mary's. The circumstances
which led to this very suitable appointment are interesting.
The melancholy death of Mrs. Marshall, so soon after slie
landed in Bristol, having been a widow only about six weeks,
when she was called by a mysterious Providence to leave her
fatherless child and his African nurse "as strangers in a strange
land," and to join her husband in the skies, will be fresh in the
recollection of the reader. Immediately after Mrs. Marshall's
decease, the female attendant proceeded with the infant sou to
Newcastle-upon-Tyne, to Mr. Andrew Marshall, brother of the
deceased missionary. But on the way thither, the servant
was directed to call at the Mission-House in London, which
she accordingly did; and Mr. Moister has himself touchingly
described this in his " Missionary Incidents for juvenile Readers,"
published in the " Wesleyan Juvenile Offering fur April, 1849 :"
" It was on a cold morning in the month of October, 1830, that
a Negro girl presented herself at the door of the old Mission-
House in liatton- Garden, London, carrying in her arms a poor.
332 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
sickl3'-looking white child. This little infant was the orphan
son of the late Rev. Richard Marshall, who died at St. Mary's,
on the River Gambia, in Western Africa, after five da^'s' illness,
in the month of August, the same year.'' After describing the
death of Mrs. jMarshall, which we have already stated, and that
"Nancy* was faithful to her precious charge, and carefully
conveyed little Richard to London, as stated above," Mr.
jNIoister proceeds : " At the time of this affecting occurrence,
I had been in London for several weeks, in company with
many other young men, and we were all awaiting our designa-'
tion to the foreign work. We all felt much interested in the
little missionary orphan boy, and were delighted to observe the
mutual attachment which existed between him and his nurse.
Nancy seemed very fond of little Richard ; and while she care-
fully folded him in her sable arms, and bedewed him with her
tears, she would tell of her country, and of her master and
mistress, in a manner the most affecting. It was known that
a missionary would be required immediately to succeed the late
Mr. Marshall, at the Gambia station in Western Africa; and,
after making it a matter of sincere prayer to Almighty God,
and consulting with my friends, I felt it upon my heart to say,
with the prophet, 'Here am I, send me;' and I was at once
appointed to Africa."
Since writing this I have received a letter from a member
of the late Mr. Marshall's family at Newcastle, from which it
appears, that as soon as the mournful tidings reached them,
Mr. Andrew Marshall immediateh' Avrote, expressing his wish
to take the child and adopt him as his own. And as a female
servant had accompanied one of the preachers' families from
Newcastle to London, and was at that time about returning,
she took charge of the African nurse and child, and they
arrived safe at Newcastle. The writer of this letter men-
tions some particulars corroborative of Mr. Moister's statement :
" Sally, the nurse, stayed with us nine weeks. We all felt
deeply interested in her, and parted with her very reluctantly.
When she first came, she seemed suspicious of every one, and
could not bear Richard out of her sight : her affection for him
was astonishing. After a week or two, she seemed convinced
that we were real friends, and began by degrees to tell us of her
country, which she called Ebou ; that she had one little brother ;
that her mother died, and her father sold her to a black slave-
dealer, with all the horrors of being driven through the coun-
* Her name was Sally.
THE GAMBIA AND SIEB.RA-LEONE. 333
try, put on board of ship, their capture by one of His Majesty's
ships, &c. Frequently she would sigh deeply, and exclaim,
' Poor Sally no fader, no moder, no country ! Ricket (Richard)
got good kind fader and moder, and plenty sister and friend :
me no afraid to leave poor little Ricket now/ It was truly
affecting to hear her thus soliloquize, while she pressed her poor
little emaciated charge to her sable bosom, and bedewed him
with her tears. Even at this distance of time, I cannot refer to
it without tears ; and it may perhaps furnish an illustration of
the character of that interesting, but deeply-injured, race/'*
But to return : Mr. Moister, having been united in marriage
to one who was willing to share with him in the toils of mis-
sionary life, embarked, with Mrs. Moister, at London-Bridge,
on board a steam -boat for Gravesend, on the 12tli of February,
1831 ; and soon after they went on board the brig "Amelia;''
and, being favoured with a safe and pleasant passage, they
arrived at St. Mary's on the 10th of March. They were
received with devout gratitude by the society and congregation,
who had been kept united since the death of Mr. Marshall.
Many of the natives who were connected with the mission,
having heard that a missionary and his wife were on board the
vessel just arrived from England, hastened to the beach, to give
them a cordial welcome ; and such was the anxiety and grati-
tude of these poor people, that several of them plunged into
the water to meet the boat as it approached the land, and
triumphantly carried their welcome visitors on shore in their
arms. This was done to express joy at their arrival, as well as
to save them from being wet with the surge, which was dashing
with violence against the sandy beach. On landing Mr. and
Mrs. Moister were met by a large concourse of people, many
of whom had received the gospel at the hands of former mis-
sionaries; and Mr. Moister adds: " They wept for joy. They
kissed our hands again and again, and, bedewing them with
tears, exclaimed, ' Tank God, tank God ! Mr. Marshall die,
but God send us nuder minister.' " Mr. Moister at once com-
menced his labours, with pleasing prospects of success. He
speaks of the first sabbath spent in Africa as a day never to be
* The author inay add, that he perfectly recollects the affecting particulars
described hy Mr. Moister, being hhnself at that time " one of the young men at the
Mission-House in Hatton-Garden ; " and, as will be seen presently, he succeeded
Mr. Moister at the Gambia, where he again saw and recognised the faithful and
aflfectionate African nurse ; and having known her and her excellent husband some
years, lie afterwards had the melancholy pleasure of witnessing her peaceful and
happy death.
334 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
forgotten. " At morning dawn the native prayer-meeting was
held, and many thanks were offered to Almighty God for our
safe arrival. In the forenoon I read prayers, and opened my
commission by preaching from that delightful text, ' This is a
faithful saying, and w^orthy of all acceptation, that Christ Jesus
came into the world to save sinners.^ (1 Tim. i. 15.) The people
heard with marked attention, and the whole appearance of the
congregation was truly pleasing. It was an interesting proof
that the labours of my revered predecessors had not been in
vain, though some of them had been called hence at an early
period after their arrival. The Negroes who had been brought
to a knowledge of the truth, both male and female, together
with their children, appeared in the house of God neatly
clothed, and in their general aspect they presented a striking
contrast to their sable brethren who still remained in Hea-
then darkness. They sang the praises of God delightfully.
Another service in the evening, conducted partly in the lan-
guage of the natives, and partly in English, closed this blessed
day."
Mr. INIoister had not been long in Africa before he paid a
visit to Macarthy^s Island, which, owing to the sickness of the
missionaries, and want of help, had not been visited by any
European missionary since Mr. Morgan left the Gambia. But
Mr. Moister being now in excellent health and spirits, and,
moreover, some valuable local helps having been raised up on
the station at St. Mary^s, two of whom, namely, Pierre Sallah
and John Cupidon, Avere employed as native assistant mission-
aries, he was enabled to leave the station for some time in their
charge, whilst he, in the genuine spirit of a missionary, endea-
voured to introduce the gospel into "the regions beyond."
Having regulated the affairs of the society, renewed the quar-
terly-tickets, administered the sacrament of the Lord's supper,
and given directions to the native teachers how to proceed
during his absence, he embarked on board a small merchant
sloop on the 14th of May, bound for the upper river. On the
evening of the 19th they came in sight of Macarthy's Island.
" Its appearance," writes INIr. Moister, " was beautiful, the sun
was setting behind the opposite hills, and the natives were
retiring from cultivating their farms, &c. After coming to
anchor, we went on shore, and had a comfortable niglit's rest in
a native hut." The next day Mr. Moister met with Lieutenant
W. Shaw, the commandant, the only white man on the island,
who kindly invited him to his hut, to share with him in all his
little comforts ; with which he gladly complied, and during his
THE GAMBIA AND STERRA-LEONE. 335'
stay was treated by the commandant with every mark of Chris-
tian respect. The 22d was the sabbatli ; and " when the hour
of divine service arrived, the bugle was sounded, the sergeant
marched the troops in beautiful order to the appointed place,
most of the inhabitants of the town gathered together, and I
read prayers, and then preached from Isaiah iii. 10, 11. Many
of the hearers appeared aftected, and I hope that a lasting
impression was made upon several minds. In the evening we
assembled together again, when we experienced a similar
blessing."
The object of this visit being so far accomplished, after a stay
of two weeks Mr. Moister prepared to return to his station at
St. Mary's ; and on taking his departure many of the natives
flocked to the river-side, and begged him to come again, or to
send them a teacher, when he promised to do his utmost for
their welfare. After a pleasant run down the river, he arrived
safe at St. Mary's on the 10th of June.
Mr. Keightley, at Sierra-Leone, continued to prosecute his
work in the enjoyment of tolerable health ; nor did he labour in
vain, as will appear from the following extract of a letter, dated
July 13th : "A Mohammedan at Portuguese-Town has been,
we hope, truly converted to God. About eleven months ago, I
was requested to baptize this Mohammedan's child ; his wife
being a member of our society, I consented. While addressing
the parents, before the child was baptized, the father began to.
tremble, and it was evident he felt the power of God. I have
watched this man from the above period, with peculiar anxiety,,
and have always been pleased wdth him at the different times
when he came for instruction. At first he seemed surprised
that he felt so much, and said, ' Me pray to Momed past seven
years, and me see noting, me feel noting; me pray to Jesus
Christ, my heart feel.' His anxiety to be really converted
always pleased me. After seeking the Lord with a broken and
contrite heart for several months, he has found ' peace with
God through our Lord Jesus Christ.' I doubt not this man is
a true convert : there is every evidence we could expect or-
desire."*
Mr. Ritchie had arrived at Sierra-Leone some time previous;
* The Sierra-Leone " Watchman " states : " This man maintained his Christian
character imblemished, and was appointed to tlie office of class-leader in 1838 ;
and in 1839, being a fisherman, he was out at sea one day, and the boat was upset
by a strong gust of wind, and he and another were drowned ; but when struggling
with the waves, and seeing there was no hope of his being saved, he said to his-
comrades, who for the most part were Christian men, ' I am going to glory.' "
336 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
to the date of this letter ;* and thus far the rain}'^ season had
been health}^, and both the missionaries were quite welh
Under date of October 3d, Mr. Keightley again wrote to the
committee, when he reported that his colleague had been
visited with an attack of the country fever, which confined him
to his bed for a week, and prevented him from attending to his
regular duties for about a month. Dr. Fergusson, acting colo-
nial surgeon, and Mr. Graham, of the Church mission, were
very attentive to Mr. Ritchie during his sickness, and they both
generously refused to receive any remuneration for their pro-
fessional and successful treatment. The work of God was
prospering, and the appearances were very encouraging.
At the Gambia Mr. and Mrs. Moister also had been graci-
ously preserved through the rains, though not without repeated
attacks of fever ; but on the 25th of October Mr. Moister
addressed a letter to the general secretaries, in which he men-
tions with gratitude to God their full restoration to health, and
that they Avere now looking forward with pleasing expectation
for some months of more healthy and salubrious weather. The
following extract from this letter will show the state of the mis-
sion, as also the disturbed condition of the adjoining country,
which necessarily retarded, for a time, the great work in which
he was engaged : —
We have lately had many things to experience which have tended to retard the
progress of the work of God on this station ; one of the most important of which
is, war with the neighbom'ing native tribes, the Manchngoes. They have long
used various projects to accomplish the entire destruction of this settlement ; and
if their designs had not been frustrated, such is their number and strength, that we
must all have become the victims of their cruelty. At the commencement of this
war, they made a bold attack upon the people residing at a small fort on the other
side of the river, adjoining the kingdom of Barra. Mihtary force was soon carried
over from St. Mary's, and a sharp engagement for a short time ensued ; but the
strength of the enemy, and the inconvenience arising from the standing corn and
grass, &c., induced our troops to retire till their number was increased and a more
favourable season presented itself. In that engagement about ten men were slain
who went to fight in defence of this place, one of whom was the captain of an
English vessel. Because he was a white man, they cut oif his head, raised it upon
a pole as a monument of their achievements, and burned his body to ashes. Since
that time vessels of war and a military force have been called in from Senegal and
Sierra-Leone. It is supposed. that many hundreds of the Mandingoes have already
been slain, and a decisive engagement is soon to take place. And though we have
nothing to do with wars and tumults, yet it affects us so far as it puts the people
amongst whom we labour into a state of consternation and dismay. Many of our
members have to take up arms in defence of the place as a militia. But still we
* The precise time of Mr. Ritchie's sailing for Africa, or his arrival there, I have
not been able to ascertain.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 337
have reason to rejoice, in the midst of all our tribulation, that there does not
appear to he any declension in the personal piety of the professors of religion. We
experience the presence of tlie Lord when we meet together in his sanctuary.
You will perceive from the account which I send, that our society is still increas-
ing, and that the number of members is sixty-one, being an increase of upwards of
twenty since om- arrival. We have formed one new class, and hope soon to be
under the necessity of forming a second.
We are anxious for these tumults to cease, tliat we may have an ojjportunity of
extending our labours. We are not without hopes that much good will be etfected
in this part of the missionary field. May the Lord hasten the glorious period,
when the darkest habitations of cruelty shall be visited by the light of his gospel ;
when the empire of Satan shall be destroyed, and the savage tribes on the banks of
the Gambia be induced to beat their swords into ploughshares, and their spears
into pruning-hooks, and learn war no more.*
Two serious engagements took plcice after this, in which many
lives were lost on both sides : the English, however, succeeded
in re-taking the small fort at Barra-Point, the v/arlike natives
were subdued by the force of British arms, and peace was at
length restored. Soon after the ratification of peace between
the kingdom of Barra and the British colony, Mr. Moister
began to prepare for his second voyage up the I'iver. On this
occasion he took with him one of the native teachers, with
books, slates, &c., for the commencement of a school in con-
nexion with the permanent establishment of the mission. They
left St. Mary's on the 8th of March, 1832, and arrived at
Macarthy's Island on the morning of the 16th, when thej were
cordially welcomed by the natives, Avho flocked around them, to
testify their joy at their arrival. Mr. Moister immediately pur-
chased a piece of land in a suitable situation, and a small place
of worship was speedily erected. It was a humble sanctuary,
built of cane wattled-work, and thatched with grass, with small
apartments at the end for the native teacher and his wife.
But, humble as it was, when tliey collected the people together
for Divine worship, they realized the presence and blessing of
the great Head of the church. Having thus prepared a place,
collected some of the children, commenced the school, intro-
duced Mr. Cupidon as their teacher, and commended him and
his work to God, Mr. Moister returned to St. Mary's, which
place he reached on the 24th of the same month. He received
a communication from IMr. Cupidon shortly after, in which he
stated, that he had preached several times, that the congrega-
tions were good, and the people seemed afi'ected with the word
preached.
Mr. Keightley, at Sierra-Leone, having completed his terra
* " Missionary Notices," vol. vii. pp. 78, 79.
Z
338 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
of service, about this time returned to England. He arrived at
Plymouth in Majj 1832, after a somewhat dangerous passage.
Having remained in England for some time, he was appointed
to the West Indies, where he laboured for several years; and
since the year 1843, he has been engaged in the ministry at
home.
At the Conference of 1832, Mr. Edward Maer was appointed
to Sierra-Leone, and was cordially welcomed by Mr. Ritchie
and the society there.
The following extracts from the letters of ]Mr. Moister at the
Gambia, and Mr. Ritchie at Sierra-Leone, will show the state of
the work of God at both stations at the close of this year.
Mr. Moister's communication is dated, " St. Mary's, on the
River Gambia, December 3 1st, 1832 :" —
At the close of another year, I wish to lay before you a few remarks illustrative
of the general state of the work of God on the Gambia stations.
At St. Mary's, during the past year, we have been graciously \'isited by the great
Head of the church. Though we have had deep affliction to pass through, the
Lord has been with us ; and we have found the religion which we teach to others,
to comfort our minds, and support us under every trial and difficulty to which we
have been exposed. The cause of God has hkewise been making gradual progress ;
the moral state of the people amongst whom we labour is evidently much im-
proved ; the house of God is generally crowded to excess ; and there is a spirit of
religious inquiry amongst the people, which, to me, indicates the approach of a
glorious har^'est. During the year we have added about twenty-four new members
to society, many of whom, I trust, have experienced a true change of heart; and
all appear determined, by the grace of God, to save their souls. Some of the
members have been called away by death, and in their latest moments expressed
themselves as having " all trouble removed from their hearts," by the love of God
shed abroad therein. The school sustained considerable loss from the unhealthi-
ness of the last rainy season ; some of the boys have died, and others have not been
able to attend on account of sickness ; but now, thank God, it is beginning to
resume its usual appearance. The general sickness has abated, and the number of
scholars is increasing.
At our new station, on Macarthy's Island, brother Cupidon, our assistant-
missionary, continues to labour with considerable success in preaching the gospel
to his fellow-countrymen. About fifteen members have been received into the
society, and about the same number of boys and girls are daily instructed in the
first principles of the Christian religion, and in the rudiments of reading and
needlework. However trivial these circumstances may appear in the eyes of some,
to us, who daily witness the superstitious habits of degraded Africans, they are
encouraging. And when we consider that, during the two years that we have been
labouring at the Gambia, the nundjer in society has been more than doubled, not-
withstanding all the hinderances resulting from war, sickness, and death, we feel
truly grateful to the God of missions, who hath thus blessed our feeble labours.
May we manifest our gratitude by zeal in His cause, and renewed devotedness to
His service !
I feel great pleasure iu informing you of the diligence and improvement of the
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 339
two native young men under my care. Brother Sallah, who continues to assist me
in the school and other missionary work at St. Mary's, is going on well. He is
making considerable progress in arithmetic, as well as in other necessary studies :
he is every day improving in his knowledge of the English language, and the great
truths of Christianity. In reading, he has gone through Wesley's " Notes on the
New Testament," and several volumes of the Works ; besides a number of other
books, and the holy scriptures, which we daily read together. He is very atten-
tive, and in every respect gives me a satisfaction and pleasiu^e which I cannot
express in too high terms. The same remarks will apply to brother Cupidon, as
far as my knowledge of him extends ; but as he has been labouring for some time
at otir new station at Macarthy's Island, I have not had much opportunity of super-
intending his studies ; but, from our constant correspondence, I have every reason
to augur well.*
Mr. Eitchie's letter is dated, " Sierra-Leone, January 3d,
1833," and is as follows : — •
During the last quarter we have witnessed many signal manifestations of the
divine goodness in the conversion of sinners. A good work is still going on chiefly^
among the Maroons and liberated Africans; of the former, since Christmas, 1831,
about forty, most of them young people, profess to have found peace with God
through our Lord Jesus Christ, and at present appear to be earnest in working out
their salvation. Since the above time, I have not had to dismiss one Maroon from
the society. We have prayer-meetings in all our chapels at five o'clock every
morning ; but some of the penitents have been found there at midnight, and con-
tinued there until mid-day, wrestling with God in prayer. This has not been the
case merely with the ignorant; a few of the most intelligent and respectable
coloured people in the colony have been brought in the same way to enjoy the
glorious liberty of the sons of God. You will see that we have an increase of 103
members during the last year ; we leave on trial 63 ; om- funds increase in propor-
tion. In society, 419.
The Africans have a high opinion both of the good intentions of the missionaries,
and the disciphne which they enforce. We have repeated applications from dif-
ferent parts of the colony, and the poor people are very importunate with us to
come and afford them spiritual instruction. We earnestly entreat you to send
forth more labourers into this field; it is, indeed, essential to the well-being of the
present society that another missionary should be sent to assist brother Maer,
previous to my return ; for, however much he may be disposed to labour, as I have
done, it wovdd be unsafe to do so during the rainy season : we pray you to take
this into consideration.
The schools at Portuguese-Town and Congou-Town are in a prosperous state ;
the children are making progress in useful learning ; about thirty of them can read
in the New Testament.f
A few months after this, Mr. Ritchie, having completed his
term of service, returned home ; when, after a short residence
in England, he was appointed to the West Indies, where he has
been labouring ever since. Mr. Isaac Clarke, towards the close
* " Missionary Notices," vol. vii. pp. 308, 309.
t " Report of the Weslevan-Methodist Missionary Society for 1 833," pp. 57, 58.
z 2
340 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
of the year, was sent out to the assistance of INIr. Maer. In
the month of February of this year, (1833,) INIr. Moister paid a
third visit to ]Macarthy's Island, in the upper Gambia, and was
delighted with the amount of good already effected by the sim-
ple teaching of a converted native. On this occasion several of
the natives, who had renounced their Heathen practices, and
who had been prepared by a course of religious instruction, pre-
sented themselves for baptism. Several of the Negro children,
also, had learned to read easy lessons in the New-Testament
scriptures ; and the work had so far prospered, under the Divine
blessing, that a small Christian church was now formed, and
an interesting school established. Mr. Moister returned to St.
]\Iary^s, in a feeble state of health, but cheered and encouraged
by what he had seen and heard and felt.*
* Since the preceding chapter was written, the author has been favoured
■with a copy of an interesting Uttle work, by the Rev. William Moister, his
predecessor at the Gambia. It is entitled, " Memorials of Missionary Labours
in Western Africa and the W^est Indies." Mr. Moister informs me, that he
was not aware of my intended publication ; nor had I the slightest idea of his.
But the reader of both volumes will see, that though the works are somewhat
dissimilar, yet, on several important subjects connected with the Gambia, and
the Gambia missions, the same facts have been stated by both of us ; so that " in
the mouth of two witnesses," perfectly unknown to each other, have these state-
ments and facts been " established."
CHAPTER XVIII.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1833—1835.)
The Writer takes Part in these Missions — This was an eventful Year in the great
Mortality amongst the Ministers at Home — Two of the General Secretaries
cut Olf in the Prime of Life — The Author's Appointment to St. Mary's —
Arrival there with Mr. and Mrs. Dove, who were ajjpointed to Macarthy's
Island — Dr. Lindoe and the Southampton Committee-^Plan of an Institution
for benefiting the Foulah Tribe — Extract from the General Report of the Wes-
leyan Missionary Society— Copy of the first Annual Report of the Southamp-
ton Committee — The Extension of the Mission at Sierra-Leone — Revival of
Religion at St. Mary's, Macarthy's Island, and Sierra-Leone — Extract from
the Annual Report — Extract of a Letter from Mr. Dove at Macarthy's Island
— Prosperous State of the Mission at St. Mary's — ^The Necessity for a new
Chapel — Letters — The Author appointed Acting Colonial and Garrison Chap-
lain— Extracts from his private Joiu-nal— Letter from Mr. Dove — E.xtracts of
Letters from the Author — Permission to erect a new Chapel — More Help
needed — Death of Mr. Clarke at Sierra-Leone — The Appointment of Mr.
Crosby — The Foundation-Stone of the new Chapel laid at St. Mary's —
Extracts from the Author's Journal — An Attack on the Mission — Defended
by an European — Christmas-Day and Watclinight — Triumphant Death of a
Member of the Society — Funeral Sermon — Another heavy Day's Work —
Souls converted — Substance of a Letter to the Committee — A Penitent
"smiting upon his Breast" — Mai'riage of liberated Africans — Arrival of Mr.
and Mrs. Wilkinson — ^Trip to Cape de Verde — The Portuguese — Return to
St. Mary's — Extracts from Journal — Personal and domestic Affliction — Open-
ing of the new Chapel — Farewell Sermon — The Author sails for England.
We have now arrived at the period when the writer was
called to take part in these interesting missions ; and without
troubling the reader with any unnecessary details on the subject
of his own call to this important work, with " the parting scene/'
or the particulars of " the voyage," he ma}^ perhaps be permitted
to make a remark or two.
The Methodistic year, from the Conference of 1832 to 1833,
was one of the most eventful in the history of Methodism ; not
so much on the ground of the mortality abroad, as of that at
home. No death, in fact, had occurred in Western Africa since
August, 1830; and during the year 1832 only three brethren in
the whole of the mission-field had been called to their reward.
But Avhilst the missionaries, with these exceptions,
" Through burning cUmes had pass'd unhurt,"
it was otherwise with many of the Lord's servants at home.
Previous to and during the sittings of the Liverpool Conference,
342
AVESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
as well as subsequently, the cholera made dreadful ravages
amongst almost all classes of society : several of the Wesleyau
ministers "were its victims ; and during that year no less than
thirty-three of our esteemed and beloved brethren were called
to lay down their charge together with their life. This unpre-
cedented number of deaths included some of the best and most
distinguished ministers in om' beloved Connexion : two of them,
being connected with the Mission-House, deserve a passing
notice in this place.
The Rev. John James died suddenly, on the 6th of Novem-
ber, 1832; and that "bright luminary of the church and of
his circle,^^ the Rev. Richard Watson, '' set in death, to rise in
eternal glory, January 8th, 1833." Thus were two of the
general secretaries cut off in the prime of life, and in the midst
of their usefulness, in about two months. The Rev. John
Beecham was, therefore, the only resident secretary up to the
following Conference, Avhen Dr. Bunting was appointed as the
senior secretary, in the place of ]\Ir. Watson ; which honourable
and responsible situation he has filled ever since.*
It has already been intimated, that the writer was one of the
young men examined by the Missionar}' Committee in the old
Mission-House, towards the close of 1830. On that occasion
the Rev. Messrs. Bunting and Watson vfere both present, with
several other venerable ministers, who have also, since that
period, been gathered to their fathers. The writer distinctly
recollects the position Mr. Watson occupied in that meeting,
and the deep interest he took in the examination of each candi-
date. Some few months after this, the Avriter was called into
the home-work; and was thus engaged in the early part of
1833, when he received a letter from Dr. Beecham, in answer
to one he had written as to the probability of there being any
opening in the West Indies during the spring or summer of
that year ; for, though not without some fruit of his labours at
home, his heart was abroad, and he longed to set his feet on
* This was not the first time Dr. Bunting had sustained this ofHce. It will be
recollected that, in a preceding chapter, we have stated, he was one of the general
secretaries in 1818, and was at that period the senior secretary; which honourable
post he held for several years, when the late lamented and illustrious Mr. Watson
was one of his colleagues. He also took a prominent part at the first public meet-
ing, in the town of Leeds, in 1813, at the formation of the MethocUst Missionary
Society for the Leeds district ; and it may be safely affirmed, that no man, dead or
living, has contributed so much to extend and consolidate the Wesleyan missions,
in every part of the globe, as the present venerable and senior secretary, Dr.
Bunting.
THE GAMBIA AND SlERRA-LEONE. 343
mission soil. Tiie contents of that letter stated, that, owing; to
the position of the great question of Negro emancipation,
there was no probability of sending out any additional men to
the West Indies till that important subject was settled; but
that they were wanting a man for another place. " We were
on the point of sending out Mr. Dove,'^ writes Mr. Beecham,
" to succeed Mr. Moister at St. Mary^s on the Gambia, Western
Africa ; but, having now determined to commence another mis-
sion on the Gambia, about three hundred miles higher up, for
the benefit of the Foulahs, Mr. Dove will go thither; and we
therefore shall have to send another to the old station of St.
Mary^s.^^ After stating, that Mr. Dove would sail about the
middle of March, and that, if I " felt free to go,^' I might sail
Avith him, Mr. Beecham closes the letter by saying, "After
prayer and consideration on the subject, let me have your
answer. Perhaps in a few days you will be able to determine.
May God direct you aright ! "
This letter was dated " Hatton-Garden, February 11th,
1833,^^ and was received on the 12th; and the ejaculatory
prayer with which it closed was ever and anon most fervently
offered up, as I travelled by coach the same day from Evesham
to Birmingham, and from tlience to Smethwick, in the West
Bromwich circuit, to consult with my friends upon the subject.
Most anxious was I that " God might direct me aright." I
had, previous to this, had a predilection for the West Indies ;
but having offered myself unreservedly for any part of the mis-
sion field, I could not but view this as the call of God; and
therefore, in a few days, and after much prayer and considera-
tion, I wrote to say that " I felt quite free to go." In this, as
in many other respects, I believe God did direct my path.
Having been united in marriage on the 4th of March, 1833, we
left Smethwick on the 6th for London ; on the 15th Mr. Dove
and myself were solemnly ordained in the Wesleyan chapel,
Walworth; and on the 1st of April, at half-past nine in the
morning, we went on board the brig " Jack " at Gravesend, and
weighed anchor. Some of our dear friends who had "accom-
panied us to the ship," sailed with us a short distance down the
river, then hailed a boat, and we parted. That delightful pro-
mise was our stay and support : " Lo, / am with you alway,
even unto the end." Our brig being almost new, and a capital
sailing vessel, w^e made rapid progress, frequently going at seven,
eight, nine, and nine and a half knots an hour; and, after an
agreeable passage of only three weeks and one day, we landed at
Bathurst, St. Mary's, on Tuesday, the 23d of April, 1833.
344 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
From Mr. and Mrs. Moister and the society we met with a
cordial reception^ and the next day Avere introduced to His
Excellency the Lieutenant-Governor, and most of the principal
merchants in the colony. Mr. Moister was pleasingly surprised
at the arrival of a missionary for Macarthy's Island, in which
he had taken so lively an interest, and from which he had but
recently returned, charmed with the result of the labours of the
native teacher, who had been there about twelve months. The
origin and cause of this appointment will be seen hereafter.
The writer, having been sent to succeed Mr. Moister at St.
Mary's, immediately entered upon his work ; and his prede-
cessor, being in a debilitated state of health, began to prepare
for his return to England. He left the Gambia in the brig
" Columbine," towards the end of June, followed by the prayers
and best wishes of the people; and at the Conference of 1833
Avas appointed to the Ipswich circuit ; soon after which he was
sent to the West Indies, where he laboured up to 1848. Having
been two years engaged in the ministry at home, at the Con-
ference of 1850 he was appointed to the honourable and import-
ant situation of " General Superintendent of the Missions
in the Cape of Good Hope District, in place of the liev. Thomas
L. Hodgson, who was disabled by severe affliction,'"' which soon
afterwards terminated in death.
jNlr. Dove embraced an early opportunity of paying a visit to
Macarthy's Island ; but as the rains were rapidly approaching,
and there was no suitable residence there, Mrs. Dove remained
at St. Mary's till he returned, which Avas on the 3d of July.
He spent the rainy season partly with me at St. Mary's, and
partly at Goree ; and at the close proceeded with Mrs. Dove to
take up his abode at Macarthy's Island, accompanied by the
native teacher, Pierre Sallah.
There was a peculiarity about this mission which, perhaps,
requires a little explanation. The reader will recollect that, in
Mr. Eeecham's letter to me, it was stated that Mr. Dove was
appointed to Macarthy's Island station, " for the benefit of the
Foulahs." The following are the circumstances which led to
this arrangement. The Rev. John jMorgan, in his first voyage
up the Gambia, on reaching Cantalicuuda, became acquainted
with the "pastoral Foulahs," whom we have already described
as having no lands of their own, and, moreover, as being much
oppressed by the Mandingoes. From these and other causes he
became peculiarly interested in their welfare. Being stationed
at Southampton in the year 1831, he formed an acquaintance
with Dr. Lindoe of that town, a pious and benevolent member
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 345
of the Established Church, v/ho had long felt great interest in
the same tribe, from what he had previously heard and read of
them. The result was, a small but influential society was
formed, of ministers and laymen, both of the Church of Eng-
land and from among the dissenters, for the purpose of ame-
liorating their temporal and spiritual condition. The following
"Plan,^' printed at Southampton in Januaiy, 1833, which
contains the names of the gentlemen forming the committee,
will give the reader a tolerable idea of the object contemplated
in this mission : —
PLAN OF AN INSTITUTION FOR BENEFITING THE FOULAH TRIBE, AND, THROUGH
THEIR INSTRUMENTALITY, THE INTERIOR OF WESTERN AFRICA.
Several friends of the African race, whose minds have long been deeply affected
with the knowledge of the wretched circumstances of that benighted and unhappy
people, from a sense of the obligations under which all are laid by their Christian
privileges, and also from a recollection of the many injuries to which the African
tribes have been subjected from British avarice, are impressed with a conviction
of duty to promote, by every possible means, the protection and welfare of this
people ; conscious, that the only effectual way to erase from their minds impressions
of the past injustice and cruelty of our countrymen, is to establish amongst them
the Christian religion, with the consequent blessings of civilization and commerce.
The comparative fruitlessness of the benevolent efforts hitherto made to stop the
liorrible traffic in human beings, which is still depopulating the coasts of Africa to
an appalhng extent, has been observed with grief; a committee has been, therefore,
formed for the accomplishment of the great objects above-mentioned; and they are
happy in being now able to recommend to all who sympathize with them, a plan
especially calculated to benelit the interesting tribe of the Foulahs, in which every
Christian may cordially unite. The object is, to obtain a tract of land in the
interior of the country, and to prociu-e the protection of the British Government,
so that the settlement may be a place of refuge for the oppressed, in which the
Foulahs may, by their own industry, live beyond the reach of their oppressors, and
enjoy the instructions of Christian teachers, whom it is proposed to send amongst
them, to preach the gospel and establish schools.
The plan was projected by a missionary when in Africa, with especial reference
to the Foulah tribe, whom he strongly recommends to the attention of the Christian
philanthropist, as having, among the other tribes, the first claims for commiseration,
being the most hopeful subjects to receive benefit, and the most likely to commu-
nicate it to others. The following are some of the most interesting particulars in
reference to this people : —
1. Of all the inhabitants of Western Africa, the Foulahs are the most oppressed:
they have no land of their ov,n ; and, living by the sufferance of others, exorbitant
demands are exacted from the fruits of their industry, as a remuneration for the
soil.
2. Being a defenceless people, and unaccustomed to war, they are frequently the
victims of the powerful, who make an easy prey both of their persons and property;
but, though they are obliged by their oppressors to contribute more to supply the
slave-market than any others, they are not known to have any dealings in that
abominable traffic.
3. Thcv are distinguished from all tho other tribe? bv their industrious habits.
346 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
4. Tliey are generally free from Mohammedan superstition, which, wherever it
prevails, has ])roved a strong barrier to the progress of Christian instruction.
5. They highly esteem Europeans, on account of a tradition among them, that
their tribe has descended from a white man ; the truth of which, the European
form of their features, and the lightness of their complexion, preser\'ed by inter-
marrying only among themselves, tend to confirm.
From a knowledge of the distressed circumstances of the Foulahs, and from
conversation with some of them on this subject, it is beheved that many of them
would gladly avail themselves of the plan proposed, as the following reply of a
head-man of one of their towns to the missionary who proposed it, confirms : " We
feel it hard to believe," said he, " that the white people have so much care for us,
though we belong to them ; but, if it should be done, we should soon be the richest
people in the world, except the Whites."
\Mien Jlr. Morgan, the Wesleyan missionaiy just referred to, was in Western
Africa, he was offered six hundred acres of land on Macarthy's Island, expressly for
the above purpose ; and the committee cannot but hope, that the same grant may
now be made by Government ; which being in the immediate neighbourhood of
the land proposed to be purchased of the natives, the settlement will thus be
happily placed under the protection of the British Government. The Wesleyan
Missionary Society, having several native teachers, already prepared and engaged
in the same work, on the same territory, that Society is thought to be the most
suitable to undertake the part of religious instruction. The Wesleyan Missionary
Society has engaged to send out a missionary and his wife, and to place two native
teachers under his superintendence on Macarthy's Island; and to build on it a
house and school-rooms : provided that the committee can raise £350 per annum,
for five years, and £150 for building the house and school-rooms. It is calculated
that the proposed establishment would be able to support itself after that time ;
and that during this period it would send forth many native teachers ; thus con-
veying the knowledge of the Saviour to the Heathen tribes of Africa, — " the greatest
blessing we have received, the most precious boon we can bestow." And, surely,
we have good reason to hope for success, since Biitaiu was once as ignorant and as
barbarous as Africa. The change which has taken place has been produced by
Christianity, which was brought to our shores by men equally devoid of miraculous
powers with ourselves. How weighty, then, are our obligations to communicate
the good we have so mercifully received !
Such is a general outline of the proposed plan, which, as it comprehends various
objects, the committee submits, with full confidence, to the consideration of the
friends of Africa among all Christian denominations ; earnestly hoping that the
cause will receive that assistance from the religious public to which they believe it
is entitled. Mr. John Morgan, late missionary in Western Africa, has kindly
engaged to collect for this important object.
Southampton, January \^th, 1833.
Distinct funds will be kept for the general purposes of the institution ; also for
schools, the mission, and the purchase of land.
Subscriptions and donations received at Messrs. Barnetts, Hoare, and Co., 62,
Lombard-street, London ; Messrs. Maddisons, Bankers, Southamjiton ; and by every
member of the committee.
The subscribers' names, with a statement of accounts and facts relative to the
institution, will appear in an Annual Report.
The vhole sum will be applied to the object, as all expenses of collecting,
printing, &c., will be defrayed by a member of the committee ; and at the expira-
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 347
tion of the five j^ears, the balance will be expended for the benefit of the Foulah
tribe, or placed in the hands of trustees.
Committee. — Rev. William Bettridge, Rev. James Crabb, Rev. W. D. Goy, Mr.
John Morgan, late missionary in Western Africa, Rev. B. H. Draper, Thomas
Maskew, Esq., James Sharp, Esq., Mr. G. Laishley, Robert Lindoe, M.D.
Secretaries. — Robert Lindoe, M.D., Rev. B. H. Draper.
Dr. Lindoe liberally subscribed c€110 per annum for five
years ; and by means of printing and circulating a great number
of prospectuses of the undertaking, a highly respectable list of
subscribers and contributions was obtained.
In the Annual Report of the Wesleyan Missionary Society
for that year, are the following remarks on this subject ; —
The committee have the pleasure to announce the intended enlargement of their
mission to Macarthy's Island. The peaceful and industrious habits of the Foulahs,
a numerous scattered people of Western Africa, their exemption to a great extent
from the influence of Mohammedanism, and their favourable regard of Europeans,
marked them out as fit objects of the missionary zeal of Dr. Coke ; and a number
of benevolent persons have now become so far interested in their welfare, as to
engage to raise, for five years, an annual sum sufficient to meet the whole expense
of a mission to this people. They have already generously advanced £350 for the
first year, with £150 additional, to be expended in building premises; and, in pro-
motion of this Christian enterprise, His Majesty's Government has most liberally
granted six hundred acres of land in Macarthy's Island, which is to be the head of
the mission. Mr. Dove has been appointed to the important service. The two
native assistants, John Cupidon and Pierre Sallah, are placed under his direction ;
and the brethren are to itinerate among the Foulah towns within their reach on
each bank of the Gambia, preaching the gospel, and establishing schools, wherever
opportunity offers. The Committee commend the undertaking to the prayers of the
friends of missions, that God may make it the means of the extensive diffusion of
the blessings of Christianity throughout that part of Western Africa.*
It will be readily inferred, from the preceding statement, that
the missionary, and the two assistants, sent to this station witli
especial reference to the Eoulahs, though supported by the
Southampton Committee, were nevertheless altogether under the
direction of the Wesleyan Missionary Committee, and to them
all official communications were made. Mr. Dove immediately
commenced the erection of suitable mission-premises, in which
he was assisted by liberal contributions from most of the Euro-
peans at St. Mary's, and other respectable persons in the
colony, as well as by a further grant from the friends at
Southampton. An interesting letter from Mr. Dove, detailing
the particulars of his first voyage up the Gambia, and visit to
Macarthy's Island, with the pleasing prospect of success, was
published in the " Missionary Notices " for October of the same
* " Report of the Wesleyaii-Methodist ]\Iissionary Society for 1S32-33," pp.
58, 59.
348 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA,
year; and on the 1st of January, 1834, the Southampton Com-
mittee published their first Annual Report, of which the follow-
ing is a copy : —
THE FIRST ANNUAL REPORT OF THE COMMITTEE OF THE INSTITUTION FOR
BENEFITING THE FOULAH TRIBE, AND, THROUGH THEM, WESTERN AFRICA.
The committee, deeplj' impressed with the vast importance of their plan, present
their Report to the public, with an earnest hope for their continued patronage.
The committee desire to press the question on the friends of this charity, which
includes in it the eternal welfare of millions of our race, — Whether a committee might
not be formed in London with which the Associations in the country might communi-
cate ? They cannot liut feel, that the liberal grant of His Majesty's Government of six
hundred acres of land on Macarthy's Island, gives at once weight and importance to
this new missionary station : and they feel much anxiety for its improvement, by
effectual cultivation, as well as for ability to rent a large tract of ground, for the
civilization of the Foulahs, to send agriculturists, &c. ; and also to circulate the
holy scriptures where they have been as yet unknown.
According to agreement, the sums of £obO and £1^0 were immediately advanced
to the Wesleyan Missionary Society. Mr. and Mrs. Dove, the first missionaries,
arrived at St. Mary's, April 23d, 1833. In addition to the sums already specified,
.£150 has been remitted, that the mission-premises may be substantially built;
this, with the liberal offer of £70, by some gentlemen at St. Mary's, is thought will
be sufficient for that work. Two pious natives are already on the spot, who are
engaged in teaching, &c.
As Macarthy's Island is situated about three huncked miles from St. Mary's, on
the noble river Gambia, it will probably become a consideraljle place of trade, and
of great importance as a central mission- station ; and there is little doubt but that other
societies will assist in the work of civilizing and evangelizing that degraded countrj'.
The committee have received many letters from persons of high estimation,
expressive of the great interest they feel in the success of this plan. C. Grant,
Esq., of St. Mary's, Gambia, has been nineteen years on the coast of Africa, and has
travelled into the interior ; and, from his character and opportunity for observation,
his opinion of the plan must be considered of no small value. In a letter received
from that gentleman, he expresses his readiness to co-operate in the plan ; stating
the fact, that some lumdreds of liberated Africans have been located on the river
Gambia ; and many more are expected. And he adds, " There are no propositions
for the imjjrovement of Africa, which have yet come under my notice, that I could
so readily sujjport, or with such confidence of ultimate success."
The llev. J. Horton, curate of St. George's, Borough, formerly chaplain to the
forces in the Gambia, writes : — " After living ten years on the coast of Africa, I
beg to state, that I have never seen or heard of a plan, so likely to succeed, under
the Divine blessing, in promoting the Christian religion in Africa, as that to which
your prospectus has reference."
The Society of Friends have ever proved their concern for the welfare of Africa :
some years since, they formed a committee to carry into execution a plan for
" African Instruction ; " particularly under the care of H. Kilham and William
Singleton. The committee look forward with hope for their support in the present
undertaking. Mrs. Fry, a character well known and justly valued, gives her senti-
ments in the following words : — " I am glad to take this opportunity of expressing
the interest I take in the mission to the Foulah tribe, and how earnestly I desire
that such a blessing may attend the labours of those that are sent amongst them.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 349
that they may be the means of spreading the ' glad tidings ' of the gospel into
injured and benighted Africa. It appears to me, that there are several objects of
the mission in which the Society of Friends can most freely nnite ; and considering
that at present they have not any regular missionary stations of their own, sup-
ported by the Friends in England, I trust that they will feel it a duty, according to
ability, liberally to support this undertaking in the expenses attending translating
the holy scriptures, distributing copies of them, educating the children, and
in obtaining suitable implements for cultivating the land, and building the needful
houses, school-rooms, &c. I quite hope and desire, as soon as I properly can, to
give my mite to this interesting object -. which I trust all Christians of every
denomination will think it right to promote in such a way as they may think best."
Mr. T. Clarkson observes, in a letter written under the painful circumstance of
approaching blindness : — " The spot is, 1 know, favourable for the undertaking ;
and the Foulahs are the very people you describe. Your plan should, I think, be a
little more explicitly detailed ; I see, however, enough of it myself, to know that it
is worthy of attention and encouragement."
It may be observed, that the plan must have time to unfold itself, as, indeed, it
shall please Providence to open the way. The committee conclude, by commend-
ing the cause of Africa to the providence of God ; and by reminding the reader
that Britain received the Bible by the hands of foreigners. They close with the
words of one of their earliest friends : — " May the blessing of the great Head of the
church rest on this attempt to communicate His ' saving health ' to regions over
which the prince of darkness has hitherto exercised an uncontrolled dominion."
Southampton, January Isf, 1834.
Committee. — Rev. William Bettridge, Rev. James Crabb, Rev. W. D. Goy, Mr.
John Morgan, late missionary in Western Africa, Rev. B. H. Draper, James Sharp,
Esq., Mr. G. Laishley, Mr. Bienvenu, Robert Lindoe, M.D.
Secretaries. — Robert Lindoe, M.D., Rev. B. H. Draper.
Subscriptions and donations received at Messrs. Barnetts, Hoare, and Co., 62,
Lombard- Street, London ; ^lessrs. Maddisons, Bankers, Southampton ; and by every
member of the committee.
The whole sum will be applied to the object, as all expenses of collecting, print-
ing, &c., will be defrayed by a member of the committee ; and at the expiration of
the five years, the balance will be expended for the benefit of the Foulah tribe, or
placed in the hands of trustees.
Receipts and Payments, for the year 18.33.
£. s. d.
Annual Subscriptions for five
years 256 18 0
Donations and Collections ...453 2 0
710 0 0
£. s. d.
Cash to the Wesleyan Mis-
sionary Society 3.")0 0 0
Ditto, for building mission-
premises and school-room .150 0 0
Ditto. Ditto 150 0 0
Balance due by the Treasurer,
December 31st, 1833 GO 0 0
710 0 0
Examined, and find a balance due by the Treasurers, £60 ; also £60 paid in
advance, for the four following years.
R. LINDOE, M.D.
B. II. DRAPER.
350
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
This Report was followed by an Appendix, containing
extracts from the "Missionary Notices/' and a large list of
subscribers.
At Sierra-Leone the work of God, under the ministry of
Messrs. Maer and Clarke, was graciously reviving : the mission
was considerably extended ; the populous towns of Wellington,
Wilberforce, Lumley, and Murray, were now taken into the
sphere of missionary labour; and the Society of Friends at this
time afforded considerable pecuniary assistance in the school
department.
The writer has no wish unduly to exhibit himself in a nar-
rative of these missions ; but truth and justice demand that facts
should be stated ; and, in doing this, he will necessarily be led
occasionally to use the first personal pronoun in the statement
of these facts, and in giving a faithful record of the obstacles,
difficulties, progress, and prosperity of the mission ; more parti-
cularly of that at the Gambia. This will sometimes be done by
quotation from statements already before the public, and some-
times by extracts from unpublished letters and other documents.
On the departure of Mr. Dove from St. Mary's for Macar-
thy's Island in October, 1833, it will be recollected that he took
with him the other native teacher, according to the arrange-
ment made by the parent committee with the benevolent
friends at Southampton. I Avas therefore left at St. INIary's
without any local help, except one or two natives, who acted
occasionally as local preachers. The mission-chapel, which also
answered for a school-room, was the ground-floor of the mission-
house, which was thirty-six feet by seventeen in the clear. The
week-day school, with preaching, visiting, &c., furnished me
with full employment; and though I and my dear wife were
frequently laid aside by repeated attacks of fever, during the
rains, as well as for some time after, we were cheered and
encouraged by what we saw and felt of the Divine Presence and
blessing. The congregation so increased, as well as the mem-
bers of the society, that, towards the close of the year, an appli-
cation was made to the committee in London for permission to
erect a proper chapel as a place for Divine worship, which, after
some unavoidable delav, was at length acceded to. In this
case, we witnessed the truth of that saying of holy writ, " One
soweth, and another reapeth." My dear brethren who had
preceded me had gone forth, breaking up the fallow ground,
bearing the precious seed, watering it with their prayers and
tears, and some of them with their lives ; and now the fruit of
their united labours was appearing in "some thirty, some sixty.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE, 351
and in some an hundred-fold." This applied not only to St.
Mary's and Macarthy's Island, but also to Sierra-Leone; as
the Annual Report for 1834 will show : —
MISSIONS IN WESTERN AFRICA.
Sierra-Leone, Messrs. Maer and Clarke, and one native assistant missionary,
recently appointed.
St. Mari/'if, on the River Gambia, Mr. Fox.
Macarthi/s Island {Foulah Mission), Mr. Dove ; John Cupidon and Pierre Sallah,
assistant missionaries. Four salaried school teachers.
The stations occupied hy the Society on the coast of Western Africa have lost no
portion of their interest or importance since the piihlication of the last Report. On the
contrary, every one of them presents the aspect of growing stability and usefulness.
In Sierra-Leone great spiritual prosperity has been vouchsafed during the past
year. The Society has increased from about four hundred to four hundred and
seventy-one, besides forty-three yet on trial. Various instances of sound conver-
sion to God are stated, among the liberated Africans, and others ; and many more
have been awakened from the sleep of sin, and appear to be earnestly seeking
salvation. There are two hundi-ed and sixteen children in the schools, whose
attendance is good ; and who generally display considerable quickness in learning,
and are making a satisfactory improvement. That at Portuguese-Town is especially
prosperous ; and the committee have gladly sanctioned the extension of its useful-
ness, in the female department, by becoming responsible for an additional salary to
the schoolmistress, who undertakes to instruct about thirty girls in needlework twa
hours in every day. FeeUng it to be a delightful as well as important part of
their duty, to encourage, in all their stations among the Heathen, the multiplication
of such benevolent establishments, they have also directed the commencement of a
new school at Wilberforce ; happy thus to erect an humble, but useful, testimonial
to the virtues and the services of that revered and illustrious individual, whom the
world laments, in Africa, the country for which he so long cared, and in the very
town which bears his name. An earnest desire has been expressed that more
schools should be established in the colony ; and the governor has kindly promised
land for the erection of buildings, which may answer the double purpose of schools,,
and of places for religious worship and general instruction. The committee have
it in their hearts to pay all practicable attention to this object ; and cannot omit to
offer their best acknowledgments to those Christian ladies connected with the
Society of Friends, and others, who have already aided them in this department of
their African work by very liberal contributions. The general labours of this-
mission, also, call for additional assistance. The town of Wellington, left for a
time without spiritual help, has been again occupied by the brethren, after nume-
rous solicitations. It has a population of three thousand ; and some first-fruits-
have already been gathered into the Christian church. On the other side of Free-
Town are, Wilberforce, Murray, Shilling, and two other places, which require
ministerial and pastoral attention. To meet these calls two more missionaries are
requested ; and, that they may not be wholly neglected, the committee have lately
authorized the employment of a converted African, well recommended, as an assist-
ant missionary, till some more adequate provision can be made for the wants of
these interesting stations. Africa herself has surely a claim, which cannot be dis-
puted or resisted, to a large portion of that holy sympathy and active zeal which
have been cheerfully bestowed on her children and their descendants, in the land
of their expatriation and bondage. To her, on behalf of those who now inhabit
353 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
her long-desolated shores, England owes this compensation ; and should embrace,
with no reluctant heart or niggard hand, every opportunity which occurs of begin-
ning to discharge a debt so just, and now, alas ! chargeable with arrears of so long
standing, and of such vast amount.
From St. ]\Iary's, on the River Gambia, the accounts are highly encouraging.
Mr. Fox states, in a letter dated January 21st, 1834, the following particulars : —
" God has been pleased to visit us with showers of gracious influence ; and the
fruit appears in the blessed change which has taken place in habitations where, a
short time ago, dwelt nothing but wretchedness. Now, from many a happy hut,
where the family altar has been but newly erected, ascends the voice of prayer and
the song of praise. All our meetings ai-e crowded to excess, even at iive o'clock in
the morning. Our old members are * alive to God,' and are constrained to say,
' We never saw it on this fashion.' The chapel will not hold much more than
half the regular congregation. Since my arrival I have formed five new classes.
The members attend these, as well as the other means of grace, with the greatest
punctuality. Our number of members now at St. Mary's is two hundred and four.
[This is an increase, since the last Report was published, of more than one hun-
dred and forty.] Some of the worst characters in the town, and one or two who
were the votaries of Mohammedan delusion, have given themselves to God. They
now
' Loudly in strange Hosannas join.
And blasphemies are turn'd to praise.'
With such an increase of members, it is naturally to be expected that our finances
should increase in proportion. Such is the case : the local income during the
past quarter has nearly doubled that of any preceding one. We have built a small
chapel at Soldiers'-Town, without any expense to the committee. I have' com-
menced preaching at Goderich Village, quite at the extremity of the island, where
a considerable number of liberated Africans are located ; and also at Fort BuUen,
Bermck-Town, inhabited by discharged soldiers and others, who know a little Eng-
lish, and are thankful for the gospel. As ray visits to the other side required that
I should have a boat at my own command, though several of the merchants kindly
otfered me the occasional use of one of theirs, a very good one, called ' the Mis-
sion-Boat,' has been completed by subscriptions, and by the gratuitous labour of
some of our members at their hours of leisure. Our school has an addition of
more than twenty boys, some of whom are making pleasing progress in reading,
writing, and arithmetic. We have also an adult school on Sundays of about forty
persons, who are anxious to learn the word of God."
The station at Macarthy's Island has been finally selected, according to the
intention stated in the Report of last year, as the centre and head-quarters of the
new mission to the Foulalis, to many of whose towns and villages, on each bank of
(he river, it aflfords great facilities of access, for the purpose of preaching the gospel
to that interesting race, and of establishing schools. Mr. Dove has received the
kindest encouragement, in reference to this enterprise, from the governor, and from
other persons of influence. Two native assistant missionaries are appointed to
labour under his direction ; and his preliminary visits to a number of Mandingo
and Foulah towns were received by the people in a manner which encourages the
hope that, in the mercy of God, " a great and effectual door " is about to be opened
in those regions. The committee again earnestly commend this undertaking to the
prayers of the Society and of the Christian public. They have been chiefly induced
to embark in it by the munificence of a gentleman, whose Ijenevolent zeal they, in
this case, appreciate the more higldy, because he, and his generous coadjutors in
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 353
the effort, are not connected Ijy religious denomination with the Wesleyan body.
Dr. Lindoe, of Southampton, aided by other friends in various places, to whom he
has successfully made application, has contributed a donation of £150 for the
estabhshment of the mission ; and has advanced already two sums, of £350 each,
for its support during the first and second years of its existence, guaranteeing a like
sum annually, for each of the three succeeding years. And, learning from Mr.
Dove's statements to the committee, that the expense of building suitable mission-
premises at Macarthy's Island will exceed the sum before transmitted, and that
raised by European residents at St. Mary's, by the amount of £150, Dr. Lindoe
immediately forwarded to the Society's treasurers an order for the whole of the
estimated deficiency ; so that, in the accounts appended to this Keport, the sum of
£1,000 \vill be entered as derived from this source during the year lately closed.
From such noble and disinterested benevolence the committee cannot withhold this
public tribute of their admiration and gratitude.*
About tliis time^ Mr. Dove wrote from Macartliy^s Islaud as
follows : —
We have truly a most dehghtful prospect of doing good ; for here are souls,
immortal souls, all atliirst for the water of life. During the quarter we have had
a most blessed revival. I have married thirty couples, who would no longer live
in a state of concubinage ; baptized ninety-two adults, and several children ; and
likewise admitted seventy-eight persons on trial, many of whom, I am happy to say,
have experienced a knowledge of salvation by the remission of their sins, and are
ornaments to their profession. We have lately commenced preaching at Broco, a
Foulah town, and at Jamela, a Mandingo town. My assistant brethren are zealous
for the Lord of hosts ; and I am fully persuaded that, as soon as the people in the
interior can understand us more perfectly, we shall have an abundant harvest of
immortal souls. We have only a few of the Fovdahs on Macarthy's Island at
present ; but think, as soon as the land is measured, many of them will be glad to
make a town (as it is called) on the island, which will gladden our hearts.
Thus was God with his servants at each of these stations ;
and the work which was begun continued, quarter after quarter,
to prosper. The following communication from the author will
show that this good work had been in existence, at St. Mary's,
some months previous to the preceding date in the General
Report, and that it continued and was still going on months
after. The letter, with extracts from my journal, was dated,
" St. Mary's, April 21st, 1834 :"—
A few days ago, I returned from a visit to Macarthy's Island. Macarthy's
Island and its immediate neighbourhood certainly present a fine field for missionary
labour, and I have no doubt that much good will result from placiug a missionary
there.
As it regards ray own station, St. Mary's, I am happy still to report good tidings.
" The Lord of hosts is still with us," and our Zion is in great prospei'ity. During
the past quarter, more than fifty have again been added to us ; and almost every
day I have people coming to the mission-house, begging me to allow them to meet
* "Keport of the Wesleyan-Methodist Missionary Society for 1834," pp. 50 — 53.
A A
354 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
in class. To these I speak on the n<iture of class-meeting, and on the serious
importance of becoming professors of Christianity, bidding them " count the cost."
I then allow them to meet three or four times before I enter their names, and keep
them two quarters on trial before 1 consider them as full members. To-morrow it
will be twelve months since we landed here; and since that period two hundied
persons have enrolled their names on our class-books, and are members of the
church of Christ on earth ; most of whom, I believe, bid fair to enter the church
triumphant in glory. " This is indeed the Lord's doing, and it is marvellous in our
eyes." I have had the high honour of being in a few revivals in England; I have
witnessed and experienced many an outpouring of the Spirit's hallowing and saving
influence, and have seen many hard hearts softened, and mourning sinners cheered.
Those were indeed happy days ; and I can add,
" How sweet their memory still ! "
But I would not change them for those I now enjoy.
The following are extracts from my journal : —
Sunday, August 4th, 1833. — Much rain fell this morning; but we had a full
chapel, and a good feeling among the people.
7th. — Last evening the hghtning struck a small house very near to us ; some
injury was done to it, but no person was hurt. We have this evening had a most
blessed meeting ; the power of God was felt.
Sunday, llth. — A very full chapel, while I was preaching on the Christian
minister's embassy, " Now then we are ambassadors for Christ," &c. A good con-
gregation also in the evening ; and I felt it good while speaking from, " Happy art
thou, 0 Israel," &c.
12th. — I went to a prayer-meeting in one of the native houses. After prayer-
meeting, I had a long conversation with a Mohammedan priest.
17th. — As there is a want of rain this year to produce the necessary crops, I
have to-day received a request from His Excellency the governor, that our congre-
gation should, on the morrow, " present an humble petition to Almighty God, to
avert the dreaded evils of famine and scarcity, which it is to be feared this island
will be visited with."
26th. — The natives caught two sharks ; in one of them was the arm of a boy
who was bathing on Saturday, and by this great fish was killed. The body was
rescued from the shark ; but before he reached the hospital, life became extinct.
This evening I attended a prayer-meeting in one of the houses, and gave an exhort-
ation ; many could not obtain admittance.
28th. — -The Rev. C. L. F. Haensel, Church missionary, on his way to Sierra-
Leone, is with us during the stay of the vessel here. He preached to the people
this evening.
Sunday, October 27th. — This morning I had another attack of fever, which pre-
vented me from preaching.
29th. — Alas ! how very soon sickness can blast om- hopes, and lay our prospects
in the dust ! Yesterday I was much better than on Sunday ; to-day I have no
pulse, and can scarcely breathe.
31st. — Mr. Grant has sat up with me again all night. May God reward him !
To-day I am something better.
Novemljcr 4th. — My dear wife and I feel ourselves pretty well again, and have
this morning afresh commenced the school. 0 may our health be preserved, and
our hves spared, that we may be instrumental in conducting these lambs to the
heavenlv fold !
THE GAMBIA AND SIERUA-LEONE. 355
14th. — Many could not obtain entrance to the chapel at five o'clock this
morning.
Sunday, December 8th. — I preached to a crowded congregation. During the
sermon one person was made happy in the peace of God. After the sermon I bap-
tized fifteen adults and two infants. In the afternoon 1 went to Berwick-Town,
Fort BuUen, on the opposite side of the river, and preached to a number of soldiers,
discharged soldiers, and others, who, I am happy to say, feel thankful for the sound
of the gospel. They begged I would come every Sunday ; but this I could not pro-
mise. I told them I would visit them as often as I could. I reached St. Mary's
again just in time for the evening service.
9th.- — I formed three new classes.
Sunday, 15th. — -To-day 1 have read prayers, as usual, and preached three times.
I baptized twenty-three people, and met one class for the renewal of their society-
tickets.
Sunday, 22d. — Preached three times, and baptized twenty-six adults.
25th, Christmas-day. — I was unwell this morning ; but the Lord has helped me.
We commenced the prayer-meeting at five o'clock ; at half-past ten I preached ; at
two o'clock held our love-feast, when the chapel would not hold all the members
of society. Many gave very interesting accounts of their conviction of sin, their
conversion to God, and tlieir present religious experience. In the evening opened
the new chapel at Soldier-Town.
26th. — This evening the moon was totally echpsed ; which occasioned great con-
sternation in the minds of the natives. A large number who that evening were, as
usual, dancing and beating the drum, ran home affrighted.
31st. — I held a watch-night, when the four brethren preached, — two in Enghsh,
and two in Jaloof. I afterwards addressed them ; at the close of which, I beUeve,
we all gave ourselves afresh to God.
January 1st, 1834. — My heart glowed with gratitude to God this day, while sur-
vejdng the providential series of mercies which I have received from my heavenly
Father during the past year. God has indeed been mindful of me and mine, and,
" Through hidden dangers, toils, and deaths.
Has gently clear'd our way."
We have been sick and afflicted, tempted and tried ; but never, no, never, forsaken
by Him who said, " Lo, I am with you alway : " and those beautiful lines came
from our lips with an application never before experienced : —
" Oft from the margin of the grave
Thou, Lord, hast Ufted up my head ;
Sudden, I found Thee near to save, —
The fever own'd thy touch, and fled."
The blessed God has not only preserved us in a land of sickness and death, but has
been pleased to crown our feeble efi"orts, in the edification of believers, and in the
conversion of many sinners. My own soul, too, is very happy in God, and in that
sacred work in which I ana engaged ; and although I very often feel my insufficiency
both with regard to gifts and graces, I am encouraged, nay, determined, to
" Labour on at His command.
And offer all my woi-ks to Him."
Sunday, 5th. — I preached three times, and baptized a number of adults.
Sunday, Tith. — 1 had liberty of spirit in preacliing this morning, as also this
2 A 2
356
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
evening ; after which I read and explained our Rules to the members of the
society.
Sunday, 26th. — I preached three times, and baptized forty-three persons. What
more shall I say about the new chapel ? Need I say any more than again to state
that the present one will not hold even the members of society ? Consequently, it is
with difficulty that I can meet the society, to address them on their various duties,
or administer the appointed memorials of the Saviour's death. Surely, when I hear
from you, it will be in the affirmative ; saying, " You may begin to build as soon as
practicable," or words to that effect. I have received a letter from the secretary of
the Bible Society, and expect some Bibles soon.*
There could be no mistake about the necessity for a new and
much larger chapel^ when the one at that time occupied as such
could not contain all who came to the morning prayer-meeting,
which was held every morning at five o'clock ; and when there
was not sufficient room, on other occasions, to administer the
sacrament of the Lord's supper to the members of the society.
I therefore renewed my application to the committee, as the
first of the following letters will show ; and was at length suc-
cessful, as stated by the secretaries in their preface to my com-
munications ; which, though rather long, yet, bearing as they
do so directly upon the whole of that mission, I insert : —
MISSIONS IN WESTERN AFRICA.
To the communications from Mr. Fox, respecting the mission on the River
Gambia, which were inserted in our last Number, we have now the pleasure of
adding two other interesting letters, of subsequent date. In the first, Mr. Fox
renews his former earnest application for leave to build a new chapel at St. Mary's,
to which the committee have acceded ; and concludes by some very touching and
Christian observations, suggested by the approach of the annual sickly season of
that climate, which, we are sure, will obtain for him the sympathy and the prayers of
all our readers. The second of the letters, now printed, reports the continued pros-
perity of the society at St. Mary's, the completion and opening of small chapels at
Soldier-Town and Melville-Town, the prospects of soon erecting a place of Christian
worship and school at Berwick-Town, and the necessity of an assistant missionaiy,
in order to supply, regularly and suitably, these new and promising stations. To
the latter part of this letter, which describes the case of William Joaf, a native
preacher, and a slave, and of other persons similarly circumstanced, we earnestly
invite the attention of British philanthropists. The persons here mentioned as
slaves are connected, we believe, with French masters, who have removed into the
British settlements from the neighbouring dependencies of France, on the coast of
Western Africa, and who are still strangely recognised, it seems, as owners of the
human beings whom they have thus imported, together with themselves, into one of
our colonies. We are aware that the removal of this anomaly may not be unat-
tended with some practical difficulties ; but they are such as ought to be sur-
mounted, for. the honour of our country's character and consistency ; and we are
confident that the case will receive serious consideration in the proper quarter.
* " Missionary Notices," vol. vii. pp. 528 — 530.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE.
357
River Gambia. — Extract of a Letter from Mr. Fox, dated St. Mary's,
June Zath, 1834.
I CAN assure you that the statements which I have sent you from time to time,
respecting the absolute necessity of a new chapel at St. Mary's, have not been too
highly coloured. I am fully aware that yoiur " object is to increase the number of
missionaries, rather than expend money in buildings." But suffer me to ask how
a missionary is to proceed with his work in a climate like this, without a commodi-
ous place of worship ? The rains have again commenced ; hut the chapel and both
piazzas are not capable of sheltering the congregation from its teeming showers,
nor from the intense heat of the sun. Besides, our chapel, being under our resi-
dence, is necessarily low ; and, being crowded to the extreme, it is exceedingly
close and warm ; so that I have been obhged to change my linen in the course of
one sabbath three, four, and five times. As to the amount I can hope to raise
here, I am afraid to say more than I did, that is, one huncked pounds. You are
aware that our society consists of natives, who are willing to help to the utmost of
their power ; but that utmost is very limited.
Our health at this time is pretty good ; and has been so for some time past,
excepting occasional attacks of temporary indisposition. The sickly season is, how -
ever, approaching ; and it is probable tiiat we shall again have fever, but I hope
not so seriously as last season. I do not feel alarmed upon the subject ; because I
know I am where my heavenly Father wishes me to be. Neitlier am I of a very
nervous or low-spirited habit ; but I sincerely think that if I should have another
attack of fever as severe as the last, then not far from the spot where I am now
writing, it will be read over my poor body, " Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to
dust;" and, whoever the individual may be who shall perform that service, he may
confidently read also, " In sure and certain hope of the resurrection to eternal life,
through our Lord Jesus Christ." Yes, that is my rock, my foundation, my hope,
my only plea, — " For me the Saviour died." Tlirough the precious blood of the
atonement I hope to " scale the mount," and " so be for ever with the Lord."
Yet, I trust that this will not be the case at present. Prayer, we know, is preva-
lent. Our heavenly Father, we know also, has an eye to pity, an ear to listen, a
heart to feel, and an arm to save, those who call upon Him, both with a temporal
and spiritual salvation. Dear fathers, brethren, and Christian friends, pray for us.
We ask you to do so, though we know that you do it already ; but continue to pray
for us. Pray that our health may be preserved, and our Uves spared ; and that we
may be the instruments of winning many souls to Christ. May the Almighty, in
his infinite mercy, grant it ! Amen.
From the Same, dated St. Mary's, July 24.th.
With regard to the cause of Clirist, every successive period which presents
itself of addi'essing you, furnishes me with adcUtional matter of an encouraging
kind to communicate, and brings afresh from my exulting soul the emphatic lan-
guage of the Psalmist, " The Lord of hosts is with us ; the God of Jacob is O'or
refuge." During the past quarter, (as you will learn from my journal, wliich
accompanies this,) the Almighty has again visited us on this station with many a
refreshing shower of his hallowing and saving influence : and the result is, that
sLxty-one more persons have begged to be admitted into our society, and are taken
on trial. The finances are, I am happy to say, increasing also in equal proportion
to the number in society ; and, I expect, this year will realize upwards of fifty
pounds sterling. The school is, I hope, doing better of late, having received some
Bibles from the British and Foreign Biljle Society, and a few elementary books
358 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
from our friends ; but it is still very indiiferently supplied. 1 have not as yet
received any answer or books from the School-Society.
The small chapel, about which I ■wTote to you at Soldier-Town, soon became too
small ; and I have been under the pleasing necessity of enlarging it ; or, rather,
have pulled the old one down, and erected one more than twice the size, which is
now forty feet by twenty-five. It is huilt with wood and cane, but is well plastered
inside and out, and has a shingled roof, a neat pulpit, and is well siippUed with
benches. It was re-opened, or rather opened, on Thursday evening, the 12th idt.,
when it was well filled, and a Divine influence felt, while I preached from, " The
Lord hath done great things for us, whereof we are glad." (Psalm cxxvi. 3.)
Towards meeting the expense of this new and commodious native chapel, the people
have a second time come forward veiy liberally. Some have given labour, some
money, and others materials. I find, however, I shall be under the necessity of charging
the committee ^vith about twenty-six pounds, which sum, I trust, they will cheerfully
meet, for a chapel of the ahove dimensions, and particularly as it was erected the
first time without any expense to the parent society.
I have also erected a small chapel at Melville-Town, almost at the other end of
the island. We have here a small town or village of liberated Africans, to whom
we have preached for a considerable time, and a small society. The chapel is
erected in such a situation that the people at Goderich (where we formerly
preached) can come to it, and it will not be quite so far for the preacher to walk
on his retuni. This small place of worship is built after the same manner as the
one at Soldier-Town ; and here, also, the people have done what they could :
though not able to give much pecuniary aid, they have assisted by giving some of
their labour, by going into the bush or wood, cutting wood, and burning lime, &c.,
frequently saying, " This house no belong to no person ; he belong to God." It
was opened on Sunday afternoon, the 29th ult., when I addressed the people from,
" I was glad when they said unto me. Let us go into the house of the Lord."
(Psalm cxxii. 1.) I find, however, that, notwithstanding the people have done a
considerable portion of the work gratis, I shall be under the necessity of charging
to the committee equally as much for this (though a smaller chapel) as for Soldier-
Town, and hope they will not think me extravagant. I can assure you I have con-
tributed not a little to the above places, not only in a pecuniary way, but in super-
intentUng the whole myself, and have frequently been with the men from morning
until evening. I did the same with respect to the heavy repairs lately done to
the mission-house and premises, which, no doubt, saved a few pounds. You will
perceive that the above extraordinary expenses are the occasion of my drawing upon
the treasurers rather oftener than usual.
I am happy to say, that our infant cause at Bei-wick-Town, Fort BuUen, on the
opposite side of the river, promises well. We give them preaching every sabbath,
and have now a small society. The people there have built a round house, in which
we preach, and shall continue to do so during the rains. The governor has, how-
ever, kindly promised to go over with me, and give the society a grant of land on
which to erect a small chapel, or what I may propose. I feel deeply interested
about this place, and if we can erect a small native chapel, and commence a school,
as there are a number of children on the spot, and a Mandingo town at a short
distance, we shall veiy probably have a number of the Mandingo childi-en, and by that
means get a footing among that wai'like, superstitious, and vvidely-extended race of
human beings. It would, ere long, aflford a proper station for an adcUtional
missionary, and thus, in the course of time, the moral soil on both banks of this
immense and splendid river will be cultivated, and every tribe taught to " bow the
knee to the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ."
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 359
I have another suhject of importance to hring before you, in reference to an
assistant missionary being stationed here. You are aware that I have no assistant,
and our society has vastly increased; we have also four preaching-places, and
an increasing school, and more work, if I could attend to it. I attended wholly to
the school myself till I could do it no longer ; consequently I engaged an assistant
teacher at the commencement of the year. This assistant teacher I -wish to keep,
with your permission, even if I have an assistant missionary stationed here, that I
may place one of them on the other side of the river, at the close of the rains.
Soldier-Town chapel would be a very good place for the residence of an assistant
missionary, as it is pretty near to the mission-house, and amidst a numerous popu-
lation, a good number of whom are members of society. A tolerable house (such
as a respectable native has) might be erected for about seventy or eighty dollars,
with what I can get done gratis ; the one on the mission premises is in a very
dilapidated state, besides being much too small.
You are doubtless aware that I have one local preacher here, and you will recollect
that I wrote to you some time ago about three or four more who had then begun to
preach. I am happy to be able to report well of them all ; they seem to vie with
each other, which shall make the most progress. WiUiam JutF, (or Joaf,) the local
preacher, might be immediately employed as an assistant missionary, were it not that
he is a slave. I have now five more who are acting as occasional preachers ; but four
of these are slaves also. This is another subject which I have long wished to bring
before you. I had, some time ago, a conversation with the governor upon it, who
very generously acknowledged, " They are not slaves, strictly speaking, while on
this island ; but immediately when they leave, they are, and may be taken." He
(the governor) wished them to continue with their masters, but at the same time
said he should feel a pleasure in doing what he could to get the freedom of any
who wished it, at a moderate price. Several in the colony have pvu"chased their
own freedom, (assisted by some friend who has advanced a part of the money,) but
it has taken them some years to do so ; and how can it be otherwise, when at the
end of every week the poor slave has to divide his wages, and one half goes to
his master or mistress, and the other half to support himself and family ?
William JufF is a married man, and has three or four childi-en, but is not more
than thirty years of age : he is by trade a caiiienter, and is considered a very good
workman ; if he were free, he would do well, in a temporal point of view, but would
much prefer being employed as an assistant missionary ; he has been a member of
society upwards of nine years, and has acted in the capacity of a local preacher
upwards of five. His piety is unquestionable, and his talents as a native preacher
are acceptable : and, if wholly set apart to the work, I have no doubt but he would
make considerable improvement. I have already found him a great acquisition to
me, as he has frequently preached and conducted the meetings when I have been
sick. If he could be set free, and it meet with yom' approbation, he might be
immediately employed as an assistant.
Two out of the other four, who are slaves, I could recommend in a short time,
were it not that they are tied in the same way ; how are they to get free, is a
question I wish most earnestly to propose. They are in a British colony ; conse-
quently virtually they are free ; but actually they are slaves. Will Government
break their chains .' If not, who will ? They cannot themselves. The Christian
pubhc have lately given, and are still giving, us additional proofs of their unbounded
liberality in reference to the West Indies ; where then shall I look to find a friend
for these five poor slaves ? — poor as regards this world, but rich in faith ; labouring
under an earthly bondage, but happy in the enjoyment of a spiritual freedom.
360 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
The frieiuts in Ireland have already given us a demonstrative proof of their love
of freedom, in the redemption of Pien-e Sallah ; and shall England be behind the
sister-country in such charitable and praiseworthy acts ? If one cannot be found
to accomplish the vrhole, methinks Jive can and will ; so that each will have the
pleasiu-e and honour of redeeming a brother.
Should the committee find it impracticable to exert themselves on behalf of the
whole five, I hope they wiU do what they can for the three I particularly mention,
that is, William JufF, Amado Gum, and John Gum. The first, if free, might, as
above stated, be immediately employed ; and the other two in a short time, after
being duly recommended.
St. Mary's, I am aware, is not one of the fii-st in importance amidst the nume-
rous and increasing stations which call for your time and attention, neither is it one
of the last ; it has akeady risen, is rising, and will rise ; and I am of opinion, that
the time is not far distant when it will support itself, or nearly so. An additional
missionary would, of course, increase the expense of the mission, and the employ-
ment of two or three native teachers would still add to that expense ; but then this
will greatly facilitate the dissemination of gospel light and truth among the various
and degraded tribes on each bank of this immense river.
" The harvest is indeed plenteous, but the labourers are few." We pray the
Lord of the harvest, and we pray you as his agents, to " send forth more labourers
into the vineyard : " and then—
" Soon the reaping-time shall come,
And angels shout the harvest-home."
As it respects the new chapel, I am expecting to hear from you every day, and
hope to commence at the close of the rains.*
My work during the rains of this year was considerably
increased, on account of my being appointed acting colonial and
garrison chaplain, in the absence of the government chaplain,
who had returned to England for the benefit of his health. f
A few extracts from my private journal may not be out of
place here : —
Monday, June 30th, quarter-day. — My pen cannot describe
the gratitude I feel to my heavenly Father, for his continued
goodness to us. During the past quarter we have enjoyed tole-
rable health, much of the Divine presence in our own souls, and
many a refreshing season in the house of God. During the last
three months, sixty-one have been admitted on trial. Last
June we had eighty-four in the society, and we have now three
hundred and twenty-two ; and the finances have increased in
proportion. " My soul doth magnify the Lord, and my spirit
hath rejoiced in God my Saviour.^^ Keep us, O keep us in the
dust; and,
* " Missionary Notices," vol. vii. pp. 545 — 548.
t One-half of the salary was allowed to the chaplain dming his absence, and, by
a new regulation, only one-fourth to the person officiating for him ; but, of course,
the mission derived the benefit of tliis, and not the inissionarv.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 361
" When we reach yon blissful station,
Then we '11 give thee nobler praise ! "
SundaVj July 6th. — I met a class for tickets at six a.m. ; at
ten, read prayers and preached; immediately after, performed
duty at the church.* In the afternoon I sailed across the river
to Berwick-Town, and after preaching met the class, and returned
home in time for the evening service. One soul was made happy
in God at the prayer-meeting.
9th. — I had liberty while preaching from Luke xviii. 13 :
" God be merciful to me a sinner ! '' and afterwards married
one couple.
15tli. — I rose at four a.m. ; at five commenced the prayer-
meeting, when we had a refreshing season.
August 12th. — The sickly season has now set in, and many
are ill with fever. I have to-day visited several.
13th. — A vessel arrived from Macarthy^s Island late last
evening, with the painful news of the death of Lieutenant
Nichols, the commandant, who died on the passage to St.
Mary's, being ill when he embarked.
14th. — I had a long conversation with a Mohammedan priest,
who, amongst other questions, wanted to know who was the
mother of Moses.
15th, — This morning I buried a European. In the evening
there was a gracious influence at the prayer-meeting. Tliough
a little unwell, my soul felt it good to be there.
23d. — I received letters from the brethren at Sierra-Leone.
Several Europeans have died there this season, among whom is
the governor. Others are very ill ; and the brethren Maer and
Clarke not Avell.
Sunday, 24th. — I rose this morning very unwell. At half-
past seven I went to the barracks, and read prayers to the sol-
diers ; at ten I did the same in the mission chapel ; and after-
wards preached, and had a most precious time whilst doing so,
from Gen. xlv. 3 :- "And Joseph said unto his brethren, I am
Joseph. Doth my father yet live?" How mysterious are the
ways of Providence ! But O how wise and benevolent in the
end !
" BUnd unbeUef is sure to err,
And scan his work in vain :
God is his own interpreter,
And he will make it plain."
At half-past eleven I performed duty at the church, and at six
* That is, iu tlie court-liouse, — tliere being no church erected.
363 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
P.M. in our own chapel. I was still very poorly ; but my local
preacher was worse ; so that I was compelled to preach. And,
" As thy day, so shall thy strength be/' was literally verified in
my case. The blessed God felt for my weakness, and came to
my help ; and there was a mighty influence whilst I was giving
out that beautiful hymn : —
" Give me the faith which can remove
And sink the mountain to a plain," &c. ;
and during the whole of the service many could say, " Master,
it is good for us to be here.'' Though the rain came down in
torrents, many could not find room in our little sanctuary. The
island is now nearly covered with water.
30th. — I went to Barra-Point, in company with His Excel-
lency the governor, to see the king of Barra, in reference to a
rumour that Kemmingtan, in the upper river, is meditating an
attack on Macarthy's Island.
The following extract of a letter from Mr. Dove will furnish
the reader with the probable origin and cause of this rumour, as
well as some information respecting the progress of that mis-
sion. Mr. Dove's letter is dated, " Macarthy's Island, August
25th, 1834:"—
I feel unfeignedly thankful to the God of all grace, mercy, and love, that I am
again permitted to address you from this land of sickness and death ; for, since my
last communication, I have heen called to pass through deep waters of affliction,
arising from a severe attack of the fever, which at this season of the year is so pre-
valent in this part of Western Afi-ica. I however experienced the Saviour's pre-
sence, and found the consolations of religion to be neither few nor small ; and with
the Psalmist can I say, " It is good that I have heen afflicted."
" Oft from the margin of the grave
Thou, Lord, hast lifted up my head ;
Sudden, I found thee near to save.
The fever own'd thy touch, and fled."
Through the infinite mercy of our heavenly Father, I am now fully restored, and
feel happy in the great and glorious work in which I am employed. At the present
moment, I seem to enter into the very spirit of the sentiment, expressed by the
great apostle ; namely, " Unto me who am less than the least of all saints, is this
grace given, that I should preach among the Gentiles " (the sable sons and daughters
of Ham) " the imsearchable riches of Christ."
At the last quarterly visitation of the classes, I M'as highly gratified to witness
the simple and artless manner in which our members in general expressed them-
selves. Some very distinctly and satisfactorily stated how God had pardoned all
their sins, for the sake of the Lord Jesus Christ, and made them happy in his love ;
and others seemed resolutely determined not to rest satisfied, till they " found Ilim
of whom Moses in the law and the prophets did write." May the Lord fulfil their
desires, and strengthen their resolutions, for his mercy's sake ! Thanks be to the
Lord, we have not been suffered either to run or to labour in vain. M'ith inex-
THE GAMBIA AND SIEURA-LEONE. 363
pressible pleasure I have to report that the miniber of members at Macarthy's
Island is one hundred and two, and six are on trial. May they all " war a good
warfare ! " We think that the time is now come to form a class at one of the
Foulah towns. I purpose very soon (God being my helper) gathering those into
the fold, who are sincere in their inquiries after truth, and who express a desire to
flee from the wrath to come. Our school at the Foulah town, (Broco,) though in
its infancy, is going on well ; the children are making progress in their learning.
This very circumstance has impressed upon the minds of the Foulalis the import-
ance and excellency of our mission. Indeed, some of the old men wash they coidd
be children again, that they might learn to read the book of God.
I have a Foulah for an interpreter, who has a tolerable knowledge of English.
For this instance of the goodness and providence of God, I here record my devout
thanks ; for were I to search all the towns on the banks of the Gambia, I believe
that I should not find another Foulah capable of interpreting.
The brethren Cupidon and Sallah preach once in the week, in the JoUolf lan-
guage, to their own country people. We have a pious and intelligent young man
from among the liberated Africans, belonging to the Accow tribe, who has a class of
his own people, or tribe, to whom he speaks in the Accow language. We have
regular service in the two Foulah towns at Broco, every Lord's day ; but we are
sometimes put to some inconvenience for the want of places of worship, especially
as the rains are now set in. Large tabba trees have hitherto served as a covert
from the scorching rays of a vertical sun, and from the rains, and from the tempest.
If the committee can allow us the sum of five pounds, we could, with the help of
the Foulahs and others, erect a spacious house for the Lord of hosts, between the
two towns. It would be built in the native form of wood and cane, and covered
with grass, which would be far better than holding oiu- meetings and schools under
the above-mentioned trees.
I have every reason to think, that the system of Mohammedanism is rapidly on
the decline, and must, ere long, fall before the light and force of truth. I have dis-
tributed several copies of the Arabic scriptures, which were kindly furnished by the
committee of the British and Foreign Bible Society. Incalculable good is likely to
result therefrom ; for the people who can read appear very anxious to obtain a copy.
I believe that some of the Bibles, Testaments, and the Book of Psalms, have been
carried hundreds of miles into the interior of the country. A short time ago I pre-
sented Mr. Grant's tradesman ^^^th an Arabic Bible ; soon after he reached the port
of Cantaliconda, (about three hundred miles above Macarthy's Island,) a marraboo
was so pleased with the Bible, that he even offered at once to give him three bul-
locks for the book of God. Surely such accounts appear to augur well.
Of late I have had many interviews with bushereens and marraboos, (priests of
Mohamed,) and some have, with no small degree of candour, said, that the white
man's religion nmst prevail, and finally overthrow their system. One man, a mar-
raboo, said, that " white man had God in his heart, and that make him happy too
much." I very frequently ask them the state of their minds ; but, notwithstanding
their apparent sanctity, their external ablutions, their prostration to the earth, and
prayers (so called) twice every day, together with a repetition of the Alcoran, and
the use of their beads, greegrees, charms, &c., &c., there is in them not only a desti-
tution of that religion which takes its seat in the heart, but, alas ! alas ! they are
(as is too evident) " earthly, sensual, devilish."
Another man declared that he could not derive comfort or satisfaction in his
worship at the mosque ; and no marvel, for there is no looking to the world's
Redeemer, " the Lamb of God which taketh away the sin of the world ! " Another
364 WESTERN COAST OF ArRICA.
marraboo, after witnessing the holy fervour and zeal of some of our people, was
greatly amazed, and exclaimed, in the Mandingo language, " What does all this
mean ? There is but one God, and Mohamed is His prophet ! "
I pray that the gospel of God our Sa^•iour may speedily supersede the domina-
tion of the false prophet : then the wilderness \N-ill become a fruitful field, and the
desert hke Eden, the garden of the Lord. The neighbouring kings and chiefs have
an extraordinary propensity for war ; they seem to be intiuenced by the love of
riches, (slaves,) the love of honour, and the love of power.
We have just been sadly annoyed by Kimmington, a most desperate chief: he has
even threatened to invade ^lacarthy's Island ; and on Tuesday last, the 19th, an
alarm was given, which put the whole settlement into a state of great consternation
and confusion. It was reported that Kimmington and his people were in the bush
near the island ; the bugles were immediately sounded at the fort, the government
bell was rung, the cannons were loaded, the people hastened from their farms, some
of the poor women were weeping aloud, and others were busily engaged in earning
their children, boxes, &c., to the fort for protection. Such another sight I hope I
shall never be called to witness. My dear wife and I retired in secret before God,
and were enabled to cast on him our every care, knowing that " the hairs of our
heads are all numbered," and that nothing could happen to us M-ithout the know-
ledge of our heavenly Father. Soon, however, we were informed that Kimming-
ton's son, and a few horsemen, were on the side of the port, opposite to the island,
and that their object was not to make war, but to promote peace.
A short time ago, a vessel and her cargo were seized by the above-mentioned
chief, which belonged to an English merchant ; in consequence of wliich the trade
has, in a great measure, been suspended, as the merchants are afraid to proceed in
their vessels above Macarthy's Island. This circumstance has subjected the natives
to very great inconvenience, they being under the necessity of coming in their
canoes a distance, sometimes, of at least two or three hundred miles. The kings of
Jemera, Barbarra, and Woolley, have in consequence lost their customs ; they have,
therefore, given Kimmington distinctly to understand that, unless he makes restitu-
tion or friendsliip with the white people, so that they may proceed up the River
Gambia as before, they will break up his town, and take his country from him; and
now he begins to tremble for consequences. His message to the Commander was
as follows : — " I do n't wish to injiu-e or hurt white man, Foulah man, nor Mandingo
man." He also stated, that he thought the vessel belonged to a black man ; and
then began to express his regret for what he had done. I trust, however, that this
painfid circumstance will be over-ruled for good, and that the knowledge of the
Lord may cover the earth as the waters cover the sea. Amen, and Amen.*
To the preceding communication from Macarthy's Island^ I
add the two following letters from St. Mary's, Avith the intro-
duction by the general secretaries : —
MISSIONS IN WESTERN AFRICA.
In our last Number we printed a very encouraging letter from Mr. Dove, respect-
ing the new mission estabhshed at Macarthy's Island. Equally gratifying are the
following extracts from the letters of Mr. Fox, who diligently and usefully occupies
tlie station of St. Mary's, on the same river, the Gambia. To Admiral WaiTen our
Society owes its cordial thanks for the public testimony which, it ^vill be seen, he
* " Missionarj- Notices," vol. viii. pp. 60 — 62.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 365
was pleased to bear, on a recent occasion, to the character and labours of our mis-
sionaries, and for his benevolent otter of assistance in favour of Amadi Gum's
liberation, as contained in his obliging note to Mr. Fox.
Extract of a Letter from Mr. Fox, dated St. Mary^s, River Gamliia,
September 6th, 1834.
There is work enough in this neighbourhood to employ three native assistants
and an additional missionaiy, could we obtain them.
I am myself fully employed, and many an evening have I retired to rest when I
have been so fatigued that I have absolutely preferred the boarded floor to my bed :
the follo^^^ng day and days have, of coiuse, found me worse. The following is my
work every sabbath, (if at all able to attend to it,) that is, — at five o'clock a.m.,
prayer-meeting in the chapel ; at half-past seven, I read prayers to the soldiers in
the barracks ; at ten, read prayers and preach in our owm chapel, when the heat,
from the lowness of the chapel, and the crowded congregation, is almost insuffer-
able ; at half-past eleven, perform duty at the church ; at two p.m., sail to Berwick-
Town, Fort Bullen, preach and meet the class, (or go to Melville,) and at six
o'clock in the evening again preach here ; at the close of which I either hold a
prayer-meeting, meet the society, or administer the sacrament of the Lord's supper.
My week-days also are fully employed : every morning at five o'clock we have a
prayer-meeting in the chapel, (these I cannot always attend, from indisposition,)
and at half-past sLx the school commences. I have also a considerable number of
baptisms, marriages, sick to visit, and funerals to attend ; and either prayer-meeting
or preaching every evening in the week.
You will please to observe, I do not complain of this, — though I am sometimes
fearful as to the consequences. No ; I trust I can say, it is " my meat and my
drink ;" and with humility I adopt the language of the poet : —
" For this alone I live below.
The power of godliness to show.
The wonders wrought by Jesu's name ;
0 that I might but faithful prove,
Witness to all Thy pardoning love,
And point them to the' atoning Lamb ! "
From the Same, dated St. Mari/'s, November lOth, 1834.
I BEG leave most respectfully to acknowledge the receipt of your kind communi-
cations, bearing date the 10th and 15th of September; and which arrived here on
the 2'2d of the following month.
They were put into my hands at a period when the affectionate language they
breathe, and the kind admonitions they contain relative to my health, were pecu-
liarly acceptable to us. Three days before, we had committed to the " silent
tomb " a lovely and promising infant, aged only six days, after but a few hours' sick-
ness ; and under circumstances which led us to reflect upon death in one of its
most afflicting forms. Our sorrow could only be alleviated by the consideration,
that the Judge of all the earth doeth right ; that "all things work together for good
to them that love God;" that "what we know not now, we shall know hereafter."
This, however, we already know, that the spirit of our dear child is gone to that
Saviour, in whose heavenly kingdom we expect to meet again. And, thank God,
ere long the " king of teiTors' " own funeral will take place ; for in that day " there
shall be no more death."
366 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
As to the present state of our health, you will be both gratified and grieved. You
will he glad to hear, that, notwithstanihng the work I have had, and stiU have, to
perform, I am in moderate health. Surely an especial Providence has watched over
me during the present sickly and deathly season. While scores of the natives have
gone the way of all flesh, and out of about fifty Europeans no less than ten or
twelve have been carried to the house appointed for all living, I have scarcely been
prevented from attending to my numerous and important duties more than once or
twice. This calls aloud for gratitude to Him who hath said, in reference to his
ministers more particularly, " But the very hairs of your head are all numbered."
You will, however, be sorry to hear, that my dear wife's health is exceedingly
delicate and precarious ; yet, she is much better than she was a few days ago, but
stUl very weak ; and I have scarcely been able to leave her bed-side.
The doctor recommended her going home by the vessel which brings you this
letter ; and I have endeavoured to persuade her to do so, but cannot prevail ; she
vrishes to stay as long as I do, or be 1)imed in African soil by the side of our dear
infant.
For want of assistance I cannot possibly leave the island for a single day, though
Captain Quin, commander of His Majesty's ship, " Britomart," has very kindly and
repeatedly invited us to go with him to sea, two or three weeks, for the benefit of
our health, where we should have good metUcal ad\ice, and every comfort we could
expect.
I shall have your sjniipathies, I know ; and, I trust, your prayers also, that I may
have strength according to my day, and realize the fulfilment of those well-known
lines : —
" When my sorrows most increase,
Let thine utmost joys be given ;"
or with pious Job exclaim, " Though Thou slay me, yet will I trust in Thee."
The welcome intelUgence, that ^500 had been granted towards the erection of
the new chapel, was received with heart-felt gratitude. I immediately commenced
purchasing materials, a considerable quantity of which are now on the spot. His
Excellency, the governor, has kindly promised to lay the foundation-stone, which,
I hope, will take place in a few days : and I trust, the Almighty will grant his
blessing with this important undertaking, and spare me to see " the top-stone
brought on with shouting, Grace, grace unto it ! "
About five or six weeks ago arrived from the Leeward the " Isis " frigate, with
Admiral Warren, commander-in-chief of His Majesty's fleet on this coast, during
the last three years, on board, who came here to meet his successor. Admiral
Campbell, in the " ThaUa" frigate, from England. The " Isis " lay at anchor about
a fortnight before the other admiral arrived, during which period I had the pleasure
of visiting Admiral Warren, by his obliging invitation, two or three times, and of
meeting the Rev. W. V. Henneh, chaplain to His Majesty's ship. From both these
gentlemen I received great kindness. The admiral cordially congi-atulated me on
the increase of our congregation, the addition to the society, and the good that he
l)elieved was doing. He expressed his pleasxire that we had a missionary at
Macarthy's Island ; and that the two native assistants answered so well. I informed
Mm they did ; and that I had two or three others whom I wished to propose. On
"his leaving the Gambia for England, a respectful Address was presented to him by
the merchants and traders of the settlement ; and, in his answer to that Address,
he expressed his views of the good resulting from the labours of your missionaries.
The following is the part referred to : —
" The success of the missionaries with the natives reflects the highest credit on
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 367
the able gentlemen who have been and are now employed at St. Mary's, and at
Macarthy's Island, a distance of between two and three hiuuked miles up the river;
and far exceeds what the most sanguine could have expected in so short a time.
" Indeed, gentlemen, with the fostering hand of Government, a gradual increase
of liberated Africans, and the continued exertions of the Missionai7 Society, I
really look forward to see realized, in a great measure, those beneficial plans for the
good of Africa which have, in all other places, been so long and so often essayed in
vain."
When Admh-al Wan-en's answer to the merchants and traders was received, the
" Isis " was lying out at anchor three or four miles from Bathurst, preparing to get
under weigh. The respectful mention he had publicly made of your missions and
missionaries, I thought, deserved an acknowledgment ; and I wrote the following
hasty lines : —
" Mission- House, Bathurst, River Gambia, October Wth, 1834.
" Sir, — I CANNOT suffer the ' Isis ' to leave the Gambia without tendering to
you, in the name of the Wesleyan Missionary Committee in London, and also on
])ehalf of niy fellow-labourer, the Rev. Thomas Dove, of Macarthy's Island, our
most sincere thanks for the very liberal views you entertain, and have expressed,
towards the Society with which I have the honour to be connected.
" Most fervently praying, that every personal, domestic, and spiritual blessing
may always attend you,
" I remain," &c.
" To Rear-Admiral Warren, Commander-in-Chief of His Majesty's Fleet
on the Western Coast of Africa, i^c, (Sy-e."
I also sent him, as a small present, a walking-staff made by Amadi Gum, who is
an excellent workman, and of whom Admiral WajTcn had heard some accoimt ;
when he sent me back by the pilot the following very gratifying note : —
" His Majesty's Ship ' Isis,' October 12th, 1834.
" My dear sir, — ^I accept, with the greatest pleasure, the proof of Amadi
Gum's ingenuity and gratitude ; and should you, ultimately, find any difficulty in
procuring this deserving man his freedom, you may consider, that I have always-
twenty pounds at yom* service to effect it.
" I always am, dear sir,
" Yours faitlifully,
" Frederick Warren."
" To the Rev. William For."
Amadi Gum's very eyes glowed with fire when I communicated to him the intel-
ligence of Admiral Warren's benevolent offer. He exclaimed, "Thank God; thank
God ! I hope the Lord will help you to get my freedom ! "
You will not, I hope, forget my proposal for Berwick-Town, Fort Bullen ; that
infant society deserve encouragement ; they have again asked for a school, and will
do all they can towards a chapel.
My present state of health, all things considered, is tolerable, and I am perfectly
willing to remain on this station a third year, with your permission. I must, how-
ever, beg of you to send out, as soon as possible after Christmas, an additional mis-
sionary for this station, besides allowing me to employ two or three native assist-
ants ; and you may depend upon it we shall all be at it, and always at it.*
* " Missionary Notices," vol. viii. pp. 74 — 76.
368 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
It will be seen, from the last of these letters, that the writer
had now obtained permission to build a new chapel, with a
liberal grant from the parent committee. This welcome news
reached the Gambia on the 22d of October, and he therefore
began the work immediately, begging and giving and labouring
with all his might ; and though he was occasionally laid aside
with attacks of fever during the rains, as well as afterwards,
yet, upon the whole, his health was tolerable. He is persuaded
that nothing but the special providence and goodness of God
could have preserved his life during the excessive, though happy,
toil of the greater part of that and some of the following j^ear.
More help was needed : it was kindly promised, and in due
time it arrived.
This was also the case at Sierra-Leone ; but before further
lielp arrived there, death had thinned the small band of mis-
sionarjr labourers ; for " one was taken, and the other left.^'
Mr. Clarke was called to "gather up his feet^^ at the close of
the rains, and just as the healthy season had set in, after a
residence in the colony of only about twelve months. One of
the missionaries belonging to the Church missions was also
called hence, to be no more seen ; and four of them had
returned to Europe invalided. Mr. Maer had suffered severely,
but was mercifully preserved, and was " in labours more abun-
dant."
Isaac Clarke, whose term of public service was so short in
this mission, was a young man of sincere piety ; and, while
health and strength lasted, was happy and useful in his Mas-
ter's work. It appears that he never fully recovered from his
seasoning-fever, though he was removed from one place to ano-
ther for a change of air. His lungs were affected before he left
England ; and therefore, though the climate, no doubt, accele-
rated the disease, his death could not be wholly attributed to
that. He gradualh^ grew weaker and weaker in body ; but
" his soul was happy in God," " quite happy." These were
some of the last expressions he uttered ; and he died in peace,
on the 4th of November, 1834. As he was much esteemed in
life, so was he greatly lamented and honoured in death ; his
funeral being attended by at least six hundred persons.
"The brethren, Maj', Peck, Munro, and Clarke, he side by
side."
Mr. Crosby had sailed for Sierra-Leone before the news of
Mr. Clarke's death had reached London ; so that another mis-
THE GAMBIA AXD SIERRA-LEONE. 369
sionary was now very much needed ; and, as soon as practicable,
a third was sent.
On the 3d of December, 1834, the foundation-stone of the
new chapel at Bathurst, St. Mary's, was laid by His Excellency
the Lieutenant-Governor, in the presence of most of the Eu-
ropean residents, several naval and military officers, and a large
number of the natives. The following "historical sketch,"
written on parchment, was placed, with some small pieces of
British coin, in a cavity of the foundation-stone, and was read
by the Lieutenant-Governor in the open air before it was
deposited : —
AN HISTORICAL SKETCH OF WESLEY CHAPEL, ON THE ISLAND OF ST. MARY's,
WESTERN AFRICA, COMMENCED DECEMBER, 1834.
If there be a God, — and that there is all nature cries aloud, and even our own
existence clearly demonstrates,— then it is the bounden duty of every rational and
intelligent creature to love and serve and glorify Him. But although the Divine
existence may be inferred from the varied and beautiful works of natm-e, had there
been no further revelation respecting the self-existent, independent, infinite, and
eternal Spirit, we should probably have long remained ignorant respecting his
natural and moral perfections, the requisitions of the gospel, the immortality of the
soul, and the awful realities of an eternal world.
Great Britain, though not one of the first portions of the globe that were favoured
with this revelation, was nevertheless, at an early period, visited by the heralds of
salvation ; whose converts and co-adjutors in the ministry increased, many of whom,
alas ! were burnt at the stake, and swam through rivers of blood to defend the
truth. Happily, however, for the honour of Britain, and the happiness and welfare
of its inhabitants, persecution has of late years subsided, and England has not been
more conspicuous for arts and sciences, her men of genius and literature, than for
her humane and benevolent institutions, her attachment to the Christian religion,
(the religion of the Bible,) and for an host of able divines, well qualified to advo-
cate its cause at home, and most zealous in disseminating far and wide " the glori-
ous gospel of the blessed God."
Among the modern reformers may be reckoned the Rev. Messrs. Wesley and
Whitefield ; the former of whom was the founder of Methodism, and also of the
foreign missions bearing that name, which have now spread into the four quarters
of the globe.
The first Wesleyan missionary arrived on this island in 1821, who soon com-
menced his ministerial duties ; and though he met with difficulties, he also met
with that respect from the local authorities, and that success in his work, which
encouraged him to labour on. In the year 1825 a mission-house was erected, and
the whole of tlie ground-floor, thirty-seven feet by seventeen, appropriated to the
doul)le purpose of holding divine service and also of keeping a week-day school.
In the latter part of 1833 this station was visited, by the great Head of the
church, with a gracious outpouring of the Holy Spirit. The above-mentioned
room became much too small to contain the congregation ; the society in a few
months was doubled, and in little more than twelve months increased fourfold, so
that the original chapel could not admit even all the members of society, which
had increased from seventy-five to three hundred : the population being about two
thousand seven hundred, out of which there were about fifty Europeans. This led
B B
370
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
to an application to the Wesleyan Missionary' Committee in London, for leave (and
the principal part of the means) to erect a new and much larger chapel, stating to
them its size, (fifty-four feet by thirty-eight,) probable cost, and the probable sum
that could be raised on the island towards its erection. After some months' una-
voidable delay, the welcome intelligence was received from the secretaries of the
Wesleyan Missionaiy Committee that ^500 were granted toward the expense ; and
the missionary to whom that letter was addressed (Rev. W. Fox) was authorized
to l)egin to build immediately. This letter arrived on the 22d of October, 1834 ;
the following day a commencement was made by clearing the site of land adjoining
the mission-house, purchasing materials, &c.
Charles Grant, Esq., was engaged to erect this chapel, the doors, windows, and
interior part excepted, which the missionary engaged to superintend ; and this
foundation-stone was laid on Wednesday, December 3d, 1834, by His Excellency
Lieutenant-Governor George Kendall, Esq., Representative of His Britannic Majesty
King William IV. May the blessing of God, the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, rest
upon this place ; and may the present inhabitants of St. Marj-'s, and generations yet
unborn, have to bless God to all eternity, for the erection of this chapel ! Amen,
and amen.
While the smith was soldering up a square tin and leaden
box containing this document, previous to its being put in the
stone, the 540Lh Hymn was sung, to the well-known tune
of the "Old Hundred/' after which His Excellency pro-
ceeded to lay the stone, assisted by sevei'al other gentlemen.
He then gave a short, but very appropriate, address. The writer
also gave a brief exhortation ; and then was sung the 620th
Hymn : —
" Behold the sure foundation-stone
Which God in Sion lays," &c. ;
and thus closed the commencement of this important under-
taking.
A few extracts from my unpublished journal and letters may
be introduced here.
December 6th, 1834. — The past two days here have been
partly occupied in soliciting subscriptions for the new chapel, in
which I have succeeded very well. I met with only one refusal :
this was from a gentleman of deistical principles, who, with his
declining to give any thing, made some rather severe remarks
upon the mission, calling the gracious work of God, and the
blessed revival which was still going on, a mere farce. This
called forth a reply from another European gentleman, who was
present. Though not, it is to be feared, a converted man, yet
he was a well-wisher to the cause, and nobly defended the
mission from this unexpected and ungracious attack. After
speaking for some time on the propriety and iitility of our
missions generally, and the good that had resulted from mis-
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEOXE.
371
sionary labour in this colony, he referred to the present farce,
ns the sceptic called it, and, pointing to several well-known
characters in the town, — who had frequently been brought
before the magistrates for debt, breaches of the peace, &c., but
who had not been seen in the Court-House for many months,
and were novr orderly and industrious, civil and obliging in
their manners, well clothed in their persons, and regular attend-
ants on the means of grace, — he asked, with some warmth, if
all that was " a mere farce." " If their hearts are not changed,"
continued he, " it is evident that a great moral change has been
effected in their lives ; and this is a fact known to the whole
colony."
Sunda}--, 14tli. — -i^t six a.m. I gave tickets to two large classes ;
at half-past seven at the barracks ; at ten I read prayers, and
preached with considerable liberty ; at tlie close I baptized
several adults. Immediately afterwards I performed duty at
the church. At two p.m. I sailed to Berwick-Town, preached
and renewed the tickets ; returned home a little before six ;
when I again preached, and at the close held a prayer-meeting.
17th. — I felt much blessed this evening, while preaching from
Heb. xiii. 8, " Jesus Christ, the same yesterday, and to-day, and
for ever." I had been engaged all day with the new chapel, and
went into the pulpit without a text; (not the more excellent
way;) but on opening the Bible, the passage just quoted pre-
sented itself; and it was good to be there. At the close, I met
my class, when we had another refreshing season.
Christmas-Day. — I rose this morning at four; and com-
menced the prayer-meeting a little before five. Many could
not get into the chapel. At half-past seven I went to the
barracks ; at ten I read prayers, and preached from the " faithful
saying;" (1 Tim. i. 15;) then performed duty at the church.
At half-past two I attended the prayer-meeting at Soldiers'-
Town ; and in the evening preached from the emphatic answer
of the blind man who had received his sight. (John ix. 25.)
29th. — Quarter-day. The leaders and local preachers dined
at the mission-house; and we then proceeded to business.
Another year of prosperity, both temporal and spiritual. To
God be all the praise !
January 1st, 1835. — Last evening I held a watch-night ser-
vice. Scores could not get into the chapel. The subjects selected
by the local brethren were appropriate. I closed the service,
which was a solemn and profitable season. To-day I have been
to Berwick-Town, to commit to the silent tomb the mortal
remains of Mary Lusack, one of the oldest members on this
2 B 2
372 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
station, who died triumphantly happy in God, between eleven
and twelve o'clock last evening. About the same period I was
addressing the congregation on the subject of death ; adding,
" While I am speaking, and you are hearing, it is highly pro-
bable that some of God's people are saying, ' O the pain, the
bliss of dying ! ' " Though the sea was rough, many of the
natives went over in their canoes ; and about twenty accom-
panied me in the mission-boat. It was an affecting scene.
Some of her last words were, "The Master is come, and calleth
for me." *
Sunday, 4th. — I commenced the service this morning, by
giving out that beautiful hymn, —
" When all thy mercies, 0 my God,
My rising soul surveys," &c.
I then improved the death of Mary Lusack, from, " I am
now ready to be offered, and the time of my departure is at
hand,'^ &c. It was a gracious season ; and many in the con-
gregation, by their countenances and tears, said,
" 0 may I triumph so,
^^^len all my warfare 's past ! "
After performing colonial duty, I proceeded to Berwick-Town.
On arriving at the house of the deceased, where we preached, I
was struck with the sadness which appeared in the countenances
of all present ; most of whom (that is, the females) had tlieir
heads dressed with black or blue baft, as a token of respect to
their departed friend. I endeavoured to impress upon their
disconsolate minds the encouraging words of the Saviour to his
disciples, " Let not your heart be troubled : ye believe in God,
believe also in me. In my Father's house ai'e many mansions,"
&c. (John xiv. 1 — 3.) I afterwards met the class, and then
embarked in the mission-boat for St. Mary's ; but, owing to a
contrary tide, I did not reach that place till a few minutes after
six. However, I again preached, and at the close held a short
prayer-meeting.
17th. — I received a letter from the Rev. John Beecham, with
the welcome intelligence that an additional missionary is coming
out immediately for this station.
* This is the person mentioned in a preceding chapter, who was brought to a
knowledge of the truth under the ministry of the Rev. John Morgan, at an early
stage of the mission. I afterwards furnished a short account of this good woman
for the Wesleyan-Methodist Magazine, which appeared in 1837, p. 233.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 373
Sunday, 25th. — Another heavy day^s work. I conducted six
services. Tired in the work, but not tired of it.
29th. — "We had a gracious season at the five-o^clock prayer-
meeting this morning ; two persons found peace with God, in
addition to three the other evening. Praise ye the Lord !
On the 30th of this month I addressed a letter to the com-
mittee, containing an account of the financial and spiritual state
of the circuit. The following is an abstract of that communi-
cation : — Some account of personal and domestic affliction ; but
the prosperity of the cause of God was a sufficient recompence
for all our aches and pains. We had had to mourn over some,
but rejoiced over others ; had united in marriage several couples,
and baptized nearly two hundred. The financial receipts were
upwards of £60, in addition to the annual list of subscriptions,
amounting to £40. 25. 7d., with upwards of c€lOO towards the
new chapel, the walls of which were now about fifteen feet high,
&c. Five members of the society had " died in the Lord "
during the year, ten had removed, eleven had been excluded.
The number of members were, — Bathurst, 261 ; Melville, 26 ;
Berwick-Town, 27 : total, 314 ; being an increase of 130 during
the year, besides upwards of twenty on trial. In the school,
boys* 95 ; girls, 31 : total, 123.
February 6th. — We had a delightful prayer- meeting this
evening. One of the soldiers from the barracks literally " smote
upon his breast," and cried aloud for mercy. I went to him at
the close of tlie meeting, and pointed him to " the Lamb of God
which taketh away the sins of the world." He did not then
find relief for his burdened soul, but returned to his quarters in
deep distress, assisted by his sergeant and another soldier.
Sunday, 8th. — My work to-day was much as usual, except
that I went to Melville in the afternoon, instead of to Berwick.
19th. — To-day I united in marriage thirty couples of liberated
Africans, the female part of whom had only recently been
rescued from the slave-ship, by His Majesty^s cruisers. There
may be an evil in this wholesale system of marrying ; but when
there are two evils, prudence dictates that we choose the least ;
and believing this to be the least of the two, I perfectly con-
curred Avith the governor in the propriety of thus uniting them
in matrimony. The courtship, though of short duration, was
mutual : the man having " popped the question," as in other
lands, he almost immediately received an answer in the affirma-
tive from the female; and so they were married, and duly and
properly registered ; and it is to be hoped that all the parties
w ill attend to the vows they have now made. At all events, I did
374 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA,
my duty^ though it was with some difficulty that I maintained
my accustomed gravity during a part of the service.
23d. — This evening the brig " Emerald" arrived from London,
with the promised additional help ; that is, Mr. and jNIrs. Wil-
kinson, to whom we gave a right hearty welcome. May they
be made an abundant blessing to the swarthy tribes of Ham in
this interesting part of the mission-field !
A very favourable opportunity having offered for taking a
short trip to sea, a few weeks after the arrival of Mr. Wilkinson,
I gladly embraced it, for the sake of my dear wife, avIio con-
tinued in a very delicate state of health ; and I also needed a
little rest or cliange. The vessel in which we embarked was an
English brig, going to one or more of the Cape-de-Verd Islands,
and expecting to be absent about three weeks. We sailed on
the morning of March 21st, and on the evening of the 24th
anchored off the Isle of Mayo. We found the inhabitants in a
state of great excitement, from an insurrection which had taken
place at St. Jago, by some troops recently arrived there from
Lisbon, who were partisans in the great political stir which at
that time existed in Portugal. These troops, hasdng possession
of the garrison, hoisted the flag of their own party, drove the
inhabitants into the interior of the island, put the governor into
irons, and then plundered the town. The inhabitants of Mayo
were daily expecting these insurrectionists to pay them a visit :
in fact, when they first saw our brig and flag, they were appre-
hensive that we had hoisted false colours, and that we were from
St. Jago. Finding, however, that we were true Britons, the
governor immediately chartered our vessel to the Gambia, with
despatches to our governor for assistance, in case of an attack
made upon them. We therefore only remained at Mayo
twenty-four hours, when Ave were again under weigh for the
Gambia.
During our short stay at Mayo, I visited the Catholic church,
Avhich stands upon an elevated site of ground at the north side
of the town. It is unproportionably built, being about sixty-
five feet in length, and about twenty feet wide. It Avas under-
going repairs, but at noon-day had a burning lamp. I saw the
priest, so called, avIio was a black man, dressed exceedingly
shabby, Avho appeared almost as ignorant on the subject of
practical Christianity as the stones of which his church was
built. The toAvn is small, irregularly built, and the houses very
meagre, excepting the governor's, and one or tAvo others; and
these not half so respectable as the store-house at the Gambia.
THE GAMBIA AND SIERHA-LEONE. 375
The manners and habits of these Portuguese were to me filthy in
the extreme; one room answering for bed-chamber, sitting-
room, and dining-room. The fort was in a shattered condition,
with very few guns, some of which were of no use whatever ;
and the few soldiers who were on the island appeared to be
under a very loose kind of discipline : so that, though nature
has tolerably well fortified this little island, it being from two to
three hundred feet above the level of the sea, and withal very
rocky, yet a small force would soon succeed in taking it. Of
this the inhabitants seem sensible ; for many of them, we were
told, have their money and other valuable articles either buried
or packed up, so that they may start into the interior at the
approach of a foe.
We arrived at St. Mary's on the evening of the 28th, thank-
ful to God for his preserving care over us, though little or
nothing benefited by the voyage, having been absent only one
week.
April 17th, Good -Friday. — We had service morning and
evening, and both times upwards of one hundred and fifcy were
obliged to stand without. Most of the congregation were
dressed in black. Mr. Wilkinson preached in the morning,
and I in the evening. The presence of the Lord was with us.
Easter-Monday. — Yesterday was to me, and I hope to many,
a good day. In the morning I preached from, " He is not
here : for he is risen, as he said. Come, see the place where
the Lord lay." (Matt, xxviii. 6.) In the afternoon I preached
at Melville, on, " Jesus saith unto her, Woman, why weepest
thou?" &c. (John XX. 15.) Many could not get in. I after-
wards received several on trial.
29th. — My colleague and myself have to-day been to Ber-
wick-Town, accompanied by the governor and the engineer.
His Excellency has granted to the mission two lots of land in
an excellent situation, which were measured and marked off.
May 4th. — I have to-day drawn up a memorial to the
governor, on behalf of six of the members of the society, who
are slaves. They have long had their freedom promised to
them, but it has never been granted. They have made several
applications to be allowed to purchase it ; but in this also they
have failed. At their request, therefore, I have interceded on
their behalf.
6th. — My illness has settled into dysentery. Yesterday and
to-day I was very ill ; but my soul is in a happy frame.
Sunday, 10th. — Mr. Wilkinson not returning from Fort
'6
AVESTERN COAST OT AFRICA.
Bullen in time for the eveniug service, I preached, though very
unwell.
Sunday, 17th. — Another idle sabbath. But it is the Lord.
He can bring low, and as quickly raise up again. My disease,
however, has assumed the chronic form ; so that it is now calo-
mel, calomel, calomel ! Time and patience, however, with God's
blessing, will, ere long, I hope, find me restored.
25th. — Ten days ago I wrote to the committee at consider-
able length, on several subjects connected with the mission :
one of these was the propriety of my remaining another year,
though the usual time allotted to the brethren on this sickly
coast has already more than expired ; but for several reasons I
was exceedingly anxious to remain some time longer, and wrote
thus : " I cannot as yet see my way open to return ; and I think
the departure out of the missionary field ought to be as plain
and clear as the path tliat led me into it." I therefore requested
to be re-appointed at the ensuing Conference; but stated
that, in case of a complete failure of health during the rains, I
should feel it right to embrace the first opportunity of having
an immediate change ; and, in that case, I would gladly return
here again. The necessity for this has already appeared in my
own health, but more especially in the continued and increased
illness of my dear wife, who, to all appearance, cannot stand up
against another sickly season, as she continues so weak and
debilitated even now, and is suftering severely : in fact, she has
never recovered from the effects of the last season. I have
therefore been compelled to write to-day again, stating that as
soon as the chapel is finished, I shall feel it my duty to return
for a short time.
28th. — Yesterda}' we had an eclipse of the sun. I am to-day
better, though far from being Avell; and have resolved to take
no more calomel. Most of the day I have been in the new
chapel, fixing the lamp- chains, giving directions for the
pews, &c.
June 2d. — During the past night I have suffered more
from sickness than I ever did before, with violent cramp
in my limbs, which continued till five o'clock this morning. I
am therefore to-day confined to bed, and am thankful to m}'-
heavenly Father that the sickness and pain have abated. Never
shall I forget the past night : it may well be said that, after
severe fatigue or pain, rest is sweet. I never realized this so
fully as to-day ; and I thank God I have a good hope of that
sweet, that heavenly and eternal, " rest which remains for the
people ()[ God," Avhcre
THE GAMBIA AND SIERRA-LEONE. 377
" Infinite day excludes the night,
And pleasures banish pain."
Sunday, 7th. — I was sufficiently recovered to go to Barra-
Pointj where I preached. In the evening I addressed the
people here.
July 4th. — I have been much engaged of late with the
new chapel; more especially this week. I have had most
of my meals there, and have had the carpenters at work almost
night and day. To-morrow it is to be dedicated to the service
and worship of the most high God. May it be a good day !
Sunday, 5th. — This morning, long before the time of service
arrived, crowds of people assembled round the chapel door ; and
at half-past ten it was crammed quite full, and scores, if not
hundreds, had to stand without. Many of the Europeans and
persons of colour were present. I preached in the forenoon,
and Mr. Wilkinson in the evening. The collections amounted
to £2S currency ; and the Divine Presence was graciously felt,
I am truly thankful that I have been spared to see completed
so comfortable and respectable a place of worship. May it be
the birth-place for many hundreds of souls !
28th. — Expecting to sail in a day or two, I this evening
preached from 2 Cor. xiii. 11. I had been unwell all night and
during the day with fever; but it being announced that I
should preach, if at all able, and feeling somewhat better just
before the bell began to ring for divine service, I rose, and pre-
pared for the pulpit. Many wept, and some cried aloud. This
dear people have for some days past shown their real affection
for us in bringing us, as presents, ducks, fowls, &c., each pre-
sent being accompanied with a prayer to God for our safety on
the voyage, a speedy restoration to health, a happy meeting
Avith our friends, and a strong hope that we shall come back
again. Two days after this we bade them adieu, and sailed for
our native country ; and I fulfilled the promise I had made to
them of returning ; but as some further particulars of our
departure from the Gambia, with my speedy return, and the
reasons for so doing, will be found in a subsequent page, I shall
close this chapter, and proceed, in the next, to the origin and
commencement of the mission at Cape-Coast-Castle.
CHAPTER XIX.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1835—1837.)
The Discovery of the Coast of Guinea — Situation and Description of Cape-Coast—
Europeans — Native Population — Prospect of the Castle, &c., from the Sea —
Trade — Origin and Commencement of the Mission — Death of the Rev. Joseph
R. Dunwell — The Committee " perplexed, but not disheartened " — Resolved to
send two Missionaries — State of the Mission at Sierra-Leone — Mr. Sanders
sails for that Station — The Author and Mr. MacBrair embark for the Gambia
— The Latter sent as a Translator of the Scriptures — Our Arrival and Recep-
tion— Communication from the xVuthor — Mr. MacBrair proceeds to his Sta-
tion at Macarthy's Island— Opposition to the Mission — Extracts from Mr.
MacBrair's Journal — Outrage on the Mission at Macarthy's Island — The
Assistant's House demolished by a lawless Gang — The Author requested to go
thither with all Speed — Mr. MacBrair returns to St. Mary's — Finally sails for
England — The Writer now at Macarthy's Island — -Extracts from his unpub-
lished Journal — The rainy Season— Personal Affliction — Is appointed to
Macarthy's Island — Goes down to St. Mary's to settle his Accounts with that
Station — The Anival of Mr. and Mrs. "Wrigley at Cape-Coast — And of Mr.
and Mrs. Patterson at Sierra-Leone — The Author retm-ns to Macaiihy's Island
■ — Close of the Year — Statistics of the Mission at each Station.
The coast of Guinea, including the Ivoiy, Gold, and Slave
Coast, was discovered and explored by the Portuguese about the
latter end of the fifteenth century; soon after Avhich several
European forts were erected in various parts. We have in a
preceding chapter given some account of these forts, with a
brief description of the native tribes, and the sanguinary and
war-like character of the Ashantees, as also of the awful and
degraded superstition of the iidiabitants of that and other
neighbouring kingdoms.
Cape-Coast-Castle, which has long been the chief British
establishment in this part of Africa, is situated in 5° 6' north
latitude, and 1° 10' west longitude. The fort stands upon a
rock about twenty feet above the level of the sea, and has appro-
priate accommodation and extensive magazines. Behind the
castle is the town of Cape-Coast, which contains some comfort-
able houses, and has a square or parade in front of the castle-gate.
The resident European merchants are twelve, and the native
population is about five thousand. There are four magistrates,
besides the president of council. The number of stone houses
belonging to the Europeans, or natives connected with them, is
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 379
about eighteen, and tliey are supposed to be worth from ii 1,000
to £2,000 sterling each. The natives live in very comfortable
*' swish " houses, made of mud, Avhich become hard and dura-
ble, and last so long as the roof resists the rains.*
The castle is an irregular figure of four sides, with four bas-
tions at each angle ; the whole mounting about eighty pieces of
cannon. Two-thirds of the walls of the fortress are washed by
the heavy sea which invariably runs along this line of coast, and
it is well protected on the land side. Within the castle is an
extensive hne of spacious buildings, three stories high, running
north and south, dividing the fort into nearly two equal parts,
and containing the government-house, &c. A nearly similar
structure runs east, forming a triangular space of considerable
extent.
The cape, on which the castle stands, is an angular promon-
tory, bounded by the sea on the south and east sides. It was
originally settled by the Portuguese; but the Dutch dispos-
sessed them in a few years, and took great pains to strengthen
the fortifications. Admiral Holmes captured it, and demolished
the citadel, in 1661 ; since which time it has remained in the
possession of Great Britain, having been confirmed by the
treaty of Breda. When the Dutch admiral, De Buyter,
destroyed all the English factories along the coast in 1665, this
place withstood his utmost endeavours, although he attacked
it with thirteen men-of-war. The Company, who obtained a
charter in 1673, subsequently added greatly to its strength by
building some bastions, though the fort is considered to be too
near the town, and commanded by some of the houses. f
It appears from Smollett's " History of England,^' that the
French, in 1757, made an attempt to capture Cape-Coast-Castle,
but signally failed ; for though the squadron consisted of two
ships of the line, and a large frigate, the governor, Mr. Bell, on
hearing of the approach of these vessels, under the command
of M. de Kersin, though ill-prepared for them in the way
of ammunition, or soldiers to work the "few crazy guns,''
immediately provided gunpowder and about fifty Europeans
from some vessels on the coast, mounted a few spare cannon
upon a temporary battery, and with twelve hundred armed
Negroes, under the command of their chief, received the French
squadron, and poured such a steady and well-directed fire for
two hours into M. Kersin's fleet, that the latter thought it most
* Dr. Madden's Report, in the Appendix to the " Report of the Select Com-
mittee of the House of Commons, on the West Coast of Africa, in 1842."
t Martin's " British Colonies," vol. iv. p. 565.
380 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
prudent to make sail for the West Indies, without inflicting any
great damage on the castle.*
The troops are commanded by a European. They are natives
of the place, enlisted by the colonial authorities, are well
behaved, and for order and discipline are said to be equal to any
of our West-Indian regiments. During the visit of the late Niger
Expedition to this place in 1841, the fort only mounted about
twenty-four guns. Mr. Simpson, one of the civilians who
accompanied that expedition, speaks thus of the prospect of
Cape-Coast-Castle, as they approached it from the sea : —
The view, in our vessel's track to this place, was of the most highly picturesque
description, uniting in it the sublime as well as the beautiful. The surf was break-
ing impetuously upon the beach and the base of the fort, in tremendous waves
upon waves. Cape-Coast-Castle fort, occupying a considerable surface, and being
entirely white, reflected the splendour of a setting sun. Nature thus, in her stern
and beautiful aspects, spoke to the hearts of us voyagers, with perils impending
over us, and far separated from the scenes of our more peaceful days, in language
which I could have more easily expressed, had it been less deep and touching. I
felt myself for a moment but a speck in a great creation or system of things, for
whom it was a delusion to think the Almighty could care. But it was only for a
moment I could thus think, and do dishonour to the majesty of Him whose
universal parentage lasts throughout the duration of the creatures He has made,
exhausting not His love, wearying not His power, in whose ignorance even a
sparrow falls not to the ground.
Behind the castle, on rising ground, a small fort is erected, hanng a telegraph
on its summit ; and at night the castle and the fort exhibited a strong light, — a
very beautiful object of view.
A considerable trade is carried on at this place, which is said
to have increased of late years. The principal commodities
imported into England from this part of the coast, are gold-
dust, ivory, palm-oil, dye-woods, and, latterly, ground-nuts,
with some minor articles of trade. There are several other
British forts and settlements in the immediate vicinity, and
at some distance from Cape-Coast-Castle; where, as well as in
other places, we have now missions established, which will be
noticed in due course.
The Wesleyan mission at the Gold-Coast was undertaken
at the close of the year 1834, and actually commenced in
1835. The Rev. Joseph R. Dunwell arrived at Cape-Coast-
Castle early in the month of January of that year, when he met
with a hearty welcome from the governor and authorities, and a
little band of the natives whom God had prepared for the recep-
tion of his holy word. The missions on the Gold-Coast have
now assumed so important a character, and the particulars con-
* Martin's " British Colonies," vol. iv. p. 566.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIEK RA.-LEONE. 381
nected with their origin and formation are so interesting, that I
shall here transcribe, from Dr. Beecham's admirable work on
"Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," the circumstances which led
to the commeuceinent of this good work : —
It was in the autumn of the year 1834 (writes Dr. Beecham)that the committee
of the Wesleyan iMissionary Society were induced to send a missionary on a visit of
observation to the Gold-Coast. A few native youths, who had learned to read the
English translation of the Bible in the excellent Government-school at Cape-Coast
Castle, became so interested by the contents of the sacred volume, that they agreed
to meet at regular times for the purpose of reading it together, and of inquiring
carefully into the nature and claims of the Christian religion. The name which
this association assumed was that of " A Meeting or Society for Promoting Christian
Knowledge;" and they adopted for their guidance the following rule, which is
copied literally from the Minutes of their proceedings : " That, as the word of God
is the best rule a Christian ought to observe, it is herein avoided framing other
ndes to enforce good conduct ; but that the scriptures must be carefully studied,
through which, by the help of the Holy Spirit and faith in Christ Jesus, our minds
will be enlightened, and find the way to eternal salvation."
The formation of this most interesting society or meeting took place on the 1st
of October, 1831 ; and in the year 1833, Mr. William De Graft, one of the first
who began to read the scriptures privately in the spirit of prayer and inquiry,
received at Dix Cove, where he was then residing, a request from his young friends
at Cape-Coast Town that he would engage some suitable person, who might be
proceeding to England, to purchase for their use a number of copies of the New
Testament. Shortly after, the late excellent Captain Potter, master of a merchant-
vessel from the port of Bristol, arrived at Dix Cove ; to whom William De Graft
applied as one likely to execute with promptness and care the commission for the
purchase of the scriptures. lie was surprised at receiving such an application from
a native young man, and became so greatly interested by the information which
his questions elicited, that he was led to ask whether the instructions of a mis-
sionary would not be highly appreciated by those native inquirers ^fter the true
religion. De Graft replied in the affirmative, but appeared doubtful whether so
high a privilege was attainable. Captain Potter next proceeded to Cape-Coast,
where he saw the members of the meeting ; and, having consulted President
Maclean, he returned to England, resolved to exert himself, in order that, on his
next voyage, he might, together with copies of the scriptures, take out a Christian
minister who should " preach the word" to those who were akeady united in
seeking " the way to eternal salvation," and proclaim the gospel of Christ to other
portions of the Heathenish native population of the Gold-Coast.
Immediately after his arrival at Bristol, Captain Potter communicated to the
Wesleyan Missionary Committee in London his views as to the promising opening
for missionary exertion in that part of Africa, and generously offered to take a
missionary with him on his next voyage, who might make personal observation
and inquiry upon the spot ; and, should he conclude that the prospect was not
such as to warrant his continuance for the purpose of commencing a mission.
Captain Potter engaged that he would bring him back to England without any
expense to the Missionary Society. This noble offer met with acceptance on the
part of the Missionary Committee ; and the Rev. Joseph Dunwell was selected for
tlie interesting service.
This devoted missionary embarked with Captain Potter at Bristol, on the 17th
382 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
of October, 1834. The entries in his private journal sufficiently indicate the views?
with which he entered upou his arduous undertaking. Impressed with the respon-
sibility which attached to him, and fearing lest the important mission might fail
through his incapacity, he studied daily, on his voyage, the lives of eminent
missionaries, especially those of Brainerd and Martyn, in order that he might catch
a larger measure of their spirit, and propose to himself as an example the zeal and
self-denial by which they were characterized. On the 6th of December the ship
came within sight of land near Cape Palmas ; and a few extracts from the journal
of Mr. Dunwell, illustrative of the character and manners of the natives, at the
several places where they touched, as well as of bis own feelings while contem-
plating their moral state, will be read with interest : — -
" December 7th, 1834. — At daylight we were seen by the natives ; and in half
an hour upwards of fifty men were on deck, the first of whom recognised Captain
Potter, and appeared glad to see him. I observed immediately that they were
most rapacious beggars. We shortly weighed anchor, it being Sunday, in order to
secure greater quietness and tranquillity ; but although we had a good breeze, a
great number of canoes came off to us in the course of the day. These people are
the most athletic and well-proportioned men I ever saw, and have most animated
countenances. They seem exceedingly fond of Englishmen, and say they woidd be
glad if I would stay and hve with them, as there is no 'white man' at Sesters,
Garraway, or Cape Palmas ; all which places we passed to-day. The inhabitants
appear numerous ; but Christ has not been named among them. What Christian
can witness their numbers, and their degradation, without deep feeling ? I noticed
that nearly all we saw could speak broken English. The country appears almost
like a paradise, though everything springs spontaneously. At dusk we anchored
off Cape-Town, (an American settlement,) which 1 intend to visit to-morrow, God-
willing.
" Monday, 8th. — At day-break I saw many canoes coming off. Numbers of
people were soon upon deck, with rice, fowls, and ivory, which they exchanged for
articles of English manufacture. About nine o'clock, the king, whose name is
Freeman, came, with several attendants. He was dressed in a coat and trowsers of
coarse blue cloth, and wore a three-cornered hat, with a red cockade. A coloured
silk umbrella covered him from the rays of the sun. Upon entering the cabin, his
attendants presented the treaty lately made between the Americans and himself,
respecting the colony, (which is about twenty miles square,) in behalf of the Colo-
nization Society. Having received a note from Dr. Hall, the governor, Captain
Potter accompanied me on shore, and we were politely received by the doctor and
his secretary, Mr. Thompson.
" While I was there, I was introduced to a man who told me that he was a
member of the Wesleyan-Methodist Society, and that there are sixteen persons who
meet together in Christian fellowship on a Sunday morning. The governor expects
a missionary shortly. He expressed a strong wish that our committee should send
one; indeed, 1 think there is a good opening for missionary labour, as there is
already a Christian society which stands in need of a shepherd, and there is a great
number of the aborigines of the country in the town adjoining the settlement.
" Before we returned on board, we visited the king at his hut, where chairs
were placed for us, and we were welcomed with much cordiality. No sooner were
we seated, than a great number of natives assembled round us, in a state of perfect
nudity ; and when we took our departure for the boat, we were escorted by scores
of them to the shore. Mr. Thompson, the governor's secretary, told me that the
people were astonished at me, and said among themselves, that 1 was a ' god-man,'
come to talk ' great palaver.'
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 383
*' Tuesday, December 9th.^ — To-day we have been visited by three kings, who
all appear to be great men in their way. They have many under their control.
Kavally seems to be next in importance to Cape Palmas. The news of a ' god-
man * (as they term me) having come, appears to have gone like lightning down
the coast. Cape-Coast seems to be much envied, as these people also desire to
have a missionary. "We asked one of their chiefs last night if he would wish me
to come and live with him ; and, to express his meaning, he laid himself down, and
extended his arms at full length, and said, ' You be my father, my brother.' Several
chiefs have brought their sons to me, and wished me to take them, and teach them
' sensen.'
" One native came to know when Christmas was, and why we called it so.
When I told him, he seemed utterly astonished, and said, ' That be great palaver
indeed;' and, striking his head, he added, 'Will keep that there good sensen.'
Another came, and wrote on a slate, ' You come.' Upon examination, I found he
could write his name, and read the alphabet ; another could read words of one and
two syllables. The quickness with which they learn is amazing. How great the
harvest ! — and the labourers, not few, but really none !
" I cannot doubt : I do believe that I am in the way of Providence, in coming
with this vessel. If I Uve, I shall have an opportunity of visiting several hundreds
of miles of this coast ; and what I have seen of it I admire, and should not mind
settling anywhere.
" December 1 1th. — When I arose in the morning, I foimd that we were opposite
the land of Drewin. The country still assumes the same appearance : but, to my
surprise, I learned that few ships touch here, as the people are savage, and speak
another language. Not many years ago. Captain Thomas Feebin, of the ship
' Union,' from Bristol, stopped here for the purposes of trade ; but, for some reason
or other, the natives murdered the captain and the whole of the crew. They ran-
sacked and plundered the vessel ; and shortly after. Captain Potter passed, and
caught some of the natives on the wreck ; but he was obliged to abandon it, in
order to save his own life, and those of his crew. In the evening, as we passed
along, we came in sight of a village named Kutro. Here the natives kindled a fire
on the beach, as a signal for us to anchor ; but as we did not stop, two canoes
came off, with some plantains, bananas, and fowls, which we bought. These
natives had a very difterent appearance from those we saw last, having nothing
round their waists but a mere strap of cloth, instead of the Manchester cloths I
observed round the others ; and they were afraid to come on deck, and seemed
distrustfid of all of us in the extreme.
" Friday, 12th. — Early this morning, we were opposite Pikanani Lahii, or Long-
Jack's Place. Here the inhabitants appear exceedingly ignorant of religion or
letters. If possible, they are worse beggars than I have seen before, as nothing
seems to satisfy them. About one o'clock we arrived at Cape Lahu, and anchored.
As usual, we had the decks soon filled with natives ; among these were kings, chiefs,
and counsellors, who all appeared exceedingly kind and familiar. They are athletic
and well-proportioned ; and their costume is nothing but a belt round their waist.
Some wear their hair in large tufts, others curled, plaited, and braided.
" Saturday, Decemljer 13th. — At five o'clock this morning, or soon after, I could
perceive the canoes making to the vessel. In a short time the decks were covered
from end to end. To-day I eml)raced the opportunity of making some inquiries
about this people and the place, as it is acknowledged to be one of great import-
ance. The town appears to be divided into two districts, governed by two kings,
namely, Peter and Antonio, both of whom I saw. Of the extent of these places I
cannot speak positively ; but the number of inhabitants certainly amounts to many
384 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
thousands. The people appear to be possessed of gold ; and I saw vast quantities
of ivory. The country is low, but very fertile and pleasant, producing spon-
taneously every kind of vegetation necessary for its inhabitants. 1 very much
wished to \isit this people in their town, as they gave me several pressing invita-
tions. King Peter told me he would build me a house, if I would go ; and one of
his sons made me a present of half an ackie of gold, patted me on the face, and
said, ' Me like you face ; black man do.' My friend, Captain Potter, told me, that
if they got me there, most likely they would keep me several days, till they had all
seen me. I felt a longing desire for the salvation of these people, and could have
freely stayed with them, and given myself up into their hands, and spent my
strength and life amongst them, for the glory of God.
" December 15th. — I arose early this morning, and found we were opposite
Pikanani Bassam. Here is a large population, exceedingly ignorant, and, at this
time, engaged in war with W'hat are called the Bush-men. This is also the case
with two large towns which we have passed, namely. Jack Lahii, and Jack Jaques ;
so that we considered it best not to call here. In the evening we came to anchor
at Grand Bassam, one of the prettiest-looking places I ever saw. The town stands
about six miles up a noble river of the same name. It is a place of considerable
importance. Old Kwosia, the king, is the greatest man we have seen. He pos-
sesses much wealth, and has a great number of wives. His influence is such, that
nothing is done without his consent and approbation. We had not been here an
hour, before he came on board. I was struck with his appearance ; for although
he is low in stature, there is something noble and dignified in his person. He is a
complete man of business, and carries a large box of gold at his side, of no little
value ; yet he wears a mean cloth round his waist, and assists occasionally in row-
ing his canoe. If we have an opportunity of visiting his town, it is our intention
so to do ; and I believe I shall be the first Christian missionary that ever set foot
in this place.
" December 16th. — About nine o'clock this morning, the king sent messengers
to say that he could not visit us for ten days, as one of his wives, and a brother,
had died last night. Upon inquiry, the messengers told us that they had been
bewitched, and that two persons would be sacrificed, as vfcll as a thousand guns
fired at the same time.
"December 17th.— The roar of the guns, fired on account of the death of the
king's wife, although at seven miles' distance, was like that of distant thunder. In
the evening we took the boat, in order to ascertain whether we could land on the
beach ; but as we found that it was nearly perpendicular, and the swell very great,
we did not attempt it ; so I fear that our intended visit to Grand Bassam will be
frustrated.
" December 20th. — Another day has been on my part wholly unemployed. I
cannot read for the continual noise on deck, much less think closely. The Africans
are indeed a noisy jjcople ; but this is not all : they are ignorant in the extreme.
To-day, while conversing with one of them, I introduced religion ; but, alas ! he
was as ignorant as a brute ; he neither knew who made him, nor any thing else.
All I could get from him was, ' Great devil talk angry : ' signifying, that when it
thundered, the devil was angry.
" December 23d. — This day we got under weigh, and came to a poor, small town,
called Half Assinee. This place seems to have sprung up from one of the same
name, destroyed by the king of Apollonia ; who is a dreadful tyrant, carrying
terror and destruction wherever he comes. Although the people at this place are
poor in comparison with some of their neighbours, yet they are industrious. One
young man who came on board, and calls himself ' Tom Coffee,' says he has been
THE GOLD-COASr^ GA.MBIA, AND SfKRK A-LEOXE. 38")
at Liverpool, and went to clmrcli. He ai)peareJ nuicli surprised at what lie saw
and heard."
Leaving this place, they called at Dix Cove and Connnenda, both which towns
have since become mission-stations ; and on the 29th of December the vessel
anchored off the Dutch fort of Elmiua. At this place, within sight of Cape-Coast
Castle, Mr. Dunwell wrote in his journal as follows : " What my feelings have been
this day, I cannot describe. The place of my future residence is in view : it may
prove the spot where I shall finish my earthly existence ; and there the name of
Jesus Christ may be honoured or dishonoured by me. But, in the strength of
grace, I trust that, whether my days may be many or soon numbered, they will be
spent in the service of God. All things appear to me to sink into nothingness,
compared with the great work of my Divine Lord and Master."
While at anchor off Elmina, Mr. Dunwell wrote a letter to President Maclean, at
Cape-Coast Castle, respectfully informing him of his arrival on the coast, and
stating the objects contemplated by the Wesleyan Missionary Committee, in sending
him as a missionary to that part of Africa. On his arrival, a day or two afterwards,
at Cape-Coast Castle, he met with a kind reception from the president, who invited
him to remain at the castle until he could provide himself with a suitable residence ;
and expressed his opinion, that there was a very favourable opening among the
natives for missionary exertions.*
Mr. Dunwell immediately commenced liis labours among the
people, who received him with devout gratitude ; and the Lord
blessed him with considerable success. A society of from forty
to fifty members on trial was speedily formed ; and the aspects
of the new mission were of the most cheering character. An
interesting letter from this devoted missionary, dated Cape-
Coast, April 1st, 1835, was published in the "Wesleyan Mis-
sionary Notices/^ in the month of October of the same year.
This letter contained extracts from his journal, from which it
appears he had visited several places in the neighbourhood of
his station, among which was Annamaboo, where he was well
received, and kindly entertained at the house of Mr. Barnes, a
respectable merchant of that place. He also spoke of other
places which he was anxious to visit, where the doors were wide
open to receive the message of salvation. The mission thus
early assumed a most promising appearance. The large room in
which public service had been held at Cape-Coast Town proved
too small, and it was in contemplation to erect, as soon as possi-
ble, a suitable chapel. But, in the midst of the anticipations
which this hopeful state of things inspired, Mr. Dunwell was
attacked by fever, under which he sank in a few days ; and left
the societies, which he had been instrumental in forming, as
sheep without a shepherd. This afflictive dispensation produced
the deepest feeling among all who took any interest in the mis-
sion. On the following morning a native wrote, " Sad news in
* Dr. Beecham's " Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," pp. 259 — 272.
C C
386 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
the town ! The shepherd is away ! The poor missionary is
reported dead ! "
Joseph R. Dun well, the first Wesleyan missionary on the
Gold- Coast, was a young man of deep piety, amiable manners,
and consistent conduct. In him were manifested, in an eminent
degree, zeal for the cause of Christ, and a yearning pity for the
souls of the Heathen. In a letter, addressed to a friend, which
was found in his room after his decease, he expressed his readi-
ness to lay down his life in Africa; and remarked, that it
grieved him most of all, that his utmost exertions were so inade-
quate to meet the spiritual wants of the multitudes to whom he
had access. The last entries in his own journal, and the notices
furnished by Mr. Joseph Smith, the native master of the school
at the Castle, show with what feelings this useful missionary
met his death, far from his father's home, uncheered by the pre-
sence of mother, or sister, or other relative, and attended only
by those to whom his generous qualities had endeared him in
the land of strangers. On Sunday, the 14th of June, having
mentioned that he had preached twice, although unwell, he
added, " After the evening service I had a most violent head-
ache, with some fever and sickness, which continued till I
retired to rest. There appeared every symptom of what is
called the ' seasoning,' which so frequently proves fatal : still I
cannot describe the peace of mind I feel. I feel that I am a
most worthless sinner, and have no hope, no plea, but, ' Jesus
died for me.'" The day after, it appears, he used his pen for
the last time, and Avrote, " I passed an exceedingly restless
night, having great pain of body ; so that I rested very little.
Yet, O the composure of mind ! I believe I can say, ' In life or
in death, I am the Lord's.'" On the 24th he sent for Mr.
Smith, who found him much worse than he expected: they
prayed together, and Mr. Dunwell repeated the fourth verse of
the twenty-third psalm : " Though I walk through the valley of
the shadow of death, I will fear no evil : for Thou art with
me ; Thy rod and Thy staff they comfort me." On Mr. Smith
leaving to attend the school, he said to him, with tears, "Brother
Smith, we have passed many agreeable evenings in conversing
on instructive subjects ; but I have to tell you I shall soon be
absent from you, and be present with the Lord. I am going
home, and shall be no more seen ; but watch over the flock, and
strengthen them in the Lord when I am gone." He expired
between eight and nine o'clock in the evening of June 24th,
1835, and was interred the following afternoon. Great num-
bers of the natives, with most of the European gentlemen,
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 387
attended his funeral ; and the governor having read the funeral
service, the members of the society then sang that beautiful and
appropriate hymn, —
" Hark ! a voice divides the sky !
Happy are the faithful dead ! " &c.
Thus lived and thus died the Rev. Joseph R. Dunwell. His
sun went down almost as soon as it began to shine; yet no
words of disappointment or regret escaped his lips, on account
of his liaving so early sacrificed his life in the missionary enter-
prise ; but a quenchless zeal for the cause of his Divine Master
sustained him to the last ; and all the solicitude he manifested
was for the infant church formed by his instrumentality.
The loss of Mr. Dunwell was severely felt by the society, and
deeply regretted by all who knew him, both at home and abroad.
The day after the funeral, the bereaved society met, to take into
consideration the circumstances in which they were placed by
the afflictive dispensation which had overtaken them. The
result was, they resolved to continue together until further
assistance arrived; saying, "Though the missionary is dead,
God lives;" and having " commended one another in prayer to
God, they separated at ten o^clock." The committee at home,
in announcing Mr. DunwelFs death, stated, "We are painfully
affected by this dispensation, but not disheartened; 'cast down,
but not destroyed.^ Our great Master ' buries his workmen,
but carries on his work.' To Western Africa the people of
England owe a debt, which must be paid at all hazards ; and
God w ill 3^et bless our persevering efforts to discharge, in some
measure, the solemn obligations of humanity and religion."
The society at Cape-Coast having presented a request (through
Messrs. Jackson and Barr, two gentlemen on the Coast, who
had kindly undertaken the administration of ]Mr. Dunwell's
affairs) to the Wesleyan Missionary Committee, for another
missionary, "the committee, unable to reconcile to their con-
viction of duty the abandonment of a work wdiich had been so
auspiciously begun, resolved to more than meet the application,
by sending two missionaries, on the principle that the interests
of a mission in such a climate as that of Western Africa ought
not to be left to the care of only one individual. It was further
agreed, that the two missionaries to be sent should be married
men, in order that their wives might attend to the improvement
of the native females." *
* Dr. Beecham's " Ashantee and the Gold-Coast," p. 278.
2 c 2
388
WKSTERX COAST Or ATRTCA.
The cominuuication of the intentions of the committee was
received Avith unbounded satisfaction by the members at Cape-
Coast, who continued to hold their religious meetings with
regularity, and were exerting themselves to raise subscriptions
for the erection of a suitable chapel. As soon as practicable,
Mr. and ]Mrs. Wrigley were sent ; and they were soon followed
by Mr. and Mrs. Harrop. In due course, further particulars of
this mission will be given ; but, in the mean time, we return to
the other stations.
At Sierra-Leone, ]Messrs. Maer and Crosby were united in
effort and in heart, and the God of missions was with them
during this Avhole year. The table inserted in ]\Ir. Maer's
quarterly report at that time, will show that the converted
Negroes were not generally backward in supporting, according
to their limited means, the cause of God and his gospel. The
following is an extract from Mr. Maer's communication, dated
" Free-Towu, July 23d, 1835 :"—
It affords me much satisfaction to be able to state, that the Lord has been with
us, and made us instrumental of good diu-iug the past quarter. Our society is on
the increase. We have now six hundred and fifty-two members, and three huudred
and forty-two on trial; making nine hundred and ninety-four under class-iustruction.
There has also been a corresponding increase in the contributions returned from
the classes. At the close of the quarter, ending in March, I stated that the returns
exceeded those of any preceding quarter, by £5 ; and I have now to state, that the
returns for the quarter, ending June 30th, exceed those of March by £b. 12*. -id.,
being dE38. 14«. 7d., which averages li^d. per member. But, what is still more
delightful, many have of late obtained the pardouing mercy of God. From ilarch
31st to June 30th one hundred and thirty persons have professed to receive the
knowledge of salvation by the remission of sins. Among this number there are
many young persons belonging to om- schools in Free-Town and Portuguese-Town.
The present state of the society here is as follows : —
Members
Places.
Free-Town.
Maroon chapel 80
Bathurst-street chapel 102
l-benezer chapel .... 30
Portuguese-Town 108
Congo-Town 56
New-Town, West 141
Soidiers'-Town 46
Wellington and New-
lands 8.5
Wilberforce 3
Lumley 1
1
Total
Cash re-
Average
, On
in
turned this
per
trial.
class.
quarter.
Jlember.
£. $. d.
d.
22
102
5 9 9
W\
40
142
5 11 9
13
11
41
2 5 5
18
46
154
6 19 0
15J ;
15
71
2 8 2
lOi
59
200
8 7 11
14i
38
84
4 13 3
24i
83
168
2 17 5
i
8 1
18
21
0 1 11
1
10
342
11
994
0 0 0
38 14 7
Remarks.
Congregation larger.
Here is some increase.
Appearances very flattering.
Rising a little.
A little increase.
A great increase.
Many persons converted here this
quarter.
The chapel enlarged, and the so-
ciety improving.
Prospects brightening.
Here much good would, I believe,
be done but for the distance.
V,'e have completed and opened the new Ebenezer chapel, which is properly set-
tled on the Wesleyan plan. The piece of ground on wiiich it is built, granted to
THE GOLD-COAST, G.\.\1I5IA, AND ^^ I ICilR A-LEDM^ JiSO
US by the Colonial Government for that jjurpose, contains two thousand one hun-
dred and eighty-four square yards. It is well attended ; and there is a prospect of
the society increashig in this place. Many have lately joined the society there,
several of whom have found peace with God. We have begun to enlarge the new
chapel in New-Town West, by lengthening it to sixty feet, but cannot finish it dur-
ing the rains. The congregation is very large. I am very sorry that our chapel in
Congo-Town is not yet completed. The walls are up, but the rains prevent the
workmen from proceedhig for the present ; and besides this, we are so embarrassed
that it will be impossible for us to complete the work without some assistance from
the funds of our Society, I think to the amount of £l(j or £18. The building is
now forty-one feet by twenty-six. The people meet for worship at present in an
unfinished dweUing-house.
Our schools are prospering. We have at present five hundred and forty-six boys,
and three hundred and eighty-four girls, making a total of nine hundred and thirty
children in our week-day schools ; besides which, we have about one hundred and
fifty in our Sunday-schools. We have also early morning schools for the monitors,
and for tlie most promising of the boys.*
A short time after this, the lease of the Maroon chapel to the
Wesleyan Missionary Society expired ; and as the missionaries
and trustees could not come to terms about its renewal, there
was no alternative but to give up the chapel to them. Mr.
Maer took for his text, one Sunday evening, "Behold, your
house is left unto you desolate." (Matt, xxiii. 38.) When he
had finished his sermon, he requested Mr. Crosby to pray, put
the Bible under his arm, walked out of the chapel, and never
Avent into it to preach again. The writer«of this fact, in the
Sierra- Leone " Watchman," some years after this, says, " Truly
their house of prayer has ever since been desolate, and at the
present time shows a lamentable scene of spiritual destitution.
Efforts have since been made to prove to them, that it would be
for their spiritual benefit to give up their place of worship to the
Wesleyan Missionary Society ; but there is one or two who love
the pre-eminence, and who will not consent to this ; and thus
they keep the people in a state of suffering from a famine of
the word of God." Some of the Maroons, however, obeyed the
Divine command : " Come out of her, my people, that ye be not
partakers of her sins, and that ye receive not of her plagues.^'
(Rev. xviii. 4.)
On the 16th of October, jSIr. W^. Sanders embarked for
Sierra-Leone ; and on the 12th of November, the writer, with
Mr. MacBrair, sailed for the Gambia. Mr. MacBrair was
appointed to Macarthy^s Island, with especial reference to the
translation of the scriptures into one or more of the native lan-
guages, for the direct benefit of the Foulahs, on whose behalf
* " Missionary Notices," vol. viu. p. 170.
390 AVESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
that mission was established. He received written instructions
upon the subject on the eve of our embarkation, a copy of which
Avas printed in the Annual Report for the following year. Hav-
ing passed some time as a missionary in Egypt and Malta, and
possessing a competent knowledge of Arabic, with other attain-
ments, he was a competent person for the important under-
taking ; and though weak and delicate in appearance, he pos-
sessed a good share of moral courage, and nobly responded to
the call of the committee, though but recently returned from
Northern Africa. After a somewhat tempestuous voyage, we
landed at St. Mary^s in the middle of December.
Mr. MacBrair, in his " Sketches of a Missionary's Travels,^'
which he published a few years afterwards, thus speaks of our
arrival : — " As our vessel dropped anchor in the roads of St.
Mary's, we saw a number of friends collecting upon the beach ;
who, having heard by the {)ilot-boat of our being on board, came
to receive us, and give us a cordial welcome to Africa. The
pious Negroes pressed round to shake hands with their minis-
ters, especially with brother Fox, whose return imparted no
small degree of satisfaction. Some of them could scarcely con-
tain their emotions, but stood a long time iii the house, gazing
upon their much-loved pastor ; and, during the whole of next
day, they were coming from all the country round about, to
inquire after his welfare. One poor Negro came in haste, say-
ing, 'Me hear in the bush' (a place for cutting timber, several
miles off, on the other side of the river) ' that you been come ;
and me run, run, run, and me neber (never) stop till me come
to look you.' I was therefore at once satisfied, that Negro
hearts are susceptible of the liveliest emotions of gratitude ; and
they thus appeared to me in very advantageous contrast with
the hard-hearted Egyptians."
The following communication, which appeared in the " Mis-
sionary Notices" a few months after this, will explain the cir-
cumstances of the writer's return, without any further remarks
from himself; from which it will appear that he had only been
in England about fifty days, before he was again on board the
vessel, and bound for Africa. The paragraph written by the
secretaries is included, not because of its complimentary terras
to himself, but in truth and justice to them. They neither
desired nor expected that I should return so soon, and under
such peculiar circumstances. I intended it, and on arriving in
England earnestly requested it.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 391
MISSIONS IN WESTERN AFRICA.
Our valuable and successful missionary, Mr. Fox, was some months ago com-
pelled, by the failure of Mrs. Fox's health, and the peril in which her life was
placed, to visit England. He felt, however, so strongly the necessitous circum-
stances of the mission at St. Mary's on the River Gambia, thus left with only one
Em-opean missionary, that he very soon, not merely consented, but nobly requested,
to return for a time to his beloved station and flock : though Mrs. Fox's continued
weakness made it impracticable that she should accompany him again to Africa.
The following extracts contain some interesting notices of Mr. Fox's two voyages,
and of the ardour and diligence which have marked the resumption of his self-
denying labours, as well as of the prospects of extended usefulness by which he and
his colleagues are encouraged among the Mandingoes of that vicinity.
River Gambia, St. Mary's. — Extractn from the Journal of the Rev. TV. Far,
from July 30th, 1835, to February Uth, 1836.
July 30th, 1835. — About one o'clock we went on board the brig " Dapper,"
accompanied by Mr. Grant and several other friends. Many of our members of
society and leaders followed us to the beach, and two of the local preachers went
with us in the mission-boat to the vessel, to whom I had again to say, " Finally,
brethren, farewell ; " though I hope it will not be absolutely final. I have promised
the society that I will come back, if at all possible ; and I have a strong impression
on my mind that my way will be made plain to do so. The emancipation of the
slaves on the island, the employment of the two additional native assistants pro-
posed to the committee, the erection of mission-premises at Berwick-Town, Fort
Bullen, and the commencement of a mission at Cape St. Mary's, or higher up the
river, are all subjects in which I am deeply interested.
31st. — -We were obliged to come to anchor last evening, but got under weigh
early this morning. The pilot is now leaving us, and we are bearing up to the
windward of the Cape de Verd Islands. Farewell to the isle of St. Mary's ! Mayest
thou abundantly prosper in a commercial, civil, and religious point of view ! My
pen cannot describe my feelings at leaving thee, and the dear people amongst whom
I have been labouring during the past two years. I have suffered much, and so
has my dear wife ; we have also left behind us a lovely babe, who was " subdued
by sickness in a day ; " and more than once have we both been on the margin of
the grave, and expected to " gather up our feet ;" but, by the good providence of
God, we have been preserved. The success with which it hath pleased Almighty
God to crown our efforts to do good, and that in so short a time, affords us pleas-
ing reflections, and will do so to our latest hours. The glory we would give to
God. Again I say, " Farewell ; " but not for ever !
Sunday, August 30th. — This morning we came to anchor at Fayal, one of the
Azores. The town is situated on the east side of the island, in a bay, and presents
a very imposing aspect, rising, in a semicircle, some hundred feet above the level of
the sea. Most of the island appears to be well cultivated. Here I went ashore with
the captain and some of the passengers. Finding a medical gentleman, I took him
on board to see Mrs. Fox ; he afterwards sent her some medicine, but is of opinion
that her native air alone will restore her. Here is a beautiful town and island, in a
salubrious cHmate, with a population of twenty-five thousand souls, many of them
respectable and intelligent ; but no Protestant minister, no missionaiy of the Cross !
Most of them appear to have embraced the absurdities and superstitions of Popery.
I visited the church this morning, and could not but wish that the tenor of their
392 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
lives and conduct might correspond with their apparent devotion. 0 when shall
"Ethiopia stretch out her hand unto God.^"
31st. — Having obtained some water and fresh provisions, we got under weigh
to-day about noon.
Sept. 3d. — During the past three days we have suffered from rough weather : the
waves found their way into our cabin and most of our berths ; we have, conse-
quently, had verv' little rest by nigbt or day.
4th. — This morning I again visited a man in the forecastle, who lias been sick
with fever and dysenteiy ever since we left the Gambia. While I was speaking to
him about his soul, and the love of God, the tears started in his eyes ; and I have a
hope that God will save him.
19th.- — Yesterday, about one o'clock, we landed at Dover, having been just fifty
days on our voyage. Grateful, indeed, we felt to the God of providence for having
conveyed us in safety across the treacherous deep. This morning, between six and
seven, we reached London.
Nov. 9th. — A day of pai-ting much dreaded, and never to be forgotten : this
morning, at six o'clock, I bade adieu to ray dear wife, affectionate mother, and
many other relations and friends. It was, indeed, an hour of trial ; my faith in
God, and love for my dear wife, were put to the test. The sweetest and dearest
of ties was, for a time, to be torn asunder ; and, with streaming eyes and a throb-
bing heart, I proceeded to Birmingham, and this evening reached London. My two
brothers having accompanied me to town, contributed, in some small degree, to
sweeten the bitter cup, and to beguile the dreariness of a twelve-hours' journey, on
a very cold and bleak day ; but were it not for something more cheering and
supporting which I derived from the unfailing " Spring of all my joys," I must have
given way to frail human nature, and said, " I cannot, I will not go." But He who
says " Go," is going with me, and has promised to be with me even to the end. I
feel thankful to God that my dear wife reached home in safety ; for her sutFerings,
since we left the Gambia, fully convince me, that had she remained there a little
longer, it would have been too late : — thus hath her life been preserved. The
voyage to England has considerably improved my own health, so that 1 shall be the
better prepared to endure, for a time, the fatigues and prejudicial effects of a West-
African climate. Although the sacrifice 1 make merits nothing, yet I feel as if I
had a peculiar and special claim upon the kind care and providence of God ; and
hope in a future world, if not in this, to realize the fulfilment of that delightful
promise, " And every one that hath forsaken houses, or brethren, or sisters, or
father, or mother, or wife, or children, or lands, for my name's sake, shall receive a
hundred-fold, and shall inherit everlasting life." (Matt. xix. 29.) If the naturalist
and the merchant can leave their native land, with all its comforts, and their
beloved families, with all their endearments, for the unfriendly shores of Western
Africa, their object being the advancement of science, or the acquisition of fame or
wealth ; why should it be thought a thing so very marvellous, that a Wesleyan mis-
sionary should make the same sacrifice, with an object far more noble and sublime .'
To accomplish this, he is willing to go to " the farthest verge of the green earth," or
to the very worst portion of this terraqueous globe ; — in search of what .' not gold
and silver, or precious stones ; not the fading laurel of fame ; not merely to ascer-
tain the manners, customs, and peculiarities of nations, nor to extend British com-
merce ; — he goes and " dives into that mine from which, we are often told, no
valuable ore or precious stone can be extracted ; and he hopes to bring up, not
merely the gem of one inmioi-fal spirit, flashing with the light of intellect, and
glowiivr with tlic lines of Christian graces; but he expects, nay, f'ldly believes, that
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 3&3
he will find, and rescue from obscurity, many a gem that will deck the Saviour's
crown, many a precious and immortal soul for whom Ilis precious blood was shed."
Into this mine he eaters, held up Ijy the power of prayer, and cheered by the pro-
spect of future glory ; for, should he fall in the enterprise, should the ropes break,
or should Providence see fit to call him home, he doubts not that, through the
mercy of the Saviour's great atonemtmt, he will receive a crown of life, — -a mission-
ary's crown, — if a martyr's, all the richer.
11th. — To-day, at two p.m., I went down to Gravesend with ray missionary com-
panion, the Rev. R. M. MacBrair, and joined the vessel, expecting to sail early in
the morning.
Dec. 15th.^ — This afternoon we landed at Bathm-st, St. ]\Iary's, after rather a
long and somewhat tempestuous voyage ; and found Mr. and Mrs. Wilkinson in
tolerable health. The leaders, local preachers, members, and friends flocked around
us, and gave evident proofs that they were glad at our arrival. In the evening I
attended the prayer-meeting.
Sunday, 20th.- — This morning, at six o'clock, I met a large class. At half-past
ten I read prayers, and Mr. MacBrair preached. At two p.m. I sailed to Berv^dck-
Town, Fort Bulleu ; preached, and examined the society individually ; and, in the
evening, preached again at St. Mary's.
31st. — This evening I held a watch-night service, which we all found very pro-
fitable. May the next year be one ot great prosperity !
Jan. 2d, 1836.— Yesterday I left St. Mary's for Berwick-Town, Fort Bulleu, to
commence the assistant's house, and was under the necessity of staying all night.
In the evening I held divine service under a tree, as the moon shone vei-y brightly :
forty or fifty were present ; and after I had spoken to them, two or three prayed. I
felt quite refreshed in body and mind by having engaged in this religious solemnity.
I retired to rest last evening on a native bed, of the meanest order ; it was composed
of a species of cane-sticks, crossed over each other, about eight or ten inches from
the ground ; on it was placed a thin gi-ass mat, and a dirty sheet, and a bag filled
with something (keadfully hard for my pillow. The door of the hut being shut,
the only avenue, through which either light or air could have access, was a small
hole, just at my left cheek, about two inches and a half in circumference, broken by
accident. Through this I hailed with pleasure the light of day ; and at six o'clock
I rose, and repaired with the men to the place where we were building. This
afternoon I arrived at Bathurst, rather fatigued.
Sunday, 17th. — This morning I preached at Berwick-Town, Fort Bidlen, and
afterwards met the class. There being little or no breeze, I was several hours in
returning to St. Mary's, where I preached in the evening.
22d. — Last evening, about eight o'clock, Mr. Wilkinson and I left St. Mary's for
Jillifree, in Jlr. Grant's cutter, which was going to Macarthy's Island. Owing to a
light breeze we made very little progress during the night ; and the tide being
against us, we this morning came to anchor three or four miles distant from the
place of our destination, and went ashore and walked thither. We landed at an
exceedingly awkward and muddy place ; and, but for great care, must have sunk in
it. Immediately behind the mangroves which adorn the banks of the river, are
large trees, shrubs, and flowers, of various descriptions ; in which monkeys pre-
sented themselves to our view as we walked along the path, which was exceedingly
narrow and serfientine. On reaching Jillifree we waited upon the alcaid, when
several of the old men were immediately in attendance. Most of them knowing
Mr. Grant, salutations and mutual good wishes passed between them. About one
P.M. Mr. Grant left us, to proceed up the river. In the afternoon, as wc were pre-
394' WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
paring to go into the town, the alcaid called upon us. I spoke to him, by an inter-
preter, on the object of our visiting Jillifree ; stating that we were ministers of the
gospel, and wished to teach the ]\Iandingoes the important truths of our holy reli-
gion. I requested him to tell the people in the town that, at five o'clock, we would
speak to them all, and hoped he would collect them together. I gave him a small
present, and a copy of the New Testament in Arabic, with which he was much
pleased, and, I beheve, could read it tolerably well. Accordingly, at five o'clock
we proceeded to the spot assigned for us, where we found collected together a good
number, of both sexes, several of whom had their spears, cutlasses, and fire-arms.
We commenced by giving out the first two verses of the hymn on the eighty-third
page:—
" Shepherd of souls, with pitj'ing eye
The thousands of our Israel see ;
To thee on their behalf we cry.
Ourselves but newly found in Thee.
" See where o'er desert wastes they err,
And neither food nor feeder have,
Nor fold nor place of refuge near ;
For uo man cares their souls to save."
I preached, or rather spoke, to them in as familiar a strain as I possibly coidd, on
the nature and design of the gospel, and the commission given to its ministers to
go into all the world and preach it to every creatm-e. They listened with consi-
derable attention ; and several of them frequently bowed their heads with a smile,
as in assent to what I said, and then exclaimed, Bettiata ! bettiata ! (" Very good !
very good ! ") Mr. Wilkinson afterwards prayed. The alcaid and several of the old
men said, that what I had spoken was very good, and that they should be very glad
for Christians to come and sit down amongst them. Having spoken to them about
a school, the boys and girls were enraptured, following us to our residence, and
saying, Alcoran bettiata ! alcoran bettiata .' — meaning, they should be very glad to
learn to read and write. An adult followed us, to ask if he might come when we
commenced a school ; to which we, of course, replied in the aftu-mative. Jillifree
is a small Mandingo town on the north bank of the river, the name of which is
familiar to every one who has read Mimgo Park's Travels ; as here that celebrated
traveller landed on his arrival from England to explore the interior of this interest-
ing continent, and was detained some mouths by sickness pecuhar to the climate.
It is situated on a rising plain, five or six hundred yards from the river, is well
stockaded with strong, tall mangrove timber, and has fo>ir entrances. The houses
are built of mud, covered with grass, and are tolerably substantial and comfortable.
It contains a population of about one thousand souls, and is about a mile from
Albrada, where the French have a small settlement, through which we passed yes-
terday, containing about the same number of inhabitants. Several other Mandingo
towns are within a few miles. The distance from St. Mary's to Jillifree is about
eighteen miles. The house in which we are staying is a stone building belonging
to Messrs. Chown and Messervey, of St. Mary's, — the only stone house here ; it is
situated between the town and the river, contiguous to both ; and is surrounded by
shrubs, flowers, and evergreens of various descriptions ; the guava, banana, paupi,
lime, and orange are among the number of fruit-trees which are in great abundance,
the fruit of which comes to a high degree of perfection spontaneously, the natives
paying little or no attention to pruning and manuring them. The river is directly
in front of the house, and a number of fine tail palm-trees adorn its banks. The
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 395
rippling of the tide, tlie warbling of birds of the most beautiful plumage, and the
rural scenery around it, but, above all, the demoralized state of its inhabitants,
produced feelings of peculiar emotion. The late venerated Rev. R. Watson once
exclaimed, " 0, when shall the glorious gospel of the blessed God dawn upon all
lands ; when shall it wipe away all tears ; when shall floods clap their hands, and
forests wave instinct with imiversal gladness, and hills rejoice, and valleys sing, and
the Gentile of every lip and name glorify God for his mer<;y .' When shall it
dawni ?" said that eloquent and able minister of the New Testament, " When shall
it dawn ? " Thank God, the voice of the heralds of the universal Savioiu--King has
been heard this evening in a Mandingo town ! " Prepare ye the way of the Lord,
make straight in the desert an highway for our God. Every valley shall be exalted,
and eveiy mountain and hiU shall be made low, and the crooked shall be made
straight, and the rough places plain, and the glory of the Lord shall be revealed,
and all flesh shall see it together ; for the mouth of the Lord hath spoken it."
23d. — I rose this morning very little refreshed by my night's rest, in consequence
of a vast number of rats rmming up and down the steps, ringing the bells, knocking
at om* door, and rushing into our bed-room ; glad I was when the light of day dis-
persed them ; we then arose, and were anxious about the arrival of the mission-
boat, which was to be sent up after us, on the arrival of Mr. W. Juff from the
Sien-a country, some thirty miles north of St. Mary's, as he had not arrived when
we left on Thursday. The alcaid again called upon us this morning, and after-
wards sent us a present, — a small basket of oranges. A venerable-looking old
man came also, saying he was sick jesterday, and not able to attend the meeting
we held ; but he had heard of it, and was very glad ; adding, that he had two chil-
dren he wished to send to school when we commenced. Although I am not very san-
guine as to immediate success in the conversion of the Mandingoes, brought up, as
they are, in the absurdities of Mohammedanism, yet their appearing willing to send
their children to a Christian school argues something in favour of our object ; for
that will be laying the foundation-stone for the superstructure of our holy religion,
and, at the same time, worldng as a mighty moral lever, in throwing down to the
ground the iron pillars of jMohammedan superstition and delusion ; and I trust
these followers of the false prophet will, ere long, forsake their bhnd guide, and
follow the Lamb whithersoever he goeth. I have to-day distributed several copies
of Arabic scriptures, and more I could have distributed to advantage if I bad had
them with me. I have promised to take more when I go again. The mission-
boat not having anived, and hearing that a French schooner will leave Allirada
during the night, we this afternoon took up our beds and walked thither ; but, to
our surprise, when we reached the port, the schooner was under weigh, about a
mile and a half distant, having sailed sooner than she expected. We immediately
obtained a small boat, put a few of our things into it, and followed her ; but hav-
ing rowed three miles we were obhged to return ; the breeze had freshened, and
the schooner was beyond our reach. On again reaching Albrada, we met, on the
beach, one of the French gentlemen whom we had seen yesterday. Knowing we
were friends of Mr. Grant, he kindly invited us to take up our abode with him for
the night, for which we felt thankful ; for we had no where else to go but to Jilli-
free, and sleep with the rats ; but we were very anxious about our appointments to-
morrow, and hoped something would occur, so that we might reach St. j\Iary's by
ten o'clock in the forenoon, though it was near nine p.m., and we knew of no
conveyance but a small schooner, which does not leave here till the afternoon of
to-mon-ow. Fortunately, we had not been in the house long when, to our great
joy, the mission-boat arrived ; and though we were both much fatigued, and a good
596
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
night's rest would have been very acceptable, being anxious to attend^ to our
important duties to-morrow, we cheerfully declined the gentleman's kind otfer of
accommodation for the night, and embarked for St. Mary's, which place we reached
about six o'clock in the morning. Though somewhat sleepy and fatigued, (having
on Thursday night slept aljout three hours on some boxes, on Friday night with the
rats, and last night two hours on the beach, and the remaining part in the boat on
the river,) the Lord helped me in preaching his holy word. Blessed be the name
of the Lord !
29th. — This evening I met with Jagger, the goldsmith, a respectable native, and
an excellent mechanic, but a superstitious Mohammedan. A large tree in one corner
of his yard is much in his way, and he wishes it cut down ; but dares not do so,
lest he himself should immediately die. This is one of the many superstitions prac-
tised by the followers of the false prophet ; though not near so bad as that of an
infatuated mother who, a short time ago, flung her infant babe into the river,
because it did not walk quite so soon as the generality of children ; — supposing
it possessed by an evil spirit. The child was afterwards found dead, an inquest
was held, and the wretched mother is now in jail, to be tried at the ensuing
sessions.
Sunday, 31st. — I read prayers and j)reached this moniing from Phil. i. 21 ; in
the afternoon I rode to Melville ; and coming home I buried a soldier who had died
of small-pox, which is very prevalent. In the evening I preached again at Bathurst,
from, " For we must aU appear before the judgment-seat of Christ." While I was
tlwelling on tlie awful realities of the judgment-day, there was a death-like still-
ness, until it was broken by the piercing cries of two penitents. I have seldom
felt such an influence as this evening, and hope it is a token for good.
Feb. 5th. — Being anxious to see the king of Barra, relative to a school at Jillifree,
&c., we left St. Marj''s yesterday, and arrived at Ben-inding, the royal town, to-day.
Unfoi-tunately, His Majesty had this morning started for Jillifree, to witness the rite
of circumcision about to be performed upon a number of his juvenile subjects ; so
that our journey is partly lost. Walking round the town, after we had taken a
little refreshment, one or two Mandingoes, who were partly intoxicated, got up a
palaver, supposing we were come as spies to make war. They were told by several
of the old men, that we were not merchants or officers, but ministers of the gospel,
and were for peace, and not for war. But they could not silence the drunken fellows,
so they carried them away. The looks and gestures of one indicated any thing but
what Avas favourable towards us, which, together with his having a long knife in his
hand, caused an old woman to catch hold of me and Mr. Wilkinson, saying, Tohaba,
na ! na ! " W^hite man, come I come ! " The old men and others begged us to
take no notice of the palaver the drunken man had made, assuring us it would not
have happened if the king had been here, and that the king would punish him for
it when he came. Leaving a few presents and an Arabic Bible for His Majesty,
with our respectful compliments, we departed, intending to visit them again the
first opportunity. Berrinding is about seven miles from Berwick-Town, Fort
Bullen. \Ve passed two other small towns in going to it, one of them not more
than a mile from Berwick.
Sunday, 7th. — In going to Berwick-Town, Fort Bullen, to-day, the mission-boat
capsized, and I had to swim ashore ; fortunately we were not far from it, and I
reached it without much dilRculty, although I was under water some time, the sea
being very rough.
1.3th. — I have been to Fort Btdlen during the last three days ; I left there this
afternoon, a little after two o'clock, and did not reacli St. Mary's till past ten this
THE GOLD-COAST, GA.MUfA, AND S[ ERRA-LICONE. 397
evening; thus I have been eight hours on the water, owing to a foul breeze, and
contrary tide.
14th. — My good night's rest has not taken the pain out of my bones, occasioned
by lying on a native bed during the preceding three nights. This afternoon 1
buried two more soldiers, who died of small pox.*
In about three weeks after our arrival, Mr. MacBrair pro-
ceeded to his appoiuted station at Macarthy's Island; having
been well occupied, during his short residence at St. Mary's, in
collecting all the information he could respecting the Foulah
and Mandingo languages. He soon found that the latter is the
most extensively in use, and that it was also spoken by the
generality of the Foulahs, though they have a distinct dialect of
their own. He therefore decided to commence with the Man-
dingo, in which his time was principally taken up, though he
rendered valuable aid to the mission in the way of preach-
ing, &c.
About this time, and subsequently, we were considerably
annoyed by some of the colonial authorities, and one or two
others, particularly at Macarthy's Island ; and Mr. and Mrs.
Dove having been on the Coast three years, during which they
had both experienced repeated attacks of fever, and were called
to suffer in other ways, they left Macarthy's Island towards the
close of April, and in the following month sailed from St. Mary's
for England. I had engaged to supply his place until a suc-
cessor arrived ; but, as will be seen, was appointed to Macarthy's
at the ensuing Conference. In the mean time, I was partly at
St. Mary's, and partly at the upper station. The following
extract from jMr. MacBrair's journal will give the reader some
idea of the inconveniences to which missionaries are subject in
this part of the world, from the oppressive heat of the climate,
want of domestic comforts, &c. : —
May 10th.- — The weather is now becoming exceedingly oppressive, as the sun is
vertical, and the thermometer rises to 102° or 104° Fahrenheit, where it continues
during the whole day. Though the ah- used sometimes to be nearly of this tempe-
rature, yet it then lasted only a few hours out of the twenty-four. Besides, as
Mungo Park justly remarks, the hermattan or hot winds are somewhat bracing to
the constitution ; so that the same degree of heat in March and May produces very
different effects upon the bodily frame. The easterly blasts cease in April ; but the
sea-breeze seldom reaches IMacarthy's Island, and then only after having lost all its
refreshing qualities. Truly " the grasshopper is a burden : " for the least exertion is
excessively irksome, and a constant languor weighs down the spirits. The broken
and restless slumbers of night alford little refreshment, whilst the exhausting heat
of the day prevents repose. Besides, the prickly heat covers my body with a dis-
tressing itchiness ; and as it has especially attacked my hands and arms, it renders
* " Missionary Notices," vol. viii [jp. 322 — 32G.
398
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
■writing by no means an agreeable employment. To add to my misfortunes, I am
at present left alone at this station, and have therefore various little duties to per-
form which did not before devolve upon me. I have also to superintend household
matters, vfhich is an incessant trouble, with such untutored servants as those whom
we are constrained to employ. It is seldom that any thing like a regularly trained
domestic can be met with in this country : so that we usually engage young lads,
whom we are obliged to instruct in their routine of duties. But as youth is natu-
rally thoughtless and playful, and as the Africans make little account of noticing
time within a range of two or three hours, it is very difficult to obtain any regu-
larity about the house, unless by an ever-watchful superintendence. For instance :
I have sometimes continued at my studies long after the usual dinner-hoiu" ; but
upon going to ascertain how matters were getting on in the kitchen, I have found
neither dinner, fire, nor cook. After some search, the latter has been discovered
fast asleep in a corner, or sporting by the river's side, in complete ignorance of his
being behind the ordinary time ; for they have no clocks or watches. But the
greatest hardship is, that I am all alone. As to the provisions which I have at
this time to cook, they are not very abundant ; for a foreign stock will not keep in
this weather, and we are thrown principally upon native resoiu-ces. We can now
seldom get beef ; and when we do, it is unfit to eat, as it must be dressed imme-
diately after being killed. Neither myself nor my boys understand baking bread,
so that, though we sometimes make the experiment, it but rarely succeeds. A few
hard biscuits from a sea-store remain ; but they have become maggotty, and I am
no cannibal. Of fish, potatoes, and butter, we have none ; and at the present time
no rice can be bought on the island, though I have begged a little, and a cargo is
expected up the river in a few days. My garden supplies me ■with cabbages, which
grow here most luxuriantly, and of which I have a good stock : the village or our
own yard furnishes poultry and eggs ; and my goats yield their milk and an occa-
sional kid. A Negro also sometimes goes and shoots a partridge or gviinea-fowl,
which is an agreeable variety from the constant routine of poultry and cabbage or
rice, both for breakfast and dinner. When the appetite has almost failed from
bodily exhaustion, it is hard work to lack a morsel of bread ; a want of which none
can be sensible till they prove it by painful experience.*
A few da3^s after this, Mr. INIacBrair writes : " As to study, it
is now alnaost out of the question ; for the lassitude caused by
the enervating weather, and the bodily irritability produced by
the prickly heat, quite distract me, and render me incapable of
any connected thought ; so that I see the propriety of a trans-
lator only wintering in this climate, since the summer will be
pretty nearly so much lost time." In the previous extract,
bread was lacking; but now the climate has produced such
debility, that Mr. MacBrair writes : " Even to eat is a very hard
task." It is difficult to say which is the most painful, — "to
lack a morsel of bread," or, when it is set before you, to be
unable to eat it ; both are bad enough, and both have to be
endured not unfrequently by modern missionaries.
At the latter part of this month, the writer received a letter.
* MacBrair's " Sketches of a Missionary's Travels," pp. 264 — 266.
THB GOLD-COAST, GAIMBIA, AND SIERKA-LEONE. 399
with other documents, from Mr. MacBrair, by a special messen-
ger, detailing some further opposition to the mission, and re-
questing that I woukl liasten up thither. The assistant's house
had been demohshed by a mob, headed by a European. Mr.
MacBrair writes, at the close of his letter, " Please send the
boat and l^ovs quickly back, and furnish Pierre Sallah with
some provisions for the way. Send me some rice, as none can
be bought here. The free people are in a dreadful perturbation ;
and whilst John's house was being demolished, amidst the yells
of a lawless gang, it was also amidst many tears and sighs of
our people, who exerted themselves to the utmost to save some
of the furniture."
In consequence of these melancholy tidings, I wrote the
following note to the governor : —
^IissioN-HousE, Friday morning, May 21th, 1836.
Sir, — I herewith forward to your Excellency a communication from Macarthy's
Island, with the particulars of which I have been made acquainted.
As yoiu: Excellency has already been informed, that the affairs of that mission
have been transferred to me, I beg to state, that I purpose leaving this island, for
Macarthy's Island, early this afternoon. I am under the necessity, from the late
outrageous occurrence that has unhappily taken place, of respectfully soliciting
from your Excellency that protection of person and mission-property to which, as a
British subject, I am legally entitled. Your Excellency's answer to this request
will oblige
Your obedient, humble servant,
William Fox, Wesleyan Missionary.
To His Excellency Lieutenant-Governor Kendall.
About sis V.M., just as I was going on board, I received the
following reply : —
Bathurst, Gambia, May 21th, 1836.
Rev. Sir,-^I have the honour to acknowledge the receipt of your letter of this
date ; and have taken care to write so strongly to the commander of Macarthy's.
Island, that I have no doubt you will receive every protection you can desire.
I have the honour to be,
Rev. Sir,
Your most obedient, humble servant,
G. Rendall, Lieutenant-Governor^
To the Rev. William Fox, &^c., Bathurst.
The bearer of the governor's letter brought me one for Mr.
MacBrair, with some despatches for the commandant ; and it is
but justice to say that he desired his compliments, expressed his
regret at what had taken place, but hoped I should find matters
not so bad as represented, and that there would soon be an
amicable arrangement.
I was now on ray way, and arrived at Macarthy's on the
400 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
evening of the 31st. Two days after, Mr. MacBrair, Mitli the
assistant, John Cupidon, and his wife, sailed for St. Mary's, in
order to obtain that redress for such outrageous pi'oceedings,
which had been denied them on the spot : but very little was
done for us at St. Mary^s ; and we were called for some time
to endure a series of opposition and persecution. The writer
has neither disposition nor space in this work to recount all, or
one-half, of these vexatious and unmerited annoyances ; nor is it
necessary, as some account of them has for some years been
before the public in Mr. MacBrair's " Sketches ;" and a better
spirit toward the a ission and the missionai'ies has long since
existed at the Gambia.
Mr. MacBrair having accomplished the principal part of the
object of his mission, and the rains having now fairly set in, he
sailed for England early in the month of August. That he
should have accomplished this in less than nine months, amidst
many interruptions, provocations, and bodily indisposition,
proves that he possessed a peculiar fitness and aptitude for the
work, and that not a moment was lost which could be properly
secured for the main object for which he was sent ont.
Dr. Lindoe and the friends at Southampton had generously
offered to raise, in addition to their annual contributions
towards the support of the Foulah mission, the sum of .£1,000
for the purpose of meeting, in part, the expenses which must
necessarily be incurred in prosecuting the work of translation ;
and in a short time after Mr. MacBrair's return to England, his
translations of some portions of the New Testament into the
Mandingo language, were submitted to the committee of the
British and Foreign Bible Society, who kindly engaged to
print, at their own expense, the translation of the Gospel
according to St. Matthew. A Grammar of the Mandingo lan-
guage, with Vocabularies, was also printed by the Wesleyan
Missionary Society about the same time.
The author was now (June, 1833) residing at Macarthy's
Island. He had paid a visit to this station two months pre-
viously, when Messrs. Dove and MacBrair were both there.
On that occasion certificates of the two lots of ground on which
the mission-premises stand Avere obtained from the lieutenant-
governor, who happened to be there at that time ; and in a few
days the six hundred acres of land granted to the Foulah mis-
sion by the parent Government were at length measured off;
four hundred and forty towards the north-west end of the
island, and the other one hundred and sixty acres in the oppo-
site direction.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 401
Saturday, June 11th. — I have been much engaged all the
'week with the repairs and enlargement of the mission-house,
which could not be finished before Mr. Dove left,
13th. — Yesterda}^, after divine service at this place, I went to
Broco, about two miles beyond the south-east extremity of the
island. I had a long conference with the Foulahs, who are
exceedingly afraid of the Mandingoes ; but they say, at the
close of the rains, they will come and settle on Macarthy's
Island.
25th. — During the week I have taken a short tour on the
north bank of the river. I rode down to Kayaye, and from
thence proceeded the next day to the residence of the king of
Kattaba, about eighteen miles inland. His sable Majesty I
had seen before. He is a most importunate beggar, and com-
plains that he has only seven wives ! I passed a number of
Mandingo and Foulah towns : the latter, owing to the rains
setting in, were removing their cattle from the banks of the
river to higher ground. I returned home on Thursday even-
ing, having rode during the day about thirty-five miles. In
removing the rubbish, &c., connected with the mission-premises
within the last feAV days, several reptiles have been caught and
killed, among which were three venomous snakes, from five to
six feet in length.
Sunday, 26th. — To-day I preached twice here ; and in the
afternoon I went to Fattota, and gave tickets to a large class.
28th. — Being called upon to inter a corpse this forenoon, I
was surprised and grieved to find upon the burying-ground a
number of liberated Africans under Government busily em-
ployed in making farms. I immediately wrote to the com-
mandant upon the subject, suggesting the propriety of a certain
portion of land being marked out and fenced round, to prevent
the ploughshare from disturbing the ashes of the dead. Three
days after this, I received an answer from the commandant, per-
fectly concurring in my suggestion ; but as he does not approve
of the present place, it being too near the town, he will, on the
first opportunity, submit the matter to His Excellency the
lieutenant-governor at St. Mary's.
July 13th. — I have been very unwell, but am now bet-
ter. Having reason to fear that some of the members in the
society are living without the vitality of religion, I this
evening preached from Matt. xxv. 8 : " Our lamps are gone
out."
22d. — I have to-day been to Broco, and distributed several
copies of the Arabic scriptures to the marraboos. In the
D D
402 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
town farthest from the river-side, I saw three Mandingo men
in irons. At first I supposed they had committed some crime,
for which they were to be punished ; but, upon inquiry, I found
they had been captured in a recent disturbance in the upper
river, and that they were kept in bondage till their frifends
came and redeemed them. I offered the alcaid a few dollars if
he would break off their chains, and let them go ; but to this
he objected; and I afterwards found that he expects sixty
dollars for one man, one hundred for another, and for the third
a young female slave and sixteen bullocks ! I left, pitying the
poor captives, and praying for their heathen and demoralized
countrymen. How vain to talk about civilization independent
of Christianity ! And how true it is, that
" He is a free man whom the truth makes free,
And all ai"e slaves besides ! "
Sunday, August 7tli. — I have been very unwell all the week :
I did not rise this morning till between nine and ten, and was
then quite feverish. However, I preached, and the Lord gra-
ciously assisted me. The people appear more attentive : some
wept, and the congregation improves a little. From the pulpit
I went to bed, and John Cupidon preached in the evening.
Sunda}^, 14th. — This evening, after the service, I held a short
prayer-meeting. One of the Negroes, who prayed with great
fervour, among other things, addressed the throne of grace as
follows : — " Jesus, save all we soul ; suppose man lose one eye,
he can see with the other; suppose man lose one hand, he can
work with the other; but suppose man lose him soul, he lose
him all ;" and then, with great energy and pathos, exclaimed,
" Jesus, save all we soul to-night ! save all we soul to-night ! "
to which the people responded with a loud Amen !
17th. — We are now in the midst of the rains, vast quantities
of which have fallen to-day. The mission-house leaks so exten-
sively, in consequence of the flat roof, that I have been obliged
to put on a thatched one, as there was no place where I could
sleep without having a shower-bath in bed. I have been recom-
mended to go down to St. Mary's, but cannot consistently leave
this station at present ; though I have lately suffered severely,
and am still very unwell. At the request of the commandant, I
to-day accompanied him to the spot proposed for the interment
of the dead. It is about eighty yards square, on a green plain,
about three quarters of a mile due west from the mission-house,
near to the larger tract of the six hundred acres of land.
Whilst riding round, I could not resist the thought, that per-
'«A'
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
403
haps here I may sleep till the resurrection of the just ; but I
felt quite composed. In the evening I discoursed from the
encouraging words of the Saviour recorded in John xiv. 1, 2.
22d. — Yesterday was a good day to me, and, I hope, to the
people. My subject in the evening was, " This do in remem-
brance of me ;" after which I administered the sacrament of the
Lord's supper. Having now discharged the Avork -people con-
nected with the mission-house and premises, I hope to pay a
little more attention to reading, visiting, &c. This afternoon I
went to Laming, a small Mandingo town, about a mile from the
opposite bank of the river.
27th. — I have had fever for two or three days. Last evening
the king of Kattaba arrived here, and this morning paid me a
visit, accompanied by ten or a dozen of his courtiers. I was
very unwell ; and the noise these wild fellows made was almost
unbearable. They were highly amused at sitting down upon
chairs ; but I not having sufficient for the whole, the others readily
squatted themselves upon the floor. After the usual compli-
ments had passed. His Majesty begged a little tobacco, to help
him on his journey up the river. An attack has recently been
made upon one of his towns by a marauding party, who killed
one woman, and carried off twenty-five of his subjects as
slaves.
I spoke to him upon the subject of a mission being com-
menced upon his territories, and about a large tract of land for
the Foulahs. The latter, he said, required consideration ; but
as to the former, he began to count his fingers, saying, Kil'mg,
fula, sabba, nani, lulu, woro, worongioolu, set/, kononta, tang ;
adding, emphatically, " Ten missionaries might come, if they
pleased."
29th. — Yesterday was an idle sabbath, or, rather, a suffering
and sick day. I again took powerful medicine, which, with
what I had taken before, operated smartly, attended with
vomiting. In the evening I obtained an intermission of fever,
and I hope the quinine will now have effect. But as I have
no wife, colleague, doctor, or nurse, in this monotonous wilder-
ness, an attack of illness is " not joyous," and my spirits do
sometimes flag a little. But, praise the Lord, I have abundant
cause for gratitude ; for though in this attack of fever I have
had several sleepless nights, I have enjoyed much of the Di\dne
Presence when my servant boys have been fast asleep, and the
cat and dog, with a burning candle and a " cup of cold water,"
have been my only visible companions. Thank God, "the Invi-
sible " has " appeared in sight," my pillow has been wet with
2 D 2
404
WESTERN COAST OF AFUICA.
tears of joy and gratitude, and I have literally realized the
sweetness of those well-known lines, —
" When my sorrows most increase,
Then thine utmost joys are given ;
Jesus comes with my distress,
And agony is heaven ! "
My friends at West Bromwich are, I trust, doing what they
kindly promised, that is, " holding on the ropes," and, if it
be the will of God, I shall see them again : however, I wish not
to be too sanguine : the cost was counted, and in that cost life
was included : it is in God's hands, let him do what seemeth
him good.
" My life, while Thou preservest that life,
Thy sacrifice shall he ;
And death, when death shall l)e my lot,
Shall join my soul to Thee."
31st. — Thank the Lord, I am improving rapidly. To-day I
buried one of the school-boys, whom I had previously visited;
and have a good hope in his death.
September 3d. — I am to-day preparing for the pulpit, in
which I feel a sacred pleasure. I have lately given away a
number of the Arabic scriptures to the Tilobonkoes, (an indus-
trious tribe, to the east of Bondou,) who come here in search of
employment. They are strict Mohammedans. It has been very
wet to-day, and the mission-house, notwithstanding the grass
roof, leaks considerably. In two or three weeks I hope the
rains will be over, though the effects are likely to last for some
weeks longer. The river is now very much swollen, and in
many places overflows its banks : it has done so opposite the
mission-house, and the water has almost reached the gate lead-
ing into the yard.
12th. — Yesterday, though poorly, I preached twice here, and
in the afternoon rode to Fattota, and gave tickets to upwards of
thirty members. To-day I have written several letters : one to
Mr. Maer, at Sierra-Leone; one to Mr. Wilkinson and the
assistants at St. Mary's ; and two or three on business. I have
also had near a score of applications from the Tilobonkoes for
portions of the Arabic scriptures.
14th. — Though I had taken a considerable quantity of medi-
cine, the fever returned yesterday afternoon, and I have had a
very severe night. Hoping to arrest it before it came to its
height, I again took " five and fifteen," bathed my feet in hot
w;iter, drank some hot tea, and put additional clothing upon the
bcrl, which brought on a profuse perspiration ; but that, unfor-
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SlERllA-LEONE. 40j
tunately, was followed by a dry skin, a quick, strong pulse, and
an almost insupportable head-ache, with considerable vomiting.
Towards morning it somewhat abated ; but has left me to-day
amazingly weak, so that I can scarcely move or speak. I have,
during the day, taken twenty grains of quinine, which I sincerely
pray may prevent another attack.
22d. — I am, praise the Lord ! much better, and have been
doing a little in theology and the Mandingo language. This
evening we had another strong tornado, with heavy rain. I am
informed by several persons, that more rain has fallen this
season than for several years past; so that large crops are
expected ; and, from appearances, these will be realized.
October 4th. — I am still unwell. This evening I met the
last two classes for tickets, and found my soul truly blessed
while encouraging the people of God. Praise the Lord, we
have an increase of eleven during the quarter, and a prospect of
seeing better days !
To-day an intelligent-looking Moor called upon me, who
arrived on the island a day or two ago, from Medina, as he
states, the burial-place of Mahomet, having travelled across this
extensive continent. He appeared much interested when I
reached the chart, and named some of the countries through
which he had passed, particularly when I pointed to Mecca, the
birth-place of the false prophet, of whom he appears to be a
rigid follower. He states that it is eleven months since he left
Medina, and that two friends who came with him were mur-
dered somewhere in the neighbourhood of Abyssinia, and that
he walked ten days without stopping at any place, to escape the
savage tribe. When questioned as to the object he had in view
in coming so far, his answer was, he merely came "to take a
walk \" He wished to see the Gambia, Goree, the Senegal, &c.
I gave him a copy of the New Testament in Arabic, Avliich he
appeared to read with ease. His statement may possibly be
correct, in having crossed the continent ; for we have an old
marraboo on this island who has actuail}^ done so twice, having
gone from this place to Mecca and Medina, and back again.
7th. — I had a little fever this morning, and am obliged to
have recourse to quinine, with other medicine, to keep off
another severe attack. Yesterday we had a good quantity of
rain, and no appearance at present of its closing. To-day I
have engaged, as an assistant in the Mandingo language, the
person Mr. MacBrair employed : he is a proper Mandingo, and
has been educated in England. I have almost finisliod a large
vocabulary, soon after which I purpose translating the First
406 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Conference Catechism. May the Lord help me, preserve my
health, and prosper this mission !
11th. — I have fever, more or less, every day, and seldom
enjoy a night^s rest. This morning I again took medicine.
The thermometer to-day is 89°, though we have had a north-
west breeze most of the day ; so that it has not been so oppres-
sive as yesterday.
Sunday, 16th. — To-day I preached twice, with tolerable
liberty. In the afternoon I attended the school.
21st. — This morning we had two or three arrivals from St.
Mary's, one of which brought me the " Watchman," with the
Conference news, and a letter from my dear wife. Though
poorly, I have had a rich feast all day in perusing the very
delightful reports of the first Conference held in Birmingham.
" God bless the preachers and the people ! '' I could not help
exclaiming aloud repeatedly, as I read, and wept for joy, to see
the harmony and unanimity of the former, and the liberality
and Christian kindness of the latter.
25th. — Since Sunday afternoon I have been very ill: the
most severe bilious fever I have experienced this season. On
Saturday I was ill with ague, and was imprudent enough to go
out in the heat of the day to bury a corpse, though I could
scarce sit on the pony. On returning, I went to bed, and for
several hours suffered severely. On Sunday morning, feehng
a little better, I preached ; and this, I fear, greatly aggravated
the paroxysm. In the afternoon I was obliged to go to bed;
and am just now up, and only able to crawl about. Yesterday
I had the doctor ; who has been again to-day. Though very ill
on Sunday night, I Avas very happy; the former part of the
night especially : while meditating upon death, and the glories
of the heavenly world, my soul exulted with joy, and my eyes
overflowed with tears of gratitude. Glory be to God ! He
does not leave nor forsake a helpless worm that trusts in him.
29th. — Yesterday and to-day the king of Kattaba called upon
me, with whom I had a long conversation upon the evils of
rum-drinking, polygamy, &c. I also again introduced the sub-
ject of a large tract of land for the Foulahs, the six hundred
acres not being near sufficient. He appeared willing, provided
the other leading men were ; but added, he must have the usual
customs from them in the way of bullocks, &c. This led to
some further conversation ; and I have promised to pay him a
visit, and look at some part of his dominions, visit the Foulah
towns, &c.
jS'ovember 5th.— My fever has continued without a regular
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 407
intermission until this morning, having been in the furnace
three days ; and I am now exceedingly Aveak.
8th. — On Saturday evening the ague re-commenced, and
continued all night. On Sunday morning I was put into a
vrarm bath, but to no purpose : the fever continued, with very
great debility, all day and night of Sunday ; and how it would
terminate, was uncertain. I was certainly very ill, and was
anxious to say a few words to my dear wife ; but I could not
write, and there was no one to whom I could speak upon the
subject. Thank God, I felt quite happy when at the worst !
On Monday morning there was a change for the better, and I
am still improving, and thankful to God that he has once more
raised me " from the margin of the grave.^^ O may I afresh
dedicate all I have and am to his service !
10th. — I hope I am gaining strength, though still very weak.
It appears that I am appointed to this station by the late Con-
ference; so that it will be necessar}^ to go down to St. Mary's
to close my accounts with that station. I am also wanting some
building materials; besides which, the doctor recommends a
change : and perhaps it may do me good.
15th. — I believe I am improving, though still troubled with a
little ague. I am now again very busy with the repairs and
improvements of the mission-premises here, and building a
small chapel and house at Fattota for one of the assistants, &c.
16th. — During the night, I had considerable fever. This
morning I heard from Mr. Wilkinson, who has had a serious
attack of illness. Though very poorly, I preached in the
evening.
18th — Having made every arrangement I possibly could, and
given directions to the assistants, in reference to their appoint-
ments, &c., I yesterday embarked on board the " Angola." We
are now at anchor at Yanimaroo, taking in corn and hides. I
am happy to hear we make no more stoppages till we reach the
end of our journey. I had no rest all night.
Sunday, 20th. — Another sleepless night ; and so violent was
the pain in my head, and face, and teeth, which involuntarily
chattered together with cold, that I knew not what to do. I
almost wept with the jumping and excruciating pain. I am
to-day more free from it, but unable to do any thing in the way
of holding divine service. The Lord grant me grace and
patience to suffer, as well as to do, all his righteous will !
22d. — This morning, about four o'clock, we came to anchor
at St. Mary's. Having a fresh breeze, I was able to lie in the
cabin last night ; but I obtained no sleep. Soon after five
408 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
o'clock I went ashore ; and before I reached the mission-house,
my heart was warmed at hearing the people singing the praises
of God at the early prayer-meeting. I went into the chapel,
and joined with them in prayer and praise. Mr. and Mrs.
Wilkinson, I found, were rapidly recovering from their recent
attacks of sickness. We were glad to see each other, and
mingled our joys and sorrows together. Though we had each
suffered in various ways, we found abundant cause for thank-
fulness to a kind and gracious Providence.
The mission at Cape-Coast had been partially suspended by
the lamented death of Mr. Dunwell, which we have recorded in
a preceding page. But on September 15th of this year, Mr.
and Mrs. Wrigley arrived there ; and though the society had
been without a missionar}^ for nearly fifteen months, it was
found their numbers had increased, and the influence of Chris-
tianity was felt to a considerable distance inland. Mr. Wrigley
commenced his varied labours with zeal ; and a suitable place
of worship having become indispensably necessary, he under-
took, without delay, the erection of a commodious building,
including a chapel and school-rooms; and under his ministry
the society continued to prosper.
At Sierra-Leone the brethren Maer, Crosby, and Sanders,
had been preserved through the sickly season, though not with-
out repeated attacks of the country fever ; and on the 10th of
October, their hands were strengthened, and their hearts encou-
raged, by the arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Patterson. Interesting
communications about this time, from Messrs. Maer and Crosby
at Sierra-Leone, and from ]\Ir. Wilkinson at the Gambia, the
reader will find in the eighth volume of the "Missionary
Notices," pages 416, 417.
Having closed my financial accounts with the St. Mary's cir-
cuit, and transferred the affairs of that mission to my respected
brother and colleague, Mr. Wilkinson, I prepared to return to
my own station. Though my sojourn at St. Mary's was some-
what less than a fortnight, I had, during that period, though
far from being well, preached several times, had paid a visit to
Fort BuUen, and the Mandingo town in the kingdom of Barra,
had written several letters to the governor for a discharged soldier
respecting two of his children, who were held in Slavery by a
coloured lady of Goree, one of whom, being then on the island
with the said lady, the father happily obtained; and last,
thougli not least, I witnessed the peaceful and happy death
of Sally Doughlas, wife of James Doughlas, "the faithful
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 409
Negro servant'' who accompanied the late Mrs. Marshall to
England, and who took charge of " the little orphan boy " to
NcAvcastle, the affecting particulars of which are already before
the reader.
Having completed some other matters of business, on the 5th
of December I embarked on board the schooner "Fame,"
bound for Macarthy's Island. I had been confined to my bed
with ague most of the day, and was half-disposed to yield to the
kind solicitations of Mr. and Mrs. Wilkinson to remain a little
longer ; but having every thing on board, and feeling somewhat
better just as the vessel was about to get under weigh, I rose
from bed, and, accompanied by Mr. Wilkinson and some others
to the beach, I went on board, and immediately turned into bed
in my little cabin, where T continued till late the following day,
having taken four doses of quinine during that time.
On the morning of the 12th we arrived at Macarthy's Island;
nothing particular having occurred on the passage, except that
on the preceding day we passed a small vessel which had been
attacked and swamped by a hippopotamus, and I found that
another small craft, which had brought me some lime for the
mission-house, had come in contact with one or more of these
river-horses, though happily without doing any damage. I was
now much better than when I left St. Mary's ; but the country
was in a very disturbed state, owing to some marauding bandits
going a!bout seeking for prey, in the shape of men, women, and
children, cattle, or what they could lay hold of.
In the mean time I was employed with looking after the
masons, carpenters, and other people at work on the mission -
premises at George-Town, and with the new chapel and house
at Fattota. I also engaged a number of liberated Africans on
the six hundred acres of land, in clearing it of brushwood, &c.^
This, with the spiritual affairs of the mission, and frequent con-
ferences which I had with the Foulahs, and other duties, fully
occupied my time.
Under date of " Sunday, January 1st, 1837," the following
entry was made in my journal : — " Last evening we had a most
blessed watch-night service. Both the assistants and the local
preacher gave appropriate exhortations, and the Almighty gra-
ciously assisted them and myself, and was eminently present
with the people, while, in the house of our God, we closed ano-
ther year. O may this next be a very happy, holy, and useful one !
To-day I preached twice here, and in the afternoon went to
Fattota, and met the society for tickets. One of the members
came dressed in the native style ; and, when interrogated upon
410 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
the subject^ he said, ' Massa, sun warm too much to-day/ The
heat was certainly A^ery intense, but, besides the propriety of the
thing, I told him I thought he would not suffer so much from
the sun with his trousers on, as he did with them off. Mr.
Cupidon has been preaching at Broco to-day, and there are again
'rumours of war/ The WooUi people, assisted by the Bam-
barras, are intending to attack some part of Kemmingtan's
dominions/'
We shall close this chapter with the following statistics of the
missions at each station at the commencement of 1837 : —
Sierra-Leone, members, 1,124; school-children, 930. St. Ma?-y's,
members, 368; school-children, 152, Macarthy's Island, mem-
bers, 167; school-children, 68. Cajae-Coa*/, members, 150.
One-fourth of the number at Cape-Coast were on trial,
besides which there are about fifty at Annamaboo. There
were no returns for the schools; but "Mrs. Wrigley had
formed three classes of native females, who gladly listened to
her instructions," and she had also under her care a school for
children, " who were learning to read very fast, and advancing
in other branches of female education."
CHAPTER XX.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1837, 1838.)
The Year 1837 one of unprecedented Mortality — Eight Deaths in nine Months — ■
The Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Harrop at Cape-Coast — Their Sickness and
Death — Death of Mrs. Wrigley — The Shock to Mr. Wrigley — Extracts from
his Letter upon the Subject — Brief Sketches of Mrs. Harrop, Mr. Harrop,
and Mrs. Wrigley — Mr. Wrigley now the only Missionary at Cape-Coast — His
Appeal for more Help — Sierra-Leone — Death of Messrs. Maer, Crosby, and
Patterson of the Yellow Fever — Sketches of their Character — The Announce-
ment of these Deaths in the " Missionary Notices " — Remarks thereon —
Macarthy's Island — The Providence of God — The Author's various Employ-
ments— Visits St. Mary's — A Soldier hanged — Hope in his Death — The
Author retvu-ns to Macarthy's Island — Letters on the Subject of the Epidemic,
&c. — Wild Beasts on the Continent — Death of a Mandingo Man and Boy by
a Leopard — Further Accounts of the Epidemic at St. Mary's — The Author hears
of the Death of Mr. WDkinson — Resolves to go down — PecuUar Circumstances
of the Case — Incidents on the Passage — Death of Governor Rendall — Safe
Arrival at St. Mary's^Sketch of Mr. Wilkinson — His funeral Sermon — Some
Remarks ou the Effects of the Yellow Fever — One Half of the Europeans at
St. Mary's cut down in a few Weeks — The Gold-Coast — Mr. Wrigley — His
lamented Death— Mr. Sanders at Sierra-Leone, and the Author at the Gambia,
now the only two W^esleyan Missionaries on the Coast — The Arrival of Mr.
and Mrs. Dove, with Mr. Badger, at Sierra-Leone — Mr. and Mrs. Swallow,
with Mr. Wall, at the Gambia, and Mr. and Mrs. Freeman at Cape-Coast —
Statistics of the Missions — Mr. Sanders retiu^ns to England — The present
Appointments, vdth an Extract from the Annual Report ou the Subject of the
Mortality during the Year, &c.
The year upon which we have now entered Avas an eventful
one in the history of these missions. At its commencement
some untoward events, ever to be lamented, unhappily occurred
in the mission family at Sierra-Leone, by which some of the
brethren were greatly at variance; and this state of things
continued for some months ; but the year was marked by much
of the Divine Presence and blessing upon the labours of his ser-
vants on all the stations on the Coast, at each of which there
was an augmentation to their numbers, consisting of several
hundreds of members. But it was a painful and an unprece-
dented year in the mortality of the missionaries ; and it becomes
once more our painful task to record the ravages of death. No
412 WESTERN COAST OF AFKICA.
fewer than six missionaries^ and two wives of missionaries, — in
all, eiglit agents of the society, — were removed from the church
below to the church above, in the course of about nine months !
These afflictive and mysterious dispensations of Providence we
shall, as heretofore, register in due order ; and, in so doing, we
shall have to commence at the Gold-Coast. That mission was
strengthened by the arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Harrop, who
landed there in the middle of January. But they had scarcely
entered upon their labours, when, owing to the injurious
exposure of themselves to the effects of the sun and damps,
they were almost immediately attacked by fever, which proved
fatal to both ; and Mrs. Wrigley sank under the fatigue Avhich
she experienced, while attending, with affectionate anxiety, by
night and by day, to the wants and sufferings of her newly-
arrived friends. At this painful visitation, the grief of the
societies was almost unbounded, and the wound Mr. Wrigley
received was very severe. Mr. Freeman, who referred to this
subject in one of the " Quarterly Papers " some time after,
says : " Perhaps no language could be more applicable to his
feelings, than that of Dr. Young, while lamenting the loss of his
companion in life, and her amiable children : —
' Insatiate archer ! could not one sutRce ?
Thy shaft flew thrice, and thrice my peace was slain,
And thrice ere thrice yon moon renew'd her horn !' "
The shock which Mr. Wrigley received from this complicated
bereavement was the more severely felt, as he himself was only
just recovering from a severe bilious fever. But we shall best
understand the views and feelings of this afflicted and bereaved
missionary, from himself, by inserting the substance of a letter
addressed to the general secretaries, a copy of which now lies
before me, and which gives the particulars of the melancholy
events just alluded to. The whole letter is painfully interesting,
and is alike creditable to the head and the heart of him who,
alas! was himself called, in a few short mouths, to join "in a
nobler cKme " those whose loss he so deeply deplored in this.
The letter is dated "Western Africa, Cape-Coast, February
20th, 1837," and commences as follows : —
Rev. and dear Sirs, — With feeUngs of unutterable sorrow, I have to announce
the heart-rending fact, that Mr. and Mrs. Harrop and my beloved partner are no
more ! 0, my God, teach me resignation to that M'hich my human reason would
say is utterly unaccountable and inexplicably mysterious ; to acknowledge thine
hand, to revere thy sovereign will, and to submit to thy righteous dispensations !
Such a stroke confounds all my reasonings, and levels me with the dust.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND STERRA-LEONE. 413
After stating that Mr. and Mrs. Harrop arrived on Sunday,
the 15th ultimo, and that they went in company to the after-
noon service, where they had a crowded congregation, and that
Mr. Harrop was both surprised and gratified with the sight,
Mr. Wrigley says : —
But, ah ! how vain are all oiir earthly hopes, and how mysterious are His ways
whose judgments are a great deep ! The arrival of our friends, so highly calcu-
lated to cheer and encourage us in oiu" arduous work, was hut the prelude to the
experience of the severest afflictions.
Mr. Wrigley was himself attacked with illness the following
day, and was confined to his bed for some time ; but adds : —
The arrival of our friends at such a time I was led to view as a most providen-
tial event, inasmuch as the work would be carried on without interruption. It was
otherwise determined. On Sunday, the 29th ultimo, precisely a fortnight from
their arrival, oiu* two friends commenced with the seasoning-fever, though in so
mild a manner as to lead us to indulge the hope of speedy recovery.
This pleasing hope was not realized ; for though the best
medical help, with the best nurses the place aflForded, was imme-
diately obtained, they became worse. Mr. Wrigley Avrites : —
Had not Mrs. Harrop been labouring under the influence of other diseases of an
opposite nature, I doubt not she would have got over it. Her fits, however,
increased in violence every succeeding day, until Saturday, during the whole of
which day she was in strong convulsions ; in which, with great struggling, she
ceased to breathe, about two o'clock in the morning of the sabbath, February 5th.
It was an awful scene : never shall I forget it. My soul was in a state of the
utmost agitation : Mrs. Harrop struggling with her last enemy, her husband in an
adjoining room in a state of deliiium, and my own beloved partner in another
room eveiy thing but insensible to all around her. Every thing was done for Mr.
Harrop that the skill of our medical attendant could devise, or the activity of his
attendants accomplish ; but it was all in vain. He continued much in the same
way as above stated, with some lucid intervals, until Wednesday morning, twenty-
five minutes to seven o'clock, when he silently, and vrithout a groan, ceased to be
an inhabitant of this vale of tears.
As for my dear wife, never was shock greater to my mind than that which I
experienced when, on a sudden and totally unexpected change, there was mani-
fested every symptom of speedy dissolution : this occun-ed on Wednesday morning,
at six o'clock. For five hours I had been engaged previously in bathing her head
incessantly with limes and cold water, with pleasing hopes of a speedy and favour-
able change. The fever was at its height ; she wandered a little, but was remark-
ably still ; and it was not until half an hour previous to her end, that I entertained
the least idea of such an event. She died, with the composure of one taking rest
in sleep, at half-past six o'clock, a few minutes before Mr. Harrop breathed
his last.
This was too much for my feelings to bear : my mind, already enfeebled by
weakness and loss of rest, was completely prostrated. I could no longer contain
myself, and I was reduced to a state of complete frenzy for the space of half an
414 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
hour, while all around me were bathed in tears, expecting that their last hope in
my spared life was about to be extinguished. I was at last forcibly carried away
from the side of my beloved partner's remains, and removed to the house of
W. Hutton, Esq.
Scenes like this are truly affecting, sufficient to excite our
tenderest sympathies, fervent prayers, and liberal contributions
in the cause of missions. Nor is the preceding a peculiar case ;
for we shall have to record others of a similar kind, ere we close
the catalogue of deaths in this deathly clime. Mr. Wrigley, in
speaking of his own affliction, previously and subsequently to
the above bereavement, says, he " was determined, even at the
sacrifice of life, to attend on his suffering companions, and ren-
der them all the assistance he could;" which, he adds, "now
indeed affords me a mournful satisfaction ; while, at the same
time, I am amazed that, after the loss of rest for at least six
nights out of seven, I am now able to record such tragical
events." " Tragical," indeed, they were ; but " what we know
not now, we shall know hereafter."
It remains that we give a brief and separate sketch of these
three, who " counted not their lives dear unto them," so that
they might contribute, in some small degree, to the extension
of the Redeemer's kingdom in Heathen lands.
Mrs. Harrop, the first of those who fell on this occasion,
was a native of Eckington, a village in Derbyshire, and was
born in the year 1807. Her maiden name was Barber. In the
sixteenth year of her age she was deeply convinced of sin,
sought and found mercy through faith in our Lord Jesus
Christ, and immediately united herself with the people of God.
On writing to a friend in 1827, after adverting to the goodness
of God in bringing them both to a knowledge of Himself in
youth, she observes : " It is our privilege and our duty to rise
higher." And again : " I feel assured that we cannot be per-
fectly happy until every desire, ever}'- passion, of the soul is
brought into subjection to the will of God." Some time after
this, she kept a diary, a remnant of which is noAv before me ;
from which it appears that holiness was her grand pursuit.
Under date of "January 1st, 1835," she wrote: "Goodness
and mercy have followed me all my days. I can see the hand
of God in every circumstance of my life. The past has been a
year of deeper enjoyment than any preceding one. I have
to-day publicly and solemnly renewed my covenant-engagement
to be the Lord's. O my God, strengthen me, that every power
of body and soul may from this day be consecrated to thee.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 415
that I may count all things as loss for the excellency of the
knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord ! Amen and amen ! " Miss
Barber, however, did not content herself with receiving good ;
but, according to her power and opportunities, she endeavoured
to do good to others. She was faithful and diligent as a
sabbath-school teacher, tract-distributer, missionary-collector,
and visitor of the sick. Soon after this, a more extended sphere
of usefulness presented itself, and she was united in marriage to
the Rev. Peter Harrop, and with him embarked for the Gold-
Coast, where, after a stormy and lengthened passage, they
arrived in safety. This Mrs. Harrop recorded in her diary
with gratitude to God. A week after, she again writes : " I
can truly say, my soul is in some degree quickened since we
came here. Last night I had the privilege of attending the
class-meeting of the leaders here, and found it a very profitable
season. We sensibly felt the Lord in the midst, to strengthen
and refresh our souls. O may He eminently own and bless our
coming among this people !"
These, it is believed, were the last words which she penned.
In another week she was attacked with fever, and in one more
she breathed her last. Mr. Wrigley writes : "During her afflic-
tion, Mrs. Harrop appeared to have strong confidence in God,
and assurance of her interest in the Saviour. Her consolations
occasionally abounded, and she rejoiced in the prospect of a
speedy admittance into the mansions of glory. She did on one
occasion say, ' I did not think I was come to Africa to die ; '
but this was the only expression of the kind she was known to
utter : generally, in the midst of her severest paroxysms of suf-
fering, her language was that of resignation to the Divine will,
and of praise for the mercies by which her past life had been
marked, and the consolations by which she was supported."
The day previous to her death she said, " I shall be in heaven
to-morrow." These were the last sensible words she uttered.
She died on Sunday morning, February 5th, 1837, after a resi-
dence in Africa of only three weeks. Her remains were inter-
red the same day on which she died, attended by the society
and others, in the ground appropriated for that purpose.
Peter Harrop was a native of Hadfield in the Glossop circuit,
and was appointed to the Gold-Coast mission by the Conference
of 1836, but did not sail till the 17th of November ; and, owing
to an unusually long passage, he did not arrive there till the
middle of the following January. He was a young man of con-
siderable native energy and promise ; but almost before he had
416 WESTERN COxVST OF AFRICA.
thrust his sickle into the harvest ripening before him, he was
called away to be no more seen till the resurrection of the just.
He had no apprehension that his affliction would be unto
death ; but he was not unprepared for it : he expressed himself
as happy in God ; and many of his last hours were occupied in
giving utterance to the feelings of his heart, which overflowed
with gratitude for all the goodness which God had showed to
him. " Every thing was done that the skill of the medical
attendant could devise, or the activity of his attendants accom-
plish ; but it was all in vain.^' His Master had come and
called for him. He died on the 8th of February, 1837, in the
thirtieth year of his age. During the latter part of his illness
he was delirious, so that he was not aware that his dear wife
had " first obtained the prize,^' till their spirits mingled toge-
ther in the skies three days after ; and that Mrs. Wrigley had
only just preceded him, as though it Avere to carry the news to
his wife, that her husband was coming ! O how soon did these
three meet again !
" And what a joyful meeting there,
In robes of white array'd !
Palms in their hands they now all bear,
And crowns upon their head I "
Mrs. Wrigley, who also expired on the 8th of February,
only " a few minutes before Mr. Harrop breathed his last,'^ was
a woman of sincere affection and genuine piety, and, by her
attainments and Christian spirit, was admirably^]adapted for
usefulness. She arrived at Cape-Coast with her excellent hus-
band in the middle of September of the preceding year ; and,
deeply affected with the moral degradation of the female sex,
she almost immediately collected a number of them together, to
whom she gave religious instruction, in addition to a school of
female children, which she had under her care, and in which
she took great delight. Previous to her illness, referring to the
Lord's goodness, in the partial restoration of her husband, she
said, " Now that the Lord has given you unto me again, vre
will give ourselves afresh unto him, and be more than ever
devoted to his service." In this state of mind she entered on
her affliction, which had been superinduced by her unfailing
and incessant attentions to her husband, and her generous and
kind assistance to her newly-arrived brother and sister; for,
notwithstanding the loss of rest which she had sustained on
account of Mr. Wrigley's illness, " during the Tuesday evening
she arose four times to attend to the wants of Mrs. Harrop."
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 417
Soon after tliis she was attacked M'ith the seasoning fever.
Durmg the progress of the disease, she was not in that joyous
state which generally characterized lier experience ; and on one
occasion she said, " I beheve I shall die, and I do not feel my
confidence in God so strong as I used to do ; and a sense of my
many short-comings and unprofitableness presses down my
mind, and makes me feel lovv." Her dear husband encouraged
her to look to God, and she soon found comfort. On the day
previous to her death, she wandered much ; but it was evident,
even in her wanderings, that the work of God and his high
praises occupied her mind. At one time she repeated those
words : " They that make the sacrifice shall gain the prize ;''
and at other times Avould praise the Lord aloud. " She died
with the composure of one taking rest in sleep, at half-past six
o'clock " in the morning.
As Mr. Harrop and Mrs. Wrigley died within a few minutes
of each other, they were interred at the same time. The atten-
tion and sympathy of nearly the whole town were excited by
such an unusual and unexpected event ; a large concourse of
people attended the funeral, many of whom bore visible marks
of real sorrow. " It was truly affecting,'' writes Mr. Wrigley,
" to behold the school-children, weeping at the grave of their
beloved mistress. They were much attached to her ;" and he
then adds : " Blessed indeed are the dead that die in the Lord.
Haste, happy day, that shall usher me into the heavenly society,
and to the sight of her whose precious memory is engraven on
my bleeding heart ! "
"These all died in faith." It was in their hearts to labour
for God ; but he saw it best to take them to an early reward,
and to leave the work to others.
Mr. Wrigley was now the only surviving missionary on this
station ; and nothing but the consolations of religion could have
sustained him, under an accumulation of losses so sudden and
severe. But "by degrees," he writes, "I have begun to
resume a measure of restoration from a state which, if continued,
would soon have lodged me in the cold embraces of the tomb.
Life, indeed, in my present circiimstances, has no charms ; nor
could I support myself beneath the weight of such a stroke,
were it not for the hope of ere long joining the glorified spirit
of my devoted partner, and, in the mean time, of following up
those victories of the cross of our Emmanuel which together we
have been enabled to achieve to his glory, since we arrived on
these inhospitable shores." In the same letter Mr. Wrigley
E E
418 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
says, "I am keeping the school together as well as I can, until
you send further help : surely others will be found to occupy
the places of those who are gone. There is indeed a large har-
vest of souls waiting to be gathered in here; but every thing
outwardly seems opposed to its accomplishment : nevertheless,
I will not despair, I will yet hope to see better days in Cape-
Coast." After requesting a quantity of elementary and other
books for the schools, which were much wanted, and speaking
of several openings which presented themselves where they
might establish others, biit that he could " not stir for want of
books," he once more renews his application for help, as follows :
" I have also again to urge the immediate re-inforcement of the
mission : what is one single individual among so many ? I hope,
notwithstanding the sad news which these sheets will communi-
cate, that others will be found to fill up the ranks, and, in the
spirit of one now slumbering alongside Harriet Newell, in the
Isle of France, — Sargent, — 'come to this hell, if it be even to die
here.'" In due course others were found, who freely and
nobly offered themselves to be " baptized for the dead " in this
part of the world.
But we must leave Mr. Wrigley for the present, and
proceed to Sierra-Leone, there also to record three deaths,
which took place during the three succeeding months. These
were Messrs. INIaer, Crosby, and Patterson, Avho all died of the
yellow fever which was just then raging in the colony, and
which soon extended along a considerable line of the coast,
carrying off a great number of Europeans at most of the
settlements. But as we shall have occasion to speak of this
again ere long, we proceed to our melancholy task of giving
biographical sketches of those missionaries who had already
fallen.
Edward Maer, who arrived at Sierra-Leone in the latter
part of 1832, and who had therefore been in Africa upwards of
four years, was a zealous, devoted, and successful missionary.
He was appointed to this station at his own special request.
The origin and manner of his offer is interesting. A respected
brother minister, now in England, but who has spent several
years in the mission work, has kindly furnished me with the
following particulars on this subject. He says, " I v/ish I could
depict to you the spirit evinced, as well as give you correctly the
language employed, by Edward Maer, when he offered himself
for Western Africa. It was in October, 1831, that we stood side
by side for examination before the Missionary Committee. We
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 419
had been associated together for a few days previously. I
admired the man. In my view, he was just what a missionary
ought to be. When asked, in the course of examination, whe-
ther he had a preference for any particular part of the world,
he replied, with deep feeling, and in a spirit of moral heroism,
that Western Africa was laid upon his heart. He had been
reading some recent communications from the Church mission-
aries in that part : they were mourning the loss of brethren
whom that deadly chme had swept away, and whose places had
not only remained vacant, but were likely to remain so, no can-
didates offering for that hazardous post. The surviving bre-
thren strongly appealed as to whether Western Africa were not
included in the Saviour's commission, and whether none were
wilhng to hazard their lives there in obedience to that commis-
sion. Maer felt the full force of that appeal, and not only
willingly offered, but urged that he might be appointed to that
sphere of labour. He was appointed accordingly." From
extracts of letters from Mr. Maer, already before the reader in
this volume, it will be seen that his missionary zeal did not flag
when he reached the warm shores of Western Africa, but that
he laboured on, year after year, and was rendered eminently
useful in the extension and consolidation of that important mis-
sion. Having made arrangements to visit his native country,
with the full intention of returning to Africa at an early opportu-
nity, he embarked for that purpose on Good-Friday, March
34th. The estimation in which he was held was indicated b}''
the fact, that a great number of the natives accompanied him to
the ship, and took leave of him with many tears. On the day
after his embarkation he complained of being indisposed, yet
spoke of preaching to the crew on the following day. But his
labours were at an end : the disease proceeded with such rapid-
ity, that he exchanged mortality for life early on the Monday
morning, March 27th, 1837, in the thirty-fourth year of his
age, and the fifth of his ministry. He was buried at sea.
Benjamin Crosby was a man of more than ordinary piety
and devotedness to God. He was born at Beckingham, in the
Newark circuit, in the year 1807; and lived for some time
during his )^outli in the employ of the late Daniel Webb, Esq.,
of the same place. When about twenty-two years of age, he
was awakened to a sense of his lost condition as a sinner, under
the ministry of the late P^ev. John Smith, at Bassingham, and,
soon after, at a prayer-meeting, found peace with God. He
afterwards removed to Auborne, in the Lincoln circuit, where
2 E 2
420 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
lie began to preacli ; and having acted for some time as a local
preacher^ with great zeal and success, constrained by the love
of Christ and a yearning pity for souls, he offered himself for
the work of the ministry in Heathen lands. " At the quarterly-
meeting which recommended him, he was spoken of as a most
diligent and conscientious farm-servant, as a man mighty in
prayer, and as full of zeal for the glory of God and the salvation
of souls. ^^ About this time he was received as an inmate in the
family of Mr. Thomas Bainbridge, of Lincoln, who has kindly
furnished the writer with the following interesting particulars.
Mr. Bainbridge says, " While under my roof, he anxiously
improved himself in writing, arithmetic, and English. He had
received little early instruction, and was very desirous to supply
this deficiency, especially in regard to his knowledge of the
vernacular language. His experience of the things of God was
deep and clear. His practice was to rise for prayer about
midnight : at these times he often had seasons of special mani-
festation, and overwhelmings of Divine power. He walked
closely with God, enjoying rich and holy communion. His
inward devotion sustained his energy in public. Whether
praying or preaching, he poured forth the fulness of a soul
inflamed with Divine love. His preaching was generally
attended with manifest good. Like his friend, John Hunt, he
had drunk deeply into the spirit of the late John Smith. His
appeals to the consciences of sinners were like thunder, while
with tenderness and pathos he directed the penitent to the
cross, holding forth the freeness and sufficiency of Christ to
save all that believe. In my then large establishment, I felt it
a privilege to have a man of so much piety, prayer, and con-
sistency under my roof. The tone of his piety was felt by all,
yet he was beloved by all."
Having remained with Mr. Bainbridge about three months,
who had previously " known him as a most devoted and upright
Christian, and a zealous and useful local preacher," he was
called out as a supply in the Horucastle circuit, where he
remained until he was sent for by the Missionary Committee,
and then proceeded to Sierra-Leone. We have, in the preceding
chapter, more than once referred to the labours of Mr. Crosby
in that colony : further communications from him while there
may be found in the eighth volume of the " Missionary Notices,"
pages 168, 257, 462. All the energies of his body and mind were
thrown into the great work of saving souls from sin and death.
His spirit was stirred within him when he saw the people in
various parts of the colony wholly given up to idolatry. The
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 421
fervour of his zeal was manifest in the excessive labours which
he undertook, by frequent travelling and preaching, and visit-
ing from house to house. In one of the last communications
which he addressed to the committee, a short time previous
to his death, he gave some extracts from his journal, that
they might "learn how he spent his time, and also see the
necessity of sending men to this colony that both can and
will labour for the salvation of immortal souls j men who
will ' scorn their feeble flesh to spare,^ and not even count their
lives dear unto them for the name of Jesus." In this spirit
Mr. Crosby lived and laboured ; nor could any persuasion
induce him to relax his successful efforts for the salvation of
those around him, whilst any physical strength remained. On
Wednesday, April 19th, he attended to his ordinary duties, and
preached in the evening with his usual energy ; but before
morning he was seized with the prevailing epidemic, which
baffled the skill of the physician, and which rendered him almost
incapable of conversation. To the question, however, " Have
you a bright prospect beyond the grave?" he distinctly, and
with emphasis, replied, " I have." He died in peace on the
24th of April, 1837, in the twenty-ninth year of his age, and
the third of his missionary labours, deeply lamented by his
brethren, and many scores to whom his ministry had proved
" the savour of life unto life."
James Patterson, the third missionary who fell a victim to
the yellow fever on this station, during this unusually unhealthy
season, was brought to a saving knowledge of the truth at
Lynn, in Norfolk, in the eighteenth year of his age ; and from
that period felt an ardent desire to make known the blessings
of salvation to the benighted Heathen. After labouring as a
local preacher in the Lynn and Great Q,ueen-street circuits for
several years, he was appointed by the Missionary Committee
in 1836 to Sierra-Leone. He, together with Mrs. Patterson,
sailed for that place on the Gth of September, on board the
"William and Alfred," and, after a pleasant voyage of five
weeks and two days, arrived at their destination in good health.
But they were not permitted long to labour in this interesting
part of the mission field. Mrs. Patterson escaped the malignant
disease which broke out soon after their arrival; but not so her
dear husband. Mr. Patterson, on the 14th day of May follow-
ing, Avas seized with it, and at the end of a week he sank under
its incurable violence. During his short iUness, his mind was
kept in perfect peace. When he had lost the power of speech,
422 WESTEllN COAST OF AFRICA.
he was asked to raise liis hand if he experienced a foretaste of
future glory ; immediately he lifted up his hands, and, without
a struggle or a groan, fell asleep in Jesus, on the 21st of May,
1837, in the twenty-fifth year of his age, and after a residence
in the colony of little more than seven months. Soon after
this, Mrs. Patterson returned to England.
An account of these afSictive and sad scenes of mortality
arrived in England in rapid succession; and they were
announced in the "Missionary Notices" for August, under the
head of " Death of Missionaries in Western Africa." After
speaking of each missionary separately, in suitable terms, and
with the deepest sorrow regretting their loss, the article closes
as follows : —
These afflictive events are painfully trj'ing to the faith and hope of the church ;
but they are not to be regarded as forbidcUng further attempts for the conversion
of the inhabitants of that fatal clime. Many hundreds of immortal souls have
been brought to a knowledge of salvation, and to the enjoyment of eternal life, by
means of the missions in which these and other precious lives have been sacrificed ;
a result which Christian faith discovers to be worth all the risk and loss ; and even
had the success been less evident, while the apostolic spirit remains in the church,
men will be raised up who will " count not their lives dear to themselves," " that
they may preach among the Gentiles the imsearchable riches of Christ." But
whilst we give expression to these sentiments, which ai'C drawn from us by the
afflictive events now recorded, we most earnestly call on all the friends of missions
— on the Vihole church — to unite with us in earnest prayer to Him, in wdiose hands
are life and death, to throw the shield of his protection around our missionaries,
and to spare and long continue their useful lives. Nor will they forget to implore
consolation and support for the surviving missionaries in "Western Africa, and for
the immediate connexions of our lamented friends in this country, from among
whom they went out ; and to pray that the bereaved chiu-ches at Sierra-Leone,
and at Cape-Coast, may be kept and edified, and ultimately provided with pastors
equal in zeal and love to those whose loss we now deplore.
When this excellent and very appropriate paragraph was
penned, neither the committee nor the general secretaries had
heard of the last death we have narrated, nor of one or two
others that took place shortly afterwards, and which it will be
our painful duty to place upon record. But it Avill be a relief
to the reader, and undoubtedly one to the writer, too, if he will
accompany me to Macarthy's Island, during a short interval,
from these mournful stories.
It may be recollected, that we closed the last chapter at
jMacarthy's Island, on the first day of tlie new year, Avliere the
writer tlien was. The "rumours of war" then mentioned soon
broke out into a series of plundering expeditions, the chief
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 423
object being to obtain slaves. A brief account of those disturb-
ances, which took place at this time and subsequently, in the
immediate neighbourhood of Macarthy's Island, we have given
in the sixth chapter of this work, while describing the crying
evils of the Slave-Trade. The writer was an eye-witness to
some of the desolations perpetrated by these marauding bandits.
In the first of those communications, dated March 13th, 1837,
the reader will find, that in his visit to Jamalli, on the north
side of the river, he beheld the ruins of two towns that had
been destroyed, whilst from a third the inhabitants had all fled,
and not a soul was to be seen. This was on the 25th of
January ; and the following fact connected with that visit will
illustrate the goodness and providence of God, and also exhibit"
in a striking light the constant alarm and dread in which the
inhabitants on this continent are kept, by the frequency of
these plundering expeditions : —
Here I cannot but record the goodness of God in preserving me and my
assistant, John Cupidon, from sudden death. On the way to these places, we met
several Foulahs, who were gathering in the produce of the last rains, and carrying it
to Macarthy's Island for safety ; but on seeing or hearing our horses, they imme-
diately ran into the bush, and hid tlicmselves, supposing we were the war people
coming upon them again. Finding this to be the case several times, Cupidon and
the last Foulah man whom we met, and who, on seeing us, knew us, were both of
opinion that it was dangerous to proceed, as there were only a few people collecting-
in the harvest, and if they saw us or our horses, would probably shoot us before
they could know, or we could tell them, who we were. Cupidon had stated this to
me before, so that I now judged it prudent to ask the Foulah to accompany us,
that when his town's-people saw him with us, they might have no cause to fear.
The man very readily returned with us ; and we proceeded very cautiously till we
reached the town, when, after looking about a little, we sat down under a bentang,
when, lo ! just behind us were three or four Foulahs, in the corn and cotton field,
who seeing our horses, and supposing we were come for more plunder, one of
them was just in the act of aiming at either me or Cupidon with his gun;
though I suppose it was at me, as I was nearest to him, and with my back that way.
Just at this crisis, he ^leurcl the man who had kindly accompanied us speaking, and,
knowing his voice,* withdrew his aim, and called out, Jumali be je ? " Who is
there ?" The man immediately replied, Tobaba fodey bcjong: " The white minister
is here." I turned round and saw these Foulahs coming from behind a large taba-
tree, not many yards from us ; and one of them was then in the act of priming his
gun ! This was a narrow escape ; and with gratitude to the Father of all my
mercies, I felt the full force of that precious text, applicable to all God's chddren,
but which was addressed originally to missionaries, " But even the very hairs of
your head are all nund)ered." (Luke xii. 7.)
The effects of the late rains had, however, now subsided, and
this vi'as what is called the best part of the dry season ; and the
* I had hold of my pony's bridle, and this man was giving it a part of a water-
melon, and, as he was stooping, the horse prevented him from being ^een.
424 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
author, being once more in the possession of health, endeavoured
to shoAv his gratitude to God for that precious boon, by devoting
the best energies of his body and soul to his glorious cause.
The peculiarity of the Foulah mission, having more of temporal
and secular matters connected with it than our missions in
general, demanded, in fact, more strength than he could exert.
For, in addition to the ministerial office which he sustained at
Macarthy's Island, with frequent preaching, pastoral duties,
marrying, baptizing, visiting the sick and dying, and burying
the dead, (there being no other missionary or chaplain on the
island,) he had to direct and superintend a number of mecha-
nics, being architect and builder too; besides which, he had, on
the six hundred acres of land, fifty, sixty, and sometimes
seventy, day-labourers, and at one time a hundred and three,
preparing it for cultivation, with about as many head of cattle :
he was also frequently called to settle disputes between the
natives, and had to act as an arbitrator, or a kind of magistrate ;
and no small time was occupied in dispensing medicine to per-
sons who applied for it, either for themselves or for their
friends. He had, likewise, frequent and long conversations
with many of the Foulahs who paid a temporary visit to the
island, upon the subject of their locating themselves on the
mission-ground ; and he made several visits to the main-land,
both on the north and south sides of the river, having inter-
views Avitli the native kings, and other leading men, and espe-
cially with the "wandering Foulahs," with the same object in
view. He also took two or three journeys into the interior.
Early in this year he proceeded to Madina, the capital of
Woolli; and the following year he went as far as Boollibany,
the royal residence of the almamy of Bondou. In this way his
time was occupied for several years, with not unfrequent inter-
ruptions from sickness, and occasional and necessary visits
Avliich he paid to St. Mary's, on the death of his brethren, or on
other matters of important business.
From this brief abstract it will be seen, that, in addition to
the combination of offices which he sustained, he Avas a kind of
ambassador-general to most of the petty chiefs and kings for
some hundreds of miles, east, west, north, and south of Macar-
thy's Island, But wherever he went, he did not forget the first
and great object of his mission, — " man ruined by tlie fall, and
his redemption by Christ;" and endeavoured, as much as in
him lay, to " preach the gospel to every creature."
His unpublished journal, letters, and other documents, Avould
furnish some interesting particulars, on most of the subjects
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERKA-LEONE. 425
alluded to; but he finds this volume has already reached a
size beyond which he did not anticipate it would extend ; and
he must therefore for the future greatly abridge, or entirely pass
over, many parts of his own personal narrative, and confine
himself to a few prominent features of the mission. Some
account, however, of his journey to Bondou will probably be
given in its proper place.
Early in the month of June, 1837, he accompanied John
Cupidon to St. Mary's, to attend the sessions, in order to obtain
at least restitution for mission-property, so wantonly destroyed
upwards of twelve mouths ago ; but the defendant being absent
from the colony, nothing was done for us at that time. One of
the soldiers from J\Iacarthy's Island was at this period found
guilty of murder, and was condemned to be hanged. This
being the first case of the kind since the formation of the settle-
ment, it occasioned considerable excitement in the colon}', espe-
cially among the natives. Some of our pious members visited
the condemned criminal in the jail, as did Mr. "Wilkinson and
myself. For some time he appeared quite unconcerned at his
awful situation, but at length saw and felt it most deeply, and
earnestly requested us to repeat our visits. On Sunday morn-
ing, the 18th, before going to Barra, I saw him, and in the
afternoon preached in the jail-yard, to all the prisoners, and a
arge congregation of natives, the sheriff and several other
Europeans being present. My text w as Romans vi. 23 : " The
wages of sin is death.'' After describing the nature of sin, with
some of its effects, I more particularly referred to the unhapp}^
man who was about to suffer temporal death for the heinous
sin of murder ; which sentence, awful as it was, was just and
consistent, both with the laws of God and man : but this was
not all; death eternal, or everlasting misery, will be the portion
of every unpardoned sinner. The unhappy culprit was beyond
the reach of human forgiveness ; the sentence passed upon his
body could not be reversed : he must die, and that in a few
hours. After dwelling upon the awfulness of his situation, I
referred to the latter part of the text : " The gift of God is eter-
nal life through Jesus Christ our Lord." The poor condemned
man's situation, and the position which he occupied during the
sermon, were peculiar ; for he was inside the jail, looking at,
and listening to, the preacher from a window of iron bars,
Avhich was about twelve feet from the ground, and, being very
near, he forcibly reminded me of the dying thief upon the cross.
Towards the close, turning to this " other malefactor," I offered
him, in the name of Jesus, the " gift of God," — a free and
426 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
full pardon here, with "eternal life^' hereafter. It was an
affecting time. During the service that awfully solemn hymn
was sung : —
" Terrible thought ! shall I alone,
Who may be saved, shall I,
Of all, alas ! whom I haA'e known,
Through sin for ever die ? "
I felt considerable liberty in warning the multitude, and in
exhorting the poor sinner to look to Calvary, and, during
the last prayer, he shouted out, " Glory to God ! Glory to
God!"
In the evening, after preaching at the chapel, I went again to
the jail, and also the next morning at break of day ; when I
found the prisoner had been on his knees most of the night, but
was from the preceding afternoon quite resigned to die. A few
minutes before eight o'clock Mr. Wilkinson and myself accom-
panied him to the scaffold, and there again prayed with and for
him. The military, militia, and many of the inhabitants had
assembled in front of the jail. It was an awful scene : in a few
minutes the drop fell, and a deathless spirit was launched into
eternity. We had hope, however, in his death ; and on return-
ing to the mission-house, that passage was the subject of medi-
tation, " Wherefore He is able also to save them to the utter-
most that come unto God by Him, seeing He ever livetli to
make intercession for them." (Heb. vii. 25.)
A few days after this, the author returned to his station, and
the following letters, besides some account of the mission, will
give the reader an idea of the epidemic before alluded to, Avhich
had just then reached as far north as the Gambia. They
appeared in the " Missionary Notices " towards the close of the
year, with a short preface, as usual : —
MISSIONS IN WESTERN AFRICA.
The following letters from Western Africa wiU call forth the sympathy and
prayers of our readers, on behalf of those who have been called to labour in the
work and cause of Christ amidst suiTounding pestilence and death. We regret to
add that there is too much reason to believe that the excellent writer of the second
of these letters, the Rev. H. Wilkinson, has fallen a victim to the prevailing
epidemic. The details of this sad bereavement have not yet reached us, but may
possibly amve in time for our Postscript.
Macarthy's Island. — Extract of a Letter from the Rev. JVilUam Fox,
dated August \Oth and Voth, 1837.
1 WROTE to you last from St. ?.Iary's, on the 24th of June, and, amongst other
subjects, gave you some account of the serious sickness with which we were threat-
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 427
ened. Dr. Tebbs died a few days after the above-mentioned date, and I believe
two or three more European sailors from the " Curlew " have died since ; l)ut I am
hajjpy to say that the malignant epidemic has considerably, if not altogether, sub-
sided, at least, for the ])resent. I say for the present, because it is generally
supposed that it will, in a short time, and in a still worse type, be conveyed to the
Gambia by or through the atmospliere. This is inferred from the fact that an
epidemic somewhat similar has broken out on the coast about once in six or seven
years for many years past ; and on those occasions, both at Sierra-Leone, the
Gambia, Goree, and other places, the mortality amongst Europeans has been very
great. From Sierra-Leone we have had no direct communication for some time.
A vessel left there about the 30th of June, bound for England, which was wrecked
somewhere about Cape Roxo ; and I understand some of the sailors have reached
St. Mary's, who state that the mortality there is still very great, so much so, that
in Free-Town there is scarcely a white person to be seen. This statement may be
somewhat exaggerated ; but that it has been, and still is, very serious there, there
can be but little doubt. However, it may take a different course to that of north,
or, by the breath of Omnipotence, may be blown into nonentity ; but at present
this is only known to Him to whom all contingencies are perfectly famihar, and
who, we know, " is too wise to err, and too good to be unkind."
Our doctor here has gone out in the " Curlew " man-of-war, (which lost its
doctor, two or three other officers, and many of its crew,) till they meet with the
admiral, or by some means obtain a surgeon ; so that we are at present, and shall
probably be so for some months yet, without medical aid on this island. xV medi-
cal gentleman from a man-of-war, which happened to be at St. Mary's, from the
West Indies, is acting as colonial doctor there, and will probably be appointed.
I have recently been ill for a few days with rather a smart bilious fever ; but am
now, thank the Lord, in the possession of good health.
I have nothing particular to report in reference to the cause of God here. I
would that I could see better days. I have some good seasons in " preaching
Christ to the people ; " our Sunday-morning congregations are generally very good >
and on other occasions I am sometimes led to sing, —
" The little cloud increases still.
The heavens are big with rain."
But we have scarcely as yet obtained the " rill," much less the " stream," or the
" torrent." May the blessed God undertake his own cause, and, in this distant
part of the moral wilderness, send us prosperity !
The enlargement and improvement of the mission-house and premises are at
length finished ; and heartily glad I am, I can assure you. Besides these, and the
house and chapel at Fattota, I have built for John Cupidon a respectable native
house, contiguous to the mission-house, which, with the expenses of the mission-
gronnd, and near one huncbed head of cattle, will account for the heavy amount for
which I have drawn on the treasurers of late. I have now employed, on the six
hundred acres, about seventy people, on the best parts of which they are growing
rice, corn, and ground-nuts, also a small portion of Indian corn, millet, indigo, and
cotton. All promise very Avell, excepting the rice, which I fear is the fault of the
seed, as the rains are now regularly set in. I have, however, obtained some fresh,
and I hope to obtain a moderate quantity of this useful article of chet. On the
larger portion of the mission-ground there is a sort of creek or lake, which, during
the rains, and for some time afterwards, is rpiitc unfordable. I am therefore build-
ing a substantial wooden bridge across this, in a parallel with a direct or straight
428 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
road, which I have already made thus far. This bridge, being about two hundred
feet long, will cost a few dollars, or rather a few pounds ; but it is essential and
absolutely necessary ; and I have no doubt, when finished, will last many years. A
sketch of the mission-house and premises, with the particulars of what has been done,
I will forward you at the close of the year, if spared. I may, however, by this
opportunity just observe, that the house is now substantial, comfortable, capacious,
and considerably adds to the respectability of the place ; and that, since the rains
commenced, I have been rearing young fruit-trees, and transplanting others of different
kinds from the island and main-land, which will give to the premises a nu-al aspect,
and, in the course of a few years, make the house and yard much cooler.
A chapel will, doubtless, be wanted ere long ; indeed, it would be much more
comfortable if we had one now. On our present premises there is just room
enough ; but as the lot adjoining the south-east end of our premises is offered for
sale, I would strongly recommend its being purchased, as probably another oppor-
tunity of this kind may not occur for many years, if ever, as the front lots, in parti-
cular, are becoming valuable, and several of the merchants are building substantial
stone houses. Two hundred dollars are asked for this lot, with a large native
house, or rather store, of cane and grass, which is worth seventy or eighty dollars.
If you approve of this lot being purchased, [ possibly may exchange it for the one
on the opposite end of the mission premises, which is a corner lot, and which
would answer still better for a chapel ; but the possibility is, that the lot in ques-
tion may be sold before I can hear from you, and in that case what am I to do ?
If I find it is likely to get into other hands, I shall probably venture to purchase
it ; and if you do not approve of it, I must try to sell it again. I have really
expended so much money on this station, that I have not unfi'equently been very
uneasy, lest you should disapprove of any thing I may have done for the benefit
and future w'clfare of this mission. The repairs and buildings are now all finished ;
but, as mentioned before, I am still proceeding with the mission -ground, which, of
course, is not a little expensive. In all that I have done, I have been as economical
as possible.
P.S. August loth. — So imcertain is health in this cUme, that though on the
10 th inst. I was well, yet a few hours after I had written the above, I was attacked
with fever, which continued, more or less, for three days. Yesterday I was better,
and to-day I am, thank God, better still ; and I liope, in another day or two, again
to be in the jjossession of the invaluable blessing of good health.
On the 11th inst., I received letters from St. Mary's, and am sorry to say, that
either the epidemical disease, or black vomit, had not so totally subsided as I had
been led to expect, or that it has broken out afresh. Several of the natives have
died of it, and two or three more European residents, one of whom is Mrs. Grant,
who came out with me upwards of twenty months ago; so that our esteemed
friend, Mr. C. Grant, is left a widower with a motherless babe at St. Mary's, and
several other children in England. I need scarce say, that your missionaries in
Western Africa need a special interest in your prayers. If we fall, it will be in the
field, with the harness on, facing the enemy ; for we shall never run away from our
post till Providence opens the door.
Extract of a Letter from the Rev. Henry Wilkinson, dated St. Man/s, Gambia,
August ISth, 1837.
Notwithstanding that I wrote you a few lines on the 7th inst., I embrace
another (unexpected) opportunity of addressing yon again.
I am truly sorry to state, that the epidemic is still making serious ravages on
THE GOLD COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 429
this island. Sickness and death are marching around us in their ghastly forms;
Such is the nature of the disease, that it baffles the power of medicine and medical
skill. Nearly the whole of the persons that have been arrested by it have fallen
victims. Such a season as this has not been experienced for many years in this
part of Africa.
In reference to my dear wife and myself, I am truly thankful to God, that we
have hitherto been preserved from the pestilence, and that we are at present in
tolerable health, and able to attend to most of our important duties : indeed, Mrs.
Wilkinson is, upon the whole, much better than I ever expected to see her again in
Africa. With care, and our heavenly Father's blessing, I hope we shall be pre-
served to labour a Uttle longer amongst these sable tribes.
As it regards the work of God with us, our congregations continue very good,
and the society and schools are in a good state. I do not mean to say that we
have no discoiu-agements ; for it often becomes our painful duty to enforce discipline
and expel disorderly persons from the society. However, blessed be God ! the
society in general are alive to God, and are ornaments to our holy religion. We
have several promising young men, four of whom I have lately put upon the Plan
as exhorters.
I must mention another subject, and that is, that the chapels at Soldiers'-Town
and Melville-Town are in a state of great dilapidation, from the strong tornadoes,
and very heavy and incessant rain, which we have had for several weeks past.
Indeed, this has hitherto been a destructive season in every sense of the word. It
will be absolutely necessary, as soon as the rains are past, and the materials can be
got, to repair these buildings. I suppose they may be put in order for about thirty
pounds ; however, I will assure the committee, that economy shall be attended to,
and that nothing -will be done but what is really necessary.*
" The excellent writer of the second of these letters " did fall
" a victim to the prevailing epidemic,^^ and that in a few days
after he wrote the letter we have just given. But the painful
news did not reach Macarthy's Island for some two or three
weeks after. In the mean time, the author was fully occupied
with the affairs of his own important station. The rainy season
had commenced ; and the oversight of the farms, cattle, &c.,
with preaching, prayer-meetings, and pastoral duties, gave him
plenty of exercise, both mental and physical. The rains were
rather heavy just at this time, which threatened the rice-ground
with a failure. Moreover, the monkeys and hippopotami had
repeatedly (the latter during the night) obtruded themselves
upon the mission -property, and did considerable damage. The
immense forest on the main land had now increased its foliage,
and the wild beasts had approached near to the water's edge.f
* "Missionary Notices," vol. viii. pp. 574 — 57G.
•f- A short time previous to this, as the author was returning from Fattatenda on
the upper river, on board a sm<all vessel, he saw two elephants apparently just
coming to drink, at a little fording-place ; and as the cutter was not more than
thirty or forty feet from the water's edge, there being no breeze, and the ebb tide
nearly run out, we wei-e going very ilowly, so that I liad a good view of these
430 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
The lion's roar was frequently heard, and the leopards and
wolves were exceedingly numerous ; so that it was dangerous to
move on the continent. A singular accident, attended with the
loss of two lives, occurred about this time. On the other side
of the river, nearly opposite to the mission-house, at a fording-
place, where there is a man stationed to look after the
canoes that are frequently crossing this part of the river, there
was a monkey on one of the trees, contiguous to the hut in
which the man resides ; and as it was making a peculiar kind of
noise, a boy ran to see what was the matter. When he arrived
at the foot of the tree there was a large leopard, fixing his eyes
upon the monkey, which had caused the noise ; but instead of
waiting for the descent of the monkey, the leopard instantly
seized the boy. A Mandingo man, hearing the screams of the
child, ran to his assistance, and with a cutlass rescued the lad ;
but the fierce animal then sprang at the man, and tore off a
part of the top of his head : he, however, succeeded in driving
a\vay the leopard ; but both the man and the boy were dread-
fully wounded. They were taken to the hospital, and died in a
few days afterwards.
Almost every arrival from St. Mary's, about this time,
brought the intelligence of some death or deaths among the
Europeans; and on the 12tli of September we heard of the
death of Mr. Wilkinson. On the 22d of the same month, the
w^riter embarked on board the " Bathurst," a small schooner,
bound for St. Mary's. He was very unwell at the time, and
had been for some time previously; and more than one kind
friend advised him not to go down until the rains had com-
pletely closed ; for though Macarthy's Island was an inferior
settlement and mission-station, in many respects, to St. Mary's,
the Europeans there being often deprived of those domestic
comforts, and even necessaries, wliicli could generally be mo-re
rejidily obtained at the latter place ; and though the heat was
more intense by several degrees, and at this time there was no
medical aid on the island ; yet there was this important fact
connected with Macarthy's Island, — the dreadful epidemic
which was committing such awful ravages along the Coast and
also at St. Alary's, had never been known to reach so far inland
as Macarthy's Island; and the probability was, that on this
occasion it would not; whereas, by going to St. Mary's, I was
noble animals. One of them appeared from seven to eight feet in height, of a light
grey coloui'; the other was much smaller. But the sailors shouting, " Hurra,
hurra ! " caused them immediately to retire into the hush, when one or two more
were seen by some of the crew, who had run up the rigging of the vessel.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, ANU SIERRA-LEONE. 431
entering into the midst of it. The writer was not insensible to
this fact, and to the kind wishes of his friends ; and thongh
he was aware that Mrs, Wilkinson, who was dangerously ill, was
not without a friend, he felt it a duty wdiich he owed to his
departed colleague, as w^ell as to the mission, to hasten thither,
and render all the assistance in his power to the missionary's
widow, and to the bereaved flock, who had been deprived of
their pastor.
On the passage down we heard, by letter, of the death of
Governor Kendall, on the 20th, after a few hours' illness ; and
of several others. On another occasion we met a small boat;
and, in answer to my inquiries to the captain, who spoke broken
English, the mournful reply was, " No more two or three white
men live at St. Mary's this time." We reached that station in
safety on the evening of the 26th -, and I found Mrs. Wilkinson
at Mr. Grant's, in a very weak and debilitated state ; but with
the prospect of recovery, which was ultimately realized.
Henry Wilkinson was an amiable, kind, faithful, and affec-
tionate friend ; a sincere, pious, and upright Christian ; and a
prudent, thoughtful, diligent, zealous, and devoted missionary.
He had laboured on this station for two years and six months,
with great pleasure and profit to himself, and with much benefit
to others ; and it was in his heart to have continued much
longer.
But his course of usefulness was interrupted, and finally
terminated, by an attack of the fatal epidemic which had
carried off so many Europeans at St. Mary's, as well as several
of the brethren and others at Sierra-Leone. The letter we have
given in a preceding page, dated "August 18th," was probably
the last which he ever wrote. On the following Sunday,
August 20th, he attended to his duties as usual, and was then
in the enjoyment of good health ; and in a letter addressed to
the author, communicating some account of his sickness and
death, after speaking of his general good health up to the very
day he was seized with the fatal disease, the gentleman who
wrote says : " And I further think he never laboured with
greater satisfaction or better success. I was myself in the cha-
pel last Sunday, and heard him preach from that important
passage in the Psalms : ' So teach us to number our days, that
we may apply our hearts unto wisdom;' and I think I never
heard him preach with such enlarged views, or enforce the doc-
trine of the text Avith greater liberty or happier effect." On
Monday morning he was still as well as usual, and during the day
432 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
visited the sick, and interred one or two corpses ; but in the
evening he was attacked with fever, which soon proved to be of
the worst type. The day following he was still worse. The
acting colonial doctor was, unfortunately, himself ill at the time,
and subsequently died of the same disease ; but two men-of-war
coming in on that and the preceding day, both the surgeons
from those vessels very kindly and promptly attended him ;
but, alas ! it was to no purpose ; for the " disease," to use his
own terms a few days previously, " was such, that it baffled the
power of medicine and medical skill." Neither that, nor the
kind, unwearied, and affectionate attentions of his wife, and
other friends, nor the prayers of the people, were of any avail :
he continued to grow worse until late on Thursday evening,
August 24th, 1837, when, without a struggle or a groan, he
breathed his last. He died in the twenty-eighth year of his
age, and in the third of his missionary labours ; aiid was buried
the following morning in the new chapel, near the pulpit from
which, on the previous sabbath, he had given out the hymn on
the 650th page of the Wesleyan Hymn-Book, entitled " Triumph
over Death," and commencing with, —
" And must this body die ?
This well-wrought frame decay ?
And must these active limbs of mine
Lie mouldering in the clay ? "
So it was ; though he little knew how soon it would be so :
but he was found " ready " to " enter into the joy of his Lord."
The writer had the melancholy pleasure of improving his
lamented friend's death, from the same pulpit, on Sunday,
October 1st, from the consoling words of the Saviour, addressed
to the sisters of Lazarus, ''Thy brother shall rise again;"
(John xi. 23 j) and on that occasion he gave out the same
hymn, illustrating as it does the sublime doctrine of the resur-
rection. One verse may be introduced here : —
" God, my Redeemer, lives,
And ever from the skies
Looks dow7i, and watches all my dust,
Till He sball bid it rise."
Glorious truth ! It was good to be there.
The worst part of this unprecedentedly sickly season, it was
hoped, was now over, as only one or two deaths of the malig-
nant yellow fever had occurred up to this period, since the
author arrived at St. Marv's. But there was much general
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 433
sickness, especially among the Europeans, all of ^liom had suf-
fered more or less ; and many had almost miraculously escaped
death, as in the case of IMrs. Wilkinson. The writer also,
in the middle of October, was once more brought to the
margin of the grave ; but again God interposed, and " the fever
owned his touch, and fled.^^ During his illness he was anxious
to write a few lines to his dear friends in England, to be for-
warded in case of his death ; but he could not hold a pen. He
was, however, very happy, even when burning with fever, parched
with thirst, and tortured with pain ; and could sing, —
" Yet, when melted in the flame
Of love, this shall he all ray plea, — -
I the chief of sinners am.
But Jesus died for me."
In the two letters already before the reader, dated August
10th and 18th, the one from myself, and the other from the
late Mr. Wilkinson, some idea may be formed of the mortality
which took place during the periodical rains of this year. But
though the Avorst part was now past, several more deaths of the
same dreadful type occurred after this, though they Avere princi-
pally among the shipping ; and the colony continued in a very
unliealthy state for some months after the rains ceased. Sel-
dom, indeed, has the unsparing and impartial stroke of death
been more strikingly manifest, than it was during this season at
St. Mary's on the Gambia. The cases were not only sudden,
but rapid and general : neither age^ sex, station, profession, nor
character, w as exempt. One of the earliest victims was a fine tall
officer at Fort Bullen, on the opposite side of the river ; and the
first intimation of his illness was made known by hoisting a
blanket on the flag-staff. Medical attendance was immediately
sent over; but in a few hours the English ensign, at half-mast,
told us it was too late, and that his wife was a widow. This
occurred in the middle of June : neither the sentinel guarding
the barrack-gate, nor the troops inside, Avith loaded cannon,
could keep off this " last enemy ;" and having once entered the
fortress, he left not until it was announced, " The commandant
is dead ! "
On the same day the surgeon of the " Curlew'^ man-of-war
fell a victim to the disease ; and, in a few days after, the
purser and master, with fourteen of the ci'ew, besides several
others that were ill. This "common foe" had now entered the
town of Bathurst ; and the merchant in his counting-house, the
magistrate on the bench, the tradesman in his shop, the secre-
tary and civil officer at his desk, and the military on parade,
F F
434 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
became diseased^ sickened, and died, as did also the colonial
doctor, whilst in the act of prescribing for others. Nor was this
all ; for the highest functionary in the colony, the resident at
Government-house, and the faithful, zealous, pious missionary,
whilst going about doing good, fell by the ruthless grasp of this
" king of terrors."
Many of these cases had occurred when the writer was at St.
Mary's, in June ; and several of the sufferers he had visited in
their illness. Dr. Tebbs, who expired on the 29th of that month,
lie had repeatedly seen, and witnessed his last moments. On
that occasion there were seven Europeans in the room ; and, in
a week or two after, the writer and another were the only two
that were spared out of the seven. Immediately after attending
the funeral of the colonial surgeon, I had to embark for
Macarthy's Island; and on my return, in September, the town
presented the appearance of some solemn day of fasting and
liumiliation before God : business was, indeed, in a great
measure suspended ; and if the black captain's statement to
me, on his passage down, was not literally true, it was so in
part; for there was scarcely a white man to be seen. The
author was reminded of that dreadful scourge, the cholera,
which had committed such ravages in some of the populous
English towns a few years previously. But even that was not a
parallel, in point of comparative numbers, to the yellow fever at
the Gambia during this dying season. Not less than one-half
of the Europeans then residing at St. Mary's, were in a few
sliort weeks numbered with the dead ; exclusive of the naval
officers and crews of Her Majesty's ships, and of other Europeans
and Americans, of merchant-vessels, besides a number of Mulat-
toes, and a great number of the natives. The fact, that during
this season four medical men died at St. Mary's, and another
on his passage from Sierra-Leone to this place, shortly after,
whilst a sixth, who was intended for the Gambia, died before
his embarkation at Sierra-Leone ; will exhibit, in a striking
light, what has before been stated, that " sickness and death
were marching around us in their ghastly forms," and that
" such was the nature of the disease, that it baffled the power of
medicine and medical skill." It was indeed a season never to
be forgotten by those who witnessed it, or lived to survive its
effects.
But it is now time that we proceed to the Gold-Coast.
The reader will doubtless recollect the peculiar circumstances in
which we left Mr. A¥rigley there in the early part of the year, —
mourning the loss of his beloved wife, and his other two com-
THE GOLD-COAST^ GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
435
panions and friends. But though " cast down, he was not
destroyed." '-'Faint, yet pursuing,'^ Avas his motto; and as his
physical strength returned, he appHed himself to his high and
important duties wdth unwearied diligence and zeal. The build-
ing of the chapel went on rapidly, and he visited several places,
which soon after became the heads of circuits, or separate sta-
tions. Thus did he labour on week after week, and month
after month, until the last month but one in the year, when he
was seized with illness as he was returning by water from Anna-
maboe, and in a few days " ceased at once to work and live."
George O. Wrigley was appointed to Cape-Coast by the
Conference in 1836, and immediately sailed with Mrs. Wrigley
for that interesting station. He arrived there on the 15th of
September, and met with a kind reception from all parties. In
speaking of this in a letter to the committee, some weeks after,
he says : " It is impossible for me to describe ray feelings on
first viewing, about four o'clock p.m. on the day above stated,
the place of my future labours. I thought of my predecessor,
of his labours, and of his premature end ; nor could I for some
time restrain those painful emotions which these thoughts excited.
They were not, however, of long continuance ; nor have I since
laboured under similar feelings for a single moment." He at
once entered upon his work in a true missionary spirit, preach-
ing, visiting, and journeying from place to place, embracing
every opportunity of usefulness, and crying, "Behold, behold the
Lamb ! " So early as the month of January in the following
year, there was the prospect of a wide and effectual door being
opened for the preaching of the gospel in Coomassie ; one of the
members of the society who had been residing there having
reported to INIr. Wrigley, that, in the house where he dwelt, he
had several times had the sons of the king of Ashantee with
him at prayers ; and that, on Christmas-day, the king requested
their attendance at the palace, when he, in conjunction with
one or two others, had singing and prayer, in the presence of
the monarch.
Towards the close of this month, Mr. Wrigley had a serious
attack of illness, which was followed by the terrible afflictions
and bereavements already before the reader. Such painful
events W'Ould have been severely felt in any country ; but in a
distant and barbarous land, far away from friends and relations,
they are doubly painful ; and by our now deceased friend they
were felt most acutely. But in the letter from which we
made several painfully-interesting extracts, on a previous page,
2 F 2
436 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
after appealing in strong terms for more help, liis concluding
words are, "I hope, in reference to myself, in the midst of my dis-
couragements, (and I have them from a variety of quarters,) that
I can say, 'Neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor principalities,
nor powers, nor things present, nor things to come, nor height,
nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate me
from the love of God which is in Christ Jesus,' and from my
work in this section of the mission-field, until my appointed
time." In this spirit did Mr. Wrigley live and labour, " follow-
ing up those victories to the cross of our Emmanuel '' which he,
together with others, had already " achieved to His glory,'' until
his appointed time came; and then he was found ready for
still more delightful employment. In the early part of Novem-
ber, he was seized with the illness Avhich proved fatal to him,
but was graciously supported during his affliction; and he
received the kindest attentions from the affectionate people to
whom he had ministered with so much success. In death, as in
life, he reposed with unwavering confidence in the atonement of
Christ, and rejoiced in hope of the glory of God. He died at
Cape-Coast Town on the 16th of November, 1837 ; and his
funeral was one of the most aff'ecting scenes which had for a
long time been witnessed. Mr. Wrigley was a devoted and
excellent missionary ; and the fruit of his evangelical labours in
Western Africa remain to this day.
We have now completed a brief record of eight deaths which,
according to the announcement at the commencement of the
chapter, took place in the course of nine months. Four of these
having occurred at Cape-Coast, that rising and promising soci-
ety was thus deprived of all its European agents. It will also
be seen, by a reference to the printed Minutes, that Mr. Wil-
liam Sanders at Sierra-Leone, and the writer at the Gambia,
were now the only two Wesleyan missionaries on this extensive
line of coast. Mr. Sanders, indeed, had been toiling alone for
about six months ; but it was not like the fishermen at " the
lake of Gennesaret," who, on one occasion at least, are said
to " have toiled all the night, and taken nothing." No :
''the Galilean Pilot" Avas with him; and though some of the
" nets" had beeu broken by the cold hand of death, seldom has
that saying been more remarkably verified, " God buries his
workmen, but carries on his work :" for there was during this
year an addition to the society at Sierra-Leone of some hun-
dreds of precious souls, including those on trial; and the income
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 437
of the society in weekly and quarterly subscriptions amounted
to ^240.
On the 19th of November, ]Mr. Sanders was cheered and
encouraged by the arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Dove, and Mr.
Henry Badger. The former, it will be remembered, had
laboured at Macarthy's Island for about three years ; but Mr.
Badger was a new missionary. On the 26th of the same
month, the writer had the unspeakable pleasure of giving a cor-
dial welcome to Mr. and Mrs. Swallow, and Mr. T. Wall, at the
Gambia : the latter was appointed to St. Mary^s, and the for-
mer to Macarthy^s Island. After a few days' residence at
Bathurst, Mr. and Mrs. Swallow and myself, with a number of
mechanics, embarked for the upper station, which place we
reached on the 16tli of December. On the 3d of January,
1838, the drooping spirits of the bereaved societies at Cape-
Coast were once more revived by the arrival of Mr. and Mrs.
Freeman, on which occasion the members came from various
parts to welcome their new friends.
The following statistics will show an encouraging increase on
all the stations, more particularly at Sierra-Leone and Cape-
Coast : —
Sierra-Leone, members in society, 1,337; children in the
schools, 1,134. St. Marifs, members in society, 386 ; children
in the schools, 182. MacartJnfs Island, members in society,
173 ; children in the schools, 74. Cape-Coast, members in
society, 428; children in the schools, 105. Total, members in
society, 2,324; children in the schools, 1,495.
This table exhibits a net increase of members on the preced-
ing year of five hundred and fifteen, besides several hundreds
who had been received on trial as candidates for church mem-
bership; and there was, likewise, nearly a corresponding
increase in the schools.
On the 2d of March Mr. Sanders, being greatly debilitated,
left Sierra-Leone for England, followed by the prayers and
affections of the people. He arrived at Gravesend on the 21st
of May, 1838, and has since that period been engaged in the
ministry at home. The following were now the appointments
for this part of the mission-field; they are taken from the
Annual Report of that year : — *
Sierra-Leone, Mr. Dove and Mr. Badger.
St. Mary's, Gambia, Mr. Wall ; Mr. Amadi Gum, assistant missionary.
* They were at that time correct, except that W. Juff, one of tlie assistants,
was at St. Mark's, and not at Macarthy's Island.
438 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Macartlu/s Island, Foulah Mission, Mr. Fox, Mr. Swallow ; Mr. John Cupidon,
Mr. Pierre Sallah, and Mr. AVilliam Jiiff, assistant missionaries.
Cape-Coast, Mr. Freeman.
We shall close this chapter with the appropriate paragraph
written by the general secretaries, as furnishing a kind of
recapitulation of the deaths recorded in the preceding pages,
with some other judicious remarks on the state and prospects of
the work in this interesting part of the great missionary field.
It is with emotions of no ordinary kind that the committee turn to this part of
the mission field. The past has been a year of unprecedented trial, and painful
visitation. During the prevalence of the fatal epidemic which has been permitted
to ravage the coast of Western Africa, Messrs. Crosby and Patterson died at
Sierra-Leone ; Mr. Maer died in the ship in which he had embarked, on his return
to his native land ; and at St. Maiy's, Mr. ^¥ilkinson was removed to a better
world, after a short affliction. Cape-Coast has been the scene of a similar mortal-
ity, and tidings have successively been received of the death of Mr. and Mrs.
Harrop, and Jlrs. ^\'rigley, and latterly of Mr. Wrigley. The removal of so many
valuable agents, which, to short-sighted mortals, may appear untimely, calls for the
full exercise of faith and resignation, on the part of the friends of the Society.
But while they feel the painful bereavements which have been experienced, the
alleviating features of the affecting case must not be overlooked. That the beloved
bi-ethren and their wives were all permitted delightfully to experience, in the hour
of death, the consolations and enjoyments of that religion, to the spread of which,
among the children of Africa, they had devoted themselves, demands the most
heartfelt gratitude ; and that the various stations should, at the same time, be
blessed with great spiritual prosperity, ought to be regarded as an indication that,
although Almighty God has been pleased to remove many of the workmen, it is his
will that the work itself in Western Africa shall be prosecuted, and as a pledge
that it shall gloriously succeed, if the Society continue faithfully to provide the
appointed instrumentaUty. Additional encouragement is derived from the twofold
consideration, that the Society has not yet lacked a supply of missionaries for this
part of the world, who freely and nobly offer themselves to be " baptized for the
dead;" and that a native agency is rising up, which, ere long, may take a very
important part in the work of diffusing Christianity through that benighted
country, |
CHAPTER XXI.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAM15IA, AND SIERRA-LEONE, WITH A JOURNEY
TO BONDOU.
(1838.)
Great spiritual Prosperity of the Missions — Native Agency — Triumphant Deaths
of the Missionaries and their Wives — A Supply of Labourers still found — The
Gold-Coast — Mr. and Mrs. Freeman — Death of the latter — Sierra-Leone and the
Gambia — Another Robin Hood and Saul of Tarsus near Macarthy's Island —
The Author pays him a Visit — Tlie fifth and last Report of the Southampton
Committee — The Author sets out on a Journey to Bondou — Arrival at Eatta-
tenda in the upper River — Some Account of the Port, Trade, and Neigh-
bourhood— Incidents on the Way to ]\Iadina, the Capital of Woolli — Some
Account of Madina and Barrakunda — Circumcision — Bambako, the Residence
of Slantamba, the King's General — Albino Negroes — Incidents on the Way,
and Description of Kanipe, Dirma, Walufarra, and Tambakunda — The Author
sleeps in the W^ilderness — Wild Beasts — Arrival at Kotchair, the last Town of
Woolli — Enters Nouday, the frontier Town of Bondou — Well received —
Julangal, a Town of SerrawooUies— Arrival at Jume, a modern Athens — Inci-
dents at Jume, and on the Way to Weegi, Gallordie, and Goodeerie — First
Rain — Proceed to Fittinyibbi, Dandudy, and Fettibooki — Country more open,
populous, and better cultivated — Arrival at the Capital — The Almamy encamped
at a short Distance from the royal Residence — The Author pays him a Visit —
Is introduced into the Camp — Interview and Conversation with this Chief on
the Subject of Christian Missions — Gives to the Almamy and his Warriors a
brief Summary of the Doctrines and Precepts of the Gospel — Is listened to with
Attention — This Smumaiy well received — The Author then addresses the
Almamy on the Impropriety of going to War — This was a critical Moment —
In the Midst of a Band of half Savages, all armed with Weapons of Destruction
— But " Lo, I am with you " was present — Second Interview with the Almamy
— Again warned him of his Danger — The Author's Return to the Capital —
The Almamy and Soldiers immediately followed — Interview with the Almamy
at Boollibany — His friendly Conduct to the Author, who bids him Farewell —
Boundaries of Bondou defined — Some Account of Boollibany — The Manners
and Customs of the People — Their Houses — Furniture — -Dress — Food — Religion
— Government — Almamy Saada — Their Laws — Polygamy — Commerce and
Trade — Agriculture — ^lode of Cultivation — Scripture Illustrations — The rainy
Season — Tornadoes — FertiUty of the Soil — " The Pastures are clothed with
Flocks, the Valleys are covered over with Corn " — Mungo Park — Their Wars
— Superstitions — Salutations — The Author's Return to Fattatenda — Incidents
on the "Way — Arrival at the Banks of the Gambia — African Travelling — Safe
Anival at Macarthy's Island — Meets his Class.
The extract from the General Ileport viiih. which we closed
the last chapter, in addition to the chastened feelings and
appropriate remarks on "the removal of so many valuable
agents/^ contains also several important and encouraging facts;
440
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
aud though these have been brought out and illustrated in the
preceding pages, we may be allowed a passing remark or two in
this place. In the quotation reference is made to the ''great
spiritual prosperity " of the missions. It is consoling to know,
that " the glorious gospel of the blessed God/^ like its immuta-
ble Author, is " the same yesterday, and to-day, and for ever ; "
the same in all ages aud places : and perhaps in no part of the
world has its divine efncacy been more gloriously displayed than
on the continent of Africa. It has there proved itself to be
" the power of God unto salvation " to hundreds and thousands
of the sable sons of Ham. The climate on the western coast of
that vast continent, we know, both from experience and observa-
tion, is exceedingly prejudicial to European constitutions ; and
many of our beloved missionaries and their wives have fallen
under its withering influence, in rapid succession. But there is
nothing in the climate, — nothing in that death-dealing atmo-
sphere, even during the worst of those epidemical outbreaks, —
nothing in the deeply degraded and dove-tailed superstitions of
its inhabitants, — nothing in the combined powers of earth and
hell, that can blight, or weaken, or withstand the effects of the
gospel. That is suited to all climates, and to all conditions of
people : it cannot, it is true, change " the Ethiopian skin,^' but
"the purple current " flowing from the cross can wash the black
man's black heart "white as snow j" and that it should have so
gloriously triumphed, during that awful year of mortality, when
Almighty God was pleased to remove so many of his workmen,
was indeed matter for devout thankfulness. The climate had
cut down the messengers one after another, but the message
was received by many hearts ; for during the whole of that year
" the Lord added to the church daily such as should be saved."
A second encouraging feature, which affords additional evi-
dence that the effects of the gospel are every where the same,
was found in the fact, that a native agency was rising up, and
usefully employed. At this period of the history of these
missions, the Gambia had the largest amount of co-operation in
the way of native assistant missionaries; but even at Cape-
Coast, though that mission was in its infancy, the fruit of those
who had fallen in the field was seen in several excellent youths,
who began to take an active part in the mission ; and at Sierra-
Leone there were, at the period now under review, forty-six
class-leaders, and about thirty local preachers ; and several of
the latter were soon after wholly employed as native teachers.
Nor must we omit another fact, to which the committee very
properly referred, — " that the beloved brethren aud their wives
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 441
were all permitted delightfully to experience, in the hour of
death, the consolations and enjoyments of that religion to the
spread of which among the children of Africa they had devoted
themselves.'^ How abundantly do the preceding pages testify
to this ! They died far away from their native land and friends ;
but they died in the faith; and that not only peacefully and
safely, but in most instances triumphantly. He who had said,
" Lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end,''' did not forsake
them when their heart and flesh failed them. No :
" Their God siistain'd them in their final hour,
Their final hour brought glory to their God ! "
For, when the tongue was no longer faithful to its office, there
was the speaking eye conveying the sentiment, " My flesh and
my heart faileth ; but God is the strength of my heart, and my
portion for ever." And even when the eye was gently closing
in death, the uplifted hands spoke, with more than vocal energj'',
of "victory, victory, through the blood of the Lamb!" How
encouraging this to all the friends of missions ! And what a
healing balm, especially to the bleeding hearts of those parents
and relations at home, who had given their children, brothers,
and sisters to this glorious cause !
Another encouraging fact (the last we shall now mention,
and which has already been referred to more than once) was,
" that the society had not yet lacked a supply of missionaries for
this part of the world, who freely and nobly ofi'ered themselves
to be ' baptized for the dead.' " "We have seen in the preceding
chapter, that most of the vacancies occasioned by the great
mortality of that period were filled up ; and that other mission-
aries were sent out during the year, whose arrival we shall record
in due course.
Mr. Freeman had not heard of the death of Mr. Wrigley until
he arrived at Cape-Coast; and when he entered the hallowed
" chamber where the good man met his fate," and wdiere four of
the servants of the Lord had so recently breathed their last', his
mind for some time was depressed ; but he endeavoured to cast
his burden upon the Lord, and at once entered upon his work
with a cheerfulness of spirit that was truly admirable. The
committee entreated for him and his wife, and for the other
mission families, the earnest and continued prayers of their
friends to " Him who was able to save them from death." But
how short-sighted is man, and how unsearchable are the ways of
God ! Mr. and Mrs. Freeman had scarcely entered upon their
labours, when the latter was removed to an early rest ; and thus
442 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
again was the passage verified, " The one shall be taken, and
the other left."
Mrs. Freeman embarked for Cape-Coast with her husband
on board the " Osborne," on the 4th of November, 1837 ; but
having a long and tedious passage, which arose principally from
their being " becalmed under the oppressive heat of a tropical
sun for the space of thirty days," they did not reach their desti-
nation till the 3d of January, 1838. But they landed iu good
health; and Mrs. Freeman immediately set about the female
department of the mission work, in the same spirit as her hus-
band. But while thus engaged in doing good, and arranging
plans for future usefulness, and almost at the very time that
Mr. Freeman was regarding it as a special providence that his
partner had accompanied him, he was called to part with " the
companion of his toils;" "the desire of his eyes being taken
away from him with a stroke." Mrs. Freeman was seized with
a violent inflammatory complaint which terminated her life in a
few hours; resigning her happy spirit into the hands of Him
who gave it on the 20th of February, 1838, after a residence at
Cape-Coast of forty-eight days, which was precisely the number
of days Mr. Wrigley had been dead when Mr. and jMrs. Freeman
arrived. The death of this valuable woman Avas a great loss to
the native females, as well as to her husband ; and her funeral
furnished evidence of the respect which she had secured for
herself from all classes of society.
At the time of this bereavement JMr. Freeman was ill with
the seasoning fever; but he gradually recovered his health;
and as his physical strength increased, the inner man being
renewed, he devoted himself afresh to God and his cause.
Applications being made to him for teachers and missionaries
from twenty to eighty miles round, he was distressed that he
could not meet all the demands. In his first letter to the com-
mittee he had stated that he should not consider his work done,
until he had unfurled the banner of the cross in Coomassie, the
capital of Ashantee ; and early in the following year he had the
honour, privilege, and happiness of doing this. But we must
for the present leave this enterprising missionary, and proceed
to the other stations.
At Sierra-Leone the new brethren were delighted with the
healthy and prosperous state of the mission, and, during the
first quarter, they witnessed an increase of upwards of fifty,
besides a considerable number who were admitted on trial. The
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 443
colony, however, was still sickl}^ and the mortality among the
shipping was great. In the vessel which conveyed the mission-
aries to Sierra-Leone, there were, including the crew, about
forty persons ; but in less than five weeks eight of them were
dead. This was the case, also, at the Gambia; but the brethren
at all the stations for some time continued tolerably well. At
the commencement of the year, the author had occasion to pay
a visit to St. Mary^s, when he embarked for the second time in
a small open boat. On the passage down we had sometimes to
anchor, and on oue occasion, especially, the hippopotami came
playing around us in great numbers, and so near as to endanger
our lives. But a merciful Providence watched over us, and we
reached our destination in safety. This uncomfortable mode of
travelling, however, brought on a very severe bilious fever, which
confined me to bed for some days. Having recovered, and
accomplished the object of my journey, I returned, leaving Mr.
Wall in excellent health, and happy in his work.
On arriving at Macarthy^s Island, Tebruary 22d, I found Mr.
and Mrs. Swallow had had a slight attack of fever, but were now
much better. The country round was again in a state of com-
motion, arising from some Bambarra warriors, on the north
side of the river, and a Foulah chieftain of Foota Jallon, on the
south side, who was a kind of Robin Hood, as a civilian, living
by plunder, and a "Saul of Tarsus^' in religion, being a most
bigoted follower of the false prophet of Mecca. Several towns
and villages were again pillaged and destroyed, and many of the
inhabitants taken into Slavery. Those of the Foulahs at Broko
and Jamalli who could escape, hastened to Macarthy's Island
for protection. The author, hearing that the Foota Jallon chief
was remaining a day or two at Broko, paid him a visit; and he
was afterwards permitted to come to Macarthy's Island, bring-
ing with him only half a dozen of his people. This was on the
sabbath day, and he actually came to chapel in the forenoon of
that day. But for further particulars respecting this chieftain,
as well as the disturbed state of the country, I must refer the
reader to the Annual llepoi't for 1838, and to the sixth chapter
of this work.
The term of five years, during which the Southampton Com-
mittee had engaged to make provision for the Foulah mission,
having expired, they published their last Report, of which the
following is a copy, Avith the exception of some few extracts
from the authoi-'s communications, which have already appeared
in difl'ercnt })arts of this ^vork.
444) WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
THE FIFTH AND LAST ANNUAL REPORT OF THE SOUTHAMPTON COMMITTEE OF
THE INSTITUTION FOR BENEFITING THE FOULAH TRIBES, AND, THROUGH
THEM, WESTERN AFRICA; WITH A BRIEF ACCOUNT OF THE PROCEEDINGS
OF THE COMMITTEE FOR PROMOTING THE CIVILIZATION OF THE CHRIS-
TIAN FOULAHS, AND OTHER ABORIGINES.
The committee, more than ever impressed with the wrongs and miseries of
Africa and with her just claims on tlie British nation, now take their leave of those
friends who have supported them ; and this they do vrith feehngs of regi-et and
thankfidness ; — of regret, that the time of superintending this good work is closed,
according to their primary announcement ;- — of thankfulness, that they have been
instrumental in bringing the cause of the Foulahs before the pubUc ; in building a
mission-house, school-room, and chapel on Macarthy's Island ; in gathering a
church of more than two hundred members, among whom Di^-ine worship is con-
stantly maintained ; and in proclaiming to thousands, in that land of horrible dark-
ness, by a native as well as a Eiu-opean agency, the glad tidings of a Saviour.
They also deem it to be a ground of especial gratitude, that the four Gospels have
been translated into the Mandingo language, and that one of them has been printed
at the expense of the British and Foreign Bible Societj'. This boon to Africa they
consider as an ample compensation for all the exertions employed in this important
undertaking.
The committee rejoice that two more missionaries have been sent to join Mr.
Fox at Macai-thy's Island, and that Christian instruction will be earned on with
unabated zeal and fideUty by the Wesleyan Missionary Society ; and also that a
native of Africa, who has been taught the art of printing in London, is about to
sail for the Gambia, with a printing-press and materials, to aid in the propagation
of Divine truth.*
The following communications from Mr. Fox, at Macarthy's Island, will, we
doubt not, interest our readers : —
" I visited Jamalli," says Mr. Fox, " a few weeks ago, and also Laming, another
small Mandingo town; at the former forty, and at the latter twelve, huts were
destroyed by fire : the Foulah town, about half a mile eastward, was not injured,
though without inhabitants."
The author tlien referred to the providential escape men-
tioned in the preceding chapter ; after which he says : —
" I embraced this opportunity to persuade these people of the propriety and
benefit of forming a town on the six hundred acres on Macarthy's Island ; and I
marked out proper streets, and measured a number of lots. I am happy to say,
that three days ago two famiUes came and fixed upon their lots ; and as I have also
there a hut myself, I hope this example will be speedily followed.
" I have for some time had thirty liberated Africans employed on the mission-
"Tound, clearing it of brush-wood, ant-hiUs, and clumps of trees. Should a few of
the Foulahs' or Teucolors settle on it, 1 shall allow them to cultivate as much as they
can. I have purchased nearly one hunth-ed head of cattle, and intend to piu-chase
more. Thus, I hope, a considerable number of Foulahs may, ere long, be induced
* The hvo missionaries here mentioned included W. Juff, one of the assistants ;
but he continued at St. Mary's ; and the " native of Africa," unfortunately, died in
London, — ^but it is pleasing to add, that he died happy in God. His name was
John Dick.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 445
to take up their abode under the protection of the British flag ; as there are many
on the upper river who are constantly suffering from the ravages of war, plunder,
and oppressive customs, who would probably be thankful for a place of refuge."
Here quotations are made from the writer's coramiinications
respecting the disturbed state of the country in the upper river :
his having rescued a poor Fouhah woman from slavery ; also a
visit which he paid to Madina, the capital of Woolli ; with some
account of the Foulahs ; and an audience with the king, when
he witnessed the awful superstition of a little boy being dedi-
cated to the devil. The particulars we have given in the sixth
and thirteenth chapters. The committee then proceed : — •
It was mentioned in oiu" last Report, that a committee, composed of gentlemen
of high respectability and well-known philanthropy, had been formed in London
for promoting the civilization of the Christian Foulahs, and the converted aborigines
of Western Africa. They have had several meetings to deliberate on the best 2)lans
of oi)eration, and for the selection of proper agents. They have also purchased a
large number of implements. It is their intention, without delay, to bring the six
hundred acres, so liberally assigned them, into cultivation ; and to purchase other
land as it may be deemed advisable. For this purpose they have engaged Mr. W.
Fisher, whom they regard as a suitable person to superintend the concern ; since,
besides his knowledge of agriculture, he is said to possess considerable skill in
mechanism. The committee have likewise reason to expect that Charles Grant,
Esq., and a few gentlemen in Western Africa, will hold a correspondence with their
secretary on all afl'airs of importance. And it is with much satisfaction they
announce, that the plan of the Society has received the approbation of Lord
Glenelg, Her Majesty's secretary for the colonial department.
Thus we see that God has graciously given to this Christian enterprise an encou-
raging measure of success. In due time we shall reap more abundantly, " if we
faint not." " Duty is ours, irrespective of results." " We pray, ' Thy kingdom
come,' and this is our duty ; but we must use the means also, that the kingdom of
grace may be advanced ; that God in Christ may be more known, believed in,
loved, obeyed, owned, and honoured, by ourselves and all others." " There is as
well a prayer in actions as in desires, or any other way." " Let each, then,
detached from the mass around him, as he will be distinct from it in death, and at
judgment, and to all eternity, consider solemnly within himself, — ' Tlie work of
sowing is mine.' 'Whatsoever a man soweth, that shall he also reap;' for He,
whose promise cannot fail, has declared, ' My word shall not return unto me void ;'
neither can His promise be emljraced in vain." *
President. — Lieutenant-General Orde.
Treasurers. — R. Howard, Esq. ; Robert Lindoe, M.D.
Secretary. — J. S. Elliott, Esq.
Committee. — Heniy Pownall, Esq. ; Thomas Gurney, Esq. ; Thomas Farmer, Esq. ;
John S. Elliott, Esq. ; R. Howard, Esq. ; Rev. Robert Heath, M.A. ; Rev. Jabez
Bunting, D.D. ; Rev. John Beecham ; Rev. Robert Alder ; Rev. Ehjah Hoole.
Southampton, January 20th, 1838.
* Sermon by the Rev. T. Dale, prefixed to the Church Missionary Report
for 1837.
446
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
RECEIPTS.
£
s.
d.
1833, Subscriptions, dona-
tions, and
collections . . .
710
0
0
1834, Ditto,
ditto . . .
087
18
3
1835, Ditto,
ditto . . .
710
3
0
1836, Ditto,
ditto . . .
937
1
10
1837, Ditto,
ditto ...
840
19
2
£3,886 2 3
At tlie close of a long list of annual subscriptions and dona-
tions, the following summaiy of its finances was added : —
Statement of the Income and Ej'penditure of Five Years, from Jan. Isf, 1833,
to Dec. Zlst, 1837.
PAYMENTS.
For mission, school, and
teaching, &c., £350 per
annum for five years, as
per agreement 1750 0 0
For building mission-pre-
mises, school-room, &c... 350 0 0
For purchase of land, made
over to the New Com-
mittee in London 225 0 0
For Bibles and portions of
the holy scriptm-es, Ara-
bic, French, and English. 30
Loss by exchange, Jersey
and Guernsey 3
Boat to convey cattle across
the Gambia 25
Towards expenses of trans-
lating the holy scriptiu-es
into one or more native
languages, as per agi-ee-
ment 1000
Balance paid to New Com-
mittee in London 503
0 0
1 3
0 0
0 0
1 0
£3,886 2 3
Note. — The whole sum given, without de(hiction for expenses, and applied to the
object, according to the comnuttee's engagement.
The "new committee" referred to, consisted principally of
those who had composed the previous one, and their object was
to promote civilization among the native tribes, by follo^ving the
footsteps of the missionary, being fully persuaded, that the gos-
pel is the great and primary instrument in raising fallen and
degraded man in every part of the world.
The writer had been expecting Mr. Fisher, mentioned in the
preceding Report, for some months past ; but, on April 2d, he
received letters from the general secretaries, saying, that he
was detained by a temporary indisposition, so that the super-
intendence of the civilization department still devolved upon the
missionary. But having now an excellent colleague, his labours
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 447
\^'ere not so abundant as tliey liacl been heretofore ; and, having
paid one hundred and three labourers their three months'
Avages,* for working on the mission-ground, and re-engaged the
greater part of them, with overseers, and made some other
arrangements, he prepared for his journey to Bondou. He
was anxious to start earHer in the season, but was waiting the
arrival of Mr. Fisher to take charge of the agricultural part of
the mission. On Wednesday, April 4th, 1838, he therefore
embarked on board the cutter "Fox," bound for Fattatenda,
Mr. Swallow having accompanied him to Fattota. The writer
had with him, on this journey, our valuable assistant, John
Cupidon, and another member of the society, who was by birth
a Teucolor, though he had never been in the country ; he could,
however, speak the Foulah language, and, having some know-
ledge of Divine things, was also of service. Having an unusually
quick passage, we arrived at Fattatenda on the evening of the
7th, nothing very remarkable having occurred on the way.
Fattatenda is one of the oldest and most distant ports on the
Gambia, and has been frequently mentioned, incidentally, at
least, in the former part of this work, as well as more recently.
TliC advantages of this noble river for carrying on trade with
the natives in the interior of Africa, was well known to our
countrymen upwards of two centuries ago; since which period
Fattatenda has been one of the most important trading-factories
in the upper river. Several of the European merchants residing
at St. Mary's have stores at this place, built in the native style,
with a considerable assortment of British merchandise, which is
intrusted to native traders. These are situated on the south
bank of the river. The inhabitants here are but few, and the
principal part of the trade comes from the opposite side ; cara-
vans frequently coming from some hundreds of miles inland,
bringing hides, ivory, and gold-dust, and sometimes slaves ; the
latter are generally conveyed to Bissao, and some of the other
rivers near the coast, south of the Gambia. Some of the mer-
chants, through their agents, transact business on board their
vessels, which are lying at anchor here for several weeks toge-
ther, to prevent, in part, the trouble and annoyance which is
experienced on shore from those who come to trade, who not
only strike a very hard bargain for the European articles, but
also incessantly beg and expect presents, over and above
the regular "customs" or presents which are given to those
who purchase a certain amount of merchandise ; and there
* At the rate of about Id. per clay.
448 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
being no kind of protection, the disputes frequently run Ingli,
and often come to blows.* But this is sometimes tbe case, even
on board : it was so last year, when the writer was at this place.
E,um appears to be the curse of these people, and is the cause of
many of these quarrels. If the sonninkeas (drinking and war
people) know that rum is on board, they are immediately there ;
nor will they leave, either with good or bad words, until they
have obtained some of this liquid fire : the consequence is, that
many of the traders positively refuse to bring this article to
Fattatenda, except in small quantities, as presents to the king
of Woolli and Cabu ; for if they leave St. Mary^s Vvith it on
board, they will do their best to dispose of it before they reach
this place. And if not another drop was ever permitted to be
imported to the Gambia, it would be no small blessing to this
part of the continent. Independent of this, there certainly
needs some sort of protection for the European merchants and
native traders. Government has been petitioned upon the sub-
ject, but hitherto to no purpose. The merchants at Bathurst
are so divided in opinion as to what ought to be the kind or
amount of protection afforded, and to what part of the upper
river that protection should extend, and, besides this, there is so
little unanimity amongst them on other subjects, that one or
two efforts which they have made among themselves to produce
a better state of things, have entirely failed.
The river here is about one hundred yards across, and at this
season from two to three fathoms deep ; but the banks are high,
and the water-marks of the last rains are from forty to fifty feet
above its present level. The surrounding country is rather
mountainous, and in some places rocky. It is so on the north
side of the river, close to the Avater's edge, where the rock is
upwards of one hundred feet in height, and where a small fort
might be erected at a trifling expense. From the top of this hill
an open and picturesque country, of a semicircular form, from
east to south and south-Avest, is presented to view ; and, far as
the eye can reach, the beautiful Gambia is seen in its upward
* On one occasion a native trader named Jacko, connected with one of the
merchants at St. Marj''s, who has a store at this place, was so pestered with these
trouhlesome fellows, to whom he had made several presents, but who still demanded
more, that, being miable to bear it any longer, he at length ran out to the yard,
and fetched a piece of tire-wood, brought it into the store-room, and declared he
would set fire to the powder-magazine, and blow himself and them all to atoms, if
they did not instantly leave the premises. This bold threat, which I believe would
have been put into execution, had the desired effect, and he thus rid himself of their
troublesome importunity.
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 449
course. The influence of the tide is felt beyond this place, as
will be seen at a subsequent period.
Fattatenda is supposed to be as far from Macarthy's Island
as that is from St. Mary's, which, according to some, would
make it six hundred miles from the Atlantic. But the distance
is by no means so great. The latitude, notwithstanding the ser-
pentine course of the river, is about the same at Fattatenda as at
its mouth ; but the longitude, I believe, has never been taken.
Macarthy's Island is said to be one hundred and seventy-five
miles east from St. Mary's, so that probably the direct distance
from the sea-coast to Fattatenda is about three hundred miles ;
but, taking the river in its winding course, it cannot be much
less than four hundred and fifty miles from the Atlantic, though
some writers think it is not so far.
In proceeding to give some account of this journey, the '
writer will now have to use the personal pronoun, when giving
extracts from his journal ; and his remarks will be confined, in
general, to what was Avritten at the time.
Fattatenda, Sunday, April 8th. — We arrived here last evening ;
and being anxious to do something to-day for my Divine
Master, and knowing that all days are alike to these ignorant
and degraded people, I embraced an early opportunity of hold-
ing divine service, before the busy hours of trading commenced.
I took my stand under some large trees on the south bank of
the river, and preached to about twenty Mandingoes, from
John iii. 14, 15 : " And as Moses lifted up the serpent in the
wilderness, even so must the Sou of man be lifted up : that
whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have eternal
life." I was much thanked for it afterwards. Mr. Cupidon
prayed at the close of the sermon ; and who knows but that
some good may result from this first attempt to benefit the
sable sons of Ham in the Upper Gambia?
9th. — A great deal of trade has been going on to-day, and,
as usual, a little confusion and palavering, in which I thought
it prudent to take no part. I had a conversation with an old
sonninke, as to his soul and a future M^orld ; and among a
number of shrewd but irrelevant replies, he said he knew more
about this world than the next, but that, if I would give him a
dollar's worth of tobacco,* he would leave ofi' drinking, and
* This is the American leaf tobacco, sent out in hogsheads, and is retailed by
■weight ; but small quantities are sold by the number of heads or leaves. It is one
of the staple articles of trade, and is purchased by the natives to be used as snuff.
into which they manufacture it themselves. Very few use it in any other way.
G G
450 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
turn to God. I have to-day engaged a man as a carrier ; and
the harbour-master goes with us to Madina, where I hope to
obtain a guide to Bondou from the king.
10th. — This morning I rose long before day-break, and, as
soon as it was light, left Fattatenda. Although I had endea-
voured to take as feAV things as possible, yet, when we had
packed all up, making three large bundles, I had to hire another
carrier : the Foulah interpreter carried one bundle, and the hired
servants the other two ; Cupidon and myself having a few small
parcels on horseback. The wharfinger arrived early, but would
not conduct us to the king of Woolli, unless I gave him
another bunya ("present"). Having at length complied with
his request, we set off; and about an hour^s ride — principally
over low clayish ground, the foot-path being very irregular, and
much rent and torn up from the excessive heat — brought us to
Bantondiug ; having left Bajakunda, through which I passed
last year, a little to the right. Here we halted : it being the
residence of Walley the wharfinger, and the next town being at
a considerable distance, I was told we must remain here till
towards evening, the people pointing to the place where the
sun would be when we should start. I felt a little disappointed
at so sudden a resting-place, but knew it would be in vain to
argue the matter with them, as they themselves seldom or never
travel any distance in the heat of the day.
Having paid ray respects to the alkaid, he presented me with
a couple of kolas, and soon after sent us a small goat for break-
fast. Walley also presented me with a fowl, which he brought
me to kill, as the Mohammedans never eat anything killed by
the Pagans; but this office I conferred upon some one else.
About eleven o'clock breakfast was ready, which consisted of
several bowls of pounded corn made into a sort of kouskous, but
not near so well seasoned as that which is made by the Jollofs.
However, I made a tolerably good meal ; after which a portion
of scripture was read, and prayer oflPered up to God for the
inhabitants of the town and the surrounding country, and for
the Divine protection and blessing on the journey.
Bantonding is a small town of Mandingoes, who are princi-
pally Pagans ; and a few hundred yards to the left there is a
Foulah town of the same size; probably both would contain
about eight hundred souls ; deeply sunk in ignorance, depravity,
and superstition. In one of my Avalks through the town, three
good-looking girls came and presented themselves before me,
each holding in her hand a small piece of straw, which they
desired me to take from the one whom I thought to be the most
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 451
handsome. Not knowing at first what they meant, I took two
of the straws, at which the}^ had a hearty laugh. Soon after tliis,
I met with a venerable-looking Mohammedan, who said he was
very glad to see me, having heard of me a long time. He
asked me many times if I was well ; and, Avhen about to leave,
the old man prayed that God and the prophets might preserve
me : during the prayer, and at the end of every sentence, the
people present said, " Amiri ! amin ! " at the same time striking
their hands against their foreheads. When the prayer was
over, the old marraboo spit on his hand, and drew it across his
face ; and thus ended this ceremony.
About two P.M. there was a chase after 'an elephant by the
Foulahs of the town close by, which they succeeded in cap-
turing ; but I knew nothing of the affair till I saw a number
of the town's-people briuging-in large pieces of the flesh of this
noble animal, which they say is very good.
The sun having considerably declined, I was anxious to pro-
ceed, and sent the alkaid a small present, wishing to know if he
was ready, as he had informed me it was his duty to conduct me
to the king. But an old sonninke from Madina being in the
town, in a state of intoxication, who was very desirous of accom-
panying us, the alkaid wished me to wait till he was gone ; but
the fellow would not go till I went; and for some time I
scarcely knew what to do, but at length agreed to wait for the
alkaid. As the evening was by this time far advanced, it was
proposed that we should start when the moon arose; but I
preferred remaining till early in the morning, to which the
alkaid readily agreed. To a late hour the inhabitants were
engaged with their customary dancing, drum-beating, &c.
My bed consisted of a thin country mat placed upon the warm
ground, my Mandingo frock or shirt was my pillow, and a
pagne and blanket my bedding ; but I was quite warm enough
the greater part of the night without either of them.
11th. — At half-past four a.m. we re-commenced our journey,
the old sonninke having started during the night. At eight
o'clock we arrived at Subakunda, a Julor town, which stands
upon an eminence. The huts are built with mud, covered with
tliatch; and two small portions of the town are walled round.
The water is fetched from a valley nearly half a mile distant,
where there is a well about forty feet deep, the lower part of
which appears to have been cut through a rock. Many of the
Foulahs were here, giving water to their cattle, and others
engaged in washing their clothes. The inhabitants of this place
are Mandingoes, though called Julors, from their being nearly
9 r 9
*• tr <v
452
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
all traders in gold, which they obtain from Bambouk, Bambarra,
and otlier places in the interior, and which they exchange at
Fattatenda for European articles. They appear to be .an intel-
ligent, warlike race ; but are nevertheless very superstitious,
being half dressed with greeyrees. They were, however, very
civil to me, as were all the people we have hitherto seen ;
being informed that I was a minister of the gospel, and had
nothing to do either with trade or with war. Here we had to
halt again till evening. The few things which we are carrying,
consisting of clean linen, tobacco, and a few bafts as presents,
with some beads to purchase provisions, and a considerable
number of Arabic scriptures to give away, are still too heavy
for our three people ; and I have sent back to Fattatenda every
thing which I could possibly spare. This arrangement will
enable the carriers to walk with more speed, and at the same
time prevent the appearance of our having merchandise, as the
natives naturally suppose every thing we have are articles of
commerce.
A few minutes past five p.m. avc left Subakunda, accom-
panied a short distance by Tatta Fodey, a native merchant or
slatee, and one of the head-men of the town ; and, a little before
eight o'clock, arrived at Madina, the capital of Woolli, the Avhole
of the way being through an immense forest, and the foot-path
being exceedingly narrow and crooked. I was again taken to
the yard of Sandi, who is a kind of secretary of state : he was,
as before, the worse for liquor, as were several others who came
to see us. Sandi told me that, as soon as he heard that I was
coming, he immediately killed a goat, — that was my present :
he was then anxious to know what I had brought for the king
and himself. Being made acquainted with the articles which
I intended for His Majest\^, he said he thought the king would
not accept of them, especially as I had brought no rum ; and
he was also of opinion that he would not allow me to proceed
to Bondou, as there was some palaver between him and the
almamy, but which would be settled in a few days, and then
the king would inform me whether I could go or not.
Althougli I knew something of the palaver here spoken of,
yet I did not believe all that Sandi said : I knew that he was
all this time seeking for a present for himself, in which he was
greatly assisted by those around him : indeed, he told me that
he would not conduct me to the king till he had received
what he considered was his right. I offered him the value of
two dollars, which he refused ; I then proposed leaving the
matter till the morning, as it was nov/ getting late ; with which
JOURNEY TO BONDOU,
453
he readily complied, and immediately took the king's present,
Avhich consisted of two pieces of blue baft and a little tobacco.
John Cupidon accompanied him, and brought back the king's
compliments; and, soon after, Ilis Majesty sent me some koiis-
kous and fowl for supper. Between eleven and twelve we
retired to rest, my bed being of the same construction as that
of last evening. My people were quite discouraged; saying, if
the king vrould not allow us to pass through his country till
the palaver was settled, we had better return ; to which I would
not listen for a moment. Indeed, I was persuaded the king
would allow me to move on without further interruption ; his
fear, I conceived, would be that if he prevented me from
having an interview with the powerful chief of Bondou, it
might be attended with disagreeable consequences to himself.
However, on retiring to rest, I did not fail most sincerely,
by prayer and supplication, to make my requests known unto
God.
12th. — We rose early; and thinking that Saudi would like
tobacco better than the beads which we presented to him last
evening, we gave him two dollars' worth ; but he received it
with great indifference : nor would he introduce us to the king,
until I had given him a piece of baft. This appeared to satisfy
him, and we at once proceeded to the royal residence. We
found the old king lounging upon his bed inside his hut ; and I
was, as on the former occasion, seated beside him : the rest of
the company squatted upon the floor. Being told that I was
going to Bondou, and that I called to pay ray respects to him
on the wa}^, he answered, " Very good : you can go, and I hope
God will preserve you." He then asked, what was the object
of my visit to Bondou ; and being informed that it was upon
the same business about which I came to see him last year, he
again answered, " A^ery good." I then asked, if he was still
desirous to have a missionary in his kingdom ; when he replied
in the affirmative, and said that he would give him gi'ound,
either by the water-side, or farther inland, whichever we might
prefer. On taking my leave, the king said I might proceed on
my journey as soon as I pleased.
This interview with His sable Majesty, after the report and
annoyance of last evening, was quite refreshing, and I was
desirous of leaving directly; but we could not get away till
evening, and were nearly the whole day beset with a number of
rapacious beggars. About five p.m. we proceeded to Barra-
kunda, a large marraboo town, about a mile east from the capi-
tal, and took up our abode with the alkaid. By this time I was
454 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
very hungry, having eaten but little the last two days ; and just
as I was looking out for a fowl, our landlord presented me with
one ; but before it was cooked, I was glad to eat a handful or
two of ground-nuts. My bed to-night was upon the bentuny,
having over it a conical roof, as I thought it would be a little
more free from lizards and other reptiles, which abound in this
place.
Madina, the capital of the kingdom of Woolli, lies due north
from Fattatenda, about twenty-five miles distant. It is a
respectable walled town, and contains about twelve hundred inha-
bitants, the greater part of whom are sonnmkeas. The wall is
about eight feet high, and has three entrances or gates, between
each of which the ground outside is excavated several feet deep :
the wells are all inside. The name of the present king is
Mansa Koi : his residence and dress ordinarily differ but little
from the rest of the natives. He is rather stout, and is about
sixty years of age, having reigned thirteen years. His prede-
cessor, whose name was Faring, reigned upwards of twenty
years ; and the one preceding him was " the good old king"
mentioned by Mungo Park, when here towards the end of
1795. But in Park's second journey, in 1805, his friend, the
former king of Woolli, had died; and having then a large
escort, the new king, demanded presents in proportion. Two or
three of the old men with whom I conversed have a distinct
recollection of that celebrated traveller.
In 1818, Major Gray took Madina in his route, in proceeding
to the interior ; and he was greatly annoyed at the insults, and
even assaults, committed upon some of his men. " Such a bare-
faced and determined set of thieves they never met/' Matters
at one time ran so high, that the commander " ordered the men
to load and fall in;" and on another occasion "the bugles
sounded to arms;" but a collision was happily prevented; and
having added considerably to the presents, and at length
obtained guides, they left " that nest of thieves."
I am not aware that any European has visited this place since
Major Gray, which is now twenty years ago. The appearance
and site of the town have not, during that time, undergone any
material alteration, nor, indeed, for nearly the last half century ;
for Mungo Park, in his first visit to Madina, describes it sub-
stantially as the major has done, and as it is also described by
the Avriter of this work. The " eight hundred to a thousand
houses" mentioned by Park, is probably an error of the press or
of the pen.
13th. — AYe are waiting here (Barrakunda) for Babukar, a
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 455
man of some note, who resides with the celebrated Moham-
medan priest at Jume, the second or third town in Bondou.
Happening to be here, and being strongly recommended to me
as a guide, I have agreed to wait till he returns from Fattatenda,
which is expected to be this evening.
We are here rather indifferently supplied with provisions :
the people seem very poor, which is generally the case with
those towns contiguous to the capital. There are a few sheep
and goats running about ; but the price they ask for them is
very high, and withal we have not the articles they want in
exchange for them. The inhabitants eat pounded corn, made
into a kind of pudding, and very seldom taste animal food.
Our landlord lives upon this, and presents us with the same ;
but myself and two others of our company cannot touch it :
were it not for a little tea and sugar which I have with me, I
should be uncomfortable : this, with half a partridge, has been the
whole of my subsistence to-day. Well, I ought not to com-
plain ; and especially on such a day as this : it is Good-Friday ;
and I have not forgotten, that on this day " for me the Saviour
died." We have endeavoured to improve it ourselves as well as
we could, by reading, singing, and prayer ; and this evening I
addressed a few of the marraboos upon the all-important subject
of Christ crucified. One of them sprang from his seat, and went
a few yards from me, saying to one of his fellows, " Mind, he is
going to warn us now." God grant they may take warning
before it be too late !
14th. — During the night some strangers, or travellers, called,
and asked for lodgings. The alkaid was some time before he
would admit them, saying that his yard was full of strangers.
At day-break we found that the principal man was a messenger
from the king of Salum, (between Goree and St. Mary's,) to
the almamy of Bondou, and that he was returning from the
latter place, with a couple of men from the almamy. About
nine a.m. Babukar arrived from Fattatenda; so that I was in
hopes of leaving in the evening ; but was disappointed, as he
said he could not accompany me till his business with the king
was settled, which he would get done as soon as possible.
This town is much larger than it was when I was here last
year, besides having a good clay wall built all round it, with six
or seven entrances. The wells are outside, where there are also
a few more scattered huts. The ground, for some distance
round Madina and this place, is cultivated during the rains
with corn and rice, cotton and ground-nuts : the cotton they
convert into country pagnes, which they use, or exchange for
456 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
European goods : they also dispose of tlie ground-nuts, and
some of the corn, in like manner, to the traders at Fattatenda.
The inhabitants of this marraboo town are much more indus-
trious and frugal than the Pagans of Madina, who live princi-
pally by begging and plunder.
The rite of circumcision has recently been performed upon a
number of youths from this and the neighbouring town. They
are located under the shade of a large tree, about half a mile
from this place, Avith their mats to sleep upon ; and their pre-
sent residence is enclosed by a temporary fence of wattled straw
or grass. They have two or three attendants, in the capacity
of surgeon and cooks ; and a considerable portion of their time
is occupied in singing, clapping hands, and dancing. I am told,
there are sixty-nine in this group, some few having left : these
are remaining, until all have recovered. Dr. Winterbottom, in
his account of Sierra-Leone, has some interesting remarks on
this ancient ceremony : he states, that circumcision is in use
among the females in some parts of the Coast, though not in
the neighbourhood of that colony ; and Mungo Park mentions
the fact, that "both sexes, whether Bushreens or Kaffirs, on
attaining the age of puberty, are circumcised." In this instance,
however, they were all boys.
We have again to-day been but scantily supplied with food ;
but our landlord having presented us with a sheep this even-
ing, we are quite in good spirits,
Sunday, 15tli. — This is Easter-day; and I have been much
interested and blessed in reading the account of the Saviour's
resurrection, as given by the four evangelists. After breakfast I
I'ead and explained, in a large hut full of people, the first chapter
of Genesis. In praying afterwards, I had considerable liberty ;
the people were very attentive, thanked me sincerely, hoped
God would bless and preserve me on my journey, give me long
life, &c.
Finding that our expected guide will probably have to wait
several days longer, we have agreed to go on to the next town
this evening, as he will most likely overtake us before we come
to Jume. On leaving, I presented the alkaid with my blanket,
as it was an article he very much wanted, and I stood in no
great need of it. Three hours' ride brought us to Bambako,
having travelled south-east by east. We passed one Foulah
town about mid-way : the path was varied, principally over a
hard yellow clay soil, mixed with small quartz pebbles, and
much broken into deep ruts by the rains. In one place it was
so steep and rocky, that I had to dismount.
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 457
Bambako is somewhat celebrated as the residence of Man-
tamba, the king's general, or head-warrior. He was not at
home when we arrived, but was expected during the evening.
Major Gray reckons this place to be thirteen miles from Madina.
I thought it was not quite so far : probably mine was a some-
what nearer route than that whicli he took.
16th. — We rose early, and left a small present with our land-
lord for Mantamba ;* but Avhen we called to see him, he was in
a state of intoxication, not having been in bed all night. He
nevertheless received us cordially, but said I could not go yet,
as he had not given me any thing ; and that, if I Avished to
remain a month, I was Avelcorae ; and much more to the same
eflFect. I was therefore obliged to wait the day, or a part of it
at least, till this man recovers from his revelry : so I returned to
my lodgings. In about an hour after this he came, to give me
" compliment," as he called it, bringing Avith him a griot, with
a large fiddle, and a number of attendants. He immediately
commenced dancing, and put his body and features into all
sorts of attitudes. Soon after this, he came a second time, and
wished me to see a bullock, which he had ordered to be killed
as a present for me.
Bambako was described by Major Gray as " a very miserable
village, not containing more than twenty huts of the poorest
description." It has, however, since that period, much im-
proved, being now a walled town, with some good native houses
and stores, and contains from eight hundred to one thousand
souls, nearly all Pagans. I find that Tatta Fodey is here wait-
ing for Mantamba to go to Madina about the palaver with
Bondou, which is in substance this : Some time ago, a caravan
was robbed between Bondou and Fattatenda ; and the almamy
having heard that some of the Woolli people were connected
with the robbery, he demands the value of the stolen goods
from the king of Woolli.
In this town I saw two of those rarities of the human species,
called by the Mandingoes " Funnc," and by the Spanish
" Albinos," or white Negroes. I had seen one of these singular
beings at Subakunda, in my journey to Madina last year. At
St. Mary's, too, a member of our society and her husband are
both very dark ; yet she has had two or three children who were
* The same person mentioned by Park, in his second journey, among others io
whom he gave presents, as follows : — " To Mantamba, the king's own son, amber,
5 ; coral, 5 : 10 bars." He was then a young man, and probably resided at
Madina.
458 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
perfectly white : oue of those I also saw ; but neither of them
lived long. In the two instances at Bambako, they are both
females ; the one about twenty-five years of age, and the other
fifteen : they are sisters, and their parents have other children
quite black. They appeared sickly ; but I was told that they
are healthy and strong, and as capable of work as any of the
others, which I very much question. The elder I saw at the
well, drawing water, and she was remarkably robust ; but they
both suffer greatly from the bite of sand-flies, musquitoes, &c.
Mr. Mollien, when at Foota Jallon, speaks of " a young Albi-
no ^^ whom he saw, and was informed that the Blacks marry
these women, and that they bear children, and that, when
united to men of their own colour, the offspring of this union
are as white as themselves. Here I was informed to the con-
trary. They associate, it is true, with the others in their juve-
nile sports ; but they are generally diseased, and of an unsightly
appearance ; and the men look upon them, as one expressed
himself to me, as " a wonderful thing," or something out of the
common course of nature ; adding, very significantly, in refer-
ence to the two in this town, " They will never obtain husbands
as long as they live."
A little before six p.m. Mantamba having awoke from a few
hours' sleep, I immediately sent John Cupidon, our landlord,
and Bukana, with a little tobacco as a present, and an order on
Fattatenda for one piece of blue baft, stating that I wished to
proceed on ray journey. They found him at the store-door, seek-
ing after more rum. He thanked me for the present ; and said
I might go, and he hoped God would go with me, and preserve
me, but that he should come and see me before I started. On
hearing the latter part of the message, and fearing that if he
came he would press me to wait till morning, I instantly
saddled my pony, and off we started ; and two hours' ride
brought us to Kanipe, having passed two small Foulah towns on
the w'ay.
17th. — Kanipe* is a walled town, diagonally formed with an
outward fence of stakes and prickly bushes. There is also in
the interior a sort of citadel or fort, within w liicli the alkaid and
a few others reside. There is one well inside the town, and
another without. I was desirous of leaving the place this
morning; but our landlord and a few others entreated us so
* Mentioned by Park and Gray, both of whom found great ditRculty in ol)taining
water, not fi-om its scarcity, l)ut from the people alleging that it was their pro-
perty, and they must be paid for it !
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 459
earnestly to tarry a short time, that I have promised to wait till
evening.
We this forenoon obtained a good breakfast of rice and fowl,
and afterwards read a portion of holy writ, and offered up
prayer to the God of all our mercies. Some of the children at
this place had never seen a white man before, and the mothers
amused themselves and frightened their offspring by bringing
them to see me, when the infants especially began to scream
out most lustily. The inhabitants here are mostly sonninkeas ;
and we have been complimented during the day with a couple
of griots. There is another town about a mile and a half dis-
tant, in the neighbourhood of which there are a number of lads
from this place, who have recently submitted to the rite of
circumcision.
Between five and six p.m. we proceeded on our journey.
After travelling about two miles we passed a village called
Sutuba, and four miles further we came to Dirma, where we
halted for the night. Dirma is a small dirty town, with a loose
stockade fence, and the people are a mixture of Jollofs and Ten-
colors : how they came here they cannot tell. Here we were
told that three days ago a man with his family (consisting of his
wife, one son, and two daughters) left this place for the next
town on his way to Bondou, where he was going with some
cattle, and was attacked by some Foota Torro Foulahs; and
though he was wounded from a shot, yet he and his son suc-
ceeded in driving them off. About midnight we had a good
supper of kouskous, and, as usual, then spread a mat upon
nature's carpet, commended ourselves to God, and went to
sleep.
18th. — We started at day-break for Walufarra : this place
being at a considerable distance, we carried water Avitli us.
Nearly four hours' ride through an immense wood, east south-
east and east, brought us to our destination. Walufarra is a
small miserable-looking village, seated upon a patch of rising
gi^ound. Here we could obtain nothing for either man or beast.
The cattle had been removed to better pasturage, so that we
could obtain no milk ; and they had neither fowls nor rice.
There were a few goats ; but they wanted coral or amber for
them, neither of which had we in our possession. The bees had
got into the water at the well, and were swimming about in
such numbers that the poor horses could not obtain a drink ;
and the small quantity of that precious liquid which was in the
town was so unpleasant, that I could not drink it. Thinking
that a little tea and sugar would make it more palatable, I had
460 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
a small quantity boiled ; but even then I was foiled and dis-
appointed ; for the bees, smelling the sugar, beset me in such
multitudes, from all quarters, that I M^as obliged to give it up.
We therefore immediately re-saddled, and pushed on to the
next town, Tambakunda, having kept my mouth moist by
occasionally plucking a cool green leaf from some part of the
thicket through which we passed. Two hours and a half, east
north-east, brought us to this place, somewhat fatigued, hungry,
and thirsty. Here Ave Avere well received, and Avere told that
Ave should have every thing we needed ; but it was nine o'clock
in the CA'ening before supper was readA^ HoAvever, I was
thankful for it then, having taken nothing all day save one
kola-nut. The distance from Dirma to this place I consider to
be about tAventj^-tAvo miles ; but Cupidon thought it a great deal
more.
19th. — We are waiting here (Tambakunda) for the arrival of
a man Avhom I sent from Dirma to Fattatenda, for a fcAv more
goods, as I fear I shall have little or nothing Avorth presenting
to the almamy, by the time we reach Boollibany.
Tambakunda is a respectable Availed toAvn, Avith four
entrances. There are a number of loop-holes in different parts
of the Avail, and at the door-Avays there is a sort of scaffolding or
platform, with additional loop-holes at the top, Avhere a flanking
fire could be maintained. The people here, as in almost
every place we have passed, are constantly talking about the
intense heat of the sun in Bondou; saying, Nying tilo aning
Bondou tilo ma kiling, "The sun here and that of Bondou are
not one.'' Many of the inhabitants, particularly the Avomen and
children, Avho have never seen an European before, gaze upon
me in astonishment, Avith their hands upHfted to their mouths ;
and on my taking a Avalk, or moving toAvards them, they scam-
per off in all directions, as if I was something more or less than
human.
The man from Fattatenda haAdng returned, we presented our
landlord and the alkaid Avith a little tobacco ; and at twenty
minutes before five p.m. avc again moAcd on, in company Avith a
small cafila, consisting of three men and tAvo asses, Avho are
going to some part of Bondou. The asses started very badly at
first, but afterwards Avent on at a tolerable rate. We have
found the Mandingo language, for some days past, somcAvhat
different from what it is in the neighbourhood of Macarthy's
Island, and loAver doAvn the Gambia, some of the Avords haA'ing
quite a different meaning; and Cr.i)idon himself, Avho is a
Jollof, is frequently at a loss. The multiplicity of languages is
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 461
a great obstacle in learning any one of them while travelling in
this way. AV e are now nine in company ; and in the course of
a few minutes no less than five languages are spoken.
The next town being at a considerable distance, we again car-
ried water ; and having travelled four hours, which was considered
little more than half way, Ave halted, and rested in the depth of
the forest, close to the road-side. Having each taken a hearty
draught of water from the soofroo (leathern bag), and cora-
niended ourselves to God, we lay down. A pugne upon the
warm ground was my bed, and a bag coutaiqing some tobacco
was my pillow. We had no fire kindled ; but I slept tolerabh'
well, and without much apprehension, either from wicked men
or wild animals, though both are frequently prowling about in
this wilderness. Some of our party spent a sleepless night ;
but whether from fear, or from other causes, I cannot say. A leo-
pard was heard during our repose, in addition to elephants and
lions, and a variety of other animals, both wild and tame, with
Avhich this locality abounds. I was told of one, though but
rarely seen, which, as far as I could gather from the description,
appears to be the beautiful zebra.
20th. — A little after three o'clock this morning the moon
arose, and we again pursued our onward course, aided by
nature's .lantern, a very useful and necessary guide. Being
rather sleepy, I commenced singing, —
" In darkest shades if Tliou appear,
My dawning is begun :
Thou art my soul's bright morning-star,
And Tliou my rising sun."
This disturbed a tribe of large monkeys, many of which came
very near to us, and chattered most earnestly. Three hours'
ride brought us to Kotchair, (probably the Koojar of Park,) where
Ave halted under a tree near the town ; and the head-man, whom
they here call " king," presented us Avith a goat, Avhich Avas very
acceptable. Kotchair is fortified in the common African man-
ner, by a surrounding high Avail built of clay, Avith several door-
Avays or entrances, Avhich are generally closed at night. It is
the last town in the kingdom of Woolli ; and the head-man
1)ears the nan\e of chief or king probably from its being a con-
siderable distance from the seat of government.
In the evening we came to Nouday, the frontier town of
Bondou, and were well received by our landlord. This place is
long and narrow, Avith large yards attached to each residence ;
but, unlike most other places through which avc have passed, it
462
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
has no kind of fence round it. The inhabitants are Teucolors,
and were busily employed in bringing in large herds of cattle.
Here I obtained as much milk as I could drink, and a good
supper of fowl and kouskous.
21st. — About four miles this morning east by north brought us
to Julangal, a large Serrawoolli town, about half a mile long.
There are a few of the pastoral or wandering Foulahs close by,
with their temporary bee-hive-looking habitations. The people
here make the earthen jars, and here also, I was told, there is
an Albino female ; but 1 did not see her.
As our people were becoming rather fatigued, we tarried here
till evening; when two hours^ ride due east brought us to Jume,
another Serrawoolli town, somewhat noted as being the resi-
dence of a learned marraboo priest named Kabba, who has
scholars from different parts of the country. He was busy with
his pupils, but immediately came to give us a hearty welcome,
and soon after he sent me three fowls. Here our guide gave a
history of our proceedings, from Kanipe, where he met with us,
to this place. After he had done, the priest commenced a
prayer for us, the people, with their hands upon their foreheads,
as on the former occasions, saying at the end of every sentence,
" Amin, amin ! "
Sunday, 22d. — I rose this morning from my earthy bed a
little indisposed, having taken a slight cold the previous night
while sleeping at Nouday. After breakfast, a portion of scrip-
ture was read, and prayer offered up to Almighty God, on
behalf of ourselves and of the demoralized inhabitants of this
place, many of whom were present in our large hut. The
priest was busy all the day, so that I had not an opportunity of
speaking to him till the evening; when I presented him with a
handsomely-bound Arabic Testament, and held a lengthy con-
versation with him, on the subject of experimental religion, in
the presence of a large congregation ; but he is, like the Jewish
rabbi, an utter stranger to the new birth, and, like that master
in Israel, said, in effect, " How can these things be?^^
23d. — We rose early, and went to the priest, to procure a
guide, which he had promised us to Boollibany, the capital of
Bondou; but he was not ready, so that we waited till the
afternoon. Soon after the interview I accompanied this Moham-
medan scribe to see his brother, who was sick ; at whose request
I prayed, and was truly blessed while commending him and all
the inhabitants of the town to the care of their heavenly Father.
I afterwards sent him some medicine.
Jume is nearly as large as Julangal ; but the people are not
JOURNEY TO BONDOU.
463
SO clean, nor do they appear so intelligent ; yet they were
equally curious to see me, and I could scarcely move without
being surrounded by numbers of them. They are principally
followers of the false prophet, and have a large mosque, which I
saw ; but I was not permitted to enter it. This place is one of
the strongholds of the Mohammedan creed ; and I was forcibly
reminded of St. PauFs discourse at " Mars^ hill," when he stood
and said, " Ye men of Athens, I perceive that in all things ye
are too superstitious. For as I passed by, and beheld your
devotions, I found an altar with this inscription, TO THE
UNKNOWN GOD, Whom therefore ye ignorantly worship,
him declare I unto you." (Acts xvii. 22, 23.) This also I have
endeavoured to do here.
A little before five p.m., the guide being ready, I immediately
mounted, and Ave were in the act of starting ; but the priest
thought proper first to give us his blessing, which he did by
taking hold of my hands while on horseback, and saying some-
thing which I did not understand ; but the people around us
were all attention, and they stood looking with both their hands
opened as if they expected something to fall from the clouds at
the close of the ceremony ; and, as before, they all said, " Amin,
amin !" We now proceeded, upwards of one hundred of the
inhabitants, men, women, and children, following us, sometimes
completely surrounding my horse, wishing me to shake hands
with them. I did so until I was tired; and was ultimately
obliged to gallop off. We travelled about twelve miles east, and
came to two straggling villages, at one of which we halted ; and,
for the first time since my leaving Fattatenda, I slept inside a
hut, as the last day or two the north-east breeze has been rather
cold during the night.
24th. — Nine miles' journeying this morning brought us to
Weegi, having passed one or two villages on the way. Here we
learnt, with some degree of certainty, that the almamy is pre-
paring for war, — with whom we do not know ; but twenty men
left this place yesterday to assist on the occasion. In the even-
ing our course was east-north-east and east-south-east for about
ten miles. Our landlord here received us rather coolly. At
length we obtained a little milk for some beads ; but the people
brought such miserable drops each time, that the whole of it
was scarcely enough for a cat.
25th. — Being much better to-day, our travelling was pleasant.
We crossed several beds of dark-coloured stone, through a diver-
sified country of hill and dale, vast numbers of partridges and
guinea-fowls being seen near to the foot-path, Avhich was some-
464 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
times covered with loose brushwood ; and on our right and left
were trees of various kinds, those of the acacia species, the
tamarind, and monkey-bread being numerous : the fruit of the
latter is used by the natives as an astringent, and of the former
for the opposite purpose. Twelve miles east-south-east and east
brought us to a small scattered town named Gallordie, having
passed two or three others on the way, in the vicinity of which
the people were preparing their farms, as the rainy season is
approaching. At this place we took up our abode for a short
time under the shade of a large tree, where a Foulah was busily
employed in making small boards for the school-boys to write
upon; and some of the women were making country soap, which
is manufactured with a mixture of ground-nuts, the ashes of
burnt trees, water, and palm-oil. These four articles are put
into an earthen pot, and exposed to the sun to melt. Whether
the sun has that effect upon them or not, I am unable to say ;
but I saw the materials so placed, and the water was then warm.
At half-past four p.m. we left Gallordie, and in a few minutes
came into a deep ravine : to our right was the dry bed of a broad
river, and for a mile our path was very steep and rugged. Ten
miles brought us to Goodeerie, the residence of our guide : our
course, two-thirds of the way, was east-south-east, and then by
a sudden turn east-north-east. On the new moon making its
appearance this evening, the Mohammedan part of our company
did not fail to welcome it, by instantly turning to it as we were
journeying, crossing their faces with their hands, and using some
kind of prayer. On reaching home, our guide was immediately
welcomed and congratulated by numbers of his friends and
neighbours, among whom were two griots. Between ten and
eleven we obtained a good supper of kouskous, with a little fowl,
Avhich was very acceptable; we having had nothing last evening,
and our breakfast this morning consisting of only a handful or
two of roasted ground-nuts.
26th. — Here we rest to-day, waiting for Sarjo, our guide,
whose father acted in that capacity to INIajor Gray some twenty
years ago. It is a small town of SerrawoolUes, most of the
inhabitants being engaged in trade. The well which we passed
last evening is a few hundred yards distant, near to which there
is a kind of watch-box, made of mud and clay, whei'e the hunter
of wild animals fixes himself during the night ; and when these
come to drink, he places his gun through one of the loop-holes,
and the animal is soon in his possession.
This morning a caravan of Moors arrived here, on their way
to Fattatenda. They are from Kaarta, and have with them as a
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 465
guide Bakarra, a nephew of the king of that place ; and from
the almamy they obtained another to the banks of the Gambia.
Bakarra is an iutelhgent young man, and appeared anxious that
I shoukl pay his uncle a visit; to which I should have no objec-
tion, did time permit.
27th. — We had a little rain during the night ; and did not
start till past eight o'clock this morning. We passed several
Foulah villages, and rested at a scattered town named Fittin-
yibbe, about nine miles from Goodeerie. Here we purchased
some fowls and rice, and about four o^ clock sat down to a good
meal ; immediately after which, we moved on, the surface of the
country being more even and better cultivated. W^e passed
through several more little villages ; and, after a journey of about
eight miles, we came to Dandudy, where the head-man appeared
afraid to receive us lest we should be expensive to him. Here
I threw myself down upon a mat on the ground, drank a hearty
draught of water, commended myself to the kind care of my
heavenly Father, and went to sleep.
28th. — We rose at day-break, and again pursued our way,
east north-east ; some parts of the path being exceedingly steep,
and others the reverse. We passed several pits of red and
white clay, two towns, and halted at a third, named Fettibooki.
Here the hut appropriated to our use was occasionally used as a
pen for sheep and goats ; and our landlord very unceremoniously
brought one of the latter, and fastened it to a stake while some of
us were inside. Having tarried here for a few hours, given the
horses provender, and partaken of an humble but hearty repast,
we reared the family-altar in our mean abode, and then pushed
on for about ten miles, when we reached the much- wished- for
Boollibany. W^e took up our lodgings with an uncle of our
guide, at one of the small villages contiguous to the royal town,
as we were informed the almamy was from home, and that, if
we lodged in the capital, we should probably be much annoyed
by a multitude of beggars.
Sunday, 29th. — Boollibany. This has been a singular
sabbath-day ; but I hope I have discharged my duty as a herald
of the cross of Christ, as far as it was practicable. The almamy
(or imaum) being encamped at a small town about six miles
distant, and expecting to leave to-morrow on some plundering
expedition, I was reluctantly compelled to pay him a visit to-
day. Having arrived at the place, south south-east, passing
several small villages on the way, I waited about an hour before
he made his appearance, he having, in the mean time, sent one
of his priests with his compliments. On being introduced, I
H H
466 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
found His Majesty with about two liundred and fifty of his
principal counsellors^ warriors, and priests, within a large square
yard surrounded by a wall, a temporary tent having been erected
to screen them from the heat of the sun. Being seated near the
sable monarch, upon a sheep-skin, with my interpreter by my
side, I made known to him, in as few words as possible, the
nature and object of my journey. I stated to him that, as a
minister of the gospel from England, stationed at the Gambia, I
was anxious to know something of the country, people, and lan-
guages contiguous to the place of my residence, that, as soon as
possible, I might commence missions among them ; that I had
visited the kingdoms of Barra, Nyani, Woolli, and other places,
whose kings and chiefs were favourably disposed toward us ; and
that I had now paid a visit to Bondou for the same purpose.
The almamy said the object appeared very good ; but he, with
several of the elders around him, wished to know what it was
that I should teach, and if it was the same religion as Moham-
medanism : to which I answered in the negative ; adding that I
did not find such a name in my Bible. This led to a number of
other questions; such as, "Do you face the east when you
pray? How many years is it since the birth of Moses?
And how long is it since Mohammed wrote the Koran?" &c.
The almamy then wished me to state to them, without interrup-
tion, the substance of that which I taught or preached. Hold-
ing a beautiful Arabic Bible in my hand, I commenced by say-
ing, "The contents of this book are" — I then gave an out-
line of the principles of our holy religion, explaining the fall of
man, — the universal depravity of human nature, — the necessity
of a change of heart, — God's love to men in the gift of his Son,
— repentance, faith, and holiness, — future rewards and punish-
ments, &c. The doctrine of atonement was something so new
and strange to them, that, when dwelling upon that sub-
ject, the almamy himself interrupted me through the inter-
preter, by asking, with some degree of astonishment, Ako di ?
Alia ding sa ? Wo ma tonyalamu ! " What does he say ? God's
Son die ? That cannot be true ! " This great " mystery of
godliness, God manifest in the flesh," I endeavoured to explain
as well as I could, and assured them all that it was " a faithful
saying, and worthy of all acceptation;" that I had long felt its
truth in my own heart, which made me happy; and that God
had given his Son to bleed and die for the black man as well as
for the white, he being no respecter of persons. I felt a sacred
pleasure in thus exhibiting to these desperadoes the vast supe-
riority of the Christian religion to the absurd and demoralizing
JOURNEY TO BONDOU.
467
system of Mohammedanism. The almamy then wished me to
tell them what God had told them to do, and what not to do.
This gave me an excellent opportunity of dwelling at consider-
able length upon the Decalogue ; which I did, and particularly
upon those parts of it that I knew^ to be very applicable to those
around me, relating to adultery, murder, theft, sabbath-break-
ing, &c. When I had concluded, strange to say, the almamy
answered, that what I had said was all very good and true ; but
they liked their own rehgion best. I told them that they were
certainly in error in preferring Mohammed to Christ, and that
it was a dangerous error : the judgment-day would prove the
truth of all I had said, but it would then be too late. The
almamy, in summing up his reply, in answer to the object of
my visit, said, they were all glad to see me, they loved me very
much, and I might visit any part of Bondou at am^ time ; and
when I was ready to commence a mission, I must select the
place, and then come and let him know. " But,^^ said he, " we
cannot leave our religion : we must follow Mohammed."
It was deeply affecting to me to look upon these human
beings, professing to love God, yet having their spears, fire-
arms, poisoned arrows, and cutlasses by their sides, prepared for
battle at a moment^s notice, and every day receiving additions
to their force : nor could I satisfy my conscience, or leave the
camp, till I had told the almamy of the impropriety and sinful-
ness of such proceedings, and urged him, by all that was dear,
to abandon the project.
It was a critical moment. I was in the midst of a band of
half-savages, all armed, the almamy himself having a spear at
his right hand, and a double-barrelled gun at his left ; and my
excellent assistant was fearful that if I said any thing against
their going to war, I should not only get myself into difficulties,
but very likely be at once taken out of a world of trouble by
being instantly shot, or by some other means be put to death.
But it seemed as if I heard the Saviour's address to the first
missionaries, "Be not afraid of them that kill the body, and
after that have no more that they can do ;" (Luke xii. 4;) and,
" Lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of the world."
(Matt, xxviii. 20.) Certainly a more than ordinary degree of
moral courage was imparted ; and I said to the interpreter,
" Be sure you communicate all that I say to the almamy ; and if
I fall at his feet, my blood will be the seed for the first Chris-
tian church in the kingdom of Bondou." It was the sabbath
day, and I was a Wesleyan missionary; and thourrh for away
from any civilized country, I was resolved, at the risk of life,^to
9 TT O
(W Xl iW
468 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
raise my voice against the iniquity and horrors of such plunder-
ing expeditions, the sad effects of which I had more than once
seen with my own eyes. Here were two hundred and fifty war-
riors, who had left the royal town, with their chief at their head,
deliberating what place to attack, and the plan to be adopted,
and only waiting the arrival of more strength, which was daily
pouring in from all parts of the kingdom, and then the inha-
bitants of some peaceful village or populous town, would be sur-
prised, seized, and taken into captivity, or murdered on the
spot !
Having, therefore, finished my own part of the business, and
presented the almamy with a couple of pieces of baft, some
tobacco, and a very handsome morocco-bound gilt-edged Arabic
Bible, and thanked him for the kind reception he had given me,
and for his permission to commence a mission in his territories,
in the most respectful manner I said, " I have one request to
make before I leave, which is this : Having heard that the
almamy was prepai'ing for war, he will very much oblige me,
and I hope it will be pleasing to God, if he will abandon the
idea, and return to his palace, and live in peace."
In reply to my request, the almamy asked why I did not wish
them to go to war. I answered, Because it was inconsistent
and sinful, to say nothing of the misery that must follow. I
had just read and explained to him from the book of Moses,
God^s own book, the Ten Commandments; one of which is,
"Thou shalt not steal," and another is, "Thou shalt not kill;"
but he was about to do both. To this the almamy and his
counsellors gave a half-sarcastic smile, and said, it was not the
good people they should kill, it was those only who did not pray
to God ; and for doing this the Almighty Avould be well-pleased,
and would reward him ; and that if he himself fell in the con-
test, he should go to heaven, and his happiness there would be
considerably enhanced in consequence ! I hesitated not to tell
him to the contrary, and asked him what was to become of
those poor sinners whom, without a mementos notice, he was
about to be the means or instrument of hurrying into eternity.
This question, however, he evaded; and, soon after, I shook
hands with him, telling him that I should probably never see
him more, till we met at the judgment-seat of Christ, and
begging of him to return home. I then left the camp, and
retired to my quarters, thanking God for so favourable an
opportunity of delivering my soul on these subjects before this
infatuated monarch and his deluded subjects.
It was now between two and three o'clock p.m.; and having
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 469
taken no food all day, and there being nothing to be had in this
village, I sent word to the alniamy that I wished to return to
Boollibany, for that I was hungry. He immediately sent me
a calabash of honey, which was not, under such circumstances,
to be despised. Soon after this, having taken a fancy to a
black riband which I had round my neck, he sent a polite
message to ask if I had any more like it. I knew what this
meant very well, and therefore immediately took it off my neck,
carefully folded it up, and sent it to His Majesty, with my
compliments. In connexion with this message there was also a
request from the almamy to have another interview with me ;
and I was again ushered into the midst of a host of super-
stitious and marauding banditti, who imagine that by com-
mitting deeds the most barbarous and cruel, they are doing God
service ! Where is the humanit}^, to say nothing of the morality
or spirituality, of the Mohammedan system ? May God make
me a messenger of good to these blind followers of a blind and
false guide !
In this second interview the almamy repeated Avhat he had
said before, in reference to my looking at his ground, and select-
ing a suitable spot for a mission ; and, in allusion to going to
war, he asked me if the English did not sometimes do the same.
I told him, it was many years since they had any serious
engagement : they generally endeavoured to avoid war as long
as they could ; and when necessity drove them to it, it was con-
ducted on very different principles to African warfare. Shortly
after this, I again shook hands with this chief, and several of
his head-men, and once more begged of them to abandon their
intended expedition, reminding them of our next and (as I then
thought) last meeting, — at the bar of God.
We now proposed to return to our quarters at Boollibany,
and on the way met about a score of young females, carrying
cooked provisions from the capital to the camp. Whether what
I had said to this deluded follower of the false prophet had really
any influence or eftect upon him, in deterring liini from going
to war, I pretend not to say ; but, to the surprise of myself and
many others,* in about an hour after I had reached my lodg-
ings, the almamy, with the whole of his army, came galloping
* It had been stated to me, by my landlord and others, that the almamy having
once left the palace, he would never return till he had accomplished his object ;
and the cooked provision, which had doubtless been ordered to be sent, was evi-
dence that, at least, he had not intended returning so soon as he did ; and 1 heard
nothing more of that meditated expedition afterwards.
470 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
back to the royal town ; soon after which he sent me his com-
pHments, with a good fat sheep for my supper.
30th. ^ — I went to pay my respects to the almamy this morn-
ing; but, owing to some repairs which are going on in his
palace, I did not see him, I have had a few applications for
presents to-day from the capital, with a couple of griots extol-
ling the greatness and liberality of white people. This is the
first day that I have felt the heat in Bondou to be intense ; and
to-day it has been very warm : but having unfortunately broken
my thermometer at the commencement of my journey, I am
unable to ascertain the precise degree of intensity ; but am of
opinion that, in the shade, it cannot be less than 106°.
May 1st. — I have concluded not to go to Fort Joseph, the
French settlement at Gallam, on the banks of the upper Sene-
gal ; for, though it is not more than one day's journey from this
place, I learn from all parties that the road is rendered very
unsafe by the marauding Moors, who are constantly lying in
ambush to seize upon cattle, or any other property they can
find. This I had heard at Fattatenda, and repeatedly on my
journey; and it appears that, two or three weeks ago, they
killed a poor Foulah man, and stole all his cattle; and^ the
almamy having sent for an explanation of this, there are now
here two or three of these tawny, fierce-looking felloAvs, as mes-
sengers upon the subject. The affair, I am told, is likely to be
settled amicably, by a mutual promise, or oath, upon the
Koran, that the tribe of Moors contiguous to the Senegal,
and the Bondou people, shall not molest each other in passing
to and fro.
Intending to return home early in the morning, I this after-
noon waited on the almamy. He was just going to prayers ;
so that I had to wait a few minutes : on his return, he beckoned
me to come to him. He was seated upon a large, rough, white
sheep-skin, outside his residence, in an open space adjoining the
mosque, surrounded by some scores of his subjects, counsellors,
priests, griots, &c. One of the latter was employing the utmost
stretch of his voice in singing his pi*aises, marching up and
down a space of groiind left in the middle of the crowd for that
purpose. I was again seated near to him ; and on this occasion
he brought out and exhibited the handsome Arabic Bible I had
given him, which he appeared to admire very much ; but said,
he could not read it. At this I was somewhat surprised, and
still more so to find that none of his priests could. A Jollof,
however, who happened to be there from the Senegal, read it
with ease ; and I requested the almamy to allow this man to
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 471
read a portion of it to him eveiy day, and to go through it con-
secutively. He again asked me why he must not go to war,
and if the Enghsh people did not frequently do so; and if it
was true that when the white people from the Gambia (a year
or two ago) went to destroy Kemmingtan's town, they left some
of their guns behind them. Though I had little doubt upon
the latter fact, yet, wishing to defend my countrymen as much
as possible in that unfortunate affair, after speaking of Kem-
mingtan^s piratical conduct in seizing a British vessel laden with
merchandise, and appropriating the goods to his own use, I said
I had heard, that, having broken the walls of his town, they
returned, and, as I was informed, left one or two pieces of brass
cannon behind them. At the close of this interview, the
almamy presented me with a calabash of excellent honey ; and
having promised me a guide to conduct me through the greater
part of his dominions, I bade him farewell, wishing him health
and peace.
In the evening we had rather a lengthened conversation with
our jiati, (" landlord,") a part of his family, and a few neigh-
bours, on the superiority and advantages of the Christian reli-
gion to that of Mohammedanism, in which Cupidon took part ;
and, amongst other things touching on the outward ceremonies
of the latter system, he asked if God did not create all things,
animals as well as man ; to which they immediately replied in
the affirmative. " Well," said Cupidon, " and then did not the
Almighty, at the creation, pronounce all that he had made to
be very good ? " To which it was again said, " Yes." " Then,"
rejoined my assistant, "by whose authority did Mohammed
take upon himself to say, that swine's flesh is not good or fit
food for man?" It was then said, "The kingdom of God is
not meat and drink, but righteousness, peace, and joy in the
Holy Ghost." (Rom. xiv. 17.) We conversed till our landlord
began to see the necessity of a clean heart ; saying, " No man
can go to heaven till God changes his nature, and makes
him inwardly as well as outwardly holy." May the Lord have
mercy upon him, and the thousands more by whom he is sur-
rounded, who are deeply sunk in ignorance, superstition, and
barbarism !
Bondou is bounded on the north-west by Foota Torro, on the
north-east by Kajaaga, on the east by Bambouk, on the south-
east and south by Dentilla and Tenda, and on the '^vest by
W^oolli. From north to south it is about ninety miles, and
nearly as many from east to west. From its central situation
473 WESTERN COAST OF APRICA.
between the Gambia and Senegal rivers, it is a place of great
resort, being a thoroughfare for travellers and traders going
from the Coast into the interior. The surface of the country,
like that of Woolli and Nyani, is very generally covered with
woods ; but the land is more elevated, and in some places moun-
tainous. In the valleys there are a number of small streams
and rivers, and the soil is capable of almost any tropical produc-
tions. In Park's time, the capital of Bondou was Fatteconda ;
but for many years Boollibany has had that honour. This
place is situated almost at the north-eastern extremity of the
kingdom, contiguous to that of Kajaaga, and but a short dis-
tance from the original residence of the almamy.
The people of Bondou are a mixture of Foulahs, Teucolors,
Mandingoes, and SerrawooUies ; aud in the capital there are a
few JoUofs, Moors, and Bambarras. Judging from the nume-
I'ous towns and villages through which I passed, and the many
foot-paths or roads intersecting each other, leading to and from
other towns, I should imagine the population of this kingdom to
be considerable. The prevailing language is the Foulah, though
the Mandingo and Serrawoolh are also used. The physical cha-
racteristics of most of these tribes have already been given ; but
the following brief account of the manners and habits of the
people of Bondou, which were mostly noted down at the time,
may now be added : —
Boollibany, the capital, is a large, strong, clay-walled town,
and is decidedly the best-fortified place that I have seen in
Africa. It stands in an extensive plain some miles in circum-
ference, having behind it, on the east-north-east, a range of
rocky hills, about a quarter of a mile distant ; and, to the west,
the dry bed of a winding stream. It is surrounded by a num-
ber of small towns or villages, one of which has a mud wall, the
others having no fence whatever. The walls of the metropolis
are ten feet high, built with short turns, or in a zigzag form,
with strong bastions inside, from three to four feet thick, and
about double that width. It has likewise small square loop-
holes in all directions, and the entrances or gateways are sur-
mounted, like those of Tambakunda, though in a better condi-
tion, with small embattled turrets, about nine or ten feet square :
these also are pierced with loop-holes. There are several wells
within and without the town, the latter being dug out of the
drj^ bed of the stream ; which, during the rains, becomes a
broad river, when they have plenty of water.
The residence of the almamy, and of other members of the
fjunily, lias the ;tp[)c:u'ancc of a castle or citadel, being built of
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 473
strong timbers, and substantial clay walls, which, crossing each
other at right angles, divide it into several small courts and
apartments : the way into them is consequently very intricate to
a stranger. Some of these divisions are used as store-rooms for
ammunition, fire-arms, &c. At several of these passages and
doorways there are sentinels placed, to prevent intrusion. The
roof is flat, being covered Avith planks of runs,^ the most durable
wood in Africa. These are placed close togetber, and are plas-
tered over with a kind of mortar. It has a parapet-wall, upon
w^hich are mounted three field-pieces. The height of this build-
ing is about seventeen feet, the walls being of an immense tbick-
ness, in addition to strong bastions outside ; and the Avhole is
enclosed within another wall of the same kind.
There is a mosque, which is also built of clay, but is covered
with grass : this is about thirty feet long, and twenty-two wide.
It is in a separate and open space, adjoining the palace; and
here public prayers are performed five times a-day, wdth the
greatest apparent devotion. The almamy and a few of the head
marraboos only being permitted to go inside, the remainder
stand without in two or three rows, with their faces eastward.
The sound of the people's voices, while thus engaged within this
Mohammedan temple, from its protracted and mournful tone,
reminded me more of a hospital during some painful opei'ation,
than of a congregation of persons engaged in worshipping God.
The habitations of the otber residents of Boollibany arc
mostly composed of clay, some entirely so ; and are square, with
flat roofs. The greater part of them, however, are round, hav-
ing the walls of the same material; but are covered with a
conical roof of long dry grass. The population is probably
about two thousand souls.
The houses in general in Bondou are built of mud or clay,
with the exception of those of the wandering Foulahs, who, in
the course of an hour or two, will construct their little taber-
nacles, composed of corn-stalks, brushwood, and grass. Many
of them, however, erect their little hovels of the bamboo-cane,
like some of the Mandingoes and Jollofs ; which, being well
thatched with grass, and the roof overhanging the huts, will
stand the wind and weather for one or two rainy seasons. Tlie
best dwellings contain two separate clay walls, one enclosing the
sleeping apartment, and the other built at the distance of a few
feet from it, so as to include a narrow ring of space, which
* A species of the palm-tree, much used for building-purposes at the British and
European settlements on the Coast.
474 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA,
serves for a piazza, or sitting-room. Some of the huts or houses
are divided inside into two apartments by a thin clay wall ; and
as the door is generally very low and narrow, and is the only
means by which light is admitted and smoke is emitted, chim-
neys and Avindows being deemed unnecessary, the interior of
their dwellings is dark and gloomy. This mode of construct-
ing their dwelling-houses may be said to be the general prac-
tice of the African nations on this part of the continent ;
and, as Park avcU observes, though Avith some few exceptions,
" forms alike the palace of the king and the hovel of the slave.''
Their household furniture is equally simple. In some of the
best clay-built houses, I have observed that they have their
beds made of the same material, a couple of feet from the
ground, upon Avliich they place a thin country mat, Avrap them-
selves up in a country pagne, and thus retire to rest ; but the
greater part of tliem have a hurdle of canes, placed upon
upright stakes a fcAV inches from the ground, upon Avhicli is
spread a mat, a bullock's hide, or a sheep-skin, Avhich forms
their bed. A large earthen jar containing Avater, Avith a pot
of the same material, or of iron, to cook Avith, and a fcAV
calabashes, Avith one or tAvo Ioav stools, and a mortar and pestle
for beating their corn and rice, constitute the principal of their
household property.
Their dress is similar to that of the Mandingoes and JoUofs
bordering on the coast, and is composed of cotton cloth of
their OAvn manufacture, blue and Avhite being the favourite
colours. That of the men consists of trousers, or rather roomy
draAvers, descending a little below the knee, Avith a loose frock
or shirt, sandals on the feet, and a Avhite cotton cap on the
head. The more respectable part of the community have their
wearing apparel made of India bafts, and English cotton and
muslins, the upper garment being neatly embroidered round
the neck and doAvn the back and breasts Avith coloured silks or
AA'orsteds.
The marraboos, and especially those advanced in years, wear
white turbans, with red or blue croAvns, with a long white
robe or gOAvn, not unlike a surplice, having large falling sleeves,
and occasionally a hat made of a sort of rush or grass, having
a low round crown, Avith a very broad rim, which answers as a
tolerable substitute for an umbrella in screening them at mid-
day from the excessive heftt of the sun.
The Avomen are extremely neat in their personal appearance.
Their dress consists of tAvo small country paynes, or pieces of
cloth, Avrapped round the Avaist, one of a\ hich reaches down to
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 475
the ankles, and a third is thrown somewhat gracefully over the
bosom and shoulders. They also wear sandals ; but they differ
from some others nearer the Atlantic in their head-dress : the
Jollofs, for instance, being fond of a number of handkerchiefs
of various colours, which they tie round their heads in the form of
a peak or sugar-loaf. Instead of this, the females of Bondou, like
those at the Upper Gambia, wear a sort of bandage, or narrow
stripe of blue cotton cloth, wrapped round the forehead, the
greater part of which hangs down behind the neck, something
like an English funeral hat-band or hood. Being also pas-
sionately fond of beads, they decorate their heads, necks, wrists,
and ankles with these trinkets in great abundance and variety ;
and even round their waists several strings of beads are worn
by tlie African females generally. The more wealthy part have
the forehead encircled with a mixture of gold and silver beads
Avith those of amber, coral, and glass ; and a pair of large gold
ear-rings, reaching almost to the shoulders, which are supported
by a thin string of red leather over the head, completes their
dress.
Their food is simple, but wholesome and nourishing, and
consists chiefly of rice and corn, the latter being of a small
kind, called millet, or Guinea corn ; and in preparing it for
use they employ a large wooden mortar. When separated from
the husk, and beaten into meal, it is made into a kind of
pudding, called kouskous. Their art of cookery is confined to
boiling or stewing; and those who can aftbrd the use of
animal food make a kind of soup, which is poured over the rice
or pounded corn ; and this, when carefully prepared, is a very
nice dish. They eat in general only twice a day ; that is, at
about ten o'clock in the morning, and about sunset, being from
six to half-past six o'clock. When the meal is ready, it is
placed in a large bowl, and the natives generally squat upon
the ground all round it, the former part of their left fingers
being placed on the rim of the bowl to keep it steady, and the
other hand conveying its contents to the mouth; knives and
forks being out of the question. In some cases a wooden spoon
is used ; but I have myself often partaken of a hearty meal in
the native style, without any artificial aids, and have been
thankful for it, too. In the preparation of kouskous, the Jollofs
excel all the other nations that I am acquainted with, having
a peculiar mode of cooking it, which is by a slow process;
and being generally better seasoned by them, it is, after a
little use, quite delicious ; and very often, after a severe attack
of fever, one of the first articles of food that I could relish has
476 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
been a small dish of kousTcous, nicely prepared with a little
stewed fowl or boiled beef.
Their religion, it will have been seen, is Mohammedan : this
is the law of the land, and by many its precepts are most
rigidly attended to. There are mosques of one kind or other
in every town, and schools for the instruction of the young in
the same creed ; but there are many hundreds in Bondou who
have no respect for such an empty and unsatisfying system,
and who are merely seen praying occasionally, to save their
little property from plunder, and their persons from slavery.
The government is monarchical, the chief power being
invested in the hands of the almamy, or king. It is also here-
ditary; but not un frequently the presumptive heir is defeated
and overcome by some more powerful member of the royal
family. This was the case v/hen Major Gray was here, twenty
years ago ; on which occasion he was detained in Bondou, owing
to the jealousy of the then reigning monarch, from the 20th
of June, 1818, to the 22d of May, 1819, during which period
he was unable to proceed any further. While thus detained,
Almamy Amady died, "leaving the succession, which, con-
sistent Avith the law and custom of the country, ought to
descend to the eldest male branch of the family, to be disputed
by three persons ; one, his own cousin, Malick Samba Tomany,
being the lawful heir; and two of his nephews, Tomany Moody
and Moosa Yeoro ; all men advanced in years, and each pos-
sessed of considerable influence in the country. Moosa Yeoro,
however, was at tirst unwilling to oppose the right heir, and
would have certainly declined doing so, both from motives of
respect for the person, who was much older than himself, and
want of confidence in his own popularity, had not Tomany
Moody induced him to it by proffers of his support, and threats
of commencing a civil war in case of his refusal. The reason
which led to this line of conduct on the part of Tomany Moody
was founded on a circumstance which had occurred some years
before, and which was nothing less than that Tomany, who had
always been a haughty, violent, and powerful prince, had, in a
dispute with the brother of Malick Samba Tomany, caused him
to be murdered, and feared, if Malick came to the throne, he
would revenge himself on him for the death of his Ijrother, if
not by taking his life, at least by seizing on his property, and
obhging him to leave the country which he was in hopes of one
day reigning over himself, and which he would real!/ now do
through Moosa Yeoro, who would only be a mere^instrumcnt in
his hands. Thus in Africa, as in all other parts of the world.
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 477
does self predominate, and lead men to act parts little creditable
to themselves^ or profitable to the cause which they pretend to
support/^ *
The alraamy expired on the 8th of January, 1819 ; but, the
major writes, " the election did not take place until the 20tli of
the month ; and although the opposing parties Avere near com-
ing to blows on the occasion, the whole affair was terminated in
a more peaceable manner than is generally the case in Afiica,
where the interregnum is almost always taken advantage of by
the evil-disposed, to commit all manner of crimes, and for which
they cannot be punished, as, during that period, the laws are
not in force in consequence of the non-existence of a king, with
whom they also are considered defunct/'
The present almamy, whose name is Saada, has recently been
enthroned, though an elder member of the family was the
rightful heir; probably Tomany Moody. Saada is the eldest
son of the deceased monarch mentioned by Major Gray, and
was then a personage of some importance, judging from a list of
the presents given to him on two occasions by that traveller, as
also by the property left him by his father, and the respect paid
to him by the then ministers of state ; and having for many
years acted as the chief captain or general in the army, he
possessed great influence in the kingdom, and on the death of
the late king in 1837 Avas elected and proclaimed almost with-
out opposition. He is about forty-five years of age, of the mid-
dle size, well built, of a brown complexion, with good, though
rather large, features, a fine forehead, and a pair of bright,
intelligent eyes.
In my interviews with this chief, and subsequently, I was
forcibly reminded of Napoleon ; for though the latter was a
man of education, mind, and manners, and the former a compa-
rative barbarian, yet, in his personal appearance, stature, mus-
cular strength, features, and military ardour, the present
almamy of Bondou is not unlike that celebrated soldier.
The inhabitants of this kingdom being in general professed
followers of Mohammed, and the Koran forming the code of
their civil as well as religious conduct, their laws are somewhat
stringent. But in all matters of grave importance, the crimi-
nals are always tried by a public palaver or assembly, the
almamy being at the head, surrounded by the aristocracy of the
land, his ministers and chief priests; the latter bringing the
Koran with them into the court, which is read and interpreted
* Major Gray's "Travels," pp. 175, 176.
478 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
before sentence is pronounced^ against which there is no appeal :
indeed, that authority is generally looked upon as sacred and
decisive. They do not, however, confine themselves to the
Koran in the administration of justice, as will be seen from
some of the following particulars : —
1. In case of a palaver or personal quarrel, where the parties
come to blows, the case is investigated before the proper autho-
rities; and the person who has committed the assault has his
house and yard broken up, and his property confiscated.
2. When two individuals come into personal collision, and
one draws his knife or cutlass, and threatens the other with
death, even if he does not strike his opponent, the case is car-
ried before the king, a council is held, and the affair is consi-
dered as an assault of so serious a nature, that the one in fault
is fined five head of cattle, or receives one hundred lashes.
3. Manslaughter requires the price of six slaves, one half of
whom go to the family of the deceased, and the other half to
the crown.
4. Theft is punished by an immediate amputation of the
right hand at the wrist ; and if the person be found guilty of
the same crime a second time, he is put to death, generally by
starvation.*
5. Adultery is punished, on the part of the male person, by
the confiscation of his property; and if he have little or no
property, he is severely flogged. The female too often escapes
with impunity, if she be not rewarded for entrapping a victim.
6. Murder and high-treason are punished with instant death
by strangulation.
Bigamy is, of course, considered no crime in Bondou, a plu-
* Dr. Winterbottora tells us that the same practice prevails at Foota Jallon ;
and it would appear that this punishment is inflicted very impartially ; for he says,
" One of the Foota king's brothers, who was a great thief, had his right hand cut
off for stealing." The author was informed that at Jume, through which he
passed, there is a man of some importance who had suffered in the same way ; but
he did not see him.
Muhgo Park has rightly observed, " The Negroes are better surgeons than phy-
sicians ;" and he has given some specimens of their successful management of
fractures and dislocations, of cupping, &c. But it appears that the amputation of
a hmb did not come under that traveller's observation. In dealing with the thief
according to the law under notice, the author was informed that the operator has a
common knife, well prepared, and that the task is speedily accomplished ; imme-
diately after which, the sufferer undergoes another painful operation, in order to
obtain a cure. This is, putting the stump of the dismembered limb into a pot of
shea butter, mixed with cow-dung, which is nearly boiling hot : it is then carefully
wrapped in soft leaves, and requires little or no attention afterwards.
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 479
rality of wives being allowed by the Koran; and polygamy,
therefore, extensively prevails. My landlord has, at the present
time, three female companions and eleven children. Three of
the latter and one of the former he has buried ; and one wife he
has discharged because she and the others could not agree. He
is advanced in life, but is still a fine, tall, good-looking man,
has been in several military engagements, and bears the marks
of two or three scars upon different parts of his body. He has
it in contemplation to add another member to his family ; and
when I spoke to him upon the impropriety of his having a plu-
rality of wives, he very quietly answered, that he should never
have more than four at one time.
The commerce and trade of this kingdom are consider-
able, and chiefly carried on by the Man dingoes and Serra-
woollies, who have settled in the country. The latter are
natives of Kajaaga, the neighbouring kingdom, and in com-
plexion and features somewhat resemble the Jollofs. They
are proverbially a trading people, and in that capacity visit
Bambouk, Kasson, Kaarta, and Bambarra, bartering corn and
cotton cloths manufactured in the country, with European mer-
chandise, such as fire-arms, gunpowder, India bafts, beads, &c.,
for gold, ivory, hides, and bees-wax ; which they again
exchange for European articles in Bondou, or at the settlements
on the Senegal and Gambia.
The Teucolors and Foulahs are principally occupied in agri-
cultural pursuits, and in the rearing of cattle. The proportion
of land cultivated is small, but more than sufficient to supply
the inhabitants abundantly with all the productions of the
country ; and, in addition to corn, rice, pumpions, and water-
melons, with a variety of other vegetables and fruits, they also
grow cotton and indigo : the former supplies them with cloth-
ing, and with the latter they dye their cloth of an excellent blue
colour.
From the numerous travelling merchants and caravans that
visit and pass through Bondou, the alraamy derives a consider-
able revenue, besides a tenth of all agricultural produce, and
the constant presents which are made to him in the shape of
peace-offerings, or by persons who have any business to trans-
act, or favour to ask from him ; there being nothing done with-
out a bunya or present. By this means the kiug^s household is
well supplied with provisions, as also with slaves, and horses,
fire-arms, ammunition, &c.
The mode of cultivation is the same in Bondou as in all the
other kingdoms in Western Africa ; and such is the fertility of
480 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
the soil, that, from a very small portion of labour, they reap,
upon a moderate calculation, upwards of two hundred fold.
The greatest fatigue they undergo is in clearing the ground, by
cutting down the small trees, which is done a short time before
the rains are expected. These, with a quantity of brush-wood,
are then left on the ground for some time to dry ; after which
they are set on fire, together Avith the corn-stalks of the preced-
ing year, (the ears of the corn only being cut off at the time of
harvest,) and a quantity of long dry grass which grows to the
height of eight or ten feet ; the whole making a tremendous
blaze, and burning with great violence and rapidity, killing a vast
quantity of vermin and reptiles, and driving the wild animals
still farther into the forest. As the natives take no pains to
remove the stumps of the large trees, such is the luxuriancy of
vegetation in this country, that Job's " hope of a tree, if it be
cut down," is abundantly realized, — it does " sprout again, and
bring forth boughs like a plant -^ and this process is repeated
more or less every year. After a shower or two of rain, the
ashes of the burnt trees and stubble form a kind of manure,
and the corn-seed is put into a hole, and covered over with the
foot, and requires little further attention till it is ready to be
gathered in.
The rice-farms are in low swamp}?^ savannahs, and the seed is
not sown till a cousiderable quantity of rain has fallen; and the
earth is thus moistened and covered by a partial inundation,
caused by the heavy rains and overflow of the rivers. It is
highly probable that the passage in the Old Testament alludes
to the sowing of rice, where it is said, " Cast thy bread upon
the waters : for thou shalt find it after many days ;" (Eccles.
xi. 1 ;) for in some instances this " bread," or rice, is literally
" cast upon the waters," and it is certainly " found after many
days," with a very large per centage or return.
The commencemeut and termination of the rainy season,
which lasts about four months, are attended with tornadoes,
accompanied with thunder and lightning. The former gene-
rally comes from the east ; and the violence of the wind conti-
nues for about half an hour, with streams of forked and sheet
lightning, torrents of rain, and peals of thunder fearfully loud,
crash succeeding crash in terrific grandeur and majesty, as if a
thousand heavy pieces of artillery had exploded together.
When these terrible thunder-storms, and amazing force of the
elements, occur after sunset, or at midnight, they furnish to
every susceptible mind an awful impression of Deity, the
wielder of invisible and irresistible power ; and forcibly illustrate
JOURNEY TO BONDOU.
481
the words of the Psalmist : " The voice of thy thunder was in
the heaven : the hghtnings Hghtened the world : the earth
trembled and shook." (Psalm Ixxvii. 18.) But the whole
scene during these tornadoes, Avhether they take place in the
day-time or at night, may be considered as one of the most
awfully sublime in nature ; and at the close of the rains espe-
cially, when the trees are attired in their finest drapery, loaded
with rich ripe fruit, the hills and valleys smile with a fresh
supply of Heaven^s bounty, and multitudes of cattle are grazing
in the meadows, and the forests contain domestic animals of
great variety and abundance, — then the physical aspect of the
country, with the power and goodness of God, is well portrayed
by David in Psalm Ixv. : " They also that dwell in the utter-
most parts are afraid at thy tokens : thou raakest the outgoings
of the morning and evening to rejoice. Thou visitest the earth,
and w aterest it : thou greatly enrichest it with the river of God,
which is full of water : thou preparest them corn, when thou
hast so provided for it. Thou waterest the ridges thereof abun-
dantly : thou settlest the furrows thereof: thou makest it soft
with showers : thou blessest the springing thereof. Thou
crownest the year with thy goodness ; and thy paths drop fat-
ness. They drop upon the pastures of the wilderness : and the
little hills rejoice on every side. The pastures are clothed with
flocks ; the valleys also are covered over with corn ; they shout
for joy, they also sing." (Verses 8 — 13.)
" It was not possible for me," says an eminent traveller, " to
behold the fertility of the soil, the vast herds of cattle, proper
for labour or for food, and a variety of other circumstances
favourable to colonization and agriculture, and reflect, withal,
on the means which presented themselves of a vast inland navi-
gation, without lamenting that a country so abundantly gifted
and honoured by nature should remain in its present savage
and neglected state." Thus wrote Mungo Park nearly half a
century ago ; and his statement is still correct in all its parti-
culars, in reference to this part of the continent.
Their ivars are frequent, if so we may term them ; but they
generally come more under the designation of predatory excur-
sions than of a regular campaign, or hard-fought battle; and as
the almamy, and, in fact, all Mohammedan chiefs, consider they
have a Divine right for making war upon the Pagans, these plun-
dering expeditions are constantly taking place, more particularly
at the beginning of and during the dry season. We have
already more than once described this cowardly and dishonour-
able mode of attack, witli its attendant circumstances of bar-
I I
482 WESTERN COAST OF AnilCA.
barity. On the Monday after ray return from the almamy's
camp, mentioned in a previous page, I was speaking to several
of the people in the neighbourhood of Boollibany, as I had done
to their chief on the preceding day, on the sinfulness and
impropriety of these marauding parties ; when one of the old men,
who was a griot, exclaimed, Tobaba foday ako hello amumbetti,
berra, jubi ninsolu, " The white minister says war is not good ;
but look at those cattle,^^ pointing to about four hundred cows
and oxen, besides some scores of sheep and goats, nearly all of
which were the result of one of these so-called wars.* On these
occasions the cattle are for the most part immediately bartered
for other goods, when presents are made by the almamy to
those who have been engaged in the robbery, which, no doubt,
keeps up the unhallowed flame that caused the remark just
cited. But what a strange piece of inconsistency is there in
connexion with this item, in the habits of the people of Bon-
dou ! A Foulah man Avili have his right-hand chopped off by
the law of the land, if he steal a little corn or rice from any
one ; but he may go to his next-door neighbour, and take his
person, wife, and children, his corn and cattle, and all that he
lias ; and for doing this, he is absolutely rewarded !
These plundering excursions, especially in some states less
powerful than Bondou, often produce speedy retaliation, and
issue in a civil war in the same kingdom; in others they
lead to and end in a war between two petty states or king-
doms. Then a battle is fought with great spirit on both sides.
These may more properly come under the name of wars. " Some
years ago," says Park, " the king of Bondou crossed the Feleme
river with a numerous army, and, after a short and bloody cam-
paign, totally defeated the forces of Samboo, king of Bambouk,
who was obliged to sue for peace, and surrender to him all the
towns along the eastern bank of the Feleme." Bondou, on the
other hand, has often been attacked, and has suftered greatly by
its more powerful neighbours. Major Gray has detailed the
particulars of a war in which this kingdom was involved for
many years with the king of Kaarta, which arose in an act of
aggression on the part of Bondou, and which must have been
very sanguinary, as the ground, for a considerable distance
round Boollibany, at the time of the major's visit and detention
there, was thickly strewed with the whitened bones of the slain,
* In addition to the cattle, many human beings are taken prisoners on these
occasions, who always form a considerable part of the booty. These unfortunate
creatures, if not redeemed, are used as domestic slaves, or sent down to the coast,
to be purchased by the /air European.
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 483
whose bodies had been left to putrefy on the spot where they
fell, or to be devoured by birds and beasts of prey. The
Kaartan army, on this occasion, succeeded in breaking the walls
of the capital of Bondou, and they laid the whole town in waste,
with the exception of the alraamy's palace, which was so reso-
lutely defended by a handful of men, that all attempts to reduce
it proved fruitless. At this period the almamy, and his army,
were on their way to Kaarta ; but on hearing that Modiba, the
king of that country, with his army, had actually entered Bon-
dou, he hastened back, and succeeded in gaining possession of
his own palace ; soon after which he made such a spirited and
determined attack on the Kaartans, that they retreated in the
utmost confusion, many of them being made prisoners, all of
whom, on this occasion, and in retaliation for similar conduct on
the part of Modiba towards every male his army had taken,
were inhumanly butchered. This affair took place in the spring
of 1817.* The following year another terrible battle Avas fought
in the neighbourhood, when the almamy was again the aggressor.
He was assisted on that occasion by a strong detachment from
Foota-Torro and Lower Kajaaga, and a considerable body under
the command of Hawaii Demba, a prince of Kasson. His oppo-
nent was Samba Congole, a chief of Upper Kajaaga. Samba's
army, in addition to his own men, consisted of some of the
Gedumahs and Kassons, and four hundred horse, which he had
obtained from Modiba, the king of Kaarta, in all amounting to
about two thousand five hundred men. The almamy's force was
supposed to be double that number. They met in April, 1818,
when a bloody conflict ensued, which ended in the defeat of the
almamy, who made a hasty retreat to Foota-Torro, leaving
upwards of a hundred muskets on the field. The Kaartan
hoi'se immediately entered Bondou, where they again laid every
thing waste that came in their way, and, making some pri-
soners, returned to their home. The almamy did all he could
to induce the chiefs of Foota-Torro to employ all their force,
and oblige Samba to quit his own country, and retire to
Kaarta ; but they were too well aware of the impracticability of
such an undertaking, and advised him rather to make peace,
which was accordingly accomplished during the major's sojourn
in that country.f
From what has been adduced it will be seen that the African
chiefs, when engaged in a regular war, not unfrequently assist
each other ; and thus nation rises up against nation, and man
* Major Gray's " Travels," pp. 202—205. f Il>'d- P- 20G.
2 I 2
484 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
against man. It is impossible to say how many of these deadly
feuds, bloody campaigns, and marauding expeditions have taken
place since the period just mentioned. But it will be recol-
lected that the present Almamy Saada was the eldest son of
Almamy Amadi, who was one of the chief actors in the terri-
ble scenes described by Major Gray, and who, amongst other
barbarous atrocities, put to death the two chief messengers, sent
to him on one occasion by the king of Kaarta. Saada having
thus been born in the camp, and trained in the field, being at
that time a spirited young soldier, and having had twenty years'
practice in the same profession, he may be said to have inhe-
rited his father's propensity for a military life ; and being sanc-
tioned in his attacks, upon Pagan towns especially, by the
authority of the Koran, he may be emphatically said to "delight
in war." Previous to his late election as the sovereign of Bon-
dou, he for many years occupied a position similar to that of
" Naaman, captain of the host of the king of Syria," who " was
a great man with his master, and honourable, because by him
the Lord had given deliverance unto Syria." (2 Kings v. 1.)
Being " also a mighty man in valour," his assistance has been
frequently solicited by others. It was only a few months ago
that a request of this nature was made to him by the Jollof
chief at Salum, in the neighbourhood of the Lower Gambia;
and he went, having received from that chief, among other
things, as presents for his services, upwards of thirty horses,
besides what he picked up on the way when he returned home.
The same chief has again requested his help, which he has pro-
mised to render, on condition that he send him one hundred
horses to Bondou : as soon as they arrive in his kingdom, he
engages to start, whether it be in the wet or in the dry season.
The horses generally on the Western Coast of Africa are
rather small, but spirited, swift, and sure-footed, though none
of them are shod. In Bondou, Foota-Torro, and some of the
other countries eastward, they appear to be a mixture of the
Arabian with the original African ; and the chiefs, and some of
the sons of the chiefs, as is the case Avith the almamy and his
family, possess very fine animals, apparently of the pure Arabian
breed.
" The disposable force of Bondou, from all the information I
could collect," says Major Gray, "does not exceed from five
hundred to six hundred horse, and from two thousand to three
thousand foot. When the almamy finds it necessary to call this
army into the field for the protection of the country, or with the
intention of invading the territories of some of his neighbours,
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 485
he repairs, with his own immediate followers, to some village at
a short distance from the capital, and then beats the war-drum,*
which is repeated by each village, and in this manner the call to
arms is circulated over the country." It is for the latter of
these objects, that the present council of war has been held, in
the camp a few miles distant from Boollibany, and which, it
will be recollected, I visited. I know, from personal observa-
tion, that this " call to arms " was responded to by many of the
towns and callages in the kingdom. But as these matters are
always conducted with great secrecy, I could not learn with
absolute certainty their intended destination ; but a large Pagan
town, or a number of towns, in the kingdom of Bambouk, was
supposed to be their object; and I was informed that three
thousand men on this occasion would be collected. The place
being finally decided, each of the king^s sons, with one or two
favourites, commands a detachment ; and away they go, " cast-
ing firebrands, arrows, and death." The circumstance of the
almamy's unexpected return to the capital with his men of war,
has already been stated; and though I am not so credulous
as to suppose tliat what I said to him in the camp will have
the effect of putting a stop to this brutalizing and cowardly
mode of warfare, or even that the present "gathering toge-
ther for war " will have been entirely frustrated through
my humble efforts, yet I do hope that all I said to those
desperadoes will not be lost or fall to the ground : probably
some of them may be despatched in the manner we have just
described, and return loaded with the spoils of victory; but
nothing of the kind took place while I remained there, nor did
I hear of it afterwards.
The national superstitions of the inhabitants of Bondou are
numerous, and, with the exception of human sacrifices, may be
said to embrace every item which we have described in a pre-
ceding chapter. I was myself frequently asked to write out a
greeyree, a very profitable trade to Kabba of Jume, and to many
of the priests and karonkeas, or " leather- workers," and to
others versed in the "curious arts;" as we have also shown
elsewhere.
Salutations among the Africans, when they meet, are always
observed. Among the Mohammedan nations this is done by say-
ing;, Saldm alaikum ! " Peace be between us ! " which is returned
* This is composed of a large wooden bowl, nearly three feet in diameter, covered
with three skins : one is said to be that of a human being, another a hyaena's, and
the outer one a monkev's, which is written over with texts from the Koran !
486 M^ESTEIIN COAST OF AFRICA.
hy, Alaikum salama, "Tliere is peace between us;'^ and this is
probably one of the most ancient as well as scriptural modes of
salutation. Among the Pagan tribes in this part of the con-
tinent, and especially with the Mandingoes and Foulahs, it is.
Abbe haeretto? "Are you well," or "at peace?" and the gene-
ral answer is, Heare-dorung , "Well, and nought but peace."
There is a heartiness and cordiality in their salutations, repeated
again and again, which is very striking.
Wednesday, May 2d. — Having accomplished the object of my
visit to Bondou, and the guide promised by the almamy last
evening being ready, we rose early this morning, and soon after
day-break proceeded on our return. As the people had had a
few days' rest, and, withal, had little or nothing to carry, we
travelled more expeditiously, our first stage having occupied
upwards of five hours ; when, after a short sojourn, we proceeded
forwards, and in the evening reached Fittinyibbi, having met
during the day ten small companies, on their way to assist at
the supposed or real war. The next morning we reached
Goodeerie, and thus moved on from day to day, the inhabitants
generally in the towns through which we again passed greeting
and saluting me, as just described, most cordially ; and hundreds
of times I had to give the Mohammedan answer, Alaikum
salama, or that which is in general use among the Pagans, and
which is substantially the same, Heare-dorung . On the Friday
evening we reached Weegi ; and here the people flocked round
me, and appeared as much pleased at my safe return thus far,
as if I had been their brother or some near relative. Almost
before I had time to ask, one brought me some water to drink,
another a mat to sit upon; then came some water in a large
bowl to wash my feet, and presently afterwards some milk.
I had experienced this civility and kindness at several places on
my way to Boollibany; but at this Serrawoolli town, on this
occasion, it was done with so much warmth and apparent ecstasy
of joy, that my feelings were almost overcome. Our good old
landlord was not less pleased than the rest ; and to insure me a
safe journey the remainder of the way, he went into his hut,
and brought out a little sand, which he had obtained from some
far distant country, saying that all who drank the water con-
taining a portion of the said sand, would be shielded from harm
whilst on a journey; and he immediately put it into a small
calabash, stirred it up, and drank some of it himself, to convince
me that it was not injurious. I preferred waiting a little, how-
ever, till the sand sank to the bottom, and the water became
JOURNEY TO BONDOU. 487
more clear; not forgetting to inform him that I trusted in a
higlier?Power to bless and preserve me.
The following morning, having presented our host with a
small present, and received his blessing, we renewed our jour-
nej^ travelhug hard and fast, taking but short intervals of rest.
We had a little rain on leaving Boollibany, and during the
past night there were one or two dry tornadoes ; so that the wet
season is nigh at hand. On the evening of the fourth day, we
re-entered the wilderness, between Kotchair and Tambakunda,
and travelled till half-past eleven, guided by a brilliant moon,
when we again lay down by the road-side, having made a bed
of some small brushwood and branches of trees. Soon after
four o'clock we remounted ; and, having made a hearty break-
fast at the latter place, we pushed on to Dirma, which we
reached late in the evening, all quite ftitigued. The next
morning, at Kanipe, we beheld about thirty immodest young
females, fantastically dressed, with a man beating the drum,
dancing, shouting, and clapping their hands, congratulating the
boys and young men on their recovery from the rite of circum-
cision !
We tarried here only about half an hour; and, leaving
Madina considerably to the right, took the nearest route to the
banks of the Gambia, which from this place is a south-west course;
and, having passed three small towns, Cupidon and myself
reached Fattatenda about noon on Tuesday, the 8th, thankful
to God for all his mercies. The three men on foot, however,
did not arrive till the evening.
The precise latitude and longitude of Boollibany I pretend
not to define ; and whilst agreeing, as I do, with James McQueen,
Esq., in his " Geographical Survey of Africa," when speaking
of African travelling, "that a few miles each day is the very
utmost that any European can make out in a protracted jour-
ney," yet I am satisfied the distances I have given from one
town to another through which we passed in reaching the capital
of Bondou, are tolerably, if not absolutely, correct. The real
time occupied in journeying to that place, exclusive of the
detention at Barrakunda in the neighbourhood of Medina, one
day's rest at Jume, and another at Goodeerie, was ten whole
days, that is, taking the morning and evening of the day; and the
number of miles about two hundred, being just twenty per day. In
returning, it Avill be seen, I was only six days, or perhaps it should
be called seven, as nearly one whole night was occupied ; but
the distance vvas about twenty-five miles less, as I had no occa-
sion again to call at the capital of Woolli, which was nearly that
488 AVESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
distance out of the direct route. Reckoning my journey back
to Fattatenda at six and a-half days^ this woukl give twenty-
seven miles per day ; and I should here observe, that the African
horses are nimble walkers, and in these journeys are taught to
go at a kind of amble, between a smart walk and a trot, thus
keeping those on foot in the same pace, who were frequently
left a mile or two behind us on our entering a town. Including
the visit I paid to the almamy^s camp, I travelled, on this occasion,
on horse-back, nearly four hundred miles, which occupied seven-
teen or eighteen days, being an average of about twenty-three
miles per day. But as this was not a "protracted journey,^^
and it was in the best season of the year, that rate could not
be kept up for any length of time, especially in the mountainous
countries and during the rains ; though in one or two special
instances, and by a great effort, I have travelled just twice that
distance in one day.
By the kindness of Mr. Chown, in w hose vessel I had sailed to
Fattatenda, his cutter, the " Fox," arrived again at this place on
the 9th, and early the following morning we got under weigh, and
proceeded down the river ; and having left the vessel at anchor,
on the fourth day, waiting for the tide, Cupidon and mj^self
went ashore, and travelled overland ; and on the afternoon of
the same day, Monday, ISIay 14th, 1838, we reached Macarthy's
Island, having been absent just forty days. It Avas my birth-
day, (being thirty-two,) and in the evening I met my class,
Avlien Ave had a refreshing season from the presence of the
Lord.
CHAPTER XXII.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1838—1840.)
The Author's Return from Bondou — A Hint to Travellers in Africa — The Commo-
tions in the immediate Neighbourhood of Macarthy's Island — Happy Contrast
in the State of the Mission — Afflictions in the Mission Family— Death of Mr.
Wall at St. Mary's — The Author proceeds thither — Serious Illness of Mr.
Swallow — A Trip to Goree — Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Moss for Macarthy's
Island, of Mr. Edwards for Sierra-Leone, and of Mr. and Mrs. Parkinson for
St. Mary's — Mr. Fleet's Amval at Sierra-Leone — Death of Mrs. Fleet at Sea —
Terrible Gales in the English Channel — Wreck of the " Columbine," with the
Loss of a Missionary and his Wife bound for the Gambia — Death of Mrs. Moss
at Macarthy's Island — The Arrival of Mr. Spencer, the Agriculturist — Printed
Document with standing Regulations respecting that Mission — Mr. and Mrs.
Swallow's Departure for England— Extract of a Letter from Dr. Beecham to
the Author, on the Subject of his Return Home — Visits Macarthy's Island —
On his Return, finds the Inhabitants of St. Mary's in a State of partial Insur-
rection— Origin and Cause of this — Moral Influence of the Mission saves the
Island from a civil War — The Author visits the Kings of BaiTa and Combo —
Mr. Spencer's Illness — The Writer's Anxiety about that Mission — Death of
Mr. Fleet at Sierra-Leone — Mr. Freeman, at the Gold-Coast, visits Coomassie,
the Capital of Ashantee — The Author embarks with Mr. and Mrs. Spencer for
England — Arrival at Home — The Liveri)ool Conference- — Again volunteers for
Western Africa — Not hastily, but from a Sense of Duty — Missionary Meetings
in England — Difficulty in saying, " No ! " — Letter from Dr. Bunting — A second
Letter from the Doctor, with the painful Intelligence of the Death of Mr. and
Mrs. Parkinson at St. Mary's — Meets the Committee in London — A School-
master, with two Missionaries, appointed to the Gambia — Biographical Sketches
of Mr. and Mrs. Parkinson — Affecting Incidents connected with their Death —
Mr. Jehu sails for Sierra-Leone — Mr. and Mrs. Mycock and Mr. Brooking
depart for the Gold-Coast — The Author and Family proceed to London — Dr.
Bunting — The Mission-Party embark at Gravesend — Detention at Portsmouth
— Safe Anival at the Gambia — Happy Death of a Negro — Centenary Meetings
— Death of Mrs. Dove and Mr. Jehu at Sierra-Leone — And of Mr. James at
Macarthy's Island — Mrs. James's Departure for England — The Author's severe
personal Afflictions and Bereavements.
In the extracts from the author's journal, detaihng the parti-
culars of his journey to Bondou, which we have given in the
preceding chapter, it will be seen, that though the writer had
to brave fatigue, and occasionally to suffer from hunger and
thirst, and slept principally upon nature's carpet, and sometimes
travelled by night, on which occasions he threw himself down
490 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
upon a few small branches broken from the trees, far distant
from any human dwelling, — yet he was generally well received
by the natives, as also by the almamy himself;* and, after an
absence of nearly six weeks from his station, he arrived at home
well in health, happy in God, and was cordially welcomed by
his colleague and other friends, some of whom, he really
believes, never expected to see him again in the flesh. The
I'esult of this journey into the interior it is impossible to pre-
dict ; but, if followed up by his successors in the glorious enter-
prise of saving souls, he would fain hope that " the bread '^ thus
feebly " cast upon the waters " may be '•' found after many days."
If the writer may be allowed a liiut here to future expeditions
for exploring the yet unknown regions of central Africa, he would
remark, that a large company, and bales of presents, are not among
the best methods of conducting such an expedition to a successful
result. Presents it is necessary to make, — it is the custom of the
countr}^ ; and to this custom all travellers must more or less sub-
mit. But one European, or at the most two, possessing the requi-
site quahfications, — and to those of a scientific nature must be
added a good share of common sense, with prudence, patience,
fortitude, and moral courage, — two Europeans of this descrip-
tion, with three or four faithful attendants, are quite sufficient.
The less, in fact, the better, — as numbers, and especially per-
sons of a different colour, always attract attention ; and as thou-
sands of the Africans live by plunder, the sight of the baggage
is too powerful a temptation for them to resist. To avoid the
latter inconvenience, I would suggest that small presents be
made to the different chiefs, through whose dominions the tra-
veller passes, by a ivritten order on an agent at the upper Gam-
bia or Senegal rivers ; and in this way the commander of a
government or scientific expedition might arrive at Timbuctoo,
or some other and more central kingdom, in a comparatively
short time, and at a moderate expense ; and from thence might
proceed, partly by water and partly by land, across the whole
continent ; an undertaking which has yet to be accomplished by
some enterprising spirit of our own or some other country.
In about a week after my return from Bondou, I paid another
visit to the king of Kattaba, the object of Avhich was to ascer-
tain the mind of His Majesty and his ministers as to the sale
* It should be stated that, during his joiu-ney, he distributed a quantity of the
scriptures in Arabic, and, whenever an opportunity presented itself, failed not to
"preach Christ unto the people;" in return for which, he was politely thanked,
received many blessings from the people, and many prayers were offered for his
safetv.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERBA-LEONE. 491
of a large tract of land contiguous to Macarthy's Island, for the
benefit of the Foulahs, as the six hundred acres granted by the
British Government Avere not sufficient, either in the wet or dry
season, for the pasturage of their cattle. I had a long conver-
sation with the king and other leading men in the country, and
have little doubt that land to almost any amount might be pur-
chased or rented on behalf of these oppressed people ; but wlio
is to protect them from the marauding banditti ? Naamang,
the king of Kattaba, cannot ; nor can the British Government
beyond their own territories : and loant of protection is the
great difficulty in this Foulah mission.
In the early part of July we had another specimen of the
unsocial and disorganized state of the native tribes in this coun-
try, and of the pitiable condition, more especially, of the pas-
toral Foulahs, who are generally the greatest sufferers on these
occasions ; which affords further illustration of the remark just
made respecting their unprotected condition.
The following extract from a letter addressed to the parent
committee, bears upon this subject. It was dated, " Macarthy^s
Island, August 9th, 1838 :"—
The disturbed state of this neighboixrhood renders it next to impossible to do
any thing for the poor Foulahs at Broolco, or Jamalli, as they are every few weeks
driven from their habitations by one marauding band or another. The notorious
Kemmingtan, two or three weeks ago, made a plundering expetbtion through
Brooko, and some miles higher up the same bank of the river, carrying almost
every thing before him. The poor Foulahs, of course, fled; and many of them,
with some MancUugoes, came to this island for safety. lie was followed by a small
party of Foulahs ; but he was too strong for them, though he lost seven or eight of
his men, and his own son was killed by a shot through the head. He, in return,
killed many of those who attacked him : the leader of the party he spht down the
middle, and fastened his body to the ground with wooden .pegs !
I understand he has taken with him an amazing quantity of cattle, and some
slaves ; and report says, that he intends to retm-n shortly, to be revenged for the
death of his son. Some of the merchants here at the time had their fears that he
would attack this island ; but I have no such apprehension : he is certainly very
treacherous, and our mud-built fort would not stand much battering.
In the midst of these " wars and rumours of wars," and
other trials arising from severe personal affliction, the illness
of the wife of the writer^s colleague caused him to accompany
her to St. Mary^s for a change of air ; the assistant missionary
also was absent at the same time to attend the sessions, in a
vain endeavour to obtain compensation for the demolition of his
house ; instead of which the person who committed the outrage
threatened to sue him for (pretended) defamation, — laying the
amount of damages at £1,000. But, after all, it was gratifying
492 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
that the cause of God was gradually advancing. Our place of
worship was well filled^ and wc had an increase of members. At
a love-feast held about this time, it was truly affecting to hear
some of the liberated Africans, with tears running down their
black furrowed cheeks, speak of the demoralized, ignorant, and
awful state in which their parents and friends are placed, in the
country from whence they had been so cruelly torn ; but how
happy and thankful they were, that themselves, by a gracious
Providence, had been brought into a state of civil freedom, and
to the enjoyment of that spiritual liberty wherewith Christ
makes his people free ! What a contrast this, even to the
condition of their immediate neighbours !
On the 19th of July, Mr. and Mrs. Swallow returned, both
apparently the better for their trip ; but my own affliction con-
tinued for some time ; nor would the fever yield to the ordinary
course or mode of treatment ; so that, in addition to being-
well physicked, I was bled in the arm, blistered, and finally
salivated. At the end of the follo\ying month, Mr. Swallow
was attacked Avith fever, which assumed a peculiar type, pro-
ducing a kind of stupor and insensibility ; and for some time
he appeared more like a dead man than a living one. In the
midst of these afflictions, the painful news of Mr. Wall's death
reached us ; and as soon as I was able, and INIr. Swallow was
sufficiently well to be left alone, I proceeded to St. Mary's, to
administer comfort to the bereaved flock, and attend to the
effects of the deceased missionary.
I left Macarthy's Island on the 13th of September, and
arrived at the lower station on the 17th, having had fever more
or less all the way down. Five Europeans, I found, had died,
and one or two others were not expected to live. I was also
confined to my bed for about three days, at the expiration of
which period I paid a ^isit to the missionary's grave, and then
communicated the particulars of his sickness and death to the
committee in London, and to his friends.*
Thomas Wall was a young man of a social and happy dis-
position, of sincere piety, and of some talents, which, had he
lived to cultivate them, would " have gained other talents beside
them." But his missionary career was short, and his sun went
down, like that of many others in this part of the field, almost
before it had reached its zenith : it only set, however, to rise
with brighter lustre, and in a nobler clime. During his brief
* See " Missionary Notices," vol. ix. pp. 6, 7.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 493
sojourn of about eight mouths at the Gambia, he was studious,
diUgent, affectionate, and faithful in his pastoral and bther
ministerial duties, and was a very acceptable and useful
preacher. With one or two slight exceptions, he enjoyed
excellent health and spirits from the time of his arrival up to
the fatal paroxysm which terminated his mortal career : he
appeared sanguine about getting safe through the "raius,'^ and
hoped to labour for some length of time in his Master's vine-
yard. But it was otherwise determined by Him " who cannot
err.'' His lamented decease took place on the 24th of August,
1838, precisely twelve months after that of Mr. Wilkinson, who
preceded him on this station ; and, like his excellent predecessor,
he preached on the Sunday (August 19th) previous to his death,
was well on the Monday, but the following day complained of
indisposition. On Wednesday he sent for the doctor ; but
even at that early period he appeared to be suffering more from
debility than fever ; consequently, stimulants were administered,
but with little or no good results. He was aware of his
approaching end, and frequently engaged in prayer, in which
he was joined by the assistant and some of the leaders and local
preachers. On Thursday he was no better, though visited
several times during the day by the doctor, and other Euro-
peans ; and four or five of the native converts were with him
night and day. During that evening, he was gradually sink-
ing into the arms of death ; and about six o'clock on Friday
morning, August 24th, he gently breathed his last. He had
expressed a wish to be interred in the burying- ground, in
preference to the chapel; and he was there buried. He also
requested a friend to lock the mission-house doors, &c., till the
writer came down. Some of his last words were addressed to
the assistants and local preachers, who were around his bed : he
caught hold of the hand of one of them, whose name was
Sack M'Cumba, and said with considerable energy, " Sack, do
all you can to save sinners !" On Sunday, September 23d, the
writer preached his funeral sermon from Phil. i. 21, " To die is
gain."
Towards the close of October, Mr. and Mrs. Swallow came
down from the upper station, the former having been again
dangerously ill, and still very unwell ; and as the author had
continued in a debilitated state, and a favourable opportunity
offered of taldng a trip to Goree, we embraced it, and left St.
Mary's on the 30th of that month. Our stay was short; but
the sea-air was refreshing to us all; and we returned to the
494 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Gambia on the 9tli of November, and found things connected
with the society all well. Gorec is a French settlement, about
ninety miles to the north of the Gambia. It is a small, rocky
island, a few miles from the mainland, well fortified, and contains
a population of about seven thousand souls, six sevenths of whom
are slaves. There is a good-sized Catholic church in the place ;
but the morals of the people are at a very low ebb.
On the 30th of November, the brig " Ocean" arrived from
London, bringing Mr. and Mrs. ISIoss for Macarthy's Island,
and Mr. Thomas Edwards for Sierra-Leone. The latter pro-
ceeded for his destination in a few days, and, Mr. Swallow
continuing ill, the writer accompanied JMr. and Mrs. Moss to
jNIacarthj^^s Island, which place we reached on the 12th of
December. About the middle of this month, Mr. and INIrs.
Parkinson arrived at St. Mary's, to succeed Mr. Wall; and
the writer having introduced Mr. Moss to the society and
friends at the upper station, and attended to some other matters
connected with the mission, he returned to St. Mary's on the
3d of January, 1839, and was sorry to find Mr. Swallow was
little or no better; and, being strongly recommended by his
medical attendant and others to return to England, he at length
consented.
On the 7th of January ]\Ir. Henry Fleet arrived at Sierra-
Leone, having experienced the painful loss of his wife at sea, a
short time before the vessel reached the coast. They had embarked
at Gravesend on the 19th of November, but had to encounter
severe weather in the Channel, being met by several gales from
the south-west. They contended with the weather till they had
sufl^ered some damage, and had dismissed almost all hope of
safety. But, by a gracious Providence, they were enabled to
regain shelter oflF Hyde, in the Isle of Wight, where they
experienced the kindest and most hospitable attentions from
the friends of missions; and their vessel was again refitted for
their voyage. Mr. Fleet vvrote from that place on the eve of
their re-embarkation ; adding that, through mercy, Mrs. Fleet
and himself were quite well, and felt happy in the prospect
before them of being actually engaged in the arduous, yet most
glorious, work of their Redeemer. But sopn after they put to
sea again, IMrs. Fleet was taken ill with the typhus-fever, pro-
bably superinduced by a slight cold which she had taken during
the previous dreadful storms and privations in the English
Channel. She never recovered, but died when v.ithin fifty
miles of their destined port.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA^ AND SIERRA-LEONE. 495
Of Mrs. Fleet's personal history beyond the preceding, tlie
writer is unable to speak; but though she never put her feet
on mission soil, it is evident she possessed a raissionaiy spirit.
It was in her heart to have laboured in the field : God saw the
will, and took it for the deed; and as she was crossing the
"wide blue sea," and approaching near to the inhospitable
shoi'es of Western Africa, He said, " It is enough : come up
hither ! " and she entered, and gained that blessed port above,
" Where all the ship's company meet
Who sail'd with the Saviour beneath." *
The effects of the dreadful gales from the south-west which
occurred at this time were generally felt on the English coast;
and we have now to record another and still more painful dis-
pensation of Divine Providence, in connexion with " the perils
of the sea." Mr. and Mrs. Peard had embarked for St. Mary's
on the 23d of November, in the " Columbine," a small, but
comfortable and good-sailing, brig, a regular trader to the
Gambia, which had carried out several missionaries on different
occasions. But the vessel was unable to bear up against the
terrible hurricane which blew along the coast on the 27th and
28th of that month, and was wrecked on the morning of the
latter date, on the Chesil Beach, off Wyke, near Weymouth,
where she was dashed to atoms; and all on board, including
four respectable passengers, besides the missionary and his wife,
found a w-atery grave !
On this melancholy intelligence reaching London, Dr. Alder,
one of the general secretaries, immediately set off for Wey-
mouth, in order to ascertain whether the bodies of Mr, and
Mrs. Peard had been washed ashore ; and, if so, to see that all
proper attention should be paid to their remains. Though nine
* The author cannot withhold a painful fact which has come to his knowledge,
in connexion with the voyage to Sierra-Leone, in which this excellent female was
the greatest siitl'erer. The sailors, it appears, had on that occasion resolved to
renew the heathenish practice of paying respect to Neptune, when crossing the
tropical line; and as this occurred at a critical time of Mrs. Fleet's illness, it
proved very injurious to lie'r health, from the excitement into which she was
thrown, through fear that her husband would be compelled by the rough and
unthinking crew to pass through the same barbarous ordeal. Such a catastrophe
cannot but be deeply lamented. The captain of the vessel has long since been
dead, and none of the parties were known to the writer ; but he has felt it his duty
to place it upon record, in the hope that such instances of folly and wickedness
may be speedily and entirely abolished on board the British vessels ; or, at all
events, that those who are intrusted with the command of a ship will take care
that the health and Uves of their passengers shall not 1)C endangered by such an
uiiseemlv and brutish ceremonv.
496 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
vessels, with their crews and passengers, were lost during the
same gales, and near the same place. Dr. Alder succeeded in
identifying the body of Mr. Peard, which had been buried in
the same grave with thirteen others. He therefore had it
removed, and the next day it was respectably interred in the
burial-ground connected with the Wesleyan chapel at Portland;
and in a few days afterwards the body of Mrs. Peard was dis-
covered, and was buried in the same place. This was some small
relief to their distressed parents, and other friends. Mr. Peard
w^as in the twenty-fourth year of his age at the time of his death,
and the reader will find a brief record of him in the Minutes of
the Conference for 1839 ; and further particulars of this fatal
shipwreck are given in a letter addressed to the parents of INIr.
and Mrs. Peard, by Dr. Alder, which was printed in the " Mis-
sionary Notices " for January of that year. That their death,
though a painful loss to their friends and to the mission, was to
them a glorious gain, there can be no doubt. But we may truly
say, " How unsearchable are thy judgments, O Lord, and thy
ways are past finding out ! "
The author was at this time at St. Mary's, closing his
accounts with that station, aiding Mr. Parkinson in the mission,
and rendering all the assistance he could to his afflicted col-
league, Mr. Swallow. His own health was not good; and on
Sunday, January 27th, 1839, Mr. Moss arrived from Macar-
thy's Island with the melancholy tidings that his dear wife had
expired on the 22d.
Mrs. Moss's maiden name was Mallin. She was a native of
West Bromwich, and was in early life truly converted to God.
She was united in marriage to Mr. Moss a short time before
they sailed for the Gambia, and, as already stated, arrived at St.
Mary's on the 30th of November, 1838 ; soon after which she
proceeded with her husband to Macarthy's Island; and the
author left them there at the end of December, both well in
health, and happy in their work. A few days afterwards Mrs.
Moss was attacked Avith the country fever ; but no danger was
apprehended, either by the doctor, herself, or her husband.
But the " king of terrors " did not find her unprepared. On
the day on which she exchanged mortality for life, in reply to
questions on the subject of experimental religion, she gave
the most satisfactory testimony that " all was well," and more
than once exclaimed, " God is mine, and I am his ! " Some of
her last words were, " Christ is precious ! " " Happy, happy ! "
And on Tuesday evening, January 22 d, 1839, she gently
THE GOLD-COAST, GAAIKIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 497
breathed her last. Mrs. Moss was an amiable, modest, and
sincere Christian, holding sweet communion with God. She
loved the cause of missions ; and though her days of actual
service in the field were few, she had expressed herself to the
writer as never beiug so happy in her life ; and in reference to
the future, she could leave it with God ; adding, " Should it
please Him to call me hence in this distant part of the world, I
have no doubt of being received into that ' house not made with
hands, eternal in the heavens.' " Her last words gave still fur-
ther evidence that she is " for ever with the Lord.''
The reader will probably recollect that a Mr. Fisher was
expected, about twelve months previous to this, to take charge
of the agricultural and civilization department of the mission at
Macarthy's Island ; but that he was detained by a " temporary
indisposition." That aifliction having proved fatal, some time
was necessarily occupied in selecting another suitable person in
his place ; and it was not until the middle of February of the
year 1839 that Mr. Spencer the agriculturist arrived. This was
a great relief to the writei% who had had the whole of the secu-
lar matters of that peculiar and important mission devolving
upon him up to that period. By Mr. Spencer, and the brethren
who had preceded him, the author received several communi-
cations from the secretaries, among which was the following-
printed document from the new civilization committee, with the
standing Resolutions annexed : —
CIVILIZATION OF THE FOULAHS, AND OTHER ABORIGINES, OF WESTERN AFRICA.
The mission at ]\Iacarthy's Island, on the Gambia, Western Africa, was under-
taken with the view of communicating the blessings of Christianity, and its
attendant civilization, to the Foulah tribes and the aboriginal population generally.
Affected especially by the oppressed and suffering condition of the pastoral Foulahs,
Dr. Lindoe and his friends engaged to furnish the Wesleyan Missionary Society, for
the term of five years, with the sum of ii350 per annum ; towards supporting one
European missionary and two native teachers, who should be employed in instruct-
ing and promoting the welfare of these interesting people, and other native tribes
among whom they dwell. It was also proposed to connect with the direct and
proper work of the mission, such efforts as circumstiinces might admit for improv-
ing the temporal condition of those who might be brought under the beneficial
influence of Christian instruction, and who might thercliy l)e disposed to devote
themselves to the settled pursuits of civilized life. The success which has attended
the experiment, calls for the most gratefid acknowledgments. Upwards of two
hundred natives have already embraced Christianity, and are united together in
church-fellowship ; the Mandingo language, which is veiy generally used in that
part of Western Africa, even by the Foulahs, although they have a language of their
own, has been reduced to grammatical form, and a grammar and elementary books
have been printed ; the Gospels have been translated into that language, and that of
K K
498 WESTERN COAST OF AFRTCA.
St. Matthew has been printed, by the liberality of the British and Foreign Bible
Society ; a good school is in successful operation ; and the missionaries are encou-
raged to persevere in their labours, by the increasing desire manifested by the peo-
ple to obtain instruction. The civilizing department of the work has been the
occasion of much sohcitude. Hopes were entertained that a tract of country would
be procured on the main-land, and that many of the Foulahs might be induced to
settle uj)on it in a body ; which would have afforded facihties for communicating
instruction to them in a more efficient manner, and on a larger scale. These hopes
have not as yet been realized ; but, in the mean time, the commencement of a
Foulah village, called Lindoe-Morgan, has been made at Macarthy's Island ; many
other natives have had land allotted to them there ; and the necessary implements
of husbandry have been sent for their use from this countr)^
The term of five years, during which the Southampton Committee had engaged
to make provision for the support of this important undertaking, having expired,
and the Wesleyan Missionary Society having now taken upon itself the entire future
maintenance of the mission department of the work, Dr. Lindoe and others have
resolved to form themselves into a new committee for the purpose of earning out
such plans as may appear best calculated to promote ci\'ilization among the natives.
They are anxious to follow the footsteps of the missionary ; to instruct those who
have been rendered docile by his teaching how to advance by useful labour the
temporal welfare of themselves and their children ; and to communicate, by the
means which may be placed at their disposal, the blessings of social, civihzed life,
to the greatest possible extent. The following ministers and gentlemen have agreed
to act as the new committee : —
President, Lieutenant-General Orde.
Treasurers, Robert Lindoe, M.D., Robert Howard.
Secretary, John S. Elliott.
Committee, Henry Pownall, Thomas Gurney, Thomas Farmer, Robert Heath, M.A.,
Jabez Bunting, D.D., John Beecham, Robert Alder, Elijah Hoole.
Corresponding Member, B. II. Drajier, D.D., late secretary to the Southampton
Committee.
At their first meeting, the committee agreed upon certain principles or rules of
action, which they embodied in the subjoined resolutions : —
1. The committee do not commence their endeavours to promote the civilization
of the Foulahs and other aborigines of Western Africa, in the spirit of commercial
speculation. They regard the enterprise as a work of pure philanthropy, on which
they enter solely with a view to the benefit of the natives ; and disclaim all inten-
tion of seeking to derive from it any personal ijccuniaiy advantage whatever.
2. The committee, convinced that experience has now clearly shown the imprac-
ticabUity of preparing the Heathen for the reception of the gospel by any previous
civilizing process, and being moreover persuaded that the gospel itself is the prin-
cipal means of civilization ; propose, in their operations, not to precede, but follow,
the missionary, for the purpose of accelerating the advance of the arts of civilized
life among the natives, whose minds are already influenced by the great truths of
Christianity.
3. As the native members, upwards of two hundred in number, imder the care of
the Wesleyan missionaries at the Foulah mission-station, reside at Macarthy's
Island, the committee propose, in the first instance, to afford them instruction, and
furnish them with implements to enable them to cultivate the six hundred acres of
land granted by His late Majesty's Government for the use of the Wesleyan mission
in that island.
4. To prevent abuse, and to preserve the agents who may be employed in this
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIEllRA-LEONE. 499
undertaking from the temptation of seeking to advance their own interests to the
neglect of the natives, a sufticient salary shall be paid by the committee to all the
hired agents ; and they shall not be left, as was at first proposed, to obtain part of
their salary from the produce of the soil.
5. The senior missionaries who may have charge of the Wesleyan stations at St.
Mary's and Macarthy's Island, with Charles Grant, Esq., shall be requested to act
as a local sub-committee, who shall correspond with the committee in London, and
by whose counsel and advice the superintendent of the civilization department shall
be expected to act. If considerable ditference of opinion shoidd arise on any question
between the superintendent and the local sub-committee, the case shall be referred
home to the committee for decision.
6. That a suitable person be immediately engaged to proceed to Macarthy's
Island for the piu-pose of making the necessaiy arrangements for commencing
operations on the six hundred acres of land ; and that the committee postpone the
consideration of the question respecting the number of agents which shall be
employed, and the future extension of their plans, until his report shall have
been received.
The committee embraced an early opportunity of submitting a sketch of their
undertaking, with a copy of these resolutions, to the Right Honourable Lord
Gleuelg, Her Majesty's principal secretary of state for the colonial department ;
with which his lordship was pleased to express his entire satisfaction, at the same
time assuring the committee that he would instruct the lieutenant-governor of Iler
Majesty's settlements at Bathurst, in the Gambia, to cause every facility to be
afforded to the establishment of the Wesleyan Missionary Society at Macarthy's
Island, with a view to give effect to the intentions of this auxiliary institution.
In pursuance of the last resolution, the committee engaged an individual of
excellent character, whose mechanical skill, combined with a practical knowledge
of agriculture and gardening, eminently fitted him for the task, to proceed to
Macarthy's Island, in order to take the management of the civilization department,
and form plans for a more extended system of operation ; but they regret to state
that his departiu'e has been prevented by a severe lingering illness, with which he
was attacked when on the very eve of embarkation. The committee, however,
have determined to send out, as speedily as possible, two other individuals, one an
agriculturist and the other a mechanist ; being persuaded, from recent communica-
tions, that the services of both are necessary to give effect to the existing arrange-
ments for instructing the natives.
A proposal has also been made to the committee to commence an Institution at
Macarthy's Island, for the purpose more especially of educating the sons of the
native kings and powerful chiefs, as well as others. The plan has been submitted
to competent persons well acquainted with Western Africa, by whom it has been
pronounced as admiral)ly adapted to promote the instruction and improvement of
the people ; and the committee are prepared to make the experiment of com-
mencing such an Institution, on a limited scale, should they be encouraged to do
so by the liberality of their friends.
Having made this brief statement of their views and objects, the committee confi-
dently appeal for support to all those who are interested in the welfare of Africa ;
and especially to those who have already, by tlieir contribution to the Southampton
Committee, practically manifested their approval of this very undertaking. It can-
not be, that a work which has been so prosperously begun, shall be left to languish
through want of necessai-y support. Adequate means for its prosecution will, it is
trusted, be provided ; and the missionary and civilization establishment on the
3 K 2
500
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Gambia, under the Divine blessing, cannot then fail to be of the greatest good to
many of the present generation of the sable sons and daughters of Western Africa,
and to transmit its benefit to numbers yet unborn.
Signed, on behalf of the committee, Robert Lindoe, , „,
' „ ,, ' y Ireasurers,
Robert Howard,
^' \ Tr
John S. Elliott, Secretary.
Subscriptions and Donations will be thankfully received by Robert Howard, the
Treasurer, at Tottenham; at the bank of Messrs. Smith, Payne, and Smiths, 1,
Lombard-street, London ; and by any member of the Committee.
London, July Idth, 1838.
From the preceding the reader may form some idea of what
was now contemplated; and Mr. Spencer, who had also written
instructions, having arrived at St. Mary's with the necessary
implements for cultivation, &c., proceeded in a few days to
Macarthy's Island, accompanied by Mr. Moss.
On the 25th of February, Mr. and Mrs. Swallow embarked
on board the '^General Brock" for England, on account of the
protracted and peculiar sickness of the former. He had with
him a medical certificate, and was followed by the sympathies
and prayers of all his brethren, and many other friends. It
was gratifying to find that his health so far recovered, that he
was able to take an English circuit at the ensuing Conference.
By a reference to the Minutes of the Conference for 1838,
the reader will find a note under the appointments for Western
Africa ; namely, " N.B. AVilliam Fox is returning home -j" and
in a letter which he received shortly afterwards from Dr.
Beecham, one of the general secretaries, this was communicated
to him in the following very respectful and kind manner : —
You would learn from the printed Stations that we had determined on relieving
you by senrling an additional missionary to Macarthy's Island, to enable you to
return home. We cannot think of keeping you any longer at your post, in such
painful circumstances as you have latterly been, separated from your wife and
child.* We earnestly hope you will come home safe and well, and that many
years of domestic comfort and useful public labours will be vouchsafed to you.
It is almost needless to add, that, from his dear wife and
friends, he received equal or still more pressing letters upon the
subject ; and that, owing to the note in the Minutes above alluded
to, he had been almost daily expected, though he did not fail to
write, stating the cause, or rather combination of causes and
circumstances, which detained him. These will probably have
occurred to the reader in perusing the preceding pages. Mr.
Wall, it will be recollected, was removed by death at the very
* A son and only child, whom, though at that time more than three years old, his
father had never beheld.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 501
time that the Minutes of the Coufereuce were going through
the press ; and INIr. Swallow's peculiar sickness, which obliged
him to leave the Coast, had rendered him, for some months
previous to that, incapable of doing much work ; and Mr. Moss
had scarcely entered upon his labours at Macarthy's Island, ere
death removed his excellent wife, which wounded him so deeply,
that he instantly came down to St. Mary's for a change of air
and scene. Besides, there had been no one till now to take
charge of the civilization department at the upper station.
But though the Gambia mission had sustained a succession of
losses at this period, and previously in the death of Mr. Wall
and Mrs. Moss, and in the melancholy and fatal shipwreck of
Mr. and Mrs. Peard, as also in the removal of Mr. and Mrs.
Swallow ; yet as the station at St. Mary's had now a married
missionar}^ (Mr. Parkinson,) and Mr. Moss had returned to his
station with his health and spirits recruited, and having the
benefit of the society of Mr. and Mrs. Spencer, with the valu-
able aid of the former as a local preacher, and of the latter in
superintending domestic matters, as well as assisting in the
female day-school, the way appeared to be opened for my
return; and in a few days after Mr. Swallow's departure for
England, I proceeded to Macarthy's Island, Avith the remain-
der of the implements, tools, &c., which had been brought out by
Mr. Spencer. I arrived there on the 13th of March ; and to
my regret found Mr. Spencer was ill with the country fever.
This detained me longer than I had intended to remain ; but, —
having improved the death of Mrs. Moss, closed my accounts
with that station, rendered all the assistance in my power to the
mission and the brethren there, (Mr. Spencer having partly
recovered from his attack of fever,) and having taken my farewell
of the society, many of whom gave practical proofs of their
Christian affection, — I returned to St. INIary's, which place I
reached on Thursday, April 18th.
On arriving there between nine and ten o'clock in the
evening, the writer was met on the beach by an European
gentleman, who said, " Mr. Fox, I am glad you are here ; you
have just arrived in time ! " On asking what was the matter,
he was informed that the town was in a state of insurrection,
and that the soldiers and militia were to be called out early in
the morning, as some liberated Africans and discharged soldiers
had taken forcible possession of a small vessel, said to belong to
a Mr. H.; and though a warrant had been issued, and the Riot
Act read, the parties had refused to give it up. Having a few
letters to deliver at one or two places, where he heard in sub-
502 WESTERN COAST OF AIRICA.
stance the same statement, he hastened to the mission-house,
and found it was even so ; indeed he met, on the way there, a
mihtary officer Avith a small guard of soldiers patrolling the
streets, and the excitement was general. The origin and cause
of this disturbance the author recorded at the time; but as he
took some part in allaying it, and happily succeeded in pre-
venting an open rupture, — to avoid even the appearance of
egotism, he prefers giving the particulars of this affair in the
words of Mr. Parkinson, who communicated them to the com-
mittee in the following document, here transcribed from the
original in Mr. Parkinson's handwriting. It is headed, —
EXTRACTS FROM J. PARKINSON's JOURNAL.
Thursday, April 18th. — This has been an eventful day. Going accidentally into
the town, I met Mr. G., (a magistrate,) who told me the colony was in a state of
partial insuiTection, and had been so for two or three days. At this I was much
surprised, as I had neither seen nor heard any thing of it, and our evening services
were attended as usual. He said a vessel belonging to Mr. C. H. had been forcibly
taken out of the river by J. G., an Eboo, assisted by an armed party of Eboos and
Calabars, and earned round into a creek just beyond Half Dye, where these people
resisted the civil authorities, sent to take possession of her under a magistrate's
warrant for felony. As many of our people belong to these nations, I was afraid
that some of them might be implicated ; and immediately proceeded to the place
where she was lying, to try if I could persuade them to give her up, and retu-e
peaceably to their homes. As I was going, I met a party of men, some of whom I
knew, (although they were not members of society,) going quietly enough in an
opposite direction to that in which the vessel lay. I spoke to them, and they told
me that the people would not allow any one to go near her. They also said the
vessel did not belong to Mr. H., but to J. G. ; that Mr. H. had taken her fraudu-
lently from him, and he could oljtain no justice from the magistrates. I returned
home, and hearing that the people in the neighbourhood of Soldiers'-Town * were
in a high state of excitement, I went there, and found three magistrates, Messrs. I.,
P., and G., and the queen's advocate, endeavouring to disperse the people, and per-
suade them to resign the cutter. This they refused to do, unless the magistrates
or myself took possession of her personally, or gave security that she should not be
injured. Whilst we were speaking to them, a mob, apparently from the neigh-
bourhood of the vessel, rushed down upon us, and woiUd, I doubt not, have seri-
ously injured the magistrates, if the very people, whom they afterwards took up
and pimished as ringleaders, had not formed a line across the street and kept them
off. For myself I had no fear. Having gone up on the horse, I jumped upon him,
and rode a few steps into the mob, and they never attempted to injure me. The
magistrates, finding they could not prevail upon the people to comply with their
wishes, returned to their homes, and 1 accompanied them. On our way back, they
proposed to see the commandant, and request him to call out the military, express-
ing, at the same time, a doubt as to whether they would act against the people.f I
* J. G. resides in Soldiers'-Town.
t Many of the soldiers in the barracks, and some of the dischaiged soldiers who
composed the militia, being of the same nation or tribe as J. G.
THE GOLD-COAST^ GAMBFA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 503
suggested the propriety of complying with the wishes of the people, by a magis-
trate taking the vessel personally. This, however, the queen's advocate said would
create a bad precedent, and therefore ought not to be done. Of course, I was then
silent. Being very anxious to prevent a collision between these poor people and
the military, I went there a third time, when I was again told, that if I would take
possession of the vessel, it should be given to me then, or that J. G. would bring
her into the river opposite the court-house on Satiu-day morning following, when the
right of property was to be decided. It appears that, shortly after J. G. was
arrested for feloniously taking the vessel, he was let out of prison on bail, and the
case appointed to be tried on the Saturday morning. His seizure and detention of
the vessel alone compelled them to try the right of property to her. For, previ-
ously to J. G.'s taking her by force, he had been to the governor to complain of
Mr. II. depriving him of his property. The governor told him to go to a magis-
trate. He went to Mr. S. Mr. S. referred him to Mr. I., the clerk of the courts.
Mr. I. directed him to obtain a summons for Mr. II., and carry it to Mr. S. to sign.
This J. did, when Mr. S. refused to interfere. Afterwards J. sought the advice of
Mr. F., one of the first merchants in the colony, although not ai magistrate, who
told him to go and take his vessel. And, of course, J. concluded that, if he had a
right to take her, he had a right to keep her, until the court decided otherwise.
In the evening I preached at Soldiers'-Town chapel, to a very large congregation.
About eleven o'clock the brethren Fox and Moss arrived here from Macarthy's Island.
I gave them the particulars of the atfair, when brother Fox proposed to go and see
the people, to which I assented. We sent a servant to iiiform them that we were
coming, and in about fifteen minutes J. G. and two more came to the mission-
house to see brother Fox. Brother Fox told them they had better give the vessel up,
and disperse the people, or it would lead to serious consequences.* Tliis they
promised to do. And, at the request of Lieutenant S., who called at the mission-
house in the interim, brother Fox, J. G., and myself, went to the commandant, (the
governor being at Macarthy's Island,) to tell him the people would give up the
vessel, and disperse. The commandant thought that we had better go to the magis-
trates early in the morning, and tell them, as he was acting under their orders.
We retired to rest soon after twelve o'clock, praising God for his varied mercies to
us, both spiritually and temporally ; that he had not only preserved us, but made
us, especially brother Fox, instrumental in preventing bloodshed ; for such, I am cer-
tain, must have been the case, had he not wisely exercised the influence he
possesses over them.
19th. — I rose soon after five, and accompanied brother Fox to see if the people
had really dispersed. All was quiet, and not a soul about. We called upon Mr.
G., and informed him. He could not credit the statement, and said we were
deceived. He seems determined to have the people severely punished. About
eleven o'clock we saw the military and civil force moving in the direction of the
vessel, accompanied by three magistrates, Messrs. I., B., and P. Brethren Fox, Moss,
and myself procured horses, and rode up with them. On arriving there, not a
person was to be seen about her. It appeared their object was to seize the vessel.
* The reason of this message being sent was, that the author was taking
supi)er ; so that, before we had time to proceed to them, they, as aljove stated,
came to us, when the writer promised them he would attend the comi-house, and
do his utmost to see they had justice done to them. They paid a deference to his
advice, no doubt, fiom the fact of his being the senior missionaiy, and Mr. Parkinson
being a comparative stranger.
504
WESTERN COAST OV AFRICA.
However, a difficulty arose. She was in the bush some distance up the creek, and
none of them liked to venture on board, not even the directing magistrate, althougli
he was hea\dly armed. A consultation amongst them was held, when they decided to
send the constable in the first boat, and directed him to make a sign if he found any
resistance.* To show that we had a complete assurance of their dispersion, bro-
ther Fox requested permission to go with the constable in the first boat, I did the
same, aud brother Moss came without it. We had nearly arrived at the vessel, when
we beheld Mr. I., aud some other Europeans, just setting off from the bank to
accompany us. He followed very cautiously. Brother Fox and myself were the first
to jump on board the vessel. All was still, for she was entirely deserted. In a
few minutes after Mr. I. came ; and, as soon as he decently could, left her, express-
ing his thanks to us for our conduct, and requesting us to stay until she was out of
the creek, until, in fact, there was no danger. We did so, and landed in al.out an
hour and a half at Half Dye.
Our servants had brought us the horses, and, as we were riding leisurely back, we
saw the soldiery and the miUtia parading the town to capture what they termed
the ringleaders. ^One gentleman requested Mr. Fox to show him the residence of
one of them, which he did ; and we then rode round with them to the houses of
some of the others, in order to allay any excitement that might be produced by
their foolish and unnecessary conduct, in bringing out the entire military and civil
force of the colony, to arrest about a dozen men, although, so far as we could per-
ceive, there was no attempt made to resist the execution of the warrant by the civil
power.
20th. — I attended the court-house all day, along with my l)rethren ; and so mon-
strous a perversion of justice I never saw. The owniership of the vessel was first
tried. It was clearly proved she belonged to J. G. ; Mr. H., in the first place,
having obtained possession of her by fraud. It appears he hired her from J., and
then sought to detain her on the ground that J. owed him a debt, and gave him a
bill of sale of the vessel to liquidate it ; although I heard Mr. P. myself on the
part of Mr. H. oifer J. G. the diiference between the value of the vessel and the
debt, after J. had taken her. This instrument, which was drawn up by a Midatto
named T. L., on the part of Mr. H., was meant to give him possession of a vessel
for 130 dollars which was well worth 600. After much equivocation, this man con-
fessed that, although it was considered now by Mr. H. a l/oiid Jide bill of sale, it
could hardly be termed one when it was drawn up. And one of the signing wit-
nesses (a European) confessed that he did not see J. G. sign it, and knew not what
he signed himself.
In consequence of this the vessel was adjudged to J. G., and Mr. I. told him,
that he had a right to take her by force.
The magistrates afterwards proceeded to try and punish these poor men for doing
that which Mr. I. said J. G. had a right to do. Originally they were committed for
felony ; but afterwards that charge was abandoned, and they were punished for a
misdemeanour. 1 was the first witness called upon to prove what the magistrates
conceived to be the charge. I most respectfully declined to give my testimony, as
I had assisted the magistrates with my influence and entreaty as much as I could,
* The magistrates were of opinion, that probably some of the pai'ty were in the
hold of the vessel, and that, on the near approach of any one to take possession of
it, they w^ould instantly rise and cut them down ; or, if not in the vessel, that they
were lying in ambush close by, and, from then- hiding-place, would fire upon
tlicni.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMI5IA, AND SIEBRA-LEONE. 505
and told them I thought tliey had not acted towards us with tliat delicacy which
they might have done, especially as I saw several persons present whose attendance
had heen required to prove the charge. They were, however, peremptory, and I
proceeded to give my evidence. I briefly narrated the circumstances detailed on a
preceding page ; explicitly declaring, that I saw none of the men under examina-
tion engaged in riotous proceedings. I only heard some of them remonstrating
with the magistrates about J. G. giving her up unreservedly to the constable, and
saying that she would be given up either to the magistrates or to myself, because
we would take care of her ; and also that, so far from these men attempting to
injure the magistrates, they kept off the mob when it rushed down upon them, and
in all human probability saved their lives. Other evidence to the same effect was
given. But, in despite of all this, some of the people were fined 5 dollars each,
others, 2 dollars ; and a parcel of women, who were merely looking on, 10s. each ;
and J. G. and four or five more remanded until the Monday.
22d. — I again went to the court, when J. G., and the others who had been
remanded, were brought up. After adducing e\'idence of a similar kind to that on
Saturday, J. G. was fined £10 sterling for doing that which Mr. I. told him on the
Satm'day he had a right to do, namely, taking his vessel and keeping her,* and three
or four others were imprisoned. One of these poor fellows, J. C, was imprisoned
for a fortnight, simply because Mr. I. demanded a knife from Mm, which he
refused to give up. The poor fellow had been cutting wood in the bush with this
knife, which he had by his side. Hearing the disturbance, he came to see what
was the matter, knew nothing about the Riot Act being read, and had no con-
nexion with the people ; and under these circumstances, naturally thinking that
he had a better right to his own knife than Mr. I., he refused to give it up.f
Had it not been for the presence of three missionaries, I am convinced the poor
people would have been much more severely handled. As it was, I could scarcely
restrain my indignation at the abominable proceeding of these men passing a defi-
nitive sentence on the poor people, when all they ought to have done, even if the
crime had been proved, was to commit them to the sessions. And it is the
opinion of many, that, had they done so, the people must have been acquitted.
" Surely there is a God that judgeth in the earth !"
In the publication of the preceding statement, the autlior lias
no other object in view than truth and justice : he totally dis-
claims any feelings of acrimony against any person, or number
of persons, who took part in those proceedings. He has given
the facts of the case by an eye-witness ; the principal part of
which came under his own observation ; and he thinks them too
important to be withheld from the public. His chief reason for
placing the whole matter upon record, is to show, what must
have already appeared to the reader's mind, that Avherever the
* Here the author thinks Mr. Parkinson is a little in en'or : the magistrate stated
that J. G. had a right to take possession of his own property, as it proved to be his ;
but that he acted wrong in not giving up the vessel to the jailer, on the authority
of a warrant ; and for that he was fined £10. But was there no mistake or blunder
committed, we may ask, in issiung a warrant to take by force, from a man, his own
property of which he had regained rightful possession ?
t This he stated in court, and could not be contradicted.
50G WESTERN COAST Ol' AFKICA.
gospel is preached aud Christian missions are established, there is,
in connexion with them, a powerful moral influence, which is felt
even b}'^ the masses of the unconverted part of the native tribes,
and which is superior to the constable^s staff", the magistrate's
warrant, the reading of the Riot Act by the queen^s advocate,
or the clangour of military arms ; and that Wesleyan mission-
aries are quite willing to exercise that influence for the peace
and welfare of the community, even when they have reason to
fear that the poor Blacks are the injured party.
The Europeans at the Gambia on this occasion witnessed
these two facts, and the magistrates could not but acknowledge
them, though not in a formal manner. One of them, it will be
seen from Mr. Parkinson's journal, on leaving the vessel,
" expressed his thanks to us for our conduct, and requested us
to stay until she was out of the creek j until, in fact, there was
no danger." And another magistiate, who thought "the mis-
sionaries were deceived " when one of them informed him that
the natives had dispersed, was heard to say while on the bench,
or at the close of the proceedings, " That Fox possesses amazing
influence with these darkies." The result is not attributable to
the missionaries, but to the Spirit aud presence of their Divine
Master. But we all felt thankful that He had used us as
his instruments in preventing bloodshed, and in saving the
colony from a civil war, which, in all probability, would have
ensued.
A few days after this aff'air was settled, the writer, accom-
panied by Messrs. Parkinson and Moss, who had gone with him
down to St. Mary's, paid a visit to the king of Barra, at
Berrending, about two hours' ride inland from the opposite
bank of the river ; and, after an agreeable interview with him
and several of the old men of the capital, Ave proceeded on
horseback to Jillifree, through a most delightful and fertile
champaign country, studded with beautiful trees, shrubs, plants,
and flowers of various descriptions. Shortly after, a similar
journey was undertaken to the king of Combo, on the south bank
of the Gambia, not far distant from St. Mary's. The object of
these visits was to ascertain the intentions of the chiefs, and whe-
ther they would be disposed to place their children at the insti-
tution, which we intended to erect at INIacarthy's Island, for the
education of the sons of native kings and chiefs. We found
both of them well-disposed towards the project ; and on a subse-
quent visit which the writer paid to the kiug of Barra, he pro-
mised that as soon as the building was erected, he would place
some of his children under our care to be educated; and on
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 507
leaving, the missionary was presented with a fine young bullock,
as a token of friendship.
In about three weeks after the author's return from Macar-
thy's Island, Mr. Spencer, the superintendent of the agricul-
tural and civilization department, came down to St. Mary's in a
very weak state; and as his return to England seemed the only
way of saving his life, the writer was greatly distressed ; and at
one time had almost determined, in the event of Mr. Spencer's
removal from the island, that he would himself remain another
year, as he knew the return of the agriculturist, so soon after his
arrival, Avould be an additional disappointment to the praise-
worthy exertions and princely liberality of some of the members
of the committee of that department of the mission. But as he
Avas now only waiting for a favourable opportunity to embark,
and as it was desirable that he should have an interview with
the committee in London on several matters connected witli the
Gambia mission, his own health also requiring a change, to say
nothing of the claims of his dear wife, and as yet unknown
child, and as his brethren strongly urged him, for these reasons,
not to remain, he at length decided, feeling satisfied that it was
the path of duty ; and at the end of May he engaged a passage
for himself and for Mr. and Mrs. Spencer on board the
"Fame;" but we did not embark till about a fortnight after-
wards.*
The mission at Sierra-Leone about this time sustained ano-
ther loss in the death of Mr. Fleet.
Henry Fleet died at Sierra-Leone on the 30th of May,
1839, just one Aveek less than five months after his arrival
there, under the peculiar and painful circumstances which we
hare already narrated. But though he bowed with humility to
the afflictive dispensation in the loss of his wife, it appears that
he never rallied after that melancholy event : the loss of his
beloved partner under such circumstances was more than his
sensitive mind could bear. He was a deeply pious and devoted
man, and had anticipated much pleasure in preaching to the
sable sons of Ham "the unsearchable riches of Christ:" but
after a few short months he was seized with the country fever.
His last illness was brief, but accompanied with much consola-
* It is due to Mr. Spencer to say, that he would gladly have remained had his
health permitted ; that he had two medical certificates, recommending his return to
Em'ope as the only prohability of his recovery ; and that both he and his excellent
wife wept with grief, at being oliliged so soon lo leave the honom"able post assigned
to them.
508 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
tion. His coufideiice never failed in the prospect of dissolu-
tion ; and with a full and blessed hope of eternal happiness, he
entered into rest, in the twenty-second year of his age.
The mission at the Gold-Coast had been gradually rising
under the energetic exertions of Mr, Freeman ; and it was in
the spring of 1839 that he paid his first enterprising visit to
Coomassie, the capital of Ashantee, the interesting particulars
of which the reader may find in the " Missionary Notices ''
for January, 1840, with some brief historical notes by Dr.
Beecham.
On the 12th of June the author embarked on board the
brigantine "Fame,^^ with Mr. and Mrs. Spencer, bound for
London, accompanied some distance by Messrs. Parkinson and
Moss, several other friends, and many of our people, some of
whom were on board the cutter "Crown," which had been
kindly lent for the occasion. He had received every mark of
Christian respect and affection from the society, both at Macar-
thy's Island and at St. Mary's, with many expressions of desire
for his return, both from his brethren in the ministry, the
assistants, and members, some of which were addressed to him
in writing. On this subject he finds it recorded in his journal
as follows : *' My time and talents are the Lord's ; and if He
again says, ' Go,' by his help I will do so. Our dear little boy
will be an obstacle ; but if we have to leave him, I trust that
the same kind providence which has preserved his father in a
sickly clime, will also preserve the son in a more favourable one."
We anchored that evening in the channel, and our friends
returned in the "Crown;" when the author wrote, "May the
God of missions bless and preserve them ! If I am not per-
mitted to see them again in the flesh, I trust I shall live to
hear of the Gambia mission abundantly prospering, and meet
them all at last in our Father's house above."
The particulars of the voyage we pass over. It is sufiicient to
say that we arrived at Weymouth on the evening of the 24tth of
July, and on the morning of the 26th the writer reached Lon-
don, and was cordially received at the Mission-House by the
Rev. Elijah Hoole, the other secretaries being then absent at the
Conference. Early on the following morning, Saturday, 27th, he
arrived at Smethwick,* where his reception may be more easily
conceived than expressed. Tears of joy and gratitude ran down
many cheeks ; and that meeting will not soon be forgotten. Here
* Near Bivniingliani, though in the West-Bromwich circuit.
THE CxOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 509
was a husband and a father, who had long been separated from
his beloved wife, and who had been mercifully preserved in a
sickly clime, and throughout a perilous sea-voyage, brought, by
the good providence of God, to behold once more, in peace and
safety, in his own native land, all that he held most dear on
earth ; and the emotions of his heart on that occasion will never
be erased from his memory. What he felt, when, after the first
warm greetings from his wife, he gazed upon the fine bright eye
and lovely features and form of his dear child, now beheld by
him for the first time, although nearly four years old, can only
be understood by those who have been placed in similar circum-
stances, and can never be adequately described.
On the author^s return and safe arrival at home, he found
that the Stationing Committee had kindly appointed him to a
respectable circuit in the immediate neighbourhood of Smeth-
wick ; and as the annual Conference commenced its sittings on
the following Wednesday, he proceeded to Liverpool to enjoy
the society of his fathers and brethren in the ministry, and to
derive instruction and profit from their deliberations and prayers,
their addresses and pulpit discourses.
As he was aware that, immediately on his arrival in England,
he would be prevented from having any lengthened interview
with the general secretaries or Missionary Committee, on account
of the Conference being close at hand, or actually assembled, he
had, during the voyage, prepared a lengthy statement or report
of the Gambia mission, which he left at the Mission-House in
Loudon.
On reaching Liverpool, the writer was sorry to find that there
was no additional missionary appointed to the Gambia ; in fact,
there was less help now than at the previous Conference, inde-
pendent of his own presence there during the year ; and, taking
into consideration the peculiar circumstances of the station at
Macarthy's Island, with the unexpected return of the agricul-
turist, and there being no immediate prospect of any missionary
of a few years' standing being sent out, he once more volun-
teered his services for Western Africa, and was appointed
accordingly.
This was not a hasty offer : it had occupied his serious con-
sideration, with much prayer to God, for some time. His
friends generally did not think with him upon the subject ; but
his dear wife nobly responding to it, he was satisfied. There
was, however, one difficulty — in their dear child. They had
buried one infant on the banks of the Gambia ; and to take the
present one there, who had been born in England, would be
510 WESTERN COAST OF AFllICA.
running a great risk. The father proposed leaving liim behind ;
but the mother thought she could not consent to that. This
matter was, therefore, left for a time ; but in either case it was
a trial of our faith and love to God.
At this Conference the author, with a number of other
returned missionaries, was publicly recognised and received as a
Wesleyan minister ; and on this occasion he gave expression to
his views and feelings upon the subject of missions : that,
though it required much self-denial, it was a glorious cause ; that
he had felt it to be so, and still did ; that when the great Head of
the church said, " Go ! " he felt it his duty again to obey that
call, and to take up his cross, however unfriendly the clime, or
degraded the people ; and that the salvation of the Heathen is an
object for which the missionary sacrifices, and is willing to sacri-
fice, every thing to which the heart clings on earth : and, catching
the sentiment of an American author, during this address, I
observed, " For this object I will live, for this I will die ; nay,
if I know any thing of a missionary spirit, ' I would live any
where, and die any how/ that the precious souls of the Heathen
might be converted to God."
This solemn service was held in Pitt-street chapel, on Sunday
afternoon, August 11th. Several other brethren gave interest-
ing and affecting narratives of their missionary toils and
triumphs ; and the whole service was not the least interesting
of the many religious and devotional meetings that were held
during the sittings of the celebrated Centenary Conference of
1839.
Shortly after the close of the Conference, the writer proceeded
to London, being anxious to have the state of the Gambia mis-
sion brought before the executive committee as soon as possible,
in order that he might re-embark, and thus have the advantage
of the whole of the dry season, for the erection of some contem-
plated buildings. Bvit some time elapsed before this could be
done ; and in the mean time he was well occupied in preaching
and attending public meetings. In this respect a returned mis-
sionary differs from an officer in the navy or army : on his
return from foreign service, the latter, if he does not retire, has
at least a few months' relaxation from active duties, and is thus
enabled to recruit his health and exhausted strength.
The voyage to England, with a rest of a week or two during
the Conference, had been of essential benefit to the writer; but
he was subject to ague, and had several attacks, though happily
they were of short duration. One of the general secretaries, in
one of his letters to liira, said, " You must not let the people
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND StERRA-LEON E. 511
overwork you. Use j'our own judgment, and learn to say,
' No ! ' " Of course, this referred to applications that were
made to him, in addition to the demands upon him by the
Mission-House ; and it was said in kindness to him, and
from a due consideration for his health. But as his personal
appearance was rather health}^ and flourishing, he had some diffi-
culty in persuading the people that he was not well, or that he
had ever been ill. And, even to this day, the writer is repeatedly
complimented with, " The climate of Western Africa seems to
have agreed very well with you, Mr. Fox;" and by others,
"Did you ever have an attack of the African fever?" On
arriving at some places, to attend a missionary meeting, while
in the vestry for a few minutes, he has been gazed at with a
mixture of astonishment, almost implying a doubt as to whether
he had actually been to "the white man's grave" or not, simply
because his "earthly tabernacle" had not been "dissolved,"
or reduced to a mere skeleton. However, those friends who
honour the author with a careful perusal of this book, will have
sufficient proof (and more he could easily give) that though his
constitution may be considered as thoroughly good, yet his
bones and sinews were not made of iron, nor his muscles and
flesh of brass. He attributes the preservation of his life, in that
land of death, as much to moral courage, as to physical strength;
but more especially to God's goodness, and the prayers of His
people both at home and abroad.
But to return : From the following kind letter, addressed to
him by the senior secretary. Dr. Bunting, the reader will
have a tolerable idea of what is expected from a returned mis-
sionary during a short sojourn in England; that is, where health
and strength will permit : —
London, October 22d, 1839.
My dear Brother, — We readily agree to your assisting our friends at West-
Bromwich, at their anniversary on Sunday and Monday, November 3d and 4th,
according to your and their request ; of which you will be pleased to inform them
forthwith.
But, in consequence of various circumstances, we are so extremely pressed for
help in many quarters, that we are obliged to give you rather hard work, after
your service at West-Bromwich. The cause, however, is glorious; and you have
given proof that you love it. As a returned African missionary, you can materially
aid it ; and w^e trust that grace and strength will be given you for the work. Our
plan for you is as follows : —
Tuesday, November 5th, Wednesday, Gth. — Travel from West-Bromwich to
Portsmouth, and, if possible, get there in time to go over, the Wednesday evening,
to the meeting at Newport, in the Isle of Wiglit.
Thursday, 7th. — Meeting at Cowes, Isle of Wight.
Sunday, 10th. ^ — Preparatory sennons, in conjunction with the Rev. George
Osborn, at Portsmouth and Portsea.
512 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Monday, 11th. — District anniversary meeting at Ditto.
Tuesday, 12tli. — Meeting at Gosport.
Wednesday, 13th. — There is to be a meeting at Farehani. If time and strength
will allow, you can attend it ; if not, tliey must excuse you.*
Thursday, 14th, Friday, 15th, Saturday, IGth. — Travel to Leeds.
Sunday, 17th, Monday, 18th, Tuesday, 19th, Wednesday, 20th. — Attend, and
assist at, the Leeds anniversary for the Leeds district.
Soon after your work at Leeds shall be finished, a visit to town may possibly he.
desirable. But about that we can correspond hereafter. Only do not engage
yourself anywhere without consulting the secretaries. You see we want to make
the most and best use of you, while you remain in England.
With Ivind regards to Mrs. Fox,
I am, my dear Brother,
Yours very affectionately,
The Rev. William Fox. J. Bunting.
At the close of the Leeds district anniversary, the author
received at that place another communication from Dr. Bunting,
requesting him to proceed "to London immediately after the
meeting at Leighton, on the 28th instant." This was to
"make immediate arrangements respecting the Gambia mis-
sion." "Not a week more should be lost," the Doctor observes,
" especially after the intelligence just received of the lamented
death of Mr. and Mrs. Parkinson." Having attended several
meetings between the 20th and 28th, the author proceeded on the
29th to town, and met the general committee, and subsequently
the committee for the civilization department of the mission at
Macarthy's Island. The latter now fully decided, among other
things, on the erection of an Institution for the education of the
sons of the native kings and chiefs in the neighbourhood of the
Gambia, the venerable Dr. Lindoc having presented the muni-
ficent sum of £1,000 for that and other objects connected Avith
that mission. The Wesleyan Missionary Committee also autho-
rized the building of a school-house at St. Mary^s, and an
European schoolmaster and two missionaries were appointed to
the Gambia. We were in hopes of sailing at the end of Decem-
ber, our passage having been taken on board the " Sea- Witch,"
but were detained two or three weeks longer.
"The lamented death of Mr. and Mrs. Parkinson" now
demands our attention. The author had left them in excellent
health, and happy in their work, about the middle of June ;
and in three short months after that, they were both removed
to a better world, and the St. Mary's station was once more left
without a missionary. This painful intelligence had been com-
municated to the committee by Mr. C. Grant, who visited them
* The author attended that, and an additional one the next day.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 513
in their illness, from wlioin, and from other friends, the writer
subsequently gathered some of the following affecting particu-
lars connected with their last days on earth. He is also indebted
to the Rev. William Parkinson, brother of the deceased mission-
ary, for some account of both Mr. and Mrs. Parkinson previous
to their union, and embarking in the glorious cause in which
they both so soon fell.
James Parkinson was born at Liverpool, on the 17th of
August, 1809; and, being blessed with parents who feared God,
he had the advantage of an early religious training. His mother
died when he was comparatively young ; but his father lived to
see him go out as a herald of the Cross, and to mourn his
early removal ; but he shortly after joined him in the rest
remaining for the people of God. Mr. Parkinson's early reli-
gious associations were connected with the established church ;
and, by his previous course of reading, his mind was strongly
biassed by the peculiarities of the Calvinian scheme : but during
the years 1830 and 1831, he frequently attended the ministry
of Dr. Bunting, who was then stationed in Liverpool; and
under his rich evangelical and powerful " handling of the word
of life," and by reading some works on Wesleyan theo-
logy, he became a decided Arminian ; and shortly afterwards
joined the Methodist society. Having " given himself to God,
and to His church by His will," he sought for opportunities of
usefulness ; and during the agitations that disturbed the socie-
ties in Liverpool soon after he became a Wesleyan, though
every member of the class to which he belonged seceded, he
remained faithful, " steadfast, and unmovable." In the year
1836 he began to preach; and by his diligence in reading,
meditation, and prayer, he soon became a very acceptable and
useful local preacher.
In March, 1838, the late Rev. Theophilus Lessey proposed
him to the quarterly meeting as a suitable candidate for the
ministry, by which he was unanimously recommended to the
district meeting, and to the Conference ; and the same year he
was appointed to St. Mary's on the Gambia. Though he was
aware of the unhealthy climate of Western Africa, he cheerfully
received the appointment as from God ; adding, " Liverpool has
inflicted deep wrongs upon Africa : it is right that her sons
should make reparation by carrying to that injured land the
glorious gospel of the blessed God." Animated by these senti-
ments, he left his native home and country ; and on the 22d of
October, 1838, set sail for his destination ; but, having an
L L
514 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
unusually long voyage, he did not arrive until tlie 13th of
December.
The annual Reports for 1839 and 1840 contain interesting
letters from Mr. Parkinson; and in a communication to his
brother, soon after his arrival, he writes : " With my work as a
missionary I am truly delighted. Never have I felt so happy
as when proclaiming the message of salvation to the perishing
Heathen. Difficulties there are connected with it ; responsibi-
lities too, which an experienced missionary (much more one so
raw as I am) trembles to encounter. But still it is a glorious
work; and the highest archangel before the eternal throne
might well envy the lot of the most humble missionary." In
all his other letters to his friends, he wrote in the same delight-
ful strain ; and in the last communication to his brother, writ-
ten only a few weeks before his death, he says, " It is a delight-
ful work ; and I hope that, in eternity, I shall bless God for
sending me here."
The rains had well-nigh passed over, without materially
affecting the health of either Mr. or Mrs. Parkinson; but at
the close of August, they were both unwell. Mr. Parkin-
son, however, preached on Sunday, September 1st, but was the
next day confined to his bed ; and, though every attention was
paid to him, he gradually sank under the influence of the fever,
until the following sabbath, September 8th, 1839, when he
expired, his faith reposing upon the atonement of Christ.
In person, Mr. Parkinson was a little under the middle size,
rather stout, with apparently a good constitution. Though his
connexion with Methodism was comparatively of recent date,
his mind was well stored with Christian theology ; he loved our
doctrines and discipline, and, in the discharge of his duties,
faithfully and aflPectionately administered them. He Mas a good
man, a zealous and useful minister ; and his death was a great
loss to the Gambia mission.
Mrs. Parkinson, wife of our deceased brother, died four
dfiys after her dear husband. She was a native of Scotland,
and was born in Glasgow about the year 1810. When little
more than twenty years of age, she removed with her parents
to Liverpool ; soon after which she united herself to the Wes-
leyan society, and became a diligent and useful Sunday-school
teacher in connexion with Brunswick chapel. In this interest-
ing department of the Lord^s work she continued until her
marriage with Mr. Parkinson, on the eve of their embarkation
for Africa, when her associates presented her with a handsome
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 515
writing-desk, with a suitable inscriptiou, as a token of their
regard. On their arrival in Africa, she was truly a help-meet
to her husband, heartily co-operating with him in advancing
the Redeemer's kingdom ; and in the schools she took a very
lively interest, devoting to them all her time and strength.
She was eminently a woman of a meek and quiet spirit, equa-
bility of temper, unobtrusive and retiring in her manners, yet
possessed with a lively zeal, the offspring of a well-principled
piety, with a perseverance in doing good that seemed to know
no fatigue. The writer has seldom known a more amiable and
excellent female than the late Mrs. Parkinson. To her hus-
band, as well as to the cause in which he was engaged, she was
devotedly attached ; and their union, though brief, was a happy
one. She was spared the pangs of separation ; for at the time
of her husband^s death, she was herself very ill in another
room ; and the painful fact was therefore withheld from her.
It being the sabbath-day, however, when he died, she was sur-
prised at hearing a noise, like some people at work, and asked
what it was. The fact was, some carpenters were preparing
her husband's coffin in the immediate vicinity of the mission -
house; but the question was evaded, and the friend of whom
she asked Avliat the noise was took care instantly to remove it ;
so that he was buried before she was aware of his death.
On Tuesday, September 10th, two days after her husband's
death, Mrs. Parkinson gave birth to a daughter, and on several
occasions inquired how Mr. Parkinson was going on. Fearing,
even now, to communicate the real fact to her, the answer w^as,
"O, he is doing very well indeed," or words to that effect.
But the most affecting part of the story remains. On Wed-
nesday, September 11th, she was able to sit up in bed, and there
was the appearance of her ultimate recovery. Having again
asked most eagerly how her husband was, and receiving an
answer similar to the preceding, she said, " Then, if he is doing
very well, and is so much better, why does he not come to see
me and the dear babe ? " On being told that, " though doing
well, he could not be removed," she became almost frantic, and
exclaimed, " Then, if he cannot come to see me, I must go to
him, and I will ;" and, suiting the action to the word, she was
with difficulty kept in bed ; nor could she be pacified until the
gentleman, at her request, took in his hand a cup of coffee, with
her kind love, and went out of the room, to that at the opposite
end of the house, where she supposed her husband was ! The
sequel is now soon told. The next day, September 12th, she
gently breathed her spirit into the hands of the God that gave
2 L 2
516 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
it, and joined her dear partner in the skies; and then the
mystery was unravelled, and the declaration of David emphatic-
ally verified, " I shall go to him, but he shall not return to
me." Their dear infant died on its passage to England ; and
then our departed sister was in a far better position than
" ij07ider great and good Shunammite woman," to whom the
three-fold question was asked, " Is it well with thee ? Is it well
with thy husband? Is it well with the child? And she
answered. It is well." (2 Kings iv. 26.) *
Towards the close of October Mr. David Jehu sailed for
Sierra-Leone, in the " Captain Cook," and arrived safe at his
destination on the 23d of December. INIr. and Mrs. Mycock
and Mr. Robert Brooking embarked by the " Osborne" on the
20th of November, for Cape-Coast Castle, where they arrived
on the 13th of January, 1840, heartily welcomed by the people
and Mr, Freeman, who up to this time had been toiling alone.
On Tuesday, January 14th, the author, with his little family,
once more left Smethwick, and repaired to London; and the
following sabbath afternoon, an interesting valedictory service
was held in the Wilderness-row chapel, when ]\Ir. William
James and Mr. William English, appointed to accompany the
writer to the Gambia, together with himself, were affectionately
and appropriately addressed by Dr. Beecham ; the other three
secretaries also taking part in the service.
During our short stay in town, we were very comfortably
entertained at the house of Dr. Beecham, whose family felt a
deep interest in our welfare, and whose kindness on that, and
on all other occasions, the writer feels it but an act of justice to
acknowledge; and he does so with sincere feelings of respect
and gratitude.
Late on Wednesday evening, January 22d, we received
instructions to join our vessel at Gravesend the next day at
one o'clock. This was a somewhat unexpected call, being a
day or two earlier than we had anticipated ; but missionaries
must be like soldiers, ready, at the sound of the trumpet, to
* Some of my readers may possibly call in question the propriety or judicious-
ness of keeping Mrs. Parkinson ignorant of the death of her husband in the first
instance, and subsequently doing so by a species of deception. All that the writer
has to say is, that he has given the facts of the case as they actually occurred ;
having received them from the European gentleman himself, who for many years
was a firm friend to our missions, and, in cases of sickness, particularly kind and
attentive ; and he fully believes, that the course he adopted on the above distress-
ing occasion was dictated by sincere respect for the departed husband, as well as
by real kindness to his afflicted wife.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIEREA-LEONE. 517
" stand to their arms/' to take up their cross, and follow their
Lord.
" Who bow to Christ's command,
Your arms and hearts prepare :
The day of battle is at hand :
Go forth to glorious war ! "
The writer, therefore, though he had some doubt as to the
real necessity for the hurry and bustle which this sudden call
occasioned, having an appointment the next forenoon of some
importance, rose early; and, having finished his business before
day-break, soon after breakfast proceeded with his companions
to Gravesend in the steamer, being accompanied thither by
Dr. Beecham.
We had breakfasted with Dr. Bunting the day before, when
we had been benefited, cheered, and encouraged by his wise
counsels and prayers ; and on that occasion had bade him fare-
well. But yet, soon after leaving the house of the kind family
where we had been entertained, our cabriolet-driver suddenly
pulled up, when, on looking out, we saw the venerable Doctor,
who had hailed him to stop, in the act of running to catch us ;
and, coming up to the conveyance, almost out of breath, he said
he " was anxious to have "^another look at us, and again to wish
us every blessing.'' *
On arriving at Gravesend about the middle of the day, on
Thursday, 23d, we found, as the writer had half expected, that
the brig had not come down the river : we therefore had to wait
till the Saturday afternoon, at which time she came; and on
the evening of that day we went on board, as the captain and
pilot said Ave should get under weigh at five o'clock in the
morning. Having erected the family altar, we turned into our
berths, and during the voyage performed divine service as often
as we could ; but for some days all our little band, with the
other passengers, (except the writer,) suffered more or less from
sea-sickness ; and having very severe weather in the Channel,
some of our party experienced this distressing sensation to a
great extent. In putting in of? Ryde in the Isle of Wight, we
narrowly escaped shipwreck, having got upon a sand-bank»
* Dr. Bunting "is yet alive;" and long may he live! For that reason, the
writer is prevented from sajing more than, that, in all his intercourse with this
venerable and venerated man, both in puljlic and in private, for nearly twenty years,
he has ever found him to be the wise, the good, and the great, but, at the same-,
time, the kind, the condescencUng, the affable, and the falhoriy man ; indeed, the
little incident recorded in the text is sufficient to contradict a thousand assertions ta
the contrarv.
518
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
This was between nine and ten o'clock in the evening of
February 2d : it was then very dark, and blowing hard from
the south-west. Several guns were fired for assistance ; but
before human help could come to us, a gracious Providence
interposed, and our ship got into deep water^ and we imme-
diately anchored.
Our departure, in connexion with that of several brethren to
other parts of the Heathen world, was announced in a sub-
sequent Number of the "Missionary Notices," as follows: —
Western Africa.— On the 25th of January, the Kev. Wilham Fox embarked,
by the " Sea Witch," on his return to St. Mary's, on the River Gambia, after a
residence of a few months in this country for the establishment of his health,
which had suffered by his labours in Western Africa since the year 1833. He is
accompanied by Mrs. Fox and child, the Rev. William and Mrs. James, the Rev.
William EngUsh, Mr. Walter Crowly, a schoolmaster, Kakouta Sonko, a native
youth, the son of the late king of Barra, who is placed under the care of Mr. Fox,
and by two other natives. They were also detained at Portsmouth until the 18th
of February ; and as the winds have since been favourable, it is hoped that, before
this time, they have reached their destination.
During our detention at Portsmouth, the author and his col-
leagues preached several times in that town and its immediate
neighbourhood, and also attended several other meetings ; and
the friends of missions there " showed us no little kindness ; "
among whom must be mentioned, with feelings of gratitude, the
family of Mr. J. Keet, and the late venerable Rev. Jonathan
Edmondson. The severe gales from the south-west having sub-
sided, and a fine easterly wind having set in, we prepared for
our re-embarkation ; on the eve of which we wrote to our friends,
the author closed his letter to the committee as follows : " And
now. Rev. and very dear Sirs, fathers, brethren, and Christian
friends, I hasten to a close ; for
' The soft swelling breezes are nigh.
They beckon us down to the shore,
And swift will they bear us away,
From the land we may never see more.'
But the cause, though arduous, is honourable and glorious ; and
the reward will be crowns of glory. God grant we may all be
faithful till death ! " The postscript announcing our departure
was dated March 18th, and, three days previous to that, we had
all arrived safe at the Gambia, thankful to " the God that rules
on high " for having " calmed the roaring seas," and given to
us, after our re-embarkation, a speedy passage to our destined
port.
On arriving at St. Mary's on the 15tli of March, we were
THE GOLD-COASTj GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 519
cordially welcomed by the people, and by Mr. Moss, whom we
found at that station in tolerable health. William JufF, one of
the native assistants, had expired in the faith and hope of the
gospel on the 1st of that month, after a severe affliction of three
months' duration. Mr. Moss improved this event by a sermon
addressed to a very crowded congregation ; and the reader will
find a brief record of this excellent and useful native teacher in
the Minutes of the Conference for that year.
Mr. James being appointed to Macarthy^s Island, he, with
Mrs. James, proceeded to his station in about ten days, accom-
panied by Mr. Moss; and the writer was in the mean time
engaged in purchasing materials for the erection of the new
school-house, having already some carpenters at work. Obtain-
ing a suitable lot of land adjoining the chapel, we commenced
with the building at the close of April.
On the 24tli of this month one of our members named John
Dunn died under the following circumstances : he had been ill
only a few days, and on the day of his death there was nothing
that indicated immediate danger. He was, however, very
happy ; and on one of the native teachers asking him if he had
not better take a little more medicine, he said, " No, he did not
wish for any more, for at five o'clock he was going home." This
was about the middle of the day; two hours after which he
got up, and Avalked in his yard and garden, contemplating the
bright heavens above, and adoring the wisdom and goodness of
God. He said, "he loved God and all his brothers and sisters,
and that about five o'clock he was going to glory." Strange to
say, he went into his little thatched cottage, lay down, and a
little before the barracks clock struck five that afternoon, he fell
asleep in Jesus ! The writer felt a melancholy pleasure, early
the next morning, in committing his body to the grave in the
presence of a large concourse of people, when we sung with
peculiar emotion that beautiful hymn commencing with,
" Hark ! a voice divides the sliy, —
Happy are the faithful dead," &c.
Having set the masons and carpenters fairly at work with the
new school, and arranged some other matters connected with
the mission, on the 21st of May, the author proceeded to the
upper station. He remained there about a fortnight, during
which period the foundation for the Institution was laid, and
the new village commenced; and as the rains were rapidly
approaching, in fact, had begun, more in the way of building
could not be prudently proceeded with till they ceased. He
520 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
returned to St. Mary's on the llth of June, and found his dear
family and the brethren tolerably well. The Europeans as well
as natives subscribed liberally towards the erection of the Insti-
tution, as well as for the school at St. Mary's; and so much
progress was made with the latter, that we succeeded in getting
the roof on before the heavy rains fell, though it was not
finished for some months afterwards. Centenary Meetings were
held at both stations during the months of May and June, in
which the members took a very lively interest. It was truly
pleasing to witness the liberality of our poor people, who came
forward and said, " Massa, you put me down two dollars, two
dollars for my wife, one dollar for my child, and one dollar for
one child him gone to heaven." This Avas said before the writer
had fully explained how these meetings had been conducted in
England, thus proving that " Methodism as it is " is the same
all the world over. Nearly .€100 were raised at the two stations ;
and we could and did adopt the dying language of the immortal
Wesley, " The best of all is, God is with us ! "
Soon after the author's return to Africa, he was again
appointed acting colonial chaplain ; so that his time was fully
occupied. But the rains had now set in, and the effects of
these periodical torrents soon became visible on the health of
the Europeans generally, several of Avhom, especially the white
sailors, had died. This was also the case at Sierra-Leone ; and
one of the first victims this season was the wife of Mr. Dove ;
and it is now the writer's melancholy task again to place upon
record several deaths in the mission families, which occurred
during this unhealthy, and by him never-to-be-forgotten, season.
Mrs. Dove accompanied her husband to the Gambia early
in 1833, and for three years cheerfully shared with him in all
the afflictions and toils connected with the Macarthy's Island
mission, and was most indefatigable in her attentions to the
instruction of the young females. After a residence in Eng-
land of little more than twelve months, she a second time nobly
responded to the call of God and his church, and in company
with Mr. Dove sailed for Sierra-Leone, where they, with Mr.
Badger, arrived in safety on the 19th of November, 1837. Here
she was no less diligent, faithful, and successful in the same
department of the work of God, with occasional interruptions
from sickness, up to the period which terminated her valuable
life. Mrs. Dove was a pious woman, a good wife, and a sincere
friend; and was highly respected by all who knew her. She
died at Sierra-Leone of the country-fever on the 7th of June,
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIEKRA-LEONE. 521
1840, after an illness of five days, leaving a blessed testimony
behind her that "to die" was eternal "gain."
Soon after this event Mr. Edwards, who had been preparing
to leave the colony, returned to England on account of ill
health; and shortly after the Sierra-Leone mission met with
another loss in the death of Mr. Jehu. On the 7th of July the
author received a letter from Macarthy's Island, with the
melancholy tidings that Mr. James had expired six days pre-
viously. This was very distressing news, Mr. Moss being at
that time at Goree for the benefit of his health ; so that that
station was left without a missionary ; and Mrs. James, a young
widow, was there alone, or rather now on her way down to
St. Mary's.
The writer has been kindly furnished, by two of his brethren
in the ministry, who were intimately acquainted with Mr.
James "from his youth up," with interesting memoirs of him,
which are alike creditable to the heads and hearts of the
writers ; but they are too long for insertion. The substance
of them, however, he Avill endeavour to embody in the following
sketch, with some additional remarks from his own personal
knowledge of him.
William James was born in Liverpool, in the year 1815, of
pious parents. His father at an early age received the appoint-
ment of captain in the merchant-service, trading to the Coast of
Africa, where, soon after William was born, he met with an
accident, which, together " with Africa's cruel climate, shattered
his whole system." For years he was confined to his house
after his return to England, but murmured not : he said, " It is
the Lord, let him do what seemeth him good." At length he
was so far recovered, as to be able to take a situation in His
Majesty's customs.
At the age of fourteen his son was articled as an apprentice
to a respectable bookbinder and stationer in Liverpool; and,
two years after, he became truly converted to God. This happy
change took place in Mount-Pleasant chapel, one sabbath even-
ing. The officiating minister was the late Rev. Joseph Holling-
worth, who, at the close of the service, conducted a prayer-
meeting. Pointed and powerful were his appeals to the uncon-
verted : the word reached the heart of young James, and he
found liimself at the communion-rail, he knew not how, with
his father by his side, pleading with God on his behalf. That
night he was filled with joy and peace in believing ; and there is
r>22
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
good reason to think that he never lost his sense of the Divine
favour, but continued to Avalk in the comforts of the Holy Ghost,
to the day of his death. In five months after William^s con-
version, his father passed in holy triumph from earth to heaven.
Mr. James now devoted himself fully to God, and was
desirous of being useful to others. He soon became a sabbath-
school teacher and prayer-leader, and subsequently a local
preacher. The latter office was not undertaken in haste, but
at the request of others, from a conviction of duty, and a love to
souls. At the March quarterly-meeting of 1839, the late K-ev.
John Anderson proposed him as a candidate for the ministry,
to which proposal the meeting cordially responded ; and having
passed the district-meeting with great credit, he was accepted
by the Conference.
Mr. James was at first intended for the ministry at home ; but
this was in deference to the wishes of his widowed and beloved
mother, who was greatly afflicted. But his heart was in the mis-
sion work, and had been from the beginning ; and when, a few
weeks after he had passed the quarterly-meeting, God was
pleased to take his dear mother to himself, he, without a
moment's hesitation, off'ered himself for that service in which his
soul delighted, and for Avhich he believed his way to be provi-
dentially, though painfully, opened ; and he was, soon after the
Conference of 1839, appointed by the Missionary Committee to
Macarthy's Island.
It was at this place that I last saw him, on the 5 th of June,
1840, only three weeks before his death. He was then in
excellent health and spirits, and accompanied me to the river's
bank on my leaving that station for St. Mary's, where we
heartily shook hands, after which he stood waving his hand for
some time. I had cautioned him against undue exposure, or
too much labour ; but being alone, and breathing as he did the
self-sacrificing spirit of a devoted missionary, who " scorns his
feeble flesh to spare," he was intent upon doing his utmost in
spreading the common Saviour's fame.
On the sabbath-day previous to his illness, he preached three
times, travelled six or seven miles in the hottest part of the day,
and afterwards went and watched the dying bed of a native till
near midnight. The following morning he went to the bury-
ing-ground, and committed that same individual to the dust,
returned home and wrote me a few hasty lines, then went to
bed, and in eight days " ceased at once to work and live ! "
Mr. James was a young man of more than ordinary promise.
His bright genius, noble soul, and moral fortitude, gave indica-
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 523
tion of his rising to considerable eminence as a minister of the
Lord Jesus. He was a most amiable, open-hearted, kind, and
aifectionate colleague. Cheerful and happy in his disposition,
he was "the friend of all, the enemy of none." But though
lively in his manner and demeanour, and extremely buoyant in
spirit, he was never light or trifling. His character was distin-
guished by an entire transparency, and in him there was " no
guile." His appearance in the pulpit resembled that of
" Timothy the Young ;" but " the common people heard him
gladly," and, his sermons being well arranged, and delivered
with great propriety of tone and manner, and with considerable
power, " his profiting appeared to all.^' The late venerable
Jonathan Edmondson, who heard him at Portsea during our
detention there, spoke of him to the writer as a young man
of superior endowments. How mysterious that a man of
such promising talents, sincere piety, and ardent zeal should
have been so soon removed by death ! Mr. James died at
Macarthy's Island, happy in God, July 1st, 1840, aged twenty-
four years, after a residence in Africa of only three months and
a half.
David Jehu, whose death was mentioned in a preceding
page, expired the day after Mr. James. He was a man of deep,
uniform, and consistent piety; and possessed in an eminent
degree a meek and quiet spirit. He had enjoyed the advan-
tages of the Theological Institution for a year, when he nobly-
offered himself to supply a vacancy that had occurred at Sierra-
Leone, which place he reached on the 23d of December, 1839.
But though he had willingly filled up a breach caused by " the
last enemy,^^ and thus joined the surviving brethren in the front
ranks of this moral field of battle, he was not permitted long to
continue. Having laboured for about six months with dili-
gence, zeal, and success, he was attacked with the African fever,
and died, not only in great peace, but " in the full triumph of
faith," on the 2d of July, 1840, in the thirtieth year of his age,
and the first of his missionary labour.
On the 2d of August, Mrs. James embarked on board the
brigantine " Maas " for England. His Excellency the governor
kindly presented her, through the writer, with a donation of
£20, which three other friends made up to £50, as an expres-
sion of sympathy with her, and as a mark of respect and high
regard for her late excellent husband.
On the 14th and 15th of the same month the author wrote to
524 WESTEEN COAST OF AFRICA.
the committee at some length, reporting the state of the mis-
sion, with tlie progress made in the new buildings, &c. Up to
this period the remaining part of the mission family at St.
Mary's had been preserved in tolerable health; but from that time
a series of personal and domestic afflictions, with heart-rending
bereavements, together with other trials, followed in rapid succes-
sion upon the writer, so that, though nearly ten years have passed
away since that time, he almost shudders at the bare narration
of those painful and mysterious dispensations of Divine Provi-
dence. But though that same Providence has graciously smiled
upon him again, and blessed him with "wife and children
dear," he cannot omit placing upon record some account of
those dark and bitter days.
Some time elapsed after his bereavements before an opportu-
nity offered of writing to England ; and on his communication
reaching the Mission-House, there was only time to insert a
postscript in the " Notices ; " but his letter was published in the
" Watchman " of the same date, wdth a few prefatory remarks
similar to the following announcement by the general secre-
taries : —
ST. mart's, GAMBIA.
The Rev. William Fox, our respected missionary in Western Africa, has been
called to pass through very severe affliction. On the 30th of August, he was
bereaved of his only son, in the fifth year of his age, after two days' iUness : and in
eight days afterwards he was made a widower by the death of his very amiable
and excellent wife. The Society sympathize most deeply with Mr. Fox, under this
heavy affliction, and commend him to the kind remembrances and earnest prayers
of the friends of missions ; and with him all who labour " in the kingdom and
patience of Jesus Cluist."
Mission-House, St. Mary's, November 22)d, 1840.
Rev. and very dear Sirs, — Having finished some other letters and docu-
ments, I now sit down to a more melancholy task. I made several attempts some
time ago ; but my heart was too full, and tears flowed too fast ; so that I was
obliged to postpone the effort to another, and then to some other, period, till I
have arrived at a day, or a day and a half, before the vessel sails. I must there-
fore proceed to inform you, that, on the 30th of August, my dear Uttle boy breathed
his last, after two days' illness ; and, in eight short days afterwards, my dear and
much-loved wife followed him to the paradise of God, leaving me a poor widower,
with an infant motherless babe, only four days old. This will be enough, I know,
to awaken yom^ Christian sympatliies, and probably will call forth an ejaculatory
prayer, that the God of missions may be my " help in the time of need." I assure
you, my dear Sirs, I have felt this stroke to be almost more than I can bear ; and I
have frequently been led to exclaim, with Job, " Have pity upon me, have pity
upon me, 0 ye my friends : for the hand of God hath touched me ! " Well, though
my heart bleeds afresh while I write, I must beg leave, on tliis moiunful subject,
to particularize a Uttle.
My late painful bereavements were preceded by a vciy serious and protracted
bilious fever on myself. You may, perhaps, recollect that, in my letters of August
THE GOLD-COASTj GAMBIA^ AND SIERRA-LEONE. O^O
15th, I complained a little. I was that very evening violently attacked with vomit-
ing and burning fever. I continued for three or four days, and my friends were
vei-y fearful as to the consequeuces. My dearest Ann, and another kind friend,
thought proper to call in additional mcihcal aid, partly unknown lo me ; for I was
too ill to know what was going on, though I was remarkably happy and composed.
Having been bUstered and leeched, and well physicked, with God's blessing attend-
ing the means, I began to recover, though it was but slowly ; yet I was soon able
to go about the room and piazza with a stick. I was thus far recovered when, on
the 28th of August, our dear little boy was taken poorly ; and it so happened that
his dear mother became ill on the same day. We apprehended nothing serious from
our dear boy's ■sickness ; indeed, we were thankful he had not been ill before, as he
had enjoyed uninterrupted health since our arrival. He was a little worse the next
day, though nothing serious. On the following morning he was much better ; the
doctor saw him, and pronounced him so ; and the little dear, as I approached his
bed, eagerly kissed my hand, and, in answer to my question how he w"as, spoke
quite cheerful and quick, saying, " Better, thank you, pa." Scarcely an hour had
elapsed, when he suddenly became convulsed. I had the doctor as soon as possi-
ble ; and every means that could be adopted was tried, but to no purpose : he
sometimes partially recovered, and then fell off again. He thus continued till
about half-past three on Sunday afternoon, August 30th, when, with his little hand
in mine, lying on the sofa by his dear mother, who was ill in bed, he escaped the
storms of this life, and was safe lodged in a better world. My dear wife and
myself felt this stroke veiy severely. She had thus far reared him, under some-
what peculiar circumstances,— I not having seen him till he was nearly foiu* years
of age, and ha^'ing now only had his society on earth for a few months. But we
«ndeavoured to console each other, knowing that, if we continued faithfid, " we
should go to him, though he should not return to us."
My dear Ann continued poorly ; and, being so near her confinement, I felt
€xceedingly anxious that she should be able to get out of bed and gain a little
strength before that event took place. But the Almighty's ways are not om* ways :
she continued feverish and poorly till Wednesday evening, when she gave birth to
a lovely little girl, whom I immediately recognised as my " little Ann," thanking
God for his kindness and present help to the dear mother in the time of need.
This was aljout half-past three on Thursday morning, September 3d. My dearest
wife was remarkably well, all things considered, that day : indeed, she said it was
the best she had had, but probably she would not be so well the next day. It so
happened that she was not ; and early on the foUovdng morning, which was Satur-
day, she was taken ill. She took very strong medicine ; but the disease continued
unabated in its coiu-se all day on Saturday ; and on Saturday night stronger medi-
cine was given, but it appeared to have little or no effect. At this period I per-
ceived a little stupor, (which I thought was the effect of the medicine, as she had
taken a great quantity ; but I aftei-wards learned it was weakness,) and she wan-
dered a little on that day. She was wandering a Uttle on the Sunday afternoon ;
yet it was quite evident that her heart was right with God, as she was continually
repeating some portions of hymns, and on one occasion appeared as if she was con-
versing with the children, or meeting her class, as she was heard to say, " Come to
Jesus, come to Jesus ; Jesus is the sinner's friend." On the Monday morning
I plainly saw that nature was exhausted, though I had given her port-wine, with
other things, during the night. Two or three kind friends sat up with me, and
every thing was done that medical skill, khidness, and affection could suggest ; but
it was evident she was sinking into the anus of death. I went to her bed-side
526 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
about an hour before sbe died, and, thougb she could not speak, I believe she knew
me ; for she gently tiu-ned or moved her lips towards me, and received the last
salutation.
0, my dear Sirs, my heart is almost too full, and tears will flow ; but, thank
God, they are not the tears of hopeless grief. No ! I sorrow not as those without
hope. I have a delightful prospect of, ere long, meeting with my dear wife and
lovely boy in a nobler clime. About an hour after the above circumstance, she
" who had done me good and not evil all the days of her life," without the slight-
est struggle or movement, gently breathed her spirit into the hands of her heavenly
Father, at half-past one o'clock on Monday afternoon. I felt unutterable things
that day and scores of times since, and have had great difficulty to write this letter.
You will, I know, pardon me for giving you so minute a statement ; it has cost me
some painful feelings, but will probably be a relief to me afterwards. My dear
Ann was interred the following morning, under the communiou-table in the chapel.
Our dear little boy is lying at her right side, and a dear infant that we lost in 1834
is at her left side ; and " there their flesh shall rest in hope."
His Excellency the governor, the colonial secretary, civil and mihtary oflicers,
merchants, and many other respectable people, attended the funeral ; and I believe
I may say, I had the sympathy and condolence of nearly the whole colony. Even
the very Pagans and Mohammedans, as I passed the street, would look serious, and
salute me with, " Ah, massa ! " or, " Poor Mr. Fox get plenty trouble." The
governor wrote me a condoling letter, as did the secretary and several others, some
of them members of society, both here and from Macarthy's Island. But my loss
is great. I would not attempt to augment it, or to " charge God fooUshly." No.
There is, however, a peculiarity in it, which makes it hea\y. I am called to part
with a dear little boy, a blooming and much-loved wife, in the short space of eight
days ; and am left in charge of a dear helpless Ijabe four days old !
The lady of Mr. Ingram (colonial secretary) kindly offered to take charge of the
dear infant. I have a wet-nurse for it, but she is at Mrs. Ingram's with the baby ;
and I am happy to say, that, under the superintendence of this kind lady, it is
doing well. I managed to baptize it some weeks ago in the chapel, before the con-
gregation. Judge what I felt, while standing over the remains of its dear mother,
brother, and infant sister. I gave a short exhortation, as well as I could for weep-
ing, and baptized the only-surviving child of my dearest wife, naming it after its
departed mother.
I have always been very fond of that passage : " And we know that all things
work together for good to them that love God;" but, I assure you, these late
heavy and complicated trials have almost staggered my faith, though I dare not
disbelieve the passage : indeed, I received a gentle reproof, and at the same time
derived encouragement, a few weeks ago, while perusing the Rev. J. Crowther's
Sermon on Divine Providence, and especially from the following paragraph : —
" On the same principle, we find nothing above the character of the plainest and
most obvious truth in the scriptural assurance, that ' to them that love God, all
things shall work together for good.' It has sometimes been thought, that a little
ingenuity was requisite to show the perfect truth of this assertion ; but any one
disposed to call its truth in question, would find it a much heavier tax upon his
ingenuity, were he required to show under what circumstances, to one whose heart
is perfect towards God, the contrary can be possible, or how any thing can really
harm him who is a follower of that which is good."
On Sunday last I endeavoured to benefit the people, as well as get my own faith
strengthened in the promises and providence of God, by preaching from Mark
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 527
V. 36 : " Only believe." The Lord helped me, and " it was good to be there." 1
shall have your sympathies and prayers, I know, as well as the sympathy and
prayers of many of the friends of missions.
The following kind, Christian note from the governor really did me good : —
" My dear Mr. Fox, — Be assured none of your friends will more sincerely
sympathize with you than myself in these sad afflictions and severe deprivations
with which, for purposes concealed from our penetration, it has pleased Almighty
God to visit you. You have, however, my dear Sir, the consolation of feeling that
you have served Ilim with such truth, that in tliis your time of melancholy trial,
you may confidently look for His support, while He receives the immortal souls of
your late excellent wife and sinless child into His care and blessedness. Should it
not be intrusion, I should be anxious to show the respect I have to you, and the
regard I have as well to both, l)y attending the sorrowful duties of to-morrow
morning.
" Sincerely pra\ing for your relief in these afflictions, ever believe me,
" My dear Mr. Fox,
" Most faithfully yours,
" H. V. Huntley.
" Government-House, September 1th, 1840."
I must now, my dear Sirs, hasten to a close, casting myself afresh upon the
" Rock of Ages." He who has been with me, has promised " to be with me
alway."
" Credence to His word I give ;
My Saviour in distresses past
Will not now His servant leave.
But bring me through at last."
With my kind love to yourselves, the committee, and all friends,
I am,
Rev. and dear Sirs,
Your afflicted, bereaved, and tried, but willing and obedient, servant,
William Fox, Wedeyart Missionary.
To the General Secretaries, &fc. &fc. S^'c.
Mrs. Fox was the third child and eldest daughter of Mr.
and Mrs. James Middleton, of Smethwick, and was born in
that locality January 2d, 1808. At her father's house the
Wesleyan ministers have for many years found a hearty wel-
come, and most of the members of the family are annual
subscribers to our missions. She was brought to a saving
knowledge of the truth when about sixteen years of age,
through the instrumentality of the late Rev. George Smith, who
was then stationed in Birmingham, and immediately joined the
Methodist society at Nineveh, there being at that time no Wes-
leyan chapel at Smethwick. The genuineness of her conversion
was evidenced by " the fruits of the Spirit," and by making
herself useful in that sphere of life in which it pleased God to
call her. This was demonstrated in various ways, for some
528 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
years previous to our union, both at Nineveh and Smethwick,
in instructing the rising generation in the sahbath-schools, deH-
vering tracts, and collecting for the missions, and subsequently
in meeting a class of young females, both in England and in
Africa. Being a person of retired habits, she undertook the
important office of class-leader with diffidence and fear ; but
the numerous and affectionate letters which she received when
abroad from those dear " lambs of the flock," were not only
gratifying to her feelings, but at the same tiuie afl'orded evi-
dence of the esteem which they had for their leader, and of the
benefit which they had derived from her pious instructions, and
her exemplary and consistent conduct. Her religious experi-
ence generally evinced a calm, unshaken confidence in God,
through the precious blood of Christ, and hence she enjoyed a
SAveet peace, and joy in the Holy Ghost, with a glorious hope of
immortality. The Bible, our excellent Hymns and periodicals,
and a few biographical works, were the principal books which
she perused; and these she read frequently with pleasure
and profit. The Life of Mrs. Fletcher of Madeley, and of Mrs.
Judson'of Burmah, she highly prized. She was a lover of the
means of grace, and almost invariably came from them refreshed
and blessed. Many a time has she said to the writer, on coming
out of the chapel, " There appeared to be a very gracious feel-
ing :" a proof this, that she felt it good to be there. Her class
of girls was the last meeting she attended, as she was taken ill
the next day ; and deeply did they deplore her death, all of
whom, with many other members of the society, even down to
the school- children, for a long time after the funeral, wore
marks of mourning, out of sincere respect to her memory, and
that of our dear son.
To the cause of missions Mrs. Fox was warmly attached.
She gave proof of this, when, after a few weeks' residence in
England in 1835, her husband felt it his duty to return alone to
the Gambia, as she was unable to accompany him ; and nothing
but supreme love to God, and the deep interest she felt in that
mission, could have enabled her to submit to the painful separa-
tion, for painful it was to us both. The writer having remained
in Africa much longer than was contemplated, during which time
many deaths occurred in the mission families, she was necessarily
the subject of much painful anxiety as to the preservation of his
life ; and when he returned in 1839, and Divine Providence
seemed to point out again the Gambia as his path of duty, she
cheerfully responded to the call, and frequently spoke of going
to St. Mary's as though she was going home, from her previous
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 529
knowledge of the place, and love to the people. Nor was she at
all deterred or discc^uraged when, a short ttme before we sailed,
the painful intelligence arrived of the death of Mr. and Mrs.
Parkinson, with their orphan child ; but calmly and heroically
replied, on its being made known to her, " Well, this is painful
news indeed ! But if the Lord sees fit, he can preserve us, and
make us useful ; and if not, he will take us to himself in hea-
ven.^* Nor could the last sickness with whicli she was visited,
with all its withering effects upon her beautiful countenance
and lovely form, quench the spark, or rather flame, of mission-
ary fire and holy ardour that still existed in the falling taberna-
cle; for, only a very short period before she expired, on being
asked if she regretted coming again to Africa, she, with great
energy and emphasis, replied, '' No, my love ! "
In all the relations of life, Mrs. Fox was most exemplary and
amiable. As a mother, she gave a striking instance of a
mother^s love on the bed of death. As already stated in the
preceding letter, we both felt most keenly the loss of our dear
boy ; but as the father was once more raised from " the margin
of the grave,^' she bore up tolerably well, saying it was " a mat-
ter of thankfulness that the Almighty had spared the tree,
though he had cut off one of its branches." In this Christian
philosophy he could not but acquiesce, though he little thought
of what was so soon to follow. But the day before she died,
suffering at the moment from temporary delirium, she asked,
" Where is Johnny ? " And only a few hours before she
breathed her last, referring to the dear infant, she exclaimed,
with a peculiarity of tone and feeling which I shall never forget,
" O where is my child ? " Being assured it w as doing well with
the nurse in the next room, she was then easy ; and shortly
after she became unconscious of all sublunary things, and died
^'in sure and certain hope of the resurrection to eternal life
through our Lord Jesus Christ," on Monday, September 7th,
J 840, in the thirty-third year of her age.
M at
CHAPTER XXIII.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1840—1843.)
Letteks of Condolence to the Author — His other Trials — The Arrival of Mr. and
Mrs. Swallow — The Judge (h'owned, and the Sessions postponed — Departure
of Mr. Moss for England — The Gold-Coast — Mr. Freeman in England — His
Emharkation for Africa with a nohle Band of Missionaries — Their safe
Arrival — Return of Mr. and Mrs. Mycock — Death of Mr. Thackwray and Mr.
Walden, and Mrs. Freeman and Mrs. Hesk — Mr. Hesk's Return Home —
Messrs. Freeman and Brooking enter Coomassie — Sierra-Leone Mission —
Liherated Africans and condemned Slave-vessels — The Niger Expedition — Dr.
Madden— The Arrival of Mr. Symons for the Gamhia, with Messrs. Raston
and Annear for Sierra-Leone — Messrs. William Allen, Wyatt, and Rowland
arrive at the Gold-Coast — Death of Messrs. Wyatt and Rowland — The Gamhia
— Extracts from the Author's Journal — -Institution — The Author's Interview
with the desperate Chief Kemmingtan — Moral Influence of the Mission —
Fidelity of a Negro Servant — A Visit to Sierra-Leone — Call at Bissao —
Contrast hetween the two Places — Mr. Dove and Mr. Badger return to Eng-
land— The Gamhia — ^Rainy Season — Prince de Joinville — The Author visits
the Upper Gamhia in Company with the Acting Governor— Extracts from liis
Journal — Cantalicunda the highest Trading-port on the Gamhia — Influence of
the Tide — Return to Macarthy's Island and St. Mary's — Sickness and Death of
Mrs. Swallow — The Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Watldns, with Mr. George Chap-
man, at the Gold-Coast — And of Mr. and Mrs. Quick and Mr. Amos at Sierra-
Leone — Death of Mr. Shipman and Mrs. Watkins at the Gold-Coast — The
Gamhia District-Meeting — Arrival of Mr. Lynn, the Schoolmaster — The
" Madagascar" Frigate — Commodore Foote — Letter from an African Chief on
the Subject of the Slave-Trade — The Arrival of Messrs. Godman and Parson-
son at St. Mary's — Extracts from the General Report, showing the State of
the Missions at each Station, with the Statistics— Annual Subscriptions — The
Author's Residence in Africa drawing to a Close — Testimonial from Europeans
— Farewell Sermon — The Missionary's Grave — The Author embarks for Eng-
land with Mr. Swallow, by Way of France — Reflections on leaving Africa —
Incidents on the Passage — Arrival in England.
The communication from the author which appeared in the
" Watchman/' called forth many letters of condolence and sym-
pathy from his friends in England, with fervent prayers to "the
God of all grace'' on his behalf; and those letters proved a
source of comfort and encouragement to him, during the dark
and mysterious dispensations of Divine Providence. But though
these circumstances are indelibly impressed upon his memory,
he has no wish to dwell longer upon them, as others of his bre-
THE GOLD-COASTj GAMBIA, AND SIERRA- LEONE. 531
threu were called to pass through similar scenes of suffering,
though none of them, perhaps, under such peculiar circum-
stances as those detailed at the close of the preceding chapter.
Indeed, his friends in England could not know the whole of
what he had to suffer for Christ's sake at this period, and for
some months afterwards. On a previous page, he has hinted
at " other trials,'^ in addition to the " wave after wave " that
rolled over him at the time of his wife's death ; and the letter in
the " Watchman " commenced with a reference to " some other
letters and documents," received at the same time. As he con-
ceives it right that the friends and supporters of missions should
know what their agents and servants have sometimes to endure
in Heathen lands, he will now refer to those " other trials,"
though it is a painful subject ; but a faithful history of the mis-
sion requires it, and it is demanded in justice to himself. This
unwelcome part of his duty shall be treated, however, as briefly
as possible, and with as gentle a hand as the circumstances of
the case will admit.
It has been already stated that in the cause of missions the
writer expected to suffer, as he had done ; that it was a cause
which required the exercise of self-denial ; and that he embarked
in it the third time on the same principle, '' not knowing the
things that should befall him there."
As a missionary to Western Africa, he knew that trials and
afflictions awaited him, but that the cause was great and glo-
rious, that it was dear to his heart; and he made not the
slightest pretensions or claims to being any thing more than a
sincere Wesleyan missionary. Purity of motive he does claim ;
and, in all his transactions with the parent committee, and with
others, from the commencement to the close of his missionary
career, he is bold to say, that he remained sincere and faithful,
that he was an honest, upright man, and did his utmost to
forward the views of those by whom he was sent.
But he had not been at St. Mary's on this occasion many
months, before a person then recently connected with the mis-
sion, indulging in a spirit of envy and jealousy, thought other-
wise of him ; and by almost every vessel was writing, to different
friends in England, a number of unfounded statements, most
prejudicial to his character. At the very time he was suffering,
and when he needed the soothing balm of real sympathy, and
the supporting hand of genuine kindness and brotherly love,
then it Avas that this young man, secretly and unknown to him,
penned a long letter to the Missionary Committee, full of mis-
representation, slander, and falsehoods ; and, amongst other
2 M 2
532 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
things, charged him with being " a betrayer of the trust reposed
in him." The first intimation which the author had of it, was in
October, when he received from the secretaries in London a
copy of the letter. At that time he was ill in bed through
severe inflammation in his eyes, and was unable to read it ; but
Mr. Moss, being then at St. Mary's, read it to him, with a
feeling of surprise and indignation at conduct so unbrotherly,
unchristian, cruel, and sinful, as most of the statements were
known to Mr. Moss to be either gross misrepresentations or
palpable untruths.
The reader will now perceive, that though the author had, in
connexion with the Gambia mission, in former years, been " in
journeyings often, in perils of waters, in perils of robbers, in
perils by his own countrymen, in perils by the Heathen, in
perils in the city, in perils in the wilderness, and in perils in the
sea;" and though he had, in a memorandum to a friend, on this
occasion " counted the cost," and in that account had enume-
rated many probable causes and sources of severe trial, not for-
getting that which frequently occurs in foreign countries, — an
opposition from "unreasonable and wicked men;" yet he had
omitted one item in the catalogue of " perils " mentioned by the
apostle. In fact, in such a land of sickness and death as Western
Africa, he had never dreamt of " perils among false brethren."
After some unavoidable delay, the whole matter was laid
before the proper authorities at the Mission-House in London,
and the author received a communication from the general
secretaries, in which it was stated, "they were led to believe
that he had acted with integrity on the late trying occasion,
and that therefore there was no sufficient reason why they
should withdraw their confidence from him." This was a great
relief to him, though not more than he had expected, having
" the testimony of a good conscience," and the full confidence
of his other brethren, as well as the respect and sympathy of all
who knew him. But in all personal disputes it is a common
saying, " There are generally faults on both sides." As a rule,
it may be substantially correct ; but there are exceptions to
every rule; and it is presumed the reader will give the author
credit for not having been a great deal in fault, when he is
informed, that, within the last two years, the very person who
charged him with such flagrant inconsistencies, wrote to the
Missionary Committee and to himself, and made a voluntary
confession of his former imprudence and folly, acknowledging
his deep repentance for it, and craving forgiveness !
In his letter to me, after admitting that nothing could justify
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 533
the conduct which he then pursued, he pleads as an extenuation
" his youth, he being then but twenty-one years of age ;" that
" he had ill advisers : had it not been for that, he should never
have penned a line against rue." " No one can more sincerely
regret it than I do myself. I am sorry for it ; I repent, most
heartily repent." "I have sufl'ered much in consequence."
'•' In a moment of strange infatuation, and under the influence
of strong feeling, I wrote." Both at the commencement and
close of the letter he says, " I beseech you to pardon me."
To that penitential appeal the author listened, and not only for-
gave him, but, as it appeared that he was then suffering from
personal and domestic affliction, he performed towards him
another act of kindness.
Far be it from me to injure my then youthful traducer :
his name is withheld, and Avill probably never be known by the
public in connexion with this matter ; and had he confined his
misrepresentations of me and of the mission to the Missionary
Committee, I should never have introduced the aflPair into this
work. But having recently learnt that he wrote in the same
strain, and that repeatedly, to certain friends in the south of
England, and that those communications produced, as well they
might, very unfavourable impressions upon many minds respect-
ing me, I have felt bound, in justification of my own conduct,
and in vindication of my character, to say thus much.
Thus, after upwards of seven years had passed away, was that
passage of holy writ literally fulfilled : " Commit thy way unto
the Lord ; trust also in him ; and he shall bring it to pass.
And he shall bring forth thy righteousness as the light, and thy
judgment as the noon-day." (Psalm xxxvii. 5, 6.)
As soon as the author's health and spirits were a little
recruited, aud the rains had closed, he again directed his
attention to the new school-house. This was a fine stone
building of sixty feet by twenty-five, which was completed and
opened by the middle of December; and on that day he sailed
for Macarthy's Island, to proceed with the erection of the
Institution. His stay there on this occasion Mas necessarily
sliort ; and on his return to St. Mary's, he was happ}^ to find
that Mr. and Mrs. Swallow had arrived from England some
ten days before. Our meeting Avas very affecting. They had
been on this ground before; and deeply did they sympathize
with the Avriter in his varied and painful trials. Having
iomained a short time at St. Mary's, Mr. Swallow proceeded
to Macarthy's Island, his appointed sphere of labour, about the
middle of Januarv.
534 AVESTEUN COAST OF AFRICA.
In the beginning of March, 1841, His Honour Chief Justice
Flintoff arrived from England, and preparations were soon after
made for holding the annual sessions of the colony. Applica-
tion was made for the loan of our new and excellent school-
house for that purpose, which was readily granted. But, a day
or two before the time fixed upon for holding the sessions, His
Honour, with Mrs. Mantell, wife of the acting queen's advocate,
met with a watery grave, by the upsetting of a boat, in return-
ing from Cape St. Mary^s. Mr. Mantell Avas riding on horse-
back along the beach, and was almost frantic when he saw the
boat capsized, about a quarter of a mile distant, and the pas-
sengers struggling in the water. Before help could be obtained,
they had both sunk. The bodies were afterwards found, and
interred in the burying-ground. The next day was the Chris-
tian sabbath ; and as the sessions were to have commenced on
Monday morning, when the writer had engaged to read the
church service ; and as many of the jurors, and some of the ma-
gistrates and assistant judges, were at our chapel on the Sunday
forenoon ; he endeavoured to improve the sad catastrophe by
preaching from Heb. ix. 27: "It is appointed unto men once
to die, but after this the judgment. '' The certainty of the
future and final judgment of God was dwelt upon at some
length, contrasting that with the uncertainty and mutability of
every thing of an earthly nature ; and especial reference was
made to the postponement of the expected sessions that were
to be held on the morrow ; for though the court had been fitted
up, jurors summoned, witnesses collected and brought from
two or three hundred miles^ distance, and the prisoners were
looking with intense anxiety to the events of that day, yet
these trials could not now take place, because the judge tvas
dead! But there would be no postpotiement when "the great
archangel's trump shall sound." It was a solemn time ; and it
is hoped good was done.
On the 28th of this month Mr. Moss embarked for England,
having been at the Gambia upwards of two years, during which
he had suffered repeatedly from the country fever and ague, in
addition to the loss of his amiable wife. The author's mother-
less babe Avas sent to England in the same vessel, with an
African nurse ; Mr. Moss kindly taking charge of them to
London, where they were met by friends from Smethwick.
There being a medical man on board, and a European lady,
M'ith some other passengers, all of whom felt an interest in the
welfare of the child, it was a most favourable opportunity ; and
it will be gratifying to many friends, both in England and in
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 535
Africa, to know that tlie dear child, deprived of its mother at
such a tender age, is still living.
At the ensuing Conference Mr. Moss received an appointment
to an English circuit. It was his intention to have returned to
tiie Gambia; but after residing in England for little more than
twelve months, he was appointed to the West Indies, where he
has been labouring ever since.*
Soon after Mr. Moss's departure for England, the author pro-
ceeded to Macarthy's Island, and he took another journey there
in June, which was the fourth since his last arrival in Africa.
But our attention must now be directed for a short time to the
other stations.
During the year 1840 considerable interest was excited in
England in favour of the Gold-Coast mission, occasioned by Mr.
Freeman's visit to Coomassie, the capital of Ashantee. We
have already referred the reader to Mr. Freeman's Journal,
containing the particulars of this visit. And on his arrival in
England in the month of June, with Mr. William De Graft, a
native local preacher, that feeling was greatly increased, and
became almost universal.
A special appeal was made to the friends of missions ; and
Mr. Freeman and Mr. De Graft having visited several of the
principal towns in Great Britain and Ireland, the noble sum of
^65,000 was raised in a few months, to enable the committee
considerably to augment the number of missionaries in that
interesting and important part of the society^s field of labour.
It is gratifying to add, that towards this sum of money raised
on that occasion, some generous donations were presented by
members of the church of England, and of other religious
denominations.
Mr. Freeman, and the party appointed to accompany him to
the Gold-Coast, embarked at Gravesend on the 10th of Decem-
ber. In addition to Mr. De Graft, it consisted of Mr. and
Mrs. Freeman, Mr. and Mrs. Hesk, Mr. and Mrs. Shipman,
with Messrs. Watson, Walden, and Thackwray. In announcing
their departure, the committee remark : —
Never was a missionary party dismissed from the shores of England with a more
intense feeling of interest and sympathy. All acknowledge the very arduous and
difficult character of the mission, as well as its important hearings on the welfare
of the human race, and one of the boldest eiforts yet made by the church in
juodeni times, to introduce Christianity and its attendant blessings to the iiide-
|)cndent Negro states of interior Africa. Thousands of prayers have been offered
* Till the summer of 1850, when he returned home, and is now labouring in
England.
536 WESTEllN COAST OF AFRICA.
ill behalf of these missionaries and their undertaking ; and we do not doubt that
tliey will be constantly remembered at the throne of grace by those who are
concerned for the prosperity and extension of the kingdom of Christ.
This noble band of missionaries were favoured witii a safe
voyage to Africa, and landed at Cape-Coast Castle on the 1st
of February, 1841. But the pleasing prospect which this large
addition to the missionary staff afforded, was soon blighted
by the withering effects of this deadly climate. The first
reduction in their strength was in the return of Mr. and Mrs.
Mycock to England, occasioned by the failure of their health.
They had been on the coast little more than twelve months,
when, from a sense of duty, they were compelled to embark
for their native air. This was in March ; and in about six
months after the mission-party arrived at Cape-Coast, four of
them were numbered with the dead, and a fifth had to return
home to save his life. It is therefore once more our painful
duty to dwell upon the ravages of death.
William Thackwray died at Annamaboe, May 4th, 1841,
three months and three days after he landed in Africa. He
was a young man of amiable disposition and manners, and of
entire devotedness to God and his work. He had nobly volun-
teered for this part of the Heathen world, and "on African
ground" Avrote to the committee in the spirit of a devoted
missionar}'. During his brief sojourn on the coast, he had
gained the affections of the people amongst whom he was
appointed to labour ; and deeply did they lament his loss. His
illness was of about eight days' duration, which he bore with
great fortitude and resignation to the will of God. His remains
were removed to Cape-Coast, and buried in the chapel-yard.
The loss of a missionary so promising and faithful, and so
well qualified for the peculiar duties of his station, was deeply
felt by the society, and by all who knew him.
Charles Walden was the second who fell on this occasion.
He addressed a letter to the committee, dated Cape-Coast,
May 26th, at which time he was in excellent health and spirits.
But he was not permitted long to labour in his Lord's vineyard.
Soon after this date he was attacked with the seasoning fever,
from which he partially recovered ; but a relapse proved fatal,
and his valuable life terminated on the 29th of July, 1841.
Mrs. Freeman was a native of Bristol, from which place
Mr. Freeman married her, a few weeks before the mission-party
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIEHllA-LEONE. 537
embarked for the Gold-Coast. Soon after their arrival in
Africa, it was feared that ]Mrs. Freeman would not be able to
endure the cHmate, and preparations were being made for her
return to England ; but before an opportunity offered, she was
seized with an illness which terminated fatally, and she expired
in the Saviour's arms, on the 25th of August, 1841.
Mrs. Hesk died on the 28th of August, three days after
Mrs. Freeman. This event took place at Annamaboe ; but the
body was interred at Cape-Coast, by the side of others who,
with her, had " fallen asleep in Jesus."
Thus the whole four " died in faith," and, though happy and
delighted with the mission work on earth, they soon proved
that " to depart and be with Christ is far better."
Mr. Hesk^s health failed him soon after he landed in Africa ;
and though he tried the effects of one or two short voyages on
the coast, he continued in a very debilitated state, and in Sep-
tember embarked for England. He arrived in London on the
6th of November, with a shattered constitution ; but after some
months he recovered, and has since, together with Mr. Mycock,
1)een employed in the ministry at home.
The mission party at the Gold-Coast was now reduced more
than one-half; but, notwithstanding these heavy afflictions and
mysterious bereavements, Mr. Freeman, early in November, in
company with Mr. Brooking and the two Ashantee princes,
started for Coomassie, which place they reached about the mid-
dle of the following month, and were favourably received by the
king, who granted them a piece of land on which to erect suit-
able mission-premises; and the nucleus of a Christian church
was speedily formed in the blood-dyed streets of the capital of
the sanguinary kingdom of Ashantee. Having made the neces-
sary arrangements for prosecuting the mission, Mr. Freeman
returned to the Coast, leaving Mr. Brooking in charge of one of
the most important undertakings of modern days.
As the Journal of Mr. Freeman's second visit to the capital
of Ashantee, with that of his first journey thither, has been for
some time before the pubhc in a separate form, I must refer my
readers to that most interesting little volume, and to the " Mis-
sionary Notices," for further details respecting this mission at
the time of which we are now speaking.
Messrs. Dove and Badger at Sierra-Leone were mercifully
' i)reserved in tolerable health, under the heavy burden which
devolved upon them, in consequence of their liaving been
538 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
deprived of the assistance of their two colleagues, one of whom,
it will be recollected, was obhged to return to England, and the
other had been removed to a better world in the course of the pre-
ceding year. Some very interesting communications from this
thriving station, bearing the date of June and Jul}^ of the 5^ear
1841, the reader will find in the ninth volume of the " Missionary
Notices,^^ at pp. 609 — 615, and also in the annual Report for
the following year. Two striking features and interesting facts
may be here recorded in connexion with this mission. The
first is, that some of the liberated Africans of the Aku tribe,
who Avere members of the society, had purchased a condemned
slave-vessel with the fruits of their industry, and had proceeded
to Badagry, on the borders of their own native country; and,
having carried their religion with them, were anxious to have a
missionary. One of these, in a letter to Mr. Dove, asking for
help, entreats for that help in the following most impassioned
terms : " For Christ's sake, come quickly. Let nothing but sick-
ness prevtJit you. Do not stoj) to cltange your clothes, to eat, or
drink, or sleep, and salute no man by the way. Do, for God's
sake, start this moment."
The other fact is, that several of the chapels and mission-
buildings in the colony had been partly erected by means of
'' tlie masts, spars, and planks of condemned slave-ships." What
a glorious change was this ! The slave-ship, that floating dun-
geon, where many of the poor creatures had been so closely
packed that they had scarcely room to breathe, and were on
their way to a life of suifering more terrible than death, — that
same ship is captured, the slaves are liberated, the vessel is
broken up, its materials converted into a house of prayer, and
the slaves, in the mean time, having experienced another and
far more important liberty than that of civil emancipation, are
rejoicing in that liberty Avherewith Christ makes his people
free; and, in that house of worship, with glad hearts and free,
are declaring the wonderful works of God ! Surely " this is the
Lord's doing,^^ and " it is marvellous in our eyes."
It was about the middle of the year 1841 that the late Niger
Expedition called at Sierra-Leone, and excited considerable
interest in the colony. Monday, the 28th of June, was a day
set apart for special prayer to Almighty God for the success
of that noble and philanthropic undertaking, when suitable
addresses were delivered by several of the missionaries ; and on
that day the colonial chaplain, the Eev. D. F. Morgan, preached
an appropriate sermon from Zcchariah iv. 10 : " For who hath
despised the day of small things? for they shall rejoice, and
THE GOl.D-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 539
sliall sec the plummet in the hand of Zerubbabel Avith those
seven ; they are the eyes of the Lord, which run to and fro
through the whole earth. '^
That Expedition unhappily proved a partial, though not an
entire, failure, which was a source of deep regret and disappoint-
ment to thousands, but to none more so than to the late great
and good Sir Thomas Fowell Buxton, with whom the plan
mainly originated.
The writer, when in England for a short time in 1839, had
the honour of a few interviews with that noble-minded Christian
philanthropist ; and from a brief correspondence with him, as
well as from personal observation, he knew the deep anxiety
and interest which he had felt in the benevolent enterprise. He
knows, too, that Sir Fowell looked to a Higher Powder than that
of royal patronage, backed though the scheme was by the Bri-
tish Government, and the countenance and support of hundreds
of the most influential, intelligent, and pious of his countrymen,
lie looked to "the King of kings and Lord of lords" for His
blessing to rest upon the object, and endeavoured that the
officers and agents selected for the Expedition should be, if not
decidedly religious and God-fearing men, at least persons of
good moral character, who would embark in the cause from prin-
ciple, and from a sincere desire to benefit the Negroes : and in
this he succeeded to a considerable extent. But there Avere not
wanting men, professing to be well-wishers to Africa, who uttered
the bitterest invectives against the originators and counsellors
of the unsuccessful enterprise, and even against some of those
w ho volunteered to carry out the intentions of Government.
It is not my design in this place to investigate the various
reasons assigned for its failure ; but I hesitate not to give it a&
my decided opinion, that one of the principal causes which led
to that issue was the withering and bhghting effects of the cli-
mate : and against that what human power or skill can contend?
AVhat arm save that of Omnipotence can control the elements?
The Polar regions, with their mountains of ice, and perpetual
wastes of snow% are not more difficult to navigate than are the
unfriendly and inhospitable shores of the Western Coast of Africa ;
and are less dangerous to the health and lives of a large party
of Europeans who have just landed fresh and fair from the balmy
air of Great Britain's healthy isle. In the former of these
countries the words of the Psalmist are peculiarly appropriate :
'■' He giveth snow like wool : he scattereth the hoar-frost like
.ashes. He casteth forth his ice like morsels : who can stand
before his cold?'^ (Psalm cxlvii. 16, 17.) And in reference to
540 WESTERN COAST OF AFllICA.
the latter, though the opposite extreme in the heat or tem-
perature of the chmate is not the primary cause of the
great amount of mortahty which takes place there, yet it must
be acknowledged to be one of the causes : for, during the
periodical rains which prevail in these latitudes, when the rivers
are overflowed, and the surrounding country is covered with
water for scores of miles, vegetation is so rapid and rampant ;
and the action of the sun pouring its fiercest rays upon those
stagnant pools and low swampy savannahs, filled with a mass
of decayed vegetable and animal matter, which soon becomes
putrid, causes the whole atmosphere to be strongly impregnated
with a deadly malaria. It may then be asked, What Euro-
pean lungs can inhale these pestilential and poisonous efiBuvia,
and yet survive or withstand their efi'ects ? The preceding pages
Avill furnish abundant proof that those who can are the excep-
tions to the rule. It is well known, that Mungo Parkas whole
retinue was annihilated ; that Captain Tuckey, in 1816, died
with nearly one-half of his officers and crew, and all the scienti-
fic men, with but one exception, perished. Captain Owen also
lost nearly two-thirds ; and Laird, by the time he arived at the
confluence of the Niger, had buried half his white crew, and
more than half his officers.
In the noble undertaking for the benefit of Africa, of which
we are speaking, every thing was done which prudence and
foresight could dictate, or that skill and science could invent, to
guard the members of the Expedition against the prejudicial
effects of the climate ; and ten thousand prayers were offered to
the Most High, that He would be pleased to preserve them from
" the pestilence that walketh in darkness," and from " the destruc-
tion that wasteth at noon-day.'^ But, for reasons unknown to
us, it seemed good to Him, "who ordereth all things according
to the counsel of his own will," to disappoint the high hopes of
those who had interested themselves in a mission, so merciful,
so gracious, and so generous. There was indeed a physical
impracticability, not to say impossibility, in the present natu-
ral aspect of that country, for so large a party of Europeans
to "breathe in the tainted air" of that land of death, and
" pass unhurt ;" and therefore, like other large expeditions, they
sickened and died, or returned home invalided : and, in reference
to many, what were those beautiful and well-built vessels, the
" Albert," " Wilberforce," and " Soudan," in which our brave
countrymen embarked with their wide-spread canvass and flags
waving in the breeze? — what were they but the biers and palls in
disguise, bearing away scores of their unsuspecting victims to
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERIIA-LEONE. 54-1
" the white rann's grave," and " to the house appointed for all
living ? "
But there is still hope for Africa, and even in that Expedition
some good seed was sown, which may produce fruit after many
days. It is pleasing to add, in reference to many of those vvho
fell victims to the climate on this occasion, that they not only
died in a good cause, but " died in the Lord," and their record
is on high.
It was during this year also that Dr. Madden was sent to
Western Africa by the British Government, on a commission of
inquiry. He visited the Gold-Coast, Sierra-Leone, and the
Gambia; and his Heport of the state of the British settlements,
with some account of the missions and schools connected with the
Church Missionary Society, as well as our own, was published
the year after in the Appendix to the " Report from the Select
Committee of the House of Commons on the West Coast of
Africa."
The doctor, during his short stay on the Coast, though at
the best season of the year, suffered considerably from the
effects of the climate ; and on his arrival in May at the Gambia,
the last place he called at, he was in ill health. He is too well
known to the Christian public to need any commendation from
the writer, who, however, felt happy in having him under his
roof. The following lines by a poet of the present day Avill be
interesting, perhaps, to the reader, from which he will see the
object of his visit, as well as the character of the man. They
were kindly written in the author's " Scrap-Book" daring the
commissioner's brief sojourn with him at St. Mary's.
LINES ADDRESSED TO DR. MADDEN, ON HIS DEPARTURE
FOR AFRICA.
BY DR. WILLIAM BEATTIE.
God speed the herald on his way,
To whom the task is given
To check oppression's iron sway.
That mocks at earth and Heaven !
The word he hears from Britain's Isle
Shall nature's rights restore,
And Freedom's long- forgotten smile
Revisit Afric's shore !
Strike off those fetters from her hand !
Break off those withering gyves !
Then see how native mind expands,
How the crush'd heart revives !
542 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
The blind shall see, the (lunib shall sing,
The Slave forget his woe ;
And freedom, like a fountain-spring.
That land shall overflow.
Borne forward on the wings of time,
A glorious scene appears !
O'er man of every class and clime
Her standard Freedom rears !
Go prosper in that hallow'd cause
Which men and angels plead !
Restore to Nature's trampled laws
Her charter and her creed !
God speed the ship with wave and wind !
Our herald's life defend !
In him the captive 's sure to find
A brother and a friend.
January, 1841. W. Beattie.
The truth of some of these " lines" has been illustrated and
confirmed in the preceding pages, especially in the liberated
Africans; who having had their "fetters" and "gyves struck
off" their hands and feet, the "crushed heart" has "revived,"
and the "native mind" has " expanded;" and, in hundreds of
instances, the oppressed and persecuted Negro has speedily
become an useful member of civil and religious society.
At the close of the year, the writer was at St. Mary's, having
finished the Institution at INIacarthy's Island ; and as Mr.
English had some months before removed to the West Indies,
and Mr. Crowly, the schoolmaster, had, previous to that,
resigned his office, and gone to Sierra-Leone, with the expecta-
tion of a situation under Government, he was anxiously waiting
the arrival of additional help. In December the " Charlotte
Wylie" entered the Gambia from London, and the writer was
speedily on board to give the brethren a cordial welcome ; but
was grievously disappointed at the small supply for the Gambia.
This will be seen from the following brief extract from the
^' Missionary Notices : " —
With much thankfulness to Almighty God, we learn, by letters from Mr. Fox
,and Mr. Syraons, that the missionaries, Symons, Raston, and Annear, arrived safe
and well at St. Mary's, on the Gambia, on the 20th of December, after a passage
of thirty-nine days from London. Mr. Symons remains at the Gambia mission.
Messrs. Raston and Annear, with Mr. May, a native schoolmaster, sailed for Sierra-
Leone, on the 1st of January.
Great disappointment and regret are very naturally expressed by Mr. Fox, on
finding that, on account of the Society's want of funds, only one missionai'V,
instead of the three desired and expected, had been for the present sent to the
•Gambia stations. We deem it an act of justice to give his own words.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIxV, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 543
Extract of a Letter from the Rev. William For, dated Gambia,
January \2)th, 1842.
I HOPE that poor Gambia will not be forgotten by the committee amidst their
very nnmerous applications for help. I know that Sierra-Leone and Cape-Coast
need assistance ; and I deeply sympathize with Mr. Freeman in all his bereave-
ments and trials. Bnt the River Gambia, too, is in Africa ; and I still maintain
that it is one of the most important, direct, and safe entrances into the interior of
this vast, and as yet comparatively unknown, continent. Send us sufficient help,
and, ere many years have elapsed, you will, I trust, have a missionary station at
the great emporium of Africa, Timbuctoo.
The mission at the Gold-Coast about this time received a
re-inforcement of labourers, the committee feeling it to be their
imperative duty to send at least three individvtals to supply, in
part, the vacancies which were so soon created by the four
deaths we have already noticed, and the unexpected return of
Mr. and Mrs. Mycock. The three brethren were Messrs.
William Allen, Henry J. Wyatt, and Thomas Rowland. Mr.
Allen arrived at the Gold-Coast on the 27th of January, and
the other two brethren on the 4th of February ; and thus the
little band who had still been enabled to maintain their post
was strengthened, — strengthened, alas ! but for a short time ;
for two out of the three just mentioned, in five short months,
were summoned to " the rest that remains for the people of
God." These were Messrs. Wyatt and Rowland.
Henry J. Wyatt, by the fervour of his spirit, and his
devotedness to God, had excited the hope of his being made a
great blessing among the oppressed and degraded sons of Ham,
whose deep wrongs he had felt, and for whose salvation he had
fervently prayed. But he entered into rest in the morning of
his day, having been permitted to preach only two or three
times before he was seized with the illness Avhich proved fatal.
He had presented his body to God " a living sacrifice," and
without a sigh fell asleep in Jesus, on the 6th of April, 1842, in
the twenty-third year of his age, after a residence in Africa of
about nine Aveeks.
Thomas Rowland, (2d,) was from the Uttoxeter circuit ;
and, immediately after the Conference of 1840, was received
into the Theological Institution at Hoxton as a missionary
candidate. He had not chosen any particular part of the mis-
sion-field as the scene of his labours, but left himself at the dis-
posal of the Missionary Committee. The circumstances con-
nected with his appointment to Western Africa are interesting.
544 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
and have been kindly forwarded to me by a brother minister,
who was at that time a fellow-student with him at Hoxton.
It appears that, during his residence in the Institution, he
not only improved his mind, but " made rapid progress in
piety ; " thus becoming more fully prepared for the great work
which awaited him. For some time before his call to Africa, he
had set apart Friday in every week for fasting and prayer; and
it was on one of those memorable days that he received his call
to that part of the world. On the day in question, he seemed
to be more than ordinarily intent upon offering himself
afresh to God ; and a little before dinner-time he borrowed
from the friend alluded to a copy of the Covenant-Service : the
reason why he wanted it just then, it was afterwards learnt,
Avas, that while the rest of the students were at dinner, he might
solemnly renew his covenant with God. While he was engaged
in that solemn act, Dr. Beecham came to the Institution, Avant-
ing two young men for Western Africa ; and as Mr. Kowland
had been thought of for one, but was not at dinner, a messen-
ger was sent to his study, to call him. He had got as far in the
Covenant- Service as the fourth direction in the first part, "That
He appoint you your work,^^ &c., when a knock was heard at
his study-door, calling him down-stairs to see Dr. Beecham,
who asked him, " Will you go to Western Africa ? " He
was, of course, surprised at this question ; but most cheer-
fully and emphatically said, "Yes, Sir; I will go !" His heart
was set upon this interesting part of the Heathen v. orld ; and
he said, that he would not give up his appointment to Western
Africa for the best circuit in the Connexion.
In this spirit he embarked at Gravesend, with Mr. Wyatt,
towards the close of December, 1841 ; and, as already stated,
arrived at Cape-Coast early in February. About the middle of
May he started for Coomassie, to join Mr. Brooking, who had
charge of that very important part of the Gold-Coast mission ;
but his illness commenced on the journey ; and though he seve-
ral times so far partially recovered as to awaken hopes of his
entire restoration, these hopes were cut off, and this devoted
and promising young missionary entered into the joy of his
Lord, on the 10th of July, 1842, at Coomassie, the capital of
Ashantee. He w^as the first missionary who died there, and
there his mortal remains were interred.
We must now return again to the Gambia. A few extracts
from the author's journal, originally published in 1843, in the
"Report of the Institution for benefiting the Foulahs," will
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 545
show that the commencement of the year 1842, as well as pre-
viously, was occupied by him in visiting several of the native
kings and chiefs, for the purpose of inducing them to seud their
sons to the excellent Institution which had been erected princi-
pally for that purpose, and which was now finished, and used as
a suitable place of worship, as well as a place of residence for
the mission family : —
JanuaiT 20th, 1842. — An-ived at Macarthy's in the schooner " Fame." Talked
over our proposed visits to tlie kings of Kattaba and Woolli with Mr. Swallow,
who wishes to accompany me. It was suggested that it would not he prudent to
visit king Kemmingtan, as he is reported to he both a treacherous and desperate
character.
February 1st. — Brother Swallow having been urged to leave for St. Mary's, on
account of his boy's illness, both for change of air and medical advice, I set out
this morning for Kattaba, and returned in the evening, a distance of about twenty-
eight miles. I was much gratified by the interview with the king, his wife, and their
sons, with whom I conversed for several hours. The parents appeared willing to
part with two of their sons, but they must first consult with one who is entitled to
a voice in such matters. Accordingly he came, and, after sitting down for a short
time, rose and left us, saying he woidd never consent to the project -, when one of
the young princes also declared that he would not go. After reasoning, however,
with him on the numerous advantages that would accrue both to his offspring and
Ids subjects from his accepting my offer, and pointing out the foUy of allowing his
wishes to be thwarted by one individual, especially as his brother, who is heir to
the throne, was favourable to the measure, the king, pointing to two of his sons,
said, " They shall go." It was consequently determined that I should either go or
send for them when all was ready.
4th. — Mr. Ilichard Lloyd having kindly offered to accompany me on my visit to
Santigeba, the chief of Lower Nyaui, in Kattaba, we set sail in his canoe, and reached
Yanimaroo about two o'clock, a.m. At dayhght we despatched a messenger to tlie
king, who immediately sent us horses, with an escort and a band of music. Nya-
bantang, the residence of Santigeba, is a good-sized, mud-walled town, surrounded
by three large Foulah, or Mohammedan, towns, with three or four others in the
distance. The inhabitants of the royal town are a mixed race of Mandingoes and
Jalloofs, who speak both languages. They seem to be a brave and intelligent
race of people ; the children, who appeared both numerous and healthy, were
running about wthout any clothing. I was impressed with a conviction that, could
we establish a mission here, some valuable native agents would soon be raised up,
to aid in the great work of evangelizing this vast moral desert. I was much
pleased with Santlgeba's quickness of perception and enlightened views : no sooner
had the object of our visit been opened by Mr. Lloyd, who kindly interpreted for
me in the Jalloof, than he replied, " I see through the thing at once — it is a most
disinterested object." He then proceeded to eulogize rae, or, more pro})erly, the
excellent Dr. Lindoe, who originated so noble a design. He added, that he
thought I might depend on having one of his sons, vAio was very desirous of being
taught ; but there were those whom he must first consult. On my sounding him
on the subject of founding a mission in or near his town, he immediately answered,
" That you may do as soon as you please ; there can be no possil)le objection to that ; "
then, referring to the immediate object of our visit, he told me that he only
wished he was younger himself, that he too might enjoy the privilege. His
N N
546 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
dwelling in wliicli he received us was a mud hut, ahout twelve feet in diameter,
with two narrow entrances, but without window or chimney, whilst vast crowds
stood within, and surrounded the doors. He shook hands with us at parting, and
we were conducted into one of the king's yards, Avhere was a comfortable bentang,
and some kouskous, beef, and fowls prepared for us. Shortly, Santigeba came in
to see that all was right ; he also paid us a second visit, when, sitting down to
smoke his pipe, we rehearsed all that had passed, and he repeated his former
assurance. He pressed us much to stay all night ; but as the morrow was Sunday,
I declined. Fresh horses were instantly got ready, and we rode to Yanimaroo,
accompanied by the king's brother, his head servant, and one other, whence we
returned by vessel to Macarthy's. Naman is, in fact, the mansa, or king, of
Kattaba; but Santigeba is looked up to by the people as such, who generally
flee to him for protection against an invacUng or marauding force. The country
round Nyabantang is more elevated, and consequently more dry and healthy, than
most places I have visited. Within a circle of eight or ten miles there are not less
than ten thousand precious souls ; aud although composed of many different tribes,
they all speak the Mandingo, and are not merely open to, but disposed cordially to
welcome, the harbingers of gospel tidings. What an important field for missionary
culture is here presented, and how favourable the opening for obtaining a footing
for the gospel of peace on this desolate and blood-stained continent !
8th. — This afternoon I set sail for King Kemmingtan's town. Messrs. Chown,
Lloyd, and C. Grant, with a military officer, kindly accompanied me to Fatota,
where they saw me on board, and left me with warmest wishes for my safety and
success. The following day we passed Broko and Barsan-sang ; and on the morn-
ing of the 9th we landed Laming at Foolatenda, to proceed as my messenger to
Kemmingtan, at Dunkaseen, and then to return and meet me at Woolli.
13th. — I spent the sabbath, as I have often been compelled to do, on board a
small vessel, making little way, but w'cll engaged with reading, meditation, and
prayer.
14th. — We reached Fattatenda this afternoon ; but I was strongly advised by some
old traders whom I met to defer my visit for some days, the countiy being agitated
by wars and rumours of wars. Great numbers of people, principally women and
children, had fled .and were fleeing from AVooUi to this port, bringing with them
their mats, calabashes, &c., and as much corn as they could cany. There are now
twenty or thirty groups sheltered under the branches of trees, with fences or
enclosures of brambles and corn-stakes. This warfare commenced in the following
manner: — A band of sonninkeas from Madina fell upon a Foulah town neai'
Bambako, (in the same kingdom,) took a number of cattle, and about twenty of
the natives, whom they sold for slaves. Most of the large towns have Foulah
villages contiguous to them, as the Foulahs pitch their tents near fortified towns,
to be out of the reach of still more merciless enemies ; although they are obliged
to give their protectors milk, butter, and even their cattle, when they are demanded,
or they would be taken by force. In this case the Bambako people, in order to
be revenged on the Madinas, fell on a Foulah town near the royal residence, took
many head of cattle, and fifty-five free people, whom they immediately sold into
slavery. These people and cattle the king of Woolli, who resides at Madina, has
demanded them to restore. The Bambako people have applied for help to the
almamy of Bondou, and there are now about two hundred horse and one hundred
foot stationed at Bambako. A palaver has, however, been proposed ; and it is to
lie hoped the matter will be settled without having recourse to arms.
To-day the messenger returned and brought me word that Kemmingtan would be
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 547
happy to see me, and that he had sent one of his servants to conduct me from
WooUi to his residence; but he, having had tidings of the war whilst on the road,
returned to acquaint the king. About noon, three men arrived from the king of
WoolH, with horses to convey us to Madina.
17th. — Early this morning I started for Madina, accompanied by Laming Burl,
the interpreter, my servant Wassa, and the three men sent to me by the king.
Taking my former route through Bantonding, we halted at Subaknnda, where we
took refreshment, and proceeded to Madina, distant twenty-four miles from Fatta-
tenda. Here I was soon recognised by great numbers as the tobauba-fodey, or
" white priest;" and numerous were the salutations of Abbe-haeretto and Salam-
alaikum, with which they accosted me. My quarters were, as formerly, at the
bouse of old Sandi, the prime minister. Fatembirang, the heir presumptive, with
several influential persons, came to pay me their compliments ; and after resting a
short time, we were introduced to His Majesty, Sandi's servant carrying the present
I had brought for him. I explained the nature, design, and advantages of the
Institution to the hoary-headed king, who listened with great attention, and
answered, " It is very good indeed, and you shall have one or two of my younger
sons ;" adding, " You have come at an unfavoiu-able time ; but when the palaver is
over, I will fulfil my promise."
On leaving, the king shook me cordially by the hand. I next spoke on the
subject to his two eldest sons, and urged the heir-apparent to send his children.
He allowed it was an excellent thing, and assured me that as soon as Mansa Koi,
the king, had sent his, he would follow the example. After conversing further
with the people, and concluding with singing and prayer, I threw myself on a mat
in the warm sand, amidst the din of dancing, drum-beating, and noisy merriment.
1 8th. — This morning I started with my interpreter to Dunkaseen ; the latter
terribly afraid of an interview with Kemmingtan, Laming not having as yet joined
us ; but he came up shortly after, and we reached Dunkaseen, wearied and hungry,
about three o'clock. Although the place and circumstances conspired to make me
serious, yet I felt not only composed, but happy. I felt convinced, were my life
the forfeit, it would tm-n out to the furtherance of the gospel, and that, if called to
make the sacrifice, I could willingly die in such a cause. After resting awhile, I
was shown to the king's residence, and had an interview with that hardened
sinner; his looks were depraved, determinetl, and malignant. "Whilst I was
addressing him, he scarcely looked towards me, but amused himself by playing vni\\
a double-barrelled gun; and truly I was not sorry when I saw him lay it down.
He made me uo reply, which I am informed he rarely does until a second
interview.
About eight o'clock the king sent some rice and goat-mutton, with a mess of
milk and komkouK, the first meal I had partaken of during the day, for we could
get nothing on the road.
19th. — We rose at day-light, and, as soon as we could be admitted, waited on
the king. He received us veiy civilly, and even condescended to look at me. He
said that too much talk was not good, but what he said he meant ; adding, he was
glad to see me ; that the object I came for was very good, but it was so new and
strange, that he could not promise me to send his children ; however, he would
think of it, and whenever I liked to send a messenger to him, he should be treated
with the same respect as myself. I then gave him an Arabic Bible, and other
presents, and, after some further conversation, took my leave. The king provided
us with horses, and sent two men with us to bring them back from Fattatenda.
On our return through Madina, I had another interview with the king, who repeated
2 N 2
548
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
to me his promise of yesterday, and then made for Fattatenda, which we reached
about six o'clock, p.m., hungry, faint, and e.xhausted, having been for nine hours on
horseback, and ridden during the day upwards of forty miles.
20th. — The vessel not being ready for Macarthy's, I paid a visit to the chief of
Bodori, ten miles distant on the south side of the river. The country is very fine,
most of it elevated, and under cultivation. I had an interview with the chief,
who appears to be an ignorant, depraved old man ; consequently, little, if at all,
interested in the object of my mission. As, however, he made no objections,
he may be brought to a better mind.
26th. — I arrived in safety at Macarthy's, in indifferent health, and much
fatigued ; but truly thankful that God has been with me, and brought me back in
l>€ace. May his blessing prosper this humble effort to promote his glory and
benefit my fellow-men !
In a few weeks after these visits, we had several royal pupils
in the Institution, under the care of Messrs. Swallow and
Symous, of which something more will be said anon.
From the preceding extracts, and especially from that under
date of February 18th, it will be seen that, on the writer
approaching the town of Dunkaseen, his feelings were of a
peculiar kind, as he knew not the issue, as to himself, in seek-
ing an audience with so desperate a chief as Kemmingtan, whose
very name, from his ferocious deeds, had spread terror for many
miles round and beyond his own locality. This much-dreaded
chieftain usurped the throne of Upper Nyani, by putting to
death two of his brothers, whose bodies he gave to the eagles ;
and he has ever since maintained it by the same hardihood in
cruelty. More than once, when a messenger has brought him
some evil tidings from a distance, he has instantly seized his
musket, and shot the unhappy reporter dead on tlie spot ; and
on one occasion, being enraged against some marraboo, whom
it is not lawful to kill, he cut off his hands and feet, and allowed
him to bleed to death ; saying, *' It was God who killed him,
not I ; for I only cut off his limbs." His hands, as well as his
"feet," have ever been "swift to shed blood."
But that which rendered my interview with the despot on
this occasion one of considerable hazard, was the following cir-
cumstance : — Kemmingtan had not only frequently been in the
immediate neighbourhood of Macarthy^s Island, on his maraud-
ing excursions, " scattering firebrands, arrows, and death," but
a few years previously he had also seized upon a British vessel in
the upper river, and pillaged it of all its merchandise. Several
attempts had been made by the local authorities to gain restitu-
tion, and to bring the matter to an amicable settlement. These,
however, failed ; and a late lieutenant-governor, being deter-
mined to chastise him for such an outrage, proceeded for that
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SI ERIIA-LEONE. 049
purpose in a man-of-war, accompanied by a few native troops
and volunteers from Macarthy's Island. They anchored at a
creek in the u])per river, by which they proceeded in boats as
far as they could towards Dunkaseen ; and the rest of the jour-
ney they pursued by land, cutting their way through the bush,
having with them several field-pieces. At length they came
within sight of the town ; and so eager were they to be avenged
for the piratical deed, and so sure were they of success, that,
without stopping to take refreshment, or make provision for
water, they at once commenced an attack upon the capital ;
and, having expended a quantity of powder and shot upon its
mud-walls, they succeeded in making a breach. This brought
the lion from his den, and a sharp fire was returned, when
several of the native soldiers were killed, and two Europeans
were wounded. By this time our countrymen and the troops
Avcre exhausted from want of food, but especially of water ;
and some native allies from Woolli, with Mantaraba at their
head, having failed to enter the breach according to promise,
they made a hasty retreat, having left two or three pieces of
brass cannon behind them ; and had it not been for JMantamba,
with about five hundred Mandingoes from Woolli, who protected
them in their retreat, they had probably every one perished.
As it was, it was a total failure ; and Kemmingtan, having
unspiked the guns that were left on the field, had them
mounted upon his own mud fort, and now bade defiance to
the world.
Some time after this, a succeeding governor, on a visit to
Macarthy^s Island, anxious to have a good understanding with
Kemmingtan, as well as with the other chiefs, sent a friendly
message to him, to ask him to come to Macarthy's Island, that
the late affair might be settled amicably. The bearers of this
message were a military officer and a European merchant; but
Kemmingtan declined the invitation : he would meet the
governor on his own territory, but would not come to Macar-
thy's Island. Almost immediately after this, a misunderstand-
ing arose between Kemmingtan and the king of Kattaba; and
as the latter was looked upon as a kind of British ally, about
thirty soldiers were sent from Macarthy's Island to his assist-
ance, with the same mihtary officer at their head. Kemmingtan
could not understand this, and was now more than ever
incensed against the English, and swore he would have the first
white man's head he could obtain, and make a greegree of it.
The matter, therefore, was never settled, and for some time the
trade in the upper river was suspended, as it was feared the
550
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
goods on board the vessels would be seized^ and probably the
crews murdered or taken into slavery. But though no further
outrage was committed by Kemmingtan, all intercourse between
him and the local authorities was at an end ; and the writer was
the first European who ventured upon an interview with this
chief after the threat which he had uttered.
It will now be seen that in this visit there was considerable
personal risk : it was some time before I could obtain an inter-
preter and guide to accompany me; and various were the
opinions as to the result of the journey : the prevailing one was,
that I should never return. There is something in such a situation
that for a moment startles human nature. The place of this
interview was in a kind of citadel, in an open square of about
twelve feet each way, surrounded with a high wall; and Kem-
mingtan sat on a stool at the door-way leading into a part of
his residence, with a double-barrelled gun in his hand, the
writer being seated directly opposite to him, about six feet dis-
tant, with his interpreter close by, and half a dozen old men and
warriors seated all round. To escape, therefore, was out of the
question ; and he knew not but the next moment the contents
of the gun would be lodged in his breast. But He who said, "Lo,
I am Avith you alway,^^ was present; and nothing but his
almighty power could give composure and equanimity in such a
scene as Avas this. Kemmingtan knew that the writer was
neither a military man, nor a merchant engaged in commerce;
but that he was a niinister of the gospel, whose business it was
to proclaim " peace to them that are afar off and to them that
are nigh : " he, in fact, referred to this in the brief conversation
which ensued, Avith an intimation, tliat, had any other Avhite
man come to Dunkaseen, he Avould have met with a different
kind of reception.
It Avill be seen, from the preceding extracts from the author^s
journal, that he Avas not only unmolested, but treated Avith great
civility and respect; nay, this "barbarous people showed him
no little kindness ;^^ for Kemmingtan himself furnished him
Avith a good supply of provisions during his stay, and gave liim
horses and guides back to Fattatenda. Nor Avas this all ; for in
about eighteen months afterwards, a royal pupil was sent to the
Institution at Macarthy's Island, from Dunkaseen !
Another fact in connexion Avith this visit deserves to be
mentioned. The author, in going to Fattatenda, did not take
the direct route to the residence of Kemmingtan ; and the
acute old chief had asked mc Avhy I had not come to his town
direct from 'Aracarthy's Island ; but^ being informed tliat I liad
THE GOLD-COAST^ GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 551
business at Woolli, and preferred going by water as far as I could,
he was satisfied. My interpreter, Laming Buri, " Avas terribly
afraid of an interview with Kemmingtan ;'' and, "not know-
ing the things that would befall me there," and not wish-
ing unnecessarily to bring others into trouble, I had pro-
posed to my servant Wassa, that he should remain at Madina,
and take charge of a few things I was leaving there, and that
I would call for him on my way back the next day. But to
this proposal the faithful Negro nobly replied, " No, Massa ; I
must go with you: suppose Kemmingtan make you slave, he
make me slave ; suppose Kemmingtan kill you, he kill me
too!" I told him I did not think he Avould kill either of us;
for I looked to a Higher Power than that which can kill the
body. He might possibly keep us as hostages for the break-
ing of his town by the English some time ago, and then it
would require a good price to redeem us all. However, Wassa
was determined to go and share with his master, v.hatever
the fate might be; and go he did; and, without further com-
ment, this little incident is left to speak for itself.
Having held our annual district-meeting at INIacarthy's
Island on the 9th of March, when all was peace and harmony,
the writer proceeded in a few days to St. Mary's ; and on the
14th of April a favourable opportunity offering for Sierra-
Leone, he embarked on that day for a short visit to that inter-
esting British colony and mission-station. The vessel in which
he sailed was the " George Dean," with Mr. Ritchie, a respect-
able young European, as supercargo. On the passage down we
called at Bissao, in the Rio- Grande; for which I was not sorry,
as, though but two days^ sail from the Gambia, I had never
before visited the place. But I had soon enough of it. It is
Avell known that this Portuguese settlement has long been a
noted slave-depot. Many of the poor creatures I saw in irons,
and the natives generally were in a state of almost perfect nudity.
Fresh supplies were coming in from the interior, and a large
slaver was lying in one of the creeks, waiting for a cargo of human
beings. I was introduced to the governor at the fort, and to Cacta-
nio, a merchant and notorious slave-dealer, who has amassed con-
siderable wealth, at the expense of the life, liberty, flesh, blood,
bones, and sinev.s of his fellow-creatures ! On the morning of
the 19th, ]Mr. Ritchie having finished his legitimate trade, we
left this foul place ; and heartily glad I was ; for, considering it
as an European establishment, Bissao is the most filthy, unci-
vilized, and barbarous spot I ever saw. And how can it be
otiierwise, when the staple article of trade consists in the
buying and selling of the rational part of God's creation?
552 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
On leaving this modern Sodom, we had a good run to a far
different European colony; for, about ten a.m. on Saturday,
23d, we discovered the mountains of Sierra-Leone, distant about
twenty-five miles, the scenery of which, as we approached
"nearer and nearer still,^' was most enchanting. AVhen we
consider the philanthropic principles on which this British set-
tlement was founded, and the vast benefits which it has conferred
on tens of thousands of Negroes who have been rescued from
" the man-stealer,^' and who, on touching this colony, lose their
shackles, and that moment become free, — we perceive how beau-
tifully it contrasts with the miserable, dark den of slavery at
Eissao ! — the one, the land of Egypt ; and the other, the pro-
mised land of Canaan !
We anchored in the harbour of Free-Town between two and
three p.m. ; and the writer soon found his way to the mission-
house, where he met with a cordial reception, and was happy to
find the brethren were all tolerably well.
During this short visit the Avriter went to Wellington, Hast-
ings, Gloucester, Regent, and several of the other villages, com-
posed principally of re-captured Negroes, where we have inter-
esting societies and good congregations, to whom he preached
with pleasure and profit, as well as in the capital ; and during
his stay he was treated with great respect by all classes of the
community, having by invitation dined with His Excellency at
Government-house, with the military at the barracks, several of
the merchants, and two of the Church missionaries. It was
about this time that a more systematic plan was commenced for
the training of native agents; and subsequently a very large
and commodious building being offered for sale at King Tom^s
Point, it was purchased during the next year, and fitted up as
an Institution. This building, for situation, convenience, and
magnitude, was every thing that was desired, being sufilciently
large for a mission-family at each end, and for the students in
the middle. It was formerly a naval depot, and is said to have
cost =£7,000 ; but was bought at public auction by the Society
for three hundred guineas, several friends in England having
liberally contributed for that specific object.
It was also during this year that the operations of a printing-
press were begun at this station, when upwards of <£120
♦were raised in the colony for printing purposes; and, in con-
nexion with this, a monthly periodical, or religious newspaper,
was commenced, which was called, " The Sierra-Leone Watch-
man."
On the 17th of May, the author re-embarked for the Gambia.
At this time, jMr. Dove and Mr. Badger were preparing to sail
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 553
for England, having been at this station upwards of four years :
they intended, however, to return, after having recruited their
health; which they accordingly did, as will be seen iu due
course. They left Sierra-Leone on the 27th of May ; but, hav-
ing a long and tedious passage, they did not arrive in England
till after the middle of August.
On the 29th of May, the writer arrived at St. Mary's, having
had to beat up most of the way from Sierra-Leone. The rainy
season was now drawing nigh ; and the tornadoes, with their
accompaniments, thunder and lightning, were terrific. On the
21st of June we were visited by a tremendous one, with heavy
rain, when several vessels in the harbour were driven ashore,
and the roof of one house was partly blown away.
The writer was again engaged in the locality of St. Mary's,
in visiting some of the native chiefs ; and in the month of July
he took a journey to Macarthy's Island and its neighbourhood,
for the same purpose. On his return, he was attacked with
fever, which continued more or less severe for several days :
fifty leeches applied to his chest gave him considerable relief.
About the middle of August, Dr. Goheen, from Liberia, arrived
at St. Mary's, on his way to America, and took up his abode
with the writer at the mission-house. On the 19th Mr. Symons
came down from the upper station, very unwell : Dr. Goheen
kindly attended him. The next day Mr. Swallow and family
sailed for Boavista, one of the Cape Verd Islands, principally
on account of the illness and weakness of his child.
The colony at this time was in a state of considerable excite-
ment, owing to some personal disputes and law-suits among
the Europeans, and some of the authorities. The author kept
aloof from these as much as possible, except that in one or two
cases he acted as a kind of arbitrator ; and his efforts to pro-
mote peace were not in vain.
Towards the close of October, Mr. and Mrs, Swallow returned
from the Cape Verd Islands, having lost their dear child, who
had been ill for eighteen months. In a few days they pro-
ceeded to jMacarthy's Island, and Mr. Symons passed through
the rains tolerably well. But, as usual, the author had several
attacks of fever during this season.
On December 18th, His Royal Highness Prince de Joinville,
son of the king of the French, arrived at the Gambia, on board
a French steamer, and immediately tired a royal salute, which
was returned by our guns. Soon after this, His Royal High-
ness landed, and took a walk through the town, and visited the
barracks and other places. He also liouourcd the mission-
554 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
house witli a short visit, went into the chapel and school-i'oomj
and asked me several questions respecting the mission. In the
evening I had the honour of dining with him at Government-
house, with a large party of naval, civil, and military officers,
merchants, &c.
Prince de Joinville appeared to be from twenty-eight to
thirt}' years of age, was rather tall, easy and agreeable in his
manner, though but imperfectly acquainted with the English
language. He wore the uniform of a captain in the navy, with
a star at his breast. His frigate, "La Belle Poule,^' Avas at
Goree ; and he was paying a temporary visit to the small
French establishment at Albrada in the Gambia, and to the
Casamanza, in the steamer, and then returned to Goree, and
proceeded down the Coast in the vessel just mentioned. Since
that day, " how are the mightj' fallen ! '^
At the end of December the writer was once more at
Macarthy's Island, and Avas delighted with the services con-
ducted in the lower part of the Institution, Avbich he attended
on Cbristmas-day, the watchnight, and on the first sabbath of
the new 3'ear.
The acting-governor from St. Mary's, T. L. Ingram, Esq.,
Avas on a voyage in the upper river, for the purpose of having
an interview with the head-men at the difterent trading-ports,
and of visiting most of the chiefs witbin his reach, in order to
promote trade and commerce ; and, being respectfully invited
to accompany him, tbe Avriter gladly availed himself of this
opportunity of taking a fourth journey among the natiACS,
hoping that the benefit Avould be mutual. We left Macartby's
Island January 3d, 1843, on board the cutter " Emma." On
the 4th and folloAving days His Excellency tried to obtain an
intervicAv Avith Kemmingtan; but the crafty old cliief, Avith fair
speeches, avoided all personal communication with the British.
I subjoin a fcAv brief extracts from my journal : —
7th. — We waited at Foolatenda all day; but neither Kem-
mingtan came, nor any message from him; and Avhat can be
the cause of this, we are at a loss to coisjecture, unless it be tbat
he cannot forget the attack upon his town by a late lieutenant-
governor, and therefore Avill not trust himself near the Avhite
men. After breakfast ayc rode to Bankobata, a large Julor
toAvn nearJA' tAvo miles from the port, containing about fifteen
hundred inhabitants. The land for some distance is cultivated;
and ground-nuts, indigo, corn, and rice arc grown in great plenty.
We saAi' some date and pappa trees near the town; and, baving
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 555
remained about an hour, we returned to the vessel. A consi-
derable trade is carried on at this place, an European trader
being now here with a vessel from St. Mary's, whose transac-
tions amount to nearly fifteen hundred dollars per month.
The governor entered into a treaty with the head-men of
Bankobata and Chakunda, about a mile further up the river,
relative to trade, and prohibiting any dealings with slavery ; but
at the mention of this I saw several of them smile. In fact,
they think as little of buying and selling their fellow-creatures
as they do of exchanging cattle ; and though the British mer-
chants do not directly participate in this nefarious traffic, yet, in
carrying on their trade in the upper part of the river, they
become indirectly connected with it. For instance : a few days
ago we were told that thirteen slaves were sold by the Banko-
bata people for country cloths, and these were immediately
sold again to the European trader for English goods.
12th. — To-day we saw some of Kemmingtan's people from
Dunkaseen, but could learn nothing satisfactory as to why he
did not come to see the governor; and the latter is not dis-
posed to venture a visit to him. The next day we proceeded
to Madina.
17th. — Cantalicunda. We have been some time in deciding
upon the best mode of proceeding higher up the river; but it was
agreed we should proceed in the boat, and start with the tide at
two o'clock in the morning. Soon after this arrangement was
made, we heard a noise at the village ashore; and on going to
see what was the cause, we found that some people had seized
and carried off one of the Kroo-men belonging to our vessel,
because, as we were told, the governor had not given them any
presents, and the ground belonged to them. We were for
some time in great excitement. Several persons, however, were
immediately despatched after the stolen sailor, and a messenger
sent off to the old chief. But before he arrived, the old man had
sent a large party to take the prisoner back to the vessel, and ex-
pressed his regret at Avhat had happened, though as yet they
had not brought the Kroo-man. We sat up to a late hour; but
were happy to be disturbed about two o'clock with the joyful
news that John Freeman had come back, the king's people
having rescued him out of the hands of his enemies. The poor
fellow had fouglit hard liefore they could take him, in the first
instance, from the village close to the shore : he had been
cruelly treated on the road, and was afterwards tied by the
neck, hands, and feet, to prevent his escape. This circumstance
induced tlie governor not to proceed any further up tlie river.
556 WESTERN COAST OF ATRICA.
as Cantalicunda is the highest trading-port in the Gambia;
and we had heard that some of the dissatisfied people had
hoped for an opportunity of catching either himself or me, say-
ing they should have a vessel full of goods for our redemption.
The trade just now is not great at this port, owing princi-
pally to a war with Bondou and Bambarra. The river is here
one hundred and forty yards broad, and three fathoms deep,
and the rise and fall of the tide at this season of the year is
about three feet. Earl}^ on the following morning we weighed
anchor on our return; and having no places to call at, and
being favoured Avith a fair wind, we reached Fattatenda that
evening. Two days after we anchored at Bannatenda on account
of the tide ; but the governor and I procured horses, and rode
from that place to Macarthy^s Island, which we reached near
midnight on the 20th, having been absent seventeen days.
On reaching Macarthy's Island, the writer found that Mr.
and Mrs, Swallow had gone down to St. IVIary^s, for medical aid
and change of air, on account of the serious illness of the latter.
Having, therefore, arranged some matters connected with the
mission, he proceeded after them as soon as possible; and, having
a good run down the river, arrived at that station on the 25th.
Mrs. Swallow, on the previous day, had been prematurely con-
fined, and, on the 26th, I baptized their dear infant by the
name of Africanus, one hour before its death; and in a few
hours I had to commit it to the silent tomb. Two days after,
the mother followed her babe to the paradise of God.
Mrs. Swallow was a native of Leeds, where she was born
on the 12th of December, 1816. In the sixteenth year of her
age she was awakened to a sense of the exceeding sinfulness of
sin, and of the necessity of securing the favour of God, under a
sermon preached by the late Rev. Thomas Galland, M.A.; and
shortly after, at a prayer-meeting held in her father's house,, she
found " redemption in the blood of Jesus ; '^ when, on rising from
her knees, she instantly threw her arms round the neck of her
parent, and exclaimed, " O my dear father, praise the Lord I I
feel that he has blotted out ray sins ! I am happy ! O praise
the Lord, I am happy ! " About five years after this she Avas
united in marriage to Mr. Swallow, on the eve of his embarka-
tion for the Gambia, in the autumn of 1837 ; and she continued
to labour with her husband, most zealously and successfully,
until ill health obliged him to return to England in the early
part of 1839. In the latter part of the following year she a
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 557
second time most cheerfully accompanied him to Africa, though
she was then a mother, and brought with her their interesting
little infant boy, aged only six months. She, however, found
time to attend to other duties besides those of a domestic kind,
and was often seen teaching and instructing the black children,
with her own dear child playing at her feet. But the blighting
effects of the climate were soon felt by this European infant ;
and after several months' gradual decline, the parents were
called to mourn the loss of their first and only child. This,
together with the fatigues and anxieties occasioned by its pro-
tracted illness, greatly affected Mrs. Swallow's health and
spirits, and she was advised to return to England ; but she
positively refused, until Providence should point out the path
for her husband's return also. She therefore resumed her
duties, and, as far as her health would allow, was not weary in
well-doing. On the 21st of January she arrived at St. Mary's,
with Mr. Swallow, hoping the change would prove beneficial ;
and the writer, having arrived there from the upper river a few
days after, had an opportunity of visiting her in her affliction,
when some profitable seasons were spent in spiritual conversa-
tion and prayer. But she gradually sank under the effects of
her previous affliction, followed as it was by her confinement,
and that by other diseases; so that, though every thing
was done that skill or kindness could suggest, it was to
no purpose.
The day before she died, she expressed herself as having
peace, but not joy ; but soon afterwards she said, " Christ is
precious;" and, in answer to some interrogations by her hus-
band, respecting her father, she said, " Tell him not to regret
having given his daughter to be the wife of a nnssiouary."
Shortly after this, the writer having engaged in prayer by her
bed-side, she expressed herself as being greatly refreshed ; and on
my asking, "And what shall /tell your father?" "Tell him,"
said she, " that I can go to heaven just as soon from the banks
of the Gambia as 1 could from Leeds in Yorkshire." The
earthly tabernacle was now rapidly falling, and her weakness
was so great as to amount to positive suffering. Her husband,
feeling this most acutely, had left the room, and she requested
me to call him in shortly after. When he came to the bed-
side, she looked at him, and very sweetly said, " William, I am
going." He replied, " To heaven, my love ? " when she said,
"Yes, yes;" and in a few minutes the writer closed her eyes
in death.
She died at St. Mary's early in the morning of January 28th,
558 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
1843, aged twenty-seven 3'ears, and was interred the same
evening at the common burying-ground. Mrs. Swallow was a
pious, amiable, intelligent, and excellent woman, full of kind-
ness and affection, ardently attached to our beloved constitution
and to the cause of missions : in that she lived, laboured,
suffered, and died. A more ample account of this admirable
female may be found in the Wesleyan-Methodist Magazine for
April, 1846, written by her husband.
On the 23d of January, Mr. and Mrs. Watkins, with Mr.
George Chapman, arrived at the Gold-Coast ; and the following
month Mr. and Mrs. Quick, with IVIr. Richard Amos, landed at
Sierra-Leone. But the staff of standard-bearers at the Gold-
Coast was again reduced about this time, by the death of Mr.
Shipman, and of Mrs. Watkins, who were soon added to the list
of '^ those who had gone before."
Samuel A. Shipman was the son of a Wesleyan missionary,
and was born in Jamaica, November 2d, 1818, where his father
Avas then stationed. From a child he was amiable, courteous,
and conscientious ; and such was his regard for the sacredness
of the ministerial office, that a recollection of his being the son
of a minister operated considerably upon his mind as a restraint
from sin. His conversion to God was striking and manifest.
His preaching was solid, yet simple, chaste, and clear ; and his
discourses were delivered with zeal and energy. Being born in
the mission-field, and the son of a missionary, he had early in
life felt a great interest in the cause of missions ; and Avhen he
became a candidate for the work, he nobly offered himself for
Western Africa, being anxious to " preach the gospel to the
regions beyond." His arrival at the Gold-Coast, with Mrs.
Shipman and others, eai^ly in 1841, has already been mentioned.
After a few weeks^ residence at Cape-Coast Castle, Mr. Shipman
proceeded to British Akra, to take charge of that important
station, where he continued to labour, with some slight inter-
ruptions from ill health, up to the time of his death. In a letter
to his father from this station, about two months before his
lamented removal, he expressed his thankfulness that he and
his dear wife were both in the enjoA^ment of good health, though
surrounded by sickness and death. At this time, in addition to
his other work, he was employed in compiling a vocabulary of
the Fantee language, and had then completed a translation of the
Commandments, the Lord's Prayer, and part of the Conference
Catechism. Here he had also several native converts under a
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERllA-LEONE. 559
course of training, preparatory to their becoming native teachers
and subordinate agents in the mission. But, in the midst of use-
fuhiess, this faithful and zealous herald of the cross was removed
from earth to heaven. lie died at British Akra, February 22d,
1843, in the twenty-fifth year of his age, and the third of his
public ministr3\ Ilis last words were, —
" In death, as life, be thou my Guide,
And save me, who for me hast died ! "
Mrs. Shipman felt this stroke very severely, and embraced
an early opportunity of returning to England.
Mrs. Watkins died at Cape-Coast Castle, on the 1st of
March, 1843. She, Avith her husband, and Mr. George Chap-
man, had landed there on the 23d of the previous January,
having had a long and tedious voyage. A fortnight after their
arrival, Mrs. Watkins was attacked with a disorder, which
defied human skill ; and she gradually grew weaker, until she
exchanged mortality for life, after a residence in Western
Africa of only thirty-nine days.
Early in February we held our annual district-meeting at
St. Mary's on the Gambia, when we were all of one heart and
of one mind, but found considerable difficulty as to the future
appointments of the stations, from the paucity of missionaries,
and my contemplated return home. Two days after, the
" Union" sailed for England, carrying our accounts, district
minutes, &c. On the 29th of the month, the "Sea Witch"
arrived from London, bringing Mr. Lynn, a schoolmaster, for
St. Mary's, who had had some months' training at Glasgow ;
and, being a local preacher, he was a valuable acquisition.
On the 8th of April, Her Majesty's frigate the "Madagascar"
came into the harbour from the lecAvard, with the commodore.
Captain Foote, on board. In the evening I dined with him at
Government-House ; and the next day, being the sabbath, went
on board, and attended divine service, and was much pleased with
the decorum and solemnity manifested by all parties. About
three hundred, including the officers and sailors, were present.
Two days after, I dined on board the frigate, and gave back to
Captain Foote the two letters whicli he had kindly allowed me
to copy, and which he, or rather one of his officers, had received
from two chiefs at Calabar, relating to the Slave-Trade. One
of these letters I introduce here, as a specimen of African
correspondence and phraseology, of their views of the utility
560 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
and importance of the British squadron, and of their desire to
have Christian teachers and others to instruct thera in the arts
of civihzed hfe.
TO COMMANDER RAYMOND, MAN-OF-WAR SHIP.
I AM very glad yon come up and settle treaty proper, and thank yon for doing
every thing right for me. Yesterday I have been look for some man-of-war long
time ; and when French man come here, I sent, I think, last December, our canoe
to let you know ; but too much wind live to catch Fernando Po ; and not we
come for help, me keep treaty all same. Mr. Blount promise ; and when I no
give slaves, French man-of-war come here and make plenty palaver ; but I no will.
One thing I want for beg your Queen Victoria. I have too much man now I
can't sell slaves, and don't know what for do for them ; but if I can't catch
some small cotton-tree and coffee to grow, and man to teach me, and to make all
sugar-cane live for countiy, come up proper and sell for trade side, I very glad.
Mr. Blytli tell me England glad for send man to teach book, and teach for
understand God all same as white man. If queen do so, I glad too much ; and we
must try to do good for England always. WTiat I think I want for dollar side is
proper India red romalls, and copper rod. I no want fool thing : I want thing
for trade side for England.
I must try to do good thing for Queen Victoria, and all Englishman, and hope
queen and young prince must live long time proper.
I am. Sir,
Yours friend,
(Signed) King Eyo Honesty,
Creek- Town, Calehar.
I thank you again for comme and done all things proper for we, and glad to see
you very often.
Creek-Town, 1 December, 1842,
On the 5th of INIay we were cheered by the arrival of Messrs.
Godtnan and Parsonson. A few days after, we held a special
district-meeting, in reference to the appointment of the bre-
thren, the secretaries having left it with us to arrange in the
best manner we could. We were united in sentiment and
affection ; and it was decided that INIr. Swallow should return to
England with me, though he would have risked another rainy
season, had only one missionary been sent. The state of the
missions at this period, at ejich of the districts on the Coast, may
be seen in the " Report of the Wesleyan-Methodist Missionary
Society, for the year ending April, 1843."
There were several native agents, at each of the stations,
actively co-operating with the European missionaries in preach-
ing and teaching the sublime truths of our holy religion ; and
each district had an Institution for training others to be ulti-
mately employed in the same work.
The Europeans generally on the Coast feel a pleasure in
annually subscribing to the support of these missions ; and the
printed Reports will furnish many names of the highest respect-
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 561
ability, as well as not a few natives, who, having been benefited
temporally as well as spiritually by the gospel, feel it no less a
duty than a privilege to contribute towards sending " the gospel
to the regions beyond."
From these sources the following sums were remitted to the
parent Society during the year, in addition to the regular
weekly and quarterly payments and other collections : — Sierra-
Leone, €154; Gambia, €184. 15*. 'dd.; Gold-Coast, £132.
Qs. M. : total, £471. Is.Wd.
The author's residence in Africa was now drawing to a close ;
and his feelings at the prospect of leaving were of a peculiar
character. More than ten years of the best part of his life had
been spent in connexion with these interesting missions, in
which he had travelled many thousands of miles by sea and by
land ; and, in the prosecution of his humble labours, had often
been called to suffer in various ways. But though frequently
"brought low," the Lord had as often "helped him;" and he
" had not laboured in vain, nor spent his strength for nought."
In addition to those special and Divine interpositions of Provi-
dence, and that " grace to help in time of need," which had been
imparted, there were other, though less important, circumstances
which called for gratitude. He had usually had the hearty
co-operation of his brethren in the ministry, with their confi-
dence and esteem, and the good-will and prayers of all con-
nected Avith the mission; and, generally, he may say, he had
had the respect and best wishes of those who were without. A
few days before his embarkation for England, he received a
kind letter from some influential gentlemen, requesting his
"acceptance of a silver tea-service, with an inscription, as a
memento of their friendship and esteem." This document
was signed by seven Europeans; and though, as they state,
they formed " but a very inconsiderable number " of those
M'ho Avished well to the mission, and to the writer as one of
the Society's agents, yet these seven were a fair representa-
tion of the European residents at the Gambia, as four of them
were holding some of the highest official situations under Her
Majesty's Government, both in the civil, judicial, and military
department, and the other three were respectable merchants,
two of Avhom were magistrates.
A few days after this occurrence, and the author's grateful
acknowledgments, he engaged a passage on board a French
barque, the "Mexicain," bound for Havre-de-Grace; and on
Sunday, May 21st, delivered his farewell sermon in the chapel
where are deposited the remains of his dear wife and two
o o
562 "WESTERN COAST OE AEUICA.
lovely cliildreii, and where lie had so many times proclaimed
" Jesus and the resurrection/^ Mr. Swallow preached in the
evening : he, too, had been called to suffer in a similar way.
In the narrative of these missions already given, it will have
been seen that the writer, having been the senior missionary at
the Gambia for some years, had had charge of the different
stations on this part of the Coast ; and in his capacity of general
superintendent had been much engaged at different times in
the erection aud superintending of school-houses, chapels, and
other mission buildings. His last act in this department of
labour was to enclose a small piece of ground at the common
place of interment, which is about three quarters of a mile
from the town, and of which a representation is here given.
In the enclosed space were laid the bodies of the Rev. Thomas
Wall, Mrs. Swallow and her infant babe, and since then
of one or two other missionaries. The railing, it will be seen,
is of iron, placed upon a pedestal or foundation of stone, vrith an
entrance in the form of an iron gate ; and the attitude of the
Negro will be sufficiently intelligible without further explanation.
Several of the old residents at St. Mary's have had small
pieces of ground enclosed for themselves or their families,
at a sufficient distance from the sea-side ; and as two or three
Wesleyan missionaries had been interred at this place before
the author's arrival at the Gambia early in 1833, and no one
was able to point out the precise spot where they were buried,
he thought it due to others who might fall in the field, that
their bodies also should be preserved undisturbed from the raging
elements, and from prowling beasts ; and was resolved that
something should be done, however plain, to distinguish and
point out the missionary's grave. This little act of justice
would have been performed at an earlier period, had not several
of his fellow-labourers been interred in the chapel ; but as this
was becoming inconvenient, and others preferred being buried
at the usual place of interment, the time had now arrived to do
something to procure a suitable place.
The day of the writer's departure was now at hand ; and on
Saturday morning, May 27th, 1843, he went on board the
'' Mexicain," accompanied by a host of friends and well-
wishers. Many of the native converts had loaded us with
presents of various kinds, in token of their affectionate regards,
and they also " accompanied us to the ship ;" and " the adieus
and farewells^' were numerous and affecting. Several of the
natives, also, and other friends, sailed with us a few miles
towards the Atlantic, and then returned in a small sloop, which
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
563
had been kindly lent for the occasion ; and we had again to say,
"Farewell." The writer has often heard missionaries speak of
" the parting scene," when called to leave their native land and
friends, probably never to see them more till the resurrection
morn ; and he is no stranger to those emotions, having thrice
passed through the ordeal, — on one occasion, it will be recol-
lected, under very peculiar circumstances ; and none but a mis-
sionary can tell the feelings of his heart, when he is in the act
of bidding adieu to the nearest and dearest on earth, with one
foot on land, and the other on the vessel that is to bear him far
away. But none of these scenes, nor all of them put together,
came up to that which it cost the Avriter to leave Africa. Many
a lingering look did he give, as he Avalked the deck, after our
friends had returned : and the telescope was again and again
taken up, till the sun went down, and the town of Bathurst and
St. Mary^s were out of sight. He then retired into his cabin to
ask the Divine blessing upon these British settlements, and
upon the mission-stations, and presented himself afresh to God.
On the afternoon of the 29fch we anchored at Goree, our
captain having to call there for a short time. We found no less
than seven French men-of-war lying in the harbour, which, with
several merchant vessels, presented rather a lively appearance.
Here we were detained somewhat longer than was expected,
from the following very annoying and vexatious circumstance :
The writer had with him a little black boy of promising charac-
ter, the son of one of our local pi^eachers at St. Mary^s. His
parents had formerly resided at Goree, and Avere slaves
belonging to a Mulatto lady ; but they had for many years
lived at the British settlement at the Gambia, and had both
obtained their emancipation by the payment of a certain sum of
money. This boy was born at St. Mary^s, and had never seen
Goree in his life ; but on going ashore, the lady claimed him as
her slave.
The following letter addressed to the governor, will explain
the particulars of the former part of this unexpected affair : —
" Mexicain," off Goree, May 31s/, 1843.
Sir, — I regret that a sense of duty compels me to complain of the conduct of
one of the civil officers under your excellency's authority ; I refer to M. Duhour-
dieu, collector of customs.
I am a passenger for England, hy way of France, on hoard the above-named
vessel, and have with me a servant boy, about twelve years of age. We left
St. Mary's on the 27th instant, and anchored at this port on the evening of
the 29th.
Yesterday forenoon 1 went ashore, in company with my fellow-passengers and my
2 o 2
564 WESTEllN COAST OF AFRICA.
servant ])oy ; we walked ahout the town for some time, called upon one or two
friends, and were preparing to go on board again, when our captain informed us
that there was some talk about my servant being a slave belonging to a lady of
colour of the name of Degrigny. I told him that such a thing was impossible, as
the boy was born at the British settlement of St. Man's, Gambia, and had never
before been to Goree. However, at the captain's request, I went with him to the
collector : when the passport for myself and servant was presented, he coolly
replied, that " I might proceed, but that he must see the servant before he could give
him permission." I then, with the captain and the Rev. William Swallow, accom-
panied him to the wharf, (where the boy was waiting to go on board the ship,)
showed him the servant, told him that he was born at St. Mary's, Gaml)ia, and again
showed him the passport with the boy's name as well as my own upon it ; but all
this was of no use ; he said the boy must go to the house of Madame Degrigny,
and requested the harbour-master to take him. I remonstrated against this, and
said I could not allow him to be taken into capti\ity ; that he was as much a Bri-
tish subject as I was ; and once more referred him to the passport, and asked him
what was the use of such a document, if I was to be subjected to all these annoy-
ances. But to all that I said a deaf ear was turned ; and the collector insisted
upon the boy being taken, both against his own will and also mine ; and immedi-
ately called a sergeant from the guard-house. Seeing this, I made no fiulher
remonstrance, though the boy still refused to go, till requested by me, with the
assurance that I would accompany him, which I did, as did also the captain and the
Rev. W. Swallow. A long discussion took place between the officer sent, the cap-
tain, and Madame Degrigny ; the particidars I am ignorant of, as I did not under-
stand the language ; the boy, however, whh myself, ultimately left the house and
came on board.
Your excellency will, I trust, excuse this detailed account of a most vexatious
affair. British subjects, and that especially from an English colony so contiguous
as the Gambia, would have expected different treatment ; and I therefore feel that
I have just cause to complain of M. Dubourdieu's insulting conduct to me per-
sonally ; and I further beg most earnestly and solemnly to protest against my
sers-ant being forced along the streets, under a guard, at the dictation of M.
Dubourdieu, and to please the caprice of Madame Degrigny, who never saw the boy
in her life before yesterday.
Craving your excellency's kind interference and protection during my shoit stay
under your excellency's administration,
I have the honour to be, Sir,
Your obedient humble servant,
William Fox.
To His Excellency Governor Dagorne, ^'c. &;c. iSj'c, Goree.
To that letter I received the following reply : —
GoREE, May o\st, 1843,
Sir, — I have received the letter which you did me the honour to WTite on the
subject of a black boy, who accompanied you from St. Mary's. I do not doubt
that the jn-oceedings which you complain of would appear to you unnatural, were
you not ignorant of the French language and M. Dubourdieu of the English lan-
guage, which has caused a misunderstanding.
The fact is, it was the duty of the officer to assure himself, at the time, if the
claims of Madame Degrigny were legal or not. In the latter case your servant
would be completely at liberty to go at large.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 565
Slavery is uot yet abolished in our settlement, ami, whatever my opinion may be
on this point, the slave is legally the property of its master.
The proximity of St. Mary's, where the law is altogether opposed, will cause our
slaves to desert, and the desertion is legally an offence which cannot affect the
rights ; then, if your servant is born at Goree a slave, his owner has the right of
claiming him, and we must aid him in ol)taining his property. The case must,
liowever, necessarily appear before the courts, where it will be judged with every
diUgence and imjjartiality ; and if there is not suthcient proof, our courts shall not
permit a free individual to be made a slave : and this is my reply to Madame
Degrigny.
When you thought it necessary to go to Madame Degrigny's, I must repeat to you
that it was owing to a misunderstanding on your part ; and bad you understood the
question, I dare say you would have been the first to atford an investigation.
Agree with me, Su-, in the assurance of my distinguished consideration,
(Signed) Z. Dagorne,
The Commandant of Goree.
To tlie Rev. TV. Fox.
Shortly after the receipt of this letter, I received a summons
to attend a bench of magistrates at seven o'clock on the follow-
ing morning. The governor presided, with three other judges.
Several witnesses kindly came forward^ who declared that the
boy was born at St. Mary's : this was contradicted by two or
three witnesses, produced by Madame Degrigny. After a while
the judges retired for a short time to consult, then came into
the court with the decision ; which was, in substance, " that the
boy was born at St. Mary's, but it was a short time before his
mother purchased her freedom ; and, that being the case, the
child was the legal property and slave of the owner of his
mother." I protested against this, but it was to no purpose ;
and he was not allowed to proceed Avith me to England, unless I
ransomed him ; which I did by paying one hundred and fifty
dollars, and four more for the making out his manumission !
I sent the whole particulars to the English authorities at the
Gambia, and furnished the Wesleyan Missionary Committee
with them, and was in hopes that the matter would not be
allowed thus quietly to drop. But I heard nothing more of the
case, except expressions of regret and indignation at the con-
duct of the French at Goree on this occasion.
We left this miserable place between three and four o'clock
P.M. on the 1st of June, and proceeded on our voyage. It
is, however, due to state, that two or three Frenchmen, who
frequently visited the Gambia, and to whom the waiter was
known, avoAved their sympathy for him, and their regret at
the annoyance to which he had been subjected, and especially at
the decision of the court. One of them, in expressing his
indignation, in imperfect English, said, " Mr. Fox, I do think
566 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
this Goree is de worst and last place God Almighty did make."
The population of this French settlement was about seven
thousand, of whom six thousand were held in bondage; that
is, they were slaves, toiling every day for another's benefit, and
their children had to do the same. It afi'orded the writer plea-
sure, after all, that he was able to rescue the little boy from the
unnatural grasp of this female owner of human beings.
On Sunday, June 4th, we held divine service in the main
cabin, but Avere few in number ; Mr. Swallow, myself, Mr. A.
Kendall, who was a fellow-passenger, and the African boy, being
all that were present. On Wednesday afternoon, the 17th, we
observed a good-sized vessel coming before the wind. "When
she neared us a little, our captain hoisted his colours; but it
was some time before our neighbour had the civility to do the
same, which caused us to be a little suspicious as to her real
character; and our suspicion was rather increased by a sight of
the Spanish flag, which was exhibited when about two miles
distant. At this period we perceived a number of persons in
the fore part of the ship busily engaged in what we supposed
Avas a preparation for an attack upon us ; and this supposition
was strengthened when she had altered her course, and was
making towards us, "VVe were now apprehensive that she was a
pirate ; and a consultation was held as to the plan vre should
adopt, in case our fears should be found to be correct. The
captain gave it as his decided opinion, that it would be worse
than useless for us to make any resistance ; for though ours was
a good-sized barque, and we had a full complement of men on
board, besides the passengers, yet we had no guns connected
with the ship, and scared}'' any fire-arms or other weapons of
any description, except a sword and one or two pistols in the
captain's cabin, belonging to himself. We therefore resolved to
muster all hands on deck, and called up the watch from below,
in order to exhibit our strength ; and having a rough sailor's
jacket, which I had purchased for sea-voyages, I put this on,
and, with a spy-glass under my arm, took my stand or walked
the deck with the captain and mates. Mr. Swallow did the
same ; and we thus presented a tolerable appearance as to what
we hoped would be considered officers and crcAV. Our young
passenger was dreadfully alarmed and excited, could not eat his
dinner, and, having some hard cash by him, he went and hid his
money; adding, he was resolved they should not have that, even
if they killed him.
It must be confessed that our situation at this juncture
WHS one of painful anxiety. The two missionaries on board
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 567
had not forgotten " the throne of grace :" it was " a time of
need," and they laid the precious promises before their
unchangeable and Almighty Lord, and as calmly as possible
awaited the result. But whether the Spanish barque which
was now within one mile of us was a friend or a foe, we knew
not, though we had reason to fear the latter was the case :
every moment was precious, and every succeeding moment we
expected a shot, which would decide the point. She now
approached very near to us ; and, supposing (or hoping rather)
that she oidy wished to speak to us, our captain close hauled
our ship, so as to afford an opportunity of inquiring our longi-
tude, if that was the object of such close quarters. But
not a Avord was uttered, though quite near enough to speak ;
and after eyeing us with their spy-glasses most minutely, they
at length bore away a few yards from our stern ; and we were
glad to turn our backs upon them, and moved on in our course.
It was the opinion of our captain and his othcers that this
luas a vessel of piratical character; for such strange conduct he
had never witnessed before ; and he attributed our not being
molested to the size of our barque, and the number of people we
had on board ; but intimated that it was probable she might
return when the sun went down, and fall upon us duriug the
night. This, however, was happilj^ not the case. We were at
the time in the latitude of tlie Madeiras, and almost west of the
Azores, and for a week did not make much progress, owing to
calms and baffling winds. These are tedious; a terrific storm is
perhaps worse ; the prospect of shipwreck, in the midst of the
Atlantic, or on a lee-shore, worse still ; but ivorst of all the
"perils of the sea," is that of being boarded by a pirate !
On the 25th we were passing between the islands ; Fayal and
Pico being on our lee-beam, the peak of the latter was seen
above the clouds, and looked majestic. July commenced with
a splendid breeze, and our gallant barque showed her sailing
qualities in fine style, going at nine, ten, and ten and a half
knots an hour. On the 3d of this month we Avere in soundings
fifty-six fathoms deep; three days after we landed at Havre-de-
Grace in France, where we were detained a day or two ; we then
embarked on board the steamer " Sphinx " for Loudon, which
we reached on the 10th, thankful to God for all his mercies.
On Saturday, 15th, the author once more arrived at Smethwick;
and, as may be well supposed, under peculiar circumstances and
emotions.
CHAPTER XXIV.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
(1843—1850.)
The Sheffield Conference — Departure of Mr. and Mrs. Dove, with Mr. and Mrs.
Badger, for Sierra-Leone ; and of Mr. and Mrs. Annear, with Mr. Timothy T.
Greaves, and Mr. John Martin, for the Gold-Coast — Death of Mr. Symons at
the Gambia, of Mrs. Badger at Sierra- Leone, and of Mr. Watkins at the Gold-
Coast — The Arrival of Mr. and Mrs. Brooking at Cape-Coast-Castle — Letter
from Mr. George Chapman at Coomassie — Mr. and Mrs. Quick's Return to
England — Death of Mr. Greaves at British Akrah — The Gambia Mission —
Mr. Benjamin Chapman's Arrival there — Mr. Freeman in England, with his
Defence of himself and the Mission — His Departure for the Coast with Mr.
Wharton, a West Indian — Return of Mr. George Chapman — Departure of
Messrs. Raston, Wajle, and Griffiths for Sierra-Leone — Mr. Amos's Retmni
to England — Mr. and Mrs. Parsonson's Arrival at the Gambia — Mr. and Mrs.
.\llen, with Messrs. Findlay and Addison, sail for the Gold-Coast — Return of
Mr. Brooking — Death of Mrs. Raston and of Mr. Wayte at Sierra-Leone, of Mr.
Findlay at the Gold-Coast, and of Mr. Lynn the Schoolmaster at the Gambia —
Return to this Country of Mr. and Mrs. Annear and of Mr. and Mrs. Dove —
Departure for, and Arrival at, Sien-a-Leone of Mr. and Mrs. Wrench, with Mr.
Lewis — Messrs. John Thomas, Harrop, and Hillard safely arrive at the Gold-
Coast — Death of Mrs. Godman — Return of Mr. and Mrs. Wrench, Mrs. Par-
sonson, and Mr. David Griffiths — Mr. Raston's third Embarkation for Western
Africa, accompanied by Mrs. Raston and Messrs. Richard Hart and Purslow —
Arrival of Messrs. Meadows and Lean at the Gambia — Return to England of
Mr. and Mrs. Allen and Mr. Martin — Death of Mr. Lean at the Gambia — And
of Mr. Purslow at Sierra-Leone — Mr. Badger and the Gambia Mission —
Death of the benevolent Dr. Lindoe — Arrival of Mr. Garry at Sierra-Leone —
And of Mr. Frederick Hart at the Gold-Coast — Return to England of Messrs.
Addison, Thomas, Harrop, and Hillard — Extracts from the annual Report,
with the Statistics of the Stations — Present Extent of the Society's Operations
on the Western Coast of Africa.
Having traced the rise and progress of these missions from
the commencement up to and beyond the period when they
became three separate districts, under the head of whicli were
several '^ central or principal stations called circuits/^ each hav-
ing connected with it an European missionary or native teacher,
with a number of preaching-places; and having at different
stages of the narrative given the statistics, with the number of
agents employed, embracing the number of members in the
Society, with the scholars in the schools, &c. ; our task in
sketching the history of these missions fur the few subsequent
}cars will be comparatively short and easy.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 569
It will be seen, from the close of the preceding chapter, that
the writer and his colleague, Mr. Swallow, arrived in England
only a week or two previous to the annual Methodist Confer-
ence, which was that year held in the town of Sheffield, We
attended its sittings, and both of us received appointments to
English circuits.
The departure of Messrs. Dove and Badger for their former
sphere of labour was mentioned by the committee in their Report.
The brethren on this occasion were both married, and the whole
party arrived safely at Sierra-Leone on the 21st of July, 1843.
About the middle of October, Mr. and Mrs. Annear, witli
Mr. Timothy T. Greaves and Mr. John Martin, embarked on
board the " Robert Heddle/' for the Gold- Coast, which place
they reached on the 12th of December. Mr. Annear had spent
nearly a year and a half at Sierra-Leone, from which he was
obliged to return to England for a change of air ; and, after
remaining in this country a few months, most readily re-
embarked for the Gold-Coast.
The rains of that year passed away without any death in the
mission families; but it is our painful duty to record three
removals from earth to heaven, which took place soon after,
though at the best season of the year. These were Mr.
Symons at the Gambia, Mrs. Badger at Sierra-Leone, and Mr.
Watkins at the Gold-Coast.
Samuel Symons was born in London in the month of April,
1814 ; and when about eleven years of age he removed with his
parents to Cornwall, and was afterwards apprenticed to a draper
at Penzance. At the expiration of his apprenticeship, be
returned to the metropolis, and subsequently resided at Exeter,
where, in the year 1835, he became truly converted to God. A
sermon preached by the Rev. Walter Lawry was the means,
under the Divine Spirit, which led to tliis happy change.
Three years after this, he returned to Penzance, having now
commenced calling sinners to repentance ; a work in which he
took great delight. In order to his being acceptable and suc-
cessful, he devoted a considerable portion of time to study and
mental improvement, believing that he was called of God to be
a minister of the word of life. After the usual examinations,
he w^as proposed to and accepted by the Conference of 1841;
and in the autumn of that year was sent by the Missionary
Committee to the Gambia. His heart had been set on Western
Africa, and he preferred this appointment "above all other
places." The Avriter had the })lcasure of meeting him on liis
570
WESTERN COAST OF At'RICA.
arrival at St. Mary's, in the month of December of that year,
and was subsequently an eye-witness to his studious habits,
fervent piety, and indefatigable zeal in spreading the Saviour's
name, in building up God's people, and leading penitent sinners
to Christ. Mr. Symons took great interest in the new mission
at Ngabantang, on the continent, a little below Macarthy's
Island; and in promoting the object of the Institution at the
latter station, he took several journeys.
Some time after his arrival at the Gambia, he had charge of
this important branch of the Society's operations; and his judi-
cious conduct and management of the royal pupils, who were
placed under his care, were alike creditable to himself, advan-
tageous to them, and gratifying to his brethren.
An interesting letter from this devoted missionary, dated
April, 1843, appeared in the " Quarterly Papers " for Septem-
ber in that year, giving an account of the conversion of a
Mohammedan to the faith of Christ, Avith some further par-
ticulars of the mission, and asking for more help to meet the
urgent claims of jMacarthy's Island. In the month of June he
again wrote to the Missionary Committee from the same place ;
and refers to " the new mission at Ngabantang," quoting a letter
from Pierre Sallah, one of the native teachers, m ho was stationed
there, with some encouraging account of the spirit of hearing
among the inhabitants of that locality ; and adding, " I think,
from the foregoing letter, that Pierre is labouring among a
people prepared of the Lord, and that we should be criminal
were we to neglect them."
During the rains, Mr. Symons had several attacks of fever,
which greatly prostrated his strength ; and though he took a
short journey in the government-steamer which, on the 29th of
November, left Macarthy's Island for the upper river, yet he
returned rather worse than better. But in all his letters to his
friends in England, he expressed himself as being happy in
God, and delighted with his work as a missionary. In one, refer-
ring to heaven, he says, " How happy have I been when anticipat-
ing the meeting with my dear friends there, and for ever rest-
ing from my labours ! And how has my soul been enkindled,
when I have thought that I may throughout eternity see some
poor Africans raised thither through God's blessing on my
labours !"
The last entry in his journal is dated " January 7th, 1844,"
and is as follows : " Since I last wrote, I have had another
attack of sickness. I was taken ill on the 30th ult., and am
now nearlv recovered. Praise the Lord ! At the watchnight
THE GOLD-COASTj GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE, 571
service one woman was converted ; another, on Friday; to-day,
one who had lost her confidence was restored. May the Lord
carry on his work ! God, of his mercy, has preserved me
through another year. How numerous have been the mercies
I have received, the privileges I have enjoyed ; but yet how
cold is my heart ! O, my ingratitude ! I am an astonishment
to myself, that I can receive so many benefits from God, and
be so insensible. O Lord, fill my heart with thy love, then I
shall feel my obligation, and love thee in return ! '^ He
acknowledged that " he had many privations and many trials ;
but he would not leave his beloved charge," he said, " if any
one would guarantee him a thousand a year to live in England,
dear as his home and friends were to him."
But his days of usefulness and labour liere below were now
"numbered." On Sunday, the 14tli of January, he preached
in the forenoon, with great liberty and feeling, and much longer
than usual ; so that Mr. Parsonson had finished at Fattota, and
returned to George-Town just as he had concluded. He after-
wards said to his colleague, " I scarcely knew when to give
over." On Monday evening he met his class, as usual ; and, as
two of the members had died but a few days previous, he dwelt
on the nearness of death, and the necessity of being fully pre-
pared for it. The Tuesday was occupied in closing his accounts
for the quarter. On Wednesday he was poorly, and early retired
to rest. Mr. Godman arrived from St. Mary's that evening,
bringing some letters for him from his friends in England, which
afi'orded him great pleasure. On Thursday morning he pro-
ceeded with his accounts, and had engaged a passage in a
vessel for St. Mary's, for the benefit of the sea-breeze; but
early in the forenoon he was seized with a severe fit of ague,
with other unfavourable symptoms. Medical aid was immedi-
ately called in ; but it was of no avail. The disease now
assumed the type of the yellow fever; and on the Friday he
was apprehensive of its fatal efl'ects. On that day, addressing
the doctor, he said, " Now, doctor, what do you think of me ?
Do not deceive me, nor be afraid of telling me the truth ; for
I am not afraid of dying." He several times requested his
brethren to pray with him, when the Divine presence was
graciously vouchsafed in a remarkable manner. On one of
these occasions his own servant was quite overwhelmed, and
sobbed aloud. During the day his language was that of prayer
and praise. " My blessed Jesus," he exclaimed, " is about to take
unworthy me to heaven ! " Soon after this he quoted the well-
known lines of Pope, —
572 WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
" Lend, lend your wings, — I mount ! I fly !
0 grave, wliere is thy victory ?
0 death, where is thy sting ? "
His brethren were surprised at hearing this^ from cue enfeebled
in body; but still more so at the manner in which he uttered
the two following lines : —
" Cease, fond nature, cease thy strife,
And let me languish into life !"
He desired his colleague, Mr. Parsonson, to write to his parents
and friendsj and "to give his dying love to them, and to say
that he did not regret coming to Western Africa." He died
in the full triumph of faith, at Macarthy's Island, a little before
seven o'clock on Saturday morning, January 20Lh, 1844, in the
third year of his probation, and in the thirtieth year of his age.
Mrs. Badger expired at Hastings, in the colony of Sierra-
Leone, on the 28tli of January, 1844. This excellent woman
manifested from childhood great seriousness of disposition, and
at a very early age was regularly conducted to a Wesleyan
chapel by her pious mother, who endeavoured to "train her up
in the way she should go.'' But it was not until she was about
nineteen years of age that she obtained a clear sense of God's
favour in the forgiveness of sins. Her life then became a life of
faith in the Son of God, and of prompt obedience to the Divine
commands. Her concern for the salvation of others was
conspicuous, and she availed herself of every opportunity of
doing good ; but while her heart embraced the whole world,
those members of her own family who as yet Vv^ere living in sin,
were the objects of her special solicitude and regard. After
her marriage to Mr. Badger, and before her embarkation for
Sierra-Leone, she felt much in the prospect of separating from
those whom she dearly loved ; but the grace of God was
sufficient ; and hence she wrote, " From a sense of duty, I am
willing to leave all my dearest friends : and I go to a foreign
land, feeling assured that the Lord will go with us." The
mission-band of whom she formed a part, arrived at their
destination in the midst of tiie rainy season; and soon after
their arrival, Mrs. Badger was seized with the country fever ; but
she passed through this very favourably, and shortly after she
accompanied INIr. Badger to Hastings, which was his appointed
sphere of labour ; and here she proved a true help-meet to her
husband, aiding him in his " work of faith and labour of love,"
both by her prayers and exertions. On January 24th, she
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 573
gave birth to a daughter, and up to the day of her death
appeared to be doing well. At nine o'clock on the 28th of the
same month, Mr. Badger, after prayer, took an affectionate
leave of her, for an absence of only a few hours, to hold a reli-
gious service at Wellington ; and while there, a messenger
arrived to inform him of her sudden illness. He hastened
home; but, before his arrival, she had "fallen asleep" in Jesus.
In the severest trial of nature, she calmly reposed on God ; and
her consolations were many. She died in great peace, aged
thirty years, after a residence in Africa of six mouths and seven
days.
Benjamin Watkins, after labouring with dihgence and
success on the Gold-Coast for about twelve months, died at
British Akra, in that district, in great peace, on the 7th of
February, 1844, in the twenty-seventh year of his age. He
was a young man whose talents and general fitness for the
missionary work gave much promise of usefulness ; and during
his residence in Africa he had won the esteem and affection of
all his brethren, as well as of the societies to whom he preached
" the word of life.'' Soon after the death of his beloved wife,
which, it may be recollected, took place a few weeks after they
lauded at Cape-Coast, he left that station, to take charge of the
circuit and Institution at Akrah, where he continued till the
following December, when he returned to Cape-Coast to attend
the annual district-meeting. Here he was seized with an illness
which shattered his whole frame, and his immediate return to
Europe was urged as the only means of saving Ids life. Prepa-
rations were made for his embarkation, and he proceeded to
British Akra, in order to join the barque " Uobert Heddle;"
but before the vessel was ready to sail for England, he had a
relapse which terminated his earthly career on the date Ave have
mentioned ; and he was interred in the fort-yard the same day.
The Annual Report for that year contains interesting details
of the state of the missions at each of the stations on the Coast,
notwithstanding the frequent deaths which took place, and the
unavoidable absence of others, on account of ill health. Mr.
Brooking had returned to England, during the preceding year,
for a change, having been on the Coast upwards of three years :
but he sailed again for Western Africa, accompanied by Mrs.
Brooking; and they landed at Cape-Coast on the 20th of
March, 1844. Mr. George Chapman had, in the meantime,
occupied the important station at Coomassie, the capital of
574 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Asliantee ; and in addition to the Annual Report, which con-
tains some interesting and thrilHng facts from the missionary at
this place, the following letter, published in the " Missionary
Notices" soon after, is so interesting, that we must beg the
reader's attention to it : —
DESTRUCTION OF A FETISH. VISIT TO THE ClUEEN.
Kingdom of Ashanti. — Extract of a Letter from the Rev. George Chajjman,
dated Kumasi, March 2\th, 1844.
With feelings of deep and lively gratitude I write you, thankful that, in a land
■where so many are suddenly called to their great reward, my own health has heen
mercifully preserved. I regard it as no small mercy, that, during the past five
months, I have not had a day's sickness, nor have heen hindered, from this cause,
in the discharge of my duty. To God he all the praise !
Our prospects still continue such as to warrant the expectation, that, at a period
not distant, the etForts made for the conversion of the Ashantis will be crowned
with great success. This, however, will not be the case without much opposition
on the part of some, and patient, prudent perseverance on the part of those whose
duty it may be to labour in Kumasi.
Our congregations continue to increase ; on the sabbath afternoon especially,
many attend to hear the word of life. The attention with which they listen is
truly encouraging ; while, on some occasions, the tearful eye gives evidence that, in
a greater or less degree, the heart is made to feel the mighty influence of the ever-
blessed gospel. In addition to those I mentioned in my last, a respectable chief
(Adu Osai) has begun to meet in class. He attends witli great regularity the
means of grace, and is, I trust, sincerely and humbly seeking salvation. The two
young men to whom I referred, still give pleasing evidence of a strong desire to
know more fully those great truths by which they may be saved. The sincerity of
one of them was manifested a few days ago, in his committing to the flames his
fetish, — that fetish in which he from his childhood had trusted. This was done
under circumstances of some interest. The companions of the youth, hearing what
was about to take place, assembled to witness the destruction of the first fetish
destroyed in Kumasi from conscientious motives. Every thing being in readiness,
two or three large (h-ums were brought out ; and as the god hung suspended over the
waiting flames, one of the party, in imitation of the signal given by the king's death-
drum, struck his drum to the well-known sound, " Cut liim down ! cut him down !
cut him down ! " The flames instantly received the long-adored image ; while, at the
moment of its fall, another drum answered the first, and loudly responded, " Down ! "
So perish all the false gods of Ashanti ! This, I believe, is the first instance of the
kind which has taken place in Ashanti, and augurs well for him who has given so
noble an example.
In addition to the few who have joined tliemselves with us, many respectable
and influential persons in the town entertain the conviction that Christianity will
effiectually accompHsh its great design ; and eventually, surmounting all opposition,
become the religion of the land. Again and again have I heard this opinion
expressed. But a few days ago, at the close of a custom held at Bantama, a
respectable old chief called upon me. He stated, in confidence, that, while at
Bantama, much had been said by the king and others respecting the object of the
mission ; and that, after much conversation on this subject, they gave it as their
decided opinion that onr motive and object are really good, and that it will be to
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 575
their interest and benefit to give us every encouragement. The old man continued,
" Mucli more was said ; but I may not tell you now. Wait a little, and do not
be discom-aged. I am old and grey-headed; but I hope to live to see you
successful."
During the past month, I have visited Jabin, my object being to preach the gos-
pel there also. Previous to leaving Kumasi, the king sent a messenger, to inform
Sarvi, the queen, that I was about to visit her. The venerable old lady was much
pleased to find that herself and her people were not forgotten by us. As a proof of
good-will and friendly feeling, she assembled all her people, to the number of from
nine to twelve thousand, and insisted upon giving me a public reception. On the
morning after my arrival I called upon the queen, for the purpose of stating the
object of my visit, and also to request permission to preach to her people. This
was readily granted ; and at three p.m. I preached beneath the branches of a beau-
tiful banyan, to about fourteen hundred persons, most of whom listened with deep
attention to the great truths of the gospel. On the day but one following, I again
preached in the same place, and again on the morning and afternoon of the sabl)ath.
On each occasion there M-ere from six to eight hundred persons present. My
intention being to leave Jabin for Kumasi early on the Monday morning, I had at
the close of the sabbath-afternoon service just announced this to the people, when
a messenger arrived from Sarvi, stating that Sarvi greatly regretted her inability to
attend the services held during the past few days ; but that if I would consent to
remain until the following day, she with her attendants and chiefs would assemble
to hear the word of the great God. Though anxious to return to Kumasi, I could
not but comply with sucli a request, and accordingly remained the day following,
on the afternoon of which I preached from Rom. v. 6 — 8, " For when ye were yet
without strength," &c., to a large and attentive congregation. The questions pro-
posed by many were such as plainly evinced that they not only heard the word, but
that a desire had been created in them more fully to understand its saving power.
During my stay here, I experienced every kindness, not a day passing without an
abundant supply of food, &c., being sent in for myself and people.
Upon leaving the town, the people urgenvly requested a speedy revisit. " The
word you speak to us is good ; let us hear it again," was the argimient used by
them. " We have not heard these things before ; we believe you speak the truth,
and we wish for instruction. Come to us again; but come soon!" These and
many similar expressions fell fi'om the lips of these poor benighted people. Never
did I feel more fully resolved " to spend and be spent " for those who as yet know
not the Saviour ; but, amidst tens of thousands, may it not be said, " What am I
among so many ? "
Jabin is not the only important town near Kumasi to which we may now carry
the message of mercy. A general desire prevails among the people all around to
be visited by a missionary. When this can be accomplished, mighty results must
follow. In the capital, a strong restraint is felt by all who desire to forsake the
customs of their forefathers. This would not be the case in any of the provincial
towns, — a far greater degree of liberty being experienced at a distance from the
seat of government. When the time shall come (and the Almighty grant it may
not be far distant !) when two missionaries shall be employed in Kumasi, a wide
and important field may be cultivated. Within a day's journey, or even less, are
many large and populous towns, to most of which we might, even now, have access,
and where the gospel might be preached without the least opposition. To some of
these I have been often invited ; but such has been the natm-e of my duties in
Kumasi, that though I would most gladly have visited these places, where unbroken
darkness reigns, I have not been able to do so ; and the people, while asking.
576
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
" What is it the missionary teaches ? " are left to perish for lack of knowledge.
0, laud of my birth, Christian England ! shall these things continue ?
The statements made respecting the greater healthiness of the climate, as we
penetrate further into the interior, are certainly founded on truth. This is not only
the opinion of Europeans who have occasionally journeyed to some distance from
the Coast, but the natives themselves uniformly acknowledge the same thing. It
is common even for the Ashantis to complain of the sickness to which they are
subject when visiting the Coast ; but the contrary is the case when they journey
inland. This, to every friend of missions, cannot but be a cheering fact, as war-
ranting the hope, that, in the prosecution of the great work of Africa's salvation,
there will not be that fearful sacrifice of life which the brief but sad history of
missions on the Coast presents. I may be permitted to refer to my own case in
confirmation of the above. I left a bed of sickness to commence my journey here ;
for near fourteen weeks I had not been able to preach more than once ; and such
was the state of extreme weakness to which I was reduced, that during the first
two days of my journey I was unable to walk even a few steps to relieve my
hammock-men. I had occasional sickness during the first two months after my
arrival at Kumasi ; but tliis was not matter of surprise, considering circumstances.
The rains fell almost daily with great violence ; and such was the unfinished state
of the mission-house at that time, that, more than once, while stretched upon a
sick bed, I was compelled to protect myself by my umbrella. But, under circum-
stances certainly not favourable, my strength returned; and, during the past five
months, I have enjoyed as good health, or nearly so, as that with which I was
favoured when in England.
I long to see the saving power of God more fully displayed among this people.
There is " the promise of a shower." A ready assent is given to the truths of the
gospel ; but this is not sufficient when eternal life depends upon the reception of
Jesus Christ as the only Saviour.*
The same Number of the " Notices " will furnish the reader
M'ith other important information of the progress of the missions
in this district, and in the subsequent Number there is an inter-
esting communication from Mr. Dove at Sierra-Leone. On
the 1st of May, IMr. and Mrs. Quick, through ill health, were
compelled to quit their useful labours in that colony, and
returned to England. They arrived at Plymouth, July 4th.
In the month of June IMr. Freeman, Avho had been " in
labours more abundant," again left the Gold-Coast, on a tem-
porary visit to England ; and in a few weeks after his depar-
ture the mission sustained another loss in the death of Mr.
Greaves at British Akrah.
Timothy T. Greaves was a young man of sincere piety,
and ardent zeal for the glory of God, and the extension of the
kingdom of Christ. He came out from Birmingham, and, for
some months previous to the Conference of 1843, was usefully
employed in the West Bromwich circuit, as a partial supply for
* " Missionary Notices," vol. x. pp. 605 — 607.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 577
one of the ministers, whose health had failed. At the Sheffield
Conference he was appointed to Sierra-Leone; but it was
afterwards changed for the Grold-Coast ; at which place he
arrived, in company with Mr. and Mrs. Annear, and Mr. John
Martin, on the 12th of December of the same year. About the
middle of the following February he left Cape-Coast for British
Akrah, to supply the vacancy occasioned by the death of
Mr. Watkins. From that station he wrote an interesting
letter to the Committee, bearing the date of the 10th of jMay,
which was published in the " Missionary Notices.^' That letter
breathes the spirit of an affectionate, zealous, and successful
missionary of the cross. But in the midst of the " harvest,"
this young reaper was called away ; and he died in great peace
on the 14tli of July, 1844, in the first year of his probation.
The Gambia mission, and particularly the station at INIacar-
thy's Island, had sustained a great loss in the death of Mr.
Symons, and ]Mr. Parsonson was frequently laid aside from his
active labours during the sickly season of this year. Both he
and Mr. Godman, however, were preserved in tolerable health ;
and the day-school at St. Mary's, under the excellent manage-
ment of Mr. Lynn, was rapidly rising in importance. The
brethren having affectionately and earnestly appealed for more
help, on the 10th of February, 1845, Mr. Benjamin Chapman
sailed for the Gambia, and he landed at St. Mary's on the 19th
of the following month. About this time Mr. Parsonson at the
Gambia, Mr. Raston at Sierra-Leone, and Mr. Allen at the
Gold-Coast, returned to England, for a temporary change.
Mr. Thomas B. Freeman, whose departure from the Gold-
Coast we have recently mentioned, remained in England till the
month of INIay ; and during a part of his stay here, he was
called upon to defend himself and the mission from one of the
most unfounded and bitter attacks (considering the quarter
from whence it came) that was ever invented. The full parti-
culars of this painful and vexatious affair the reader may find
in the December '^ Notices" for the year ending 1844. It will
be sufficient here to say, that Mr. Freeman came out of this
trial " more than conqueror ; " and that it had the effect of raising
him and the mission still higher in the estimation of the friends
of missions in general, and also of obtaining some additional
supporters to the same hallowed cause.
On Mr. Freeman's return to the Gold-Coast, he was accom-
panied by Mr. Henry Wharton, a man of colour, a native of
Grenada in the West Indies, and himself the fruit of missionary
p p
578
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
labour. Having been employed in those Islands as a Wesleyan
missionary for two or three years, he offered himself to the
committee in London, to go to Africa; and for that purpose
he came to England, and was solemnly ordained to the work
and office of the Christian ministry in the City-road chapel, on
the IStli of May, when he and Mr. Freeman were publicly
commended to the providence and grace of God.
Two days after, they proceeded to the Isle of Wight, to
embark for Cape-Coast Castle ; and, being favoured with a very
quick and pleasant passage, they reached their destination in
good health and spirits on the 23d of June. All the brethren
who were then in the district were reported to be in tolerable
health, with the exception of Mr. George Chapman, who was
compelled in the early part of August to embark for England,
hoping again to return to his interesting sphere of labour.
But he was unable to do so ; and after spending some time in
England, and subsequently in France, he sailed for Southern
Africa, where he is still labouring. Mr. Wharton was after-
wards appointed to the important station of Coomassie, in
Ashantee.
On the 27th of October, Messrs. Raston, Wayte, and Griffiths
embarked at Gravesend for Sierra-Leone by the " Dale Park.^'
Mr. Raston had spent upwards of three years at that interesting
and important station, and on his voyage to England was mer-
cifully preserved from a watery grave, the vessel in which he
was journeying home having been run foul of by some unknown
ship, when they w^ere about one hundred and twenty miles off
Cape Clear. Though the " Ceres" (the vessel in which Mr.
Raston had embarked) was dreadfully shattered, they managed
to reach Cove-Hai'bour, in Ireland, where they anchored in
safety, though the other vessel, it was feared, had gone down.
The two brethren who accompanied Mr. Raston to Sierra-
Leone had been in the Theological Institution at Richmond,
but nobly offered themselves for this part of the mission-field,
and at a few days^ notice cheerfully embarked with him. Mr.
Raston was now married; he was therefore accompanied by
Mrs. Raston and Mrs. Gordon, who afterwards became Mrs.
Badger; and the whole mission-party landed at Sierra-Leone
on the 1st of December, 1845. Mr. Amos had in the mean-
time sailed from this colony for England, and has since been
employed as one of the society's agents in the Friendly Islands.
Mr. Parsonson, from the Gambia, who had been in England
a few months during this year, embarked with Mrs. Parsonson,
on the 12th of November, on board the " Sam Shck,'' for his
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 579
former scene of labour ; and they landed at St. Mary's on the
loth of December.
A few days previous to their embarkation, another little band
of missionaries were preparing to sail for Western Africa.
These were Mr. and Mrs. Allen, with Messrs. George Findlay
and Edward Addison. They proceeded from London to Bristol,
where the writer had the pleasure of their company for a short
time, and they finally sailed from Newport in Monmouthshire,
on the 10th of November, and landed at the Gold-Coast on the
30tli of the following month. This was Mr. Allen's second
embarkation for Western Africa, he having already laboured
there more than three years. Mrs. Brooking, also, who had
been compelled to leave the Coast on account of ill health, after
a few months' residence there, formed one of the party ; but,
unfortunately, her husband had left the Coast from the same
cause, only a few days before they landed ; so that the husband
and Avife missed each other on the passage. Mr. Brooking
continued very unwell for some length of time after his
arrival in England ; but was subsequently appointed to North
America.
We have now to turn from these departures and arrivals,
with the frequent returns to England on account of the failure
of health, to the melancholy subject of death; and that not
of old residents who had worn themselves out in this field
of labour and toil, but of newly-imported missionaries. It is
painful to state, that three of the society's agents, whose arrival
in Africa we have just chronicled, were called hence to be no
more seen in less than three months after they landed in Africa.
These were Mrs. Raston, Mr. Wayte, and Mr. Findlay : the
latter died on the Gold-Coast; and the tAvo former at Sierra-
Leone.
Mrs, Raston's maiden name was Padley; and she was born
in the year 1815, in the neighbourhood of Retford, in the
county of Nottingham. Being favoured with pious parents,
she was instructed in the ways of the Lord from her earliest
days. But it was not till she had finished her education, and
returned home from school, that she became a true disciple of
the Lord Jesus. This important change took place in her
native village, Bothamsall, which was at that time visited with
a gracious outpouring of the Holy Spirit. Many were gathered
into the fold of Christ ; and Miss Padley was among the num-
ber of those who were " added to the church," having obtained
" peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ."
2 p 2
580 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
But she was not satisfied with the mere personal enjoyment
of the rich blessings of gospel grace herself; the feeling of her
heart, the language of her tongue, and the tenor of her life,
was, —
" If all the world my Saviour knew,
Then all the world would love him too."
Her desire for the salvation of others was intense : nor was it
the evanescent display of excited feeling, the offspring of first
love, so often observable in the early stage of Christian life.
In her it deepened and widened as she pursued her onward
course : she drank deep at the well-stream of life, and her full
soul overflowed with love to all around her ; and there was no
department of Christian usefulness into which she did not enter
with the fervid feelings of a heart glowing with love to God.
In addition to her being usefully engaged in the sabbath-
school, and in the distribution of tracts, her name had long
been enrolled among those worthies of our land, the missionary
collectors, to whom the work of God in distant lands owes so
much ; and, though useful in other ways, there was no work in
which she engaged with so much energy and delight as in this,
the cause of missions.
Soon after the Conference of 1845, she was united in mar-
riage to Mr. Raston ; and in a few weeks after they sailed for
Sierra-Leone. The date of their departure from England, and
arrival in Africa, has been given in a preceding page ; and it
will be recollected that they were accompanied by Messrs.
Wayte and Griffiths. From a paper now before me, it appears
that their voyage was very agreeable and pleasant, with the
exception of a terrific thunder-storm, which commenced when
they were off the coast of Portugal, and which continued for
some days. During the storm, the mainmast was struck with
the electric fluid, which, passing down the rigging, exploded
on the deck with the noise as of a cannon. This occurred at
midnight; and as gunpowder composed a large part of the
cargo, alarm and consternation sat on every face, lest the light-
ning should penetrate the hold of the ship. But they were
providentially delivered from a watery grave. One of the young
brethren forcibly described this scene as follows : — " Friday,
November 7th. Still the living, the living to praise God. The
brittle thread is not yet snapped. The tempestuous elements
have not yet shattered the ship, and divided her fragments and
inmates among them. We are within the jaws of death ; but
he is not yet permitted to close them. Though the ocean is
almost white as the stiow, mountainous as the Alps, and voci-
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 581
feroiis as the loudest thunder, the voice of Omnipotence is
heard at the top of every threatening wave, and above ' the
voice of many waters,^ ' Touch not mine anointed, and do my
prophets no harm/ " That day was dismal beyond description ;
and the dark night came on, when those on board knew not but
it would be their last. During this awful scene, Mrs. Raston
calmly awaited the issue, and spoke and acted like a true Cliris-
tian. The same missionary writes : — " I visited Mr. Raston's cabin
at eleven a.m. He was lying in his berth, very sick ; but Mrs.
Raston was better, and able to pay him attentions. After we
had prayed together, and I had read a few passages on the good-
ness of God, which had been a great comfort to my own mind,
Mrs. Raston observed, ' Ah ! jNIr. Griffiths, these are some of
the mysterious ways of God. Who can tell what He is about
to do? Perhaps we have been thinking too much of our
abilities, sacrifices, or honours ; marking out a wide field of
usefulness in Sierra-Leone, and taking some of the glory to
our little selves ; and now. He may be about to teach ns
humility, and tell us, with the Christian world, in this awfully
mysterious manner, that He can carry on his work, and bless
the Heathen, without us. O, what motives to be humble will
these trials supply, should we survive them ! ' "
They did "survive them;" for, having "cried unto the Lord
in their trouble, He brought them out of their distresses. He
made the storm a calm, so that the waves thereof were still;"
and in about twenty days after this, " they were glad because he
brought them unto their desired haven."
On arriving at Sierra-Leone, Mrs. Raston was delighted with
the scenery, the place, and the people, and immediately entered
with zeal and energy into the various duties that then presented
themselves to her. On the 14th of December she accompanied
her husband to the chapel at Kroo-Town, when he preached
from, " I must work the works of Him that sent me, while it is
day : the night cometh, when no man can work." At the close
of the service she observed, " O let us do all we can now ; let us
work for God in the day of health and life : we cannot tell how
soon the night of affliction and death may come on." This was
the last time that she mingled her devotions in public with the
people of God on earth. Two days after she complained of
indisposition, and the usual symptoms of the African fever
shortly appeared. Her progress, however, was favourable; and
her friends for some time indulged in the pleasing prospect of
her speedy restoration to health, particularl}'^ as the insalubrity
of the season had then abated. But these hopes were cut off": the
582 "WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
ninth clay arrived, and with it came symptoms of a very alarming
nature. Her friends resorted to every means that medical skill
could devise, or vrhich kindness could suggest ; but they were of
no avail. The fever had taken its seat deep in the system, and
refused to be controlled.
During her affliction, Mrs. Rastou^s mind Avas kept in peace,
calm and serene. Two days before her death, to a friend stand-
ing by, she said, " I am drawing nearer and nearer to my hea-
venly home : I cannot tell what keeps me back." To her hus-
band she said, " O live to God ; you have a great work to do ;
save as many souls as you can." On the same day, in answer
to the inquiry, if, to her, death had any terrors, she replied,
"No : the sting is drawn. There is no darkness. I feel the conso-
lations of religion now. Never was Christ so precious to me."
On the 26th her strength was greatly reduced; but she con-
tinued in the same delightful slate of mind. Some of her last
words were, " I shall soon see the King in his beauty : I shall see
all my dear friends, and I shall see Jesus." In the evening she
bade several friends a long farewell ; and while Mr. Badger was
commending the dying saint to God, her happy spirit took its
flight at half-past two o'clock in the morning of the 27th of
December, 1845.
James H. Wayte died at Sierra-Leone, January 16th, 1846.
The " Wesleyan-Methodist Magazine" for February, 1849,
contains an interesting Memoir of this very excellent mission-
ary, from the pen of the Eev. John D. Geden, assistant classical
tutor at the Theological Institution, Richmond; to which the
reader is refeiTcd for further particulars.
Mr. Wayte was born at Newcastle-under-Lyne, in the county
of Stafford, in the month of May, 1822 ; and being blessed with
parents who feared the Lord, he had the advantages of an early
religious training. In the seventeenth year of his age he was a
consistent member of the Wesleyan society in the town of
Stafford, where he served his apprenticeship; and at that time
was an active, zealous teacher in the Sunday-school, and evi-
dently growing in the knowledge and love of Christ. Soon after
this he became an exhorter, and afterwards a local preacher;
and now it was that he began to display that holy ardour, and
that firmness in the cause of God, by which he was afterwards
distinguished. At this period he had an impression that God
would one day send him forth as a teacher of the Gentiles ; and
in this he was not mistaken. Having, on account of business,
removed to Reading in Berkshire, and shortly after to the adja-
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 583
cent town of Newbnr}'', the Great Head of the cliiirch opened
his way, and under the kind and judicious direction of the Rev.
George Jackson, the superintendent of that circuit, he became
a candidate for the ministry, and offered himself for the mission
work. At the Conference of 1844 he was accepted as such, and
was appointed to the Richmond Branch of the Theological
Institution, with a view to his further training for missionary
labours. The missionary ardour of this young man was seen at
the usual examination of the candidates for the ministry, which
takes place in London, before a large committee, a few weeks
previous to the Conference. On this occasion the candidates
were fifty-six in number, most of whom expressed their willing-
ness to go to any part of the world, when appointed by the Con-
ference ; but when Mr. Wayte was interrogated as to the nature
of his offer, he replied, " I ofler myself for the mission work,
and should 'prefer Western Africa to any other part of the mis-
sion field." He remained in the Institution about fourteen
months, during which period he applied himself to his studies
with exemplary diligence, and grew at once in wisdom and holi-
ness. In December, 1844, in a letter to the Rev. George Jack-
son, he wrote, " I trust I am growing in grace, in attachment
to Methodism, and in love for the souls of men, especially of the
Heathen. I am exceedingly thankful to my heavenly Father
for bringing me to this place; and I trust my profiting will
appear to all." It did so ; for though his yearning over the
spiritual destitution of unhappy Africa was a remarkable feature
in his character, it did not exclude from the range of his pity
and effort his perishing countrymen around him. More than
one village in the neighbourhood of Richmond had a day of
visitation, introduced by his fervent toils ; and at one of them,
having distributed religious tracts, visited and prayed with the
poor families, preached the gospel in the " highways and hedges,"
he at length procured a house in which the poor could assemble
unmolested, and hear the truth, and idtimately succeeded in
furnishing them with the regular ministration of the gospel.
The peculiar circumstances under which Mr. Wayte embarked
for Africa deserve to be mentioned. By a reference to the
Minutes of the Conference for 1845, the reader will find the
name of Mr. Joel Bate attached to the Sierra-Leone district : in
the month of October following his passage was taken for that
colony; and in another week he was to have sailed; but a sud-
den emergency induced the Missionary Committee to send him
to the Friendly Isles, to which he consented, and set off imme-
diately. The Sierra-Leone ap])ointmcnt was therefore now
584
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
vacant; and a substitute was sought with the utmost dispatch
from among the missionary students at Richmond. The Rev,
John Farrar had intimated to the missionary candidates, at an
eai'ly part of the day, that one or more of the general secretaries
would pay them a visit for that purpose. The time arrived, all
the missionary students, being about twenty in number, were
convened, and the subject was introduced in the kindest and
most judicious .manner. The main question, however, was,
"Who will embark on next Monday morning for Sierra-
Leone ? ^^ Several were willing, but not quite ready ; the time
being too short, and their homes too distant, to allow them
even a day to take leave of their friends. Mr. Wayte pre-
sented himself, was accepted, and appointed; and, having
executed the Avhole work of preparation with extraordinary
speed, was found in less than a week on board the vessel, with
Mr. Raston and Mr. David Griffiths, the latter also having
offered himself for the same perilous service ; and therefore two
were sent ou this occasion instead of one.
Mr. Wayte's parents, two of his brothers, and several other
friends took their affectionate leave of him at Gravesend, on the
27th of October, the day on which he sailed, which was affect-
ing to all who witnessed it. During the voyage his conduct
was such, that all on board were impressed with the depth of
his piety and devotedness to God; and when the mountains of
Sierra-Leone first rose before his vision, the joy he manifested
was almost unbounded. His frieu; , companion, and colleague,
Mr. Griffiths, speaking of this, observes, " It was quite in cha-
racter with his previous anxiety. He felt that he was for the
first time actually looking upon the scene which had often been
portrayed by his imagination, and fixing his eyes upon the land
that had long been the residence of his heart." In a letter
addressed to the Rev. George Jackson, dated December 17th,
Mr. Wayte himself writes, "As we approached the land, our
feelings were overpowering. We were met upon the vessel by
j\Ir. Badger, and on the beach by our excellent superintend-
ent, Mr. Dove. We were also greeted by the students,"
(those of the Native Institution,) "and hundreds of our dear
people thronged our path to the mission-house. I took a cup
of tea, and then went to a large chapel, made of the timbers of
slave-vessels, and opened my commission to a congregation of
seven hundred Africans, who filled the building inside, while
many had to stand without. What a sight ! What emotions !
I assure you I could scarcely speak." After enumerating the
services of the previous sabbath, December 14th, he proceeds :
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 585
'' My mind lias been variously exercised since I have been here.
This great work, with all its responsibilities, coming upon me at
once, drives me to close self-examination. I feel that I need
much faith, and prayer, and watchfulness. I thank God, I have
experienced much of my Saviour's presence, and have enjoyed
the consolations of his Spirit. I have felt more ardour since I
have been here than ever I did in my native land ; and I hope
to labour long among this pious, devoted people. We are sur-
rounded by much that is heart-rending. I do feel somewhat
impatient, because I cannot work as I could wish. Our dear
friends are anxious we should be prudent, lest we meet with an
untimely grave."
Mr. Wayte was intended for the York circuit ; but before
he could proceed to that station, he sickened and died. The
demise of Mrs. Hasten so soon after they landed in Africa, and
of several others who were suddenly called to the world of spirits
about the same time, greatly aifected him. On this subject he
wrote : — " December 27th. Mrs. Rastou fell a victim to the
climate at two o'clock this morning : her remains to be interred
in two hours. Who next ? Pray, pray, pray ! " In attending
the funeral he said to Mr. Griffiths, " Who can tell hoAv soon
one of us may be accompanied by this vast assembly to our last
home?" In his journal of the 31st of that month, he again
referred to the subject of death in general, and to that of Mrs.
Raston in particular; and then remarks concerning himself:
" I trust I am ready. I wish to live with eternity in view. I
have no will but God's. I am the Lord's ; in Him do I trust;
and I know I shall not be confounded." A few days after, he
wrote : " Each succeeding day I am impressed with the fact,
that I am surrounded with the realities, labours, responsibili-
ties, and trials (delightful trials !) of a Christian mission in a
tropical climate ; in a colony which has been called, (and proba-
bly with much truth,) 'the white man's' — the missionary's —
'grave.' Will it be mine? My Father's will be done! I
think I can say, though I feel my own unworthiness, with the
great missionary of olden times, 'For to me to live is Christ,
and to die is gain.' "
From the time of his landing in Africa, Mr. Wayte had suf-
fered greatly from violent pains in the head ; but no alarming
symptoms of disease were apparent until January 5th, 1846.
The best medical skill was immediately procured, and the doc-
tor at once pronounced it to be the country fever; and the
usual treatment was prescribed. The day following he was
worse, and his mind became possessed with a conviction that his
586 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
sickness Avould terminate in death. " O, my dear Griffiths/^ he
remarked, " what should I now do, if I had not sought and
found religion ? What would become of me, if I were without
God and without hope in the world ? " For several days the
disease appeared to fluctuate ; but on the night of the 13th it
assumed a more virulent form than ever. His friend, Mr.
Griffiths, who scarcely left his bed-side night or day, had retired
in the hope of obtaining a little rest. " No sooner, however,"
he writes, " had I laid myself down, than I heard Mr. Wayte
begin to shout Avith a loud and rapturous voice. The next
moment a messenger desired I would return to his chamber.
I immediately went to him, and found that Mr. Dove had anti-
cipated me. Before I entered the room, I heard him rejoicing
that he had now given up all his fiiends, his ' dear mother' not
excepted ; and that he should soon depart and be with Christ,
which would be far better. On my entering, he instantly put
out his ever-friendly hand ; and, taking fast hold of mine, he
said, ' O, brother Griffiths, God will soon take me to Himself !
It will be your privilege to live and labour in Africa ; but God
calls me, and I must go. If I wanted to live, it was to be use-
ful ; but God has otherwise determined, and I am content.
We came together to Africa ; but we are not going together to
heaven: it is my honour to go first!' He added, * O, I
wish my dearest mother was here, to sing my favourite Vitai
Spark ! ' He commenced it himself, and his voice seemed as
strong and as musical as ever ; but he could not keep on to the
end. He then addressed his nurses and Mr. Dove, who were
weeping by his side, in most affecting language ; charging them
to live to God, and meet him in glory. He asked us to pray.
We knelt down, but for a time could only Aveep. At length
Mr. Dove attempted to pray ; but he was almost immediately
interrupted by our brother, who began to invoke the Divine
blessing upon all his brethren at Richmond, and continued to
do so for some minutes. He paused a little, and then said, ' O,
glory be to Jesus ! I feared I should depart without a shout
for my Lord ; but He would not allow it, bless His gracious
name ! I have preached Christ in life, though very unfaith-
fully ; and I will preach Him in death ! ' and then exclaimed, —
' I '11 praise my Maker while I 've breath ;
And, when my voice is lost in death,
Praise shall employ my nobler powers :
My days of praise shall ne'er be past,
"While life, and thought, and being last.
Or immortalil v endures ! '
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIEKRA-LEONE. 587
He then repeated, —
' Happy, if with my latest breath
I may but gasp His name ;
Preach Him to all, and cry in death,
Behold, behold the Lamb ! '
Then, elevating his voice yet higher, he added, —
' Mortals cry, A man is dead !
Angels sing, A child is born ! '
In this strain he continued for at least two hours. None who
were present could refrain from the prayer, ' Let me die the
death of the righteous, and let my last end be like his ! ' "
During most of the two following days he was delirious ; and,
at nine o'clock in the evening of Thursday, 15th, was evidently
near his end. He revived a little, however, and talked fre-
quently in a very rapid manner ; sometimes he was preaching,
and at other times exhorting and praying. He possessed, dur-
ing the greater part of his painful affliction,
"The soul's calm sunshine, and the heartfelt joy;"
and his death was more than peaceful, or even triumphant : the
apostle's language, " Death is swallowed up in victory,'' is per-
haps the most appropriate designation that can be given to it.
His ear was growing dull to external impressions ; but the inte-
rior harmony survived. The world was receding and disappear-
ing, and tlie visual nerves had lost their sensibility ; but the
inner sense was active : —
" Heaven open'd on his eyes ; his eai's
With sounds seraphic rang;"
and at about eleven o'clock on that evening he lifted up both
his hands, as if greatly astonished, though with closed eyelids,
and exclaimed, " Beautiful, beautiful ! O how beautiful ! "
These were some of the last words he uttered ; and at a qviarter
before two he gently breathed his last, in the twenty-fourth
year of his age, and the first of his ministry. His remains were
committed to the ground in the afternoon of the same day,
amidst the tears and lamentations of a multitude of people who
followed him to his burial.
George Findlay died on Tuesday, March 10th, 1846, at
Cape-Coast-Town. He was a native of Scotland, and was a
young man of amiable temper, sincere piety, and promising
talents. He was intended for Coomassie, to which important
588 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
station he had been appointed at the previous Conference.
But he was attacked with fever in a few weeks after his arrival
on the Coast. During his illness he was a great sufferer; but
his end was eminently peaceful and calm. The violence of the
disease, and its prostrating effects upon his constitution,
deprived him of those hours of quiet and comparative repose
which often precede dissolution ; but he gave abundant
evidence that his feet were fixed upon the " Rock of Ages," and
that for him ^' to die was gain." He was watched over during
the Avhole of his illness, which lasted a fortnight, with the most
tender and assiduous care; and he expired amidst the prayers
and affectionate sympathies of his brethren, by whom he was
greatly beloved.
Mr. Findlay was the first Scotchman who had been connected
with the Cape-Coast district ; and by his steady and uniform
piety, and general conduct towards the natives, had secured the
respect and esteem of all who knew him. He died in the
twenty-eighth year of his age, and the first of his ministry, after
a residence in Africa of only two months and ten days.
During the same month, the Gambia mission was deprived of
the valuable services of Mr. Lynn, the European schoolmaster
at St. Mary's, who was removed by death to a better world.
He had been on the station about three years, and was very
useful to the mission, as well as in the school. He was a most
devoted and excellent man. The writer has several letters which
he received from him, after his own return to England; and
they all breathe the spirit of genuine and consistent piety, and
an ardent desire to be useful. In one of his last letters he
remarks : " With my soul full of love to God and man, I am
aware that your kind caution is not out of place ; nor will I say
that I do not require a little of it in this sultry clime. But O,
what need for labour ! How dark, how ignorant, I find the
minds of the children and the people by whom I am surrounded !
And shall I not exert my every poAver to remove those charac-
teristics ? I have, I must confess it, laboured hard, perhaps too
hard for my constitution ; but never too hard for my Master, —
He is so good ! " The removal of such an agent was felt to be a
loss not easily repaired, and was regarded as a public calamity
by all classes of the inhabitants of that colony. Mr. Lynn died
of intestinal haemorrhage, on the 23d of March, 1846, after an
illness of ten days. His end was peace.
There were, during the last year, some cheering indications
of good at Sierra-Lconc, notwithstanding the loss by death just
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA- LEONE. 589
mentioned. This will be seen from the following extract from
the Annual Eeport for that year : —
In the Free-Town circuit, the state of things is generally encouraging. The
chapel in Bathurst-street is attended by large congregations on the week-day
evenings when religious services are held, as well as on the sabbath-day. In our
religious society at Portuguese-Town, there are some who have been steady
members from an early period of the history of the society's mission in the colony.
At New-Town West, where we have upwards of five hundred church-merabers,
the chapel is often crowded to excess, while hundreds of persons are also
frequently seen on the outside, listening to the word vrith great attention. The
chapel at Soldier-Town is generally " filled with devout worshippers." The same
may be said of our place of worship, which is a good stone building, at Gibraltar-
Town. At Kroo-TowTi, a large and commodious chapel, contiguous to our Institu-
tion for training native teachers, has been recently completed. Great local
exertions have been made towards defraying the expense of these erections. The
labours of the missionaries have been attended with much success at New-Town.
A few years since the people were in a state of heathenish ignorance and demo-
ralization ; but many of them have been brought under the saving influence of the
gospel. At Regent, six of the inhabitants have lately presented their idols to the
missionary by whom they have been instructed, requesting him to throw them into
the neighbouring stream ; while they have devoted themselves to the worship and
service of the true and living God. The inhabitants of Murray-Town are Ackus
and Kakandas, many of whom also have cast their idols " to the moles and to the
bats," and are now consistent members of our religious society. At the other
places in the circuit there are indications of good among the people.
About this time, a misuuderstancling unfortunately arose
between one of the resident missionaries and two of the native
teachers, at the Gambia; and, several of the members taking
the side of the latter, the society was kept in an unsettled state
for some months.
The operations of this mission were also seriously interrupted,
during that year and some part of the next, by the return to
England of Mr. Benjamin Chapman, and subsequently of Mr.
and Mrs. Godman, on account of ill health; so that Mr. Par-
sonson was for some time the only English missionary left at
the Gambia. Mr. and Mrs. Davie were sent out as soon as
possible to his assistance, more especially in the school depart-
ment,— the former being appointed as catechist, and the latter
to take part in training the female children attending the
mission-school.
Mr. and ]\Irs, Annear, of the Gold-Coast mission, had also
been compelled to return to Europe, during the early part of
the year, and subsequently Mr. and Mrs. Dove from Sierra-
Leone. Mr. Dove had been connected with the West- African
missions since the year 1833 ; and though he had spent some
of that time in England, yet he had been longer on the Coast
than any other Wesleyan missionary up to this period.
590 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
On the 1st of November, Mr. and Mrs. Wrench, with Mr.
John Lewis, embarked at Gravesend for Sierra-Leone, where
they arrived in safety on the 7th of the following month ; and
in January, 1847, the Gold-Coast mission received a reinforce-
ment by the arrival of Messrs. John Thomas, John Harrop, and
Charles Hillard.
Mrs. Godman, whose return home we have just mentioned,
shortly after her arrival in this country, sank under the disease
which had rendered necessary her removal from the Gambia
mission. In the possession of " peace and joy through believ-
ing,^^ she entered into the eternal world on the 9th of March,
1847. Mr. Godman, with Messrs. Annear and Benjamin
Chapman, sailed, in a few months after, for other parts of the
Heathen world ; and Mr. Dove, after a short stay in Gibraltar,
was appointed to an English circuit.
Mr. and Mrs. Wrench, during the summer of that year,
returned from Sierra-Leone, on account of the deHcate state of
Mrs. Wrenches health ; and about the same time, Mrs. Parson-
son, at the Gambia, was compelled by severe affliction to return
to England. But Mr. Parsonson, being the only European mis-
sionary at that time in the district, could not, consistently with his
sense of duty, leave his work ; and therefore remained till Provi-
dence more fully opened his way to return. Mr. Wrench subse-
quently sailed for the West Indies, where he is now labouring.
On the 1st of September, Mr. David Griffiths took his
departure from Sierra-Leone for his native land, on account of
ill health, having laboured in that colony nearly two years ; and
Mr. Hasten, who had left Sierra-Leone a few months previoush^,
after a short stay in England, a third time embarked for that
important station. ]\Ir. Hasten was accompanied by Mrs. Has-
ten, 2d, and by Messrs. Richard Hart and Thomas Purslow.
They sailed by the "Dale Park^^ on the 3d of November,
and, after a very pleasant voyage of only five weeks, landed at
Sierra-Leone on the 8th of December, and were received with
many manifestations of joyous greeting. A few days after
these departures, Messrs. George^ Meadows and Bobert Lean
embarked by the "Copy" for the Biver Gambia; and they
landed at St. Mary's on the same day as the other mission-party
reached Sierra-Leone.
On the 15th of January, 1848, Mr. and Mrs, Allen and John
Martin were called to leave their interesting spheres of use-
fulness at the Gold-Coast, through a failure of their health,
inore particularly that of Mrs. Allen and Mr. Martin. They
arrived in England on the 2d of March. Mr. Martin had, for
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 591
more tlian four years in succession, laboured at the different
stations in tlie district, and had suffered from repeated attacks
of fever. Mr. Allen had been connected with the mission for
six years and upwards, and had been twice to Africa. It was
his intention to have still laboured there ; and in a few months
after his arrival in England, he actually embarked for that pur-
pose ; but circumstances having occurred which prevented his
further services in Western Africa, he has since that period been
connected with the ministry at home. Mr. John Martin and
Mr. David Griffiths are also usefully employed as ministers of
the gospel in their o^rn country.
We have now to record two lamented deaths which occurred
in connexion with these missions, during the year of which we
are speaking. They were, Mr. Lean at the Gambia, and Mr.
Purslow at Sierra-Leone.
Robert Lean Avas called to his eternal home, after a resi-
dence in Africa of only three months and a half. He was a
native of Cornwall, and was born in the neighbourhood of
Redruth, in the year 1824. When about eighteen years of age,
he was converted to God ; and about the same time, the perusal
of Mr. Freeman^s Two Visits to the Kingdom of Ashantee was
made a great blessing to him. Africa was now impressed upon
his heart ; and he believed that God would one day open his
way to labour among that degraded and suffering people.
Having acted for some time in the capacity of a local preacher
in the lledruth circuit, where he was very useful, and greatly
beloved, he was proposed as a missionary candidate, and accepted
as such by the Conference of 1847. He was very desirous of
enjoying the advantages of the Theological Institution; but
almost immediately after the Conference, he was sent by the
president to assist one of the preachers in his own county,
whose health had failed ; and shortly after this he received a
call from the Missionary Committee to go to the Gambia : he
therefore returned to his native place to make preparations for
his departure, and take leave of his friends and "widowed
mother." One of the ministers on whom he called on this
occasion, writes, " I was struck with his appearance : his coun-
tenance was lit up with delight, and soon his full heart uttered
itself, — * I am appointed to Western Africa.^ " In a conversa-
tion he had with this minister, he said he would much rather
go to Africa than to any circuit at home, and that the hand of
God was in the call. During the few days he was amongst his
friends, arranging his affairs, he assisted at one or two of the
592 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
circuit missionary meetings, when the congregations were deeply
affected at hearing him in the most cheerful and unreserved
manner present his all on the missionary altar, to live and work,
or suffer and die, for Him, " to whom his more than all was due/'
His departure and arrival in Africa have already been men-
tioned. From St. Mary's, under date of January 4th, 1848, he
wrote : " I had a glorious time last Sunday afternoon in our
little chapel at New-Town : while pleading with God for poor
Africa, I felt as I scarcely ever did before. On the one hand, I
was led to contemplate the perishing millions by whom I am
surrounded; and, on the other, the many young men in my
native country, whose souls are burning with zeal for their sal-
vation, and yet cannot be sent. I felt the weight of souls laid
upon me, and wept and struggled with God ; and then endea-
voured to explain the first Psalm." Shortly after this, he again
wrote : — " Last night, on meeting the class, I had an over-
whelming season ; my cup was full and running over :"such was
my sympathy for souls, the souls of Africa, that my heart was
melted. ' My head was water, and my eyes a fountain of tears.'
I would rather be here than any where else in the world. My
soul grasps Africa, nothing less than the whole of Africa."
Being appointed by the district-meeting to occupy the station
at JNIacarthy's Island, he proceeded thither in February, and
there commenced his work under circumstances of much encou-
ragement. But it pleased the Great Head of the church to put
a speedy termination to his labours. After preaching on Sun-
day, March 11th, he became unwell; the usual symptoms of
fever soon made their appearance, and in twelve days termi-
nated his mortal career. During the short time which Mr.
Lean had spent in the Gambia, he had acquired the love both
of the people of his charge, and of liis missionary brethren. He
died at Macarthy's Island in great peace, March 23d, 1848, in
the twenty-fourth year of his age.
Thomas Purslow departed this life, "happy in God," at
Sierra-Leone, on the 2d of October, 1848. He was the subject
of the benign and gracious influence of the Spirit at an early
period of his life. Possessing the advantages of parental example
and instruction, he was conducted to the house of God, where
he became impressed with those principles and truths which
marked and adorned his after-life. At the age of sixteen he
obtained a clear sense of God's pardoning love, which he con-
tinued to enjoy to the latest moment of his existence. In the
year 1839, he came to reside in Birmingham, and was at that
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 593
time a zealous and useful local preacher. He subsequently
removed into Yorksliire, and afterwards to the Dunster circuit
in Somersetshire ; from which place he was recommended to the
Conference as a missionary candidate. In the autumn of 1847,
he embarked, with the mission-party before named, for Sierra-
Leone ; where he continued to labour with great zeal and dili-
gence, with very little interruption, up to a short period before
his death. By the district-meeting he was appointed tutor at
the Educational Institution at King Tom's Point ; where, by
the kindness of his disposition, the fervour of his piety, and his
unwearied attention to the spiritual and intellectual welfare of
the students, he soon secured their sincere respect, as well as
the esteem and confidence of his brethren, and of all who knew
him. But his career, like that of many of those who had preceded
him, was short. The rainy season was well-nigh over, and it
was hoped he would have escaped the usual attacks of fever.
But on the 22d of September, he was "laid low." On the
27th, however, the disease had so far yielded to medical skill,
that there appeared good reason to believe the worst was over,
and that he would speedily be restored. But in this his friends
were disappointed; for, on the sabbath following, October 1st,
there were symptoms so alarming, that the doctor remained
with him during the greater part of the day. The following
morning he was extremely feeble ; yet he conversed freely, and
often expressed his thankfulness to God for his mercies. Nei-
ther he nor his brethren had any idea that life was so fast ebb-
ing out. The delirium under which he had at times suffered
now passed away, and his mind was composed and happJ^
About ten o'clock he rallied a little, and with peculiar emphasis
repeated that cheering promise, " My God shall supply all your
need, according to his riches in glory by Christ Jesus." These
were the last words which escaped from his dying lips. At
eleven o'clock he became unconscious of those around him ; and
in another hour, while his brethren were commending him to
God in prayer, his happy spirit, reposing with entire confidence
upon the merits of the Redeemer, was gently borne away, with-
out a struggle, or a groan, or a sigh, to the paradise of God.
Mr. Purslow was a man of prayer, and of decided and consist-
ent piety. His style of preaching was plain, earnest, and often
pathetic. He carried out system and order in every thing, and
his sermons were marked by clearness of thought and aptness
of arrangement. To every duty and engagement he paid the
most scrupulous attention, and no private or personal considera-
tion kept him from fulfilling the work which the Lord had
Q Q
591 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
given liim to do. He had scarcely been in Africa ten months,
when he was thus mysteriously removed by death ; but he left a
savour behind him which will not soon be lost or forgotten.
He was thirty years of age when he died ; and at his funeral it
is supposed there were near two thousand persons present,
among whom were His Excellency the governor, and several
clergymen and respectable gentlemen of the colony.
A few weeks before the Conference of 1848, Mr. Badger
returned from the Coast, where he had been laboriously
engaged during his second term of service of nearly five years.
He called at the Gambia on his way to England, having been
for the few previous years constituted visiter of that district ; and
he was at the Conference appointed to reside there, as the gene-
ral superintendent of the Gambia missions. Two or three of
the natives from Sierra-Leone, who were local preachers, had
accompanied Mr. Badger to England on business ; and having
remained in this country for some months, they frequently
preached, and attended several missionary meetings, in different
parts of the kingdom : thus aff'ording, to the friends of missions
in England, visible and practical demonstrations of the fruit of
missionary labour and toil, both in a temporal and a spiritual
point of view. The following short speech, which was delivered
at the Wesieyan chapel in Jewin-street, in the First London
circuit, on Wednesday evening, October 25th, may be intro-
duced here : —
Mr. Joseph Will, from Sierra-Leone, said, it afforded him great i)leasiire to meet
with them, and to have the opportunity of saying something on behalf of that glo-
rious gospel from which he had derived so much benefit. They had been told,
that he was a native of Sierra-Leone ; but that was not his birth-place, for he was
born in the interior of Africa, some hundred miles from the sea-shore. About
nineteen years ago he was kidnapped from his parents, and was sold for a slave to
the Spaniards ; l)ut, after suffering much, they were met on their way to the Havannah
by an English man-of-war, and, after a hot battle, they were recaptured, and were
carried to Sierra-Leone, where they were immediately set free. For that they felt
they were veiy much indebted to the Government of England ; and they were also
indebted to the good people of England, because they had sent missionaries out to
them, to tell them of the truth of the gospel, which produced the same effect in
Africa as it did in England. When he arrived in Sierra-Leone, he was still a Hea-
then ; but, about thirteen years ago, he was invited to go to chapel to hear a new
missionary, whose name was Mr. Crosby ; he, however, did not preach, Mr. Wise,
another missionary, preaching in bis stead ; but he preached the same truth, and he
(Mr. Will) was convinced, and that conviction ended in his conversion. He expe-
rienced, as it were, a start from death to life, from darkness to the light of day ;
and since that time he had been always among that body of people, and had
rejoiced with them in the Lord. He had been an exhorter, a class-leader, and a
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AM) SIERR 4-LEONE. ->9J
local preacher among his own coiintrynieu at Sierra-Leone ; and he had endea-
vonred to hring others to the same fold. He could tell them that their labour had
not been in vain ; for they could look upon such an one as himself, a born Heathen,
but who, througli the instrumentality of the missionary sent to Sierra-Leone, had
been brought to the knowledge of the truth as it -was in Jesus ; and there were
hundreds, nay, thousands, besides himself, who had also been converted. The
society altogether numbered more than four thousand members ; they had more
than two hundred leaders, and about fifty local preachers, all uniting their efforts
to pull down the strong-hold of slavery. There were besides a Church mission, a
Baptist mission, and some few persons connected with Lady Huntingdon's church :
but they had no Roman Catholic ; and if they went there now, they would be too
late, as they were all Bible Christians in Sierra-Leone. The sabbath was kept holy
there ; and they were all trying to do all they could to spread the saving truth of
the gospel among their fellow-countrymen ; and they had reason to rejoice and to
say, that they lived in a Christian colony. As the time was getting late, he would
not detain them longer, but conclude by moving the Resolution intrusted to him,
referring to the election of officers for the ensuing year.
In the early part of September of this year, the venerable and
benevolent Dr. Lincloe, of Chfton, Bristol, (formerly of South-
ampton,) expired in great peace and " in a good old age." The
author, during his residence of three years in that city, had fre-
quent opportunities of seeing this good man and liberal contri-
butor to our missions ; and was the medium of conveying to the
parent Society several handsome donations, as may be seen
from the " Missionary Notices ;" and he has great pleasure in
transcribing into these pages the following document, which
was published in the December Number of the " Missionary
Notices " of the same year : —
General Committee, September 21 th, 1848.
A letter containing intelligence of the death of Robert Lindoe, Esq., M.D., of
Clifton, Bristol, hanng been brought under the notice of the committee, it was
unanimously resolved, —
" That the committee receive with deep feeling the mournful intelligence of the
removal of one by whose countenance and efficient aid they have been encouraged
and sustained, during many years, in the prosecution of their missionary plans
generally, and more especially in regard to Western Africa. Considering the large
amount of his donations and subscriptions from his own private property and
income, and his unwearied endeavours to engage the sympathy and assistance of
others in support of measiues for promoting the Christian instruction and social
improvement of the native tribes and people to whom access is afforded by the
navigation of the river Gambia, — the committee feel that the Society has been
deprived of one of its most attached and liberal supporters, while the Afi'ican race
has lost one of its best friends and patrons ; and they further record their full con-
viction, that in his untiring zeal, which rose superior to every discouragement, and
in his self-denying exertions in the best of causes, Dr. Lindoe has left an example
of Christian philanthropy worthy of general imitation. To Mrs. Lindoe the com-
mittee convey their most sincere condolence, at the same time that they offer ear-
nest prayer to Almighty God that He may graciously vouchsafe unto her those
2 Q 2
596 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Divine consolations which will comfort and sustain her in the circumstances of
bereavement and trial in which she has been placed by the afflictive event."
On the 10th of November, Mr. and Mrs. Badger embarked
at Gravesend, on board the "Dale-Park," for Sierra-Leone, on
their way to the Gambia ; and Mr. George Parsonson, who had
returned from that district in the month of September, shortly
after sailed for Southern Africa. Mr. Parsonson had spent
several years on the Western Coast of this continent, from
which, it will be recollected, IMrs. Parsonson was obliged to
return to England during the preceding year ; but her health
having now become re-established, she embarked with her hus-
band for their new sphere of labour, though it was in the same
quarter of the globe.
The object of Mr. Badger's taking Sierra-Leone in his route
to the Gambia, was, to procure from that flourishing station a
re-inforcement of native agents for the latter place, Pierre
Sallah and John Cupidon having retired from the work ; and
Mr. and Mrs. Davie, who had been connected with the school-
department, were shortly after under the necessity of returning
to England through serious indisposition. Mr. Badger, on this
occasion, selected Mr. May and Mr. Leigh, both married men ;
and the whole party proceeded without delay to the scene of
their future labours, and landed at St. Mary's on the 21st of
February, 1849. This was Mr. Badger's third term of arduous
toil in this part of the mission-field.
At the close of January, Mr. Walter Garry and Mr. Frederick
Hart sailed from London, for the Western Coast of Africa, as
Wesleyan missionaries. The former was appointed to Sierra-
Leone, and the latter to the Gold-Coast district; and they
arrived at their respective places of destination in the month of
March. Mr. Garry, like Mr. Wharton, is a native of Grenada
in the West Indies ; and is the fruit of missionary labour in
those islands. Having passed his examination as a candidate
for the ministry at the district-meeting in Barbadoes, and being
very young, he was sent to the Theological Institution at Rich-
mond, where he continued his studies with great advantage for
three years, at the expiration of which he received his appoint-
ment to Sierra-Leone.
Mr. Hart was cordially welcomed at the Gold-Coast ; but the
additional strength to the ministerial staff which this one arrival
had created, was more than counterbalanced by the departure
from the Coast, about the same time, of two excellent labourers,
whose constitutions had been so affected by the debilitating
THE GOLU-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE, 597
influence of the climate, that they were under the necessity of
returning to England. These were Messrs. Addison and Thomas.
Mr. Harrop had also returned some months previously, from
the same cause. The first of these brethren had spent more
than three years on the Coast ; the second, upwards of two ;
and the other, not quite so long. Messrs. Addison and Harrop
had so far recovered, however, that, at the Manchester Confer-
ence in 1849, they received appointments to English circuits ;
but Mr. Thomas remained an invalid for some months longer.
The Gold-Coast district experienced a farther reduction and loss
at the commencement of the year 1850, in the return to this
country, through ill health, of Mr. Charles Hillard, who had
been on the Coast rather more than three years, and Avho, a
part of that time, had laboured at Coomassie, the capital of
Ashantee. Mr. John Lewis, also, having laboured nearly three
years and a half at Sierra-Leone, requiring a change, left that
colony for England in the month of May.
As the present chapter, thus far, has been principally taken
up with departures, arrivals, aud deaths, I must refer the reader
to the annual Reports and other periodicals of the Wesleyan
Missionary Society for further information respecting the spirit-
ual state and progress of these missions, during the past few
years, which we have thus rapidly sketched. In them, and in
the "Missionary Notices" in particular, will be found interest-
ing communications from nearly all the excellent brethren whose
names have been mentioned in this chapter.
The last " Eeport of the Wesleyan-Methodist Missionary
Society, for the Year ending April, 1850," contains the follow-
ing statements and statistics respecting these missions : —
SIERRA-LEONE.
Free-Town, ^"c, Thomas Raston, general superintendent of the Wesleyan mis-
sions at Sierra-Leone ; John Lewis, jun., Richard Hart, Joseph Wright, native mis-
sionary, and Walter Garry.
Hastings, H'elUngton, ls(C., Charles Knight, native missionary.
York, Plantain's Island, S^-c, George IL Decker, native assistant missionary.
This important mission continues to enjoy much prosperity. Through the bless-
ing of God accompanying the appointed ordinances of religion, the work of religion
both deepens and extends. There is an evident improvement in the tone of per-
sonal piety among our people, and there has been a net increase of three hundred
and fifty-eight in the number of full and accredited church-members during the
last year.
The most serious diificulty which is now experienced at this mission has resulted
from the rapid increase which has taken place. The existing chapels scarcely fur-
598 WESTKRN COAST OF AFllICA.
nisb accommodation for half of our own people ; and a sufficient amount of sub-
scriptions could not be raised upon the spot, to erect large new chapels to meet the
exigency ■which has arisen. The number of church-members and scholars con-
nected with the Bathurst-street chapel, at Free-Town, is eleven hundred and
seventy-six ; but the chapel will not accommodate more than six hundred persons.
The Grass-Field chapel will only contain seven hundred ; but the chiu-cb-members
and scholars alone amount to thirteen hundred and seventy-nine : and the Gibraltar
chapel, also, is not half large enough to contain the congregation. Exertions have
been making for some time to raise a sufficient fund for the building of the pro-
posed new " Buxton chapel," and the sum of seven hundred pounds has been con-
tributed towards it by the people ; but the amount received from all sources is not
yet sufficient to meet the expense of the erection. The missionaries write upon
the subject with great feeling and earnestness, apprehensive that the work must
eventually suffer, if sufficient chapel-accommodation cannot be provided for our
religious societies and congregations.
In the education department progress is made. " We are using," the mission-
aries report, " the best agency of which we can avail ourselves ; and, upon the
whole, the class of teachers now employed are superior to any we have ever before
had in the service of the mission." The details furnished respecting the several
schools, show that the teachers are diligently and successfully applying themselves
to their important duties. The Report of the Institution for training native teach-
ers, at King Tom's Point, is, on the whole, encouraging ; although it has been
found necessary to dismiss a few of the students for irregularity of conduct. The
present inmates appetir to be truly pious, and are very exemplary in their conduct,
and in their dibgent attention to the prescribed course of study in the Institution.
One of the students has been appointed, in the course of the year, as an exhoner,
and is em])loyed on the Lord's day in conducting public reUgious ser\-ices in the
smaller places. His piety and general quaUfications warrant the hope that he will
prove an useful missionary agent. The names of several others are given, who
have been placed at various schools ; and they are reported as answering the
expectations which had been formed respecting them. The missionaries refer to
the Institution in a very encouraging strain. They say : " The young men of this
and kindred institutions are our hope. We look to them as the future instniments,
under God, of spreacbng the knowledge of the Redeemer throughout this vast con-
tinent ; and we trust that, by prayerfulness and fUligence on our part, and with
God's blessing on the work of our hands, they will be prepared to sow the precious
seed of the word in the hearts of their benighted countr3men, which shall spring
up unto everlasting life."
The Hastings circuit partakes of the general prosperity of the mission. At the
town of Hastings, " the work of God is steadily advancing." From Wellington,
the report is similar. Our large and substantial stone chapel there " is generally
filled on the Lord's day with an overflowing congregation," and our people " walk
worthy of their high vocation." " Our cause at Allen-Town is aUke improving ; "
and " at Waterloo," the missionaries say, " we have everj' encouragement to perse-
verance, by the past success which has attended our labours, and by the cheering
prospects of doing good which are before us." The mission-schools in this circuit
are reported as " still very encouraging."
York was formerly notorious for the prevalence of Heathenish superstition and
practices ; but the missionaries now rejoice in the change which has been effected.
In the latter part of 1842, a gracious religious awakening took place, and a new
state of things commenced. "The chief of the J kii superstition turned 'from
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AXD SIERRA-LEO\ E.
)9
tlarkncss to light, and from the ])ower of Satan unto God,' and has become a zeal-
ous and laborious class-leader. All his followers also turned with him. Some of
these have since died in the faith, and left a good testimony behind them." The
work steadily advances. " Our large chapel is well filled twice every sabbath with
serious and attentive worshippers ; and we are thankful that our society increases,
not only in numbers, but also in piety." There is more or less encom'agement at
Sussex, Hamilton, and Goderich. At Kent, a favourable commencement has just
been made. The schools in the York circuit continue in active operation.
The following is a tabidar view of the Sierra-Leone district :^
Chapels
Other preaching-places
Missionaries and assistant missionaries
Subordinate paid agents : —
Catechists, &c
Day-school teachers
Unpaid agents : —
Sabbath-scliool teachers
Local preachers
Pull and accredited church-members
On trial for membership
Sabbath-schools
Sabbath-scholars of both sexes
Day-schools
Day-scholars of both sexes
Total number of scholars, deducting for those who
attend both sabbath and week-day schools
Attendants on public worship, including members and
scholars
CENTRAL OR PRINCIPAL STA-
TIONS OR CIRCUITS.
FREE-TOWN.
16
1
5
3
21
44
3335
352
12
659
9
1314
1973
5836
HASTINGS AND
WELLINGTON.
YORK.
6
7
1
1
2
1
8
8
41
24
10
7
920
457
165
45
3
3
199
220
3
4
401
307
600
385
1561
1117
29
2
7
6
37
153
61
4712
562
18
1078
16
2022
2958
THE GAMBIA.
St. Mary's, and Barra Point, Henry Badger, general superintendent of the
Gambia missions ; and George Meadows.
Ngahantang, (Lower Nyani,) vacant.
Macarthy's Island, Joseph May, native assistant missionary ; and George Leigh,
native teacher.
The promising state of things at St. Mary's, which Mr. Badger reported last
year, continues to encourage the expectations which were then formed. The work
has advanced. There has been a decided improvement in the tone of piety among
our people ; and a considerable addition to the numl)er of church-members has
been made. A general interest in the mission is manifested by all classes. The
subscriptions to the general mission-fund have considerably increased; and the
chapel has been enlarged, and a gallery put up for the accommodation of the
school- children at public worship, the expense of which has been nearly met by
local subscriptions. There has also been considerable prosperity in the school,
although deprived of the services of Mr. and Mrs. Davie, who were obliged to leave
on account of the failure of their health. " The girls have had much attention
paid to them. They have been taught in the school twice in the day, and the
most promising among them receive additional instruction at the mission-house
600
WESTERN COAST OP AFRICA.
after sfhool-liours. They are beginning to appreciate reading, writing, and the
other branches of useful education. They have been urged to greater decorum in
their general conduct, and an improvement in these respects is already manifest."
That the parents of the children attach some importance to their education is evi-
dent, from the circumstance that the missionaries have introduced the pay-system
in the course of the year ; and more than twelve pounds has been received from
those parents who have been able to contribute one penny per week. The school
has been honoiu-ed by a visit from the commodore of the armed squadron, who
called at St. Mary's on board H.M.S. "Centaur;" and, after having attended an
examination of the scholars, he presented, as an expression of his satisfaction, an
adfUtional subscription of ten pounds — having previously given two pounds —
towards the support of the Institution. The missionaries wTite, in reference to the
school, " We have proof that much moral and reUgious benefit has already resulted
from oiu- efforts ; and we trust that, before we leave our work for oiu- everlasting
reward, we shall see many go forth from the school to become pillars in the church
of God."
The station at Macarthy's Island has been placed in disadvantageous circum-
stances, owing to the ravages of the small-pox, and the war which took place
between the Mandingoes and the local government ; during which disturbance, our
class-leaders and several of our church-members were called to the barracks, to
supply the place of the regular troops. The entire repair of the mission-bouse and
premises had also become necessary. Mr. May, whose appointment was reported
last year, has been assiduous in his endeavours, and a corresponding measure of
success has been his reward. At George-Town, he reports, " Our society is rapidly
improving; and although many of its members are poor, and wanting regular
employment, yet they are ' diligent in business ' when they have work to do, and
' fervent in spirit, serving the Lord.' Though they were deeply ignorant of the
principles of religion, and the power of godUness, yet they are now rising from
their distress, poverty, and ignorance, to knowledge and spuitual prosperity. The
sabbath and week- night congregations are good, and the chapel is often crowded on
sabbath-mornings. The congregation consists of a few Europeans, merchants and
clerks, officers and soldiers, sailors and Jalloofs, liberated Africans, and school-
children. Many of the people who had been unconcerned about reUgion, and had
not, I am told, been seen in a place of worship for years, are now found regularly
worshipping in the house of God, and receiving instruction in the sabbath-schools.
Some have come to me, deeply convinced of their sins, and, with tears, have asked
my help. Of those who have been recently converted, there are eight persons now
in my class, three of whom are Jalloofs. One of the latter is a convert from
Mohammedanism.'- The school suffered much daring the prevalence of the small-
pox ; but it is now in activity. Mr. May instructs the higher classes, and Mr. Leigh
the remaining classes of boys ; and Mrs. May and Mrs. Leigh teach the giiis. A
marked improvement is already visible ; and it may be reasonably hoped that this
important Institution, being now placed under the care of pious and well-qualified
natives, will steadily advance, without experiencing any more such interruptions as
have formerly resulted from the frequent failure of the health of European mission-
aries and teachers.
The following is a tabular view of the Gambia district : —
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
601
Chapels
Other preaching-places
Missionaries and assistant missionaries
Subordinate paidjigents: —
Catechists, &c
Day-school teachers
Unpaid agents: —
Sabbatli-school teachers
Local preachers
Full and accredited church members
On trial for membership
Sabbath-schools
Sabbath-scholars of both sexes
Day-schools
Day-scholars of both sexes
Total number of scholars, deducting for those
who attend both sabbath and week-day schools
Attendants on public worship, including mem-
bers and scholars
CENTRAL OR PRINCIPAL STATIONS OR CIRCUITS.
Total.
St. Mary's.
Barra-
Foint.
Ngabantang.
Macarthy's
Island.
2
1
2
2
1
1
3
1
3
10
6*
293*
51*
1
180
3
1
30
24
3
183
85
1
280
370
30
121
420
30
301
800
50
400
2
6
37
9
476
136
3
490
3
521
751
1250
* These three items include Barra-Point.
THE GOLD-COAST, ASHANTI, AND OTHER PARTS OF GUINEA.
Cape-Coast-Town, Commenda, Dix-Cove, Sekundi, Beulah, and Providence, Tho-
mas B. Freeman, Frederick Hart ; John Hagan, native assistant missionary ; and
Joseph Dawson, catechist.
Anamahu, Akroful, Sfc, Timothy Laing, catechist.
Domonasi, Abasa, Bonasi, dfc, George P. Bro\vn, catechist.
British Akrah, Winnebah, Sfc, Henry Wharton ; and James Solomon, catechist.
Ashanti, John Ansah, catechist.
Badagry, (Slave-Coast,) and Abbeokuta, (Yuruba,) John A. Martin, native assist-
ant missionary ; and Henry Morgue, catechist.
N.B. Charles Hillard has returned to England.
THE GOLD-COAST.
The local reports from tliis interesting field of missionary lahoiir are generally of
a very gratifying character. " In this chstrict," writes one of the missionaries,
" God is at work in our behalf. We see it in the new and encouraging spheres of
usefulness which are opening before us ; in the increasing moral inHuence which
the mission is diffusing in every tUrection ; in the large and attentive congregations
which listen to our ministry ; in the prosperous state of our schools ; in the earnest
prayers of our chiu-ch-members for a larger outpouring of the Holy Spirit ; in the
giving way of Fetish prejudices and customs : and we feel it, too, in our own hearts,
in that burning love for the souls of our perishing fellow-men which only God can
inspire and sustain." In addition to the encouraging circumstances enumerated in
this general view, the gratifying fact must be noticed, that six of the native converts
have been recommended as sufficiently qualified to act as catechists in the service
of the society.
At Cape-Coast, it is stated that a week had been spent in a succession of
religious services ; during which a deep feeling of devotion was manifested by the
people. Dix-Cove, Beulah, Providence, Sekundi, and Elmina, are comprised in
this circuit, and would repay a greater amount of ministerial labour than can be
afforded by the present number of missionaries. A very promising commencement
of a school has been made at a large place called Abakrampah, where the cbief
602 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
has received the missionaries " with many marks of kindness." The missionary
already quoted, Mr. F. Hart, remarks, " I was much dehghted a few days ago,
when at Abakrampah, to see how willingly the people received the word of
life While I was speaking, they crowded the house, the windows, the doors,
and the yard, until it was difficult to breathe ; and during the whole of the time
they were as quiet as any congregation in England The king of Abakrampah
is noble in both person and conduct, and is wilUng to assist us to the uttermost."
There is an evident revival of the spirit of true Christianity at Anamabu,
although the number of church -members is not so large as formerly. The state
of the schools is very encouraging. The scholars are making progress in useful
knowledge, and some of them are under serious religious impressions. The
importance of these schools will be seen fi-om the following gratifpng Report of
a recent public examination : —
"At Anamabu, on the 24th day of December, 1849, the boys and girls
receiving instruction in the school under the superintendence of the Wesleyan
Society were examined, in the presence of His Excellency Acting Lieutenant-
Governor Fitzpatrick, B. Cruickshank, Esq., J.P., Andrew Swanzy, Esq., J.P.,
C. Cruickshank, Esq., and the Rev. Messrs. Freeman, Hillard, and Wharton. There
were present in the school boys, and girls. The examiners took a
lively interest in the proceecHngs, and derived great satisfaction from the very
creditable appearance of the school, and the general proficiency of the scholars.
In the highest class, both boys and girls exhibited the greatest readiness in
answering the different questions proposed to them. Their acquaintance with
the historical portions of Scripture, and with the truths and doctrines of Chris-
tianity, gave ample token that much pains had lieen taken to ground them
thoroughly in the knowledge of our most holy faith ; and the very intelligent
explanations which they gave of what they had read, showed that this important
point had not been neglected. In reading, spelling, grammar, and geography,
and the common rules of arithmetic, they generally displayed an advanced degree
of information and intelhgence, for which many of the visitors were not pre-
pared ; and as questions were asked indiscriminately, according to the taste and
inclination of the different examiners, it was appai-ent to all that their answers
were founded on a general comprehension of the several branches of their study,
and not on any special preparation for the occasion. On this account, the pleasure
of the gentlemen attending this interesting exhibition was as great as their surprise,
and induced His Excellency, on the part of himself and the other lay-visitors, to
exjjress, in very marked terms, their high approbation of the state of the school,
which reflected much credit alike on the pupils, Mr. Laing and Miss Button, the
teachers, and the Rev. Mr. Hillard, under whose zealous superintendence the
cause of instruction has received such a favourable impulse. The other classes,
according to their different degrees of advancement, displayed e\'ident signs of
the same benevolent cai-e, and gave the gratifying promise of a portion, at least, of
the rising generation being elevated fi'om their state of natiwal degradation, and
of the consequent more extensive dissemination of the truths of the gospel
throughout the masses of the population of this Heathen land.
" (Signed,) B. Cruickshank."
There is much in the present state of the work at Domonasi " to afford
encouragement." The public religious services and the class-meetings of our
church-members are well attended, " and there is that gradual breaking down of
Heathen prejurUces which affords strong ground of hope that, ere long, the minds
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE. 603
of the people will be prepared for an extensive abandonment of the superstitions
of Paganism for the elevating worship and service of the true God." After
adverting to the sub-stations of Abassa, Ejimakum, Donasi, Duukwa, Ayerudu,
Abuadzi, and Mansu, the missionary in the Domonasi circuit states, " It will be
quite consistent with truth, to declare that this circuit has never, since its forma-
tion, exhibited in general so pleasing an aspect as at the present period : and there
is every reason to hope that wlien the partial ditliculties arising from changes and
arrangements now in progress shall have been overcome, (a result which we can
anticipate with confidence,) the word of God will mightily prevail among the tens
of thousands of natives in the interior of the Fanti country."
The Alcrah circuit suffered much during several months in the year, when
it was unavoidably left without the superintendence of a regular missionary.
Things have, however, considerably improved since Mr. Wharton's appointment.
The exercise of church-discipline, by vv'hich the number of members has been
reduced, has had a salutary effect on the remainder ; who now give evidence
of much religious earnestness, by their diligent attendance upon the ordinances of
reUgion, and their fervent prayers for the promised blessing of the Great Head of
the church. The schools are doing well. " Many of the elder boys, and a few
of the girls, attend our religious class-meetings, and appear to be earnestly seeking
' the pearl of great price.' Several of the boys have been removed from the
school during the year, and are now engaged in useful occupations. There are
four young men under preparatory instruction in the Training Institution, all of
whom are associated with the day-school in the capacity of monitors." Oiu- little
society and school at Winnebah " continue to thrive." The state of Prampram is
not quite so favourable : it having been found necessary to alter the plan of clothing
the children at the expense of the mission, the number of scholars has been in
consequence reduced.
ASHANTI.
A very gratifying testimony in favour of the society's mission in Ashanti has
been given by Sir WiUiam Winniett, the governor of the Gold-Coast, in the
Journal of his late visit to Kumasi, contained in a Despatch addressed to the
Right Ilonom-able Earl Grey, and printed by order of the House of Commons
during the last session of Parliament. After describing the barbaric pomp dis-
played at his public reception by the Idng, in a large open space in the capital. His
Excellency remarks : —
" Immediately after the procession had closed, we repaired to the Wesleyan
mission-house, where we found comfortable arrangements made by the Rev. Mr.
Hillard, the resident missionary in Kumasi, for convenient quarters during our
stay. Greatly as I had been interested with the manner in which the king
received me, the appearance of such a vast number of uncivilized men under such
entire control, the new style of building exhibited, and its pretty contrast with the
ever-fresh and pleasing green of the banyan-trees, I was equally interested and
excited at the appearance of the Wesleyan mission-house, — a neat cottage, built
chiefly with the teak or edoom-wood of the country As I sat down in the
aii"y, spacious hall, in the cool of the evening, after all the toils and excitement of
the day, and coiitemi)lated this little European establishment, planted in the midst
of barbarism, two hundred miles into the interior of Africa, exhibiting to thou-
sands of untutored Pagans the comforts and conveniences of civilized life, and the
worship of the true God, I could not but think deeply and feeUngly on the great
triumph thus achieved by Christianity and civilization."
In a subsequent part of the journal. His Excellency, in describing a visit which
he received from the king, observes, —
604 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
" He came to the street in the beautiful little phaeton presented to him by the
Wesleyan Missionary Society in 1841 ; and I was pleased to observe, from the
excellent condition of the phaeton, the great care which he has taken of so
valuable and appropriate a present."
Remarking upon a conversation with the king, on another occasion, His Excel-
lency adds, —
" Matters relative to the Wesleyan mission in Kumasi were then referred to,
and I was much gratified to find how completely the mission has secured his
confidence and esteem." *
In the coiu-se of the last year an arrangement has taken place which may have
an important bearing on the cause of Christianity in Ashanti. John Ansah, a
nephew of the present king, has been placed at Kumasi, the capital, in the character
of a Clu-istian teacher. This young man and his cousin were educated in England,
and were sent back to Africa with the Niger expecUtion. After spending some
time at Kumasi, he went down again to Cape-Coast, where he became a regular
attendant at our mission-chapel, and an earnest seeker of the salvation which the
gospel offers. Having at length experienced the saving power of Christianity, the
pubUc profession of which he had previously assumed, he became an agent of this
society ; and in the offices of interpreter, class-leader, and local preacher, has
continued to give such proof of sincere piety and devotedness to the work of the
mission, that he has been sent, by the unanimous voice of the missionaries in
the district, as a catechist to Kumasi. On his arrival there, in his new capacity of
agent to the "Wesleyan Missionary Society, " he was very kindly received by the
king his uncle, and is now enjoying his confidence and esteem." An extract of a
letter addressed by him to the Rev. Mr. Freeman, the general superintendent,
afFectingly indicates the spirit in which he has entered upon his new and important
sphere of labour : —
" I feel my helplessness and unworthiness of the present position I am placed
in respecting my connexion with the mission. I look for help from Him whose
promise is, * According to thy day, so shall thy strength be.' I assure you, my
dear father in Christ, all my mind is, that my life may l)e spent in the service of
Christ. The general aspect of the work here is encouraging. The people atten-
tively hear the word of God. I preach in the public street everj' sabbath-day, and
they crowd to hear of the way of salvation, and I am encouraged to preach to
them earnestly. The chiefs, too, with whom I have had conversation, seem to be
seriously impressed. No doubt there are some in this town who will hke to come
forward to join Christ's church, but are afraid, perhaps, on their masters' part. I
trust that that fear will be soon done away. You vrill be glad to hear how fond
the king's children are of me : they are crowding into the mission-house every day,
for which I bless the Lord, for it gives me an opportunity to impress on their
tender minds the importance of the religion of Christ. I think good days are
beginning to come upon the Ashantis : may the Lord hasten them soon, that these
poor souls here may know the true and living God, and Jesus Christ His Son our
Lord ! Our little church is going on well. The members are earnest for their
salvation. I am very glad to hear the prosperous state of the church at Cape-
Coast. Respecting the charge of this station, I himibly submit to the appointment
you have given me, beUeving that it is the sphere in which the kind providence of
God intends me to labour."
The friends of Christian missions vriU not fail to offer prayer to Almighty God
* For more lengthened extracts from the governor's journal, see the " Mis-
sionary Notices" for the month of January, 1850.
THE GOLD-COAST, GAMBIA, AND SIERRA-LEONE.
go:
ill behalf of this interesting young man, that he may he graciously enahled to
maintain his integrity, to he a faithful witness for Christ at the court of his royal
relative, and "to testify" to hoth the princes and the people of Ashanti "the
gospel of the grace of Cod." '
THE SLAVE-COAST.
In consequence of the reduction which has taken place in the number of English
missionaries in the district, Badagry and Abbeokuta have been left under the care
of an assistant missionary and other native assistants.
The following is a tabular view of the society's missions at the Gold-Coast,
Ashanti, and other parts of Guinea: —
Chapels
Other preaching-places
Missionaries and assistant missionaries.
Subordinate paid agents : —
Catechists, &c
Daj'-school teachers
Unpaid agents : —
Sabbath-school teachers
Local preachers
Full and accredited church-members .
On trial for membership
Sabbath-schools
Sabbatli-scholars of both sexes
Day-schools
Day-scholars of both sexes
Attendants on public worship, includin,
members and scholars
CENTRAL OR PRINCIPAL STATIONS OR CIRCUITS.
Cape-
Coast
British
Badagry
Town,
Ana-
Domo-
Akrah,
and Ab-
&c.
mabu.
nasi, &c.
&c.
Ashanti.
beokuta.
Total
4
2
2
1
1
10
2
6
2
I
2
13
2
1
1
1
5
3
2
1
2
1
3
12
14
8
12
14
1
5
5
.'54
5
4
5
4
4
2
19
368
122
111
124
27
57
809
5
9
10
13
14
51
102
1
23
23
6
3
8
3
1
2
23
282
158
217
2/4
3
80
1014
1300
3.50
1000
600
1200
250
4700
The Report contains, as usual, the annual subscriptions and
donations from each district, which, though considerable, are
not the whole sum raised by the different societies and congre-
gations in support of the ministry.
From the "tabular views^^ in the preceding Report, it will be
seen that the extent of the Wesleyan Missionary Society's ope-
rations in Western Africa, at present, is as follows : —
Central or principal stations, called circuits, 12. Chapels and
other preaching-places, in connexion with these circuits, 60.
Missionaries and assistant missionaries, 15. Catechists, 20.
Day-school teachers, 97. The unpaid agents are local preachers
and sabbath-school teachers : of the former there are 89 ; and
of the latter, 195. There are 42 day-schools, with 3,557 scho-
lars ; and the total number of scholars, deducting for those who
attend both sabbath and Aveek-day schools, is 4,723. The num-
ber of full and accredited church-members is 5,997, with 800 on
trial ; while 14,464 are reported as attending the ministry of
the missionaries.
CHAPTER XXV.
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS.
Serious Reflections — Matter for Congratulation — Present State of the Missions —
Facts illustrative of Negro Piety, and of the Importance of the Wesleyan Mis-
sions—The three principal Ohstrnctious to the rapid Spread of evangelical
Truth are, the Climate, the a\\-fully-degraded State of the Inhabitants, and the
Slave-Trade — A few Facts in connexion with the tifty-four Agents of the Wesleyan
Missionary Society who have fallen in the Field — Not aU to be attributed to the
Climate — Not too much to hazard for the Salvation of immortal Souls — The
Agents who fell were Men of the right Stamp — Wesleyan Theological Institu-
tion—The Manner of their Death— A Word to the Friends of Wesleyan Mis-
sions—The Gospel a sufficient Remedy for the deplorable Immorality of
Africa.
A RETROSPECTIVE vicw of the contents of tlie preceding pages
will furnish abundant matter for serious reflection and devout
congratulation, mingled with feelings of sorrow and regret, and
loud calls for more active and energetic effort, that this degraded
continent may be speedily raised to its proper level with other
civilized portions of the globe. On each of these topics it Vv'ouid
not be difficult to enlarge ; but our space forbids amplification,
and we must therefore be content with a few concluding obser-
vations.
First. In the brief account we have given of the early
discoveries of the Western Coast of Africa, as conducted
by the Portuguese, Spanish, Dutch, French, and Enghsh, a
mournful picture is presented of human ambition and selfish-
ness. For a lengthened period associations were formed, and
travellers and commercial men went forth, without any refer-
ence to the intention of attempting the moral elevation of
the degraded inhabitants. Gold and slaves were the general
objects of pursuit; and the horrid traffic in human beings
soon became the principal branch of commerce, which was
not only sanctioned, but actually legalized, by the legislature
of our own country. At a subsequent date, expeditions
were sent to explore the vast unknown interior of this conti-
nent, with reference to the advancement of science ; and at
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS.
607
a later period attempts were made to introduce among the
natives the arts of civilization. But most of these plans,
though humane and benevolent in their object and design,
having been begun at the -wrong end, proved to be failures.
At length, — and that not till after a comparatively recent
era, — British settlements were formed, and Protestant mission-
aries were sent out, for the purpose of discountenancing and
putting a check to the Slave-Trade, of promoting legitimate
commerce, and of introducing the blessings of Christianity, with
one of its attendant results, — the arts of civilized life, among
some of the native tribes along the Western Coast of that con-
tinent. This new state of things presented a fresh chapter
in the history of Africa ; and was so strange, that for some
time the inhabitants of that country, who had been visited
by the maritime states of Europe for more than three centuries
for very different purposes, could scarcely believe that ivhite men
were really sincere and in earnest in seeking their benefit.
How greatly is it to be lamented, that that precious boon, the
gospel, which has made England what it is, was not at an earlier
period sent to Western Africa !
Secondly. The cause of congratulation to which we have
referred, arises from the fact, that, although little more than one
generation has passed away since the first Wesleyan missionary
landed on that coast, an amount of success has attended the
labours of the agents of this Society, which is truly gratifj^ing,
and augurs well for Africa's future welfare. The statistics at
the close of the last chapter will give the reader some idea of
what has been accomplished during the past thirt^^-eight or
thirty- nine years, which includes the whole length of time that
the Wesleyan Missionary Society has been officially connected
with this part of the Heathen world. We say "some idea;"
for, fully to estimate the amount of good that has already been
effected, we should not forget the hundreds and thousands of
converted Africans who have, in the course of those years,
" died in the Lord/' with other circumstances connected with
the operations of these missions. But if we compare the docu-
ment just referred to, with the statistics in the Report for the
year 184<3, it will be seen that, during the past seven years only,
there has been an addition to the Society of two thousand four
hundred and three full and accredited church member's, and
that, in the same space of time, the number of scholars in the
schools was more than doubled.
The first spontaneous expression of feeling from the writer's
heart, when he had peinied these statistics, of six thousand
608 WESTEKN COAST OF AFRICA.
church communicants, {save three,] with nearly five thousand
children receiving Christian instruction in the schools, was,
" What hath God wrought ! "
Admitting, to some extent, at least, that numerical increase
is not always a true sign of spiritual and genuine prosperity,
and without pretending to say, that all those whose names are
enrolled as members of the Society are " born again," and thus
made "new creatures in Christ Jesus;" this much we do know,
— that an overwhelming majority of them have been changed,
not from one set of opinions to another; but they have
been "turned from darkness to light, and from the power of
Satan to God." And we may add, that none are admitted,
even on trial, Avithout affording sufficient evidence of " a desire
to flee from the wrath to come, and to be saved from their
sins."
Although, for the reason already assigned, we cannot enlarge
here, we may nevertheless be allowed to state a few facts in con-
nexion with African conversions and Negro piety, which may be
either fairly drawn from the preceding history, or given as addi-
tional illustrations of the power of the gospel, and " the triumphs
of grace," as exhibited in the hearts and lives of hundreds of
these Africans, and which will also show the utility and import-
ance of the Wesleyan missions in this part of the Heathen world.
1. The first fact which we shall mention is this, that,
although the native tribes of Africa, skirting that long line of
coast which is washed by the great Atlantic Ocean, are exceed-
ingly numerous, and most awfully fallen and degraded, yet,
wherever the gospel has been preached for any length of time,
whether among the INIohammedan or Pagan nations, there has
been fruit of our labour, fruit in the real conversion of the soul
to God, of some " out of every nation and every language," and,
we may add, of every clan and of every tribe.*
* It is supposed that the Kroomen are an exception to this rule. One recent
•writer on Sierra-Leone, in speaking of this singular but enterprising tribe, says,
" The Kroos are Pagans, and there has never yet been an instance of one of them
being converted to Christianity." And another author remarks, " This tribe alone
have, to a man, withstood the efforts of the missionaries." Dr. Madden has made
a similar statement. But as the Kroomen reside on the Grain Coast, where we
have no mission established, or rather no attempt has there been made to establish
one, " the efforts of the missionaries " can scarcely be said to have had fair play
upon them as a nation ; nevertheless, a few of them have been brought under the
" preaching of the word," and one or two, even of these, have been caught in the
gospel net, as will be seen from the following extract of a letter which I received a
few months ago from the Rev. Thomas Raston : — " We had a converted Krooman
about eight years ago : he died happy in God. We have now one soundly con-
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS. G09
2. These conversions are generally accomplished b}^ the
instrumentality of the missionaiy, " holding forth the word of
life," and " in Christ^s stead " beseeching sinners to be recon-
ciled to God. And such have been their agonizing remorse, and
the outward circumstances attending their convictions of sin,
that St. Paul's caution to the smitten jailer at Philippi has been
sometimes quite necessary : " Do thyself no harm : for we are
all here." (Acts xvi. 28.)
3. The reality of these conversions is soon seen : " old things
have passed away, and all things have become new." The tom-
tom, the song, and the dance are abandoned ; their former fool-
ish rites and frantic ceremonies, in which they trusted and
delighted, are all given up ; and as soon as, or before, the day
dawns, instead of the superstitious yreegree ov fetish practices to
which they formerly resorted at the beginning of the day, they
are to be found in the sanctuary, for the purpose of prayer, and
of singing the praises of the true God. Thus the day begins at
five o'clock in the morning v/ith many of the Weslcyan societies
in that part of the world; and the genuineness of an internal
and real change of heart is further demonstrated by '^ the fruits
of the Spirit," as exhibited in the lives of these people, and by
" their showing forth the praises of Him who hath called them
out of darkness into his marvellous light."
4. Another fact in connexion with African conversions is,
that, generally speaking, the fruit abides : they are '' steadfast
and unmovable," they endure unto the end. There are, of
course, exceptions to this : instances of unfaithfulness do some-
times occur, and then discipline is administered, kindly, but
with fidelity. But on these occasions, they keenly feel being
excommunicated for their offences, and in due time most of
them, being penitent, are restored to the fold. On more than
one occasion have these jioor wanderers come to the writer at
the mission-house, in the greatest distress, and, with tears run-
ning down their faces, begged to be re-admitted into the society.
verted : he has ' come ovit ' from his countrymen, which he must do to he a Chris-
tian. There is as much caste among Kroomen as among the Hindoos. Next to
Mohammedans, I heUeve the Kroomen are most diflicult to he hrought under the
influence of the gospeh As soon as a Krooiuan embraces Christianity, he is
rejected, despised, disowned, and cast out hy his countrymen. The principle is
estabUshed : we liave both converted Kroomen and Mohammedans ; ergo, all may
1)6 converted." In a recent communication from the Rev. George Meadows at the
Gambia, it is stated : — " Several conversions have taken i)lace lately. A Krooman
— one of a class thought by some to he almost beyond the reach of the gospel —
has been awakened, and experienced the efficacy of that blood which ' can make the
foulest clean.' " (See " Wesleyan Missionary Notices ' for December, 1850, p. 207.)
R R
610 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
5. Though the greater part of the converted Africans are but
imperfectly acquainted with the EugHsh language, it is delight-
ful to hear them on the subject of experimental religion, and to
observe the clearness with which they speak of their own conver-
sion, and thus " give a reason of the hope that is in them/^ At
the quarterly love-feasts, and sometimes in the class-meetings,
in relating their experience, they will name the time, the place,
the minister, and the words of the text which, by the Almighty
Spirit, found a way to their hearts, and which ultimately led to
their emancipation from the thraldom of sin, when they found
peace with God through faith in our Lord Jesus Christ.
6. The natives of this part of the world evidence the sincerity
of their Christian profession, by a consistent and regular attend-
ance upon the means of grace, both public and private, by a
careful attention to relative duties, personal and domestic reli-
gion, a strict observance of the sabbath-day, and a concern for
the salvation of others. They liberally contribute towards the
support of the cause of God, are " kindly affectioned one toward
another:" when called to suffer for Christ's sake, they are
patient and forgiving : in sickness they are resigned and sub-
missive ; and in death are generally triumphant.*
7. They are strongly attached to their ministers : they not
only "receive them joyfully" when they first land from
* It would be easy to furnish illustrations on each of these topics, in addition to
those already given. Two cases may be sufficient : one regarding the sanctity of
the sabbath-day, &c., aud the other showing the sustaining grace of God in the
hour of death.
1. John Oga, a liberated African at Sierra-Leone, who was a member of the
society, and a truly converted man, had, by his industrious habits, acquired a little
property, and he contributed liberally to the support of the cause of God. For
some time he had supplied the liberated African Yard with vegetables, &c., and
was afterwards offered the office of supplying the gan-ison with meat ; but he said,
" No ; suppose me do dat, me have for kill cow on Sunday, and me can't do dat :
ray soul more to me dan cow." In a short time after this, he died happy in the
Lord. He was a man universally respected, both by Europeans and Africans, as was
seen at the funeral, when five or six hundred persons followed him to the grave.
2. Thomas Ticknut, (also of Sierra-Leone,) before his conversion, was one of
those who practised " country fashion," and that not only for himself, but for his
neighbours ; and was a noted character as a wizard. But the gospel proved " the
power of God " to the salvation of his soul, and blasphemies were tmnied to praise.
His iUness was of long duration, and his sufferings were great ; yet, while he lay
gasping for breath, he constantly rejoiced in God. This occurred about four years
ago. On his class-leader \isiting him, he said, " I am going to the King of glory."
A short time before be died, turning to his wife, he said, " I commend you to
God ;" and a few minutes before the vital spark had fled, he lifted bis hands, and
exclaimed, " All is well, all is well ! Glory, glory ! " and be died with the word
" glory" hanging on his lijis.
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS. 611
England, but they are also constantly presented to the throne of
the heavenly grace in their supplications. When laid aside by
sickness, they are visited, waited upon, deeply sympathized
with, and fervent prayers are offered to the Most High for their
speedy restoration to health. In times of danger, they will nobly
stand by them, and even risk their own lives in their defence.*
If called to return home, on account of protracted illness, " they
accompany them to the ship;^^ and the touching incident men-
tioned in the Acts of the Apostles (xx. 36 — 38) has more than
once been illustrated by the conduct of the simple-minded, but
sincere. Christians in Western Africa. And when death has put
an end to the missionary's labours, " devout men have carried
him to his burial, and made great lamentation over him."
8, The Africans are grateful for the benefits conferred upon
them by the British Government and by British Christians.
To the former they feel thankful for having rescued them
while on the mighty deep from the horrors of slavery ; and to
the latter, for having sent them "the glorious gospel of the
blessed God," by which they have been made " free indeed."
Even in their unconverted and barbarous state, when captured by
Her Majesty's cruisers, as soon as they understand the object
of the slaver being boarded by our brave countrymen, then "joy
beams in every countenance," and they are seen " rolling them-
selves about with glee and kissing the hands and clothes of
their deliverer," and when the dark rakish craft, with her
human cargo, arrives at Sierra-Leone, " the promised land," as
they afterwards call it, then " their acclamations are long and
loud," and they " shout for joy at the prospect of freedom."
But it is after they have been residents for some time in these
British colonies on the Coast, enjoying all the privileges of
British subjects, and when they are able to reflect upon the
providence and grace of God manifested in their behalf, and the
way in which He hath led them, — that they are indeed grateful I
Fervent prayers are offered to God, and that repeatedly, for our
beloved sovereign Queen Victoria, for Her Majesty's Govern-
ment, the British officers, and " all the good people in England.'^
* In addition to one or more instances of this kind contained in the preceding
pages, we may add the following statement made hy the Kev. John Martin, at a
missionary meeting held in Great-Queen-Street chapel, in London, ahout two years
ago. Mr. Martin had spent two years at Badagry, on the Gold-Coast ; and during
one of his jounieys in that locality, he was accompanied by some of the natives.
Whilst proceeding on his way, a shot was fired in the forest by some party con-
cealed in the bush, on which his escort immediately assembled around him, saying,
*' If they shoot, they shall shoot us, and not shoot you."
2 K 2
612 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
And in reciting their experience, with a brief history of their
hves, though some parts were painful in the extreme^ they can-
not forget that they have been twice redeemed, — redeemed from
the house of bondage, when their shackles were knocked off
and thrown overboard, by the energy and activity of British
cruisers ; and again redeemed and hberated with " the precious
blood of Christ."
A recent writer of a missionarj^ tract, entitled, " Black, but
Comely," has mentioned a fact which occurred in the West In-
dies in the case of one of the same class of individuals, and which
is just in point here. It was that of a Negress who had obtained
her freedom through the liberality of a few native Christians,
and the author writes : — " Never shall I forget that happy day,
when, coming from the auction-room direct to the mission-
house, this noble confessor, Avith tears in her eyes, and gratitude
iu her heart, lifted up her hands to heaven, and loudly exclaimed,
' Massa ! massa ! help me for praise the Lord ! Me twice free !
Me soul long be free, me body now be free ! Me twice free !
O massa, help me for praise the Lord ! ' " Hundreds of liberated
Africans in connexion with the Wesleyan missions in Western
Africa have sung the same delightful song, many a time, in our
love-feasts -, and in such a figurative and graphic manner, with
such a tone of voice, gesture, action, feeling, and power, that no
correct description can be put on paper. They are thankful to
God, to the British Government, to British Christians, and to
British missionaries.*
* Two dying testimonies in support of this may be here given.
1. The first is that of Robert Clark, a liberated African youth, who died at
St. Mary's on the Gambia at the close of 1841. I had myself frequently seen him
during bis illness, and also just after his death, which -was under the following
circumstances : feeling that he could not live much longer, he inquired for Cupidon,
one of the native assistants, who was immediately by his side; when this poor
African slave, aged about thirteen years, said, in broken accents, " Massa, me bin
call you, for tell you, me now bout for die ; but me no fraid for die : Jesus Christ
pardon all my sin, and my soul is happy in de Lord." This was pleasing, especially
to John Cupidon, under whose roof he had lived, and who had often prayed with
and for him. But this was not all : the dying lad went on to say, " And me bin
call you also, massa, for tank you for all de goodness you bin do me. You bin
teach me berry well in de house, and berry well in de school ; and now me going
to Jesus." And then, lifting up his withered hand, he shook hands with his faith-
ful friend and master, saying, " Tank you, massa, tank you ; good bye, good bye."
And in a few minutes after this, he breathed his last.
2. The other case occurred on the Gold-Coast, a year or two later. The Rev.
George Chapman had been preaching on the happiness of heaven ; and shortly after
he visited a sick and dying African, who had heard the sermon with much profit.
This Negro, during Mr. Chapman's visit, refen\d to the sermon, and asked if it was
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS.
613
9. The oft-repeated calumny, that the Africans have no minds,
and therefore are incapable of improvement, has, it is hoped,
been sufficiently refuted in these pages. The result of mis-
sionary labour, in the conversion to God of thousands of the
degraded sons of Africa, and the benefits which have invariably
followed the faithful preaching of the gospel, in a social, menial,
and moral point of view, are the best answers to those slanderers
of the Negro race, who have stigmatized them with the epithets
of " mere animal creatures," " a sort of monkey without tails,"
" machines of flesh and blood, but with no souls," and the more
modified designation, "human beings, but inferior to the rest
of the species." If the sceptic would but visit some of the
mission stations in Western Africa, and were he even to take
his prejudices with him, he would soon have his erroneous
estimation of the African character corrected and dispelled from
his mind. Facts would stare him in the face, that would make
him " blush, and hang his head, to think himself a man," and
yet deny to others what God had given to him; that is, the
power of reason, with a capacity for improvement. Amid much
that is still dark and gloomy, he would find that many a bright
spark of intellect and genius has been discovered, and brought
into play, from the once spell-bound mind of the barbarian, by
the simple preaching of the cross of Christ.
10. In order to appreciate, in any proper degree, the result of
missionary labour in this part of the world, we ought to con-
sider, first, what the natives were before they received the gospel,
and then, what they are noiv. The disadvantages of their
former condition must not be overlooked, in forming a correct
estimate on this subject; for, whilst repudiating, as we do, the
insulting and false epithets which we have just quoted as appli-
cable to the Africans, it must be acknowledged, that a more
degraded, barbarous, demoralized, and ignorant set of human
beings are not to be found on the face of the globe, than are the
native tribes on the Western Coast of Africa. This must be
acknowledged by all; and yet hundreds of the present mem-
bers of the Wesleyan society have been dug up out of the
dark and filthy hold of the slave-ship ; they have been washed,
redeemed, disenthralled, arul set at liberty; and again they
correct that we should know each other in heaven. Being assured that it was
both correct and scriptiu-al, he then said, " When I get there, I shall first go up to
my Saviour, and fall down on my knees and thank Kim for having sent a mission-
ary. Then I shall go hack to the gate, and wait till you come ; and when you come,
I shall take you by the han<l and bring you uj) to my Saviour, and I shall say,
' This is the first man that sliowed uie the cross of Christ.' "
614
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
have been " washed, sanctified, and justified in the name of the
Lord Jesus, and by the Spirit of our God :" and what are they
now ? Not only " princes in Israel," but many of them occupy
a position in civil society equal and even superior to some of
those of a fairer complexion.* This elevation of a people from
the depths of barbarism has not been the work of a day ; but it
has been accomplished in the course of a very few years, and is
unquestionably the fruit of missionary toil; and, when con-
trasted with their former Heathen condition, it speaks loudly in
favour of Christian missions, and furnishes another proof that the
gospel, and that alone, can civilize, and bless, and save mankind.
11. In looking at the utility and importance of these mis-
sions, it should not be forgotten that there is at present an
amount of native agency at ivork beyond that of any former
period, and that there are several theological Institutions where
others are receiving a course of instruction and training pre-
paratory to their being employed in the same evangelical and
benevolent spheres of usefulness; besides a number of schools
of various grades, where a multitude of youths ai-e receiving a
Christian education. We need not expatiate on the probable
effect of these schools and educational establishments : we know
that in our own country a good sound religious education is of
vast importance, and in a country like Africa it is, if possible,
of still greater consequence.f
12. The last fact we shall mention is, that there is a moral
influence in connexion with these missions that is felt far beyond
* The reader is here respectfully referred to the extracts from Mr. Fergusson's
letter on the character of the liberated Africans, which will be found in the tenth
chapter of this work. There it will be seen, that some of this once-degraded class
of men are industrious tradesmen, and respecta1)le merchants ; that they have good
stone houses, which are weU fiu-nished ; and that they send their children to board-
ing-schools in England. I may also add, that I know one mercantile house in
London, with whom two of oiu" members at Sierra-Leone (who are liberated
Africans) do business to the amount of between ^62,000 and £3,000 each annually,
and that they are prompt in their payments, as well as honourable and respectable
In all the relations of life.
t Besides native teachers, local preachers, &c., whose names do not appear in the
[irinted Keports, it will Ije seen, by a reference to the last annual Report and the
Minutes of Conference, that we have six natives who are fully employed in the
work' of the ministry, as missionaries and assistant missionaries, most of whom are
recaptured Negroes. Interesting communications are occasionally published from
these brethren, in the " Missionary Notices ;" and the reader is respectfully referred
to the November Number of the year 1850, where he will find a letter from the
Rev. George Decker, native assistant nussionary at Sierra-Leone. Mr. Decker is a
liberated African, and his communication is alike creditable to his head and to his
heart ; and the reader will be amply repaid by giving it a careful perusal.
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS.
615
the boundaries of the British settlements, or the limits of the
mission-stations, which is of no small importance. An evange-
lical and Protestant missionary, indeed, may travel almost any
where in Western Africa ; and both by Pagans and Mohamme-
dans he is respected : his name may not be known, but his cha-
racter and profession are ; and they will insure him a courteous
treatment Avith the generality of the inhabitants. The Chris-
tian reader Avill doubtless recollect, that when Paul and his
companions "escaped all safe to land'' at "the island called
Melita," " the barbarous people showed them no little kindness :
for they kindled a fire, and received them every one, because of
the present rain, and because of the cold.'' (Acts xxvii. 44 ;
xxviii. 1, 2.) So, in -like manner, has the writer been treated
by the natives of Western Africa, when hundreds of miles from
any white men. This fact has more than once been corrobo-
rated in the preceding pages ; and the moral influence of the
missions on the native inhabitants more immediately connected
with, or contiguous to, the EngHsh colonies, has also been
adverted to.
Another fact, in connexion with this subject, deserves to be
mentioned ; and that is, that the missions have exerted a benefi-
cial influence on the European populatio7i abroad. This, it is rea-
dily admitted, is not to any great extent ; but that illicit inter-
course between the sexes, which is too prevalent in most of
our foreign settlements, and which still exists on the Western
Coast of Africa, has nevertheless considerably diminished of late
years, especially in those localities where Christian missions are
established ; for there many of our countrymen who had
adopted the " country fashion," have either abandoned that sin-
ful practice, or have been lawfully and properly united ; and
though I am not aware of any Europeans who are decidedly
pious or members of our society, there is noAV little or no oppo-
sition to the labours of the missionaries from that quarter : a
considerable number of them, indeed, attend divine service, at
least once a day ; and I believe the greater part of our country-
men wish us well. Would to God that all, or even one-half, of
the Europeans on that Coast would give themselves to God, and
then to his church by his will ; and thus heartily co-operate
with the missionaries ! May we not hope that, ere long, this
will be the case ? The Lord hasten that happy and auspicious
day !
These are some of the results and benefits of missionary
labour in Western Africa, which call aloud for gratitude to
" the God of all grace," that He has been pleased to put the
616 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
broad seal of His approbation upon the efforts of His servants.
" Not unto us, O Lord, not unto us, but unto thy name give
glory, for thy mercy, and for thy truth's sake ! " (Psalm
cxv. 1.)
Thirdly. That which is calculated to produce mingled feelings
of sorrow and regret is, that the good already accomplished has
been effected at a considerable sacrifice of European health and
life; and that, though much has been done, it is very little
compared with what remains to be done. The present state of
Africa, therefore, loudly calls for more active and energetic
efforts, that this too-long-neglected continent may be speedily
raised to its proper level with other civilized portions of the
globe.
It will, perhaps, not be denied, that there are evils and
obstructions in Africa to the rapid spread of evangelical truth,
which are to be found in no other part of the Heathen world.
But this should only lead to a corresponding degree of zeal and
combined effort on the part of the Christian church; and ere
long these evils and obstructions will be seen to dissolve and
melt away, as clouds before the mid-day sun.
It was my purpose here to have dilated at some length on
the principal obstacles and obstructions with which we have
to contend in Western Africa, and which, for the sake of
distinction, may be designated physical, moral, and diabolical.
I refer to the prejudicial effects of the climate on European
constitutions ; to the awfully degraded state of its inhabitants
generally; and to that monster evil, the Slave-Trade. But as
this volume is already extended much beyond ray calculation,
I intend to embody these and some other collateral topics in
a pamphlet, which will soon make its appearance. In con-
clusion I add only a few paragraphs on the mortality among
missionaries.
The authoress of "Letters from Sierra- Leone," though she
believes, with Chamier, that this climate is "the worst under
the sun," is nevertheless of opinion, that "within late years it
has been less destructive to Europeans." And I have before
me a letter which I received only a few months ago, from a
respected missionary at Sierra-Leone, that has spent several
years in that colony, who is of the same opinion. He says,
" The climate of Sierra-Leone (I mean Free-Town in parti-
cular, as it is the residence of most of the Europeans) is
certainly vastly improved. But all improvements in health
ai'c attributable to local improvements. The mountains and
lands adjacent are completely cleared of timber. Dwelling-
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS. 617
houses are better constructed; with a well-orgauized police, the
streets and lanes are kept clean. Drainage has been carried
on very vigorously," &c. My correspondent further states, "I
think another great means of promoting the health of the town
arises from the roofing of the wattled and other small houses :
no person is allowed to cover with grass ; shingles or bamboo
must be used, under a heavy penalty. The steam from some
thousands of houses covered thickly with grass must be fearfully
pernicious. The medical treatment for diseases is entirely
altered ; mercury is exploded, excepting in desperate cases : I
believe I owe my shattered constitution to mercury.''^
In a recent publication I find it is stated, that, "between
March, 1804, and August, 1825, eighty-nine Church mission-
aries an-ived at Sierra-Leone; and in that period fifty-four had
died, and fourteen returned to England shattered in health."
And in the " Missionary Records," the writer, in dwelling upon
this subject up to a later period, says, " Many of the mission-
aries and teachers were also obliged to return to England ; so
that at the time of the publication of the Report of the Church
Missionary Society, in the year 1835, there remained only three
missionaries and' two catechists. The only female remaining
was the daughter of Mr. Ny lander. These only remained in
Africa of one hundred and nine labourers Avhich the Church
Missionary Society had sent out during thirty years." Taking
either of these statements, it appears that the losses sustained
by the Church Missionary Society were, up to that period, more
than fifty per cent.
Taking the past twelve years as our guide, it will be
seen that, during that period, sixty-seven European agents of
the Weslcyau Missionary Society, all "new hands," have
been sent to Western Africa, out of which there have been
twenty-five deaths.* If we include those brethren and sisters
who arrived there a second, and some of them a third, time,
since the year 1838, the number will amount to eighty-two, but
with only tivo more deaths. During these twelve years, twenty-
one agents out of the sixty-seven arrived at Sierra-Leone, from
whom we have reported seven deaths; fifteen arrived at the
Gambia, out of whom six died; and thirty-one landed at the
Gold-Coast, out of whom twelve have fallen in the field. This
analysis corroborates the opinion that of late years the climate of
Sierra-Leone has improved; for these statistics only give to that
* It is right to state that, out of this sixty-seven, three were persons of colour, —
Mr. Freeman, Mr. Wharton, and Mr. Garry.
618 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
colony one-third of the amount of missionary mortality ; whereas,
as stated in a preceding page, the number of deaths in that colony,
during the whole history of the missions, amounts to rather more
than one-half. It will be seen, too, that though the mortality on
the Gold-Coast has, during the last twelve years, been greater than
at either of the other settlements, not only in numbers, but also
in proportion to the number of agents sent out, even there an
improvement is manifest. The six deaths out of fifteen at the
Gambia give about the same average as before stated, which, it
should be recollected, was considerably less than either of the
other stations.
If we take the last six years as a criterion, the report will be
still more favourable ; for during that period only nine deaths
have occurred in our mission-families on the whole Coast. Four
of these were at Sierra-Leone, two at the Gambia, and three at
the Gold-Coast.
But I cannot close my remarks on the biographical sketches
of the fifty-four agents of the Wesleyan Missionary Society
which we have already given in connexion with the history of
these missions, without an observation or two which they
naturally suggest.
1 . In the first place, then, without attaching blame or charg-
ing any of our departed friends with imprudence, on their
arrival in Africa, it must be admitted that the climate was not
the sole cause of death in every case. Several of them would
most likely have died as soon, or nearly so, had they gone to
other parts of the mission-field ; and probably some of them, had
they remained in Europe.
2. It is a melancholy fact, however, that more than half a
hundred of the agents of this society have fallen in their God-
like work, and their bones lie mouldering far from the graves of
their fathers, in that foreign soil, the miseries of whose inhabit-
ants had called forth their tenderest sympathy, and to mitigate
whose wretchedness they forsook their native land. The writer
has often visited the graves of his dear brethren and sisters,
several of whom it fell to his painful duty to bury "side by
side ; " and, while standing by the solemn spot where their ashes
are deposited, he has dropped the tear of sympathy and affec-
tion, and has endeavoured to imbibe a portion of their spirit, to
trace their footsteps, and follow them to the skies.
3. In reviewing the loss of life in Western Africa, though it is
deeply affecting, we know it is not too great a sacrifice to save
immortal souls. Some, it is true, were called away almost
before they had put on the harness, or before they had time
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS. 619
fairly to thrust the sickle into the rich harvest ripening before
them; but, — •
" That life is long which answers life's great end."
Some of the most devoted missionaries of other denomina-
tions, and in other lands, such as Brainerd, Martyn, and Mills,
were called away before they saw half the number of days
allotted to human existence on earth. But though God has
indeed, in Western Africa, " buried many of his workmen, yet
he has carried on his work/^ The spirits of our departed mis-
sionaries, resting from their labours, are now happy with the
Lord ; and hundreds of their spiritual children have also over-
taken them ; so that both he who sowed, and they who reaped,
are rejoicing together; and many more are on the way.
4. In the perusal of the brief memoirs which we have given,
it will have been seen that, in the selection of their agents, the
parent committee were directed to persons of the right stamp.
Some of them, it is true, were young men possessed of few
literary attainments, having enjoyed no advantages beyond
those afforded by a plain English education; but they were
men of good common sense, of sterling piety, and largely
imbued with the spirit of their Master, " who came to seek and
to save that which is lost.^^ They possessed a love for souls,
and knew how to preach "Christ and him crucified;" and
hence God honoured their labours, in the awakening and con-
version of sinners, and in " bringing many sons to glory."
Others of them, however, were above mediocrity, both with
regard to gifts and graces, being highly intelHgent and intel-
lectual : they were " faithful men, who were able to teach others
also;" nor were they less zealous and successful in winning souls
to Christ, and in thus extending the Eedeemer^s kingdom in
the earth : for which they " counted not their lives dear unto
them."
5. Several of the brethren whose deaths we have recorded of
more recent date, it will be remembered, had enjoyed the
advantages of the Theological Institution, the benefits of which
they gratefully acknowledged. These benefits were tAVO-fold:
they were mental, and they were spiritual : they related to the
head and to the heart. It will have been observed, that their
scholastic studies and duties did not retard the growth of their
personal piety; for while the mind Avas expanding, the heart
was kept warm with love to God and man, and they thus
"grew at once in wisdom and holiness." One of the young
men, who was distinguished for holy ardour on his entering the
620
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
Institution, and who "applied himself to his studies with exem-
plary diligence/^ some months after he had been there, wrote
thus : — " I trust I am growing in grace, in attachment to
Methodism, and in love for the souls of men, especially of the
Heathen. I am exceedingly thankful to my heavenly Father
for bringing me to this place; and I trust my profiting will
appear to all.'^ A few weeks after this, he again wrote: "I
thank God, I can testify that Christ is able to cleanse from all
sin. I am happy in his love, and can rejoice with joy unspeak-
able and full of glory.^^ This young man, on a vacancy occur-
ring at Sierra- Leone, left the Institution, and was found in less
than a week on board the vessel Avhich conveyed him thither.
The reader will by this time recollect the name of James
Wayte, some of whose last moments were employed in " invok-
ing the Divine blessing upon his brethren at Richmond.^^
And who that has perused the account of the first missionary
who fell at Coomassie, does not at this moment see in imagina-
tion the devoted Rowland at the same Institution, in his closet,
on his knees, with a small pamphlet in his hand, fasting and
praying, and renewing his covenant with God, while the rest of
the family were at their usual meal ? And just as he had got
to that part of the covenant service, " That He appoint you your
work,^-* &c., there was " a knock at his door," calling him to
that work in which he so heartily engaged, but in which, alas !
he so soon died !
These are facts whicli are most honourable to the missionary
candidates and students, as well as creditable to our fathers
and brethren who have the principal charge and management
of that important establishment; and they are placed upon
record to show, that those " men who take it as an axiom, that
knowledge and godliness are antagonist interests, and who mourn
over the advance of the one, as involving, of necessity, the decline
of the other," — or, in other words, that those who imagine that
knowledge is unfriendly to piety and subversive of holiness, — are
mistaken, so far as the Wesleyan Theological Institution is
concerned; for, in addition to the brethren we have mentioned,
it may with perfect truth be said, that some of the most holy,
devoted, and useful missionaries have been sent out from that
Institution. These facts are also placed upon record, that pre-
sent and future candidates for our ministry, who are or may
become students, either at Richmond or Didsbury, may see
that, while their predecessors were not inattentive to mental
improvement, but applied themselves with unwearied diligence
to the acquisition of useful knowledge, they at the same time
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS.
621
made rapid pi'ogress in piety, and thus became more fully pre-
pared for the great work which awaited them.
6. The manuer of the deaths we have recorded cannot have
escaped the reader's notice. The genuine piety possessed by
our dear brethren^ (and sisters, too,) on leaving their native
land for Africa, did not flag in that warm climate. They were
not only " faithful men," but they were " faithful unto death.''
They had not to seek rehgion on a sick-bed, and in a dying
hour; but were divinely supported and sustained, when their
heart and flesh failed them.
In some cases, it will be recollected, the " one was taken and
the other left/' in others, both the missionaries on the same
station were seriously ill at the same time ; and one " got him-
self assisted, weak as he was, into the other's room, to inquire
the state of his mind, when the most afflicted would be helped
up in bed; and they seemed like two dear friends meeting who
had long been separated." In other cases, the missionary and
his wife have both been burning with fever at the same time,
and unable to render one another the least assistance ; and in
more than one instance, the death of one has taken place
under the same roof, unknown to the other ; nor has the fact
been known until the next day, or the day following, when the
husband and wife have met " in a nobler clime ! "
But "these all died in faith;" and not one ever regretted
having embai-ked in the work. " I am in my proper place," or
words to that eff'ect, were spoken by many of them, not only
vhen in health, but also in sickness, and in the prospect of
meeting "the last enemy." Nor could "Jordan's stream, or
death's cold flood," quench " the yearning pity for mankind,
the burning charity," or "the pure flame of love" to the
cause of missions, which they cherished while the poAver of
articulation remained ; for some of their last words to those
who stood by them, when dying, were, "Watch over the flock
Avhen I am gone." " Preach Christ, and do all you can to save
souls," &c.
7. Lastly. To the friends of the Wesleyau Missionary
Society, these brief memorials of fifty -four of their agents are
respectfully addressed. To them the writer would say. Such
are the " messengers" you employ, such the sacrifices they
make, the trials they encounter, in carrying out your designs.
The cause you have espoused and love, they die to extend. We
know that
" A Sacrifice of noljler name
And riclier blood than tliev,"
622 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
was necessary for the redemption of Africa ; and the price has
been paid. The eternal Son of God died on Calvary for this
as well as for other portions of the great family of man. Bui
the Almight}^ is graciously pleased to employ human instru-
mentality in accomplishing the salvation of mankind ; and we
therefore regard the "bones" of our beloved missionaries and*
their wives as prophetical. " And Joseph said unto his bre-
thren, I die : and God will surely visit you.^^ And by faith in
the doctrine of the resurrection and the promise made to Abra-
ham respecting Canaan, Joseph " gave commandment concern-
ing his bones/^ that they should " carry them up from hence."
(See Gen. xv. 13, 14; 1. 24, 25 ; Heb. xi. 22.) So in hke manner
have the pious agents of the Wesleyan Missionary Society
taken possession of Western Africa, "the promised land," —
they sleep, not indeed in " the sepulchres of their fathers," but
in graves which they have consecrated for their children, a
spiritual generation to be born in due time ; and there they
rest in glorious hope of the final and universal triumph of the
world's Redeemer.
Let such men, then, never want pecuniary support ; let them
never be forgotten in your prayers. How often did these
devoted men, when living and toiling abroad, urge the Mace-
donian cry, " Come over and help us ! " And as often did they
reiterate the apostolic request, " Brethren, pray for us." Others
are now making the same affecting appeals ; and shall they
plead in vain ? Heaven forbid ! "Whilst some misguided and
infatuated men are crying, "Stop the supplies!" be it your
high duty, as it is your privilege, to " come up to the help of
the Lord," to stand by and support Christ's standard-bearei's,
and thus help forward " the glorious war." Would the British
Government leave our soldiers in a foreign land to fight our
battles, without the proper supplies of food and ammunition?
Such a question is almost an insult to common sense, and
the proposition Avould be spurned by every British heart ; and
yet there are 2}Tofessiny Christians Avho are adopting this prin-
ciple in reference to the cause of missions ! " But ye have
not so learned Christ." Let the " supplies," therefore, be
doubled, rather than " stopped." With increased liberality, let
your fervent prayers ascend to heaven, on behalf of this bene-
volent and holy enterprise. Not merely once a month at the
missionary prayer-meeting, or now and then at a missionary
anniversary, but every day of the week, bear up God's ser-
vants at the throne of gra^^e; and then it shall be said to
you, as well as to them, ai. the great reckoning-day, "Well
CONCLUDING OBSERVATIONS. 623
done, thou good and faithful servant : thou hast been faithful
over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things :
enter thou into the joy of thy Lord." (Matt. xxv. 21.)
It has already been sufficiently demonstrated in this work
that the gospel meets the case of man, wherever man is
found, whatever may be his national, civil, intellectual, or
moral condition; that the nature, the number, the magni-
tude, or the repetition of his iniquities, are not an insuperable
barrier to his conversion and civilization. The gospel is "the
power of God." It cannot alter the colour of the Negro's skin ;
but it can change the blackest heart of the blackest of Ham's
descendants, and make it " white as snow." There is no shade
of guilt too dark, no accumulation of crime too great, and no
enormity of transgression, that it cannot remove. None of the
sons and daughters of fallen Adam on that sin-stricken, smitten,
and afflicted continent, are too far from heaven, or too near
perdition, for the gospel to reach and relieve ; it can " save
them to the uttermost that come unto God by Him, seeing He
ever liveth to make intercession for them." (Heb. vii. 25.) And
if Africa was thrice more deeply degraded and fallen than she
is, there is in " the glorious gospel of the blessed God " a suffi-
cient and never-failing remedy for all her maladies. Here,
then, is our hope, — the faithful and iiersevering use of the
appointed means. The missionaries of the cross may go forth
into this dark and barren land, "weeping," but they are the
bearers of "precious seed." They go forth strengthened with that
consoling promise, " And, lo, I am with you alway, even unto
the end of the world." The " bread " is therefore " cast upon the
waters -," cast sometimes with trembling hands, cast under seem-
ingly unpropitious circumstances ; but the quality of the seed
being good, and suited to aU climates and to all moral soils, and
being " watered " with the gentle dew or teeming showers of
the Almighty Spirit, "the seed shall surely grow;" and it shall
be "found after many days." The "handful of corn in the
earth upon the top of the mountains, the fruit thereof shall
shake like Lebanon ;" and the weeping sower shall become the
successful and joyous reaper ; for he " shall doubtless come
again with rejoicing, bringing his sheaves with him." To those
who think differently, and who imagine all these to be mere
figures of speech, our reply is, "Ye do err, not knowing the
scriptures nor the power of God." For "thus saith the
Lord," " As the heavens are higher than the earth, so are
my ways higher than your ways, and ray thoughts than your
thoughts. For as the rain conit li down, and the suoav from
624 WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
heaven, and returneth not thither, but watereth the earth, and
maketh it bring forth and bud, that it may give seed to the
sower, and bread to the cater : so shall my word be that goeth
forth out of ray mouth : it shall not return unto me void, but it
shall accomplish that which I please, and it shall prosper in the
thing whereto I sent it. For ye shall go out with joy, and be
led forth with peace : the mountains and the hills shall break
forth before you into singing, and all the trees of the field shall
clap their hands. Instead of the thorn shall come up the fir-
tree, and instead of the brier shall come up the myrtle-tree :
and it shall be to the Lord for a name, for an everlasting sign
that shall not be cut off." (Isai. Iv. 9—13.)
TIIF. END.
LONDON : PRINTED BY JAMES NICHOLS, HOXTON-SQUARE.
BY THE SAME AUTHOE:
Now ready, in 8ro., Price 2s. Gd. seivcd,
THE
WESTERN COAST OF AFRICA.
SUGGESTIONS ON THE BEST MEANS OF EXTERMINATING
THE SLAVE-TRADE,
SOME ACCOUNT OF THE SUCCESS OF THE GOSPEL,
AND THE
PIJESENT STATE AND PKOSPECTS OF THE WESLEYAN MISSIONS,
ON THAT COAST.
REMARKS ON THE CLIMATE,
HINTS FOR THE PRESERVATION OF HEALTH.
BOSTON UNIVERSITY
BV3540.F6 BZMM
A brief history of the Wesleyan missions
1 IVn ODSET 37bfi
¥
BV
35^0
.F6
FOX
A brief history of the
Wesleyan missions on
the Western coast of
Africa.
UUL.O Hv
n ATr